《Renewal Of Love》 Chapter 1 His Sweetheart Chapter 1 His Sweetheart On the bedside table in a big room, the phone kept ringing. It annoyed Anne Luo to no end. She struggled to grab the sheets from under her body as she snapped at the man next to her, "Kevin Fu, you¨C" Before she could finish her words, the man made her groan in pleasure. She didn''t even have the strength to re at him anymore as she gritted her teeth. It was as if her entire body had softened underneath him like a bag of putty. The man slowly got off of Anne''s body. He smiledzily before reaching out to pick up the phone on the bedside table. "Honey, I''ming soon. Are you waiting for me in the living room?" There was a short pause before he nodded. "I''ll take a shower first, okay? Love you." The man beside her was incredibly tall with a muscled physique. His tight muscles were charming and sexy, especially with the sweat running all over his skin. There was something about his eyes that was soft and kind. They were filled with love and affection, but Anne Luo knew for a fact that those feelings weren''t for her. His tenderness only belonged to one person. Hearing his sweet voice, she froze in an instant. With a cold face, Anne Luo wrapped herself with the nket that had fallen to the ground while Kevin Fu strode into the bathroom to take a shower. The bathroom door was slightly open, and she could hear water pouring onto the tiles. She stared at the room around her. All of the items were imported from D Country. That meant that every furniture here probably cost a fortune. This was one of the rooms in the Fu Family''s vi, but Anne Luo felt that the room was no different from all the five star hotels that she had been to. "Go downstairs and take a photo for me." While she was too busy staring at her surroundings, Kevin Fu had already walked out of the bathroom after taking a shower. His voice was indifferent, as if she was just another toy that he could mess with. He actually despised her so much. Although she was his wife, he held no feelings for her. The only reason they were together was to fulfill the obligation they had for each other. All she did was go to bed at this time of every day. It was clearly written on the contract that she must be pregnant with his child by the end of the year. If she couldn''t bear his child, then all her shares of the AN Group would be repossessed and she had no choice but to be kicked out of A City. The AN Group was the toppany on the Forbes List, soaring so high up that none of thepanies could everpare with it. Its president, Kevin Fu, was a legend in the making. When he was just seventeen, he had already doubled the worth of the AN Group, ranking it up from seventh on the Forbes List to first. He was dered as the ''Man Women Most Want To Marry'' three times in a row. He was also dered as the ''Legendary Man Across the Globe''. Judging from the tone of his voice, Anne Luo knew that his sweetheart must already be waiting downstairs. "I''m not a professional photographer," she said bluntly. "I told you to do it, so you will." He red at her. His eyes were as cold as night. "Are you really that stupid that you don''t even know how to use a phone? Then maybe you shouldn''t be Vice President of the An Group." "You!" Anger boiled in her heart, and she gritted her teeth. Without even casting her a nce, Kevin Fu strode out of the room. "Don''t forget that you have dinner in the Cloud and Heaven tonight. If you werete and caused any losses, you will have to make up for all." Staring at his receding figure, Anne Luo clenched her fists. For him, nothing was as important as his sweetheart. Loosening her grip, she headed towards her wardrobe to get her clothes. In order to get her shares, she needed to endure all of this, but was that really just her goal? Her heart trembled, and her eyes glistened with sadness. After a long time, Anne Luo quickly put on a long dress. Except for the small difort on her lower limbs, Kevin Fu didn''t leave any trace on her body. He disdained every time he did it. If there wasn''t a contract already, he wouldn''t even want to touch her. Bearing the pain in her hips, she went downstairs. In the hall, Kevin Fu was taking photos with Cherry Ye, his beloved girlfriend. Cherry was wearing a snow-white dress. It enveloped her figure perfectly, and it even highlighted her beautiful face. They were a match made in heaven. Just then, Kevin Fu saw that Anne Luo was already on her way down. The smile on his face faltered. "What took you so long?" he snapped. Anne Luo suppressed her anger. In reality, all she wanted was to hit the man on the face. Cherry Ye, her cousin, was snuggled up in Kevin Fu''s arms. She smiled apologetically at Anne. "It''s Kevin who insisted on taking a photo of us together and posting it on our WeChat Moments. He said that he should post one on my birthday every year," she exined. Anne didn''t even care for the reason as she reached out her hand over to Kevin Fu. "Your phone." Kevin threw her the phone before smiling dotingly at Cherry. "If you can''t shoot well, then you might as well stay at home and take some lessons for the next few days. Maybe then, you might actually have a future once you lose your shares," he threatened. Anger bubbled out in Anne''s heart, but she didn''t say a word. Kevin nced at Anne, annoyed at the fact that she wasn''t reacting at his words. He then ced his hand on Cherry''s thigh. "Oh, stop that, Kevin!" Cherry teased as her cheeks flushed. She leaned against his chest. However, her gaze was on Anne. Her eyes shed provocatively, as if daring her to say a word. Their pose was very intimate. The soft cloth that hugged around Cherry''s body felt like silk, sticking onto Kevin''s suit. Anne stayed silent. She remained cold and stoic. No matter how much she hated the two people in front of her, she would remain as calm as she could be. All she wanted was for the couple to disappear from her eyes. But at this moment, she restrained herself and continued to take pictures of them. Kevin held Cherry''s legs and waist. In other photos, he even leaned in to kiss her on the lips. Smiling shyly, Cherry pouted. Anne made sure that she didn''t miss any of their poses. Even if Kevin had made all those poses, the expression on Anne''s face still didn''t change the slightest. "Give me back my phone. If Cherry doesn''t look good, then you should retake them." Without any hesitation, Anne handed the phone back. Cherry punched him on the arm like a spoiled child. "Do you think I''m ugly?" she demanded. As if he was faced by a formidable enemy, Kevin immediately peppered a few kisses around her face. "Of course not! You''re the most beautiful woman in the world," he immediatelyplimented. "I''m afraid that she may not be good at capturing your beauty." Cherry smiled. "Don''t you believe in our genes?" Given that Anne was Cherry''s cousin, that meant she was also good looking. Although she wasn''t as good looking as Cherry. Kevin nodded immediately. Cherry was incredibly beautiful. Her skin was bright and soft. Her inky dark hair fell right to her waist, framing her heart-shaped face andrge eyes. There was something about her eyes that was simr to a child''s. They held innocence that one could never muster out. She was tall and curvy. In fact, any man who saw her wouldpare her to a goddess. Any photo that featured her would be beautiful, especially since Anne had taken them with all her heart. Kevin nced at all the photos that she had taken. In every single one of them, Cherry''s beauty was highlighted and his gracefulness was exemplified. It seemed that he couldn''t find any ws. With an indescribable anger in his heart, he impatiently put away his phone. "You can go now." This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Anne turned and was about to leave when he called her back. "Wait a minute." Dissatisfied, he crossed his arms. "Go change your clothes. Your clothes have the same color as Cherry''s. Don''t wear the same color as her when you''ll be attending the wine party. You''d better not disrespect her." His face was as ruthless as the Prince of Death. "In fact, toss all the clothes that may be simr in color to Cherry''s choice of clothing." Anger bubbled in Anne''s chest. It took her a few seconds to get the words out as she gritted her teeth. "I''ll bear you good remarks in my mind." All she did was wear a white dress! How the hell did she disrespect Cherry? Anne clenched her fists and stalked off. Seeing Anne so angry, Cherry raised the corners of her lips. Something shed in her eyes as she lovingly stared at the man beside her. Anne tore all her white clothes and threw them on the ground. Cherry had always preferred light-colored fabrics, especially white, so from this point on, Anne disdained herself for wearing the same color. "Kevin, have you already posted them?" Cherry asked, leaning against his chest. Kevin finally came to his senses as he smiled brightly at the woman beside him. "I''ll do it now." He took out his phone and chose a photo that best represented them. In the photo, they wereughing happily. As their arms wrapped around each other, it was obvious that they were the perfect match. However, the more he stared at the photo, the more annoyed he became. Without saying another word, he posted it on his WeChat Moments. The caption was: Happy Birthday, Baby. I''ll love you forever! As soon as he finished posting, a lot of peoplemented on the picture. Mr. He said, "It''s a torture to for a single dog to see that." Mr. Sun said, "Rub it in, why don''t you? You kill me, my friend. At least give your single friend a break!" There were also some tteringments below like: "Cherry, you''re glowing! Happy Birthday! I hope that you''ll always be together from this life to the next." Although they all knew that Kevin had a wife, they also knew that he only cared for one person. Chapter 2 The Queens Road (Part One) Chapter 2 The Queen''s Road (Part One) Kevin never once mentioned about Anne in his WeChat moments. In fact, the only person that he had ever showed off was Cherry. Everyone thought that the man was in love. No one dared say that he was heartless or even use him of showing off his other women while he was still married. After all, Kevin was the most powerful man that walked around the city. No one dared to question his moves. Anne wore a ssic red short dress. Her slightly long hair wasbed back behind her ears. Although she didn''t wore makeup, she still looked better than those who did. She was tall and curvy. While Cherry looked like a goddess, Anne looked like a queen. Her regal features were further emphasized with the dark red color of her dress. After the driver opened the door to her side, she walked into the Cloud and Heaven. The hotel was one of the most luxurious hotels in A City. In fact, people needed to make an appointment in advance. There weren''t any walk-ins allowed. Those who reserved must be gold members who paid their annual fees of more than a million dors. To say that it was luxurious was an understatement. The private room she had booked was located on the third floor. It was where she would invite people from the KIA Group for dinner. "Secretary Wang just called and said that CEO of the KIA Group had juste back from abroad. He will also be attending the dinner today," Anne''s assistant whispered in her ear. Her eye twitched. The KIA Group was thergest enterprise in C City, and it was also on top of the Forbes List. The AN Group had invited them to coborate several times, but they were met with replies that they were still thinking about it. Now that the CEO would be arriving from abroad to attend the dinner, did that mean the chances of her snagging the deal would be bigger? Or smaller? Although Anne was worried, her expression showed no emotion. "Have you confirmed all the dishes and wine that would be served tonight?" she asked politely. "Yes," the assistant replied in an instant. All the guests that she had invited were senior executives of the KIA Group. Now that the CEO was also going to make an appearance, Anne couldn''t afford any errors. After walking into the private room, Anne and her assistant checked all the furnishings around the room, trying to see if anything was out of ce. Just when she was about to sit down, her assistant answered her phone. Her assistant quickly turned to Anne. "Madam Vice President, Michelle said that the people from the KIA Group have arrived." "Ask Michelle to guide them here." Anne was passive with the information as she straightened her back. "Yes, Madam." The assistant said a few words to the person at the other end of the line before hanging up. During this time, Anne could still feel the soreness around her legs. Her hips felt ufortable, preventing her from moving around. Although she felt exhausted, she knew that she couldn''t just sit back and rx. The people from the KIA Group would be arriving anytime soon. She stared at the doors reproachfully as she subtly fanned her face. It was not her first time entertaining a big client, but why did she feel so warm? Was it because of the air conditioning? "Check the room temperature," she ordered her assistant. "It''s 24 degrees." The Cloud and Heaven had an excellent cooling system. It was actually a few degrees lower than other hotels, but Anne still felt extremely hot. Maybe it was just some psychological reason. Just then, the doors in front of her were pushed open. A tall figure came into her view. There was something about the man that drew her in. His eyes were simr to the sea with its waves sshing against the shoreline. He was dressed in a silver gray suit, and there was a smile ying on the corner of his lips. Among the seven people in front of her, the man was the most eye-catching. He immediately stood out from the crowd. When his gaze fell on Anne, his smile widened. His smile was so dazzling that she couldn''t find it in herself to look away. "We ran into Kevin on the way, so we were a bitte. I didn''t expect him to book a private room on the fourth floor to celebrate Cherry''s birthday," the person standing next to the man in a grey suit said with a smile. He was none other than Director Zhao from the KIA Group. There was something about how casual he had said it that sent a dull ache in her heart. Her eyes darkened momentarily. ''So Kevin''s celebrating Cherry''s birthday?'' Anne shook her head from all the thoughts that had entered her mind. This wasn''t the time for that. "Is this the new CEO of KIA?" Anne asked Director Zhao, smiling politely. Director Zhao puffed up his chest. "You have a good eye, Madam Vice President. This is Ryan Xiao, our new CEO." "I''ve heard a lot about you, Madam Vice President." Ryan Xiao stepped forward and reached out his hand like the gentleman he was. Staring into the man''s face, Anne already found herself slightly mesmerized. Her assistant next to her nudged her. Anne finally came to her senses and reached out to shake Ryan Xiao''s hands. Suddenly, he pulled her closer against his chest. He leaned forward and whispered, "Happy Birthday." Hearing this, Anne froze. She paled at his words. Her birthday... Someone actually remembered her birthday. Anne rapidly blinked back the tears from her eyes. While her husband was celebrating another woman''s birthday, her birthday was spent with clients. Her husband didn''t even know, or he might not even care at this point. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Director Zhaoughed. "Ryan just came back from France, so he greets us in this way as well." The emotions in her eyes died a little as Anne straightened her posture. "It''s my honor to see Mr. Xiao today. Please, let''s all sit." She took Ryan Xiao to the seat of honor, which was just beside her, before turning to greet the other senior executives of the KIA Group. Today, it seemed that Director Zhao was trying to get a reaction from Anne. He walked towards his chair and said with a smile, "So, why didn''t Kevine today? Is he¨C" Chapter 3 The Queens Road (Part Two) Chapter 3 The Queen''s Road (Part Two) "Director Zhao," Ryan Xiao cut off, staring at him coldly. It was as if the temperature in the room had dropped by a few degrees. After a second, a smile entered his lips. "Madam Vice President is actually a ssmate of mine." Director Zhao''s eyes widened in surprise. Actually, everyone in the room was shock. They didn''t expect that the two knew each other. The senior executives shared a look. They all wanted to find out more about their connection. Anne''s smile became more at ease. It seemed that Ryan Xiao still remembered her after all these years. After hearing his boss''s warning, Director Zhao smiled awkwardly. The wine had just been served to them. He quickly took a bottle and poured in two sses of wine. He handed a ss to Anne. "Madam Vice President, I''m sorry if I spoke too rashly earlier. I hope you can ept my apology." The smile on her face stiffened. Since she was preparing for pregnancy, she couldn''t drink. In fact, she didn''t even use cosmetics. All her skin care products, clothes, bags, and drinks were strictly controlled by the Fu Family. Knowing that she couldn''t drink, her assistant quickly took the wine from Director Zhao. "Director Zhao, our vice president is allergic to alcohol. Let me drink with you instead." Her assistant downed the ss before showing it to the director. There was not a single drop of wine left. Director Zhao nodded, impressed. "You''re good at drinking," he praised. Without any further Wearing a small smile on his face, Ryan Xiao poured a ss of juice before handing it to Anne. He had red wine in his own ss. "Would you like to drink with me for the sake of being ssmates once?" She gazed at his smile and found herself smiling right back. He had changed. Before she could take the juice from his hand, the door of their private room was pushed open. Everyone gazed at the man who suddenly entered the room. Kevin wore a ck shirt and a pair of trousers. There was something in his eyes that made everyone look away almost immediately. He walked to the round table with a smile ying on his lips as his sharp gaze fell on the juice Ryan Xiao was holding. "Mr. Xiao, I''m afraid that you don''t know that my wife is actually preparing for pregnancy, do you?" Hearing his words, Anne grew pale. She red at Kevin. Was he trying to embarrass her in public? Kevin walked forward at ease, but his eyes was sharp. He was like a predator eyeing hispetitor. "The juice here is sour. My wife can''t drink it." Although Kevin tried his best to embarrass him, Ryan Xiao wasn''t fazed. Instead, Ryan raised his ss with a smile. "I didn''t know you were preparing for pregnancy. I''ll drink this wine as my apology to you." Tension filled the room. From the way Kevin was eyeing Ryan, it was obvious that he was hostile towards this new CEO. Director Zhao was smart to try and diffuse the matter. "Kevin, aren''t you upstairs with Cherry?" "I heard that Mr. Xiao and my wife are ssmates. I''m here to propose to you, Mr. Xiao." Kevin was smiling like a king waiting for gratitude. Arrogance just seeped out of his movements. He picked up a ss of wine from the table and raised it towards Ryan. "Mr. Xiao, I propose a toast to you, but you have to propose a toast to me in return." He clinked his ss with Ryan''s. The tension in the room doubled. Ryan also wore a smile on his face. In fact, he looked as if he wasn''t even intimidated by the man in Content (C) N?v/elDra/ma.Org. front of him. He quickly drank the wine. Their sses were automatically refilled. "Kevin, I would like to propose a toast then," Ryan said, smirking. Kevin''s re became even more ambiguous. "Do you even know why you''re proposing a toast?" The air around them had gotten colder. Anne stared at them, wanting to dispel the tension between them, but she didn''t know what to do. Ryan frowned, looking confused. The corner of Kevin''s mouth twitched as he said slowly, "I punish you with this ss of wine. You didn''t attend our wedding." After saying that, the smile on his face disappeared in an instant. Kevin mmed the ss onto the table. Red liquid spilled onto the tablecloth. He nced at Anne''s assistant. "Emily Xia, take good care of your boss and send her home early." Without giving her a chance to reply, he stormed off. When he left, everyone froze. It was as if he had ced them all into a freezer. "Yes, sir," Emily Xia answered. She was Anne''s assistant after all. Staring at Kevin''s retreating figure, Anne was furious. She clenched her fists and warned herself not to lose herposure in front of her guests. The corners of Ryan''s lips twitched up. The smile was much colder and sharper than the one that he had worn before. ''Kevin, we will definitely see more of each other in the future,'' he thought to himself. Chapter 4 Staying Out All Night Chapter 4 Staying Out All Night The lights were blurred in the luxurious private room on the fourth floor. Everyone was talking and flowers, and fruits which made the birthday celebration even more joyous. Cherry was wearing her customized white dress as she stood like a fairy in the middle of the stage. She grabbed the microphone and said, "I want to dedicate this song to my love, Kevin." She blushed with shyness. The audience pped their hands in response and cheered her on. She blushed even more as she saw that all eyes were on her. The prelude began to y slowly as she started to sing. As she sang, everyone focused their attention on her. Kevin, who was sitting on thergest sofa, slowly narrowed his handsome eyes as he watched Cherry sing on stage. However, Kevin''s mind was somewhere else. ''Today is also Anne''s birthday, '' he thought. ''I wonder if she has someone to celebrate it with.'' He smiled and picked up the ss of wine in front of him. Before he even got to take a sip, he was interrupted by n Sun. "Why did you go out just now?" he asked. Kevin''s eyes dimmed. "Dealing with a bitch," he said with a cunning smile. Baffled, n looked at Eric He. Eric shrugged his shoulders in response. He too didn''t know what Kevin was talking about. After he drank his wine, Kevin put down the ss and headed straight to Cherry on the stage. Cherry''s eyes sparkled as she looked at him. He grabbed Cherry by the waist and kissed her lips passionately in front of everyone. Seeing them kiss, the bachelors on the sofa reacted with jealousy. The sight of them kissing made them feel as though they were being stabbed by ten thousand knives. Some ces were lively as heaven and some ces were cold as hell. After staying in the box for only thirty minutes, Anne was picked up by Kevin''s staff. Ryan was always with different groups of people in the room. They were all raising a toast to his name. She wanted to talk to him but she didn''t have the chance. Seeing Ryan finally achieve what he had always wanted made her smile. In the mansion, only Anne and the servants were there. Kevin hadn''t returned yet. Although the light in the yard shone brightly, a hint of loneliness still crept in the dark. Anne slowly closed the curtain and walked to her bed alone. She was scrolling through her phone when she saw that Kevin posted a picture in his WeChat moments. It was a picture of him sucking on Cherry''s neck. The two of them looked and acted like love birds. She remembered taking that photo for Kevin. The sight of the picture made her heart ache. It felt as though a knife ran through her heart and twisted as it bled even further. ''Cherry''s celebrating her birthday with someone. What about me?'' she thought to herself as the pain continued to spread across her chest. ''No one remembered my birthday.'' Her thoughts were interrupted by the sound of her phone ringing. She reached for her phone and saw a message notification from WeChat. She opened WeChat and saw a friend request along with a message. She opened it and saw that it was from Ryan. Taken aback, she epted his friend request. "Happy birthday," the message from Ryan read. Upon reading, Anne smiled. She then replied, "Thank you." "I have a gift prepared for you but unfortunately, I didn''t have the chance to give it to you today." "A gift?" she replied. Anne continued typing. "I''m very d that you remembered my birthday. There''s no need to give me a gift." She inserted a ttered emoji at the end and hit send. Ryan no longer replied. She fell asleep holding her phone while she waited for his reply. Today, Kevin This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. didn''t even greet her a happy birthday. He only remembered Cherry''s birthday. He should have celebrated Anne''s birthday too. Kevin didn''te home the entire night. Although they were husband and wife, they had never spent a night together, except for the times when they had to. Even though Kevin didn''te home, Anne still felt victorious. Regardless of how much Cherry and Kevin loved each other, there was nothing else that they could do. Until Anne decided to file a divorce against him, Kevin couldn''t touch her or any other woman. Even if Cherry kept winning over Anne on many things, she could never win in this regard. The thought of it made Anne smile but at the same time she felt bitter deep in her heart. All she could have was his body but she could never have his heart. Ryan knew that Kevin had rigid control of Anne. That was why he changed the gift that he had prepared for her. Anne couldn''t believe her eyes when she saw the lifelike cake in front of her. Ryan knew that she liked desserts yet he gave her a beautiful and elegant cake model. It was so tempting that Anne started to salivate. But no matter how delicious it looked, it was only a model. She hated this feeling and she would make Ryan regret it. Ever since she and Kevin met in the Cloud and Heaven that night, Anne rarely saw him. She would have never been involved with him if he never showed up in thepany. The spirits were high in the office when they had signed the KIA contract. This feeling of excitement When Anne arrived at thepany this morning, she felt there was something off with the environment. She felt as though there was a dark cloud looming in the office and something bad was going to happen. Emily, her assistant, called her. "Madam," she said, her voice trembling with fright. "Are you..." She struggled to finish what she was saying. "Are you already here?" she finally managed to say. Anne''s heart skipped a beat. The bad feeling she felt earlier worsened. "Here I am. What''s wrong?" she asked with a cold expression on her face. "Mr.... Fu..." "Come to my office right now!" Kevin shouted angrily over the phone before Emily could even finish her words. ''Kevin must have snatched Emily''s phone, '' Anne thought. She prepared for the worst and took a deep breath. Her heart sunk in pain as she stood at the doorway of his office. ''I should already be used to the way Kevin treats me, '' she thought. ''Why do I still feel heartbroken every time?'' Anne knocked on the open door. "Come in," Kevin said with his cold voice as he motioned her to enter. Anne walked slowly inside the office. Before she could even reach the center, she felt a gush cold water being thrown directly to her face. Kevin walked towards her and stood beside her. "How does it feel to be soaked in cold water?" he asked with gritted teeth. Anne waspletely drenched as beads of cold water fell from the tips of her hair. It was very cold in his office. A chilly gust of wind blew against her. She stood there, shivering. Although her body was freezing, it was her heart that felt the coldest. She tried to keep a nk expression but the hatred in her eyes was apparent. She looked up at him and asked, "Mr. Fu, do you want me to write down how this feels?" The cold stare down between the two of them seemed to have further lowered the temperature in the office. The tension between them was so vtile that it felt like gunpowder ready to explode. Emily was shaking in fear. She wanted to give Anne a change of clothes but she was too afraid to even step forward. The walls of the CEO''s office were entirely made of ss. It also utilized the most advanced light sensor technology in the world. Just with a click of a remote, people outside couldn''t see what was happening inside. When the switch was turned off, people could see the entirety of the office. When Kevin sshed cold water directly to Anne''s face, the employees outside saw everything. They saw Annepletely drenched and standing in the middle of the office. Kevin''s choice for his office location was unique. Unlike senior executives from otherpanies who preferred higher floors to show off their high positions, he chose the floor with the most employees. There was some distance between his and Anne''s offices, and they stood opposite each other. With so many people on the floor, every time Anne was humiliated by Kevin, it was seen by all. It was widely known in thepany that the CEO didn''t like his wife. The rumor going around the means to marry Kevin. As a result, Kevin and Cherry couldn''t be together even though they loved each other very much. "What a poor girl! She''s being mistreated by the CEO again," one employee said. "If it were me, I would just take the money and leave," another employee chimed in. "Maybe she wants more money?" The people outside were gossiping. Even though Anne was consistently bullied and humiliated by Kevin, in their story, she wasn''t the victim. Instead of sympathizing with her, theyughed at her misery as though she deserved it. "You think too much. I just want to let you know what it feels like," Kevin said with a heavy disdain forming in his eyes. "If you let Cherry get wet from the rain again, I will put you in a tub of cold water for a whole day," he threatened. Anne went livid as he heard the false usationsing from Kevin. "When did I ever let your baby get wet from the rain?!" she shouted at him. ''Was all of this punishment just because his lover got wet in the rain?'' she thought to herself as she fumed with anger. ''Was it even my fault? I didn''t even do anything!'' Steadily, Kevin walked two steps beside her as though he was a hunter and she was prey. He stared at her sharply like an arrow coated with poison. "No, you didn''t. But your subordinate did!" he said with a tone as cold as a cier. "She knew that I had exclusively designated the driver for Cherry. Why did she force the driver to drive her and tell him it was for business? Because of this, Cherry waited outside for three hours and got wet in the rain!" he spit the words with such vitriol and hate. As the usations went further, Anne''s eyes started to burn with anger. "How can I assign her exclusive driver if it was designated by you?!" sheshed out at him with gritted teeth. Cherry was so viscous and even the people around her became the birds of the same feather. Two days ago, Anne''s subordinate did take the car driven by Cherry''s private driver. But the driver didn''t tell her that Cherry was waiting which led Kevin to believe that they assigned the driver on other businesses. ''She is such a liar by shifting the me to me!'' Anne fumed inside. "You are so mean and cruel. Do you think everyone is like you?!" Kevin''s eyes dimmed. He stared at Anne with menace. "Cherry has a pure heart. How could she say that you made use of other businesses to give him pressure?" he said with rising intensity. "For God''s sake, I sent someone to investigate and found out that you always put Cherry in danger! She is so kindhearted that she even asked me not to me you when she caught a fever!" ''Good to know Cherry begged him not to me me, '' she thought to herself. ''Though if Cherry really didn''t want Kevin to me me, then she shouldn''t have said anything in the first ce. She was just pretending to be nice and pitiful by telling Kevin it wasn''t my fault. Of course, Kevin would think it''s my fault when she told him that.'' Anne pursed her lips and didn''t say another word. Kevin would never believe her anyway regardless of how much she exined. It was best that she just stayed quiet. "Apologize to her now," Kevinmanded angrily. Anne clenched her fist as she stayed silent. This wasn''t the first time something like this had happened. This was what their rtionship had always been ever since she married Kevin. In the beginning, she tried to resist. However, every time she resisted, Kevin would just torture and humiliate her even more. ''Is it such a big deal for me to apologize?'' she asked herself. ''I won''t lose anything if I apologize.'' Yet despite how much she tried to convince herself that she didn''t care, the sorrow in her eyes still swelled. A sour kind of sorrow burned through her eyes and forced her to tear up. ''Cherry, I''ll make sure you get double whatever humiliation you gave me.'' She clenched her fist in resolve. In a vi by the mountains and rivers, Cherry was inside arge bedroom. She was lying down in a customized luxurious bed. She looked pale and sickly. Chapter 5 Taking Care Of The Mistress Chapter 5 Taking Care Of The Mistress After she had been sshed by Kevin, Anne was now standing in front of Cherry with her clothes still dripping. Kevin''s presence loomed over her from behind. Wearing a neat shirt and a pair of casual pants, he had his arms folded in what looked like enjoyment for seeing her embarrassed. "Why are you all wet?" Cherry''s tone was a mixture of surprise and concern. "Quick, go and change your clothes." The worry and nervousness in her voice made her look like a kind older sister taking care of her sibling. But Anne knew that she was just pretending. Cherry''s eyes were telling a different story. They didn''t care to hide the joy and victory she must have felt. "I''m here to apologize to you. Then I''ll go change my clothes." Although she could see through Cherry''s hypocrisy and disguise, Anne kept her expression impassive. She didn''t want to expose her. No matter what she said, there were always people ready to believe in Cherry''s deceptions. "I said it wasn''t your fault. Why are you apologizing?" Cherry moved her gaze to Kevin, a hint of false usation in her voice. "You overreacted. It''s really nothing to do with Anne. You worry too much about me. People get sick sometimes. How can it be Anne''s fault?" It seemed that she was ming Kevin instead. However, in Anne''s eyes, this was just her way of showing affection. All this time, she had been immune to their feelings being disyed openly. No matter how disgusting it was, it wasn''t something she hadn''t heard of before. She had seen way more repulsive performances. What she was observing now couldn''t affect her in any way. "I shouldn''t have let you wait for the driver in the rain and get wet. It''s all my fault. Cherry..." She took an almost imperceptible breath, gathering all her strength. "Please, forgive me." As though someone had just punched her in her stomach, it pained her to utter those words. She even felt the taste of blood making its way up her throat. And Cherry seemed to be feeding off Anne''s distress. "Please don''t say that," she voiced, curling the corners of her mouth in acent smirk. "How am I supposed to forgive you if you didn''t do anything wrong? It''s all¡­" In an attempt to show the sincerity of her concern, Cherry sat up and started to get out of bed to hold Anne''s hand. Growing indignant, Kevin rushed forward and pushed Cherry back on the bed. His words came hurried and slightly anxious. "You''re still sick. Why would you get up?" With a re in Anne''s direction, he then added, "She deserves it." Cherry stared at him with a reproachful expression, pretending to me him. Kevin knew better than to make her angry, so he quickly pressed his lips to hers. While Cherry returned the kiss, a contented smile blossomed on her face. Looking away slowly, Anne felt a cold breeze enveloping her body and prating through her very core. She wished she could leave that ce at once. She opened her mouth ready to speak, when Kevin broke in sulkily. "A family dinner will be held at the old house tomorrow at five o''clock." He turned his gaze toward Anne. "You need to go too, to take care of Cherry." With her mouth still agape, Anne stared at Kevin in surprise, while Cherry blushed shyly. Without further bothering to look at Anne, Kevin turned his back to her arrogantly. "It was you who made her get sick." His voice was cold and emotionless. "If you don''t take care of her, you won''t be qualified to enter the old house." Anne''s hands started resolving into angry fists. ess to the old house was only allowed to the people of the Fu Family and their respectable rtives. She was Kevin''s wife, the granddaughter inw of the Fu Family. The thought that she could only enter the house if she took care of a mistress was outrageous. As she red at Kevin''s back, her eyes froze with repulsion. It was as if her heart had been stabbed by a poisonous arrow, its venom slowly paralyzing her body. "I see." In spite of everything, she maintained herposure. "I''m leaving now, so¡­ Cherry, have a good rest." "Be off. You have spoiled the air in here." Kevin''s words were sharp and stinging like a thousand needles ready to pierce through her body. But her heart was already peppered with holes created by him. She would have never imagined that such a handsome and noble man could be both a magnificent and a ruthless being able to hurt people in a way that even taking a single breath around him was painful. She didn''t know such men existed, until she married Kevin. After all, maybe it was true that if someone didn''t love you, they could make your life a living hell in a matter of minutes. Anne had learned it the hard way. ''Kevin, I''m a human being too, just like Cherry.'' Taking a deep breath, Anne hurried downstairs, her body swinging wildly. She felt dizzy and immediately fell to the ground on her side. "Anne!" Seeing her like that, Emily got scared and rushed to hold her. Pale and feeble, Anne regained consciousness after a few seconds and stood up. As she spoke, she felt weakness wash over her body. "I''m fine." "You''re cold like an icicle. Let me help you get in the car," Emily mouthed, still holding her tight. Color was draining out of Anne''s face and her skin was growing gelid. She didn''t look well. Kevin... He was too cruel to her. In fact, Emily felt sorry for Anne. Helping her take a few steps toward the car, she uttered with a hint of guilt in her voice, "Anne, it''s all my fault. I won''t let our people get in touch with them next time." "It''s not your fault." Sinking in the seat of the car, Anne closed her eyes drowsily. Emily knew that Kevin was hurting Anne deliberately. She sympathized with her, but that wasn''t enough to make a difference. The only thing she could do to help her was to be kind to her. "You don''t look good. I''ll call Doctor Feng." Throwing her a worried nce, Emily grabbed her bag and started searching for her phone. With her eyes still closed, Anne felt safe enough to be vulnerable around Emily. "You don''t have to call him. Just prepare some clean clothes and buy me a cup of ginger tea. I''m supposed to have dinner with the people of KIA tonight." "s." Emily pitied Anne. Even if she was tired, she still had to deal with thepany''s business. Although Kevin could appear as perfect in other people''s eyes, he was no more than a merciless and cold-blooded jerk who failed to uphold his responsibilities toward his wife and had an affair with another Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. woman. Standing in front of arge French window, Kevin took in the scene, watching how Anne''s wet clothes adhered to her body and how her hair seemed glued to her head. She was looking like a drowned rat. Her slim figure wrapped in those soaked clothes made her look even more fragile. Seeing a woman so exposed moved something inside of him, making his heart ache. He was about to call the driver and ask him to prepare clean clothes for her and turn on the heat in the car, when he remembered what she had done. He put down the phone he had just picked up, and his eyes turned cold again. The pity he had felt for her faded away in a second. ''Anne, your suffering is less than one thousandth of the harm caused by what you''ve done.'' Coldheartedly, he looked away and turned around. After taking a hot shower, changing into clean clothes and drinking a cup of steamy ginger tea, Anne was feeling much better. Fortunately, she had good physique in the first ce and thanks to the advice of the doctor and dietitian of the Fu Family, she would need to drink a cup of hot tea and would recover from any headache and cold. She was wearing a ck low-necked organza top and a ck knee-length skirt in the same fabric and geometric pattern. shing a pair of ck high heels and her slender legs, she looked like a proud queen. Every time Anne wore high heels and walked with her head up, Emily was tempted to say behind her, "Queen Anne, let me carry your shoes and bags." But when she said this for the first time, the queen had dismissed her with a disdainful nce. The dinner was booked by KIA at a private club on the riverside. This club also adopted a membership system, which restricted the ess to a limited number of people. It was in a building with a western style from thest century. Covering arge area flecked with many ancient trees, it dominated thendscape with its uniqueness and charm. Anne didn''t expect to see Ryan there. He was wearing a white shirt and a silver grey suit with a belt that captured his waist perfectly. His short hair was cut neatly and the elegance of his outfit paired nicely with his deep and attractive eyes. Winking at Anne, he made her want tough. She was quite surprised to see the dishes on the table. Everyone in the room knew that Ryan specially tailored the dishes to her needs, but nobody said a thing. When they proposed toasts, they served her the nutritious soups. Sitting beside her, Ryan grinned in her direction. Despite his gentle expression, his eyes were extremely sharp and prating. As soon as anyone dared to bully the queen in his eyes, he would rush to fight them ruthlessly. Everyone was therefore very careful in his presence. An hourter, starting to feel a little bored, Anne excused herself and left, saying she needed fresh air. Following her, Ryan examined Anne''s colorless face and asked worriedly, "Are you okay? Let me drive you home. You look pale." "I..." Just saying that one word was enough for Anne to feel dizzy again. Struggling to stand steadily, she instinctively tried to hold the handrail. With panic growing in his throat, Ryan rushed to her side to hold her up. But before he could even touch her, he felt his hand get pped by somebody all of a sudden. In a bold ck suit, Kevin was standing behind Anne, who fell in his arms not being able to stay on her feet any longer. She felt a familiar cold breeze breathing on her neck and got immediately sober. "Mr. Xiao, don''t you remember that she is a married woman?" Kevin red heartlessly at Ryan, while the dim yellow light entuated his hard-featured aspect. He was looking even more ruthless and domineering. His shadow fell on Anne, making her suffocate for a moment. Struggling to stand up and attempting to escape from his arms, she found herself unable to move as he was firmly holding her waist. "I don''t dare to forget it." Narrowing his eyes and throwing him a cold stare, Ryan added calmly, "I just want to help her as a friend." "I thank you on behalf of my wife." Kevin lowered his gaze down to Anne''s pale figure in his arms. His stiff heart felt a bit warmer again, but it was just a moment before it regained its indifference. "My woman never epts somebody else''s hand." ''My woman?'' Because of these few words, Anne''s heart stopped beating for a second. But what Kevin did next made her heartbeat go through the roof. He lifted her up. Dazed, Anne couldn''t help but stare at him. Under the light, his face looked even more cial and his dark eyes were shimmering with cold- bloodedness. That man... Was that man her husband, Kevin? She gazed at him without blinking. Was she in a dream? Chapter 6 An Ordinary Woman Chapter 6 An Ordinary Woman "Then please love her well." Ryan turned around indifferently. Pursing his lips, Kevin stood there and watched Ryan walk away. Anne was in the crook of his arm. When Ryan disappeared from view, Kevin impatiently threw her to the ground. "Headache?" he said the word emotionlessly, with doubt in his eyes. Thest moment, she was on cloud nine as Kevin imed that she was his woman in front of Ryan. Now he sent her to the rock bottom. She came to her senses then, as she felt off bnce, and then the cold, hard ground. She replied simply, "No." "I hope you are not lying." Kevin turned and left her lying there, his coldness on full disy. "You still have to take care of Cherry tomorrow. Don''t pretend to be sick." Anne''s heart suddenly ached, ''Pretend to be sick?'' Why should she do something like that? She was Anne, not some urchin. She wouldn''t scheme like that. ''Kevin, why do you have the same dirty thoughts as Cherry?'' she thought inside. "We''ll see how I feel tomorrow," she said coldly. And with that, she stalked off. When she reached the door of the box, she lost her bnce again. Fortunately, Emily happened to find her there, and keep her from falling again. Standing in the corridor, Kevin saw what was going on. He felt like his heart had been pricked by countless needles. It didn''t hurt, but it was certainly ufortable. Irritated, he took out his phone and made a call. After the phone was connected, he shouted at the person on the other end, "Come take Mrs. Anne home."This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Emily suggested Anne call Sam Feng to check on her, but Anne nixed the idea. Her face looked even worse than that when she was in the club, so she insisted on taking a hot shower and catching some Z''s instead. Her temples throbbed painfully. After taking a hot bath, shey on the bed, but found no relief at all. She recalled what Kevin had said and done to her today. Her heart felt like it had been stabbed by a needle. She closed her eyes tightly and bundled herself up in the quilt. There was still a long way to go. She couldn''t be weak or fragile. Not now. She didn''t want to give up yet. In the empty room, her ears were particrly sensitive to sound. The sound of her phone told her there was a WeChat message waiting. She didn''t move, but WeChat''s insistent tones rang again, twice in quick session. After a few seconds, she opened her eyes and got out of bed. The phone was on the table three meters away from her bed. Standing at the table, Anne opened the WeChat interface. There were three messages from Ryan. "Have you gone to bed?" "You''re unhappy with him." "Anne, what do you want?" Instead of replying, she turned off her phone andy back on the bed. What did she want? Maybe it was a little extravagant, but she would not give up. After a good night''s rest, Anne felt better. She decided to leave for work. Cherry woke up early today, "Kev, is my dress okay?" She wore a red cheongsam and gently turned her waist in front of Kevin. With her waist bent like that, she was absolutely ravishing in the cheongsam that clung to her hourss figure. Kevin put away the phone in his hand and squinted his eyes affectionately. "It''s so beautiful that Grandpa will feel like he''s ten years younger when he meets you!" "On second thought, noments from the peanut gallery. We''d better check on Grandpa''s birthday gift. If anything goes wrong, I can''t show my face in front of Grandpa again." "You decide," Kevin whispered hoarsely, knowing he couldn''t continue the joke. In therge conference room, Anne sat at head of the big round table, an intense expression on her face. The conference room took on a depressing pallor. She looked livid. "Redo this n. I need it on my desk before twelve o''clock today." With a grim face, she pushed the n aside. The department manager was surprised and dissatisfied. He bit back a retort and fumed in his seat. After a few seconds, he replied reluctantly, "I see." Things were already tense, but Anne had made them worse. She was in a foul mood, and she wanted to let everyone know. Some of them hadints already, but they said nothing. Instead, they pulled on their neckties impatiently. She ignored the fact that everyone seemed to be annoyed, and continued the meeting. "Manager Zhang, tell me your n." Manager Zhang stood up gingerly and walked towards the projector. Anne''s mobile phone on the table lit up, notifying her of a new WeChat message. She hadn''t nned to read it yet, but Manager Zhang''s introduction was too boring. She was impatient so she decided to be rude and check her phone anyway. She opened the WeChat page and saw the name "Kevin". Her heart skipped a beat. "Five o''clock tonight at the old house. I warn you again. Don''t bete," the message read. She felt a stream of pain spreading through her heart and sneered at the same time. What else could her husband do except call her and threaten her over WeChat? She put down her phone heavily and took it out on Manager Zhang. "What in the hell were you thinking? That won''t work at all! Redo it and send it to my mailbox before twelve o''clock!" Manager Zhang''s failure made other managers even more nervous. They began to think to themselves, ''Is Mrs. Anne in a bad mood today? So she vented her anger on us? She thought everyone''s n was wrong. Maybe she''s the one who''s wrong?'' When the meeting was over, they walked slowly behind Anne. Several bold managers gossiped about her, "The tigress is so angry today. Didn''t Mr. Kevin go homest night?" "Are you kidding me? I don''t even know he ever goes home." "Oh, then no wonder she''s in a bad mood all the time. No guy around..." The more they talked, the more evil their words became. Emily was walking behind them and couldn''t stand it anymore. She screamed, "Mr. Kevin!" The voice startled the ones who were gossiping. They immediately shut up. They turned around carefully and found that Kevin was not behind them. They breathed a sigh of relief, but at the same time, they took it out on Emily. "Listen to you!" "Yes, listen to her. Something you should do more often." While they lectured Emily, Anne rounded the corner. Hearing her cold voice, the managers were too frightened to continue. They turned to Anne and put on fake smiles. "It''s a team-building exercise. One person gets harangued to see how much they can take. Emi''s in the hotseat. Mrs. Anne, I can see you''re busy. We''ll leave you to it." They left in sorrow. As soon as they were all gone, Emily ran to Anne andforted her carefully, "Anne, these people..." "I know." All of a sudden, Anne felt weary. She knew what Emily might want to say to help her feel better. But the chicken soup for her soul couldn''t fill the gap in her heart. It was a fact that Kevin didn''t love her. No matter how much Emily talked, it was useless. She was kind of snippy today, but not because of Kevin. In the past, she would still have struck down those ns, but she''d probably be nicer about it. So what was happening to her now? She always felt tired and wanted to sleep. Or was it because of her headache yesterday? "Get me a cup of hot ginger tea." Anne forced herself to pick up her spirits and walked towards her office. Seeing her pretending to be strong, Emily really felt sorry for her. Anne shook her head. The business proposals of every department were submitted before twelve o''clock, but she was still dissatisfied. She fought back her anger and asked them to do it again. All the department heads were cursing her. She had been working till half past three in the afternoon. Emily knocked on the door and said, "Anne, you asked me to tell you when it was time." Raising her head from a pile of folders, Anne took a few seconds to remember that she was going to the old house of the Fu Family. "I see. Go ahead and finish up here." She stood up, her hands on the edge of the table, and her eyelids reflected her fatigue. She wore a ck tight skirt and a white vest. The edge of the vest was decorated with ck handmade patterns. The two pieces together made Anne look mature and reserved. She guessed that Cherry might wear light colored clothing today. In case that her outfit shed with that of Cherry, Anne had gotten rid of most of her clothes of lighter colors. Her wardrobe consisted mostly of darks. Cherry, ady of note, would never wear dark clothes. Before leaving, Anne sent a message to Kevin on WeChat. "I''m on my way to the old house. I''ll be there before five." Half an hourter, Kevin still hadn''t replied to her message. Until her car was stopped outside the door by the guard, Kevin wasn''t picking up his phone either. "Sorry, your name is not on the list. We can''t let you in," the guard said to Anne politely. Anne was so angry that she felt stuffy in her chest. She was Kevin''s wife. Why wouldn''t they let her in? Since the guard didn''t know her, she had to hold back her anger and ask the driver to drive forward. The cars behind were about to enter the old house, and kept honking impatiently. At this time, the door of a car opened. A gentleman in a dark blue British suit and a light blue shirt emerged from the car. He made a gesture to Anne''s driver, telling him to wait nearby. He walked quickly to the guard. The guard politely bowed to him and said, "Mr. Feng." Sam frowned slightly, and a strong heroic spirit was shed in his eyes. The formal suit made him look not just handsome, but extraordinary. With his striking features, hemanded respect. Chapter 7 The Existence of His Wife Chapter 7 The Existence of His Wife Sam said, "This is Kevin''s wife. Let her in." "Well..." The guard looked at Anne''s car and hesitated. They were supposed to be let the right people in, ording to the invitation, but thedy had no such invitation. She was not on the list, either. However, they didn''t dare to disobey Sam. Just then, a vintage custom-designed Rolls-Royce slowly rolled through the gates. As it rolled along, all the cars on the roadside did their best to move aside. In front of the car, there was a crown logo and a unique license te number ¡ª QY520 ¡ª showing everyone whose car it was. Anne looked away from the rearview mirror and felt stuffy, as if a piece of iron was pressed onto her heart, making it hard to breathe. The car stopped at the front door, and a bevy of guards came out to salute him. Kevin slowly emerged from the back seat. He wore a bespoke white suit by Dege and Skinner, painstakingly crafted in the cutting room on Savile Row in Britain, as well as a white shirt. There were two ruby cufflinks on his sleeves and a red handkerchief in his pocket. He was extremely noble and had an extraordinary aura. "I invited her to take care of Cherry. Let her in." He had an effortless style about him. "Yes, sir," the guard replied respectfully. Sam''s ck eyebrows furrowed, and anger could be seen in his gaze. He was about to criticize Kevin, but the well-dressed man had already left. Because of the tightness in her chest, Anne opened a window, hoping to breathe easier. Kevin''s mean, sarcastic words had fallen into her ears. She was heartbroken, her face pale. It was not the first time that she had been humiliated like this, but every time she had been humiliated, it hurt. The old house had a lot of square footage, not to mention acres ofnd, and it was the only house in this area. The whole mountain behind it belonged to the Fu Family. Standing on thewn, Anne looked at the brightly lit main house, which was like a church with golden light. The house was packed with distinguished guests today. All men were in suits and women in long dresses, as if they were attending a grand banquet. Anne was the only one who wore a formal ck and white business suit, just like one of the men. They all had gifts in their hands, and some of those presents were sorge that they needed more than one person to carry them. ''Aren''t people here for dinner? Why is everyone bringing gifts?'' It was not until Anne walked out of the main hall that she realized what the gifts were for. Master Carl Fu, in a light gray rxed fit suit, sat on the wooden armchair in the main hall. The guests with gifts came forward one by one and handed the gifts to him respectfully. "Health and long life, Master Carl Fu. This is my gift. It is such an honor." A bad feeling swept over Anne. ''Today is Master Carl Fu''s birthday?'' Kevin never told her. ''Is everyone here to celebrate his birthday?'' She had no gifts to give him. Anne felt pathetic. She was the granddaughter-inw of the Fu Family, yet she didn''t know that Master Carl Fu was going to celebrate his birthday today. She turned around and walked towards the garden outside. When she found a quiet spot, she pulled out her phone and made a call. "Emily, I need your help..." "It''s toote." A steady voice came behind Anne. She turned around and saw Sam standing in the light. His handsome face was silhouetted by the light, which was more profound and outlined. "Cousin Sam," Anne said calmly. As soon as Sam took a step forward, his tall figure dwarfed Anne, his shadow falling over her, like a tree protecting a patch of grass. His voice remained confident, yet calm. "I have two gifts. Take one and give it to my granduncle." Sam was a rtive of Kevin''s. The Feng Family had a certain status in the city and was also quite famous internationally. Anne thought about it, frowning. On the other end of the phone, Emily asked anxiously, "Annie, what do you need?" It didn''t take long to make up her mind. Then Anne nodded at Sam. The corners of Sam''s mouth curled in a subtle way. But when she looked carefully, she couldn''t see any difference. After saying "nothing" to Emily, Anne hung up the phone and walked towards the hall with Sam. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. In the hall, Cherry and Kevin stood together in front of Master Carl Fu. The two looked quite affectionate, but his wife was right there next to them. Cherry handed her gift to Master Carl Fu and he smiled at her. She smiled back and handed the gift to him. "Grandpa, this is the gift I picked out for you. I hope you like it." "Yes, I do. And why wouldn''t I? I like all the gifts you give me." Master Carl Fuughed and asked someone to put Cherry''s gift with the others. Cherry wore a watermelon red handmade cheongsam, a perfect match for the rubies on the cuffs of Kevin''s white shirt and the handkerchief in his pocket. The two of them standing together was a magnificent sight. It made others envious. However, there was a long thorn growing in Anne''s heart, giving her heartaches in wave after wave. Selma Guo was standing next to Master Carl Fu. When she spotted Anne, disdain and disgust appeared in her eyes. "Why is she here? I don''t remember inviting her. Showing up uninvited¡ªhow rude!" As soon as she said this, everyone looked at Anne. Everyone rted to the Fu family knew the other members of the family didn''t like her. Her face was burning, but Anne acted appropriately. Having been stabbed in the back so many times by the Fu Family, she learned to hide her joy and anger in her heart. She was alone, ostracized by everyone except Sam. "Aunt," "Mother, Cherry''s not feeling well. Anne came here to take care of her." Sam and Kevin spoke at the same time, but Kevin''s loud voice rang out over Sam''s. Hearing what he said, the guests adopted looks of contempt. Even the displeasure on Master Carl Fu''s face was obvious. Obviously, he didn''t want to see Anne, but for Cherry''s sake, he had to wee her. "Since you are here to take care of Cherry, thene here." Selma Guo was beside herself with anger. Trying to ignore the insults, Anne was about to walk over when Sam grabbed her arm. He walked up to Master Carl Fu and said respectfully, "Granduncle, Anne brought a gift for you today." He raised his hand and asked the servant to bring the gift and open it in front of Master Carl Fu. Master Carl Fu was not interested in seeing Anne''s gift. "Put it with the other gifts," he said indifferently. Seeing his cold attitude, Sam felt sad. Master Carl Fu was a man of high status and the host today. Sam couldn''t contradict him, so he asked someone to put the gift away silently. At this moment, Cherry, standing to the side, said innocently in a delicate voice, "Cousin Sam, did you bring two gifts and give one to Sis. Anne?" Hearing her words, everyone looked at Anne in surprise. "If you don''t want toe, then don''te. No one forced you," Master Carl Fu said furiously. After saying that, he stood up from the chair and walked towards the back hall. Selma Guo was so anxious that she chased after Master Carl Fu. "Dad, Dad, don''t be angry. Why would you be angry over a person like that?" Many guests followed Selma Guo out. The rest of the partygoers who didn''t follow them all looked at Anne viciously, as if she were a piece of mouse dung, ruining the moment. Anne stood still, her head bowed. Under the light, her face looked deathly pale. She became the person everyone hated. She couldn''t do anything right in their eyes. When no one noticed, Cherry smiled slowly. However, when she discovered Sam staring at her with sharp eyes, she immediately stopped beingcent and put on a ttering smile. "Was I not supposed to let him know? I''m sorry. I shouldn''t have said anything. Kevin, we should go see Grandpa." Kevin stared at Anne fiercely as if he hated her to the core. "You didn''t do anything wrong. It''s all her fault. She''s annoying wherever she goes." Anne heard every word clearly. Her temples throbbed painfully, but she tried her best to endure it. No matter how painful it was, she had to bear it by herself. That was her choice. "Why don''t you follow me? Do you want me to teach you what to do?" Kevin roared. Squinting her eyes, Anne restrained her anger and slowly walked towards Cherry. "Kevin, I''m not a child. I don''t need a sister to take care of me," Cherry acted as if she implored him for the sake of her sister. Kevin didn''t listen to her and said, "I''m worried about you." The words "I''m worried about you" were like a knife, stabbing into Anne''s heart. She raised her head and looked at Cherry, who coincidentally cast a nce at her with obvious smugness. She said to Kevin in a sweet voice, "Thank you, honey." Watching them demonstrate their love, Anne lowered her head and pretended not to see anything. She still had time. She was determined to let Kevin see Cherry''s true colors. Kevin went to Master Carl Fu''s side to keep the guestspany, and Sam was asked to leave by his mother. Anne followed Cherry absent-mindedly. Cherry smiled sweetly and chatted with the guests, and they all looked at Anne strangely as if she were a monster. If Cherry weren''t there, everyone would have poured the drinks in their hands over Anne''s head. However, these looks that killed were nothing to Anne. She didn''t care. She didn''t care what others thought. "Ah!" suddenly, Cherry screamed from the front when Anne was distracted. Hearing this, Anne came to her senses at once. She opened her eyes wide in surprise and found that a had no idea what had happened. This caused amotion. "Anne, we know you hate Cherry. You hate her for spilling the beans in front of Grandpa. Why did you do that? You''re so vicious," ady standing next to Cherry said to Anne in disgust. Anne''s face darkened. Before Anne could figure out how and when the water had spilled out of the cup, thisdy was already working on setting her up, and she was good at it too, which made Anne pretty sure that she was not a good person. Chapter 8 Pregnant Chapter 8 Pregnant Anne was not a pushover. She was about to respond when a figure rushed to Cherry''s side in a flurry, ready to protect her tooth and nail. "Anne, what are you doing?" He stared at her with a furious re in his eyes. "Apologize!" His words came out as an indiscriminate conviction. Apparently, he didn''t even remember they were a couple. "Kevin, I don''t know what I''ve done wrong." With a petrified gaze, Anne turned to him, profoundly hurt by his assumption. "Why should I apologize?" Rage boiling up inside him, Kevin kept his eyes fixed on the woman in front of him. "You don''t know what you''ve done wrong?" He pointed at the cup in Anne''s hand and roared, "Then what is this?" Attracted by themotion, people started to gather around them wondering what was happening. The scene spoke clearly though: Cherry''s clothes were wet and Anne was holding an empty cup. It took them one second to assume that Anne had tried to take revenge on Cherry by pouring water on her while no one was watching. The disdain in their eyes grew intenser, sending a clear message of condemnation. Even though everybody was already pointing finger at her, Anne was determined to set things straight. "Anyone can lie, not to mention a cup that can''t even speak. Cherry''s clothes..." "Apologize now!" Furious beyond words, Kevin didn''t want to hear Anne''s excuses. With judging eyes, everyone was staring at her quietly, making the tension so thick that it could be cut with a knife. Kevin was enraged, and so was Anne, but she didn''t want to put up a fight. Throwing onest look in his direction, she turned on her heels, ready to leave. All of a sudden, Kevin grabbed her wrist and forced her to face his livid re. He said through his gritted teeth, "Already leaving? If you don''t apologize to Cherry today, I won''t let you put feet out of the house!" "I''m not leaving." Dumbstruck, Anne frowned as Kevin pinched her wrist so hard it almost made her eyes tear. "Let go of me!" She was distracted when the water somehow found its way out of the cup and on Cherry''s clothes. But now she was determined to find the culprit. With her senses more acute than ever, she perceived a delicate fragrance on her body. It was definitely not hers. Like the scent of a flower shaken by a gust of wind, it had traveled through the air tond gracefully on her. Everyone here smelled differently. Lost in thought, she could swear that someone had just touched her, even though she didn''t see it happen. "Kevin, forget it." As she noticed that everybody was there witnessing the scene, Cherry decided to plead with Kevin. Showingpassion for Anne while still being the victim of her misdeed was a sessful strategy for winning the favor of the people around her. "It''s just a little water. I''ll change my clothes," Cherry added in a considerate tone. "She didn''t do it on purpose." A sneer started forming on Anne''s face as she red at Cherry fiercely. Thatst sentence was suggesting that she had spilled the water deliberately! How skillful of them to frame her like that! "Ru... Ah..." By the time she turned around ready to shove off the person who had bumped into her, Kevin pulled her back and yelled at her once more. "Apologize right this instant!" She suddenly felt dizzy. Her vision blurred for a moment and her legs threatened to give in. Soon after, her whole body was shaking uncontrobly. Staring at her face growing pale, Kevin didn''t look any better. Regardless, he kept a straight face, convinced that Anne didn''t want to admit her mistake. It was out of his heart''s kindness that he decided to ept Anne in the old house. He surely didn''t expect her to be secretly against Cherry. His tiny hope that Anne would improve her behavior had now disappeared altogether. At this moment, the pent-up rage inside his chest was strong enough to burn the old house down if it just broke out. With his eyes fixed on Anne''s, he barked, "Stop pretending. Don''t think that I will forgive you if you faint in front of me!" As if taking his words literally, Anne cked out before him right after he finished that sentence. In a sh, her eyes grew dark and shut closed. Her legs were so weak that she had no control over them anymore. "Anne!" Seeing her copsing in his direction, Kevin felt a pinch of angst forming in his throat, but it quickly resolved into anger. Although his voice rumbled powerfully, she didn''t respond to her name. As Kevin started to shake her unresponsive body impatiently, he grew more and more worried. "Hey, Anne!" His voice was still angry and resounding. But she didn''t react at all. "Get out of my way!" An urgent yet calm voice traveled quickly through the air from behind the crowd. Pushing his way through the horde, Sam rushed apprehensively past Kevin and toward the unconscious girl. "She fainted." Barely controlling a gush of anger ready to break out from his chest, Sam hurried to hold Anne up. He was a doctor. As long as he could conceal his interest for Anne behind the pretext of doing his job, he knew that no one would doubt his intentions. He was indeed seen as a good and benevolent doctor. "Where are you taking her?" Kevin''s tone revealed a hint of uneasiness, as if he finally realized that she was not pretending. "To save her," Sam answered coldly, while fixing Kevin with a touch of disgust in his expression. As he strode toward the sofa with Anne in his arms, the people around made way for him. In few long steps, he covered the distance rapidly andid Anne down delicately. Grabbing her wrist promptly, he felt her pulse thrumming quietly through her skin. Everyone was quiet. Nervous faces were witnessing the scene in silence, as to instill the doctor with all the tranquility he needed. Fifteen secondster, a deep frown formed on Sam''s expression. "Look, I told you she pretended to be unconscious. Now the secret is out." Kevin took the liberty to interpret freely Sam''s furrow, his eyes gleaming with mockery. He was aware that there was something going on between Sam and Anne, and was quite sure that, at that point, he would cover for her. At the thought, Kevin started feeling a little angry and reached out to pull Sam up from the ground. "She is pregnant." The doctor''s voice was grave while pronouncing those three words. Kevin gawked at him in disbelief, his hand froze in ce. "What did you say?" "She has a fever. I need to lower her temperature right now." Ignoring Kevin''s question, Sam decided to stick to the facts. At this, Kevin''s hands rushed to lift Sam up from the ground. "Repeat what you just said." His stare was intense and prating. "What''s wrong with her?" "If you are deaf and didn''t hear it the first time, you can ask the people around you." Unable to hold back his anger any longer, Sam then roared, "Give me a sterile towel and hot water right now!" Kevin wasn''t deaf, and the others heard it clearly, too. Anne was pregnant. However, they didn''t know how to react to such news, so they just stayed quiet. It was Selma who broke the silence, shouting enthusiastically, "Go fetch the towel and the hot water Mr. Feng required!" Right after, the people around began scattering and exchanging ideas. With her figure towering over Anne, Cherry observed her with a dazed expression on her face. She clenched her fists, but her eyes were full of joy. ''After the baby is born, you will no longer be part of the Fu Family, '' she thought, smiling to herself. ording to their agreement, Anne and Kevin were indeed supposed to divorce as soon as Anne delivered a child for the Fu Family. While they were still formally together, Kevin was not allowed to have intimate rtionships with other women. Even if that happened, the only one who could give birth to his child was Anne. But she was so overbearing that she wouldn''t even tolerate the idea of physical contact between her husband and other women. Sam''s method was working. Soon, the temperature of Anne''s body dropped back to normal. The news that the Fu Family would have a heir was the perfect way to end the dinner party cheerfully. Long after this was over, Kevin, Master Carl Fu and Selma were all patiently waiting at Anne''s bedside. Standing behind Kevin, Cherry was seething with jealousy. She was not happy with the Fu Family giving all that importance to Anne, but she felt satisfaction at the thought of the divorce happening in ten months. Opening her eyesnguidly, Anne was a bit astonished at the sight of those six faces shadowing hers from above. But after her eyes came into focus andnded on Kevin, her expression darkened at once. Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. Shoving the nket away, she was about to get out of bed when Sam gently touched her hand, stopping her from getting up. "You are pregnant. From now on, you have to be careful with everything." Her hand stiffened. With a voice that was both happy and displeased, Selma addressed her too, "You should be more careful. How did you get yourself sick? Luckily, Sam found it in time." The light in Anne''s eyes slowly dimmed until sadness took over the joy of finding out about her pregnancy. Interpreting her expression as exhaustion, Master Carl Fu pronounced, "Let us all go out so that she can have a good rest. Sam will stay here and take care of her." "Okay." Selma''s reply was eager and content. Taking Master Carl Fu''s hand in hers, she walked out the door with him. As to remind him to leave, Cherry pulled Kevin''s hand intently. But he didn''t move. As though paralyzed, he just stood there with his eyes fixed on Anne. In his gaze, joy, guilt and sadness were mixing up in a fervent dance. Having to deal with three emotions at once made him feel a little awkward. He had always been a resolved and domineering man. Upon the realization that Anne had not faked her faint, he didn''t want to leave. But he also didn''t know how to apologize. "Kevin, there''s something I need to tell you." Anne''s sharp voice cut through the silence, providing him with an excuse to stay. Turning to Cherry, he spoke hurriedly, "You go out with Grandpa. I''ll be downstairs in a moment." Cherry didn''t want to leave, but the pressure Kevin applied to her hand was an unmistakable signal that she didn''t have much choice. In an attempt to disy her role in Kevin''s life, she kissed him on the cheek and turned around satisfied with herself. Suddenly feeling ufortable and irritated at the sensation of Cherry''s warm saliva on his skin, Kevin wiped his cheek. But after his gaze drifted back to Anne, the irritation subsided once more. As he was getting ready to apologize to her, he felt relief wash over him when Anne decided to speak first. She turned her gaze to him. There was neither hatred nor joy in her eyes, only despair. "I didn''t want to escape. It was Ruth Sun who bumped into me making me spill the water on Cherry." Chapter 9 His Persistence Chapter 9 His Persistence With his eyes on her pallid face, Kevin felt his heart ache as the words of apology he had prepared to pronounce were struggling to make their way out of his throat. In the end, his initial intention resolved to crumbles. "It doesn''t matter anymore." "Ha." Anne''s lips curled into a feeble sneer. She wanted to stand up for herself, but on second thought, it didn''t really matter indeed. In ten months, she would divorce him, and everything rted to him was losing significance. Feeling suddenly tired and sick of seeing him, she turned around and sighed faintly. "You can leave now. I need some rest." Her indifference made Kevin''s heart ache even harder. He opened his mouth, but couldn''t find the strength to tell her how he felt. "Have a good rest." As he walked out of the room, mixed feelings were starting toe to the surface. He should have been overjoyed. Instead, all he felt was anguish and gloominess. In an attempt to make sense of his feelings, he raised his hand before his eyes, noticing that it wasn''t shaking and his vision was unclouded. Then why was he feeling like that? He was going to be a father. He was going to have a child. Why was he unhappy? Most importantly, he was about to break up with the woman he was sick of. N?velDrama.Org owns all content. Lifting the corner of his mouth into a slight smirk, he admitted to himself, ''Kevin, you should be happy.'' Then he strode away, his eyes returning to their usual sharp and cold expression. Silence engulfed the room where Anne and Sam were now alone. Trying to wriggle away from under her nket again, Anne was stopped by Sam once more. "What do you need? Tell me." In an emotionless and blunt tone, she replied, "I want to get out of here." On the pathway in the front yard of the old house, Kevin was standing before Ruth with a gelid expression on his face. ncing anxiously at Cherry, Ruth faked amiserative voice as she apologized to Kevin. "Mr. Kevin, I bumped into Anne by ident. I didn''t know that the water would spill out and fall on Cherry." With her hand teasing Kevin''s arm coquettishly, Cherry barged in promptly, "Kevin, don''t take it to heart. It was just a petty ident that shouldn''t affect the amicable rtionship that everyone enjoys. I like Ruth very much. I don''t me her." At this time, Anne happened to be downstairs, witnessing the scene. She had stopped in her tracks upon noticing that Kevin was there. But then, she strode past him as if she hadn''t even seen him. As he watched her passing by, Kevin interrupted his discussion with Ruth and ran after Anne at once. "Where are you going?" "Home," without turning to him, Anne uttered that one word in an icy tone. Kevin followed her closely, keeping an attentive eye on her steps. He was afraid that she could trip and fall down if she wasn''t careful enough. "I''ll drive you there." Cherry''s face clouded over at the sight of Kevin escorting Anne so thoughtfully. Trying hard to suppress her anger, she fixed Anne with her lips pursed tightly. Ruth raised her eyebrows and leaned toward Cherry subtly. "In ten months, she will leave Mr. Kevin for good." As to calm herself down, Anne took a deep breath before answering Kevin. "No, thanks. I have a driver." Still following her closely, Kevin didn''t seem to mind her tone. "I''ll ask the driver to go home." Without warning, Anne stopped walking and turned her gaze toward Kevin. With anger gleaming in her eyes, she spoke spelling out her words. "Are you afraid that I will hurt your child? Don''t worry. I also want to divorce you as soon as possible." At her words, Kevin halted abruptly. With his almost 1.9 meters of height, he was a tall man, but now he felt small and insignificant. He took a step back and hissed angrily, "It''s good that you understand." For a second, color drained from Anne''s face. She turned on her heels and left without a word. Watching her walk away, Kevin felt rage boiling up inside his chest. Atst, he shouted through gritted teeth, "Cherry, let''s have a party to celebrate that we are getting married in a few months!" His intentionally loud voice reached Anne''s ears, making her shoulders tremble slightly. Sam had seen everything, but he chose not to say a word. Keeping his head low, he walked beside Anne quietly. After getting in the car, Anne sank in the backseat with a sigh. She let her eyes drift on the scenery outside the window. The city was rather lively even at night. The streets were full of couples walking hand in hand, talking andughing cheerfully. Shifting her gaze, she looked down at her belly. t as always, there was nothing unusual about it. But she knew that a little human being was starting to grow inside of it. Without the burden of the contract weighing on her, she would have been happy to be a mother. Sadly, that was not the case. "Prepare some fresh food for me and send it to the Grand View Garden. As soon as possible." The sound of Sam''s voice brought Anne''s attention back to the present. "I don''t feel like cooking now," she pointed out in a tired tone. The Grand View Garden was where she lived. She thought that the reason why Sam had just bought food was because he wanted her to cook it herself. "You need to eat something. The baby needs it." Sam''s voice was calm and steady as usual. "I''ll cook for you." ''Baby.'' The look in Anne''s eyes changed suddenly. She started feeling a little irascible. Without replying, she turned her gaze to the window. Her mind was a mess. Observing her distressed expression, Sam raised his eyebrows apprehensively. "If you don''t want..." "No, I want this baby," Anne answered categorically. With his eyes on the contour of her face, Sam stayed in silence for a long time. Although Anne felt deeply irritable in that moment, she knew that she already loved her baby and would do anything to keep it safe. In a dimly lit room of a high-end club, more than a dozen men and women were sittingnguidly around small tables loaded with several sses and bottles. A strong smell of alcohol and expensive cigarettes permeated the air. Kevin was sitting on the biggest sofa with his hand tapping irritably on the soft cushion. Cherry sat beside him in silence, looking gloomy. ncing at her, n cautiously handed Kevin two sses of wine. "I apologize for my sister''s recklessness. Don''t be unhappy. You will divorce Anne soon..." "Shut up!" Kevin clenched his hands in furious fists as he red at him angrily. His whole body was trembling with rage, as if he was about to strangle n to death. Frightened by his sudden outburst, n drew his ss back and turned to Cherry, his eyes begging for help. Cherry was a little annoyed. Kevin had already lost his temper several times that night because of Anne. Holding back her exasperation, she whispered to him, "Kevin, I want to go home." He too wished to leave. As he stood up abruptly, he stretched his hand to Cherry. While still hurting inside, she took his hand and gave him a loving smile. Then, they strode off together. After making sure that the two had left the room, n smashed the ss to the ground furiously. "What the hell! Kevin was the one asking us out because he felt unhappy. And now, he just leaves us here. When will he learn to control his temper? I''m a young master too!" Eric shook his head sympathetically and put his hand on n''s shoulder. "You know his temper. Just have a good time. Don''t let him get to you." n was so enraged that he emptied another ss of wine tilting his head back. As the car was drawing near the Grand View Garden, Anne uttered, "I can cook by myself. Don''t bother. You can go home now." Without turning to look at her, Sam kept his gaze ahead. His expression didn''t change, but his tone was growing persistent. "Your current situation requires the presence of a doctor. What if the fever returns? It could be very bad both for you and the baby." ''It is true, '' Anne admitted to herself. She had to agree with the doctor. "Thank you." Her house was clean and tidy. Although she was a married woman, the ce where she lived was as refined as the vi of an elite white-cor. The floor was bright, and the tables and windows immacte. A faint fragrance of leaves and grass filled the air. After she had nted a lemon tree on the balcony, the scent of the yellow fruits had started to infuse the house with a delicate scent. Pacing hurriedly, the servant brought the things required by Sam in short order. Sam took off his coat and rolled up the sleeves of his white shirt, revealing his strong arms. Right after that, he headed straight to the kitchen with the food. "Prepare a light meal. I have no appetite. No fish or meat, please." After instructing Sam, Anne started to trudge toward her bedroom. She needed to take a shower and change intofortable clothes. Looking at her back as she zoomed out, Sam asked, "What do you want to eat?" He knew her decision would depend on the cravings induced by the pregnancy. After she took her time to think about it, Anne answered dully, "Whatever." Leaning back on the left seat, Kevin frowned at the name in the contact list of his phone. He had tried several times to press that name, but to no avail. Cherry was smart enough to grasp what he was thinking. Hiding her discontent, she put on a sympathetic face and broke the silence, "Call her if you''re worried about the baby." Taken aback, Kevin shifted his focus onto Cherry. As he made sense of her words, he took her in his arms with a smile. He kissed Cherry on the forehead and replied, "I want to see if she is taking good care of my child. I don''t want to dy the divorce for too long." Finally feeling her heart lighter and happier, Cherry smiled, but said nothing. Now in a better mood, Kevin pressed his index finger on ''Annoying Wife'' and brought the phone to his ear. The phone rang and rang, but nobody answered. Anne was taking a shower when she heard her phone ringing. The sound went on until Anne came out of the bathroom. After she saw the name ''Mr. Kevin'' on the screen, she put her phone on vibrate mode and threw it directly on the bed. Without caring to finish drying her hair, she walked out of the bedroom. As soon as she entered the living room, she heard Sam''s phone ringing on the cupboard. "My phone is ringing. Answer it for me," Sam shouted from the kitchen after he''d heard Anne''s quiet footsteps in the living room. Her eyes darkened as she walked over and picked up his phone. Then, she turned on the voice and put it on the counter in front of him. Sam was cooking. But he quickly got it after he took a look at Anne''s face and then at the name on the screen. Chapter 10 I Miss You, Mom Chapter 10 I Miss You, Mom "Why did it take you so long to answer the phone? What are you doing, anyway?" Kevin''s patience had long since been exhausted, and his questions were punctuated by a burst of anger. He was surprised to hear the strange voice at the other end of the line. "Cooking," Sam replied calmly. After saying that single word, he continued preparing the meal. After leaving the kitchen, Anne walked to the balcony and mmed the door. The sharp noise echoed through the house. Why did she feel annoyed whenever she heard Kevin''s voice? Where was her sense of refinement? Couldn''t she just grin, bear it, and move on? She felt the night wind streaming through her hair, cooling her skin. She finally calmed down. "Cooking?" Kevin was even more confused, but the next second, his face darkened and he exploded in anger again. "Are you with her now?" "I''m a doctor." Sam didn''t answer his question directly. Hearing his answer, Kevin started to calm down. After a few seconds, he asked awkwardly, "She... How''s she doing?" Leaning against his chest, Cherry felt her blood run cold, and her face darkened. Sam put the dishes on the te and said, "She''s okay. Hey, if this isn''t urgent, I''m gonna hang up. It''s dinnertime, and Anne''s hungry." Kevin was so angry that he wanted to throw his phone, but he had nothing to say in return. Finally, he had to hang up the phone, gnashing his teeth. "Sam, for the record, we''ll see." Kevin stayed mad the whole time, until he entered the vi. Cherry tried her best to make him happy, but her attempts to get him to smile were in vain. Finally, he said impatiently, "I''m tired. It''s been a long day." Cherry had to put away her stiff smile and said gently, "I''ll run a bath for you." "No, thanks," Kevin said those two words irritably and went straight to the bathroom. After walking in, he mmed the door. Cherry was also irritated by the noise, but she clenched her fists and endured it. She looked in the wardrobe and found some lingerie. After Kevin was done with his shower, she went to the bathroom to do the same. But when she came out of the bathroom wearing the lingerie, he didn''t even look in her direction. Cherry got even angrier, but she tried to be patient and folded herself into Kevin''s arms to rub the softest part of her body against him. "Not now!" Kevin shouted impatiently and pushed Cherry aside. Sitting on the bed, Cherry looked at Kevin who was lying on his side of the bed. Hisck of interest annoyed her. He had never treated her like this. Anger rose in her, but she got out of bed silently without saying a word. Kevin didn''t know why he was so upset today. Anne was finally pregnant. They could divorce in ten months'' time. But he always felt that there was a fire in his heart, which made him feel worse. He couldn''t fall asleep, tossing and turning. He didn''t know if Sam had left Anne''s house yet. He didn''t know how she was now. Had she had dinner? Did she still have a fever? "Bang!" In the quiet night, Kevin suddenly heard the sound of something hitting the ground outside the living room, interrupting his thoughts. "Ding Dong..." Just as he was trying to get a hold on his anger, another annoying voice came. Content (C) N?v/elDra/ma.Org. Kevin couldn''t stand it anymore. He tore the thin nket from him, got out of bed angrily and strode to the living room. When he walked to the door of the living room, he was stunned by the sight that met his eyes. In her lingerie, Cherry squatted on the ground, crying as quietly as should could. "Mom, I miss you so much." Kevin''s heart ached when he heard her crying. She started sobbing harder, and her shoulders shook with the force. Those thin pajamas made her look even more lonely. Thinking of what he did to her earlier, Kevin suddenly felt guilty. He walked over, held Cherry in his arms and half-whispered, "Come back to bed. Get some sleep." Cherry was frightened when she saw him. She immediately stopped crying and apologized, "I''m sorry. I disturbed you." Kevin frowned and said nothing. He took out the photo frame from her hand, opened the drawer and ced it inside. "It''ste. Your skin will get old and wrinkly if you don''t get some sleep." Cherry suddenly smiled and hugged Kevin, pressing her face against his chest and nodded vigorously. Cherry fell asleep in short order, lying next to him. But sleep was denied to him. Wendy He died for him, so he shouldn''t have made her daughter sad. Kevin thought of her, and his mood soured. In the morning, when Sam opened the door and took out the garbage, he was slightly shocked when he saw four people standing at the door. These mysterious visitors were arranged in a neat line. "You?" Sam was confused. "Mrs. Selma sent us to take care of Mrs. Anne," the four of them exined in unison. "I don''t need you. Please go away." As soon as Anne walked out of the bedroom, she saw this exchange. She adopted a cold expression to intimidate them. Hopefully they''d leave. After closing the door, Sam turned and saw that Anne was walking towards the kitchen. He asked, "What are you trying to do? Let me get that for you." Anne didn''t look at him, but instead asked, "Did youe here this morning or stay herest night?" Sam walked quickly towards her and replied calmly, "It wastest night. I was too sleepy to make it home safe, so I crashed on your sofa. I didn''t think you''d'' mind." Without saying anything, Anne poured herself a ss of water. When she was about to drink it, Sam took the ss in her hand and said, "This water is too cold. Here, have some warm water." He poured another ss of water and handed it to Anne. She regarded him quietly, but didn''t ept the water he offered. Her eyes were as cold and quiet as a clearke in winter. Sam was calmer than she was. He put the ss into her hand and said, "I''m a doctor." He meant that he knew how to take care of her better than she did herself. Anne finally relented. She tossed her head back and drank the water from her ss. "What do you want to eat for breakfast?" Sam asked. Then, Anne really couldn''t stand it anymore. She said, "Don''t you need to go to work?" "There are other doctors in the hospital." Anne knew that Sam wanted to stay here to take care of her. She found a cruel reason. "No offense, but you''re a terrible cook. I''ll grab some takeout. I hope you''re not here when I go back." She picked up her bag and opened the door. After she did this, she stood there in surprise. "Good morning, Anne," Emily said with a smile. When Emily saw the man standing behind Anne, she was more surprised than Anne. But Emily was a person who had seen a lot. She bounced back quickly. "Good morning, Mr. Sam," Emily said to Sam with a smile. Anne knew this was probably more than just a social call. She asked with a serious look, "Why are you here? Is something wrong at work?" In order to set Anne''s mind at ease, Emily exined hastily, "No, no, Anne, don''t worry. It was... Mr. Kevin asked me to bring people over to take care of you. He said... He said you don''t need to go to the office anymore." The news hit Anne like a ton of bricks. She was astounded. "What the heck?" "Don''t worry, Anne. It''s not what you think." Emily was also flustered. The more she exined, the more confused Anne became. "Mr. Kevin... He asks that you stay at home and take care of the baby inside you." When she heard that, Anne was floored. All her anger started to dissipate. It took her a few seconds to recover. She didn''t know what else to say. After a bit, she said, "I still have several projects to deal with. I can''t leave thepany now." In the meeting room of AN Group, Kevin sat at the head of the table. He smiled, one hand on the conference table and the other on the armrest of the chair. He narrowed his eyes and seemed to be in a good mood. But the people present were a little scared. The president seldom showed up at the office like this. Why did hee so early and sit in the meeting room? Was it anything serious? Everyone had their own nervous guesses as to why. Kevin wasn''t flustered at all, or so it appeared. He was quite rxed. He looked at the group assembled at the table and said, "From today on, Mrs. Anne won''t be here. I''m taking on all the projects she has." "Ah... She won''t be here?" "So Mrs. Anne... got fired?" several people voiced their doubts, but never above a whisper. Kevin''s elbows were on the table, his fingers steepled. Most of the people at the meeting had to content themselves with seeing his profile. The smile at the corners of his mouth did not disappear, but it made everyone present shiver a bit. Kevin said leisurely, "Mrs. Anne has taken a long vacation." "What?" "Ah..." The meeting room was full of confusion and exmations. Was Mrs. Anne''s "long vacation" a dismissal, or a long holiday for real? However, everyone was more inclined to believe the first option. Everyone could see how Mr. Kevin treated Mrs. Anne when they interacted. He probably couldn''t stand her anymore and made her disappear. Kevin''s phone rang at that moment. When he saw the name on the screen, he picked it up without hesitation. "I don''t like you going over my head. Shouldn''t it be my decision to take a sabbatical?" There was a trace of anger in Anne''s voice. Kevin turned his chair and said with a smile, "I thought this through, though. Don''t you believe in my ability?" His words threw Anne for a loop. No one doubted Kevin''s ability. At the age of seventeen, he had doubled the financial resources of AN Group. However, since she took over as vice president, Kevin rarely bothered himself with thepany, content to let her run things. "I''ve already exined your absence to the managers. From now on, you won''t have to worry about the "I don''t need any help here. Just make those people you brought here go away. And your mother sent some people over to help. Send them away, too. I don''t need them." Kevin''s eyes widened in surprise. He didn''t expect his mother to be so considerate. After thinking for a few seconds, he refused, "Don''t tter yourself. I''m making sure my son is being looked after, that''s all." A very different voice cut in. "No matter who you''re taking care of, Anne needs a medical professional, not a housekeeper." Sam had taken her phone away. Kevin was taken aback at first. So was Anne. Sam mouthed, "Let me handle him." After being stunned for a few seconds, Kevin knocked on the table twice quickly, which showed that he was worried, "Why are you there? She is sick?" Looking at Anne, Sam replied in an indifferent tone, "She''s fine. Nothing you need to worry about. But if you don''t ask the people sent by you and Aunt Selma to leave, I''m afraid it will have a bad influence on her and the kid." Chapter 11 Give Her The Cold Shoulder Chapter 11 Give Her The Cold Shoulder "What do you mean?" Kevin sprang to his feet. His action scared everyone there. Their hearts practically leapt from their chests. Everyone held their breath and looked at him, afraid that breathing at the wrong time would kill them. "The most important thing for the baby is for the mom to be in a good mood. These people you sent are only stressing Anne out. So why keep them around then?" Sam paused for a few seconds, and then said in the same tone, "I''ll stay here and take care of her." "You?" Kevin''s eyes widened. Anne looked at Sam in astonishment as well. But Sam said to Kevin calmly, "No one knows her medical history better than I do." Kevin frowned and said nothing. He walked to the window and stood there. In just a few seconds, he thought of several benefits of Sam''s proposal. True, Sam knew more about Anne''s medical history than anyone. The problem was that though he was a doctor, he was also a man. A man and a woman were staying in the same house alone. Even if Anne were pregnant, Kevin was still worried. After pondering for a while, Kevin said with a smile of satisfaction, "I agree, but on one condition¡ªI''ll stick around so I can start a rtionship with my son, growing in her womb." "Neither of you need to stay here." Anne''s mood was dismal. She was more than a little irritable. This day kept going from bad to worse. And she was in a mood to match. She said impatiently, "It''s up to me." Her words echoed in their ears. "It''s up to me." Kevin and Sam shut Anne down at the same time. No one could disobey Kevin, but what Sam said concerned him. Atst, Anne and Kevin hammered out a n, putting their egos aside. Emily would stay there, taking care of Anne. Sam would be on hand as well, considering he was her doctor. This was Kevin''sst concession. Even if Anne didn''t like it, she still had to cooperate. In the morning, Kevin listened the reports from the department heads. Theyid out in detail the projects that Anne was working on or decided tounch. There were nearly twenty of them in total. N?velDrama.Org owns all content. This could really try a man''s patience. Kevin did nothing else from morning to afternoon except drink a ss of water. He didn''t stop the meetings for even a second, listening to the manager''s reports. He was really tired, and there were still five managers on the waiting list. He waved his hand and said, "Get some rest and report to me in the afternoon." Kevin couldn''t let Anne look down on him. He raised his hand and rubbed between his eyebrows, telling his assistant that he was going to have a working lunch. After listening to reports for the entire morning, he felt even hungrier than usual. When he stood up, he suddenly thought of his unborn child. He wondered if the baby would be as smart and capable as him. He and Anne should have good genes. But when Kevin thought of what Anne had done, his eyes darkened again. He must start to teach the baby while it was still in the womb. And as soon as it was born, he would watch over it, and restrict Anne''s ess to it. That way the child wouldn''t be infected with her ruthlessness and viciousness, her despicable and unprincipled behavior. Anne could only hear the living room TV faintly, but it still annoyed her. She stood up and walked towards the bedroom. In surprise, Emily asked, "Are you tired, Anne?" Sam poked his head out of the kitchen and looked at Anne. She held back her anger and said impatiently, "Of course." "Go to bed if you''re sleepy. Pregnant women get tired easily," said Emily with a smile. Hearing Emily''s voice, Anne felt even more irritable. She quickened her pace, went into her bedroom, and shut the door. She came to the bed and leaned against it, hands on her chest. She frowned and looked serious. It was obvious she was thinking about something. She had more than twenty projects, big and small. It was not because she doubted Kevin could do it, but some projects were urgent and there were several contracts needed to be reviewed today. ''Would he get the work done today? If things got held up, the loss would be immeasurable.'' After thinking it over, she was still worried. Finally, she took out her phone and called the department heads. "Manager Zhao, have you showed Mr. Keven the MRA contract?" "Yes, I also told Mr. Kevin..." Outside the room, Emily was amazed when she heard Anne make the call. She turned to look at the kitchen. Sam was prepping a meal, his sleeves rolled up. He was tall, with wide shoulders and narrow waist. Wrapped in a white shirt, he looked like a model showing off a clothing line. It was really eye-catching. Emily thought that Anne was one lucky girl. She''d caught Sam''s eye, and he was a great guy. She couldn''t help but sigh at the thought. Anne was so blessed. Sam seemed to love and cherish her. He''d make a wonderful husband. Instead of Mr. Kevin... When Anne was on the call to the second manager, Emily knocked on the door. Emily stood at the door and reminded her helplessly, "You really should be resting. There''s a reason Mr. Kevin took over your duties. You''re pregnant. Don''t overdo it! Don''t worry about the business. Mr. Kevin will handle it." How could she not worry? She worked hard on those projects. The fruit was about to ripen. It would be heartbreaking if it rotted on the vine. When Anne was about to exin, the doorbell rang. She looked at Emily, who was at her wit''s end and had stopped trying to convince her for now. Before leaving, Emily said, "Have a good rest." "Emily, could you get the door?" Sam called from the kitchen. "No problem," Emily said, running quickly to the door. After Emily left her, Anne dialed yet another number. Both Emily and Anne were frozen in ce when they saw who it was. At the door was none other than Ruth. She happened to see Anne and nodded apologetically to her. Obviously, she was here for Anne. As Anne expected, Ruth''s guilty voice came from the porch. "Anne, I''m here to apologize to you." Instead of talking to Ruth directly, Anne looked at Emily and said, "Let her in. I''ll be back when I finish this call." Ruth was let in, and Emily told her to sit on the couch. Ruth did as she was bade. She waited more than ten minutes. She was worried abouting here. She thought Anne might give her the cold shoulder. Ruth had long since curbed her anger, and steeled her nerve before making an appearance. But this was no ordinary social call. She hade here to get under Anne''s skin, to make her furious enough to vomit blood, but unable to do anything about it. Ruthughed wildly in her heart when she thought about it. While she was exining the details for the GMS Project, Anne felt a headacheing on. There were too many things to outline on the phone. After finishing cooking a dish, Sam knocked on the door. "It''s time to rest," he said. Anne didn''t feel she needed this reminder. But she was a little tired. She nodded at Sam and hung up the phone after wrapping things up, and exining a couple more things to the person on the other end. Sam walked over and easily took her phone from her hand. He said in a calm tone, "I''m taking your phone now. If you really need to make a call, ask Emily, not to mention I''m always her for you." "You..." She fumed so much that she couldn''t say much of anything. "It''s not good for the baby," Sam added. Well, Anne put up with it. She walked to the living room, and Ruth quickly stood up from the sofa, "I''m sorry, Ruth. I had to make a business call," she said coldly. "It doesn''t matter." Ruth smiled apologetically, as if she had done something wrong and was waiting for Anne toin. "Hey, I know you''re busy. I have a lot of free time, so I''m good. I wouldn''t want to interrupt you." Without even looking at Ruth, Anne sat on the sofa. "What brings you here?" she asked indifferently. Ruth''s tone was humble and conciliatory, but in fact, she was secretly abusing Anne. Having been part of the business world for a while now, Anne could tell when someone was being sincere or hypocritical. So she wasn''t very kind to Ruth. Ruth scooted over so she was closer to Anne. "I''m here to apologize to you," she said, fawningly. I identally bumped into you that night, and I didn''t know that would cause you to spill your water on Cherry." The more she talked, the colder Anne looked and the tighter she pursed her lips. That was exactly what Ruth wanted. She continued with a smug smile, "I''m sorry, Anne. Please forgive me. I didn''t know that Kevin cared about Cherry so much that he would me you and force you to apologize to her. I''d already left by then¡ª" "Miss Ruth." It was Sam''s voice. He cut their conversation short. "Please leave now. Anne is not feeling well and needs to rest," he said in an icy cold voice. Hearing that, Emily breathed a sigh of relief, but her palms were still sweaty. Pregnant women were the most likely to get angry. What Ruth said seemed to be an apology, but in fact, it was a reminder to Anne that how much Kevin loved Cherry. Just as Emily was worried that Anne would be angry and hurt, Sam came out to put a stop to this. "Ah..." Ruth''s face showed surprise. But she was pretending. There was no shame in being asked to leave. "Not feeling well? What''s wrong, Anne? Did I disturb your rest? I don''t know..." The more she spoke, the worse Anne''s headache got. She felt despondent, as if something had been driven into her heart. She frowned unhappily and hoped Ruth would leave as soon as possible. "Just a headache." "I''m sorry, Miss Ruth. You cane back when Anne is feeling better." Sam''s voice was full of anger. He reached out his hand and gestured at the door. Emily tried to exin further. "Miss Ruth, I''m really sorry. Mr. Kevin is worried about Anne''s health, so he sent me and Mr. Sam to take care of her. We don''t mean to be rude." Before she finished talking, both Anne and Sam stared at her. Ruth was showing off, trying to describe how much Kevin cared about Cherry. Then Emily should let Ruth know who Kevin really cared about! Sam couldn''t take care of everyone, least of all a mistress like Cherry, who would never be anything else. Sam was as poker-faced as ever, but Anne''s dark eyes reflected a hint of surprise. Of course, Emily didn''t know that both of Anne and Sam were staring at her. "Please, Miss Ruth," she said to Ruth with a smile. Ruth was so angry that she was about to spit blood. She cursed in her heart, ''Don''t get cocky. You''re just pregnant. When your child is born, I''ll make sure you get kicked out of the Fu Family.'' Chapter 12 Indirect Accusation Chapter 12 Indirect usation Ruth was forced to leave Anne''s vi. Even though she was resentful, she still kept an apologetic smile on her face when she left. Cherry taught her how to target other''s weakness aggressively and belittle others while degrading herself. She asked Ruth to make Anne angry; otherwise, she would''ve degraded herself by apologizing to Anne. However, Ruth didn''t know if the mission had beenpleted. Anne rubbed her eyebrows tiredly as she watched Ruth leave. Sam''s face darkened. "Are you feeling ufortable?" he asked. "I''m a little sleepy." Anne''s voice sounded weak and lethargic. But in reality, she was just holding back her anger. However, her attempt at doing that failed even before she could notice. ''Ruth knew that Kevin cared about Cherry, didn''t she?'' Anne thought to herself. ''I''ve seen all kinds of things and yet why do I feel annoyed by what Ruth had just said to me?'' When she thought of the baby, it finally dawned on her. It turned out that the reason why it was so easy for her to get angry was because she was pregnant. "Lunch is ready. Have some soup before you go to bed," Sam suggested. Anne''s mouth twitched. She was able to stand up but her entire body felt like it was going to copse on its own. But for her child, she could bear anything. Inside the president office of the AN Group, documents littered the desk. Even the temporary bookshelf was full of documents. They contained information about the projects that Anne was in charge of. Kevin had asked the managers to hand them over today. He wasn''t expecting to receive so many documents, which made his head ache today. The most annoying thing was how his motherined to him about Anne while he was busy with work. "Who does she think she is?" Selma said indignantly. She is just pregnant with the baby of the Fu Family! How dare she ask my people to leave? Has she forgotten who she is? She''s so ignorant! She''s nothingpared to Cherry. I won''t allow her to stay in the Fu Family anymore once the baby is born." Kevin didn''t want to hear any more of her mother''sints. "I have something to deal with," he said coldly. He was about to hang up the phone when suddenly, he remembered something. "Don''t send people there anymore. I have already done it. Sam is taking care of her. Don''t worry about her staff." Even though he was stern in his words, he still felt that his mother wasn''t listening. "Don''t disturb her without my permission," he said with an even more serious tone. He hung up the phone as soon as he finished. It would have been fine if Kevin didn''t mention Sam. However, when it came to him, he felt a little bit ufortable as though there was a thorn scratching his heart. He paced back and forth in the office. No matter how much he tried to calm himself down, he couldn''t relieve the restlessness that invaded his body. He grabbed the phone and called Emily. The reason why he had asked Emily to take care of Anne was for her to look out after Sam. Although Anne was pregnant, leaving her under the care of a male doctor still concerned him. "How is my son today? Has he eaten already?" Kevin''s expression betrayed no emotions as he stood in front of the French window. Even though the light cast a longer shadow of him, his majestic and regal aura was still as cold as that of an emperor. Emily was baffled when she heard the question. The baby was still inside Anne''s abdomen. How could it possibly eat? ''Mr. Kevin, you''re so in denial. Just admit that you care about Anne, '' she thought to herself. Although in her heart, she had someints about Kevin, she still answered him with respect, "The Little Master and Anne are both well. However, Ruth came by today and she made Anne angry so she went to bed early after lunch." "What?!" Kevin''s pupils dted in rage and his face became even colder than usual. "Ruth?! What was she doing there?!" "She..." Emily couldn''t find the words to exin. If she told him that Ruth had been there to apologize, then it would seem that Ruth did nothing wrong. She racked her brain for answers but nothing came out. After a few seconds, she just said, "Ruth told Anne that that you loved Cherry very much." The rage in Kevin''s eyes suddenly died down. He felt confused by his emotions. How could he feel so bitter yet also feel a hint of sweetness? He brushed off this feeling and asked directly, "What exactly did she say? Tell me the truth!" Emily exaggerated Ruth''s indirect usation of Anne to Kevin. Upon hearing this, Kevin smashed his fist on the ss. Fuming with anger, he said, "In the future, no one is allowed to enter Anne''s house without my permission." "I see, Mr. Kevin," Emily said in an upbeat tone. "I will take good care of Anne for you and I''ll make sure nothing happens to her and the Little Master." Kevin hung up the phone forcefully. He was still enraged. He calmed himself down and paced back and forth, each step echoing arge thud. After a few steps, his eyes darkened in realization. He knew he needed to take action. Kevin stopped. He looked for n in his contact list and dialed him as fast as he could. Immediately, n picked up. "Kevin, to what I owe the pleasure of your call?" he said, smiling. "I heard that..." "Does your sister still want to work to get some experience?" Kevin interrupted coldly, cutting off n''s enthusiasm. For a moment, n was taken aback. But shortly after, he started tough again. "She was just kidding. Ever since she was a child, she had always lived a carefree life. When she lost her bank card, she didn''t know what to do. Anyway, she couldn''t be serious when she thought of working outside." The thought of his sister gave him a headache. Despite so, he still adored his sister very much. He was a little disappointed when he talked about his sister, but in reality, he always spoiled his sister in every way he could. He didn''t think it was inappropriate for her to be herself. "Ha-ha," Kevin said monotonously, his expression still as cold as ever. "I think it''s better for her to go out and work. In this circle, having a strong background doesn''t always guarantee afortable life. Because if you''re incapable, you will be trampled under others'' feet." Hearing Kevin say those words left n stunned. His smile disappeared and the cheerful look in his eyes quickly turned serious. Without any trace of joking, he said, "Kevin, are you still angry with my sister..." "There is a project in S Country. I''m nning to ask your sister to go there. It doesn''t matter whether she seeds or not. Just consider it as a training for her. I don''t care about the cost." "Kevin..." Cold beads of sweat started to roll down n''s forehead. His heart raced so fast that he felt like it was going to explode through his chest. "Kevin, my sister is really..." "If you are afraid that she will suffer, you can go by yourself. I''m concerned about this project and I don''t want others to do it. Ruth''s presence is only to let the people there know that I''m still watching over them." n felt even more embarrassed. "Kevin, you know that I can''t get the project at hand done now. If I go This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. there... " "Then let Ruth go." Kevin cut him off with his icy voice. His patience had already run out. His decision was an order. n had two choices: either let his sister pay the price, or he took the responsibility himself. "I''m very busy. That''s it. Inform Ruth." Kevin dropped the call. "Kevin... Kevin!" n''s heart sank as he shouted at the phone. He was so enveloped by rage that he tossed the phone to the ground. Aside from a few cracks, the high-quality phone did not break. When Ruth heard the news that she was being sent to S country, she broke down in tears. "n, I don''t want to go to S Country. The conditions there are so poor! It''s filled with bacteria, bandits, and hooligans. Suicide attacks happen there every day! No, I won''t go. I will die there." "Ruth, listen to me." n wiped the tears streaming down on her face. "Kevin did it for your own good," he said downheartedly. "Look at the people around us. All of them are relying on their own abilities to keep their family business and status." Ruth cried even harder. "n, don''t let me go, okay?" she begged him. "Please talk to Kevin. You have such a good rtionship with him. Besides... Besides... " Her sobs were too intense she couldn''t even catch her breath and finish what she was saying. She kept wiping her tears until she finally managed to say, "You will always stand by my side, won''t you? You said you would always protect me. You''re so capable that you must be able to protect me." n''s heart broke. He knew no one could change Kevin''s decision. He even called Cherry and asked her to speak for Ruth. However, after a few seconds of silence between them, Cherry said, "n, you know Anne''s disposition. She will finally take her revenge. Kevin is sending Ruth to S Country for her own good. If Ruth stays, there''s no telling what Anne will do to her." Anne was watering the flowers on the balcony while all of this was happening. She was unaware that she was being wronged even though she hadn''t done anything. "I will send more people to take care of you," n assured Ruth. "I promise that you won''t be harmed. After a month, you will be back. Be good, okay?" n gave Ruth a tight embrace. However, Ruth didn''t feel anyfort from his hug. Instead, she just grew more agitated as she began to kick and beat him. n let her cry and unleash her anger, hoping she would get tired and stop. His hatred towards Anne grew like a poisonous thorn slowly emerging from his heart. Kevin spent the entire afternoon reading documents. Later that night, even though his head was spinning, he still showed up in the party to sign contract with the people in KIA. When the people in KIA heard that Mr. Kevin, the President of AN, would being in person, they all Somewhere in a private room, boisterousughter filled the air. People could look through the French window and see the beautiful evening scenery unfold in A City. The senior executives of the twopanies, wearing suits and leather shoes, sat around the big table. The people whom Kevin brought could hold their liquor and they were good talkers. This made the people in KIAugh their lungs out. However, Kevin didn''t drink a single drop of wine. No one dared to force him. Neither did Ryan drink any. Kevin hated dealing with people like him. Usually, it was his subordinates that dealt with this kind of business affairs. Ryan actually wanted to interfere in his personal affairs. He was not qualified yet. Ever since they had entered the private room, Kevin hadn''t said a single word to Ryan, nor had he even taken a nce at him. But Kevin hid his disdain so well that the senior executives of KIA didn''t notice that there was animosity brewing between the two. After three rounds of drinking, it was finally time for both sides to sign the contract. Manager Yu smiled as he put the contract in front of Ryan. "Mr. Ryan," he said, "it''s such a lively asion today for us to sign the contract. Our twopanies can finally start the projects." When they saw this, everyone stopped drinking and chatting. However, Ryan pushed the contract away without even looking at it. "We won''t sign it today." Chapter 13 The Dream Chapter 13 The Dream The people attending the meeting were surprised upon hearing what Ryan said. Hearing what he had stated, Kevin raised his head as he looked at him with scorn. Also, the corner of his lips curled with disgust. If looks could kill, Ryan would have nothing but dust and bones. He was clearly getting on Kevin''s nerves. Even so, Kevin kept himselfposed. Manager Yu was confused of what Ryan meant when he said those words but then it hit him like a block of ice as he looked at him warily. "Is there anything we need to improve regards to our reception, Mr. Ryan? If so, I would like to apologize on behalf of ourpany." He then poured wine into Ryan''s champagne flute and gingerly pushed it towards his direction which Ryan epted with a nod. Swirling the ss of liquor on his hand, Ryan looked at it pensively before answering coolly. "Mr. Kevin amodated me well but there are someplications with the project at the moment that''s why I cannot hand it over to AN yet." There was amotion when Ryan finished his sentence. The senior executives of KIA all threw each other worried nces. They nervously looked at Kevin, hoping that he wouldn''t be furious, and back at Ryan who was sipping his wine calmly. Surprisingly, Kevin was indifferent. He eyed Ryan with a smirk and rose up from his chair. "Well then, with that being the case, I''ll put this project on hold until Mr. Ryan gets the problem done." He turned towards the door and marched outside. However, before doing so, he turned around and gave a cid smile. "My apologies, Mr. Yu. Please handle the rest because I have something to attend to." Although the tone that he used seemed calm, an attentive person would notice the underlying coldness that coated each word that he uttered and how icy his expression was. Davis Zhang, who was a part of KIA, frantically stood up from his chair and rushed towards Kevin as he desperately thought of something to lessen his anger. "I deeply apologized in Mr. Ryan''s behalf, Mr. Kevin. Mr. Ryan is the one who has been following the project. We just¡ª" But before he could finish his sentence, Kevin stormed off without saying a word, leaving him like a fool in front of the now closed doors. Davis Zhang couldn''t help but feel resentful towards Ryan for making things more difficult for him as he thought furiously, "Why didn''t he tell me that there was something wrong with the project until the moment of signing the contract? That brat. We''ll see!" Silence then reigned on the room where Kevin left. The atmosphere felt heavy and as cold as ice. No one spoke for their minds were gued with thoughts and opinions that they were afraid to share out loud. The board of directors of KIA looked dejected after getting the contract got hold off. Whereas, the members of AN Group kept their frustrations inside. They lookedposed and said it was their fault. What was more, they tried their best to exin why Kevin had left suddenly. As someone of high status, Kevin was an intelligent man with a heart of stone who exuded an intimidating aura that didn''t take to ount what anyone said and no one daredin about what he said or did. But even with this kind of character, his subordinates still hoped that everyone would see him like how they perceived him as a strong leader. "Well then, I shall excuse myself," Ryan said. "I will ask my secretary to forward a message to AN if the problem is already solved." He looked calm and collected but his eyes were chilling like a raging blizzard. He got up from his chair and silently bid his farewell. After exchanging polite words, the members of AN let him go and didn''t ask him to stay. After walking out of the suffocating room, Ryan then took his phone out and started dialing Anne''s number as he pressed call and waited for her to answer. The phone kept on ringing but no one picked it up until the phone started beeping. "The phone you have been calling has been switched off¡­" He felt irritated as he ended the call. After going outside the building, he went to the nearest cigarette area and lit a stick and smoked to get his frustrations out. After a few puffs, his annoyance eased up. Anne met him a few days ago saying, "I''ll personally follow this project." "From the start to the end?" he asked. Anne raised a brow as she stared at him in confusion, not fully understanding why he asked that out of the blue. She was about to give a lengthy speech on what she said when Ryan interrupted her, looking at her softly with a smile grazing his lips. "I won''t sign it if you don''t show up." Anne didn''t need to answer for her bright smile was sufficed as a response. Anne had always kept her word. She was not the type of person to go back on her word so she would at least call him if she ever passed the project to Kevin. But Ryan checked all of his messages but s, nothing. Even a WeChat message exining her side would be nice right now. He doubted that Kevin did something to her. It was a fact that pregnant women tended to feel sleepier than any normal human being and Anne could attest to that. During this time of the day, Anne would usually be dealing with work rather than just lying down, watching as hours ticked by. Unfortunately, Sam confiscated her phone when she was caught trying to contact someone from work and now, she had nothing to do but wait until he gave her phone back. What a boring day indeed. During dinner, Anne suddenly remembered the conversation she had with Ryan a few days ago about signing a contract with KIA. She also didn''t forget the deal that they made about Ryan not signing if she didn''t show up. She begged Sam to give her phone back, exining the whole ordeal about signing with KIA but he wasn''t having it. Sam red at her piercingly and coldly asked, "Which is more important, the child or thepany? You''ve been working non-stop and it''s bad for the baby, Anne." He was strict about anything rted to her to the point of forbidding Emily from helping her. Anne let out a sigh as she wasn''t left with any choice but to rest so she grudgingly went to her room to read instead. She was still worried about the state of thepany''s affairs as she picked a random book from her bookshelf and marched towards her bed. After that, shey down in afortable position. She concentrated on reading but to no avail. After stressing over thepany, she started falling asleep with the book still in her grasp. The dream relived a very old memory of her. Everything felt surreal like back in the old days where she returned to high school. She just started living at S City and entered AN Private High School not too long ago. After taking an exam on that day, she felt even more like an outcast on the school. "Why didn''t you hand over your examination paper, Anne?" the head teacher asked pointedly. After an hour when the exam was finished, Anne was called on by the strict head teacher toe by her office immediately. She was bewildered at first but nheless went right after she was called. She was confused but she didn''t show it as she stood up straight in front of the said teacher, looking at her with clear eyes that showed her sincerity with every word. "After taking the examination, I submitted my paper along with the ss. I didn''t keep it with me." Hearing Anne''s quibbling made the head teacher even more furious. She took the stacked sheet of exams and mmed it hard on the table which startled Anne. "Search for your name and you would not find it in this stack!" she bellowed. Anne couldn''t believe it as she skimmed and checked every test paper there was, looking for her name. However, her name wasn''t there. All the test papers of her ssmates were there except for hers which baffled her. Her surprised reaction might have ticked the teacher more as she looked at Anne scornfully. "You can tell me if you''re afraid to fail the exam but resorting to this is very disappointing." Anne started panicking as she looked at her teacher pleadingly. "I won''t do such a thing, Miss! I really finished the exam and handed my paper to¡ª" "You don''t have to argue on this matter anymore. It''s my first time seeing a student like you. If you''re not satisfied with my teachings then find another teacher who''s going to teach a kid like you. Using your fabricated lies to fool around others¡­" No matter how hard Anne tried to exin her side, her teacher was too livid at her that she wouldn''t even listen. Sweat trickled down her forehead as she closed her eyes and thought hard. "Where''s my examination paper?" Anne swore that she handed it over. "Miss." Just when she thought that all hope was lost, a hard baritone voice interrupted the teacher''s onught of words. His voice reminded her of ice, cold and hollow like the wind blowing down from the top of a snow- covered mountain with a strong force surrounding the cold air. It chilled every being of her. The teacher turned around with a surprised look stered on her face when she saw Kevin standing at the door. He looked uninterested on what was happening with arrogance and indifference disyed deep in his eyes. "Kevin! What a pleasant surprise. What are you doing here? What can I do for you?" The teacher''s attitude drastically changed when she saw Kevin. She immediately stood up from her chair and warmly greeted him. However, Kevin didn''t even look at her as he shifted his gaze at Anne with disinterest then back at the teacher in front of him. He then handed a crumpled examination paper to her. "This is Anne''s examination paper. I picked it up in the trash bin." When Anne heard that, her heart sank as she ran over to get her examination paper. But before she took a hold of it, the teacher took it first and examined if it was truly hers. She saw the handwriting on the paper, which proved that it was really Anne''s and that she was telling the truth all along. The teacher felt her cheeks warm as embarrassment flooded her system. She let out a cough to investigate this. I thought Anne was making up lies but I misunderstood her. Fortunately, you helped her rify it." Looking intently at Kevin, Anne wondered who was the culprit behind throwing her examination paper along with the trash. Another question lurked in her mind as to why Kevin took his time to pick it up and bring it here. With a bored expression on his face, Kevin looked at Anne disinterested and exined. "I didn''t throw your examination paper. I will never do such a thing so stop suspecting me." Then he turned around and left. "That''s right! I believe in Kevin and I''m sure he didn''t do it. He is a very upright student," the teacher said admiringly. Instead of chasing after him to tell him that what he was thinking is wrong, Anne just stood there as she watched Kevin walk away. He had a very prominent look that could take your breath away but gazing into his eyes would leave you searching for warmth for how cold it was. He had an aura of someone who would lead a team into greater heights even at such a young age. He was everything and morepared to her. He was thew in the school. Everyone listened to his words, including the teachers. She believed that he wasn''t capable of doing such atrocity because he disdained doing such despicable thing. He was smarter than her by a tenfold. A few dayster after the incident, the results of the examination came out. Kevin came in first and Anne was second, as always. People would cheer and praise him wherever he passed by. While gossip and sharp judging gazes were the only form of cheer it seemed that she got. One score lower and she was treatedpletely different from Kevin. Anne always studied hard and took her exams seriously but she was always one point behind Kevin in every exam, but this didn''t make her lose hope. She got the highest score in thest exam, beating Kevin and making her grin with joy and pride. But it soon turned into a frown when sharp gazes from others started invading her vision. Whispers of gossip goers started ringing in her ears and then she noticed something weird. She didn''t see Kevin at school at that time. For the first time, Kevin ranked second. "I heard that Kevin is sick." "Didn''t you hear that he fainted on the day of the exam?" "Maybe that''s why Anne got first ce, huh?" "It''s all her fault! She made Kevin study really hard to the point of getting sick. I don''t even know why she came to our school anyway." People were pointing at her like she was an exotic kind of animal for their entertainment, but not to use Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. for fun but for their hateful res and criticisms. But even with all of what was happening, worry surged through her as her heart started beating faster while as questions gued her mind. "Is Kevin sick?" ''Is he really studying so hard just to stay on first ce? Is he okay? Is he seriously ill?'' Anne felt a little uneasy as she stood outside of Kevin''s room. She took a deep breath as she mumbled, "Here goes nothing." She then opened the door leading to Kevin''s room. Kevin hurriedly hid something in his hands when she saw her. Anne then woke with a start. She tried remembering the dream that she just had as she stared at the ceiling. In her dream, there was some truth to it but other scenarios were just made up which was funny. One thing wrong about it was that she was the one who was ill at that time and not Kevin. Anne wanted tough at the thought of the ones who told her that Kevin had been studying hard just to keep his ce on the top. The whole dream was too funny that she couldn''t help from smiling. No one was present but just her so she didn''t need to hide her emotions. She then ced the book that was on her hands on her night stand as she chuckled at how absurd her dream was. ''Did Kevin really work hard just to keep his ce at that time?'' she thought. If so then she felt a little pride swell up on her chest. Unfortunately, it was just a dream. Anne couldn''t go back to sleep for a while now so she simply got up and thought about going to the balcony. When she walked to the balcony, she was stunned on who she saw beyond the ss door of the balcony. There were two men lounging in the said area until they noticed her. They were also as surprised as her when they saw Anne. Sam hastily opened the door of the balcony and walked towards her. Kevin followed Sam closely although he felt a little anxious. ''Why is he here?'' she thought. Anne was beyond confused. "Are you feeling ufortable anywhere?" Sam asked worriedly as he knocked on the door. "Don''t hesitate to tell Sam if you''re not fine. He is¡ª" Kevin intervened. But he was cut off when Anne opened the door and coldly asked, "What are you doing here?" "Anne, are you okay?" Sam repeated, concernced on his tone. Anne didn''t even nce at Sam as she continued staring coldly at Kevin. She replied to him, "I don''t feel ufortable and I''m fine, Sam." Without shifting her gaze on Kevin, she repeated her question with venomcing every word. "What are you doing here?" Seeing how hostile and cold Anne was acting towards Kevin made him mad. But he suppressed his anger as he looked at her nonchntly, smirking at her while sarcasm danced through his eyes. He looked at Anne''s glowering face full of hostility as his eyes slowly moved down and fell on her abdomen. Letting out a soft chuckle, he said, "I''m here to see my son and not because of you. Don''t tter yourself." Chapter 14 I Will Die If I Dont Love You Chapter 14 I Will Die If I Don''t Love You All of a sudden, Anne felt a sharp pain in her heart. "Now that you have seen him, you can leave now," she said coldly, Then she turned and pushed the door closed. The harder she fought, the more he hung on. He would not admit defeat. Kevin was consumed by the burning fury inside his heart. He reached out angrily to stop her from closing the door. He stared at her fiercely and said, "My son hasn''t asked me to leave yet. Why have you?" The child couldn''t even speak yet. Anne was so angry that she found it hard to breathe. Her mind went nk for a moment. She took a deep breath and slowly came to her senses. Obviously, Kevin came here to make her feel bad. But she had never been submissive. She just red at him. When she was about to try harder to m the door, Sam decisively pulled Kevin away. "If you continue to anger her, it will only be bad for the child." His voice was very calm, with a hint of warning. Kevin couldn''t think of a thing to say in reply. Well, he put up with her for the sake of the child, anyway! Before leaving, he gave a domineering nce at Anne, dering victory. Anne closed the door without a second nce at him. She was not happy. Kevin felt irritated by her ignorance, and the fire that had been extinguished inside him was ignited once more. He was not convinced and wanted to kick down the door to Anne''s room, but Sam held him back. Try as he might, he couldn''t break free, as if he were held in ce by iron chains. Sam said coldly, "Don''t you love your child at all? Are you even listening to me? If you go against my advice again I won''t let you into the house next time." Kevin cursed Sam in his heart. After her confrontation with Kevin, Anne found it harder to fall asleep. No wonder she dreamed of their high school days. When she woke up from the dream, she found the cold, hard reality was much worse. She preferred the dream. She stood beside the ss door and looked out at the city that was lit up in a vain attempt to stave off the night. Her mind was all abuzz and she couldn''t focus on anything. Did people get stupid after pregnancy? Was that true that a pregnant woman would be silly for three years? Anne frowned in dissatisfaction. There was a knock on the door behind her, followed by Sam''s voice. "Anne." Anne didn''t want to talk now, but looked out of the window quietly. Once again, she heard Sam talking through the door. "Are you asleep?" She said nothing. It was quiet at night, so if she made a sound he''d figure out she was awake. She even slowed her breathing, hoping he''d go away. She waited a few moments. She heard nothing. Had he finally given up? No such luck. "Don''t be angry," Sam reminded her. "It''s not good for the child. Try to adjust your mood, restrain it and control it. You shouldn''t lose your cool just because a little life is depending on you." The three words "a little life" suddenly lit up her mind. She focused herself once more. She raised the corners of her mouth and smiled, but the next second, the smile disappeared. She reached out and touched her belly. The baby was still with her, but what about ten months from now? She suddenly felt a little irritable. She hadn''t even seen the kid yet, and she was afraid of having it taken away? ''Don''t think about that, Anne. It''s not good for the baby if you do that.'' She took a few deep breaths to calm herself down. Finally, she said to the baby in her mind, ''Mommy will love you forever.'' In a vi near a mountain, Cherry sat in front of the French window. Behind her were only the night lights, dim and dark. The lights in the yard were the same, making the ce look deste and gloomy. She sat there for three hours and didn''t move. She kept looking at the night outside. But her mind was wondering somewhere else. She knew that Kevin had gone to see Anne. He also sent her a message saying he was really busy at the office and wouldn''t be back tillte. He was afraid he would disturb her, so he let her take care of herself. Cherry knew that if he loved her, he woulde back no matter howte it was. She was afraid that Kevin was all about Anne now. Sam said the woman was pregnant, but that was just his opinion. Thinking of this, Cherry suddenly stood up from the chair and dialed Selma''s number. The phone rang for a few seconds before it was picked up. She smiled and apologized. "Aunt Selma, did I disturb you?" "It''s still early. Why did you call me?" Selma asked. "It''s about Anne." Cherry''s voice came crisp and clear. But when she said this, her worries wereid bare for Selma to see. "I can''t sleep. Kevin is busy today. I don''t want to bug him, so I''m calling you." Hearing her words, Selma stopped smiling, confused and worried. "What''s wrong with Anne?" "She''s fine. Don''t worry, auntie." Cherry exined immediately, "I don''t think Sam is right about Anne. I''m afraid that her symptoms aren''t pregnancy, but something else entirely. Remember when the daughter-inw of the Zhang Family suddenly fainted? They thought she was pregnant, too, and it turned out it was brain cancer. I''m worried that something like that is going on here." Selma''s heart sank. She knew the tale well. That woman fainted, and they said she was pregnant, and she had brain cancer. This didn''t bode well for Anne. Selma was a little nervous and said, "I''ll ask Sam to take her to the hospital tomorrow." If there were something wrong with her body, it could be difficult for her to give birth. The Fu Family wanted a kid. And they wanted someone with her blood type. Her blood type wasn''t unique, but incredibly rare. There was more than one person in the world with this blood type, but they hadn''t found another one yet. Now, nothing could happen to her. "Happy to hear it, auntie. You know what Anne thinks of me. I''m afraid if I tell her, she''ll think I''m being a bitch." Cherry showed her fragility at the right time. "I know how she is! Don''t worry. I''ll ask Sam to take her to the hospital tomorrow." After exchanging few more words with Selma, Cherry hung up the phone. She felt much better. ''Anne, pregnant or not, I won''t believe you until I see some medical proof.'' If she were pregnant, she would give birth to the baby as soon as possible so Kevin would dump her. When she got up in the morning, Anne''s breasts were swollen and painful. Was it because she didn''t sleep wellst night? Sam said she needed to sleep as much as she could. She nned to ask Sam. He would know if there was anything wrong. She went to the bathroom to brush her teeth. As soon as she put the toothbrush in her mouth, she felt sick to her stomach. "EW..." She knew she couldn''t make it to the toilet, so she heaved right into the sink. But nothing came up. She put her hands on the wash basin weakly. After dry heaving for a few minutes, she felt that the nausea went away. She looked at herself in the mirror and her face was a little pale. Pregnant people often had morning sickness, and it was the first time she had this reaction. After a while, she brushed her teeth and walked out of the room. The pain in her breasts was all but forgotten. But for the sake of the child''s health, she still had to ask Sam. "Sam." But it was pretty embarrassing to bring that up. She fully intended to take advantage of his expertise, but since when did a woman talk about her breasts to a guy? But Sam stopped and looked at her seriously. "What''s wrong?" "Can I... Can I consult a female doctor?" Anne felt a little ufortable. Hearing her talk, Sam became a little concerned. "Is there something wrong?" "Maybe. I just want to ask you some questions." When Anne was about to get some water, Emily poured a ss of warm water for her. Anne nodded to thank Emily. Seeing her hemming and hawing, Sam became more nervous. But he seldom smiled. And his normal expression made it look like he was angry. Right now Anne was regretting ever bringing it up. She should go to see a gynecologist, or get Emily to take her. After all, it was easier to tell a woman than a man. "I''m a doctor. You know I treat both men and women. You can tell me what''s wrong. No one knows you and Kevin better than I do." Hearing what he said, Anne calmed down. Indeed, no one knew more about her and Kevin than he did. Their blood type was very special, and only she could give birth to Kevin''s child. But because of the special blood type, she had to be very careful when she was pregnant. Others didn''t know the special blood type she shared with Kevin. It was a Fu Family secret. As the family doctor of the Fu Family, as well as Kevin''s cousin, Sam knew Kevin pretty well. When she thought about it, Anne pushed all her feelings of embarrassment aside. She said indifferently, "My breasts are swollen. They hurt, too. I don''t know if it''s because I didn''t sleep Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. wellst night." Sam also knew her situation very well. He arranged everything for her, and kept track of it all; that included when her period came, when she had sex with Kevin, what she ate each day, all of it. It shouldn''t be a big deal to ask these questions. After a moment of silence, Sam felt relieved. He got his cool back, and he felt a lot better. "Oh, that. That''s just your body changing. It has nothing to do withck of sleep. I''ll give you a blood test to confirm whether you''re pregnant or not. But not now." Her eyes widened in surprise, but the feeling subsided. Now, she was nervous. However, she looked very calm. "Okay." Sam seldom made mistakes in his diagnosis, but Selma needed solid proof, not just Sam''s word. She figured an official pregnancy test would be good enough. Sam agreed. It would create less drama for Anne. He didn''t tell Anne that Selma and Master Carl Fu had called him, but said, "This will just prove what I already know. But at least it will be official. Then granduncle and Aunt Selma will be relieved." "Okay," said Anne lightly. As smart as she was, she didn''t say more but asked, "Can I eat anything before the test?" "It''s best not to. The car is waiting downstairs. I talked to the hospital and you can eat in half an hour." Anne nodded. Cherry got up very early to make some soup and took it to Kevin''s office. Before entering the office, she asked his secretary not to inform Kevin. She wanted to surprise him. The secretary made an OK sign with her fingers. Twenty minutester, someone pushed the door to Kevin''s office open. In a sonorous and powerful voice, Kevin said, "Let''s bring this meeting to order. Have you prepared the materials for GMS?" He was wearing a white customized shirt and ck trousers, dignified and impressive. He was followed by his elite team, and everyone looked serious. The moment he walked in, everyone straightened up. "Cherry?" Seeing Cherry, Kevin raised his eyebrows in surprise. Chapter 15 Without The Company Of Her Husband Chapter 15 Without The Company Of Her Husband "Ahem..." As she briskly stood up from the sofa, Cherry coughed before she could speak. Her face was awfully pale. With her hands covering her mouth, each cough made her shoulders tremble. She appeared so fragile and in need of protection. Kevin walked over in a sh andid an anxious hand on her shoulder to make her sit down. Frowning, he asked gravely, "Why did you cough?" He quickly touched her forehead to feel the temperature. "Have you caught a cold?" Cherry put on a displeased pout before taking his hand off. "I don''t have a cold, but... Ahem, this is the soup I made early this morning. Eat it while it''s still hot." As he looked at her pallid face, Kevin''s frown deepened and his voice grew louder. "Just let the cook take care of it. Why do you get up so early and get yourself sick?" "I''m worried about your health," Cherry answered in a pitiful tone. She gazed at Kevin with big watery eyes, as if she was the one who was wronged. Unable to me her once more, he sighed. "I''ll send you to the hospital." "You know how much I hate hospitals..." Letting go of his hand, Cherry lowered her head wistfully. Kevin couldn''t stand to see her like this. He grabbed her hand and said firmly, "I''ll go to the hospital with you." He knew that Cherry didn''t like hospitals, as her mother had died in one. At that time, she had been involved in an ident in the attempt to save Kevin''s life. He felt responsible for taking care of Cherry. Anne found it hard to rx as she was not used to it. Watching the changing scenery outside the window, she felt ufortable. What was Kevin hiding in his dreamst night? She was curious. Soon, the car pulled over in front of the Feng Family''s private hospital. Trees were hovering on both sides of the building making it look more like a dignified school than a hospital. This made patients less nervous. Although the outpatient department was huge, there were still many patients waiting in line. Fearing that the people passing by might bump into Anne, both Emily and Sam stood by her side protectively. Their nervousness made Anne want tough. She was really not used to being treated like this. "Honey, slow down." As she headed upstairs, Anne saw a man tenderly taking care of his pregnant wife. The woman''s belly was enormous, but Anne couldn''t tell how many months she had been pregnant so far. Judging from the smile brightening up her face, she seemed ecstatic to be a mother. Suddenly unable to take her eyes off, Anne saw that Kevin was protecting Cherry, who was wholeheartedly in his arms. The affection in his eyes was obvious. It was ridiculous that her husband came to the hospital with a mistress instead of apanying her for her prenatal checkups. A few secondster, she averted her eyes coldly. "Anne... Ahem..." Anne intended to walk past them with indifference as if she hadn''t even seen them. However, things didn''t go as nned. Just as Anne was about to move past them, Cherry called her. Even so, she could have still pretended not to hear it. But Cherry wouldn''t let go. As though she had been bullied by Anne, she sounded like she was on the verge of tears. "Anne... Are you mad at me? I didn''t know you woulde to the hospital for a prenatal check-up today. If I knew it, I would have definitely not let Kevin apany me. He is the father of the baby. He should be with you and spend more time with the child." "Enough!" In a burst of anger, Anne threw Cherry a cial re and added, "I don''t need him." Her heart was as cold as ice. Then how could it still hurt so bad? As she stared at Cherry, her weak shoulder shuddered suddenly. Cherry''s skin was pale under the sharp gaze of Anne''s eyes. It was obvious who was the stronger of the two. Cherry was the victim. Sure enough, Kevin was fooled. He immediately stood up for Cherry, cing himself protectively in front of her. "Come pour out your anger on me. How can you take it out on a sick person?" With a piercing stare, he stood imposingly before Anne. Her coldness was nothingpared to his. "Then please get out of the way." Anne looked away emotionlessly and walked on. "You..." Kevin was so furious that his veins looked like they could pop out from his temples at any moment. No longer able to control his anger, he reached to stop Anne. But as soon as he stretched his arm, Sam stopped him and said impassively, "Let''s have a talk sometime. Now is not the best moment." His voice was light, but also full of irritation. Although his family was not as rich as the Fu Family, it was surely one not to mess with. His warning tone conveyed his dissatisfaction with Kevin clearly. But Kevin would never give in, not even when he was threatened by his cousin, Sam. Without stepping back, he looked straight into Sam''s eyes. Acknowledging the aplishment of her n, Cherry astutely brought her hands to her chest pretending to be suddenly in pain. "Kev... My chest hurts a little... I can''t breathe." Pulling Kevin''s sleeve, she pleaded pitifully, "Please... Can you take me to a doctor?" No matter how angry Kevin was, he couldn''t ignore Cherry''s condition. He immediately cast aside his wrath and lifted her up. "Don''t be afraid. I''ll take you to the doctor right away!" Cherry feebly snuggled up in Kevin''s arms, as if she was a willow twig trembling in the wind. As Kevin strode past Anne, Cherry gave her a wicked smirk. Anne kept her calm as if she hadn''t seen anything. But the hot-blooded Emily couldn''t stand to see Cherry''s smug look. Clenching her fists, she was ready to step forward when Sam''s low voice made her stop in her tracks. "Take good care of Anne." Those five words managed to cool her anger down a little. Since Sam had made an appointment with the doctor in advance, he took Anne directly to the A young doctor would give her an injection. His look was neat and clean, and his smile bright. "Mr. Sam''s diagnosis is correct, but it''s better to have a written test result. It might hurt a little. Just hang in there." The cold cotton ball rubbed on Anne''s skin, making her shiver. "It doesn''t matter." Anne sat upright and stretched out her arms. She didn''t look afraid at all. On the other hand, Emily''s shoulder quivered. "Anne, close your eyes. It''s like an ant bite." Then, Anne felt a prick on her arm as though she was bitten by an ant, and she raised her eyebrows slightly. She remembered that once, in high school, when she had her blood drawn during a physical examination, someone beside her had told her, "My mother said that the injection was like an ant bite and didn''t hurt at all." This reminded her of her own mother. That was the seventh day since her mother had left her. She missed her so much. Aftering out of the infirmary, she was alone on the pathway, walking sulkily. Then, a teenage boy jumped out of nowhere and started walking beside her. He was wearing a white shirt, and he kept his hands leisurely in his pockets. Raising his eyebrows, he had jeered at her, "Are you crying? Are you crying even if it''s just like an ant bite?" She had stared back at him with red eyes. "Well, you can let go of your hand in twenty seconds." The young doctor took out the needle and Content (C) N?v/elDra/ma.Org. pressed a cotton swab on Anne''s arm. Without hesitation, Emily took over, anxious to take care of Anne. "I can do it myself," Anne pointed out. She pressed her fingers directly on the swab. In fact, the injection didn''t hurt at all. It was her heart that hurt instead. It was as hard as iron, yet she didn''t know how she could still feel pain. Somehow, Kevin always found a way to get to her and make her heart ache. "Don''t hand them over to anyone after you get the results. Send them to me in person," Sam instructed the young doctor, who nodded approvingly. "I understand." After Anne left the hospital, she regained her calm and inscrutable expression. Even though her heart was bleeding, she could still face everything withposure. The road ahead wasrge and open, and people were keeping their distance. Yet, Sam and Emily were still nervous and afraid that someone could run into Anne. "Mom, this car is so beautiful. Ask dad to buy me one!" A little boy stepped toward them. Holding the hand of ady walking beside him, he spoke in a tender and childish tone. His sweet smile attracted Anne''s attention. Holding his small hand firmly, thedy smiled and nced at him dotingly. "Okay, let your dad buy you one." Anne''s heart suddenly throbbed with anguish. Could she hold her son''s hand like this in the future? Her son would call another woman ''mom''. At this thought, she felt tears gathering up in her eyes. She raised her head and quickened her pace. Seeing her leave in a hurry, Emily asked worriedly, "Are you hungry, Anne? You can''t walk so fast. You have to be careful in the first trimester." "I''m hungry. I have a stomachache." That was the only excuse Anne could find on the spot. Walking silently beside her, Sam seemed to have sensed that something was wrong. An erratic emotion shed through his dark eyes. But he didn''t look into it any further. He followed her into the car and handed her the food he had prepared. With the bowl in her hands, Anne took two bites and felt like she couldn''t eat anymore. Sam had cooked for her some tasty and rich seafood porridge. But Anne didn''t seem to enjoy it. Although the meal had fish in it, it didn''t smell like fish at all. He was a good cook, but Anne''s appetite waspromised by an unsettling feeling in her heart. "Anne, don''t you want to have any?" Emily was sitting next to Anne. Seeing that she didn''t have any appetite, she couldn''t help but try to persuade her. "Even if you don''t want to eat, the baby needs the food. My mother said that even if you couldn''t anymore, you needed to force yourself a little." "Don''t listen to her." Sam''s voice was low but authoritative. Before he could continue, his phone rang in his pocket. As he pulled it out and had a look at the screen, anger and impatience started spreading in his dark eyes. Chapter 16 Arguing For Her Chapter 16 Arguing For Her Sam didn''t pick up the phone immediately. Instead, he lifted his gaze to stare at Anne. "If you''re not hungry, don''t force yourself to eat anything. That''ll hurt your body and your mood." Anne''s face and eyes betrayed no emotion. Since he gave the okay, she stopped eating. But Emily looked at him in disbelief, her eyes wide in surprise. She looked like she wanted to argue with him. Sam ignored Emily and answered the phone. "What''s the matter?" Sam struggled to keep his cool. On the other end of the line, Kevin was yelling at Sam, "I need a copy of the test results on my desk the moment you get it!" Hearing Kevin''s angry voice, Sam resolved to keep calm. His ck eyes were horribly cold. "See you at the Ode To Joy in an hour. I have something to tell you." "Okay." With a smile at the corners of his mouth, Kevin looked at the sunlight from his office, without any warmth on his face. "What a coincidence. I have something to say as well." He hung up the phone right after that, and his head was filled with nothing but rage. Sam was calm, sitting in his car, acting like he''d just gotten a telemarketer on the phone. Kevin''s call hadn''t done anything to sour his mood. Sam was the kind of person who would not even blink an eye when the sky fell. Kevin couldn''t be more different. Everyone had to show deference to him. He lived to tell people what to do. And if they didn''t do what he wanted, he made sure they would. He was used to being a strong man, so he didn''t allow others to disobey him. He usually held his emotions in check. But when it came to confrontation, he''d never back down. He would unleash his full fury on anyone foolish enough to oppose him. Hearing the explosive shouts from Sam''s phone, Anne lost what little appetite she had. She put down the spoon and looked out the window. There was a touch of sadness in her eyes. Emily didn''t say anything this time, not knowing what to say to make anything better. She took the takeout box from Anne''s hand and sat silently with her. Sam said nothing as he continued driving the car. Anne didn''t really want him to say anything anyway. When the car arrived at themunity, Sam sent Anne inside and talked to Emily. "I''m going out for a while," he said in a grave tone. "Take good care of her. I have porridge and boiled eggs in the kitchen." "Okay, I will." Emily nodded earnestly. After Sam left, Anne didn''t eat much. She ate some vegetables and a fruit sd made by Emily, plus a small bowl of porridge. Emily''s cooking skills were beyond reproach. She was almost as good as Sam, who cooked like a five- star chef. After Sam left, Anne felt a little uneasy. She walked from the room to the balcony, and then back to the living room, frowning the whole time. "I have to go." She turned and walked towards the door. Emily immediately came over to block her way and said seriously, "Sam said not to let you out." "The two of them..." Without knowing how to exin, Anne asked anxiously, "Do you want to see Sam get hurt?" Stunned for a moment, Emily shook her head firmly and said, "No!" "Then I need to get there." Something told her when Sam met Kevin, it wouldn''t go well. And Kevin wouldn''t be the one getting hurt. Sam might start something, but Kevin would finish it. "But... But... " Emily didn''t know what to do. Anne held her hand and said, "If anything goes wrong, I''ll take the heat. Just tell him that you couldn''t stop me. Let me go!" "Well...okay. Just be careful! And I''m going with you!" Anne was not slowing her pace for anything. Emily, holding her hand, was practically dragged all the way there. She was panting after a bit. Sam owned the club¡ªOde to Joy¡ªacross from the private hospital. The first floor was a coffee shop, and the second floor was a tearoom. He grabbed the test results before he booked a private room on the second floor, waiting for Kevin. There was a main road that ran though there. Although it was not located in the prosperous city center, the road was wide and saw plenty of traffic. Twenty minutester, Kevin arrived at Ode To Joy and stepped into the private room Sam booked. His aura was anything but warm and friendly. Anne sped on her way, trying to reach the club before Kevin and Sam. The car roared around corners at high speed, causing the two to lean into the curves. Anne left the house almost an hourter than Sam! Emily kept repeating "Slow down! Slow down!" But she didn''t slow down at all. Emily feared for their safety. Thankfully, nothing happened and they arrived safe and sound. "Take me to your boss''s private room," Anne said to the receptionist as soon as she arrived at Ode To Joy. She was panting, sweating, and out of breath. "You are..." The waitress stared at Anne and Emily hesitantly. Anne said with a serious look, "This is a matter of life and death! Just think of what you''ll be responsible for if you don''t let me in! Do you want that?" The receptionist was frightened by Anne''s rming words. Plus, she didn''t want to be responsible. When she was hesitating, a manager came over, stood beside the waitress with a serious face, and then apologized to Anne, "I''m sorry, Mrs. Anne. She doesn''t know you. I''ll take you there right away." In the private room, Kevin and Sam were fighting. Clenching the cor of Sam with one hand, Kevin red at him and said angrily, "I''m the kid''s dad. Why are you trying to keep me away?" The two of them knew that the conversation today would never be pleasant. But Kevin didn''t expect that the first sentence out of Sam''s mouth would irk him so much. Without moving an inch, Sam stared at Kevin. "I''m thinking of her health!" "Sam, you''re full of it, you know that?" Kevin tightened his grip, and at this time, Sam punched Kevin in the face, "Better than you, asshole!" Kevin''s face was burning. His anger was about to burn the whole room down. He was so furious that he cocked his fist intending to bring it smashing down onto Sam''s face. Then they heard Anne''s angry roar from outside the door. "Open the door!" The two men, who were at loggerheads, paused because of her voice. The pause brought the opportunity Kevin was waiting for. While Sam was distracted, Kevin cuffed him good. He was really pissed off. How could Sam do what he did and im it was for Anne, and use him of not loving his kid? Why would he say that? Kevin wanted to teach Sam a lesson and let him know what a loser he was! Anne heard the crashing in there. She could well imagine the desk being upturned, shelves knocked over, delicate knick-knacks shattered. She could also hear the impact of fists, and painful grunting. She mmed her fists on the door and said, "If you don''t open the door, I''ll ask someone to kick it in!" N?velDrama.Org owns all content. Before he entered the room, Sam ordered that if he didn''t open the door personally, no one was allowed in. He was the only one who had the key to this room. He had brought the key with him. In fact, it was to prevent Anne from entering. Emily also helped knock on the door, but there was no response from inside. No response, that was, except the crashing sounds. The mming sounds were getting louder and louder, which indicated that they were fighting more fiercely. In a moment of desperation, Emily suddenly shouted, "Anne, Anne, are you okay?" After a second''s pause, Anne understood what Emily was trying to do. She stood still by the door and made no sound, letting Emily continue her performance. Inside the door, Kevin and Sam were gobsmacked, and they forgot what they were fighting about. Then Sam let go of Kevin''s cor and ran to the door. His forehead was covered with cold sweat, and his heart was pounding. He didn''t know what had happened to Anne. Kevin was also anxious. But he was not willing to let Sam see Anne before he did, so he grabbed Sam''s cor, threw him against the desk and came to the door first. When he was about to open the door, he heard Emily''s scream again, "Anne... Hold on, Anne! Mr. Sam! Open the door, Mr. Sam!" Kevin was even more anxious, but he never reached the door. He felt a pinch in his neck, then his vision went green, and finally ck. He fell to the ground like a sack of potatoes. Sam frowned and opened the door. Anne was standing there, without a scratch on her. She looked healthy, but rather pissed. She cast a cold nce at him. He was still worried, so he asked, "Are you alright?" Without a word, she ignored him. Instead, she focused her eyes on Kevin, who was lying on the ground. Her heart skipped a beat, but her expression was cold. "Will he die?" "He''ll be fine. He''lle around in about twenty minutes or so," said Sam with anger in his eyes. There was a trace of aggression in his voice. The calm Sam was nowhere to be seen. He then looked her in the eye, his voice firmer this time. "Come back with me," he said. Standing still, Anne looked at Kevin and said, "I have to wait here for him to wake up." Only by clenching his fists could Sam hold back his anger. How could Anne be so infatuated with him? Kevin had hurt her so much. Why was she still so stuck on him? Why was she worried about his health? Just as he was trying to calm down, he heard Anne''s measured tones. "If I don''t stay, you guys will start fighting again." In order to untie the bell, the person who tied it was required. She had probably figured out the reason why Sam and Kevin fought¡ªfor the child. As soon as she said that, Sam''s anger instantly subsided. There wereplex emotions in his dark eyes, pain, confusion, even gratitude. Although Anne stuck around for him, she also did the same for Kevin. In the end, he said nothing and waited with her. Emily and the staff helped Kevin onto the sofa. Sam stood aside coldly and did nothing to help. The room was a mess. The teacup was broken, shelves were tipped over, and various other things were broken. The waiter was about to clean the floor, but was stopped by Anne. "Please wait until we leave." She wanted Kevin to know that he fought with Sam recently. This was the evidence! Twenty minutester, Kevin woke up. When he opened his eyes, the first thing he saw was Anne. He immediately sat up from the sofa and seemed to forget that he had been knocked out by Sam. He grabbed Anne''s hand and asked, "Are you okay? Is there anything wrong?" Anne stiffened at his touch. She still wasn''t happy with him. Stunned for a couple seconds, she withdrew her hand coldly and said, "The baby is fine." Kevin was taken aback. Realizing that he was too anxious, he withdrew his hand calmly. Then he stood up and red at Sam. "I haven''t gotten even with you for thatst punch you gave me!" Chapter 17 Let Him Wait Chapter 17 Let Him Wait Anne built up the courage to stand up from the sofa. She stared at Kevin and spoke with conviction. "I need to ask you something." Kevin was startled. His eyes shifted away from Anne for a few seconds before he asked, "What''s the matter?" "Why did you have to fight?" Neither too slow nor in a hurry, the tone of her voice was undeviating and full of certainty. Kevin cleared his throat and stood arrogantly. Despite the fact that he was driven to the corner, he still said confidently, "Private matters." "Really?" Anne raised her eyebrows. It turned out that she did not really want to know the reason as to why they did it. She changed her posture and said, "I don''t care why you did it. There is one thing I need to say in front of you two. I don''t need any of you to take care of me!" She turned her attention to Sam. After hearing her announcement, Sam was taken aback. "Sam, I can take care of myself. I don''t need you to stay by my side every minute of the day." She was quite adamant when she told Sam what she wanted him to do. Her eyes showed vulnerability, but they were definitely convincing. Then she turned her gaze back to Kevin. The way she looked at Kevin was intimidating and cold. "I don''t need you to take care of me either. Let Emily go back to work. You''d better not show up in front of me!" "No way!" "I don''t agree to this either!" Kevin and Sam both refused her proposal. They were totally against her decision. Anne red at the two of them for a while and did not answer immediately. After a brief pause, she said, "I don''t want to be affected by your squalor. If you want to maintain our current situation, I suggest that the two of you try to get along with each other. The mood of a pregnant woman directly affects that of the fetus, resulting in the formation of the child''s personality. If you don''t want my child to be a violent man in the future, then give me some peace and quiet," she said whilst stroking her belly. Her words resounded so powerful that it made them silent for a few seconds Emily was dumbfounded by what she heard. Kevin scowled at Sam defiantly and clenched his fists, ready to unleash his anger at a moment''s notice. Sam held back and looked straight into Anne''s eyes. He zipped his mouth and did not utter a single word. Even if he didn''t say anything, she knew that he finally agreed. Sam was still furious at Kevin for all he tolerated. He would definitely get his revenge, even if it wasn''t today. Even if he didn''t do it now, maybe tomorrow, maybe next week, maybe even one month or one yearter. Sooner orter, he would get his revenge. "And¡­" Anne nced at Kevin and spoke. "Although you''re a violent person, you can train your son from an early age. If you don''t want him to be like you, you''d better set an example for him from now on!" Kevin red at Anne while pointing his finger at her and said, "You!" He felt insulted by what Anne had just said to him.This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. However, upon thinking about it, what she said made sense to him. He really didn''t want his son to be hot-tempered just like him. In his mind, he hoped that his son would grow as a person of good character, someone who knew how to handle pain and emotions rightly. He wanted him to be way better than he was at the moment. The thought made his emotions subside. Even so, he did not agree to how Anne articted those thoughts to him. But she was pregnant. No matter how affront she was, he had no choice but to tolerate and endure anything she would say. "Emily, let''s go." Anne turned around and asked Emily to leave with her. She went to the door, approached the waiter standing there, and said, "That''s the person that broke your dishware, don''t let him leave without paying for the damages." "Yes, Madam," the waiter responded. Sam acted like he was not one of the culprits and inconspicuously followed Anne outside. The waiter just stared at him as he followed Anne. Kevin got angry again when he saw him leave as if he was not partly to me for the mess. He was really getting into his nerves. He immediately tried to run after Sam. The waiter blocked his way and said, "Sir, you haven''t paid yet." "Why don''t you ask him for it?" Kevin turned his eyes away from the waiter. He found himself enraged while watching Sam get away from the mess that he also made. "Why are you letting him go? He also caused this mess!" "He''s our boss, we can just deduct the damages from his sry." The waiter''s behavior was not surprising. "You..." Kevin furiously mmed a credit card to the ground, and walked away from the waiter. In the car, Anne leaned her head against the window and slowly closed her eyes. This was an exhausting day for a pregnant woman like her. "I''m sorry," Sam said in a very sincere tone. Atst, he was able to say something. But it didn''t sound convincing to Anne. She furrowed her eyebrows as if she was disturbed in her rest. Anne loosened her brows, but she was still clearly upset. Her irritation was written all over her face. Sam just kept silent. He looked away and focused on driving. Emily felt uneasy. She was not used to this kind of unhandy situation. She thought of breaking the silence but she was afraid that it would just make it more awkward for all of them. Emily bit her lip. She couldn''t stand it anymore. Surprisingly, Anne said calmly, "Ask Emily to apply some medicine on your wounds when you get home." Hearing this, Emily felt relieved. She almost sang a song because of how happy she felt. Based on what she heard, she realized that Anne had already forgiven Sam. She caught a glimpse of Sam. He did not say a word but the corner of his lips were curved into a smile. The thought that the two had already reconciled made her heart flutter. They had finally let go of their resentments. The test results were released. Sam reviewed the results and found nothing unusual. Afterwards, he asked someone to send the report to the Fu Family. After receiving the test results, Selma immediately notified Cherry through a phone call. "Don''t worry, Cherry. Anne is really pregnant. Just now, Sam sent us the diagnosis. She is indeed pregnant." She grinned from ear to ear and continued to talk through the phone, "She and Kevin will divorce in nine months. Then you will be Kevin''s wife." Only then did Cherry feel a little satisfied. She did not bother to ask Kevin a favor for Ruth''s sake. She exined to n and Ruth that Anne was currently pregnant and urged Ruth to bear with it for a month. In front of Kevin, she affirmed that he was right with his decision and that Ruth could learn a lot from it. She was an exquisite and silver-tongued person who always knew how to get what she wanted. What happened in the hospital today was a manifestation of how persuasive of a woman she could be. As a matter of fact, everything was ording to n including the timing that Anne would be in the hospital today. Anne was undeniably tired after dealing with the fight between Kevin and Sam. She was too dispirited after she had dinner, so Sam called a doctor for her. He was afraid that Anne wouldn''t listen to his suggestions as she might thought he was being too serious, so he arranged another doctor to provide her with regr checkups. Anne epted it. The second day after leaving work, she found herself so lethargic and uneasy. She didn''t have the appetite to eat, nor could she sleep properly. Emily told her that she would ovee everything and would eventually get used to it in the long run. She ensured that Anne will be fine once she got used to it. Emily once again told Kevin that Anne asked her to call Ryan. Kevin furrowed his brows and said, "There''s no need to call him. Don''t let Anne worry about the Since he got back in April, Kevin fastened himself to the office of AN Group. He kept himself busy through reading documents or discussing important projects, upholding it for revisions with the senior leaders. He barely spent time for himself. He even kept his lunchtime under ten minutes. He had never felt so exhausted in his duties as a president before. Ever since Anne entered the AN Group, he was able to rx a little and spend some time doing what he wanted. He treated Cherry luxuriously. He would either take her on a vacation or spend time with her in a hotel. In the past two days, he came to realize that he might have been putting a lot of burden on Anne, and she had be burnt out while he was off having the time of his life with Cherry. He felt a hint of guilt. As for Ryan, it was his loss that he didn''t sign the contract. If KIA decided to dy the contract, Kevin could wait. He didn''t care, anyway! If the contract between AN Group and KIA was dyed for one day, KIA''s daily ie would be reduced by millions. Several other high-level KIA executives asked Ryan at least four times a day about how the project was handled. Ryan always told them the same, "It''s still being resolved." "Mr. Ryan, , please hurry up. The annual settlement is about to arrive. We are also counting on this project to support the revenue of our Greater China region," Tony helplessly said. However, the expression on Ryan''s face hardly changed, as if he was sure about this project. But his secretary saw him frowning in the office several times, even walking back and forth in front of the floor-to-ceiling window in frustration. Sometimes, he coped up with the stress through smoking a few cigarettes in a row. ''Mr. Bryan must have encountered problems that are too difficult to solve in the meantime. The biggest suspicion is the AN Group''s project, '' the secretary thought. Ryan dialed Anne''s number countless times, yet it seemed that she was unavable whenever he called. "The number you dialed is powered off. Please redialter." He was so furious that he took a puff of the cigarette in his hand, and inhaled the smoke directly into his lungs. ''Anne, are you in trouble? How can I contact you?'' The more Ryan thought about it, the more restless he became. This was probably the most challenging problem he had encountered ever since he came back. Anne couldn''t sleep well. She was turning from side to side as she dreamt of her child, a charming little boy. "Mom Mom¡­" He was so lovely and adorable. There were tears falling from his round eyes. He looked quite pitiful. He was traipsing around with his short legs as he looked for his mother everywhere. Anne felt a hint of ache in her heart seeing him crying in her dreams. She quickly said, "Baby, mommy is here." She squatted down and opened her arms to hug him, but he walked past her like she was nothing in the wind. The little boy was bursting in tears and shouted, "Mom, where are you? Don''t leave me alone. I''m so afraid, I can''t live without a mother!" Anne''s heart felt like it was being twisted by a knife in side. She felt so much pain that she could barely breathe. Her tears fell uncontrobly as she picked up the little boy. "Baby, I am your mother." The little boy squirmed and cried loudly, "You''re not my mother. You''re not! Mommy, mommy!" He suddenly stopped crying and shouted with joy as he waved his hand at someone behind Anne. Anne was stunned. She turned around and saw Cherry smiling cheerfully and heading towards the little boy. The little boy ran to Cherry and shouted happily, "Mommy, mommy!" With a loving smile, Cherry lifted him up and said, "My boy, Mommy will always be with you." "No, you are not his mother. I am his mother!" Anne burst in tears and did not know what to do. She panicked and went after them. However, the two of them paid her no attention. It seemed like they couldn''t see her at all. Anne''s heart felt so painful that she could no longer breathe. It was like her heart had been taken away from her chest. She couldn''t ept it. It was obviously her child whom she had carried for nine months in her womb. How couldn''t he recognize his own mother? She chased after them like crazy. She woke up from her dream and bolted upright. She was clearly in shock. Her eyes were full of fear and anxiety. It took a few minutes before she calmed down. The feeling of having her heart taken away felt so real. She touched her belly subconsciously and furrowed her brows. "Baby, will you recognize me in the future?" she murmured to herself in distress. Chapter 18 Argument Over Their Son Chapter 18 Argument Over Their Son Anne felt depressed and uneasy because of her dream. She intended to leave the room after she washed up, but she stopped, hand frozen on the doorknob. She could hear Sam and Emily talking in the living room. Emily said, "It''s Cherry. Want me to shoo her away?" "Yes," Sam replied. After a while, Anne heard the door opening. And she lost all her strength at that moment. She simply turned around and headed towards the sofa. That sofa was moved into her room two days ago. Before her pregnancy, she had almost no time to rest in her room. After she got pregnant, she seemed to be tired all the time. So the sofa was a good thing. Now, she couldn''t hear what was going on outside. She didn''t want to hear Cherry''s voice at all. She was more annoying than a devil. Anne couldn''t help but touch her abdomen again, with her beautiful eyebrows still frowning. A few minutester, Emily came into the living room with a big smile on her face. "I told her to scram." "Well, go and see if Anne''s awake yet." "Okay." When Emily opened the door, she saw that Anne was lying on the sofa. She was frowning, and looking out the window absent-mindedly. Emily was a little worried and asked, "Didn''t you sleep wellst night?" "Sort of. Bad dreams keep me up." Although Anne''s voice was calm, Emily could feel the sadness in her voice, which made her mood take a nosedive. She didn''t know what was bringing Anne down. She thought it was just because she was pregnant. She never imagined it might be the agreement between Anne and Kevin. Emily tried tofort her. "I can ask Mr. Sam for something to help you sleep. Want me to do that?" Just then, Sam walked in. Anne looked back at him and said, "How am I supposed to feelfortable with all this if you won''t let me work?" Emily looked at Sam helplessly. Sam''s expression remained unchanged, as if what Anne said was something unimportant, like "the wind is too strong today." He said, "Breakfast is ready. Let''s eat." Emily hurried to help Anne to her feet. The two of them didn''t tell Anne that Cherry dropped by. And Anne pretended she didn''t know. It was as if Cherry had never appeared in her life. But any peace she had couldn''tst. A few hourster, the doorbell rang again. Emily shot Sam a look and said, "I''ll get it!" She and Sam had an understanding¡ªshe would answer it as long as the doorbell rang. The mission was to get rid of all the people who shouldn''t havee over. Anne was looking at her lemon tree on the balcony. She didn''t have to worry about anything right now. Anything that was, other than eating and sleeping. She needed to stay in a good mood and wait for the baby to be born. The thought of the baby stung her heart again. When she opened the door, Emily was startled by the sight that met her eyes. Kevin and Cherry were there on the doorstep. Cherry held Kevin''s arm gently. "Is Anne feeling better now?" Cherry asked in a concerned tone. "I''m also the kid''s mom, after all. I''d like to see him." Anne sat on the balcony, and overheard this exchange. Her hand was touching the leaves, which were as sharp as a needle. Bright red blood dripped from her finger. However, she had no idea that her dreamst night mighte true. In her dream, her child called Cherry "mother" and didn''t know her at all. Kevin''s handsome eyebrows twisted, and he seemed to emit an aura of pure evil. He was tall and dignified. He stretched out his hand and brushed Emily away. "Why didn''t you tell me that Anne was under the weather?" This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Emily was blown away again. By the time she realized what had happened, she could no longer stop the two of them. Kevin had already taken Cherry to the center of the living room. That morning, Emily found an excuse to keep Cherry out, but now she was back, this time on Kevin''s arm. Seeing Anne standing on the balcony, Cherry walked closer to her. Her voice was full of worry. "Why aren''t you sleeping? Get some rest. Ah! Why is your hand bleeding?" When Kevin heard that Anne''s hand was bleeding, his forehead twitched. He walked to Anne in a few steps. Before he could reach out his hand, Sam hade over and taken Anne''s hand. Seeing that, Kevin felt his heart hurt, as if there was a knife in it. But there was nothing he could do. Just when Kevin was starting to get quite anxious, Anne gently pulled her hand back. She frowned and said unhappily, "It doesn''t matter. All of you, please leave. I''m tired and need to lie down." She ignored them and went straight to her room. In fact, she was angry. Why on earth Kevin showed up with Cherry like that? Why did Cherry feel the need to show up at all? She didn''t want to see any of them. "I have something to tell you." Heedless of Anne''s long face, Kevin took her hand and led her to the room. The remaining three people looked at them in surprise. Cherry wanted to stop this, but she couldn''t interfere too much. She had already taken a risk, bringing Kevin here. If she did something else, she would cross the line. She could only look at the closed door, nervous and uneasy. Sam also wanted to stop them, but he still remembered his promise to Anne that they would not fight again. He was afraid that it would start a fight if he confronted Kevin at all. On the other hand, Emily was afraid that only a few words between Anne and Kevin would cause a quarrel, which would affect her mood and the baby. In fact, she didn''t need to worry about it. "What did you want to say?" Anne asked coldly, shaking off Kevin''s hand. Kevin pressed his lips and didn''t say anything. His cold eyebrows and eyes raised, as if he were smiling. He was in a good mood, looking at Anne''s abdomen. "My son, Daddy''s here to see you," he said, slowly. This sentence startled Anne. The child was still very young and could not hear what he said at all. What was more, he just called the baby "son," which pissed Anne off. Her face was paler than before. She said angrily, "Okay. But just one little thing..." Kevin must have woken up on the right side of bed, for once. He didn''t get angry when he heard Anne correct him. Instead, he had a good attitude. He smiled and said, "Go ahead." With a grim look on her face, Anne said in a colder tone, "Quit assuming it''s a boy. We don''t know the sex of the baby yet. It could be a boy or a girl!" If it was a girl, the scene in her dream would not happen. Anne tried tofort herself with that thought. But in fact, she really wanted to tell him this a few days ago. In a confident, arrogant tone, Kevin continued with a smile, "I like girls. If it''s not a boy, we''ll have another one. Don''t forget¡ªit''s in the contract." "You..." Anne was furious. It was so easy for him to say "have another baby", as if it were easy to get pregnant. But this was not the case for her and Kevin. They had to have sex several times a week, and each time, he would torture her for a long time before he stopped. She once wondered if there was something wrong with Kevin, or if it was her fault that it took so long to get pregnant. They never used any protection, and they ate healthy. Besides, the two of them were both very able- bodied. Why was it so difficult to conceive a child? When she was finally pregnant, of course she was happy and cherished it. But the process was not as simple as he said. Kevin didn''t notice what was on Anne''s mind. He had done what he should do. He said in a good mood, "My son, I''m leaving. I''lle to see you again when I have time." "I''m warning you, Kevin. Don''te around here if you''re going to call our kid your son. We just don''t know!" Anne warned in a fierce tone. Kevinughed and said without any trace of fear, "Then I''ll call it baby. Baby, is that okay? Whether it is a boy or a girl, I''ll love it all the same." He stared at Anne''s abdomen with a smile and said lovingly, "Baby, I''m leaving. If you miss me, tell me. I''lle to see you at once." How could it tell him? Anne was sneering in her mind Daydreaming? But when she thought of the dream, her face turned cold again. She urged Kevin to leave impatiently, "Get out. I''m tired." After saying that, she walked to the bedside. Kevin couldn''t stay here any longer. Before he left, he said to Anne''s back, "Baby, Daddy is leaving." In the living room, Kevin solemnly told Emily to take good care of his baby and med her for not taking good care of it as well. Sam was a little annoyed, but he couldn''t get angry with Kevin overtly; he could only express his dissatisfaction with his actions. He paced back and forth in front of Kevin, and even kept mopping the floor, taking care to get Kevin''s feet as wet as possible. As a result, Kevin finally realized that Sam was driving him away. "Are you trying to say something?" Kevin asked angrily With a straight face, Sam said, "I''m surprised it took you this long." "You!" Kevin was so angry that he gritted his teeth and found that he had indeed stayed here for a long time, but he refused to admit it. "You should be the one leaving. This is my ce." "Then I''ll leave with Anne." Then Sam put down the mop and walked towards the door of Anne''s room. Kevin got angry and said, "I''m taking off. This house is too small. I don''t want to stay here! You can move to the East Mountain Vi tomorrow." Then he took Cherry''s arm and walked out. Emily was standing aside and secretly gave a thumbs up to Sam. Instead of lying on the bed, Anne leaned on the sofa with a bolster in her arms. She hadn''t made any business calls in three days. Was everything running smoothly? Did Kevin sign the contract with KIA? All kinds of things were bothering her, making her very uneasy. "Hey, Anne, you''re still awake." Emily appeared in front of Anne with a smile. Getting her thoughts under control, Anne looked at Emily intently and said, "Emily, can you do me a favor?" Chapter 19 Go Out With Guys Chapter 19 Go Out With Guys When Emily heard what Anne said, her heart sank. Anne was very serious, so Emily''s heart began to beat quite fast. She was worried that Anne''s n might be hard. But she still asked, "Anne, what''s the matter?" "Call Kevin and ask him if I can get in touch with my friend. I promise I won''t meddle inpany business." Anne had a strong aura innately. When she didn''t smile, she looked very no-nonsense. But right now Emily was flustered. She felt Anne was ming her for reporting to Kevin, rather than simply asking her to call Kevin. But she misunderstood what Anne meant. She really asked her to call him. Seeing Emily wringing her hands nervously, Anne didn''t know what to say. Did she scare her? She softened her tone and said, "Emily, I''m not saying you did anything wrong. Sometimes even I have to listen to Kevin." Hearing her words, Emily raised her head slightly, but was still a little nervous. Anne continued, "Please...I really need your help. If you feel embarrassed, give me your phone and I''ll call him myself." Emily replied immediately, "No, It''s not a big deal. What else do you want to ask him, Anne?" "Just what I asked." Emily called Kevin with Anne right there with her. Kevin was in a meeting, but he didn''t look happy. His furrowed eyebrows showed his displeasure. The meeting was supposed to be held an hour ago, but Cherry went to him and told him in person that Anne was not feeling well. She stopped by to visit her that morning, but Anne wouldn''t evene to This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. the living room to talk. When he heard this, Kevin immediately stood up from his chair and asked his secretary to dy the meeting. He rushed to Anne''s residence with Cherry in tow. When he found that she was standing on the balcony safe and sound, he felt relieved. He asked Emily what was going on. That was when he found out she wasn''t ill. She''d been sleeping a lot, and slept till the afternoon. Kevin was not satisfied with what was going on in the meeting. He frowned until the phone on the table rang. He raised his hand and motioned the person in front of the big screen to stop. Then he picked up the phone and said to the people in the meeting room, "That''s all for today''s meeting. If you can''te up with a n that I like, don''t quit at the normal time. All of you stay here and work overtime!" After saying that, he softened his tone. "Emily, do you have something to say?" Taking a look at Anne, Emily said, "Mr. Kevin, Anne wanted me to ask you if she could call her friend? She swears up and down that she isn''t going to try and run thepany. She just wants to spend some time with her friends." "Okay, but you and Sam have to follow her the whole time. Don''t let her get tired. Don''t let anything happen to my baby." "Will do, boss." Emily breathed a sigh of relief. After hanging up on Kevin, she asked with a smile, "So who are you gonna call, anyway?" Instead of answering her question, Anne smiled for the first time in so many days. Her features were delicate and exquisite. Although she was not mega-gorgeous, she was particrly good-looking. And now she was smiling, which stymied Emily. Emily looked straight at her and forgot her question. Taking the phone from her hand, Anne said, "Just a good friend." How she hoped that she hade up with this idea earlier. That way, she would have contacted Ryan already. Kevin was domineering in some ways, but sometimes he was reasonable. He basically imprisoned Anne, and enlisted Emily and Sam as jailers. The phone was soon connected, and Anne suddenly felt her tension drain away. She said, "It''s me, Anne." "Anne?" Ryan was surprised. He immediately stood up from his chair and asked in disbelief, "Did anything happen to you?" "Not really. I''d like to spend some time with you. See you in the Greenlight Forest an hour from now?" "Sounds good." "Awesome. We can catch up then." She hung up the phone and handed it to Emily. Emily had been standing in the room all the time. After hearing what she said on the phone, she asked carefully, "Are you really going out?" "Yes." Anne walked to the wardrobe in a good mood. However, Emily was a little worried. Anne said with her back to Emily, "Go and tell Sam." By that time, Emily couldn''t stop her. Once she made up her mind, she wasn''t changing it for anyone. Hearing that from Emily, Sam frowned and asked, "Did Kevin agree?" "Yes." Emily felt like Anne had set a trap for her. She helped her get Kevin''s approval, but she wasn''t expect that Anne was going to do more than she had asked. And now it was toote to regret it. Sam went to prepare to get everything ready, a worried expression on his face. Anne had just gotten changed when she came out of her room. She seemed to be in a good mood, with a smile curling the corners of her mouth. Sam was half worried and half happy. He was worried that she would be tired, but he was happy because she was in a good mood. He didn''t get to see that very often. Before leaving, Emily asked, "Anne, who are you going to see? You seem excited." "A childhood friend." The corners of Anne''s mouth lifted into a smirk. She was wearing a grey and blue striped dress, looking noble and reserved. In fact, she had a strong aura. Dressed in mature clothing, she always looked like a quiet and magnificent queen. Sweet casual clothes made her look more attractive and mature. But this time she decided to dress her outfit up a little. Passersby couldn''t take their eyes off of her. When she heard that, Emily pursed her lips. Even if Anne didn''t tell them who it was now, they''d definitely find outter. Anne was in a good mood all the way there. The car soon rolled up outside the Greenlight Forest. The Greenlight Forest was a coffee shop. There were many trees around it and rays of sun fell on the table through the leaves. Guests sitting at the table felt like they were in a verdant forest. It was a members-only club, exclusive and trendy. When she found this ce, Anne fell in love with it. Ryan spotted her before she entered. He was standing near a wall of ss. He walked quickly to the door to wee her. He was wearing a well-cut grey suit and a white shirt. The frown on his face made him look more austere. But his seriousness made his mature and steady charm more obvious. As soon as he entered the coffee shop, he found the waitresses looking at him. They''d steal nces, look away quickly, and whisper among themselves. The shy ones were flushed with admiration, and the more confident ones were eager to take his order. Ignoring the two people standing beside Anne, he asked anxiously, "I haven''t been able to get ahold of you for awhile. Everything okay at home?" After saying that, he looked at Sam and Emily with fierce hostility. Emily acted like she didn''t care. Sam remained expressionless. He didn''t care about Ryan''s anger at all either. On the contrary, Anne smiled and said, "No, I''m good. I''m just not feeling well, so I let Kevin deal with the office." "Then why didn''t you let me know?" Ryan was no dummy. He could tell there was more to the story than what Anne was telling him. Looking at the table behind him, she said, "Let''s sit down." Ryan nodded and walked quickly to the table. However, Anne was a step slower than before. After sitting at the table, he asked, "Why are they following you?" "You''ve met Emily before. She''s my assistant." Anne smiled. Ignoring the anger in Ryan''s eyes, she continued to introduce, "And Sam is our family doctor. I''ve known him for years." "Are you sick?" Ryan was startled and immediately forgot how angry he got when Anne didn''t contact him for a few days. Anne shook her head and said with a smile, "No, the Fu Family requested it. Sam''s a good guy. He''s like a friend to me, as well as a good doctor." Ryan felt a stabbing pain in his heart and then frowned. He felt jealous. His face was cold and his eyes were stiff. When he red at people, he could be intimidating. Although he was cold and fierce, Sam was an unbreakable iceberg. He turned a blind eye to Ryan''s hostility and showed no fear. "If you still didn''t show up, I might have hunt Kevin down at night, threatened him with a knife and gotten him to let you go." A few seconds passed, then a smile slowly spread across Ryan''s face. He was joking. He shocked Anne at first, then made her smile. Anne smiled and challenged him. "Why don''t you do it in the daytime?" Ryan pretended to be innocent, indicating that he was exposed by Anne. Then he said pitifully, "That might be hard. You know he''s the president of AN Group." He hid the jealousy and anger in his heart well. Ryan was a very rational man. He knew what he wanted and how to get it, and when to back down. Although he liked Anne, he knew there was no way for him topete with Kevin. He was a man with a n. He was no dreamer, he had concrete goals. Some goals might take longer to achieve than others. He would seed as long as he followed the n. After seeing Ryan, Anne felt relieved. She told Ryan that she left AN Group temporarily and suggested he could just sign the contract with Kevin. "Although Kevin is a little domineering, he knows how to run apany. You should have heard about the story of AN Group." When she spoke about Kevin, a ghost of a smile appeared on her face. She really regarded Ryan as a friend whom she could talk to, so she spoke the softest words in her heart without reservation. Ryan was sensitive, and recognized the light in Anne''s eyes. He clenched his fists and rage rose in his heart. A man in a suit stood outside the cafe, his mouth twisted into a mirthless smile, his eyes as cold as ice. A few secondster, he walked into the cafe. As soon as he stepped inside, he said sarcastically, "You really seize every moment to enjoy your life, Mrs. Anne. You even go out with guys when you''re pregnant." Chapter 20 Love Affair Chapter 20 Love Affair He looked at Anne''s eyes and took it as her love for Ryan. Eyes immediately shifted towards him as soon as he spoke. They watched him closely, listening to every word he said. "Mr. n?" Emily called him first, getting his attention. n stood not far away from her. He was wearing a white suit, making him look very neat and elegant like a model. The way he carried himself made him stand out much easier. Having been raised by a rich family, he had learned to be a gentleman since he was a child. He was trained to act properly in front of many people and he had done so throughout the years. However, being born a yboy, he was naturally arrogant and unrestrained. His nting eyes slightly raised, gleaming with irony and contempt. His gaze seemed to burn a hole through Anne as if he was looking at a disgusting rubbish. There was no question that he was being rude to her, disregarding her feelings. In return, Anne never gave him a friendly look either. They didn''t like each other and this was evident in the way the cold expression returned to Anne''s face. She knew that n didn''t like her all along and that they wouldn''t get along. She didn''t expect him to be friendly to her at that moment, but she didn''t know that he could be this rude. As expected, n didn''t disappoint her. He looked at her with more irony and yfulness on his face and asked, "What? Is Mrs. Anne going to kill me to keep the secret?" At this time, Ryan stood up from the chair calmly, smiling sheepishly. He said as he looked at n, "Mr. n, if I''m not mistaken, you''re a friend of Kevin''s. Are you dissatisfied with Mr. Kevin or do you have any issues with Mrs. Anne?" Taking his time, he kicked the ball towards n. n saw this as a challenge and didn''t like it. His eyes immediately turned cold as he looked back at Ryan. He was dressed in a white suit, looking like a prince who had just walked out of a fairy tale. He looked so graceful, that no one would doubt that he was a gentleman from his appearance. However, his inner self-restraint was nothing like that of a prince. His eyes were distant and as cold as ice. His facial expression was out of the ordinary. He was still disgusted with Anne and he had no n on hiding it. He said with a voice so cold, "Kevin and I are friends. What I don''t like is Anne''s shameless behavior!" He didn''t even want to be elegant, that was for sure. It was evident in the way he spoke of her. He couldn''t help but blurt out, "Mrs. Anne, if you don''t want to care about your image, just consider Mr. Kevin''s. Your actions reflect your husband. After all, he is a public figure who had been on the cover of Global People for three times which is known by hundreds of millions of people. While his wife cheated on him..." "That''s enough, n!" Although he said that he was Kevin''s friend, he humiliated his wife in public. Hearing this made Kevin furious. Half an hour ago, he called Emily to ask where they were going. When he knew that they were going to the Greenlight Forest, he could no longer sit still. He tried to hold himself together as best he could. Although he didn''t know what kind of friend Anne came to see, he knew that she had no friend. So this made him uneasy, thinking about his wife. Unexpectedly, as soon as he stepped into the Greenlight Forest, he saw Ryan. His anger red up. He took deep breaths to calm himself and it took most of his energy to do so. But what n said made him angrier, releasing all theposure he tried so hard to keep. He didn''t like what he heard and he was clear about that. He shouted coldly, his voice ringing in their ears. "It is not your ce to teach her a lesson!" he shouted. With a sharp look on his face, almost murderous, Kevin walked up to Anne and stood beside her. Emily watched from a distance. She saw that Kevin was not simply beside Anne. He was standing slightly in front of her. His stance looked as if he was protecting her. However, Anne who stood right in the circle didn''t notice that. She was too stunned that Kevin was there. Slowly, he raised his head and looked at n. His eyes were as cold as ice and his whole body was full of anger. "I''m afraid you don''t know that Mr. Ryan and my wife grew up together. My wife is very loyal to him as a childhood friend. n, it is not good to distort facts. So I think you''re doing this because you still hate me for what happened to your sister." n''s face darkened upon hearing this. He really wanted to humiliate Anne today, but he didn''t expect that Kevin would show up in the middle of it. This was not what he had nned. Everything that he thought of for today was ruined. He could feel beads of sweat running down his back. But just as quickly, he was desperately looking for an out. Kevin breathed slowly to calm himself down. He gently took Anne''s hand and gave an apologetic smile to Ryan, who was standing across from him. "Mr. Ryan, my wife is pregnant. It is not good for her to stay outside too long. I''ll take her home for now and schedule another meeting to see you when she feels better." As soon as Kevin''s hand touched Anne''s, she trembled as if it had been electrocuted. Subconsciously, her first reaction was to break away from Kevin''s grip. She knew she couldn''t take her hand back, but it was just a little toote. Because Ryan, who sat opposite to her, noticed her tiny movement. His brows furrowed and his eyes darkened slightly. There was a strange feeling that spread from his heart. His gut told him that something was off. Kevin felt Anne''s doubt and was a little annoyed by her resistance. But in order to teach n a lesson, he had to hold her hand tightly. He knew that he must show them that Anne was his wife and that she was a good one. Moreover, he wanted to teach her a lesson. He had to make n believe that Anne and Ryan were just friends but his wife could never fool him. How dare she tryst with another man without telling him?! But he knew his priorities so he would teach her a lesson after he dealt with n! Everyone present in the scene knew that Kevin was just acting. He held Anne''s hand tightly as they walked away. He did not let it go even for a brief second. Anne felt a sharp paining from the back of her hand, and her left face was burning. She was in a trance. It had to be some sort of trance because it was the first time that Kevin had held her hand. n also knew that Kevin was venting his anger for Anne. He could feel the fury from Kevin''s blood rising. Although he was unwilling, he cautiously stepped aside and said, "Kevin, I''m sorry. I was drunk and said some nonsense. I hope your wife don''t take it to heart." Y-Your wife? Anne had a sharp intake of breath and opened her eyes. She was surprised. It was the first time that she had actually heard someone call her one''s wife. Although it was strange, as it was so unfamiliar to her ears, she felt satisfied and moved. She was so surprised by this that she forgot about Kevin holding her hand. He was practically pulling her out of the caf¨¦ toe with him. Emily looked at Anne and as if only noticing her frightened expression, Emily felt sweat on her back. She did not want this for her, and she wanted Anne to know that. She med herself to death, because she told Kevin where Anne was. She didn''t expect to see this but it was already toote. She had no idea that Anne wasing to see Ryan. If she did, she would have hidden it from him anyway. As they got into the car, Anne sat in the back seat and Kevin sat beside her, giving off a cold aura that chilled her to the bones. She was afraid and there was no way to hide that. She felt the atmosphere in the car go low and tense, as if it would explode at any time. No one spoke first. They were both contemting what to say to each other. Taking a deep breath, Anne decided to break the embarrassing silence. "Just now¡ª" "No need to exin," he interrupted. Stunned by the sudden outburst, Anne just shut up and ignored the things in her head. She sighed. "I don''t want to exin anything. I just want to say thank you." His head turned to her as if she just piqued his interest. "Oh?" Kevin raised his eyebrows and squinted at her. He asked, "For what?" "T-Thank you for speaking for me just now." If she were being honest, at least at that moment, she felt that Kevin was still on her side. If Kevin hadn''t spoken first, she would have retorted n''s mean words. And knowing herself, she knew that it would never be good. Kevin snorted and stopped talking. He wanted tough but he couldn''t. Anne might not take him seriously if he did. Gently, he closed his eyes, and his long and thin eyshes trembled slightly. There was a trace of fatigue on his angr face. It was only then that he felt tired. To save his energy, Kevin didn''t say anything more, so Anne pursed her lips and turned to look out of the window. The constantly changing scenery gradually became strange. She sat up a little straighter to be able to look at the camphor trees on both sides of the road. Her lips turned down into a frown when she realized that it was not the way home. "Where are we going?" Kevin only looked at her briefly. "East Mountain Vi," he answered, his voice a little low like a whisper. He said this as if only in this way could he calm himself down. Anne raised her eyebrows, remembering their conversation about this. Although she was unhappy, she didn''t dare change his decision. Long before, he had already asked her to move to the East Mountain Vi. She never thought that he''d take her there now, especially since it had already slipped from her mind. Once again, she leaned back against her seat as she looked out of the window at the changing scenery. If she wasn''t with the one she loved, what was the difference as to where she lived? She kept thinking about this while she watched the beauty of the nature outside the car window. She released a sigh. It was just a temporary foothold. She would get out soon. Momentster, she found them slowing to a stop in the East Mountain Vi. The hollowed out French iron door slowly opened, and a lengthened Lincoln car drove into the courtyard under the gaze of everyone. She was suddenly aware of her surroundings. The Butler walked to the side of the car and opened the back door. Kevin got off first and went straight into the room without looking at the people inside. He didn''t even wait for her. Getting out of the car with the help of the Butler, Anne looked at the cold and hard back of Kevin. She stared at it for as long as she could and felt a pain rose in her heart again. To ease away the pain, she breathed in and released it slowly. Then she looked up at the strange vi, thinking it was just another huge cage. She reached out and touched her abdomen. If the baby was a boy, she should be able to end all of this soon. But that also meant that she would lose her child... Her heart ached even more, beating rapidly as she realized that she did not know what the future held. "If you don''t like it, I will try to make him change his mind," Sam said in a low voice, as if he had read Anne''s mind. Her head turned to look at him. She thought about what to say next. But Anne was quiet for a while, and then her eyes became cold again. "No. It makes no difference where I live anyway." She walked in slowly, still unsure of the purpose of transferring here. In the big living room, the servants stood in a row. As soon as she entered, Anne scanned the whole room until her gaze fell on the man sitting on the sofa. He sat there without a single hint of expression on his face. His legs were crossed, his slender fingers casually ced on his long legs that were ced together, and his other hand fell on the table in front of him, intentionally or unintentionally knocking. "Da, Da, Da." The rhythmic sound was annoying, but the man was clearly enjoying it. Apanied by Sam, Anne started to walk upstairs. But before she could walk past him, hiszy voice came. "Have a seat," the man said. With a cold expression on her face, Anne didn''t say anything. She refused to let him control over her emotions so she tried her best to hide it. She went to the sofa and sat down quietly. As she settled, she finally looked at Kevin. The air around them seemed to have solidified as the tension weighed heavy on them, and Anne said, "D-Do you have something important to say? If there is none, I''d really like to go upstairs first." She knew that the room should be upstairs. She needed a good rest and she really wanted it at this point. Careful not to anger him, she waited for a few seconds. When he didn''t reply, she stood up to leave only to be stopped by him. "Stop!" he shouted. He withdrew his white fingers from the table and looked up casually at Anne''s beautiful back. His low voice came out of his throat. "Are you so unwilling to sit with me?" Hearing this, Anne frowned. He was confusing her. ''Is Kevin crazy? He was the one who was unwilling, '' she thought. "You know it," he added. Standing straighter, Anne forced herself to turn around and look straight into Kevin''s eyes. Despite her rapid heartbeat, sheposed herself enough to say something back. "I''m really tired today and I want to have a rest." Kevin sneered at this, his cold thin lips slightly hooked, and the tension in the atmosphere felt heavier. His fists were clenched and his jaw was tight as he shouted, "I do understand! I understand perfectly Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. that you are more willing to sit with your childhood sweetheart! Tell me, why did you go see Ryan behind my back?" "Behind your back?" That was what it took for Anne to let go of theposure she tried so hard to hold on to. All of a sudden, she looked up at Kevin and said angrily, "What do you mean by behind your back?" Her eyes were razor sharp as she burned holes through his. She bellowed, "I have already asked for your permission!" But Kevin did not buy it. "Have you asked for it?" He stood up. His height was nearly 1.9 meter, which gave people a sense of oppression. Coupled with his strong figure, when he approached her step by step, she felt that she could no longer breathe. "Think about it carefully with your brain, Anne. If I knew it was Ryan, do you really think I would still let you go?" Raising her head, she saw Kevin''s knitted brows and the inexplicable emotions in his eyes. Clearly, he was angry. But so what? She knew that she did nothing wrong. She didn''t mean to break hisw, and she did tell him. Anne scoffed. "Can you at least be reasonable? Ryan is my friend, and it''s normal for me to see him. Please don''t gauge the heart of a gentleman with your own mean measure." She didn''t want to think about it but what happened earlier was proof that hecked trust. So even though it hurt, Anne nced at Kevin and continued, "Unless you don''t trust me." "Yes, I just don''t trust you. Do you think I should?" Kevin said coldly, squinting his dark and deep eyes as his gaze and his words tore Anne apart. Chapter 21 The One In Wrath Chapter 21 The One In Wrath Anne couldn''t believe that Kevin would say something so preposterous. Understandably, she got upset and stated with so much annoyance in her tone, "Kevin, whether you believe it or not, it''s up to you." Right after that, she felt a sharp pain in her stomach which caused her to lean forward. She pursed her lips and clenched her fists, trying her best to endure the pain. But when she saw his face right up to hers, she snapped. "Yes, I went out with him without telling you. Did I do something wrong? Didn''t you tell me that it was fine to see my friend? Even if I didn''t tell it was to see him, what''s the big deal? Why are you making such a big fuss right now? If I told you about it in the first ce, would you even let me go?" Kevin''s first response to her questions was a menacing grin on his face. Anne didn''t know whether he was mocking her or he was about to go in a rage. Unfortunately for Anne, her words struck a nerve in Kevin. With hate in his eyes, he just stared at her. He then raised his hand and started to approach her so he could p her in the face. As luck would have it, the next words someone uttered would cause him to stop dead in his tracks. "Kevin, don''t forget that she''s pregnant right now." With Kevin looking like a fool, Anne sneered while staring at the hand that was about to hit her. In her mind, she didn''t expect that he actually wanted to hit her. On second thought, it made sense. Every time something didn''t go his way, he would get so furious and it was normal if he resorted to violence. After a while, a faint smirk appeared on Anne''s pale lips. Calmly, she looked straight into Kevin''s eyes and said, "What now? Are you mad? Just get it over with!" At that time, she knew in her heart that it was better to stay silent than to agitate him even more. Especially since she knew what kind of a man Kevin was. However, she just couldn''t control herself that day. The more anguish that was around her, the more joyful she became. After a while, cold sweat started to appear on her forehead while she involuntarily rubbed her stomach with her hands. The moment Sam noticed what she was doing, he ced his hand on her back and said, "Let''s give her some time to rest. It''s bad for the baby if she gets too stressed." With those words, Kevin finally lowered his hand that was stuck mid-air. He didn''t really intend to physically hurt her. He honestly just wanted to frighten her. The only problem with that was he forgot how fearless the woman who he was trying to intimidate. He walked back to the sofa to sit down, his eyes unconsciously closing from fatigue. While rubbing his temples, he irritably said, "Fine, send her to her room to rest. She''s not allowed to leave that room without my permission!" "What? Do you want to lock me up for the rest of my life, Kevin?" Anne frantically asked in a loud voice. It was as if she forgot that a child was growing in her belly. What about her life and work if she was kept there during her entire lifetime? "A lifetime? I didn''t expect you to be so clingy." Kevin wildly mocked Anne. He knew that if he stayed there for one more second, he would have another fit of rage because of her. As a result, he stood up, walked to leave, and didn''t bother to answer her question. All of a sudden, Anne copsed to the ground when she saw that Kevin was already far away. Sam immediately rushed over to help her up. With a frown and a meek voice, he said, "Let''s go, I''ll take you to your room." "Thank you, Sam," she replied while nodding her head. No matter how miserable things had been, she knew she would findfort while lying down in bed. After a night''s sleep, the pain in her stomach that she was feeling the day before finally disappeared. However, she felt a bit nauseous when she sat up on her bed. Luckily, things weren''t all that bad. The sight of the beautiful tall trees outside the window greeted her when she opened her eyes. Next, a soothing calm breeze entered through the window while the birds outside chirped a beautiful melody. Finally, the gentle winds raised up the elegant white curtains of the room which gave her an odd sense of relief. When Anne entered her roomst night, she was too upset to look around. But now, she couldn''t be happier about the room she was staying in, especially since the entire room had the most gorgeous interiors. The refreshing green walls and the unique doors and furniture made her feel like she was in a ground. It was another thing to be happy about since she knew it was specifically for yoga. Anne didn''t really have any other hobbies besides asionally doing yoga. However, she had to wait until she gave birth before she could start doing it again. Next to the rug was a row of white bookshelves. She wasn''t much of a book reader but she still appreciated the fact that all of the books had hardcovers. Right after that, Anne made her way to the window to look at the view outside. The sun that was slowly rising from the east was the first thing that caught her attention. Then, the green leaves dazzling and prancing around under the radiating sunlight made her smile a little. With so much beauty around her, Anne felt much better about her situation. And since it was a new day, she knew that letting all of the disappointments and problems fly away with the wind was the best thing she could do for the baby. "Knock, knock, knock..." A series of gentle knocks came on the door. Thinking it was just the servants, Anne turned around and softly said, "Come in." Right after she said that, the door opened and Emily walked in. She was wearing dark blue sportswear, which was a little different from her usual ensemble. "Hey, how are you doing?" Emily calmly asked. But when she saw the smile on Anne''s face, she realized that there was nothing to worry about even after what happenedst night. "I''m fine," Anne replied while walking to the sofa to sit down. Since she was wearing thin white pajamas, Emily quickly noticed how slim she truly was. Additionally, her long hair covered her shoulders which made her look thinner than she actually was. Whenever a breeze would go through the window, a few strands of her hair would stuck to her face which showed how pale she was. Anyone who saw Anne would definitely think she was sick and would feel sorry for her. Because of this, Emily sighed in her heart and thought to herself, ''Kevin should really take care of her. She might have Unfortunately, Kevin only had his heart set on Cherry even though Anne looked as pitiful as a person could be. "Look at you, you look much better today. That being said, you should probablyb your hair since you look a bit worn," Emily yfully said while walking towards Anne to cheer her up. When she sat down beside her, she added, "How about we head downstairs right now? Sam has been awake before the sun rose just to prepare a very nutritious breakfast for you." As soon as Anne heard the word "breakfast", she felt sick to her stomach. Even if she didn''t eat a single thing before going to bed, she didn''t feel hungry at all. "What''s wrong?" Emily asked when she saw the frown on her face. She thought something wrong must''ve happened so she moved closer and asked, "Are you okay?" "I''m fine..." Anne replied while waving her left hand without so much force. Then she added, "I just have a stomachache right now but I''m fine. Let''s go downstairs and eat." Their breakfast that morning was just what a pregnant woman needed. It was full of highly nutritious food that would keep a baby and a mother healthy. It was obvious that Sam tried his best to provide Anne what she needed. However, as soon as she sat down, Anne covered her mouth with her hand and quickly rushed to the bathroom to vomit. The aroma of the food instantly made her feel nauseous. Emily couldn''t help but feel sad for Anne when she heard how badly she was throwing up. "E..." Anne said to herself in disgust after lifting her head up. Although she didn''t let out much, she couldn''t bear the repulsing taste of retching that was left in her mouth. When she was done in the bathroom, she almost didn''t have the strength to stand up. Fortunately, Emily came to her aid and helped her walk. "Sadly, you need to get used to these kinds of things," Emily said while helping Anne sit on the sofa. While this was happening, Sam stared at Anne with worry in his eyes. During the first month of pregnancy, morning sickness was extremelymon. However, Anne''s reaction to any food she smelled was too severe for it to be considered normal. Even after all of Sam''s effort to cook her the best food possible, she still couldn''t put a single bite of food in her mouth. As a response to Emily, Anne just nodded her head. She frowned at the fact that it was wrong of her not to eat anything, especially since the baby in her stomach must be starving. With that in mind, Anne couldn''t help but feel like she was an inadequate mother. No matter how strong the love she had for her child, she still couldn''t muster up the strength to eat anything. "I''m sorry, I really can''t eat anything right now," Anne sorrowfully uttered while looking up at Sam. After a while, she asked out of desperation, "Is there any other way?" Sam immediately knew what she meant by those words. If eating solid food wasn''t an option, they would have to rely on injections to give the baby enough nutrients to grow healthy. But that kind of thing was Sam''sst resort. After all, it wasn''t the best for mother and child. He swore to himself that he would never do it unless he really needed to. Because of this, he answered her in a serious tone, "No." With his frigid gaze, the look on Anne''s face changed little by little. It was clear to her that Sam was telling her not to even think about relying on injections. Hoping not to upset him anymore, Anne sat quietly on the sofa and didn''t bother to insist on the matter. After a while, Anne picked up some fruit since there was nothing else she could eat without vomiting. Emily couldn''t help but worry about her. She would always throw up anything which Sam had tried to feed her. "What?" Kevin eximed after he mmed his desk with his broad palms. After a few minutes, he managed to calm down a little and asked, "Are you sure that Anne hasn''t eaten anything in a few days?" The anger he was feeling from his fight with Anne had held him back from visiting her in the past few days. He didn''t know a single reason why she wouldn''t eat so he thought, ''Damn it! What does she think she''s doing? Is she intentionally hurting the baby?'' "Kevin? Was it about Anne?" Cherry, who was sitting on the sofa, immediately stood up and asked when she saw the look on Kevin''s face. She hadn''t heard any news about Anne for several days. The only thing that Kevin had told her was that he sent her to the East Mountain Vi. ''Damn it! I''ve never even been to that vi and that damn Anne is living there already. Hmm... I should probably check up on her and make sure she''s not doing anything fishy, '' Cherry thought to herself. "Okay, I''ll be there in a few minutes," Kevin said before hanging up the call. He stood up to leave, but before he did, he turned to Cherry. "I have to settle something at the East Mountain Vi. You should head back for now." After that, Kevin walked towards Cherry while staring at her lovingly. Before saying goodbye, he lowered his head and kissed her on the forehead. Although he was sincere with his actions, Cherry felt it was half-hearted. Despite this, she grabbed on to his arm with a smile and said, "Kevin, can Ie with you? I don''t mean to be clingy or anything. I just overhead that Anne hasn''t eaten anything for days and I''m a little worried about her." To convince him even more, Cherry started to show a worried face and even shed a few tears. Then she added, "In fact, I think I know exactly what''s happening to her. Maybe I can rmend a few things to ease her troubles." Kevin stopped, stared at Cherry''s face, and nodded in agreement. When they arrived at the East Mountain Vi, Anne was trying to entertain herself by sitting on a swing in the backyard. She didn''t really like the feeling of being imprisoned. However, she had to admit that the East Mountain Vi was pretty much one of the best ces to be imprisoned in. Even the courtyard''s design was well thought of, to the point that she couldn''t help but sit on the swing which was the yard''s centerpiece. Emily feared that Anne would fall on the swing so she tried her best to stop her from riding it. Unfortunately for her, Anne''s sweet words and promise to be careful won her over. As a result, she just stayed quiet while standing beside her in case something did happen to her. While this was happening, Sam went out to buy something and didn''t tell them when he woulde back. Since Emily was the only one there to keep Anne safe, she kept repeating in her head these words, ''Don''t let anything happen to her.'' Content (C) N?v/elDra/ma.Org. "Anne, you''d bettere down. I''m still a little worried." Chapter 22 Misunderstanding Deepened Chapter 22 Misunderstanding Deepened Anne looked back at Emily and smiled gently. "It''s not easy for me to find something I like. Don''t you want me to be happy?" Emily pursed her lips. Her eyes showed a hint of worry. "I''m just worried about you. What if something happens to you?" she said, trying her best to sound calm. Anne wore a white dress. When she sat on the swing, the hemline of her dress fell just above her knees, revealing her fair white thighs. The household slippers she was wearing revealed her bony feet when she slightly swung herself. Her long hair swirled in the wind exuding a faint fragrance. Anne looked up and smiled as she felt the tender sunlight on her face. At this moment, she felt freedom. She thought that she could definitely live a blissful life without Kevin at her sight. Kevin stood in front of the courtyard. The servant was about to call Anne but Kevin stopped her. From the point where he stood, he could see the side of her face, her genuine smile, and her unparalleled beauty. He was enticed to move towards her. She had always been beautiful but he never appreciated it until now. Cherry was stunned when she saw Anne. Instead of seeing a lonely and sickly pregnant woman, they found a happy and cheerful woman. She was so angry that she clenched her fists tightly, but there was nowhere to vent her frustrations to. When she turned around to look forfort, she saw Kevin''s eyes fixated on Anne, and there was a trace of admiration in his eyes. She gritted her teeth. No, she would never allow Kevin to look at anyone but her like that. "Anne, it seems like you''re having a good time!" said Cherry, walking towards Anne in a noble and elegant manner. When Anne heard Cherry''s voice, her shoulders trembled slightly, and her smile fleeted away. She stopped, but didn''t turn around. Because she knew that Cherry was not alone. "You''re pregnant. It''s better not to y with such dangerous things. Come down now! That''s dangerous!" Cherry reached out her hand to help Anne get down. When she looked at Cherry, she was frightened when she saw a deceptive smile written on her face. She hurriedly got off the swing, but she almost stumbled to the ground because of her slippers. Fortunately, Emily stepped forward just in time to catch Anne. Thankfully, an ident was prevented from happening. N?velDrama.Org owns all content. But when Kevin saw this, he was furious. "Anne, are you okay?" Regret could be seen in Emily''s eyes. In her mind, something like that wouldn''t have happened if she had just declined Anne''s request. She was doomed in Kevin''s presence. "I''m fine." Anne stood still and looked at Kevin''s deep eyes. Anger and disdain could be felt in his gaze. In a snap, Anne''s heart was beating like a drum. Why did he look at her like this every time he showed up? He had always hated her. What was the point ofing to see her? "Anne, who let you sit on it? How could you do such a dangerous thing?" Sure enough, his heart was filled with anger when he looked at Anne. He covered his face with his hand and gritted his teeth. This pregnant woman didn''t know how to be careful. Standing up straight, Anne looked away from Kevin. She turned around with a cold shoulder, ready to walk back to the room. She would feel better if she ignored him. However, her silence made the situation even worse. Kevin got riled up when she saw Anne heading towards the room. He ran after her to grab her arm and said, "Can''t you hear me talking to you?" Kevin sounded so angry that it made Emily tremble in fear. Now with Sam not being there, if Kevin became uncontroble, there was nothing she could do to stop it. Anne scowled when she felt the pain in her arm. Kevin must have grabbed it firmly. "You''re hurting me." She raised her head and looked at Kevin coldly. "Humph!" Kevin snorted. He tightened his grip even more and said, "So what if I''m hurting you? You don''t really care, do you?" ''I don''t really care? How could Kevin say those words?'' Anne felt her heart getting heavier. "Kevin, how can you do that?" When Cherry saw how rude Kevin was to Anne, she couldn''t resist It took her a lot of effort to take Kevin''s hands off Anne''s arm. After that, she saw that Anne''s wrist had turned red. The corners of her mouth curled into a smile as she proudly raised an eyebrow. But she immediately hid her enthusiasm with the pretense of concern and distress. "Oh my God! It turned red. Does it hurt, Anne?" she said while covering her mouth in shock. Hypocrisy, it was sheer hypocrisy. Anne was not deceived by such hypocrisy that Cherry showed. She didn''t want to see or even hear from her anymore. She said nothing, and stared at her with a cold face. Yes, it did hurt, but so what? The pain on her wrist was nothingpared to what Cherry had caused her. No amount of physical injury could everpare to what Cherry did to her. Cherry''s deceptive look shifted away when she heard Anne, but she couldn''t lose her temper. She just cursed her in her mind. Nevertheless, she pretended to be aggrieved. She pulled Kevin''s sleeve and whispered, "Kevin, look at you. You made her ignore me." "How dare you ignore Cherry?" said Kevin while pointing a finger at Anne. Anne was not surprised with what Kevin said. She knew all along that Cherry was the center of his life while she was just nothing. The breeze of the warm wind seeped into her skin and made her shiver. Every corner of her body was moring to her, which made her very ufortable. But she still nced at Cherry and said softly, "I''m fine, thank you for your concern." "I''m just worried about you. You shouldn''t be ying on a swing because you''re pregnant, right? It''s very dangerous for you and the baby." Cherry put her hand on Anne''s shoulder and added, "Don''t be mad at Kevin. He did it for your own good." Emily took a deep breath. The fiasco was too much, and she couldn''t stand Cherry''s hypocrisy any longer. She stepped forward wrapped her hands on Anne''s back. She smiled at Cherry and said, "Of course Anne already knows that. Thank you for your concern, Miss Cherry." "You''re wee." Cherry smiled at the two of them. But in the eyes of Emily and Anne, Cherry''s smile was nothing but a disguise. "Let''s go inside. You must be tired after standing for so long, right?" Cherry''s act of consideration made Kevin feel relieved. He put his hands around her back and walked inside. Anne sighed in relief as she looked at the two of them walking away. She asked herself, did she live so humbly for a mere ten percent of the shares? Was she really going to leave after the baby was born? What kind of life would she have after that? "Oh my God, Anne! Why are your hands and feet so cold?" When Emily took Anne''s hand, she was shocked. Anxiety and worry clouded her eyes as she stared at Anne. She was so worried, but she didn''t dare to speak too loud. If Kevin was disturbed again, it would be even more troublesome for Anne. "Really?" Anne furrowed her eyebrows, but she remained calm. "I''m fine. Let''s go inside and see what they want to do." Looking at the sad expression written all over Anne''s face, Emily sighed and said, "Anne, you must love yourself well." "Silly girl, what are you talking about?" Anne turned around and nced at the wobbly swing in the yard. There seemed to be something missing in the courtyard. It was her favorite lemon tree that was missing. "Emily, find someone tomorrow to help me move the lemon tree at home to this yard." "What?" Anne walked inside the room and left Emily confused. Emily turned round and swept her eyes across the courtyard. Although it was beautiful, it was still the past that Anne missed. When Anne entered the room, she saw Kevin and Cherry sitting on the sofa intimately. After hesitating for a few seconds, she straightened up and walked in. Her movements were not too loud or too quiet, but just enough for them two to hear. She was sitting on Kevin''sp. Her warm body clung to Kevin''s broad chest, and her fair hands fell on his shoulders. When she saw Annee in, she smiled at her confidently. "Anne, we will stay here for dinner today!" She didn''t expect that Cherry would say such words. Anne wasn''t the only person unhappy about her announcement. Kevin also frowned at what he heard. He raised his hand and put it around Cherry''s slender waist. "Why are we staying here to eat? How about I take you out today? We could order your favorite food." As soon as he finished speaking, his finger had touched the tip of Cherry''s delicate nose. He pinched it gently. Anne''s heart felt like it was being cut open with a knife after witnessing the scene. Nevertheless, she had already gotten used to it. "No, Kevin. Didn''t you say that Anne couldn''t eat? I think it''s because no one is eating with her. If we stay to apany her, maybe she could eat." Cherry wrapped her arms around Kevin. She pouted her lips and acted like a child to persuade him. Of course, Kevin wouldn''t refuse Cherry''s request even though he didn''t want to have dinner with the woman he hated so much. But for the child in her belly, he was willing to convince himself to do anything. After hearing Cherry''s request, Anne raised her head and said with a clear voice, "Aunt Amy, Mr. Kevin will be staying over for dinner today. Please prepare more food." Amy was a bit startled because she had never heard Anne speak in such a manner. Not long after, she nodded and proceeded to get busy in the kitchen. Chapter 23 Moving In Chapter 23 Moving In Kevin''s body froze. He nced at Anne, only to find that her gleaming dark eyes were neither humble nor pushy. Neither humble nor pushy? Shocked by his own thoughts, he wondered why he saw that in Anne''s eyes. She was clearly a vicious woman. In spite of her haggard appearance and the fact that she was pregnant with his child, he knew that her spitefulness would never change. He averted his eyes from her and got back to flirting with Cherry. Instead of avoiding the intimacy between the two, Anne sat on the sofa and started reading the magazine in her hands quietly. It was a parenting magazine providing information about what women should pay attention to during their pregnancy. Sam had bought it for her so that she could kill time. Although she was not interested in it at first, today she was unexpectedlymitted to reading it. The other two people sitting on the sofa were instead beginning to feel a little ufortable. Seeing that Anne hadn''t thrown a single nce at them, Cherry was seething in her ce restlessly. She decided to do something to attract Anne''s attention. "Kevin, will you take me out tonight?" Kevin''s mind had been absent so far. Even though he appeared to be engaged in conversation with Cherry, his gaze kept drifting to Anne from time to time. What was wrong with that woman sitting there calmly? "Okay. Where do you want to go?" cing a finger under Cherry''s delicate chin, he lifted it up and shed her a charming smile. He had deliberately raised his voice so that Anne, who was sitting next to them, could hear its husky and seductive tone clearly. She turned the page quietly, still engrossed in her read. Although Cherry was aware of Kevin''s real purpose, hearing his voice made her heart beat faster and her breath quicken unavoidably. "I want to sing. Just the two of us. Okay?" She softly brushed her lips on Kevin''s cheek and put her arms around his neck. Kevin snorted. Seeing that Anne still didn''t react, he couldn''t help but feel a little anxious. He didn''t know why, but Anne''s attitude today inflicted uneasiness upon him. "Anne, are you going with us?" Hearing her name, Anne raised her head while still turning the page. She seemed to have heard their conversation just now. "No, thanks. I''m pregnant. It''s not convenient for me to go out," she answered in a calm and decisive tone. "You..." Kevin was about to lose his temper, but he couldn''t find any reason for that. His face turning livid, he saw Anne''s calm expression and felt a surge of gloominess washing over him. "Anne, going out for a walk is good for the baby. How about we go together?" With anger bubbling up in her chest, Cherry forced a smile. "No, thanks. You two have fun tonight. I''m going to see if dinner is ready." After putting down her magazine, Anne stood up and looked away. She then turned around and left unhurriedly. Kevin couldn''t help it and stood up abruptly, pushing Cherry away. "Ah!" Stunned by his unexpected rudeness, Cherry screamed. But as soon as she did that, she covered her lips immediately. "Kevin, what''s wrong with you?" "There''s something I need to tell Anne. Wait for me here!" After throwing an irritated look at Cherry, he quickly rushed to catch up with Anne. "Anne, I heard that you haven''t eaten anything recently." Without turning her head, Anne stopped and replied coldly, "I can''t eat anything. It''s not that I don''t want to." "Is there any difference?" She felt a gust of gelid air swarming over her skin from behind, giving her goose bumps. She bit her lips and turned around to look Kevin in the eye. "Don''t worry. I won''t starve the baby out." "How can I know that it''s not hungry?" He shoot a pointing look at her. "From today on, I will stay with you until the baby is born!" "What?" She suddenly raised her head and looked at him in disbelief. Did she hear it right? Did Kevin mean that he would be around her until she would give birth to the baby? No, absolutely not! "Why... Why?" Anne wanted to refuse him, but she couldn''t find a good reason to do so. As the father, he had always attached great importance to the child. It was normal for him to be around the baby, and she had no excuses to object. But her heart was full of reasons for her not to ept that. "Do you need a reason?" Kevin''s tone was calm but charged with hidden warning. "How can I know that you''re not doing something harmful to avoid giving birth to the baby?" It turned out to be like that. A bitter smile appeared on Anne''s face. ''Right. This is what Kevin must think of me, isn''t it? That I would be capable of hurting my own unborn baby.'' "Kevin, am I such a bad person in your heart?" Her eyes were calm as ake untouched by the wind. Peering into them, Kevin felt somehow sad. He averted his gaze with a nervous expression spreading on his face. "Aren''t you? How do you think I picture you in my mind?" Anne shook her head. "I don''t know. It''s your decision." Then, she strode off. Soon, her voice could be heard from the kitchen, still crisp and loud, as if nothing had happened. Left alone outside the door, Kevin punched the wall beside him. The noise startled the servant passing by, and Cherry gradually narrowed her eyes from behind. At the table, Anne lowered her head to eat. The food was delicious, but she didn''t have any appetite. She felt ufortable, and her condition was getting worse and worse. "Come on, Kevin. Eat more." Cherry lifted the chopsticks and brought them to Kevin''s mouth, who obediently ate all the food. After the meal, she remembered to return the favor and flirt with him. Although she didn''t want to pay attention to their disy of affection, Anne couldn''t help but feel disgusted by them. Noticing that Anne hadn''t eaten anything yet, Cherry put down her chopsticks and began to act worried. "Anne, what''s wrong with you? You look so haggard. Why don''t you eat more? Look at you. You haven''t eaten anything yet." Lowering her gaze, Anne smiled. "Don''t worry about me, as long as you enjoy your food." "What are you talking about? We can''t ignore you while we''re all eating together. Right?" As she finished speaking, she handed a piece of greasy meat over to Anne. "Eat up. Only in this way can you give birth to a strong baby!" The smell of fat filled Anne''s nostrils in an instant. As she covered her mouth, a surge of nausea took over her stomach. She couldn''t help but get up from the table and rush to the bathroom. As if on cue, Kevin stood up too, but then sat back down quietly. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Vomiting was normal for pregnant women. He didn''t have to be so apprehensive. "I''m going to check on her." Cherry frowned slightly, and a line of worry appeared on her small forehead. She stood up and walked toward the bathroom with an arrogant smile on her face. "Anne, are you okay?" As she watched Anne throwing up again and again, Emily felt terribly anxious. She had no idea why Sam hadn''te back yet. She really hoped that Cherry could leave as soon as possible. Otherwise, who knew how bad they would torture her. "Oh, what a mess!" Suddenly, Cherry popped up behind Anne, who was in no mood to talk to her. With her face pale and tired, she kept throwing up, feeling extremely ufortable. Cherry crossed her arms and leaned casually against the door. To be honest, she really enjoyed seeing Anne in such pain. "Pregnancy is not an easy thing. Luckily, you have helped me with it. Otherwise, it would have been really troublesome." Sneering, Cherry felt happy at the sight of Anne bending down and throwing up in the washbasin Anne tried her best to straighten up and looked Cherry straight in the eye. "Cherry, you don''t have to "You..." Cherry choked on her words. She frowned, but her expression did not change much. She didn''t have to care about what Anne said. As long as she could get through those months, everything there would eventually belong to her. After calming herself down, she softened her expression and forced a smile. "I don''t dislike you. If I do, wouldn''t that mean I will dislike your baby as well?" She then squatted down beside Anne, her beautiful eyes staring into Anne''s dark gaze, overflowing with an inexplicable emotion. All of a sudden, she felt a little pity for Anne. She looked pale and her long eyshes were trembling. She seemed so weak. Cherry felt sorry for her, but the disgust in her heart could not be eradicated. "You have no right to dislike the baby in my womb. Just give birth to one yourself if you can!" With Emily''s help, Anne stood up and uttered calmly, "Don''t worry, Cherry. I will never take away from you what''s yours. But as to what''s mine, don''t ever dream you can get your hands on it! " Throwing ast nce at Cherry, she walked out. Her stride was confident, but only she knew how hard it was to even take a few steps. "Anne, just wait and see!" Consumed by anger, Cherry stamped her feet, but all she could do was watch Anne walk away. After she had returned to the table, Anne didn''t eat anything. Chapter 24 Stay Away From Him Chapter 24 Stay Away From Him She watched the two indifferently. They came back to the sofa after eating. She quietly walked to the courtyard and sat at the stone table nearby. She didn''t know when it got dark, but it did, and everything around her was indistinct. The lights in the courtyard came on, one after another. Anne started feeling chilly. She hadn''t noticed it before. Maybe the lights had startled her out of her reverie. She sat there quietly, staring at the pool, lost in thought. Bursts ofughter came from the room, but it seemed that Anne didn''t hear them at all and didn''t respond either. Emily had stayed outside with Anne, and felt ufortable. She turned her head to look at the hall, andined to Anne in whispers. "Anne, it isn''t worth it." Her words threw Anne back to reality. Anne raised her head slightly and gave her a gentle look. "What do you mean?" "I meant exactly what I said. Sometimes, I really don''t know what''s best for you." Emily frowned and continued, "Maybe you won''t be so hurt if you just leave, but I know that''s not what you want most." Anne shook her head, her ck eyes moist from tears. She touched her baby and all the depression in her heart faded away. It didn''t matter. She still had the baby with her. "There''s no running away from this one. I don''t care how Kevin treats me. As long as I get what I deserve, it''s worth it." She didn''t even want to believe it herself, but in the end, she convinced Emily, who was innocent as she was. She nodded with a happy look. "Well, I think you can have a happy life. I don''t think Cherry will, however!" What Emily said made Anne smile. She''d rather see Cherry get what she deserved. Cherry knew she couldn''t put it off any longer. She reluctantly left the East Mountain Vi. When she left, she heard Kevin say that he was going to spend the night there, so she lost her temper again. But how could Cherry disobey Kevin? As far as Kevin was concerned, Cherry had always been considerate and kind-hearted. He thought Cherry wouldn''t mind if he just stayed for the night. Cherry was no fool. She wouldn''t ruin her image in Kevin''s heart by throwing a fit. "Oh my God! Cherry left here alone?" Emily whispered, "Anne¡ª" "I know," Anne said with a cryptic smile, "Hey, it''ste. You don''t have to take care of me. Get some sleep." When she heard the footsteps behind her, she knew that Kevin still had something to say to her. In other words, he wanted to continue hurting her. Emily frowned and saw Kevin walking over. She felt worried. As soon as she saw Kevin, she ran over all the things in her mind that could happen, that he could say. All in all, she was worried about leaving Anne with Kevin. "You sure you don''t need me to stay here?" "No, thanks." Anne turned her head to show her perfect, delicate profile. "Good night." Her tone was so firm. Emily knew that Anne had her own thoughts on the matter, and didn''t say anything more. With a serious look at Anne''s face, Emily left there. When she passed Kevin, she clearly felt a chill. All of a sudden, her heart sank. Maybe Sam could help out here. After Emily left, only Anne and Kevin were in the yard. Sitting on a bench by the pool, Anne wore a thin white dress. In the dark yellow light, she lowered her head, looking quiet and beautiful. Kevin looked at her and felt his heart grow soft. But soon it was reced by indifference. "Do you have something to tell me?" She finally spoke first, and her tone was still indifferent. Kevin narrowed his eyes with a cold smile. "What do you think I want to say to you?" With her eyes slightly lowered, a faint smile appeared at the corners of Anne''s mouth. "How could I know what you are thinking?" "Anne, what kind of woman are you?" At this point, even Kevin himself was stupefied. He didn''t know why, but somehow he got the feeling the woman near him wasn''t as vicious as he thought. But what she had done was still vivid in his mind. How could he forget? "Ha-ha." Anneughed off Kevin''s question. "Shouldn''t you know me best? I''m an evil woman, aren''t I?" Staring at her stiffened back, he didn''t respond. Then Anne added, "Am I right? Or do you think evil isn''t a strong enough word to describe me?" She feared nothing. She knew she was impossible in Kelvin''s eyes. Whether she said it aloud or not, the result was the same. Instead, she would feel much better if she did. It was not her style to hide. "I don''t want to fight right now." Kevin''s tone softened and so did his gaze as he looked at her. "It''s cold now. You''d better get to bed." Anne didn''t think Kevin would ever talk to her like that. Like he cared. She took a deep breath and looked up at the man. She didn''t know what he was thinking. She didn''t know why he said that. Now, the only thing she was sure about was that she didn''t know the man in front of her. She didn''t know if he was lying or not. "Don''t worry about me. I''ll be in after a while." Anne was not used to Kevin''s attitude towards her. She''d prefer him being cold to her, as he was always, or she would feel worse. "No, you must go inside! Now!" Sure enough, this was the Kevin she knew. Cold, arrogant, used to being obeyed. He did a 180 just now. His soft, caring expression had been reced by a scowl. Anne bit her lips. She knew that he couldn''t hide his true self for even a minute. "I don''t want to fight either." Then Anne stood and walked inside. Kevin followed her silently. After a few steps, he saw a familiar figureing from the gate. His expression changed. He wasn''t happy to see Sam. "Sam, you''re back!" When she saw Sam, Anne felt much better. She quickened her pace as she made her way towards him. "Yes, I''m back." Sam nodded. Although he was answering Anne''s question, his gaze fell on Kevin''s face. Kevin didn''t look well. Sam asked calmly, "Why are you here?" Sam knew full well such a question would annoy Kevin. Kevin pursed his lips into a straight line and squinted his long, narrow eyes. "Is there a reason I shouldn''t be?" "No." Without saying anything more, Sam turned around, walked into the kitchen, and then put the food he bought in the fridge. He had been out shopping the whole day to buy what he needed, hoping he could make Anne eat something tomorrow. "Where have you been?" Seeing Sam putting things into the fridge, Kevin walked over and had a look. His slender body leaned against the door. Sam''s presence here doubtless made him feel ufortable. "I was out shopping." Sam didn''t stop what he was doing. He added in a deep voice, "Since Anne can''t eat anything, I bought some appetizers." Sam''s words made Kevin''s face fall. He frowned and took a look at Sam. Then he took Anne''s hand and headed upstairs. "Hey, what are you doing? Let go of me!" Of course, Anne didn''t like Kevin''s rude behavior, and she didn''t like being in the same room with him, either. After she was dragged into her room, Anne tried her best to break free from his grip. "What''s wrong with you?" Yes, right now Kevin was acting like a lunatic. He lost his temper for no reason and always found a reason to fight with her. She didn''t know what Kevin wanted to do! "Anne, stay away from Sam!" "What?" It was so strange. Anne looked up in disbelief. What did he think was going on between them? He was the one who arranged for Sam to stay with her. What choice did she have? "I told you to stay away from Sam!" Kevin didn''t know why he said that, which drove him crazy. All he did know was that he felt really ufortable when he saw the way Sam''s eyes fell on Anne. He started to tremble and tense up. He was even angrier when he heard how easygoing Anne''s tone was around Sam. Maybe it was just as she said, he was mad, but he couldn''t control himself. He clenched his fists so hard that his fingertips turned pale. Looking at the wless face in front of her, she suddenly burst intoughter. "Kevin, I think you''re pathetic. Do you know that?" "What did you say?" In an instant, Kevin stalked toward Anne. The next second, he pinched her chin with his slender fingers. "Say that again!" It was the first time that he had heard someone describe him as pathetic, and he would never allow himself to be connected with such a word. This woman was testing his limits. "You''re so pathetic!" She looked straight into his eyes without fear. His eyes were full of anger, but she repeated it calmly, each word loud and clear. He clenched her jaw harder. However, Anne didn''t feel any pain. Instead, she thought the man was ridiculous. "Shut up!" Obviously, he was angry because his authority was challenged by the woman he hated most. How Content (C) N?v/elDra/ma.Org. could he not be angry? Chapter 25 He Cared Chapter 25 He Cared His gaze was like a sharp knife, piercing into her eyes, but Anne wasn¡¯t afraid. "What? Am I right?" The smile at the corners of Anne''s mouth did not waver. "You asked Sam to stick around, and follow me all the time. But now, you want me to stay away from him? Kevin, do you trust me or not? Or you just don''t trust yourself?" "I said, shut up!" When he was so angry, Kevin had to act out physically. He pushed Anne hard. Fortunately, Anne fell on the bed behind her, so she was not hurt. The baby in her belly was not seriously injured, fortunately. She unexpectedly felt happy when she saw the furious look on Kevin''s face! "Stop!" Sam and Emily burst into the room, their hearts in their throats. They''d seen Kevin push Emily. Emily quickly ran to help Anne up in a hurry. Seeing that Anne''s chin was red, she immediately saw red. "Anne, are you okay? Did he hurt you?" "I''m fine." Shaking her head, Anne still stared at Kevin''s cold face. He was so angry, that she knew that she had really gotten under his skin this time. Sam looked at Anne, focusing his gaze on her chin. He could imagine what had happened without half- trying. He looked at Kevin and said coldly, "You should be ashamed of yourself. A grown man, menacing a pregnant woman!" Kevin stared at Sam in response. His red lips curled and his eyes were cold. "Don''t talk to me like that. You know I don''t like it." At that point, Sam''s face darkened. He turned to Emily and said, "You stay here with Anne tonight." Emily nodded repeatedly. She didn''t dare to leave Anne and Kevin in the same room. Who knew what would happen in the middle of the night if no one were there? "What are you talking about?" Kevin frowned. The reason why he moved in was to watch over Anne all the time. But now, Sam wanted to get in between them! Who did he think he was? "I don''t think I stuttered." Sam approached Kevin slowly. When the two were about to get close to each other and the pores on each other''s faces could be seen clearly, he stopped and whispered in Kevin''s ear, "If you want the baby to be safe, do as I say." Kevin raised his head and a meaningful smile appeared in his dark eyes. "Okay." Kevin was smiling, but only Anne knew that Kevin was faking it. She didn''t know what he was thinking. But how could he let her go so easily? Now she felt that there was only one purpose for Kevin to move in, and that was to torment her 24/7. The restless day finally came to an end. Anne finally fell asleep under the watchful eyes of Emily. Pregnant women were tired all the time, not to mention that Anne was so weak. She hadn''t eaten much at all, so she fell asleep quickly. When she saw that Anne was asleep, Emily stretched and yawned. She also wanted to get some sleep, but she felt that it was better to tell Sam what had happened when he was absent. While thinking of that, she nodded, turned around and went downstairs immediately. Sure enough, the lights in the hall and the kitchen were still on, and Sam was still up. She tiptoed downstairs to see what Sam was doing. When she walked to the kitchen, she saw that Sam kept hovering about the stove, turning dials, moving pans, like he was cooking. How could he cook in the middle of the night? Didn''t he eat? Emily''s voice rang out from behind him. "Sam, what are you doing? It''s the middle of the night!" When he heard her, Sam stopped cooking and said, "It''s sote. Haven''t you gone to bed yet? More importantly, is she asleep?" "Yes." Emily sat down and rested her chin in her hand. She asked, "Are you cooking?" "Yes. I just bought the ingredients today. It''s my first time ever making this meal, so I''m afraid it may not agree with her." Sam didn''t stop what he was doing. While he was busy talking to Emily, he didn''t feel tired. In fact, he was physically and mentally exhausted after driving all over the ce to buy the ingredients he needed. But now that he had bought them, he had to make it work. It would be toote to do any experimentation tomorrow. This wasn''t lost on Emily, though. His consideration was part of what made him so attractive. She pursed her lips and said, "You are so attentive." To be honest, Emily felt a bit sour in her heart. However, she knew that Sam was only doing his duty as a doctor, either that or he really cared about Anne, so he was that serious. But that didn''t make her feel any better. She''d developed a crush on Sam. "Really? It''s just who I am." He was right. That was who he was. He would always do what felt right. He wouldn''t change his mind because of anyone. As long as he thought he should do it, he wouldn''t stop for anything. Even though Kevin made things difficult for Anne again and again, Sam still stood at Anne''s side each and every time. She didn''t know whether Sam had any ulterior motives when he did all this, but it was simply the right thing to do, ording to his morals. On second thought, they all had the same goal, which was to protect Anne. As long as Anne was safe, she should support him no matter what he was up to. With a slight smile at the corners of her mouth, Emily stared at the action of Sam and said with a smile, "So what about you? You need sleep, too." Sam paused for a moment, turned, and a smile appeared on his angr profile. His two dashing eyebrows looked heroic, and a low voice came out of his throat as he asked, "What about you?" It was the first time that she had seen Sam smile so gently. Her heart skipped a beat. Emily blinked her eyes and her face went red. "I''m not sleepy. I can wait for you." Sam nodded and snorted, "Hmm." The two of them kept silent for a while. Sam was busy cooking, while Emily just watched him in silence. It was a good feeling. She liked it a lot. "By the way..." All of a sudden, something urred to her. She stood up and said seriously, "Anne told me she wanted to move the lemon tree from her old house to here. Think that might be okay?" Hearing what Emily said, Sam finally turned around and looked up at her. "Lemon tree?" Anne had always liked that tree, which had yellow fruit. She liked being around that tree. It seemed to lift her mood. "Yeah." Emily nodded. In fact, she didn''t tell Sam what had happened today. If he knew that Cherry had But Emily knew that she would never bring up something that she shouldn''t have said. "Anne likes that tree a lot. I think moving it here will be good for her mood. A hint of sadness shed through Emily''s eyes. "She''s been in a funk these days and hardly ate a thing. I''m worried that if this continues, she won''t be able to hold on." With his thin lips pursed into a straight line, Sam nodded and his face darkened. "I''ll arrange for someone to take care of the tree tomorrow." "Okay." Emily nodded and said, "I hope Anne can recover as soon as possible. We don''t want her ill after she''s given birth." "No!" As soon as she finished speaking, Emily realized that she had said something wrong. She shook Content (C) N?v/elDra/ma.Org. her head and suddenly said, "Uh...don''t listen to me. I''m just rambling." Sam took a nce at her, and his eyes seldom softened, "Well, go to bed early. You have to take care of her tomorrow morning. Good night." "Good night." After casting a reluctant nce at Sam, Emily turned and went back upstairs. Sam was right. She had to take care of Anne tomorrow. She''d better get some sleep. The room on the second floor was still brightly lit. Kevin was not in the mood to sleep He tried closing his eyes but sleep wouldn''te. His moods were out of control. He felt ufortable staying in the room where Anne had slept for a whole day. He wondered if that woman had fallen asleep. She hadn''t eaten anything today, so she didn''t know if she could hold on. After thinking for a while, Kevin shook his head, picked up the bath towel on the chair and walked into the bathroom. Damn it! Why did he overthink everything? He shouldn''t care so much about that woman! When he was about to leave, his phone vibrated on the bed. He frowned and stopped to look at the screen. A name jumped out at him. "Cherry?" Kevin turned his head and stared at the phone. Why was she calling thiste? It was so strange that he didn''t have the impulse to answer her call. After thinking for a second, he picked up the phone with his slender fingers. "Hello?" Kevin answered in a patient tone after he put down his bathrobe and sat on the sofa. "Kevin, what are you doing?" Her voice was sweet. Lying on the sofa and looking at the empty room, her heart felt empty too. On the other hand, she was afraid that Anne would seduce Kevin when she was not there, so she immediately called him. She felt relieved when she found it was quiet on the other end of the phone. Kevin raised his hand, pinched between his eyebrows, and said indifferently, "I''m about to take a shower. What''s up?" "Nothing. I just feel bored." Cherry acted coquettishly and her gentle voice was intoxicating. But when she heard Kevin''s cold tone, her face became icy and her body stiffened. "Are you with Anne now?" "No." Kevin was not in the mood to say one more word to Cherry. He didn''t know why he had been in a bad mood recently. And worse, he didn''t have anyone to confide in. After hanging up the phone, Kevin went into the bathroom and decided to take a cold shower to refresh his mind. The next morning, before Anne woke up from her dream, a scream broke the silence. "Ah! Anne!" Chapter 26 A Fever Chapter 26 A Fever As soon as he heard the scream, Kevin rushed to the scene - he was the first person there. He seemed to have just woken up. His white shirt was partially unbuttoned, revealing his solid muscles. Emily was still in shock when Kevin rushed in. When she saw him, she became even more frightened. She looked away. For a second, she was afraid to look at Kevin. Although she was scared, she had to admit that Kevin looked stunning with his perfect figure. Usually, she wouldn''t like men like him with a weird temper and behavior. However, she couldn''t bear to see such a sexy scene in the early morning. "What''s wrong with her?" Kevin asked. Anney quietly on the bed with her beautiful eyebrows frowned, her eyes closed, and her lips pursed. Beads of sweat were forming on her forehead. Kevin could sense her difort. He ced his cold palm over her hot forehead. "Why is it so hot?" "I don''t know!" Emily was panicking. "I just woke up and found that she had a fever. I''ll call Sam right away!" Without a second thought, Emily ran out of the room. Kevin''s face filled with gloom. As he looked at the weak woman in bed, he became more and more anxious. ''How can she be sick after just one night?'' he brooded. ''How could such a vicious woman get sick?'' "No!" His body moved in horror and his brows frowned even tighter. "Why? Why?" Anne started talking in her sleep. He didn''t know what she was talking about. Looking at her face, she seemed to be in great pain. Kevin couldn''t help but reach out his hand for her. When he held her palm, he found out that it was cold and sweaty. "Anne?" He still couldn''t be gentle to the woman in front of him. It perplexed him that he still spoke in such a cold tone even though he felt very worried about her. That worry was subtly forming in his deep eyes. "Wake up, Anne. Wake up," he whispered. "Why do you treat me like this?" Anne shook her head. A teardrop fell from the corner of her eye, which dampened her hair. She cried. She actually cried. Kevin watched the woman in front of him as though he was in a trance. He had never seen her cry. She was such an arrogant woman that she wouldn''t easily shed tears no matter what she had experienced. ''But how could she cry so much because of a dream?'' Kevin thought, puzzled. "Why? Why?" Anne continued to speak. Although it was hard for Kevin to make sense of what she was saying, he had a rough idea why she was saying that. He looked at her quietly and held her hand even more tightly as the seconds went by. The door creaked open and the sound of hurried footsteps followed. Before Kevin could even raise his head, he heard the cold voice of Sam. "Step aside," he ordered. Kevin refused to let go of her. He still held Anne''s hand as he squatted on the edge of the bed. Sam was displeased with Kevin''s stubbornness, and his expression turned even colder. "Kevin, if you don''t want her to die, get out of my way." After another warning, Kevin raised his eyes slightly. He took a deep breath. "I won''t allow anything to happen to her," he said coldly. With a weird look, Sam replied, "If anything happens to her or the baby, that''s because you asked for it yourself." He squatted down and pushed Kevin aside. He studied Anne''s face carefully. It seemed like she just had a nightmare and was suffering from a high fever. She looked extremely weak. After observing for a while, Sam put down the stethoscope in his hand and took out the medicine he had with him. He ordered Emily to help Anne take it. Anne was burning up. Her temperature was too high and she needed a good long rest to recover. It didn''t help that Anne hadn''t eaten anything for a long time. To help her, Sam had to use the injection. Content (C) N?v/elDra/ma.Org. "How is she?" Kevin asked when he saw that Sam was finished. Sam didn''t respond. Instead, with an indifferent expression, he packed his medical kit. His calmness annoyed Kevin even more. "Sam, I''m asking you. Are you listening?" Kevin spoke so loudly that Anne turned over on the bed uneasily. When Sam noticed Anne moving, he burst in anger. "Kevin, do you have any idea what you have done?" he snapped, staring a hole through Kevin. "She wouldn''t be like this if it weren''t for you." Kevin narrowed his eyes. "I know. It''s my fault," Kevin admitted with a low voice. It was indeed his fault. If he hadn''te yesterday, perhaps Anne wouldn''t have had a fever. Last night, she was wearing very thin clothes and the cold winds had been blowing at her for so long. It was inevitable for her to catch a fever. "She''s fine," Sam assured him. This was the first time he had ever heard Kevin make an apology. Although he was still angry, Sam didn''t want to say anything anymore. "Really?" Kevin said, his worry still apparent in his voice. "As long as you stop making her sad, she''ll be fine." Once he was finished packing up, Sam looked at Kevin sternly. "I warn you again," he said. "Don''t forget that she''s carrying your child - the child of the Fu Family. If you want your child to be born without any problems, you''d better leave here." "Leave?" Kevin''s dark eyes lit up. "No, I can''t leave." If he didn''t see his childnding safely, he would never leave. ''What if this woman does something stupid one day?'' he thought. "Can you guarantee that you won''t make her sad again?" Sam asked. Kevin turned to Anne on the bed and then back to Sam. "I can promise," he said, emphasizing every word. "Really?" Emily gasped in a low voice. She never thought Kevin would give in. She was surprised that Kevin actually made such a promise in front of Sam. However, as regard to whether he really meant it or not, she didn''t dare to conclude easily. Sam knew Kevin very well. Kevin was a man who was clear about what to hate or love and he never made a promise he couldn''t keep. Hearing his promise, Sam stayed quiet. After a while, he nodded and his eyes darkened. "Remember what you said today. If this happens again, I won''t give you another chance," he warned. Without hesitation, Sam turned around and left the room. Emily looked at Kevin who was standing still. ''Kevin must want to stay here for a while,'' she thought. Considerately, she followed Sam out of the room and closed the door for Kevin. Sam went downstairs. He felt a little unhappy. Remembering what Kevin had done these days pissed him off. But since Kevin promised him, there was no reason for him not to believe him. "Are you okay?" Emily, who was behind Sam, asked. It was rare for her to see Sam''s face this tired so she couldn''t help but worry. "It''s nothing." He rubbed his eyebrows and closed his eyes slightly. He looked exhausted when he sat on the sofa. "Are you really okay?" Emily asked again, the worry still lingering on her tone. "You look so tired. What time did you sleepst night?" He ced his hand down and opened his eyes. They were deep and dark. "Three o''clock in the morning." "Oh my God!" Emily eximed and looked at her wristwatch. It was seven o''clock in the morning, which meant that Sam had only slept for less than four hours. ''Did he work in the kitchen all night yesterday?'' she wondered. ''What kept him busy?'' "Didn''t you sleep the whole night?" she asked. "I slept for three hours." Sam looked at his watch. "I''ll go to handle the matter of the lemon tree," he said. "Take care of Anne." After saying that, he stood up, his figure still so slender. Emily felt her nose go sour. "Aren''t you tired?" She didn''t know what else to say to stop him. Sam smiled and shook his head. "No, I''m not tired." He turned around and left. His straight figure soon disappeared in Emily''s sight. Emily was left standing still for a long time. In the room on the second floor near the mountain, Anne was still lying on the bed with her eyes closed. Kevin sat next to her. He looked down at her delicate eyebrows and suddenly calmed down. This was the first time he had been so close to her. He watched her very carefully. Like jasmine, she was very delicate and elegant. The sights of her eyes, eyebrows, and smile were all very refreshing. However, underneath this beautyy a heart that was as vicious as a snake or a scorpion. Kevin ced his hand on her head and touched her eyebrows with his rough fingertips. He sighed, "If only you weren''t that kind of woman." Something was moving on her face that made her itch and ufortable. Anne frowned. She wanted to open her eyes, but she was too weak to lift her heavy eyelids. "Anne, once you give birth to the baby, I will set you free." The voice sounded both strange and familiar. She felt she had heard it somewhere. "As long as the baby is born safely, I can let go of everything you have done before." After a while, his warm fingers stopped at the corner of her wet eyes. When she looked up, Kevin suddenly withdrew his hand. When both their eyes met, Anne was surprised. "Why are you here?" she said feebly. Kevin''s face reverted to its usual indifference and nced at her. "What''s wrong?" he said in a deep voice. "Am I not allowed here?" Anne moved and felt a sharp pain at the back of her hand. She looked down and saw a needle pressed onto her hand. ''When did this needle get here?'' She couldn''t remember. It looked like a bottle of the syringe along the infusion line. She frowned and realized that Sam had used the injection on her in the end. "Don''t move!" Kevin eximed. When she still kept moving, he grabbed her right hand to stop it. "You have a fever," he whispered to her. "You need to rest." Anne wasn''t used to Kevin being this gentle with her. She pursed her lips and looked at him. "Where are Sam and the others?" she asked. "I don''t know." As soon as she asked about Sam, Kevin''s face immediately turned cold. Chapter 27 Stop Thinking About Others Chapter 27 Stop Thinking About Others Frustration was evident on his face as it darkened. He rubbed the back of his neck to release some tension and slowly said, "Stop thinking about other people and start worrying more about your well - being." He looked at her pointedly. "Look at your state right now. You''re weak and you still haven''t eaten yet." Crossing his arms together, Kevin''s eyes dropped at the IV needle piercing through the back of her hand then back at her. "Are you going to depend on that IV drip for the whole period of your pregnancy?" He was more talkative than usual which caught Anne off guard as she stared at the very vexed Kevin. She would have argued back if he was being a jerk but the way he was acting right then and the way he worried about her, although his expression was cold, was new and was kind of pleasant so she let it slide. ¡®But why is he acting like he cares?¡¯ she pondered but just dismissed the thought after finding it ridiculous. She puffed out her cheeks and let out a breath before shifting her gaze away from his with a frown on her face, mumbling, "I''ll try my best to eat. Anne knew that she couldn''t keep on relying on the nutrition she was getting from the IV drip throughout the duration of her pregnancy. ''Eating something delicious right now sounds appetizing,'' she thought as she tried to pull the IV needle out. Since she couldn¡¯t always rely on it, she should stop using it. Kevin was shocked, his eyes widening in rm. ''Is this woman crazy?'' he thought before hissing angrily. "What are you doing?" Kevin immediately grabbed her hand, stopping her from taking the needle out. After seeing her give him a weird look, Kevin awkwardly let go of her hand. Clearing his throat he said, "Let it stay for a while because you¡¯re still weak. That¡¯s the only thing that¡¯s giving you nutrition right now. I¡¯ll be here until you get better." "But I want to eat," she grumbled, sulking. For the first time in so many days, she felt famished. She knew that once she got out of bed and had a full meal, she would definitely devour everything. Just imagining the hot dish and its delicious aroma made her salivate. "Are you hungry?" Kevin asked. She just nodded absentmindedly which made him raise a brow at how strange she was acting. Frowning, he let out a tired sigh before looking at her. "I¡¯ll ask Sam to prepare something for you to eat." After saying that, Kevin stood up and walked towards the door. Before he left the room, he looked back at her with a stern look in his eyes but his voice was gentle. "I''ll go downstairs first then I''lle back fast so stay put." Anne was left gaping at the empty spot where Kevin stood before vanishing behind the door. Anne wondered if she was dreaming as she tried pinching her cheeks. ¡®Ouch!¡¯ she groaned as she rubbed the sore spot. She felt the stinging sensation on it proving that what just urred indeed really happened. ¡®Did he eat something weird today?¡¯ she thought suspiciously. ''What''s with the sudden drastic change in his personality?'' she pondered on, frowning. ''When did he start caring about me?'' Anne felt conflicted. She didn''t know what to feel with the way Kevin was acting due to the fact that she wasn''t used to it. ''Everything feels so unreal,'' she thought as she shifted her gaze to the window with a sad smile on her lips. "If only it was real¡­" she whispered. She let out a dryugh, thinking how pathetic she sounded. She knew that Kevin didn''t belong to her. ''He has already given his heart to Cherry,'' she thought dejectedly, closing her eyes to suppress her tears. No one was in sight when Kevin went downstairs which puzzled him. ''Where the hell is Sam when I need him?'' he thought, frustrated. He started walking aimlessly through the hallway until he saw a group of servants having a meeting at the courtyard. The vi that they were currently at belonged to his family but it rarely received any visitors. Kevin bought the vi because of how quiet the area is. Although he seldom came to live there, the ce had everything that needed to ensure afortable life. And the servants were dutiful to keep everything in order though Kevin had never asked about the vi. He smiled at how peaceful the ce was. Also, he was very satisfied with the butler. At least he managed the East Mountain Vi well even in his absence. Kevin looked around the whole ce but he didn¡¯t see a single sign of Sam anywhere. "Sam?" he shouted, frustration present on his voice. He called out for his name a few times but to no avail. A servant who was at the courtyard ran over at his direction when she heard him. Her face flushed at the sight of Kevin. "Young Master, Mr. Sam and Miss Emily are out," she told him shyly, gazing at him nervously. "Out?" Kevin frowned as he looked at the little girl pointedly. "Where are they going?" The servant lowered her head to dodge his re, nervously thinking of what to answer. Finally, she said, "It seems that they went back to Mrs. Anne''s old house to take something." The servant vaguely remembered what she heard about Sam and Emily''s conversation so she didn''t really know much about it. Looking at the fidgeting girl, Kevin just shrugged his shoulder and said, "Okay." Then he turned towards the direction of the kitchen. If his memory served him right, Sam came homest night with a lot of paper bags in hand and was stuck in the kitchen for a while. ¡®Maybe he went to the grocery store and bought some food,¡¯ he thought. After entering the kitchen, he stopped dead in his tracks. ''What should I do first?'' he thought, annoyed. He had no idea how to cook or do anything household wise other than working on his investments to strengthen hispany. He was the next heir to theirpany and the noble young master of the Fu Family to top it off so he always had an easy life since childhood to begin with. So being in the kitchen was a new whole experience for him, let alone cooking. He looked around and frowned. Seeing the perplexed expression on Kevin¡¯s face, the servant behind him reluctantly asked, "Are you hungry, Young Master?" Although he looked charming, he really had a very bad temper when he got annoyed. Everyone in the vi knew his temper well so when they saw any signs that he was about to do something, they would immediate asked what he needed. They were afraid of getting fired if they didn''t serve him well. There were two kitchens in the vi. One was a private kitchen and the other was a ce for the chefs to cook their daily meals. Kevin was at the private kitchen not knowing that there were various dishes that were already cooked on the other kitchen for him to enjoy. His face darkened as he grumbled, "No." Frustrated, he raised his hand and touched his nose with his slender index finger to repress his irritation. "Can you cook?" "What?" the little girl gaped before snapping from her astonishment. The servant nodded, still confused. "Yes I can, Young Master." "That¡¯s good." Kevin nodded. "Well then." He pointed at the kitchen in front of him and said in a low voice, "Teach me how to cook." "Pardon?" she asked, baffled. ''Did I just hear that right or am I going deaf?'' she thought incredulously. ''A young master actually asked me to teach him how to cook? And it''s my scary employer to be exact.'' She looked at him nervously before saying, "Young Master." She took in arge gulp of air, continuing, "Just tell me if you want to have dinner and I¡¯ll prepare some right away. You don¡¯t have to do it yourself." Just then, Kevin looked at her with a difficult expression on his face. The servant was quivering in fear that her whole face turned pale as a ghost. She quickly moved back This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. while her head was lowered down, not daring to raise it. Who knew what her employer was thinking? ''Am I going to get fired?'' she thought as she shut her eyes. "Forget it." Kevin casually opened the fridge and saw a lot of ingredients that were probably bought by Sam when he went out yesterday. ''Cooking is a piece of cake,'' he thought as he scanned the food avable in the fridge and the pantry. He took some vegetables out of the fridge and inspected them first before shrugging his shoulders. ''Maybe this will do,'' he thought as he closed the fridge by his back, vegetables in hand and then he started taking action. Kevin got himself busy as he began cleaning the vegetables forgetting the servant he was with. The girl behind him seemed to be seriously frightened by what she saw. ''I''m out of here!'' the girl thought agitatedly. After hesitating for half a second, the servant then immediately dashed out of the kitchen and into the courtyard, leaving Kevin in the private kitchen by himself. When Sam was about to leave the vi, Emily found an excuse toe with him. Knowing that she wouldn''t cause him unnecessary problem, Sam didn''t refuse. The atmosphere was quiet and peaceful when the two of them were in the car. Sam took a nce at Emily before shifting his gaze back at the road. "Are you hungry?" Emily snapped out from her thoughts when she heard her name and immediately turned at his direction, obviously surprised and asked, "What?" She then remembered what his question was. "Oh, I¡¯m fine." She smiled a little before looking out of the window. After the terrifying event that happened with Anne¡¯s condition in the morning, Emily was too busy to eat anything. She wouldn¡¯t have remembered that she still hadn¡¯t had breakfast if it hadn¡¯t been mentioned by Sam. She looked down at her t stomach and thought, ¡®Maybe I¡¯m not that hungry yet.¡¯ "Let''s look for a ce to eat first before we continue." Sam smiled considerately It was not easy for Emily to refuse Sam so she just nodded and said, "Okay." Sam was a person who knew how to enjoy life to the fullest, so the restaurant he chose was naturally unique. As soon as they entered the restaurant, a waiter came over with a polite smile on his face. "Mr. Sam, wee!." Emily looked around the interior of the restaurant before ncing at Sam. It seemed that he was a regr guest of the restaurant they were in. Sam only gave him a nod as he calmly said, "The old seat." "Noted, Sir." He smiled before gesturing his hand in a certain direction. "Right this way." The waiter then led the way to their designated table. Sam then started following the waiter as Emily caught up. She suddenly felt ufortable when she went inside the restaurant. She looked around curiously just to see that everyone was looking at Sam and her. The gazes that fell on Sam were naturally soft with fondness present in their eyes whilst what she received were jealous and murderous gazes. She hastily shifted her gaze away from the crowd and into the straight back of the man who was walking elegantly and calmly in front of her. Emily let out a sigh at how unfair fate was for blessing Kevin with a beautiful face but it frustrated her more knowing that Sam was just as attractive as him. ''I don''t know if having handsome men around me is a blessing or a curse,'' she thought unhappily. No wonder those women were attracted to him. Just thinking of it made Emily feel sour. The seat chosen by Sam was a seat by the window. As soon as they arrived at their table, the beautiful scenery beyond the ss window amazed Emily. She couldn''t help but whisper, "What a beautiful ce!" The restaurant they were in was located halfway up the mountain. When they first arrived at the ce, Emily wanted to go back because she didn¡¯t want to go too far just to eat breakfast. But she didn¡¯t get the chance to when she saw how stubborn Sam was acting. She just realized how amazing the whole ce was when they arrived at their destination. The scenery at the hillside was very beautiful that they could clearly see the foot of the mountain from where they were. The green mountain looked more verdant under the cover of the green trees. With the flowers that dotted the cliff, the beautiful scene wasced with elegance and delicacy. asionally, cold wind blew and burst of fragrance could be smelled. The ce was very suitable if someone was in a date. ''Wait,'' she thought incredulously, feeling her stomach drop. ''A date? ¡®What the heck am I thinking?¡¯ she groaned. She felt her cheeks heat up, embarrassed just by thinking of such a disturbing idea. She snapped out from her thoughts when she heard a chair being pulled out. Emily raised her head and nced at the man beside her with a look of confusion evident on her face. Seeing her acting weirdly, Sam frowned and looked at her worriedly. "Is there something wrong, Emily? Are you okay?" Emily came to her senses after hearing Sam¡¯s voice and smiled awkwardly, sitting like nothing happened. "I¡¯m fine." She shifted her gaze away from him, still feeling embarrassed of her ridiculous thought. ¡®I just didn¡¯t expect you to pull out a chair for me. That¡¯s all.¡¯ She wanted to add but just held back in. Sam''s gentlemanly action made her fall into a reverie again. She couldn''t help but blush when Sam was seated in front of her. No one spoke while the two of them were eating. Emily was still not used to such an atmosphere although they followed the principle of not talking while eating so she decided to think of something to talk about. She wouldn''t be given another chance to be alone with Sam again so she had to seize the opportunity. "Sam," Emily called out. "You haven¡¯t been to the hospital recently, have you?" Sam hummed his response as he swallowed his food. He raised his head slightly and nced at Emily. "There''s nothing special in the hospital anyway so I don''t need to go there." "Is that so?" Emily just nodded silently as she pondered what he said. ''There are countless of excellent doctors in the private hospital of the Feng Family,'' she thought. ''Sam wouldn''t need to go there if there''s nothing important.'' "I wonder how Anne is doing now." Emily abruptly stopped from eating with the mention of Anne. Raising her chin, she said. "I''m really worried about leaving Mr. Kevin alone with Anne right now." Sam looked at her and smiled gently. "Don¡¯t worry. Kevin is a man of his word." He smiled reassuringly. "We don¡¯t need to worry since he has made a promise." After saying that, he paused and continued, "Maybe it will be better for the two of them to stay together alone for awhile." Sam took a napkin and cleaned his lips, seeming that he had already finished eating. "Don''t you still want to eat?" Emily asked. He shook his head and smiled. "It''s fine. I don''t really eat much at breakfast." "Oh, okay." Emily just gave him a nod before looking away. Seeing his calm face sent a ripple to her heart. "Let''s go," Emily said as she cleaned her mouth with a napkin. "I''m not used to having too much breakfast either." She smiled at Sam cheerfully before she stood up from her chair and walked out of the restaurant with a bright smile on her face. Sam shook his head at how weak he was against her cute smile as he stared at her disappearing figure with a gentle look on his face. The sunlight poured down and the sun moved above the branches. While sitting on the bed, Anne felt a little sore in her back after sleeping for so long. She picked up a book which was called ''Where is the Beauty?'' The cover was simple. Just a pink peach blossom rising upwards and the rest of the space were nk, that was it. She then opened the book and flipped it to the first page where she saw a poem. Chapter 28 Rare Tenderness Chapter 28 Rare Tenderness The poem read, "Today ofst year, I met you in this gate. Your face was extremely charming against the flowers'' beauties. Now you are no longer here in this gate, only the peach flowers smiling in gentle breeze." Anne was attracted by this book at first sight. She excitedly went through several pages of the book in a sh. It was like she had forgotten that Kevin ever existed. The door creaked open, but she was so engrossed in reading the book that she didn''t even notice that someone had entered the room. "What are you looking at? Don''t move around so much. Your body still needs to recover," Kevin uttered in a peeved tone. It took Anne quite a while before she realized that someone was talking to her. But when she finally did, she looked around and saw something that absolutely terrified her. ''What''s going on? Why is there a dark figure in my room?'' She thought to herself while holding her heart that almost jumped out of her chest from being startled. After a few seconds, Anne came back to her senses and realized who she was looking at. She couldn''t help but wonder why Kevin''s face was covered with ash and why he was wearing all ck. "What happened to you? Did you clean someone''s chimney or something?" Anne asked with a confused look on her face. "Stop talking nonsense. I was just in the kitchen," Kevin replied in an aggrieved tone. After that, he walked forward and ced a bowl of porridge on a nearby table. No matter how dirty he looked at that moment, he still looked as handsome and dashing as his usual self. And his newfound kindness just added more to his charm. "Why are you here?" Anne asked while trying her best not to giggle in front of him. When she walked closer to take a look at what he brought, she was surprised and asked him in disbelief, "Did you make this by yourself?" "Of course, I did. Do you really think a grown man like myself can''t cook something that simple?" Kevin responded while furrowing his eyebrows at her. He was slightly offended by her question and felt a little upset. About a few secondster, he frigidly handed the porridge to Anne and said, "Here, try it. Tell me if you like it." Anne''s stomach rumbled from hunger so she eagerly took the bowl from him. But when she looked down and saw how unappetizing the food looked, her enthusiasm quickly disappeared. After a while, the whole room was covered with the aroma of porridge. At that point, she was too hungry to fuss over food anymore. It was the first time in a long while that she had had an appetite. Additionally, she felt quite fond of the fact that Kevin cooked for her, especially since a kind gesture like this was a rare sight to see from him. However, she always knew in her heart that Kevin would never choose her to be by his side. Content held by N?velDrama.Org. But she would never admit defeat. She kept fighting for her love which only led her to pain. No matter how tired her body was from trying to pursue him, she would always believe she could conquer any difficulties. Looking at Kevin''s face which was covered with ash, she felt somewhat sad. ''Why would I feel sad?'' Anne curiously asked herself. She should have felt warm by Kevin''s sweet actions, but she couldn''t get rid of the nagging feeling in her heart. ''He''s probably doing all of this for the baby,'' she thought while slowly caressing her stomach. "What are you waiting for? Eat it before it gets cold," Kevin said in apelling voice. He couldn''t understand why Anne was so deep in thought since all he did was just bring her some food. His words brought Anne back to her senses. With his bright eyes staring right at her, she ced down the book and picked up a spoon to eat. In her mind, the food didn''t look appetizing so she would just gulp it down for her baby. But as soon as she tasted it, her eyes widened in shock. The simple bowl of porridge was one of the best she had ever eaten. Kevin watched closely for her reaction. When he saw the look of delight in her eyes, he quickly asked, "How is it?" The first spoonful was always the best indicator if the person liked the food or not. Kevin knew this and excitedly waited for her reaction. He even bent down to match her gaze so he could see if she was telling the truth or not. Seeing Kevin''s nervous expression, Anne gleefully replied, "It''s surprisingly good, to be honest with you." That bowl of porridge was her first meal in days and it tasted absolutely delicious. "Really? Do you really think it''s good?" Kevin asked with a rare smile on his face. "Yup!" Anne replied while cheerfully nodding at him. Kevin didn''t want to show it but he was over the moon when he made Anne''s mood better. Unfortunately for him, she could easily tell how happy he was by his actions. "It''s really very delicious," she said with a blissful smile, assuring him even more. Right after that, she lowered her head and continued to eat the porridge bit by bit. After a few minutes, the sunshine came through the tin curtains on the window. The sunlight shone on Anne''s fair face and nobody could deny how beautiful she was. It was like she was apletely different woman after eating something. The natural rosiness in her cheeks finally appeared on her pale face after such a long time. Kevin couldn''t stop his heart from melting at the sight of such a gorgeous woman in front of him. He couldn''t resist sitting in front of her and he just watched her quietly, like a child watching his favorite show. Unfortunately, Anne wasn''tfortable being stared at for so long. She looked up at him and asked, "Why are you looking at me like that? Is there something on my face?" Kevin was pulled back to reality and tried his best to answer normally, "No, it''s nothing." The air in the room quickly became awkward after that. He didn''t have the courage to stare at her anymore, but the smile on his face didn''t go away. It was the first time that she had seen him smile so much after a long time of cold looks and the revtion of it caused Anne to feel a bit upset. With this in mind, the expression on her face darkened while she softly asked, "Do you have anything else to do here?" "No." Kevin turned to look straight into her eyes and asked, "Are you still hungry? Do you want another bowl of porridge? Just tell me and I''ll get you one." Feeling a bit uneasy by his unusual actions, Anne replied in a distant voice, "No, thanks. I''m full." The food tasted good but she knew she would just throw it all up if she ate too much. In order not to ruin the good mood, and to show how grateful she was, she gave Kevin a soft smile and said, "Thank you." Kevin was surprised to hear that, so he asked, "What for?" "Thank you for cooking for me," she quickly answered in a blissful tone. Even if she couldn''t fully trust the man in front of him, she knew that any of Kevin''s attempts to be kind to her should always be appreciated. What was more, he didn''t seem to hate her that much as he did before, so she should be happy that his impression of her had changed. "You don''t have to thank me. This is my job," he replied as his face darkened, and even his smile was gone. He was a little upset. Was he too humble in front of her? This was uncharacteristic of him. ''Will she think too much about why I cooked for her?'' he wondered. As the two were lost in their own thoughts, Kevin''s phone rang all of a sudden. After a short nce at Kevin, she picked up the book from earlier and continued where she left off. While watching her every move, Kevin took out his phone and looked at the name on the screen. Before he answered the phone, he let out a sigh of distress. "What''s wrong?" he asked in an irritated voice. "Kevin, are you still in the East Mountain Vi?" Cherry asked in a slightly flirty tone with a hint of unhappiness in her voice. As soon as he heard her question, a frown made its way on his face. After another sigh, he answered, "Yes, I''m still here." Anne could easily tell who was on the other side of the line by what she heard from Kevin. Additionally, Cherry was the only one who had the guts to call him at that hour. It was clear that Cherry was making her presence known to her. That being said, Anne didn''t want to show her jealousy so she continued reading her book. But her ears were listening to every word that came out of Kevin''s mouth. "Will I see you today?" Cherry asked in a needy voice. Even though it had only been one night since Kevin went to the East Mansion, Cherry couldn''t stand it anymore. No matter how hard she tried, she couldn''t get rid of the creeping feeling that Kevin would start liking Anne from their time together. For that reason, Cherry knew she had to keep an eye on him all the time. Feeling a bit hesitant, Kevin meekly replied, "I don''t think I can go back today." After Cherry heard his response, the look on her face darkened. She didn''t care whether Kevin''s mother was beside her on the sofa. In fact, she knew that showing a sad face to Selma was exactly the way to get what she wanted. With the saddest frown, Cherry told her about Kevin''s stay at the East Mountain Vi without a n to Selma couldn''t help but butt in when she saw how upset Cherry was. "He''s been there for two days already. Why does he still need to stay there? Give me the phone and I''ll talk some sense into him," she said to Cherry. As soon as Kevin heard his mother''s voice, he knew exactly what she was going to say. Feeling worried, he nced at Anne from the corner of his eyes. It seemed that she didn''t have a single clue to what was happening. "Auntie, just let him be. Anne is pregnant these days and can''t eat anything without feeling nauseous. She needs Kevin to take care of her and I''m okay with that," Cherry reassured Selma that she was fine with Kevin''s decision even though she really wasn''t. Selma''s blood instantly started to boil at what was happening around her. Because of her reaction, Cherry felt a bit better about herself. At least she was confident that someone was still on her side. And she was d that she had seized the opportune moment to help Kevin out. Kevin would appreciate her for that. Even if Selma didn''t agree with her son''s decision, she kept in anger to herself and just patted Cherry''s hand tofort her. After that, she went upstairs, feeling dismayed at the fact that Cherry was too considerate. With everything settled, Cherry took a deep breath and told herself that she must put up with it for the moment. With a force caring voice, she clenched her fists hard and said, "I''m sorry, Kevin. I just called you because I miss you so much. If you''re busy right now, I''ll let you be." Kevin couldn''t help but feel guilty when he heard her. He knew in his heart that he had ignored her for a while at that point. And it wasn''t right to treat such a considerate and kinddy like that. With tight pressed lips and a heart full of guilt, he gave in and eventually said, "I''ll go back tomorrow and I promise I''ll make it up to you." When Anne overheard him, her hand stopped turning pages and started to tremble. She looked at Kevin''s back and inevitably felt disappointed since he was so kind to her that morning. Sure enough, Cherry was the most important person in his heart, more important than her and the baby. Because of that, she rubbed her tummy and couldn''t help but feel sorry for the life inside her. ''Hmp... Do what you want!'' Anne irritably thought to herself. After a while, Kevin was finished speaking to Cherry and hung up the phone. As soon as he did, Anne suddenly felt dizzy, to the point that she had to close the book in her hand so she could rub her temples. Despite feeling bad, Anne still put on her best poker face and just stared at the infusion line and a bottle of injection nearby. ''I should tell him that he can leave since the IV drip is almost finished,'' she thought to herself. Kevin quickly noticed that the book she was reading was closed. With a concerned tone, he asked, "Why''d you stop?" Right after that, he turned his attention to his phone and ced it back in his pocket. In that short amount of time, Anne hadin down on the bed. As he watched her, feelings of regret filled his heart. He knew it was a bad idea to talk to Cherry while Anne was with him. "I''m just tired." Ann replied indifferently and covered herself in the quilt. Kevin paused for a while, thinking hard about what he should say to her. However, nothing came out of his mind. Helpless, he just said, "Have a good rest, and I will leave first." He felt worse about himself now. He actually felt embarrassed when he stood in front of her. What a joke! But he couldn''t figure out why. "Wait a minute," Anne said in a meek voice. Kevin didn''t waste a single second and turned around when he heard her soft voice. With a concerned look on his face, he asked, "Is there something you need me to do?" The anxiety in his voice was evident. Kevin regretted it as soon as he heard himself. Due to the awkward situation, nobody uttered a single word for quite some time. When Anne finally regained a bit of strength to talk clearly again, she asked Kevin, "Can I use my phone right now?" The look on Kevin''s face turned frigid as soon as he heard her request. While crossing his arms, he asked in response, "Why do you need your phone? You''re pregnant and you need to rest. You shouldn''t be toying around with one right now." Anne knew he would deny her request from the moment she asked. However, she still tried pleading with him while biting her lower lip. "Come on, I''m so bored right now and I can''t do anything else to entertain myself." "You''re bored? Are you not enjoying reading anymore?" On second thought, Kevin realized that Anne was right. There was nobody to apany her and her body was too weak to move and go about outside. Anyone in her position would surely get bored. That being said, Kevin still didn''t want to let her use a phone. After a few minutes, he thought of something that made him re at Anne. In an using tone, he asked, "You just want to contact that man, don''t you?" Anne waspletely caught off-guard by what he said. With a puzzled look on her face, she asked, "What are you even talking about?" Right after that, she stared into his eyes while tears started swelling up in her eyes. "Kevin, don''t always think that everyone is bad!" Anne sorrowfully eximed. "I think he is bad? Or he is really bad in the first ce?" In a condescending tone, he continued, "Am I really at fault to think that way? Think about what kind of person you are and you''ll know why I suspected your motives in getting a phone." Anne felt a chill down her spine. Kevin''s insensitive and ice-cold words were like a knife stabbing her right in the chest. And worse, she was not even qualified to let him known her pain. "Forget it," Anne said with a lifeless, cold tone. After that, she turned away from Kevin and huddled up in the quilt to wallow in despair. When Kevin came back to his senses, he immediately regretted opening his mouth. He couldn''t believe he just said those words to such a beautiful, gentle, and kind woman. Suddenly, his feelings of pity was reced by contempt. His pride didn''t allow him to feel sorry for a woman of her kind. With a cold stare, he turned his back and left. Chapter 29 Heartbroken Chapter 29 Heartbroken Kevin''s footsteps were quickly fading away. Anne listened carefully. Her body stiffened when she heard him stop abruptly. After a while, the sound of the door mming shut resounded in the room. Breathing a sigh of relief, she turned to look at the door. He left. He really left. With her strength drained from her body, she finally let a few hot tears slip along the corners of her eyes and down on the pillow. As they fell with urgency, they kept reminding her that she was just a tool for surrogacy. After getting what she deserved, she would leave immediately. Cherry seemed to be in a good mood thanks to the phone call. Obviously, Selma was very satisfied with her. On the contrary, she found Kevin''s recent performance quite disappointing. Even though Anne was pregnant, it was inappropriate for him not toe back for days. Fortunately, Cherry was sensible enough not toin about it. Otherwise, she would really be pissed off by Kevin. "Kevin is such a willful boy. It''s one thing to stop dealing with thepany''s affairs, but quite another not to find the time to be with you." Selma picked up the cup of coffee from the table and took a cautious sip. "Luckily, Cherry, you''re such a fairdy and don''t bother at all." Cherry sat graciously on the sofa. She always took care to show the best version of herself around Selma. Raising her head delicately, she unted a gentle smile. "Auntie, it doesn''t matter. I understand Kevin. After all, this is his first child. It''s natural for him to be thoughtful." "You are so considerate." With a satisfied nod, Selma smiled back at her. In spite of her praise, Cherry still felt bad. Her smile was graceful, but her gaze was full of disappointment. How could Selma not understand what she was thinking? Noticing her unhappy look, Selma asked, "Cherry, are you worried about Kevin?" "What?" Astonished by that unexpected question, Cherry quickly turned around with her expression full of denial. "No, no. I believe in him. But Anne is a good girl. I''m afraid--" "You don''t have to worry about that. Kevin is a man who treasures the present. He knows the difference between love and hate very clearly. He hates Anne so much. How could he fall in love with her?" Smiling, Selma added, "What''s more, Anne has fallen far behind you. Kevin has good taste. We should trust in him." Since it was Selma to say those words, Cherry couldn''t bring herself to disagree. At least, she knew she seeded because Selma liked her, and so did the rest in the whole Fu Family. Therefore, as soon as the baby was born, she would formally marry Kevin and be the young hostess of the Fu Family. At the thought, she couldn''t help but smile triumphantly. ''Anne, you can''tpete with me after all.'' Sam and Emily had been out the whole day and hadn''te back yet. Feeling bored for staying in the vi alone, Kevin wanted to see Anne, but he had just left her room. It wouldn''t be appropriate for him to rush to her too soon. After waiting downstairs for some time, irritated and consumed by his own thoughts, he finally decided to go upstairs again. The door was closed. He stood in front of it for a while before bringing himself to knock. He knocked and knocked, but no sound came from inside. Frowning, he bashed on the door harder. "Anne, are you asleep?" Hearing the noise, Anne immediately pointed her eyes to the door. What was wrong with Kevin? He had barged into her room to scold her a while earlier, and now he''d alreadye back. What was he up to? She pursed her lips, staying quiet. It didn''t matter what he was going to do. But she didn''t want to say anything now, not to mention see his annoying face again. Anne turned over in her bed. Although she couldn''t fall asleep, it was good for her to lie down as she needed to rest. "Anne, if you keep silent, I will open the door ande in." As he got no response, he pushed the door open and burst in. He caught a glimpse of the slightly bumped quilt on the bed. Knowing that she was still resting gave him some relief. He strode to the bed and stopped at its side. As he leaned over, he gazed at Anne''s beautiful and delicate features. Her eyes were closed, her eyshes trembled slightly, and her breathing was slow. She seemed to have fallen asleep. It wasmon for pregnant women to sleep more. Shaking his head, Kevin sighed, "You did fall asleep so soon and soundly." Anne clenched her fists under the quilt, wishing she could jump up and tell Kevin she wasn''t sleeping at all. She was just a pregnant woman lying on the bed for a while, but in his eyes, she waszy. That man really hated her. After some time, Kevin was still there. The sound of turning pages traveled to Anne''s ears from the Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. sofa. Hearing that, she moved a little and opened her eyes stealthily to look in that direction. She hadn''t noticed that Kevin had picked up the book "Where is the Beauty" from her bed, which he was now reading attentively on the sofa. Biting her lips furiously, Anne was on the verge of breaking down. She really couldn''t understand what Kevin wanted. She had fallen asleep. Shouldn''t he just leave quietly? What was he doing? ''You can read somewhere else!'' After lying still for a while, Anne couldn''t bear it anymore. She moved and made some noise on purpose to make Kevin notice her. Since she couldn''t pretend to be asleep anymore, she was ready to drive Kevin out. She didn''t want to stay in the same room with this man the whole night. "Ahem..." She deliberately faked a cough. At the sound, Kevin turned around and saw her cough with her eyes closed. Then, he stood up and walked toward the bed. After coughing a few times, Anne cracked her eyes open gradually. The moment she opened thempletely, she saw Kevin''s handsome and cold face in front of hers. Pretending to be surprised, she asked in a sleepy tone, "Why are you here?" "What do you think?" He didn''t know why, but he felt that there was something wrong with her expression, as if she had been aware of his presence from the beginning. Otherwise, why would her eyes be so evasive? It seemed that she was feeling guilty. "How can I know what you are doing here? I just fell asleep. You must have woken me up." As she red at him, she added in a low voice, "Get out of here. I want to sleep." "Then sleep. Just ignore me." Kevin straightened up and went to sit back on the sofa. He picked up the book and continued to read it as if no one was around. At this, Anne began fuming with rage. "What the hell are you doing? I can''t fall asleep if you sit here." "Really?" Kevin turned to look at her, raising his eyebrows in a sly expression. "But it looked like you were sleeping well just now." "Kevin, did you do it on purpose?" Yes, he had done it on purpose. He knew that she didn''t want to see him, but he still appeared in front of her intentionally, making her unhappy. "How could I? You are pregnant, so it''s not safe for you to be alone. I will take care of you." Ignoring her protests, Kevin turned back to the book in his hands. That was thest straw for Anne. Seeing that the IV medication bag and the line ran dry, she straightened her back, pulled out the needle, ready to get out of bed. As Kevin noticed that, his face turned suddenly icy. "What are you doing?" "I want to get up." Without paying further attention to him, Anne lifted her quilt, eager to get out of bed. Kevin immediately put down the book and marched decisively toward her. Looking down at her, he asked, "Where do you want to go?" Anne didn''t like the way Kevin talked to her. Although he had always used that tone with her, now that she was pregnant, she had an advantage she should make good use of. "I want to go to the bathroom. What? Am I not allowed to go there?" "It''s not that I don''t allow you to go. I''ll carry you there." As soon as he finished that sentence, he bent down upon Anne, ready to take her in his arms. With a scream, Anne pulled back right away and red at Kevin vigntly. "What do you want to do?" "I''ll carry you. You''ve been lying in bed the whole day. Now your body is weak, and I''m afraid you can''t stand up." Kevin stared at the woman in front of him impassively. His tone and expression were calm, yet extremely serious. Anne didn''t know what he was up to, but he looked dangerous. She''d better not provoke him. "Forget it. I won''t go." She straightened her back and pointed at the book on the sofa. "That''s my book. I want to read it. Give it to me." Narrowing his eyes, Kevin replied coldly, "Are you giving me orders?" Anne looked up at him and nodded. "Sort of. Forget it if you don''t want to." With a sneer, Kevin turned around and walked back to the sofa to pick up the book. He then handed it to Anne. "How can I not want to?" Today, Kevin was strange. Anne grabbed the book uneasily and opened it at the page she was reading earlier, but no matter how appealing the novel was, she couldn''t read a word. She was not in the mood to read anything with Kevin looming over her. "What on earth do you want?" She had waited patiently for him to leave, but Kevin showed no intention to go away. He just sat beside her with a cold stare, watching her reading. "I don''t want to do anything. Did I disturb you?" He shrugged. "I don''t think so." Anne squinted at him. "Kevin, if you are bored and have nothing to do, you can leave. I don''t need you here." Exasperated by his insistence, she couldn''t figure out his intentions. What did he mean? Did he want to watch her at all times? He had already locked her up in this vi. What else did he want to do? Chapter 30 Taking Her Out Chapter 30 Taking Her Out Kevin nodded and said expressionlessly, "I know, but I need to spend time with my child." "You..." Anne really wanted to throw the book she held at his annoying face. But on second thought, she could use the art of persuasion and pawn Kevin off on Cherry. "Kevin, will you stay here with the child until it is born?" Noticing her softer tone, Kevin nced at her and nodded. "Yes." "But don''t forget that Cherry is waiting for you at home." It was indeed beyond Kevin''s expectation that Anne would bring up Cherry. He frowned, "What do you mean?" "Nothing. I just think you should spend more time with her. She''s a real catch. Aren''t you afraid someone else will get her?" "Will you also worry about me?" Kevin''s sharp eyes looked at Anne, and it seemed he could see through Anne''s scheme. Kevin thought he was the only one who could choose, and no one could take that choice away from him. Noting the rays of cold light from his eyes, Anne raised her head and looked at him with a faint smile. "Of course. Seriously, though¡ªare you willing to lock yourself in this ce all day long with a pregnant woman?" "Who said you would be locked up here all day long?" Kevin frowned and wondered where Anne had got this idea from. Hearing Kevin''s words, Anne was in a bad mood. She sneered, "Didn''t you say that? That I had to stay here until the baby was born? You told me I wasn''t allowed to go out. So are you ready for that? If you stay with me, you''ll have an idea of how it feels," she said this slowly, word by word. Kevin narrowed his eyes and said, "Since you want to go out so bad, let''s go!" Seeing the dangerous look on his face, Anne didn''t want to push it, but sometimes he went too far. She''d have to challenge him on some things. Maybe that was the only way to get Kevin to understand she was a person, not a robot. Even if he didn''t love her, it was better if he hated her. Anne followed Kevin downstairs. To be honest, she was still very weak. It took everything she had to go from the room to the stairs, and again from the stairs to the hall. She was very tired, but she followed Kevin bit by bit without saying a word. Because she knew that if sheined, Kevin might change his mind about taking her out. She had been here a few days, but she had never gone out, nor could she even call or text anyone. She hadn''t forgotten her appointment with Ryan, but she couldn''t contact him, and that would be hard to pull off now. When they got to the hallway, Kevin suddenly stopped and looked back at her. She halted her steps and looked at the man in front of her, keeping her poker face. "What do you want to eat tonight? We''ll go somewhere and grab something." Eat? Anne sneered in her heart. She didn''t want to eat anything, and just wanted to go out and get some fresh air. If she could just get out of the house, she''d be happy, even if she had to be with Kevin. As for a choice of meals, she didn''t care. "Alright." She stood straight beside him, looking as imposing as him. ncing at her coldly, Kevin raised his eyebrows and said in a low voice, "Let''s go." The couple walked to the car. They could see the countryside in the fading light of evening, its rolling hills, trees, and lush greenery. Everywhere Anne looked was absolutely beautiful and serene. It was not like it was all good. It was stressful being near Kevin, but she still was in a much better mood. Looking at the green nts in front of her, Anne couldn''t help putting her hand on her belly. "Baby, mommy has taken you outside. Look, it''s so beautiful here," she whispered. Although she kept her voice low, Kevin could hear her clearly. Unconsciously, he tightened his grip on the steering wheel, while he turned his head slightly and took a look at the woman beside him. There was a slight smile at the corners of her mouth, and her eyes filled with tenderness that could rarely be seen in them. She sat quietly beside him, with her head gently leaning against the leather seat. Her face was quiet and elegant. A gentle breeze tousled her hair, bringing a burst of fragrance. A vague smile appeared at the corners of Kevin''s mouth. "Where do you want to go?" Kevin spoke first, but Anne didn''t react much. She still looked out of the window and said softly, "It''s up to you." She was not a picky person and was easy to satisfy. She was happy she finally got out into the open air. The most important thing now was the baby growing inside her. She knew if she were in a bad mood all the time, the baby''s health would be affected. Since she was outside finally, she was determined to be in a good mood and enjoy this night to the fullest. She could just ignore Kevin. He didn''t really want to be here, anyway. "Then let''s head to your house." After hearing what the man said, Anne turned her head suddenly and asked, "What did you say? To my house?" She hadn''t been there in a long time. Last time she was there was before she married Kevin. Considering the life she lived then, how could she return to that house where everyone was tired of her, where they lived to humiliate her? "What? You don''t like that idea?" Kevin turned the car around with a cold smile. Looking at his expression, Anne knew that he did it on purpose. It was not her own home at all. It was the Ye n, Cherry''s home. "Yeah. Go ahead. Whatever you want." Looking around, Anne felt a little sad. When she felt the breeze heralding the end of spring and the beginning of summer, she felt chilled for some reason. That so-called home had been meaningless to her for a long time. It had been a long time since her mother died, and after her mother''s death she vowed never to return. But Kevin insisted they visit again. She smiled bitterly. Kevin would never pass up an opportunity to torture her. Anne shook her head. "Kevin, this is not cool. I don''t want to go there." After a moment of silence, Anne chose to surrender. She didn''t want to set foot in that house. She would rather stay in the East Mountain Vi. Kevin turned his head. It was the first time that he had seen such a firm expression on Anne''s face. He nodded and agreed, "Okay." Anne didn''t expect that Kevin would bend so easily. She bowed her head, with her good mood swept away again. When he realized that Anne didn''t want to go there, it dawned on Kevin he said something wrong. No one in her family liked her. She would be theughingstock of her whole family if she came back. At first, he just thought she had no friends and could drive her home to live for a period of time. But then after he thought carefully, he found that Anne really had nowhere to go except to stay with him. He was sympathetic to her but he knew she was obstinate when she wanted to be. It was also her stubbornness that made Kevin want to hurt her again and again to make her bend. Kevin didn''t take Anne to a restaurant for dinner. He drove to the riverside park and then stopped. "What are we doing here?" Anne couldn''t understand what was going on Kevin''s head. He said they were going to have dinner. Why did he suddenlye here? "It''s pretty here. I want to take in the sights." Kevin eased the seat back andy down leisurely. He closed his eyes and rested his hands behind his head, feeling extremelyfortable. He should have taken a shower, and the ck color on his face had long since disappeared, reced by a clean and resolute face. His hair was neatlybed, and half of his forehead was covered by his bangs. Under his hair were two dashing eyebrows, which made him look strong. At this moment, his expression was much gentler than before, and his breath was not so cold as it used to be. Anne stared at him a few times, but soon she was attracted by his face and couldn''t tear her gaze away. "If you keep looking at me like that, I can''t guarantee that I won''t take advantage of it." When he spoke, Anne''s heart suddenly trembled. She quickly turned her head to look out of the window, but her face was as hot as fire. It was so humiliating for her to be horny right now. Not to mention it was Kevin. What was she thinking? "Ha-ha." Kevin chuckled and turned to look at her, "You know, sometimes you''re not that annoying." Her heart skipped a beat, and her body froze. Hearing this, Anne wrinkled her nose and asked softly, "What do you mean?" He had always told her she was annoying. Why did he say that all of a sudden? Kevin blinked his eyes and said in a low voice, "I said what I said. What part didn''t you understand?" "All of it." Anne shut him down without any hesitation. She wasn''t going to guess what Kevin was really N?velDrama.Org owns all content. thinking. "How should I know what you''re thinking?" "Tell me, what kind of home life did you have when you were a kid?" Kevin stood up quickly, and the huge shadow shrouded Anne, who could clearly smell a scent that was Kevin''s and his alone. It was a pleasant smell, though she couldn''t tell if it was his natural smell or the scent of tobo. For a moment, Anne was mesmerized by such smell. Kevin leaned aside. The streetmp overhead cast a yellow light, and his deep eyes were sparkling. "I..." She didn''t know why Kevin suddenly asked this question. But when he mentioned her past, she felt heartbreaking pain. Her past could only be described in four words. Nothing but unbearable memories. "Tell me." Hiszy voice rang in her ears. Anne raised her chin and asked, "Why do you ask? Don''t you know already?" He knew how she grew up. It was ironic to ask her at this moment. Kevin shook his head, "Not really. I have my own ideas, but I want to hear it from you." He knew what kind of person Anne was then, but he didn''t know much about her past. For example, what kind of environment could make her turn out like this? Even with everyone hating her, she still managed to endure it. She had a sense of self, as much as her family tried to quash it. Chapter 31 Hated Chapter 31 Hated It seemed like nothing in the world could destroy her. After thinking about it carefully, Anne said rather casually, "Like what you just know, they cast me aside. I was hated andughed at by everyone." As soon as she spoke, heughed. "Then, please tell me how you survived." He was mocking her, but Anne didn''t care, because even she didn''t know how she did it. "I just tried my best to exist in this world." After saying that, she straightened up and couldn''t help but put her hands around her exposed arms. She suddenly missed her mother badly, who had left her so long that she could scarcely remember her. What she looked like, her smile, her warmth...all of that had faded from Anne''s memory. When Kevin heard this, the smile at the corners of his mouth stiffened. He regretted asking that question. "Then you''re living a good life." He clearly didn''t want to hurt her anymore, but what came out of his mouth was still something hurtful. He just couldn''t help it. "Really?" Anne smiled slightly, "A good life? Maybe. Maybe I am." She owned shares in AN Group, became the vice president of thepany, and married the man everyone dreamed of. She must have lived a good life. She was the young hostess of the Fu Family, how bad could she be? Kevin narrowed his eyes and said, "We won''t go back to the East Mountain Vi tonight." "Why?" Anne turned to look at him, and asked in confusion, "Where are we going?" "We''re heading back to my house." Kevin stood up, held the steering wheel with both hands, and looked at the river in the dark night. "Anne, take good care of my child and give birth to it. I''ll give you everything you deserve." Every pore in her body was invaded by the cold air. With a smile on her face, Anne replied, "Okay, I promise you I won''t do anything to hurt your child." "Okay. I''ll hold you to it." After the engine started, Kevin looked straight ahead as they drove away. Along the way, Anne kept silent. All she could think about was what Kevin said. She knew that Kevin really hoped that she could give birth to a son as soon as possible, so that the two of them could separate. They would owe each other nothing after that. Unfortunately, she didn''t know if the baby growing inside her was a boy. If it wasn''t a boy, would she still have to be with him for a few more years? She had no idea if she even wanted that. "Auntie, look! This dress is so beautiful!" "Yes, you''re right." Selma nodded. She was quite satisfied with the fashion show. Many clothes were so finely made and she considered ordering a few. "Auntie, you busy tomorrow? If not, how about I go shopping with you?" Cherry adopted a thoughtful look. Selma was very happy. "Okay, I''d love to buy you some clothes. I know¡ªit''s poorfort for the way you''ve been treated, but at least it''s something." Cherry knew what Selma was talking about. She was in a bad mood at the mention of it, but she still managed to shove her emotions aside for the moment. "Auntie, I don''t need that. I understand everything and I don''t care." "Okay, then," Selma sighed and kept silent. The two people sitting on the sofa were watching a TV show when a servant suddenly walked over in a hurry. "Mrs. Selma, Miss Cherry!" "What''s wrong? Why are you in such a hurry? Shouldn''t you mind your manners?" Selma frowned and scolded the servant severely. She didn''t know what was wrong with the servants, always shouting and screaming for no reason. Seeing that Selma was angry, the servant lowered her head in a hurry and tried not to breathe too loudly. "Mrs. Selma, Mr. Kevin is back. He..." "What? Do you mean Kevin''s here?" Full of joy, Cherry quickly stood up, excitedly grabbed Selma''s hand and said, "Auntie, did you hear that? Kevin''s back!" Before the servant could even finish her statement, Cherry had already run out happily. "Kevin! Is that you?" Kevin and Anne had just stepped into the room, and Cherry was there to greet them. Anne''s face showed little reaction, but Kevin was a little surprised. "Cherry?" The smile on Cherry''s face froze. She paused for a bit and said, "Kevin, you''re back!" "Hmm." Kevin nodded, nced at Cherry and walked inside. Cherry stood still and stared at Anne. She raised her voice and asked, "Anne, why are you here? Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. Feeling better now?" How could Anne not understand what she meant? She blinked her eyes and said calmly, "Much better. Thank you for your concern, Cherry." Cherry forced a smile onto her delicate face. She stepped forward, deliberately approached Anne, and whispered, "What are you doing here? Don''t you know you''re not wee?" "Of course I do." Anne looked back at her without any stir in her eyes. "But Kevin asked me toe. What was I supposed to say?" "You said Kevin asked you toe here?" Cherry bit her lips and shook her head, "No way. He came here, and you just tagged along." Anne smiled gracefully. "Oh really? And why would I do that? Maybe to see how well you two get along?" She turned around and nced at the direction of Kevin. "Or maybe I came here so you could torture me?" "You..." Cherry didn''t expect that Anne''s tongue would be so sharp. She was furious, but she couldn''t lose her temper. She raised her hand, held Anne''s arm and shouted, "Let me help you in! Be careful!" Cherry gripped her arm so tightly that Anne frowned and stopped to take a look at her. Cherry raised her head and red at her. She couldn''t mess with Anne without disgracing herself, but she could vent her anger secretly. Anyway, Kevin was back. So Cherry could do everything she could to make time with him, and leave Anne behind. Secretly tormenting Anne was just icing on the cake. "Mom." When he walked over the sofa, Kevin saw Selma and sat next to her. She seemed to be in a bad mood. Seeing that, he asked, "You don''t look happy. Who upset you?" "It''s you!" Selma said, ring at Kevin. "Who upset me? The very idea!" she added. Why did you bring her here? She''s pregnant now and should stay at home." As soon as she looked up, she saw Anne''s expressionless face. She couldn''t tell what Anne was thinking that made her wear a long face all day long, She preferred Cherry''s smiles, while the sight of Anne just put her off. Kevin pursed his lips and tried to smooth things over. "Mom, why don''t you go to bed?" "With you acting like this? How can I rest?" Obviously, Selma was not satisfied with Kevin''s recent behavior. She sat up straight and said seriously, "Let me tell you, I know the baby is important, but you can''t forget Cherry." Selma seldom cared about his affairs, but today she said so much. It seemed that she really liked Cherry. Kevin looked up and saw Cherry nearby. It had only been a few days, but she had lost so much weight. Cherry noticed Kevin''s gaze, so she immediately looked up and smiled at him. A smile like that made Kevin feel even guiltier. "I know." Kevin replied coldly, "Mom, I know how to handle my own affairs." "Really? Do you really know? Because if you did, you wouldn''t have brought Anne here." With a disappointed expression, Selma stood up and said, "I''m going upstairs. Clean up your mess. And get Anne out of here by tomorrow. I want her gone by the time I get up." After casting a disdainful nce at Anne, Selma straightened her chest and went upstairs in noble and elegant steps. As soon as she walked to the sofa, Anne nced towards Selma who went upstairs. She knew that Selma didn''t like her, but she didn''t expect this kind of hate. "Still feeling okay?" Cherry asked her. She was pretending again. But it would be rude not to respond. She nodded and smiled. "I feel pretty good. Thank you, Cherry." "That''s good. Have a seat." It looked like Cherry was helping Anne sit down on the sofa, but in fact, she pinched Anne''s slender arm hard. Although it hurt, Anne was still calm. The smile at the corners of her mouth was faint, like she hadn''t been affected at all. "Cherry, you don''t have to be so attentive to your cousin..." Seeing that Cherry was busy taking care of Anne, Kevin waved at Cherry, patted the seat beside him and said in a low voice, "Come sit next to me. I haven''t seen you for a few days. How did you lose so much weight?" "I''m fine!" Hearing that, Cherry was naturally very happy. She sat beside Kevin and then said shyly, "Kevin, why did you suddenlye back?" Seeing her blush, Kevin felt warm in his heart. Looking at her shy face, he couldn''t help raising her chin slightly. Her smile was charming. Looking at her beautiful lips, he really wanted to kiss her. But he held back his desire because Anne sat beside him. "Why did Ie? Because I miss you." Seeing how cutesy they were together, Anne almost vomited. Sure enough, her guess was right. Kevin only came here to see Cherry. Unfortunately, when she married Kevin, she made an agreement with him¡ªhe was not allowed to touch other women while they were married. So even if the two of them were burning with desire, they couldn''t really do any more than looking at each other. Chapter 32 Play The Coquetry Chapter 32 y The Coquetry "You are so annoying, Kevin. I miss you too." Cherry''s coquettish voice almost melted Kevin into a warm lovey-dovey puddle. Anne thought, ''No wonder Kevin likes Cherry so much. Every guy likes a flirty woman like that, huh?'' Anne wasn''t like that, and she knew it. Why would anyone be attracted to her? She wasn''t girly or flirtatious, and most people would think her a weirdo if she acted like that. Anne smiled in self-mockery. It was better for her to leave these two people as soon as possible, or she would throw up what little she had eaten that day. "Ahem." With a slight cough, Anne pointed upstairs and said, "May I be excused? I''m headed to my room." Although she seldom came here, Anne still remembered the general location of her room. "You don''t have to do that. I''ll get you a room in town." Kevin stood up and stopped Anne. His words were so powerful that it took a long time for Anne to react. "Get me a room? Like at a hotel?" What was the meaning of this? Did he mean she was free tonight? "Yeah, I''ll go with you." Kevin let go of Cherry''s hand and straightened his clothes. "Cherry, get some sleep, okay? I''ll be back tomorrow." "What?" Cherry didn''t expect that Kevin would behave like this. She had waited for Kevin toe back, but he was going to stay in a hotel, and with Anne. This was more vexing than their arrangement in the East Mountain Vi. "Why? You''re back. Why go to a hotel when you can stay here?" Cherry couldn''t understand what Kevin was thinking. Since they had returned to this house, what was he thinking by doing this? Did he want to stay alone with Anne? No, it was impossible. "My mother made herself clear. Anne has to be out by morning." Kevin parroted Selma''s thoughts. Cherry was taken aback, so was Anne. Anne didn''t know that Selma hated her so much. "But..." Cherry wanted to say something more, but she couldn''t think of any reason to keep Kevin from leaving. Since it was Selma''s idea, what else could she say? "Fine. When will you be back?" "I wille back in the morning, after I get her settled somewhere." Kevin reached out and pinched Cherry''s nose in a petting act. "Good girl, wait for me." He was so gentle that Cherry had been deeply attracted by his deep eyes. She was enthusiastic, and she nodded immediately, "Okay, I''ll wait for you." Seeing that the two were reluctant to part, Anne really didn''t have the heart to interfere. She decided to help out. "How about this? Youe back here after getting me settled in the hotel. I don''t need you around all the time. I''m not helpless." "Really?" Cherry asked excitedly. "That sounds like a great idea! Is it really okay for you to be alone in the hotel?" Anne had expected Cherry''s reaction. She nodded and said without hesitation, "Of course. I can handle myself." "No." As soon as Anne gave her response, Kevin said, "I know what you''re nning." Anne pursed her lips. Kevin wasn''t dumb, and knew what she was ying at. She wanted to take advantage of this opportunity to contact Ryan, but Kevin was always so paranoid. This was going to be harder than she thought. She had to find a way to stay here, instead of going back to the East Mountain Vi. Then she might find an opportunity to go out. Then she could ask for help from Sam. That should be no problem. "I don''t know what you''re talking about," said Anne. Turning to him, she said, "If you don''t trust me, you can go to the hotel with me. I don''t mind. Take Cherry, too, for all I care." "I''d better not. Cherry needs her rest." Kevin shut Anne''s idea down. He didn''t even give Cherry a chance to speak. Then he turned to face Cherry, put his hands on her shoulders and charmed her with a gentle look. "Cherry, I''ll be back in the morning. Go to bed now, okay?" Since he was so gentle, it was not easy for Cherry to refuse. She could only put on a hurt face, pout her red lips and say, "I''ll hold you to that." "I''m looking forward to it." He lowered his head and gave a light kiss on Cherry''s red lips in front of Anne. Cherry blushed and threw herself into Kevin''s arms. Standing off to the side and looking at them, Anne had a cold expression on her face. She turned her back on them, as if those two had nothing to do with her. After finally getting their fill of intimacy, the two finally let go of each other. Cherry reluctantly escorted Kevin out, while Anne followed close behind them. Looking at their tightly sped ten fingers, Anne felt extremely ufortable. How ridiculous she was! Her husband flirted with another woman in front of her, but she didn''t even have the right to say anything about it. It would be a rare thing to find another wife like that. When they arrived at the hotel, Kevin booked two rooms. Although it was a hotel under the name of AN Group, when she checked in, Anne still felt a little leery. She liked the idea of separate rooms, but she was here with Kevin. If someone posted this online, she''d surely hit the headlines tomorrow. Even though she was the young hostess of the Fu Family, the public knew that she was just his spouse in name only. Everyone felt that title should belong to Cherry. She was probably the only one who would be sympathized orughed at when she was in the papers. When she entered the elevator, Anne looked at the man next to her. He was silent and frowning, so she knew he was in a bad mood. Well, since he was in a bad mood, she would not be afraid to ask him a few questions. "Why two rooms?" After thinking for a while, Anne suddenly blurted this out. She even startled herself. She frowned and immediately took back her words. "Actually, I mean-" Kevin looked back at her with a pair of deep eyes under his dashing eyebrows. He opened his red lips and said, "Well, what''s the matter with that?" "Nothing." Looking back at him, Anne raised her eyes and pursed her lips. With a sound of the bell, the elevator door opened. Kevin put his hands in his pockets and walked towards the end of the corridorzily. Anne followed him and tried to hide herself. There was a phone in the hotel. As long as she and Kevin lived separately, she could get in touch with Ryan. When he walked to the door of the hotel, Kevin suddenly stopped. Looking at the presidential suite in front of him, he raised his eyebrows and asked Anne, "Which room do you want?" "Either one." At this time, Anne would not want to choose a room. What she was thinking then was how to sessfully get rid of Kevin. "Okay, this one, then." Kevin chose the closest room to him. When he was about to enter, Anne stood in front of the door and watched, waiting for him to disappear from sight. When he was about to turn a corner, Kevin suddenly stopped and looked back at her. "What are you doing? Come on in." His tone was cold, and his expression was as cold as ice. It seemed that he was unhappy with the dull look on Anne''s face. Anne frowned, and didn''t understand what Kevin meant. Shouldn''t she go to another room? Why did Kevin let her in? Did he have something to tell her? "What''s up?" She walked to Kevin and saw the concierge behind her close the door. She clenched her hands and said concisely, "If we''re done here, I''lly down and get some sleep." "Where are you going to do that?" His voice became colder and colder. He turned and walked to sit on the sofa, legs crossed. From his point of view, he could see the lights of the city spread out before him. Neon lights, car lights and store lights shed in countless unknown corners. Kevin squinted at them, in a bad mood. "I''m going to the other room." Anne was so indifferent that sometimes she felt her existence was unnecessary. Kevin wasn''t very goodpany right now, anyway. He didn''t feel like having anyone else around. Just sitting there, he had a regal manner like one who was born to be king. It was as if only he had right to look down on others, while others couldn''t even look up to him. Anne stood quietly behind him, like a lotus, silent and elegant. With his back to Anne, he acted like he was inhaling her scent. It was so tempting he was addicted to it. "Come and sit here." He reached out and patted the cushion next to him. Although Anne didn''t understand what he was doing, she didn''t intend to go against him. If she wanted to have a peaceful night tonight, she''d better not cause problems. No one knew what Kevin would do. She pursed her lips and walked towards him. After sitting down where Kevin pointed, she looked up at him coldly. "What''s the matter? It''ste now." What she meant was that it was veryte and she needed to rest. N?velDrama.Org owns all content. However, it seemed that Kevin didn''t want to give her that opportunity He looked at the woman in front of him. Although she didn''t wear makeup, her eyes and brows were unforgettable. "Who told you that you could sleep in another room?" His sudden words were like a bolt from the blue in her ear. She raised her head and asked in surprise, "What do you mean?" Why the two rooms, then? "The two rooms are just to avoid arousing suspicion. After all, as far as everyone else is concerned, I love Cherry." What did he mean by that? Why didn''t he juste out and say it? The more she thought about it, the deeper Anne frowned. She couldn''t understand what Kevin had said. "I don''t understand." She turned her head away from him. She looked lonely and indifferent. Kevin sat up straight and said, "You don''t need to understand. Tomorrow, everything changes. You''ll have your freedom." Chapter 33 Set Free Chapter 33 Set Free "Why?" Anne didn''t know what was on Kevin''s mind, but how could she not be on her guard when he suddenly said that? She stared at the man in front of her with a serious expression. Kevin chuckled, "Isn''t that what you want?" "Of course it is." With a smile on her face, Anne added, "But I also know a saying. ''If I get what I want, that will be my luck; if not, my fate.'' That''s all." Kevin shook his head, stood up and walked to the bedside. He seemed to be tired and plopped down on the bed. The mattress yielded to his weight, and Kevin found afortable posture to sleep in. "Come here and get some shut-eye. I can''t be with you tomorrow." Kevin''s voice was muffled from the quilt, but Anne could hear him clearly. She stood up and walked towards Kevin obediently. She wasn''t going to do anything to make him mad. If he was happy, he might make her happy. Finally, Kevin was willing to set her free. Lying next to him, Anne felt very peaceful. She could hear everything, especially Kevin. His breath and heartbeat were so clear that they kept the time like a clock. It was quite soothing. Anne closed her eyes. At that moment, Kevin was the man she had been longing for, and the man she had been pursuing in her heart. But once some feelings disappeared, they would never again taste as sweet. That was Kevin. In the past, she did everything for love. Butter, she thought it was stupid. She curled up and tried her best to clear her mind. But when she had mastered her thoughts, she felt a hand on her belly. She couldn''t help trembling and suddenly opened her eyes. In front of her was a face so close to her that she could see his pores. The face that she saw should have made her run wild. In fact, it only made her fearful. The hand on her abdomen was quite warm. He looked at her, eyes close to hers. He couldn''t remember how many times he had fallen asleep being so near her. But this time, the feeling was totally different. The two of them kept silent for a while. Finally, Kevin spoke first. "Can the baby move?" He moved his hand to different ces, trying to feel his child. It was so strange that there was a new life in this world. He wondered what the baby was doing in there and what it would look like when it came out. What a strange question! "Yes, it can," said Anne, nodding her head. Although it was only a month, Anne always felt that there was something inside her. She didn''t know if it had moved, but she could feel that there was something there that was connected with her heart. As long as she was sad, the child would be sad, too. If she was happy, the baby there would also be happy. "Do you think it''s a boy or a girl?" Kevin curled up beside Anne and slowly approached her with a very serious look. Anne looked downwards, sadness in her eyes. "Do you want a boy or a girl?" A boy meant that Anne would leave the Fu Family. If it was a girl, she still had to stay. She didn''t know what she wanted, but she knew that Kevin wanted a boy. As long as the baby in her abdomen was a boy, they would split up, and have nothing to do with each other from then on. Kevin nced at her and said nothing. Anne smiled. "I hope it''s a boy." "Really?" Kevin withdrew his hand from her belly with a cold expression. The warmth on her abdomen disappeared. Anne turned over in bed, her back to Kevin. She closed her eyes, and a tear streaked across her face. Somehow, she just felt despair. She wanted to cry, but she had no reason. And she couldn''t cry if she was not allowed to. Looking at her lovely slender body, Kevin wanted to hug her. But he thought better of it, and rested his hand by his side. The woman in front of him was the one he hated. He shouldn''t feel anything for her. When he closed his eyes, the image of Cherry''s face came up in his mind. Yes, that was the one Kevin should be thinking about. In the private vi, in the brightly lit hall, a fair-skinned man sat on the sofa. He lowered his head slightly, without any expression on his face, and no one knew what was in his head. "What are you thinking about?" His assistant Charlie sat beside him and handed him a cup of coffee. Ryan raised his head and said in a low voice, "Thank you." "What''s wrong with you? You look like your thoughts are a thousand miles away." Charlie had been following Ryan all along. Ryan''s current state naturally made him a little worried. "Nothing." After taking a sip of coffee, Ryan frowned. "It''s just that I haven''t talked to Anne in forever. I''m a little worried." Charlie nodded. He knew what Ryan was thinking. Ryan had been obsessed with that woman for many years. Even after he learned she was married, he still wouldn''t give up. "I know what you''re thinking, but about the contract, do you really want to wait until she shows up?" "Yes." Ryan said, "So no matter what, I have to see her before Ie to a conclusion." "I heard that Kevin has her trapped in a vi. He''s forbidden her to go anywhere." After thinking for a while, Charlie finally told Ryan the news he got a few days ago. He wasn''t going to tell Ryan, but it seemed that the man needed to hear it. "Are you serious?" Ryan was really excited. He frowned and kept silent for a while. Then he said in a low voice, "I''m going to see Kevin." After saying that, Ryan stood up and was about to go find Kevin. "No, you can''t go now." This was Kevin''s turf. If Ryan fought him man-to-man, he''d end up losing. Charlie couldn''t let Ryan take that risk. "Please calm down and wait." "Then how long do I have to wait?" He lowered his head and sat down on the sofa. The beautiful face of Anne appeared in his mind. He lowered his eyes, put his hands between his eyebrows and sighed, "Anne, I wonder what kind of life you have had over the past years." In the morning, when the first ray of sunshine shone on the wooden floor through the curtain, Anne opened her eyes. The man''s steady breath came from beside her, and every organ in her body was nervous. She didn''t know when she fell asleepst night, but she never thought that Kevin was with her. So she slept with Kevin the whole night. But nothing happened between them. She seemed to have a pretty restful sleep, and the man beside her with his eyes closed also seemed to have slept well. She didn''t dare move for fear of waking up the man beside her. Kevin slept beside her. Hey on the bed, his face calm. There was tenderness and elegance on his angr face that she hadn''t seen for a long time. While looking at his slightly unhappy face, Anne wanted to reach out her hand to caress it. But she thought for a while and gave up. N?velDrama.Org owns all content. Turning around, she wanted to get up. Suddenly, he put on a hand on her and said with his unique voice, "Where are you going?" She stopped and didn''t look back at him. After taking a deep breath, she replied, "I''m getting up." Kevin withdrew his hand and looked at his watch. "It''s only eight in the morning. Sleep with me a little while longer." Kevin slept greatst night and didn''t want to get up so early. Didn''t they say that pregnant women were always tired? Why did the woman beside him wake up earlier than he did? "Okay." She didn''t refuse Kevin''s request. In fact, Kevin wasn''t that hateful right now. On the contrary, she was somewhat dependent on him. The two of themy quietly for a while. Anne stayed awake, while Kevin slept soundly. After a while, she fell asleep again. At nine in the morning, Kevin stood in front of the French window and put on his clothes. From his point of view, he could see the irregr buildings and the constant flow of traffic in the city. From the angle of Anne, she could only see the perfect figure of Kevin and his charm in every move. She wore a ck suit with an Armani shirt inside. The tie was sapphire blue, which made him look dazzling. Anne looked at him quietly. Her heart beat faster and faster when she saw that he was already dressed. "I ordered breakfast for you. You can eat here. Emily will be alongter." "Emily''sing here?" Blinking her eyes, Anne asked, "Why? Didn''t you say that I was free now?" Kevin turned around and looked at her pure and delicate face with his deep eyes. "I said you were free, but I didn''t say I wouldn''t care about your safety." Anne nodded. As long as she could be free, she didn''t care about anything else. "I can''t hang out with you today. You can ask her to go shopping with you and head back to the hotel in the evening." Kevin turned around, with his hands in his pockets, and said leisurely, "I''ll be back tonight." "Why do you have to live here?" It was really awkward for them to be together like this. One night was enough. Now she had to sleep with him a second night. Who knew if tonight would be as peaceful asst night? What if something happened? "We three need to work on our rtionship." His voice was already fading as he walked out. Kevin left her here along. He mmed the door. Without any hesitation, Anne stood up, pulled the quilt from her body, and her legs fell to the ground. From then on, she must seize every minute and second. "Knock, knock, knock..." As soon as she got off the ground, someone knocked at the door. Anne asked attentively, "Who is it?" "It''s me, Emily. Anne, are you decent?" "Just a minute." Anne quickly walked to the door and opened it. The moment she saw Emily, she got very excited. "Emily, you''re here. Did you bring your phone?" Chapter 34 The Party Chapter 34 The Party As Emily entered the room full-handed, her eyebrows furrowed in confusion and asked, "Yes, I have a phone with me. What do you want to do?" "Give me your phone." Anne closed the door and reached out to Emily. "I want to call Ryan," she said in a serious tone. "No," Emily refused decisively, "Thest time that you went to see him, Mr. Kevin got very angry. You can''t call him now." Emily had no idea what Anne was thinking. She frowned and continued, "Besides, he just set you free. You really can''t call him this time." Anne puckered her eyebrows and looked at Emily. "Emily, I really have something urgent to deal with. Don''t worry, I won''t see him this time, okay?" she insisted. Emily bit her lip. She didn''t know whether she should allow Anne to have the phone or not. She had heard from Kevin that Anne was already free and she was happy for her boss. However, she didn''t expect that Anne would contact Ryan again. If Kevin knew that they were in touch, Anne would surely be in trouble again. No, no! She shook her head and replied firmly, "No, I can''t give you my phone." Emily stopped for a second and sighed. "I brought breakfast for you, have some," she said, trying to avert the argument. Anne shook her head. How could she even have the mood to eat now? "I''ll just go shopping with you. What do you think?" Emily said trying to enliven Anne. She raised her head to Emily and said, "Emily, don''t you even want to help me? Even for such a small favor?" Anne''s look was very irresistible. Emily was left with no choice but to give Anne what she wanted. She sighed and handed her phone to Anne. "Here you go, but you can only call him for a minute. You can''t talk for too long or even meet him." "Don''t worry," Anne said and grasped the phone. She immediately dialed the number she remembered. It was a vivid day for Ryan. He was having coffee in the courtyard, bathed in the sunlight. Everything around was tranquil. The mellow taste of the coffee lingered between his lips. He took a sip of coffee calmly. "Buzz!" Suddenly, the phone in his pocket rang. He put down the coffee and checked his phone. Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. It was an unknown number. Ryan leaned over and finally answered it. "Hello?" "It''s me. Where are you now?" It was Anne''s voice. Ryan stood up quickly and said avidly, "Anne, where are you now? How have you been? I heard that you were locked up by Kevin, is that true?" "Yes, but I''m fine now. I''m calling to tell you that you have to wait for me for a while. I''m afraid I can''t contact you for some time," Anne said as she held the phone tightly. Ryan felt relieved after hearing from Anne. "Okay, I understand. Be careful and take good care of yourself," he said calmly. "Okay, bye." Anne hung up the phone and returned it to Emily. Emily felt guilty when she saw Anne hang up the phone quickly. "I''m sorry, Anne. I shouldn''t have restricted you on that call," she said sincerely. Emily didn''t know how to face Anne. "It doesn''t matter." Anne sat down at the table. Kevin must have ordered this breakfast. It was some porridge, a in one to be exact. She ate some and drank the milk beside it. She was in a quite good mood these days, so she could still eat. "Come with me, let''s shop together," said Anne. Emily nodded in agreement. Since she had been "imprisoned" for so long, Anne had long wanted to go out for a walk. She felt way better than before as they walked on a long street. Following behind, Emily noticed her smiling and couldn''t help but chuckle. "Anne, do you have anything to buy?" Before they came out, Kevin had told Emily to take care of Anne, and to buy whatever she wanted. For everything that Anne liked, Emily would just ask the clerk to pack them all. She wondered why Kevin suddenly changed after merely a night. He didn''t treat Anne like this before. It really seemed so unusual of him. Anne turned her head side to side, gazing at the shops on both sides of the street. It was just an ordinary day, but the ce was still crowded with a lot of people. She looked up at the intertwined leaves and the long asphalt road. Anne chose to walk instead of entering those crowded ces. She always liked to have some peace and quietness. Even if she went outside, she always preferred a ce surrounded by tranquility. "No, thanks," Anne shook her head and continued to walk. Emily just followed her silently. It was indeed a nice day. And every ce Anne walked by was lively. Looking at Anne''s thin figure from behind, Emily felt a bit sad. "Anne, you know what? We have moved the lemon tree to the East Mountain Vi." Thinking of this all of a sudden, Emily knew that Anne would be very happy, so she couldn''t wait to tell her. "Really?" Anne stopped and looked back at Emily. She should be happy, but Kevin didn''t let her go back to the East Mountain Vi these few days. It was a pity that the tree was moved away without Anne seeing it. "Yes, I went with Sam. It''s nted now. You can see it when you go back." Emily covered her mouth right after. She just recalled what Kevin had told her earlier, that Anne wouldn''t go back to the East Mountain Vi in days. "Emily, have dinner with me tonight." Anne nced at her watch. It was still early in the afternoon. She was tired and needed a rest. Since she became pregnant, she got tired so easily. She becamezy and got sleepy all the time. "Okay." Emily noticed that Anne looked a bit exhausted. "Are you tired? Do you want to go back and have a rest?" "Yes." She nodded and got in the Lincoln car that had been following them since earlier. After leaving the hotel, Kevin returned to his vi. Cherry had been waiting outside for a long time. When she saw Kevin''s car drive into the yard, she grinned cheerfully. "Kevin, are you really back?" Cherry kept in mind what Kevin saidst night. He said that he woulde back to apany her today. Now he was there and it meant that he still truly cared about her. "Of course, I have promised you that I wille back." The butler opened the door and Kevin got out of the car. He smiled at Cherry sweetly. Cherry smiled back and held Kevin''s hand. She looked behind Kevin and asked, "Where is Anne?" Of course she knew where Anne was. She just asked that deliberately. She knew that Kevin must have locked Anne up. After all, she didn''t like her to get in between them. Kevin must know what she was thinking about. He held Cherry''s hand firmly and walked into the hall. "Don''t worry about her. I ensure you that we will have a good time together today." Cherry was relieved after hearing Kevin. She entered the room with him happily. In the room, Selma was sitting calmly on the sofa. "You''re back?" she asked indifferently, not even bothered to look at him. Her voice was very low, as if she was not satisfied with Kevin''s recent performance. "Mom, why didn''t you go out today?" "If I go out, how would I know if you havee back to apany Cherry today?" Selma raised her head with a stern look. "Don''t go back to the hotel these days. Just let Sam and Emily stay with Anne." In fact, Selma was also a bit worried that Kevin would be tempted by Anne after staying with her for a long time. Fortunately, Kevin came back and didn''t disappoint her. Kevin nced at Cherry and lowered his eyes. Seeing that she looked depressed, he felt guilty. "I know." He held Cherry''s hand tightly and said softly, "Wherever you want to go today, I''ll go with you." A smile drew on Cherry''s face. She nodded and said, "It''s up to you. I can do whatever you want." "Well, don''t run around today. There is a party tonight, and both of you must attend it." Kevin hadn''t dealt with the business for a long time, so he didn''t know about the cocktail party. He furrowed his eyebrows and asked in confusion, "What party?" "You''ve been around Anne recently. Now you remember you still have to deal with the business of the must be present." Kevin didn''t refuse and bowed his head obediently. And Cherry, of course, was very happy. She enjoyed it the most every time she showed up in public with Kevin. It was only at that time when Cherry would feel at ease and realize that everything she had suffered then was worth it. One day she would be in the ce she truly deserved to be in. She would be the real young hostess of the Fu Family. At that time, she would trample on Anne, who would then be abandoned by Kevin and despised by everyone. Time passed quickly, and the day was over. After having an intimate moment with Cherry at home for a day, Kevin went out dressed up. Finally, they arrived at the party, the most luxurious banquet hall in the city. As soon as Kevin''s car arrived in front of the hotel, countless shlights lit up. Kevin was well-known in the city. He was recognized with his power and financial resources. His arrival tonight absolutely made the banquet more exhrating. AN Group was determined to get this project. The door was opened, and a pair of slender legs wrapped in extravagant suit pants got off on the ground. The moment he came in, numerous reporters rushed over and reached out to their multimedia equipment to interview the business tycoon in front of them. Chapter 35 Ulterior Motive Chapter 35 Ulterior Motive "Mr. Kevin, did youe for the project tonight?" "I heard that AN Group is determined to get this project. Is that true?" "Can you tell us why you are here tonight?" "Mr. Kevin!" Kevin didn''t spare a nce to the clutter of people surrounding him. His sharp-featured face was cold as always, and his deep eyes were invariably emotionless. Keeping a steady stance, he extended his fair and slender hand in the direction of the car. Soon, a bright figure came into everyone''s sight. That night, Cherry was stunning. She was wearing a white evening dress iid with a myriad of diamonds. Her hair was gathered in a bun, and her graceful features were highlighted by a delicate makeup. She stood beside Kevin and smiled at him quietly. An unparalleled beauty and a handsome rich young man, they were a match made in heaven. All the reporters and guests that were present that night seemed to be impressed by them. Reveling in their admiration, Cherry raised her head proudly. She settled her left hand into Kevin''s palm as she smiled at him graciously. Cherry was a beautiful woman and the Ye n had always been wealthy. She would attract everyone''s attention even by wearing modest clothes and a suitable makeup. What was more, she had such an exceptional man by her side at that moment. How could she not be in the spotlight that night? When the two entered the banquet hall, every gaze was naturally drawn to them. Kevin started to chat with some of the celebrities and politicians around him, and many upper-ssdies rushed to ost him. "Oh my God, Miss Cherry. How big those diamonds are!" a woman eximed while approaching Cherry. "Where did you get that customized dress?" Although her voice was a little fussy, Cherry strangely appreciated herment. shing a graceful smile, she looked down at her dress. "Thank you for your praise. This dress is a gift from Kevin. I don''t know who designed it, though." Then, straightening her head, she added, "After all, Kevin never lets me worry about such things." "Oh my God, I really envy you." It didn''t take long before Cherry got surrounded by a group of women. "Even if Mr. Kevin is married, he still loves you very much." "What are you talking about?" The woman next to her had identally said something wrong, but she didn''t notice that Cherry''s face had turned cold at once. It wasn''t until someone nudged her that she came to her senses. "I mean, Mr. Kevin''s heart obviously belongs to you. Miss Cherry, you are really a happy woman." Cherry took a deep breath and smiled. "Thank you. Kevin will always love me, or I wouldn''t be here today. Don''t you think so?" Despite her smile, her tone was slightly serious. Those women knew that Cherry was unhappy, so they had to change the topic, not daring to add anything else about her rtionship. "I heard that Mr. Kevin is determined to get the project tonight?" "I don''t know." Cherry turned around and looked in Kevin''s direction. He was always so dazzling. Even in that vast sea of people, Cherry could immediately spot his radiant figure. "But Kevin never gives up easily." "Mr. Kevin is indeed the man that all women in the city want to marry. Miss Cherry, you and him are really meant to be together." "Yes, yes! You are meant to be together!" The people around her were ttering her again. Even though she knew that they might not mean what they were saying, Cherry was still very pleased with their words. After taking a content sip from her ss, she said goodbye to them and strutted gracefully toward Kevin. Seeing her walking in his direction, Kevin excused himself and slipped out of the circle of people around him. He picked up two sses of champagne from the tray that a waiter beside him was carrying and handed one to Cherry, who was now in front of him. "How do you feel of the party? Are you bored?" Watching her grab the ss and lower her head to take a sip of champagne, he couldn''t help but "What do you think?" Cherry smiled gently. As she was about to speak, a strange voice broke in from beside her. "Mr. Kevin, you are so affectionate!" Kevin had never expected Ryan to make his appearance at this party. He had disliked this man at first sight. His dislike persisted even now that he saw him again. He turned in Ryan''s direction with a frown. "Why are you here?" ''Is Ryan also interested in this project? What an unexpected coincidence!'' he thought. "That''s what I wanted to ask you, too. I didn''t expect that Mr. Kevin woulde with a woman." Ryan was also particrly outstanding that night. If that was apetition, he and Kevin would be contending for the spotlight equal to equal. He was not intimidated by Kevin''s imposing demeanor at all. He kept instead an indifferent stance while standing beside him. "What do you mean?" With one hand casually settled in his pocket, Kevin raised his head and looked into Ryan''s eyes. Ryan smiled and brought his ss of champagne to his lips to take a sip. "Nothing. Where is Mrs. Anne? Didn''t she apany you on such an important asion?" At this, Cherry, who was standing at Kevin''s side, started to feel already pissed off. Although she was not familiar with the man in front of her, she had seen him on the front pages of various magazines. She knew that he was a powerful man. But she didn''t understand why this man always spoke for Anne. Was there any rtionship between them? "Anne is pregnant, so..." unting a considerate smile, Cherry wanted to exin the situation, but Kevin interrupted her by touching her hand. "Ignore him. I will never bring her to such an asion." Hearing him pronounce those words made Ryan''s hand tighten around his ss. He stared straight into Kevin''s eyes and lowered his voice to a deep growl. "What did you say?" If he had known that Kevin held Anne in such low regard, he would have never let her stay with him. Now it seemed that Anne''s life was really miserable. As he was about to take it out on Kevin, Charlie quickly stepped forward, cing himself beside him, and whispered, "Don''t forget why you are here today." At those words, Ryan remembered and shifted his gaze back to Kevin. "Kevin, if you don''t like her, don''t hurt her." Then he turned around and left. With a nod at Kevin, Charlie left too, following Ryan. While Kevin watched Ryan''s receding figure, his eyes grew colder. Cherry was confused. Why didn''t she know that there was such a person behind Anne? N?velDrama.Org owns all content. "Kevin, who is he?" Seeing that Kevin''s enraged eyes were still fixed on Ryan, she gently pulled his arm to draw his attention. "He seems to know Anne." "Never mind him." Withdrawing his gaze from Ryan, he raised his wrist and looked at his watch. It was almost time for the bidding. He would definitely get the project tonight. Afraid of disturbing him, Cherry didn''t ask any more questions and stood quietly beside him. In the garden of the hotel, Ryan was sitting by the parterre. With his head lowered, his face was so dark that no one could see his expression. "You were too impulsive back there." Walking up to him, Charlie addressed Ryan in a ming tone. He had been away for a while, and when he was back, Ryan had already made some trouble. Despite knowing that this was Kevin''s territory, Ryan couldn''t help but take action. He raised his eyes and asked in confusion, "What do you mean? Did I do something impulsive?" For Ryan, being impulsive had nothing to do with what had just happened with Kevin. He had done nothing to Kevin, after all, except for a few curses. Charlie, of course, knew what Ryan was thinking. He sighed and said, "I''ve told you that Kevin is a cold-blooded man. You can''t afford to offend him." Ryan knew that Charlie reproached him for his own good, but every time Kevin used that tone to talk about Anne, he felt inexplicably angry and sad. "I know." Ryan nodded and added in a much calmer tone, "I just don''t like his attitude." "But you should also be aware of the consequences if you offend him." Charlie shook his head helplessly. "You have no idea what he is capable of." "Really?" With a sneer, Ryan straightened his body. "Then let him try." "You!" Charlie''s tone was dry and disappointed. "Do you still want topete for the project tonight?" Narrowing his eyes to two fierce cracks, Ryan nodded. "This project is under Kevin''s control. We are just stirring up some trouble." "Oh, I see. We are just here to cheer things up." With a smirk, Charlie patted Ryan on the shoulder. "Well, let''s get inside now. It''s starting." "Don''t worry. Have another drink." After he finished up the champagne in his hand, his eyes fell on the crowd in the hall. He would enter when the bid reached the climax. "Fifty million. Mr. Kevin is offering fifty million. Is there anyone who wants to bid higher?" Holding the wooden gavel in his hand, the auctioneer raised it in the air with excitement. He knew that as long as Kevin would be present, the price of the project would not be low. But he didn''t expect Kevin to bid so high. After his offer, silence fell upon the crowd around him. "Going once, going twice..." The auctioneer''s voice was echoing in the hotel hall. Cherry grabbed Kevin''s hand nervously, only to find that it was cold as an icicle. Chapter 36 Making Trouble Chapter 36 Making Trouble She looked up at Kevin''s profile. He stared at the wooden gavel in the auctioneer''s hand, calm and quiet. Cherry''s heart sank. Sometimes, she didn''t understand what went through Kevin''s mind. He had always been so mercurial that she couldn''t fathom his actions at all. She thought Kevin didn''t need to spend so much money on this, but he started the bidding high anyway. She couldn''t understand why, but she also knew that the man beside her was born to be a mystery. "Fifty million! Going once, going twice¡ª" "Fifty million and ten thousand!" Ryan''s cold voice reached everyone''s ears. He held the card in his hand with an indifferent expression. Everyone looked in Ryan''s direction and sighed. Someone mustered up the will topete with Kevin for the project. It seemed that this man had a strong background. Cherry looked at the source of the voice and frowned when she saw Ryan again. She bent down and whispered in Kevin''s ear, "It''s him again, Kevin." "Sixty million." Kevin continued to raise the price. The auctioneer was almost overwhelmed. Now things were starting to heat up. "Sixty million, ten thousand." Ryan didn''t back down. He held his card, smiling, as calm as he ever was. Few people dared to try and outbid Kevin, especially when he raised the price that much. Now things were really getting interesting, and there were also people in the crowd who began to gossip about Ryan''s origin, and how much money he might actually have. "Who is this guy? Does he know he''s going up against Mr. Kevin?" "You don''t know him? It''s Ryan Xiao. He''s been out of the country for a while. But now he''s back, and apparently quite powerful!" "Really?" The attendees'' voices were getting louder and louder as they got more excited, but Ryan and Kevin didn''t seem to notice. "Seventy million!" The price had risen to seventy million. Everyone held their breath to see if Ryan would continue to fight. Ryan was about to raise his hand when Charlie said, "That''s enough." "Really?" Ryan nced at the card in his hand. It was time for him to stop, since he thought he had had enough fun there. "Okay, let''s go." Then he stood up and walked out of the hotel. Charlie followed him. Regardless, he didn''t forget to take one look back at Kevin. He still sat there expressionlessly, though he hadn''t heard Ryan bid against him again. The rapid-fire words of the auctioneer rang out again. "Seventy million going once, seventy million going twice,st chance at seventy million, folks! Sold!" Everyone got to their feet and apuded for Kevin. At the moment when the wooden gavel struck the block, Cherry felt like she had been fooled. She grabbed Kevin''s hand nervously and said, "Kevin, you''ve spent twenty million more than you intended. Obviously, that person didn''t really want to bid for it!" Kevin stood up and said in a low voice, "I know." ''Ryan, one day, I will make sure you have no power in this city!'' Kevin swore in his heart. By the time they returned to the hotel, it was already dark and Kevin hadn''te back. Anne was in a better mood. "Anne, Mr. Kevin isn''t back yet." Looking around the room, Emily didn''t see Kevin. She put the snacks she brought back to the room on the table. Anne seemed to be in a good mood, so Emily suggested, "You haven''t eaten anything tonight. Are you hungry?" Although they went to the restaurant together, Anne barely ate anything. Emily wondered if Anne''s mood had to do with that. Anne shook her head, her face betraying no emotion. "No, thanks." She sat by the window and looked down at the lights of the city, thousands of families, all clustered together. It was her first day of freedom, but she was not happy. It was not until then that she realized that she had very few friends. "What''s wrong? Not feeling well?" Emily didn''t want to see the sentimental look on Anne''s face. She squatted beside Anne, frowning. "You can''t be like this. You should at least eat something." It seemed that Anne had almost never been happy since she married Kevin. Even her smile had a hint of sadness in it. Emily knew that Kevin was with Cherry now! When she remembered that, she really felt bad for Anne. "Emily, don''t worry about me. I just don''t have any appetite." Anne stared at Emily and said with a smile, "I think it''s from a stomachache. I''ll eat when I''m hungry." "Okay." Emily stood and didn''t know what else to say. She didn''t know what it was like in Anne''s shoes, pregnant and sad, so she chose to remain silent. It was gettingte, so Anne said to Emily, "You can go home now. I''m going to bed soon. Have a safe trip." "Okay. Bye." Emily looked at Anne worriedly. Finally, she left the hotel room. After that, she was still a little worried, so she called Sam. "Hello?" As soon as the phone was connected, Sam''s eyes narrowed and asked, "What happened?" There were some things at home that he had to deal with, so he didn''t have the time to follow Anne as much as he might want. But he still trusted Emily. He didn''t need to worry since Emily would do her best. But when she called him, Sam got nervous again. After excusing himself, Sam stepped into the yard. He frowned at the sound of his family talking behind him. "That kid is so wrapped up in his work." "We have no choice. The Fengs have been doctors for generations. He''s busy, as doctors always are." "But he should also learn to slow down, fall in love. After all, he''s going to get married!" The discussion got louder and louder. Holding his mobile phone, Sam walked to the deck chair beside the swimming pool and sat down. For the past few days, his family had been discussing his marriage, and his mood was extremely foul. "Did anything happen your family?" Although Sam hade out of the house, the discussions of the family inevitably reached Emily''s ears. She also felt a little embarrassed after hearing what they were talking about. But she was also happy. Indeed, Sam was too hung up on work. If his family didn''t push him, he probably wouldn''t want a rtionship at all. So Emily had a chance with him. "Nothing. What happened?" Of course, Sam didn''t want to talk about it anymore. His simple words sessfully distracted Emily. "It''s Anne. She won''t eat." While leaning against the wall of the hotel, Emily looked at the ink paintings in front of her with a heavy heart. Sam''s face was expressionless, but his eyes were full of worry. "Where''s Kevin?" I heard that Kevin cooked something himself a few days ago and Anne had it. Couldn''t she eat now? He thought that as long as the two people were given enough time to get along with each other, Anne could still hold on. Emily shook her head and sighed, "No, he''s going to a party today. How could he have time to care about Anne?" After a pause, she continued, "I also heard that he took Cherry to the party." Anne couldn''t eat anything because of her pregnancy, but Kevin still skipped out on her to party. How far he would go then? Every time she thought of this, Emily felt sorry for Anne. "I see," Sam replied in a low voice. Emily felt that something was wrong with him. Sam knew what kind of man Kevin was. But then he couldn''t even solve his own problems. How could he help anyone else? In the past, if Sam heard that Kevin had mistreated Anne, he would be at her side immediately. But then, Sam only said two words. It was so strange. While biting her lips, Emily thought about it carefully. Something must have happened to Sam. Was it because of what the people of the Feng Family were talking about? "What''s wrong with you? You seem to be in a bad mood. Do you need a friendly ear?" It was still early, and she didn''t want to go home at all. If only she could ask Sam out to have a talk. There was no response on the other side of the phone for a long time. Emily was anxious and immediately asked, "Hello? Sam, are you still there?" "Yes, I am." Sam nodded. "Okay. See you in a quarter of an hour." Then he hung up the phone. Emily was leaning against the wall. She started jumping for joy. She jumped and shouted excitedly, "Ah!" Anne was left alone in the cold hotel room. Shey on the sofa, a light blue nket covering her knees. Almost all the lights in the room were turned off, and only a tablemp beside the sofa shed some light. Looking at the figures that shed on TV, Anne felt bitterness gnawing at her heart. It waste, but Kevin still hadn''te back. She didn''t know where he was. In fact, she shouldn''t have wanted Kevin toe back. She knew that things would be tense after he got in. But if he didn''te back, she would feel sad and alone. She knew that Kevin went to hang out with Cherry today. She heard them on the phone. Kevin even told her this. So, the two must be flirting somewhere. But she was just sitting here, alone, watching TV. She didn''t even have a friend to talk to. The news was on, and she was getting bored. She picked up the remote control at hand and was about to turn off the TV. She was about to go to bed early¡ªshe was sleepy. But when she was about to press the button, a familiar figure suddenly appeared on the big screen. It was Kevin. Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. He sat there quietly and domineeringly. Cherry was sitting next to him, holding his arm intimately. Anne could feel the endless happiness from her profile. Kevin would asionally nce at Cherry''s wless face. The tenderness in his eyes was something Anne had never seen on his face before. Chapter 37 Theyre Together Chapter 37 They''re Together It turned out that Cherry and Kevin went to the party together that night. Well, this was their life, so far away from Anne. Anne turned off the TV and got up from the couch. She stepped on the nket spread out on the ground barefoot, feeling extremely cold. How ridiculous! It was summer, but somehow she felt cold. Then she looked out of the French window. It was raining outside, and the window was marked by tracks of rain. After walking to the window and taking a nce at the scenery outside, Anne felt sad. She sniffed, turned, and walked towards the bed. When she reached the bedside, someone opened the door. She looked over and found that the person N?velDrama.Org owns all content. standing in the doorway was none other than Kevin. He came back holding a bag. When he saw that Anne was barefoot, his expression suddenly turned cold. After closing the door, he walked towards Anne and put the bag in his hand aside. "What are you doing?" His eyes fell on her bare feet. Was she crazy? She was pregnant, but she still walked barefoot on the ground. Wasn''t she afraid of death? Anne clenched her fists, stared at the backs of her feet and said, "Nothing." She didn''t want to talk to Kevin. Why did hee back? Wasn''t he with Cherry? Since they were together, he didn''t have toe back. "What do you mean by ''nothing''?" With a colder look in his eyes, Kevin approached Anne, bent down and lifted her into his arms. "Ah! What are you doing? Put me down." Anne didn''t expect that Kevin would do this. She turned her head and looked him directly in the eye. Although Kevin''s eyes were cold and emotionless, Anne was not afraid of him at all. She frowned and looked at him indifferently, but there was a sh of hesitation in her eyes. She knew that it was better for her not to make him mad, but she couldn''t bow in front of him either, especially after she saw him on TV. Appearing in public with Cherry like that was the straw that broke the camel''s back. She couldn''t stand it anymore. Every time he pulled something like this she thought she was fine with it. But in fact, she was not. She would still feel heartbroken. "What am I doing?" Kevin replied. "Nothing." Surprisingly, Kevin didn''t lose his temper while looking into her beautiful, cold eyes. Instead, he walked to the sofa with her in his arms. He bent down and gently ced Anne on the couch. When her body made contact with the soft sofa, Anne was stymied. Since when had Kevin treated her so gently? To be honest, she was not used to his attitude. "What''s up with you?" As soon as she sat down on the sofa, Anne scooted away from him. She looked at the man in front of her, trying to find some clues on his calm face. Without saying a word, Kevin sat down next to her. He looked at her and said in a deep voice, "Where have you been today? Call anyone?" Sure enough, he asked about her whereabouts after he said he was going to set her free. It was all lie, or he wouldn''t have asked. Anne looked aside, and said coldly, "Nowhere, really. I just wandered around." She seemed to be unhappy. Kevin realized that he said something wrong. He pursed his cold thin lips into a straight line and asked, "Have you eaten yet?" Anne really didn''t expect him to care about that. ''What''s wrong with Kevin tonight? Did he bump his head and forget who he was?'' she thought. After a while, she shook her head and said, "No, I can''t." "I know you can''t eat." Kevin turned around and opened the stic bag on the table. He took out a lunch box and opened it. When she looked inside, there was a bowl of porridge. She frowned. "What''s this?" "I made it especially for you," Kevin said hesitantly. He always felt that it was less than manly for a man to cook every day. It was even stranger that he basically had to pack the meals for her. But he had no choice. Sam had called him, saying that Anne hadn''t eaten anything at all that day. Sam sounded worried, which wasn''t like him at all. Anne did like the porridge Kevin cooked that day. Keeping this in mind, Kevin found a hotel and used the ingredients in the kitchen to make a bowl of porridge right then and there. "You cooked this yourself?" Anne asked doubtfully. "Yes." Kevin put the bowl in front of her, grabbed the spoon and was about to spoon feed her himself. But how could Anne get used to Kevin being so attentive? She reached out, took the spoon and bowl from his hand, and whispered, "I can do it myself." Kevin agreed without hesitation. Strangely enough, she couldn''t keep anything down except Kevin''s home-cooked porridge. The aroma filled the room, and she loved it. Every time she smelled it, she couldn''t resist taking a sip. It got yummier and yummier the more she had. While she quickly polished off a bowl, Kevin simply sat nearby, rubbing his hands. "You like it? What do you think? Are you full?" "Yes, I''m full. Thank you," Anne replied. She hadn''t eaten anything before, but now she felt much better. Kevin smiled brightly and innocently. This was the first time that Anne had seen Kevin smile like this. Some part of her heart was moved. She bit her lips and said, "Thank you." "You''re wee." Kevin pressed his lips and looked a little embarrassed. "If I''d known this is all it took to get you to eat, I would have served this long ago. As it is, you can have it whenever you want." "No, thanks." Anne shook her head. It was not good to bother Kevin all the time. Besides, she didn''t want to owe Kevin too much. "Okay, I''m wasted. Let''s hit the hay." Kevin stood up and was about to enter the bathroom. "Wait a minute," Anne called. Then, he stopped and looked back at her, confused. "What''s wrong? Ask while I''m still awake." "Aren''t you going to a party? Where did you make the porridge?" It was not that she didn''t believe him, or doubted him. She just wanted to know to how much he had done to make the food for her. Kevin raised his eyes and smiled ambiguously. "What do you think?" "I don''t know." Anne pursed her lips, but her expression didn''t change much. "Just asking. You can''t cook for me every day, can you?" "I found a hotel after dinner. It''s not thatplicated." After saying that, Kevin went into the bathroom. He closed the door with a bang. All of a sudden, Anne felt relieved. She stood still and nced at the bathroom. She didn''t know what to feel. But she knew that Kevin did it for the child, not for her. But even so, it was enough to make Cherry hate her forever. He left Cherry behind again and again to take care of Anne. Was Cherry cursing her fiercely somewhere? As she thought of this, a beautiful petal of a smile bloomed at the corner of her mouth, while her clear face concealed all the disappointment. She walked to the bed and was about to fall asleep. While holding a silver spoon in his long fingers, Sam stirred the coffee in front of him intentionally or unintentionally, but he didn''t take a sip. "Something on your mind?" Seeing that he was spacey, Emily was also worried. There shouldn''t be anything that Sam couldn''t solve. But judging from his expression today, it seemed that something really happened to him. She looked at him worriedly. When she saw his good-looking eyebrows tightly wrinkled, her heart unconsciously tightened. Sam raised his head and looked at the lights along the river. "It''s just family stuff." Even if he was out and about, Sam didn''t like to talk about what happened in his family. Even though Emily already knew what was going on, she was too embarrassed to say anything. "Actually, I heard a little." Emily was embarrassed and stole a nce at Sam. She knew that all men were proud, so she was afraid to go too far. She could only be very cautious and beat around the bush. "Did you now?" "Mmm hmm!" Emily nodded and continued, "I don''t know why you''re freaking about this. So your family is arranging your marriage. It''s moremon than you think." He had just taken a sip of coffee. It took a herculean effort to keep from spraying his mouthful everywhere. He took up a piece of tissue and wiped his mouth gracefully. Then, he looked at Emily with more tenderness in his eyes. "It''s not that serious. They''re not forcing me." It was just that his family thought he should have a rtionship, and were fixated on that. He kept telling them that he didn''t want one, but that didn''t seem to matter. They wouldn''t let it go. He couldn''t escape this. Sometimes he didn''t want to go back home because of it. In the end, he would still be drawn back home by his family, and he had to think of all kinds of excuses to escape. It gave him headache every time it happened. "Really?" Emily blinked her eyes andforted him. "I think it''s easier for you, since it''s just family pressure. It''s not like you''re being forced into it. I think you can handle this. You do everything else so well." After saying that, she didn''t forget to check how Sam reacted. Now that she''d finally started, she didn''t mind going further. "Thank you." After hearing the soft music and feeling the night wind on his skin, Sam felt much better. "I heard that Anne won''t go back to the East Mountain Vi in a few days?" "Hmm." Sam changed the topic so fast that Emily didn''t even realize it. She was about to have a heavy discussion about love with him, but she didn''t think he''d switch gears like that so quickly. And it was about Anne. She was depressed. "Kevin''s been so busy with work, so he stays here all the time. Anne''s been biding her time in a hotel room." "Really?" While Sam took a sip of his coffee, his gentle eyes were covered with ayer of sadness. "Okay. You have to take care of her, then. Hope she''s in a better mood when I see her next time." Speaking of mood, Emily really had a lot to say. She pursed her lips and looked at Sam with sad eyes. "I hope Anne pulls herself out of her funk. She always seems so sad, and I don''t know how to make her happy. Even when she smiles, she seems so heartbroken." Chapter 38 Start Dating Chapter 38 Start Dating Emily squinted her eyes at Sam. "Do you think she''ll be happy if she gets to return to thepany?" "Why do you say that?" Sam was surprised by how Emily hade to this conclusion. He raised his eyebrows as he stated, "She has so many things that weigh heavily on her mind, and that''s why she has been pretty depressed." "She must be." Emily nodded wistfully. Even though she could not solve the problem, she avowed, "I''ll try my best to make her feel better." "That''s nice of you." Sam turned his gaze towards the dark sky, the soft moonlight hitting his face. "Would you like to go on a walk?" he asked in a low voice. "Of course." With her eyes glistening, Emily bit down her sudden excitement. Slowly walking to his side, she spoke in a soft voice, "Where are we going?" "Nowhere, just around." There was a park located near the cafe. Emily seldom visited such ces, and neither did Sam. As they walked amongst the greenery, soaking in moonlight, a strong whiff of fragrance engulfed them. Emily couldn''t help but exim, "Wow! It smells so amazing. There must be many flowers here." "Look over there!" Sam pointed towards a parterre as soon as he spotted it. As he noticed her childlike glee, his mouth stretched into a smile. "It''s so beautiful." Emily was entranced by the colorful flowers. Even at night, they were blooming proudly. She bent over, inhaling the perfumed air as she closed her eyes. Sam watched her from a distance, the smile never leaving his face. As he was about to say something, his phone buzzed in his pocket. As he fished it out, the caller ID showed his mother¡¯s name. ''Maybe she wants me toe home, Or she is trying to make me go on a blind date again,'' he thought. A frown grew on his face as he thought deeply, deciding not to answer it. Even after he put it back in his pocket, the phone kept ringing. Emily looked up at him in confusion. "Why aren¡¯t you answering it?" "It''s fine. It''s just my mother." Before hearing her reply, Sam started walking ahead. Emily was not convinced. She followed beside him, prodding, "Shouldn¡¯t you be answering your mother¡¯s calls?" Sam had always been a respectful person. This was not like him! Stopping abruptly, he addressed her in a gentle tone, "She has been urging me toe back. It doesn''t matter, I¡¯ll talk to herter." "Really?" Emily knotted her eyebrows, as she added, "Is it about dating again?" Sam nodded uneasily, not meeting her eyes. Fortunately, Emily was not one to indulge in spreading gossip. He trusted her with his secrets, despite not wanting to talk about this with anyone. "Do you need any help?" Emily raised her eyes at him. Her heart was filled with joy at the opportunity of being helpful to him. She felt excited, her mind already brewing with ideas. Sam gazed at her, confused. "How can you help me?" "I can pretend to be your girlfriend ande home with you!" Her words hung in the air, followed by a deafening silence. Emily was not just anyone, speaking so casually with him. She was a gorgeous girl, belonging to a rich family. He was also deeply impressed by her character. No matter whose girlfriend she was going to be, she deserved far better. Sam hesitated, not liking her idea. "No, thanks." He had never even thought about doing this kind of thing, let alone doing it. His refusal surprised her, making her look away. She wondered if it was because he didn''t like her. She stepped forward, her eyes stinging. "Why? Do you think your parents will be unhappy if you bring me?" "No! It¡¯s not that!" Ruining her mood was thest thing he had wanted to do. He just didn''t want her reputation to be damaged because of faking his girlfriend. His lips drooped into a frown. He wanted to exin, but nothing came out of his mouth. Emily pursed her lips and forced a small smile. Patting his shoulder, she assured him, "It¡¯s fine. I understand." She started walking forward, but she still felt very sad. Looking up at the starry night sky, she sniffed and tried to calm herself down. Content held by N?velDrama.Org. Sam was watching her walk away, feeling guilty. ''Have I gone too far just now? She was just trying to help,'' he thought. "Emily?" Sam caught up with Emily and walked by her side. She turned her head away at his voice. She didn''t want him to see her red eyes. "What? What''s up?" Failing to calm down, she felt her heartbeat get faster. "How about the day after tomorrow? Do you want to apany me to my home?" His words left Emily frozen in her step. She turned her head, her eyebrows raising. She wondered if she had heard him wrong. Her eyes twinkled in the dim light as she addressed him, "What did you just say?" "I said,e home with me. You¡¯re right. I have to find a way to stop my family from talking about my love life all the time." Sam gave a warm smile and spoke. "I''ve thought about it. You''re the only one who can help me." It was not easy for Sam to admit it. She parted her lips, not believing what he was saying. "Okay! I will help you." She chuckled, her tears turning into smiles, and continued to walk forward with Sam. This night was destined to be unusual, but who was in Sam''s mind? Was it the woman walking beside him? Of course, the night was not over yet. Cherry was dejected, being sent back to the vi by Kevin. She never dared to question him, so she had no choice. Now that Anne was pregnant, she was wary of her words. Earlier that day, Kevin had informed her that he wanted to apany Anne. When she asked him to stay, his whole face had immediately changed. If she hadn¡¯t quickly given in to him, after noticing the stern look he was giving, he would have hated her. Back in the vi, Cherryy on the sofa. The servant had noticed her scowl, but still boldly asked her, "Miss Cherry, do you need a cup of tea?" "What did you just say? It''s almost midnight! Do you want me to gain weight?" Cherry spat, not even bothering to spare a nce. The servant dared not to say anything further and retreated. She was in a bad mood. Anyone who provoked her would surely be treated awfully. The servants were aware of what kind of person she was. Although she pretended to be virtuous in front of Selma and Kevin, they knew the overbearing and rude personality she hid beneath. They never dared say these thoughts in front of Kevin or Selma. If they were not careful enough, they knew they would be punished miserably. Cherry was scowling when her phone rang in her bag. She rolled her eyes and reached out to answer it. "Who is it?" Her tone grew impatient as she didn''t care who was at the other end. "It''s me, Cherry. I haven''t seen you in a long time. Why do you sound so angry?" A familiar voice echoed from the other end of the call. Cherry sat up straighter and checked the phone number, but she still had no idea who it was. "Who are you?" "Who do you think I am? You don''t remember but we used to y together when we were little. I¡¯m so sad you forgot!" A silvery voice belonging to a woman could be heard. Even from her voice, you could tell she must be a beautiful woman. Cherry thought it over but still had no clue. "Sorry, I don''t know who you are!" "It''s me. Ruth!" the woman on the other end shrieked her name in excitement. "Ruth!" Cherry burst into a chuckle as it dawned on her. Ruth was the daughter of the Sun Family. They had been good friends for the longest time but due to Ruth traveling abroad for studies, they had stopped talking. She was not expecting Ruth to contact her again. It made her feel so happy. "You''re back? When did youe back?" "Not long ago. I wanted to call you as soon as I got off the ne!" Ruth taunted Cherry, "But it looks like you didn¡¯t miss me at all!" "Of course not! I could never forget you!" There was no chance of Cherry forgetting Ruth! In the past, the two would go on shopping trips and enjoy the life of fairdies. Along with livingvishly, the greatest pleasure between them was seeking adventure wherever they went. Bullying Anne was one of the things they enjoyed together. "That''s better." Ruth was in a good mood, and it could be felt through the phone. "By the way, I heard that Anne married Kevin?" Cherry was taken aback at this, her blood boiling. She replied through gritted teeth, "Yes, you are well- informed!" "My brother told me. I was not expecting this news!" Ruth felt sorry for Cherry as she said, "My brother thinks that Kevin still likes you, then why would he marry someone else?" "Well, you just came back. Let''s not talk about her." Cherry quickly changed the topic, "Are you free tomorrow? Let''s meet up!" "Of course. See you tomorrow!" After she hung up the phone, Cherry''s mind was abuzz with evil ideas as she darkly smirked. "Anne, I will make your life miserable!" Stepping into the shopping mall the next day, Cherry almost didn''t recognize Ruth. "Ruth, you are even more beautiful from when west met!" Standing gracefully, Ruth had her hair coiled into a bun. She was petite and vicarious. When she smiled, her eyshes trembled slightly. She was adorned in a white dress, making her look elegant, along with an LV handbag that swung in her hand. As soon as their eyes met, Ruth broke into a wide smile. "So are you, Cherry! You have always been beautiful!" Chapter 39 An Unexpected Incident Chapter 39 An Unexpected Incident Ruth was a simple and innocent girl. However, she grew up being spoiled and too pampered since childhood. This made her look down on Anne from the beginning. She was naive but very narcissistic. She even thought that only noble people like her could be in her list of friends. Cherry was different. Although the Ye n was not very rich, she was far better than those who lived under others'' roof! Moreover, Cherry had always been admired by Kevin. Thus, she had a ce for Ruth''s attention. "Hey, you are still so lively!" Cherry smiled demurely. She must get along well with the woman in front of her, otherwise, who would help her deal with Aer on? She didn''t expect to be so favored. In less than twenty minutes, she saw Anne walking from afar. No one knew what got into Kevin these days. When Anne got up this morning, Kevin had prepared breakfast for her. She was told that Kevin got up early and made the breakfast specially for her. She was confused but she just thanked him for it and didn''t continue to think about it. Before Kevin went out, he called Emily to apany Anne and gave her a credit card, asking her to go shopping. She didn''t know why he did that, but since it was already done, what could be the point to refuse? She was quite satisfied with how Kevin treated her these past few days. Emily could tell that Anne was in a good mood today. "Anne, you seem to be in a good mood today!" Emily teased her. Anne looked back and said, "Really? I think you are in a good mood too!" Emily was also unusual that day. She kept smiling all day, as if she had encountered something good. "Not that really!" Emily looked away as her cheeks turned red. Seeing Emily this way, Anne already knew what was happening inside her. She smiled and said, "Well, you already blushed, and you still think you can hide it from me? Did you meet someone you like?" Emily had always been like a sister to her, so it was easy for her to read what was on her mind. However, she had a hard time figuring out where the mood came from because Emily had not mentioned anything about it. "Of course not! I am not supposed to be the topic here. We should talk about you." Emily looked at Anne mischievously and asked, "Did Mr. Kevin cook porridge for youst night?" "How do you know?" Anne wore an unusual expression. She was quite embarrassed and still not used to it when others also knew what Kevin had done for her. Emily chuckled, "Isn''t that obvious? It was sotest night. He called me and asked me to help him find the hotel manager!" "I see." Anne looked down. It turned out that he really cared about her. Besides, he wouldn''t have done everything this morning if he didn''t. When she saw him in the kitchen wearing an apron, she was a bit startled. She shook her head trying not to fall for all his show. She knew that all of this merely meant nothing. It was all fake! When the baby was born, everything would go back to the way it was again. It was just too good to be true that Kevin would stay this way even after the baby was born. Emily and Anne went out together, walking andughing along the long street. They entered an exclusive shop. The clothes inside were very beautiful, and Emily liked one of them at a nce. "That looks good. Anne, can you give me some advice? I want to buy a dress." "What kind of dress do you want to buy?" Anne looked around the shop and found that all the clothes were good, but it was all a bit formal for Emily. She would look older wearing such. Emily felt the same way. Those clothes really looked good but it didn''t suit her. "The clothes seemed to be designed for older people, but it would still be nice if it''s to meet someone elderly, right?" "Elderly?" "Why are you going to meet someone elderly?" Anne asked in confusion. "Ah!" Realizing that she had spilled the beans, Emily immediately covered her mouth and said, "I didn''t say anything! I mean, I should wear clothes that make me look more mature, so when I go home to see my parents, they will stop saying that I am still a grown-up child!" Emily looked nervous. She couldn''t let Anne find out anything! Anne chuckled when she noticed that Emily was nervous and said, "Okay, I know. This one is not bad!" She pointed at a ck knee-length dress with ruffled hemline. This dress should be the most suitable one for Emily in this shop. She would look elegant on this when she met her parents. "This one! It''s really beautiful!" Emily was about get the dress in front of her when a fair-white hand grabbed it. "Cherry, what do you think of this dress?" ''Cherry?'' Emily didn''t expect that she would see Cherry here. She frowned and thought, ''What a small world!'' As for Anne, a frown also reced her sweet smile. Her aura turned cold immediately. Every time she saw Cherry, nothing good happened. For Pete''s sake, why did she keep on seeing her in this kind of moment? The only difference was that Kevin wasn''t with her at that moment. "Oh, it''s you, Anne!" Cherry was also surprised to see Anne in such a high-end ce. She didn''t know that Kevin allowed Anne to go out. She thought that Kevin was still keeping her in the room. It seemed that Kevin was getting nicer to Anne recently! She got infuriated with the thought. However, she couldn''t show it in front of Ruth. She just bit her lips and red at Anne. In the case of Ruth, she couldn''t miss the moment to humiliate Anne. "Anne!" Her voice was loud and clear that it made Anne notice her easily. Anne saw a strange but familiar face. She furrowed her eyebrows trying to remember if she knew her or not. After a few minutes, it finally sunk in. "Ruth?" Anne had an impression with all the women in Cherry''s circle of friends, not to mention that this woman in front of her had bullied her together with Cherry before. "I didn''t expect you to remember me!" With a sneer on her pretty face, Ruth looked at Anne from top to bottom, and said, "You''re living a good life now, aren''t you? I heard that you''ve climbed up the ranks and be a phoenix!" Ruth''s words were always so unpleasant to hear but as usual, Anne didn''t want to argue with her. However, Emily didn''t have much patience to deal with this arrogant woman. When she heard Ruth despise Anne like that, she couldn''t help but to feel furious. "What are you talking about?" Emily stood in front of Anne, while ring at Ruth. "What do you mean? Are you referring to the woman behind you?" Emily knew at once that Ruth was not good, but she didn''t expect her words to be so rude. Ruth didn''t know who Emily was, nor did she know that Emily was from a rich family. She thought that Emily was only Anne''s servant. She pointed at Emily''s nose and said condescendingly, "Who are you? Do you have the right to speak here?" "You-" Emily was so furious that she clenched her fist and looked sharply at Ruth, "You don''t even deserve to know me, so stop being rude to Anne!" Emily was a frank person who would say and do whatever that she thought was right. However, Ruth was not an ordinary person to be trifled with.Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. With a cold snort, Emily took Anne''s hand and said, "Anne, let''s go. Don''t stoop on the same level as them!" After ncing at Ruth and Cherry, Anne nodded and followed Emily. But Ruth didn''t want to end this encounter so early. She still wanted more. "Stop!" She walked past Emily and stood in front of Anne. "Anne, I remember that you were not like this before. You would never hide behind others no matter what happened. What''s wrong with you now?" Anne rolled her eyes and said, "People change a lot over time." With a calm tone, she didn''t paid much attention to Ruth''s ridicule. She acted so indifferent, as if what happened in front of her was not a big deal. "How could you talk to me so calmly?" Ruth frowned. Although Anne didn''t have much reaction, she could still feel a strong aura from her. In her eyes, Anne was a woman of low status, but when Anne stood there and talked to her expressionlessly, Ruth would feel a kind of pressure. Anne smiled at Ruth, and said "Then what? What tone do you expect me to talk to you, Miss Ruth?" "You¡­" Ruth didn''t expect that Anne would be so indifferent. Somehow, she was pissed off that Anne didn''t gave her much reaction. She was not satisfied and didn''t know what to do to ignite the situation. She just clenched her fists while looking at the woman in front of her. She was totally unsatisfied of the flow of their conversation. She had not seen Anne for so many years. She had thought that she could still denigrate her when they met. But when she saw Anne after a long time, she realized that she had changed a lot. Anne was now a totally different person to Ruth. Her appearance and temperament had changed tremendously. Ruth used to say whatever she wanted, but she couldn''t do it now. She ran out of words in front of them. "Ruth, are you okay?" Cherry smiled and immediately returned to her usual appearance. She stood beside Ruth and held her. "Don''t lower yourself to the same level as Anne. She always has the temper." Anne burst intoughter after hearing Cherry. What did she mean by saying that? And what exactly did she want to say about Anne''s temper? Chapter 40 A Clash of Wills Chapter 40 A sh of Wills "What are youughing at?" Hearing Anne''sughter, Ruth stared at Anne, seemingly annoyed. She hated this kind ofughter the most, not to mention that it came from the person she disliked the most. How could she not be angry? The angrier Ruth was, the happier Cherry got. That meant that she achieved what she set out to do. As long as Ruth hated Anne, Anne would have a hard timeter. Cherry finally didn''t have to fight alone! Anne shook her head and wore her passionless face. "Nothing. I suddenly thought of something funny, so Iughed!" "You are so annoying!" Ruth was so angry that she gnashed her teeth and wanted to p Anne. Fortunately, Emily was eagle-eyed and agile. She stepped forward,ing between her and Anne to protect her. "Emily!" Anne was astounded by the crisp sound of the p. It hit Emily, not her. Looking at the slender body in front of her, Anne scrunched up her eyes. "Are you okay?" "I''m fine." Emily reached out and touched her face. She hadn''t been pped since she was born. Ruth had gone too far. "Are you insane?" Finally, Emily couldn''t stand it anymore. She had been in a good mood, and then it all came crashing down. Well, since this woman wanted to make trouble, she was willing to y along. When she was about to fight back, the shop assistants around couldn''t stand it anymore and hurried to stop Ruth. "I''m sorry,dies. Could you please talk things over?" "Fuck off!" Ruth red at the shop assistant who spoke. The others decided to hold their tongues. Then she turned and looked at Anne with her sharp eyes. "I''ll teach you a hard lesson today, or I''ll eat my hat!" As soon as she finished speaking, she moved into position again and was about to p Anne. Anne frowned, but she didn''t try to stop her or get out of the way. Cherry was very happy watching all this unfold, but she still had to pretend. If something really happened to Anne, Kevin would be pressing the shop girls for details. They were witnesses of what had happened and could prove that she had nothing to do with it. "What are you doing? Let go of Anne!" Seeing that Ruth really wanted to hurt Anne, Emily was frightened. If something really happened to Anne, she would be guilty for the rest of her life. "Just calm down, Ruth! Just let her go!" Cherry pulled on Ruth''s hand and tried to stop her. But it didn''t work. Ruth got even angrier. "Cherry! Why are you sticking up for this bitch? Hasn''t she tortured you enough? I think it''s time we teach her a lesson!" She gripped Anne''s wrist with all her strength, and Emily grabbed her other arm. Ruth was unable to p Anne. She could only curse irritably, "What''s wrong with you? Fuck off!" No matter how hard Ruth squeezed, Anne stood still and said nothing. However, Anne''s calm eyes were fixed on the girl, and her gaze never wavered. "Quit staring at me!" Finally, Ruth couldn''t control herself and pped Anne hard. Her head rocked, and she felt her lip grow numb. ''Probably split,'' Anne thought. Everyone was astonished when the crisp sound echoed through the store. Even the clerks stood there were frozen, their mouths agape. No one knew what to do. "You hit Anne? Cow!" That said, Emily threw the handbag she was holding to the ground, grabbed Ruth''s hands and pushed her hard. "Ah!" Ruth lost her bnce and fell to the ground hard, and she knocked a rack down while she fell. Boom! Everything was in chaos. Cherry didn''t think that Emily would do anything like that. She ran over to where Ruthy and tried to help her up. "Ruth, are you okay? Let me help!" "Slut! How dare you push me!" Ruth screamed and stood up, trying to catch Emily''s hair, not caring about her image. Someone caught her right hand in mid-air. "Enough!" Anne''s firm voice sounded above her head. Ruth stopped and looked up at her. "Let go of me! Don''t touch me! You have no right!" "Exactly. I don''t have the right to touch you, and you don''t have the right to hit other people." Anne threw off Ruth''s arm. Then she spoke again, and her face became cold. "Imagine what people will think of you. You''re ady from a rich family. And you go around hitting people like a thug! How do you think that looks? "Really?" Ruth sneered and looked at Anne, mockery in her eyes. "I don''t think it''s a bad thing. It''s karma, really. But don''t you feel embarrassed, stealing other people''s boyfriend?" "What are you talking about?" Emily couldn''t stand other people abusing Anne, especially the one she was confronting. She had never been so angry in her life. "You''re the boyfriend thief!" "Stop it, Emily." ncing at Ruth and then at Cherry, Anne stood between them, and then addressed, "Tell me, Cherry. You know what''ll happen if Kevin finds out about this, don''t you?" Cherry didn''t expect that Anne would bring Kevin up right now. She stood still, clenched her fists and bit Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. her lips. She couldn''t say anything to defend herself. After a while, she stepped forward, grabbed Ruth''s arm and said, "Forget it. Let''s take off." "What?" Ruth looked at Cherry in disbelief, "How can we just let this go? Are you afraid of her? Look at what she did to you!" Ruth spouted all this off in righteous indignation, and what she said made Anne wonder if she should Who was bullying who here? She didn''t even want to see Cherry, much less bully her. "Forget it. I''m tired of this. Let''s do something fun." After taking a look at Anne, Cherry turned and walked off. Ruth was so angry that she stamped her feet, but she had no choice but to follow Cherry. When they were out of earshot, Anne breathed a sigh of relief. Emily stared in the direction in which the two of them went, and her eyes were full of anger. "Damn it!" Emily shouted, "I''ve never been hit in my life, not even my parents. How could she do that?" "Just breathe. Count to ten and try to calm down. Are you okay?" Looking at her red and swollen face, Anne thought, ''Ruth is such a vicious bitch. The left side of my face is still burning.'' "Don''t lower yourself to her level. Her parents didn''t tell her ''no'' enough, so she turned out like this." "But she can''t just go around doing things like that!" Looking at the mess on the ground, Emily sighed, "Anne, if only you weren''t so damn even-tempered. I was so ready to throw down with her!" The shop assistants knew who Ruth was, so they didn''t say anything more. They could only lower their heads and pack up. Anne pursed her lips and walked out. Emily knew Anne''s disposition well. She never liked to get involved in these kind of things. But Emily was vengeful. If someone attacked her, she felt she should fight back. "Cherry, what''s wrong with you?" Ruth stopped after taking a few steps. She was extremely angry when she thought of what had just happened. She didn''t even want to walk, so she just stood there. Cherry stopped and looked back at her with an aggrieved look. "Did you see that? She threatened me! If Kevin finds out about this, he''ll me me." When Ruth saw Cherry so upset, her face turned blue with anger. "Well, she''s pretty powerful now. How can we touch her if she just runs to Kevin?" "I don''t know. What can we do?" Cherry looked down and her palm-sized face was full of hurt. "As you know, she married Kevin. Although Kevin loves me, I am only his mistress." Ruth gritted her teeth and said, "Why do you still put up with her? I just can''t stand her arrogance. She has always been like this since childhood. No matter how we bully her, it doesn''t faze her. It''s like she''s pretending to be a queen." Cherry sneered in her heart, ''Good! Ruth must hate Anne a lot. So I just need to see her knock down a few pegs.'' To be honest, she was also quite angry with what Anne had said to her today. ''Don''t threaten me with Kevin, Anne. It''s really annoying,'' she thought. "Then what can we do? She''s protected now. We can''t do anything about it!" "No way!" Ruth said angrily, "I have to pay her back! I''ll help you out if you want to hurt her." After saying that, Ruth turned around to walk back in her stilettos. Cherry didn''t know what she was nning and followed her. "What are you up to, Ruth? No, we can''t beat her up. What if Kevin finds out?" The more Cherry said things like that, the angrier Ruth became. She walked forward aggressively like a hurricane. "Let me tell you, if I don''t teach that bitch a hard lesson today, I''ll eat my hat. I''ve hated her for a long time!" She walked at a fast pace back into the shop. The shop assistant shivered in fear when she saw her "Miss Ruth, why did youe back?" "What? What are you saying? Am I banned from the store?" She looked this way and that, but didn''t see Anne. She put on an arrogant air. "Of course not." The shop assistant lowered her head and trembled. Who knew what was wrong with the richdy? "Where is Anne?" Ruth was angry that she couldn''t find her there. The shop assistant was too scared to answer, but she subconsciously nced in the direction where Anne had gone. Ruth was smart¡ªshe followed her gaze and looked into the distance. As she thought, she spotted Anne. Chapter 41 Falling Into A Vegetative State Chapter 41 Falling Into A Vegetative State "Stop, Anne!" Ruth eximed. Anne had heard Ruth''s voice from behind again while she was walking towards the esctor. She stopped in front of it, with a frown upon her face. Meanwhile, Emily saw Ruth turning back to search for them and with exasperation from not being able to vent our her pent up anger, she said, "Oh, wow. The woman even dares toe back, huh!" Faintly, Anne turned sideways to face Emily and talked to her as if by whispering, "Don''t be bothered, Emily." After saying that, she walked forward again, ignoring Ruth who was behind her. With the way that Anne had ignored Ruth, how could it not annoy her? Ruth sprinted to where Anne and Emily were, got ahold of Emily''s hand, and pped her. "Are you seriously out of your mind?" Emily said, utterly stunned at the way Ruth just pped her without a second thought. Ruth had already taken action before Emily could even react. The crisp sound of the p was even louder than before. Obviously, she had hit her harder. "That is enough!" Anne quickly came to pull Emily away from Ruth just as she was about to p her for the second time. Emily, still absolutely bbergasted, stood frozen and still had no idea how she was going to react to what just happened. With all haste, Anne pped Ruth in the face. Cherry was just following them from behind and was shocked herself to see that Anne had pped Ruth. "Ah! !" With a series of screams, having been beaten by Emily previously was thest thing Ruth could bare. Then she got beaten by Anne again, which was such a shame for her. She got so angry that she started stomping her feet with her fists clenched and without even thinking twice, she tried to tackle Anne to the ground. Still, she failed, since Anne was able to circumvent her sudden attempt to attack her. Nheless, considering how strong she got, Ruth was able to rush her way towards the esctor and got down there. "Ah!" Ruth, while screaming, had disappeared in front of them all. Anne''s heart skipped a beat and Emily had trouble catching her breath witnessing that. Everyone was dazed for a moment and had no idea what just happened because things seemed to have escted so quickly. Cherry was the first one to take action. She dashed to the esctor and to her surprise, she saw that Ruth had rolled to the bottom of the esctor. There was blood everywhere. Cherry screamed in fear and everyone went to see for themselves what caused her to be terrified. Anne started hyperventting. Emily''s heart was pounding. She started grabbing onto Anne''s clothes as if she was holding on for dear life. "Ruth!!! Oh, my God! This is your fault, Anne! You pushed her down the esctor!" Cherry screamed to Anne''s face. She then went away from them and rushed down the esctor. Down there, Ruth was surrounded by a group of people already discussing what they thought might have happened but no one made an effort to call for an ambnce. "It wasn''t her fault! She didn''t push Ruth!" Emily tried to defend Anne. Anne, not being able to speak, kept shaking her head while staring nkly at the floor. How could it have been her? She did not even touch Ruth. Emily was still shaking and asked her, "Anne? Anne, what are we going to do?" Emily had not a single idea what they would do. She did have a feeling they would get into a fight that day but she never would have predicted for things to go down gruesomely! After a few moments, Anne stared at the horrifying pool of blood at the bottom of the esctor, and yelled at Emily, "Call for help now, Emily!!!" Emily already knew what Anne meant by that and did as she ordered without hesitation. She immediately took her phone out of the pocket of her pants and dialed 120. "Oh my, Ruth!'' Inside the hospital, a hurtle of footsteps could be heard approaching from afar, apanied by a hoarse shout. Anne sat and waited outside the operating room with her heart still racing and her hands and feet cold. She saw familiar faces from a distance. She tried to look closely, and when she was able to make out their faces, she realized that they were Ruth''s parents. They went straight to the hospital as soon as Content held by N?velDrama.Org. they heard about their daughter. Emily got more anxious and held onto Anne''s clothes. She started crying and shaking uncontrobly. She kept thinking about the possibility of Ruth dying and that made her even more terrified. Despite the fact that they did not have anything directly to do with Ruth''s unfortunate ident, Emily still felt that they were, in a way, responsible for it. Anne gently grabbed Emily''s hands and tried to calm her down even if she was feeling very nervous herself and said in a low voice, "Everything will be fine, Emily. Don''t be afraid. We will be okay and we will get through this." Anne''s hands were sweating like crazy making it obvious that she was just trying to be strong for them both so Emily tried to force a little nod in response. "Wh-where did they bring Ruth? Where is my daughter?" Linda, Ruth''s mother, shouted upon bustling through the hospital doors. Her eyes were totally red and swollen from crying too much. The man who apanied her, which could very well be Ruth''s father, seemed to have been trying to remain calm while he held her, but his face was heavy with sadness and confusion. A few momentster, the man tried to calm her down and said, "Stop worrying too much. Our daughter just entered the operating room. The doctors are doing everything they can. She will be fine." Seeing that, Anne couldn''t muster up the courage to even stand up and talk to them. However, how could Cherry not seize the opportunity? She tried to force out a sniff and squeeze out a few tears before approaching Ruth''s parents. "Mrs. Sun, I''m sorry I failed to take good care of your daughter. I''m so, so sorry." She cried bitterly. While sitting on another corner of the hospital, Anne saw Cherry''s tearful face and suddenly felt hard-hearted. There was actually something to do with her, but she didn''t have much reaction. Standing next to her, Emily was very scared. Seeing Ruth''s parentsing, she trembled even more fiercely, and tears started flowing from her eyes again. While turning around and looking at her, Anne didn''t say a word. "What happened? How did she fall off the esctor?" Ruth''s mom started choking with sobs. Her dad couldn''t stay silent any longer and asked Cherry what happened. At the time, Cherry slowly stopped crying. "I''m so sorry, Mr. Sun. We never expected things to go down like this," she told Ruth''s father. She started crying again but she didn''t get to exin what exactly happened. As Anne was just about to stand up and exin herself, Emily clutched her arm. Emily looked at her with her eyes full of tears while shaking her head saying, "Anne, no. Don''t do it." Anne knew what Emily meant. Once such a thing had happened, it would be difficult to get rid of it. Be that as it might, Anne still thought to herself that if she just kept sitting there and didn''t bother saying anything, wouldn''t that make her nothing more than a heartless person? She wanted to try speaking up again but Emily kept shaking her head, trying to stop Anne from doing so. At that point, Anne decided to keep thinking it though and waited. Once the operation was over, she decided she would take her part of responsibility. "Stop crying, Miss. Cherry. Tell me what happened? How did my daughter fall down the esctor? Cherry kept silent and that made Linda anxious so she grabbed her in the arm and asked her again, "What happened?" She started crying and shaking hysterically. "If something happens to my daughter, how can I live on?" Hearing this made Emily tremble again. She was really scared this time. It was hard for her to imagine how painful Linda would be if something really happened to Ruth. "Don''t be afraid. It''s okay," said Anne in a low voice, holding Emily''s hand tightly. "Actually..." Cherry muttered. She already knew it was time that she kick Anne out of her life. This matter was so serious that she believed that there was no way for Anne to get out of it. "Actually what?" Linda asked, "Just tell me!" "Ahh, Mrs. Sun, here is the thing. I went shopping with your daughter and met up with my cousin. Then¡­" Halfway through, she thought of looking around and finding Anne. Coincidentally, Anne raised her head then and caught a glimpse of Cherry, at the same time. It startled Cherry when she saw that Anne seemed calm, judging by her eyes. How could Anne be so calm in this situation? Even she could not help but feel all sorts of terrified at the moment. She did not fake a cry but she was indeed scared. Deep inside, though, she really hoped that Ruth would not make it, because in this way, Anne would never stand a chance to flop to the top. "I never expected that Ruth would hate my cousin so much. The two of them had a dispute beside the esctor. Then when the argument got heated, Ruth tried to reach out to hit my cousin but my cousin ended up pushing her down by ident." Cherry continued while bursting into tears. Upon hearing that, Emily was on the verge of breaking down. What was Cherry talking about? Ruth rolled and fell down the esctor by herself. Why would Cherry ever say that it was Anne who pushed her? At this critical moment, even if she was afraid, Emily couldn''t help but stand up. She wanted to confront Cherry, but her body was pulled by Anne. "Emily, leave her be," Anne said. "But, Anne, she is literally framing you up right now!" Emily said, full of anger. Anne had already been used to Cherry''s plots, hadn''t she? At this point, she was pretty sure Cherry was going to try to turn everything against her and put the me on her. "Are you saying that this woman pushed down our Ruth?" After hearing Cherry out, Linda immediately set her gaze upon Anne, who was sitting next to her, and that made her enraged and anxious. She was thinking that her daughter was in her deathbed fighting for her life while the alleged culprit was still sitting there even looking calm. "I''m sorry, Mrs. Sun. Anne didn''t mean to do that. I apologize to you on behalf of her!" Cherry shouted, grabbed Linda''s hand and knelt down. The loud noise shocked Emily. What was Cherry doing? She really was such a great pretender. Unable to hold back her anger, Emily pulled away Anne''s hand, ran to Linda and exined, "Mrs. Sun, it''s not like that. Your daughter, Ruth rolled down by herself, instead of being pushed by Anne!" Cherry knew that Emily would definitelye out to talk at that time. Without hesitation, she cried out again. "Emily, I know you want to speak for Anne, but it has happened. Anne can''t deny it! Mrs. Sun, I beg you to forgive Anne. She really didn''t expect such a thing to happen!" Emily answered her, "Cherry, how can you lie like that?" She was so distressed and confused. "I know you hate Anne, but can you really keep making stories up in serious situation like this, Cherry?" She was so anxious. When she turned around, she saw Anne still sitting there as if nothing was happening. Emily did not know what else there was to do. Seeing as Linda seemed to have believed in Cherry''s testimony, she couldn''t say another word anymore even though she wanted to kept exining. Chapter 42 The Heartless Woman Chapter 42 The Heartless Woman Emily immediately felt irritated when Cherry knelt down and cried. "Miss, we don''t me you. It''s not your fault. You don''t have to kneel down to us!" Linda was quite shocked at her action. Her heart softened at the sight of the poor girl as she sincerely apologized to her. She understood that she couldn''t bear to me her. She shifted her gaze at Anne. The moment she looked at her, she knew she could not sympathize with her. "Is she your cousin?" Linda walked closer to Anne with the help of her husband, Craig Sun. They resembled old people. Although they were getting older, they were still full of energy. It was an unfortunate event for them. The trauma was still evident in their faces. "What did our daughter do to you? How could you do this to her?" Linda started to question Anne. Her eyes were begging. Anne stood up and looked straight into their eyes. She said, "Mrs. Sun, I didn''t touch Ruth. I swear!" The way she spoke was so quiet, and her aura was so strong. Although Linda was already on the verge of copse, she couldn''t care if Anne''s words were truthful or not. Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. But Craig Sun was still a sensible person. He nodded and answered, "Girl, I believe you won''t do that. When the operation is over, everything will be clear." "Thank you." Anne moved aside and made room for the two elders. As they were waiting for the operation to end, Linda sat on the chair anxiously with a dull look on her face. Craig Sun tried tofort her and managed to calm her down. Cherry was left astonished as she stared at Anne. She was amazed that Anne was able to resolve their problem with a few words. Emily was breathless for a moment. She came back to her senses, finally relieved and eximed, "Oh my God, I was scared to death. I thought they would hit you!" "How could it be?" Anne shook her head. "Don''t think too much. Does Kevin know we are here?" "Yes." Emily nodded. "I called Sam as soon as I got here. They should be arriving soon." At a critical moment, the first person Emily remembered was Sam. She was really afraid that something bad would happen, so she couldn''t help crying when she called Sam. Hearing her crying like that, Sam realized the gravity of the situation and immediately called Kevin. "Okay." Anne nodded. She leaned against the wall as she stared at the operationmp. She sped her hands and started to pray that Ruth would be fine. Emily was right all along, even though she didn''t push Ruth, it was partly her fault. If she hadn''t moved aside, Ruth wouldn''t have fallen down. But if she didn''t move, she could have fallen down instead. Anne touched her abdomen and smiled bitterly. She did that for her baby. If she weren''t pregnant, she would''ve sacrificed herself and fallen down instead. "Humph, don''t be smug." Cherry stood beside Anne without her noticing. "If something really happens to Ruth, you will have a hard time." Anne raised an eyebrow and nced at her with cold eyes. "Really? Do you think you''ll be better off?" "Why won''t I be better?" Cherry smirked and whispered in Anne''s ear, "For me, as long as I y a little trick, you will be doomed. Haven''t you understood this until now?" "Cherry, you are in such a hurry." Anne turned her head and stepped aside. She didn''t want to hear from Cherry anymore. Emily noticed that Cherry was getting too close to Anne. She quickly stepped in and stood between the two, leaving no chance for them to speak. "Anne!" A loud scream was heard along the corridor of the hospital. Linda immediately recognized who it was. "n, you''re here!" As soon as n received the phone call, he immediately set aside his work and rushed over to the hospital. While he was on his way, he had heard that Anne was involved in the incident. He wanted to cut Anne into a thousand pieces, thinking that she was the reason behind all of it. "Anne, what kind of feud do you have with the Sun Family? How could you do this to my sister?" He walked straight towards Anne. His eyes were sharper than a sword, as if he was trying to pierce her heart. "What do you mean?" Anne knew that n thought that it was her fault. He had always thought badly of her. Sure enough, she could tell from the moment that he arrived here and headed straight to confront her, he was definitely counting it over her head. "Don''t you know what I mean?" n started pointing at the tip of Anne''s nose. He clenched his teeth as he spoke usingly, "What can''t a woman like you do?" Anne bit her lips and stared at n nkly. "I didn''t do anything to your sister. Don''t me me for this." "You are really¡ª" He stopped mid-sentence. He suddenly smirked and contained his anger. "Let me tell you, if anything happens to my sister, I will never let you go for the rest of my life." After he spoke, he turned his back at her, and walked towards his parents and began tofort them. Anne leaned against the wall as she felt a sudden chill run down her spine. She clenched her fists tightly as she tried to contain the pain. She couldn''t feel any warmth either. Emily knew that Anne must be hurting. She approached her and held onto her arms as she tried to console her. Sam and Kevin finally arrived. Both of them came rushing through the corridors of the hospital. Sam approached Anne first and worriedly asked her, "Are you alright?" Emily was relieved that they came. She didn''t mind that Sam did not even bother to look at her. She stretched her hands out and grabbed Sam''s sleeve. She started crying, findingfort in his presence. "Sam, you''re finally here." Sam turned his head and noticed that Emily''s eyes were swollen. He felt a needle prick his heart when he saw how helpless she was. He took out a napkin from his pocket and handed it to Emily. "Don''t cry. Everything''s going to be fine." "Okay." Emily grabbed the napkin and wiped her eyes. Anne nced at Kevin. He was standing not too far from her, he obviously had no intention ofing closer. She tried to decipher his expression from afar but she couldn''t. She didn''t have much reaction to Kevin''s arrival. On the other hand, Cherry was ted when she saw Kevin. She immediately ran and threw herself into his arms. "Kevin, you''re finally here. I''m so scared. I''m really scared." Cherry always knew how to melt his heart. She had always been a good actress. Kevin felt a stinging pain in his heart when he saw her crying. Cherry''s pitiful face coupled with her petite figure was enough to make him feel sorry for her. He gently grabbed her and slowly patted her back. "Don''t be afraid. I''m here now." Anne was standing not too far from them, and she heard everything that Kevin said. Every word was so clear. She immediately looked away and tried her best not to look at them again. It pained her heart to see them being so hopelessly in love with each other. Anne knew that she still couldn''t deceive herself. At that moment, she felt extremely cold. She couldn''t help but wrap her exposed shoulders. She looked at the closed operating room, wishing it all ended sooner. The person inside was not doing well. Anne realized at that moment that the odds were never in her favor. While everyone was waiting, the doors of the operating room suddenly opened. The doctor finally came out and approached Ruth''s family. He announced that Ruth fell into a vegetative state. Anne almost fell down at the announcement, but she tried her best to stand tall. Naturally, Linda couldn''t ept the news, and immediately fainted. Everyone was heartbroken. The entire corridor was in chaos. Linda was sent to a ward until she recovered from the shock. n apanied her mother but before he left, he managed to re at Anne one more time. Anne felt hatred and anger from his eyes. But that time, his reaction was nothing to her anymore. All she could think of was Ruth''s domineering face. She couldn''t believe that such an arrogant woman would end up like that. "Kevin, what should we do? It''s all my fault!" Cherry started to get hysterical. She trembled as she hugged him tightly, trying to grasp the news. "I shouldn''t have gone shopping with her. If I hadn''t gone shopping with her, I wouldn''t have met Anne and the ident wouldn''t have happened. It''s all my fault!" Cherry cried out her guilt while Kevin stared at Anne without saying anything. Anne knew at the way Kevin looked at her that he believed everything that Cherry told him. Needless to say, he must have been thinking that she really pushed Ruth down. He believed that in the process of arguing with Ruth, Anne''s beastliness was triggered, and that resulted in Ruth''s condition right now. Everyone must have thought that it was nothing to her because of her reaction. Her empty expression must have made everyone think she was actually heartless. "Anne." Sam knew what kind of person Anne was. ''She didn''t even want to kill an ant. How could she do such a thing?'' From the way he observed Anne''s face, he already had an idea of what was going on. Anne looked back at him and asked, "What is it?" "Don''t worry. With the current medical technology, she''s going to wake up one day." Sam tried tofort her, but it seemed that she didn''t need anyfort. "I know," she calmly answered. Her calmness was almost terrifying. Nothing that happened in this hospital sparked any emotion. The incident barely affected her. "Really? Will she really wake up?" Emily butted in. She choked at her words as she continued to cry. No matter how much Emily hated Ruth, she never wanted her to end up in a vegetative state. Chapter 43 He Didnt Believe Her Chapter 43 He Didn''t Believe Her Ruth was the daughter of a rich family. It was inconceivable for such a young woman to lie unconscious in bed for the rest of her life! "Yes, she will wake up." Sam nodded and raised his hand to touch his forehead. "Let''s get inside and see her." As he started to make his way to the ward, Emily stood still, unable to take a step. "No, I don''t dare to go in there." Anne grabbed hold of Emily''s hand. "Don''t be afraid. We should go to see her." "But..." Emily sniffed, tears streaming down her face. "I''m really scared, even at the thought of seeing her lying there." "Okay. I''ll go by myself." Anne turned around and headed in the direction of the ward. "Anne, tell me, why did you do that?" Kevin finally opened his mouth. With that simple question he made Anne''s pride and self-esteem sink through the floor. He still didn''t believe her! Or better, he had never believed her. As Kevin''s voice resounded coldly from the empty corridor, a bitter smile appeared on the corner of Anne''s lips. "Do you really think I did it?" "Or what? I didn''t expect you to be so vicious." Kevin didn''t give Anne any chance to take a breath. Holding Cherry''s hand tightly, he strode toward Anne with an icy stare that seemed to prate her heart and soul. Anne averted her eyes. "I thought you knew I''ve always been so cold-blooded and ruthless." After pronouncing those words, she felt a sharp pain take hold of her heart. N?velDrama.Org owns all content. Emily knew that Anne was saying that out of anger. But without Kevin''s support and help, she would indubitably be hated by the Sun Family for life. Only Kevin could solve this matter once and for all. "None of this is Anne''s fault. Ruth got off the esctor by herself. Anne didn''t touch her at all." Emily tried her best to vouch for Anne, but neither of the people involved in the story cared. Anne''s heart had been dead for ages. As long as she knew that she hadn''t done anything wrong, she would be fine. As for Kevin, what he thought was his business and had nothing to do with her. "Really?" Kevin sneered. "I believe what I heard before more than what you said just now." "Kevin! Don''t push it!" Sam couldn''t stand it anymore. He knew that Kevin didn''t like Anne, but this time he had gone too far. "Did I do anything wrong?" Kevin turned to look at Sam. "She took a life away this time." For him there was no difference between a vegetable and a dead person. Sam matched his re. "Do you really think that Anne would do such a thing?" He couldn''t believe that someone could be so brute. "Should I trust her?" Kevin suddenly burst intoughter. Acent smile spread across his cold and hard-featured face, making him feel even more ironic. "You-" Emily couldn''t put up with him anymore. How could he be like that! She threw a worried nce at Anne, who was standing still, ayer of sadness stretching over her beautiful face. "Don''t think that I will clear up your mess for you." Kevin looked up at Anne, his gaze prating. He was well aware that if he stood up for Anne, the Sun Family would not cause any trouble for her. But he knew that he wouldn''t do that. Because he believed that the woman in front of him was vicious and didn''t deserve pity or sympathy. Anne nodded, her face expressionless. "I know. I have never thought about asking you to clear it up for me." She felt dizzy and couldn''t see Kevin''s face clearly. Although he was not standing far from her, she could vaguely make out his eyebrows and eyes. But his expression was so unmistakably cial that she felt a chill run down her spine. He was the only one who could make her feel cold whenever he looked at her. Unfortunately, she could not tell this feeling to anyone, especially Kevin, for he would never care. "Good." Squinting his eyes, Kevin lowered his head and whispered in Cherry''s ear, "Let''s go home." Then he turned around, refusing to be in Anne''s presence for one more second. Cherry sobbed in Kevin''s arms, looking miserable. As their figures faded along the corridor, Anne let her body copse against the wall, unable to hold on any longer. "Anne!" Sam rushed over and helped her up. "You''re feverish. I''ll drive you back!" Perhaps that happened because she had stayed in a dark ce for a long time, and now she was burning up. At the sight of Anne''s pale face, Emily felt scared, but she was mostly pissed off with Kevin for not believing Anne. What was more, he left the hospital with Cherry without caring about her well-being at all! "Anne, you have a fever!" Raising her hand to touch Anne''s hot arm, Emily looked up at Sam and asked, "What should we do? We''d better go to see a doctor as soon as possible." "I am a doctor." With a frown creasing his forehead, Sam picked Anne up and headed to the ward before she fainted. In the ward, Anne woke up after lying in bed for a day. She didn''t know how long she had slept. She only knew that it was noon. She still remembered that the operation was over at night. Now the sun was so bright that it had to be daytime. The dizziness hadn''t vanished yet. She looked up at the white ceiling and smelled disinfectant in the air. She knew she was still in the hospital. Her hands and feet were numb, and there was a drip on her hand. She could feel a slight tingle where the needle had pricked her skin. She wanted to get up but didn''t have any strength at all. A delicate breeze blew through the half-open window, raising a corner of the white curtain. She turned her head and looked out of the window, where she could see an ancient camphor tree. Several old people were sitting in wheelchairs under the tree, talking andughing happily. Watching their smiles, sheughed too. "What are youughing at?" As soon as he entered the room, Sam saw Anne''s lips curl in a smile, and his frown softened a little. Seeing that it was him, Anne shook her head. "Nothing. Am I in your hospital?" Sam was wearing a white gown and had an intravenous drip changed for her. When did she arrive to the Feng Family''s hospital? she wondered. "Yes." He handled the drip carefully. "How are you feeling now? Better?" Anne nodded. "Yes, I just feel a little dizzy." "That''s because you have slept for too long," Sam exined patiently. "You''ve slept for more than ten hours since yesterday." "Really?" Anne''s lips parted feebly. "Would you please help me sit up?" "Are you hungry?" After Sam adjusted the bed for her, she sat up. She shook her head. "I''m not hungry." Even though she hadn''t eaten for two days, she didn''t feel hungry at all. Ruth''s face suddenly shed through her mind. "How is Ruth? How is she doing?" Sam lowered his head and poured some water for Anne, taking his time before answering her question. "Still the same. She is temporarily stable. But I don''t think it''s possible for her to wake up." Even though Sam didn''t tell her the whole truth, Anne knew what was going on. If Ruth''sasted for too long, she wouldn''t wake up so easily. Noticing Anne''s silence, Sam handed her the water and added, "Don''t think about it. You are very weak now. You must rest for a while." "I know my body." She smiled faintly. "By the way, where is Emily? Why haven''t I seen her?" "She was afraid you''d be hungry when you''d wake up, so she went to buy some food for you." Emily was a really good friend. Anne couldn''t imagine what it would be like without her support in that difficult time of her life. "It''s very kind of her." Anne lowered her gaze, and a trace of sadness appeared on her dainty face. Seeing her sorrow, Sam felt deeply ufortable. In the office on the top floor of the AN Tower, Kevin was sitting and staring at the pile of documents in front of him. He hadn''t moved for a long time. "What are you thinking about?" Roy Luo had been knocking at the door for a while now, but no sound wasing from inside. After making sure that there was someone inside, he pushed the door open. Kevin raised his gaze and, seeing the man, he asked in a low voice, "Why are you here?" Roy Luo was a good friend of Kevin''s. They grew up together and had a strong bond. Sometimes they went out for drinks or leisure activities, such as swimming. Undoubtedly, Roy Luo was there now because he heard about what had happened to Anne. The ident had been on the news since yesterday, so everyone must have heard of it. "I am here to see you!" Roy Luo took a seat on the sofa casually. Seeing the pile of documents in front of Kevin, he couldn''t help asking, "What''s wrong? Are you still worried about my sister-inw?" He knew that Kevin didn''t like Anne, or worse, hated her. ¡­¡­ But he would still call her sister-inw, a respectful term used for the wife of one''s buddy. After all, it was a fact, even if Kevin was unwilling to admit it. "Who allowed you to call her sister-inw?" Hearing Roy Luo mention Anne got Kevin furious. Because of her, he hadn''t dealt with thepany''s matters recently. He was not in the mood to take care of any of them. "Okay, I won''t call her sister-inw. Honestly speaking, you don''t really believe that what happened to Ruth has something to do with Anne, do you?" Kevin raised his head and narrowed his eyes, grasping that there was a hidden meaning in Roy Luo''s words. "What do you mean?" Chapter 44 Getting Revenge Chapter 44 Getting Revenge "Nothing. I''m just asking." Roy knew a little about what was going on, but he also knew Kevin''s temper. As long as Kevin didn''t go along with what other people said, nothing else mattered. Kevin looked at him coldly. "I actually believe she has something to do with it." He was convinced that Anne was capable of anything. He had nned to give her a chance to redeem herself but she even screwed that up. He was so disappointed with her. Roy raised his eyebrows and nodded. Well, he really didn''t need to say anything now. Kevin was stubborn. It was useless to try and convince him. "Would you like to go out for drinks?" Kevin replied calmly, "Whatever. Where?" "''Saints'' Bar? Coming?" Roy stood up. "Sure. Eight o''clock okay?" Kevin showed up on time. Roy knew Kevin didn''t like noisy and crowded ces, so he booked a private room. At the same time, Roy also invited some of their buddies along. The more the merrier. When Kevin entered the room, the room fell silent. All eyes were on him. They had no choice. He was the main guy, the whole reason for this outing. If he hadn''te, no one else wanted to be "it." "Kevin''s here!" The guests cheered and shouted as all the tension drained from the room. Kevin sat down next to Roy. Roy opened a bottle of beer and pushed it along the table until it sat in front of Kevin. "Want a drink?" "Actually, I''m not in the mood for beer. Get me a bottle of champagne. Moet & Chandon, if you have it." Kevin had a discerning pte. He didn''t always like beer, and only drank champagne on special asions. Roy nodded and snapped his fingers. A waiter immediately came forward and poured around for the guests. The golden liquid slowly rose in the transparent goblets. The bubbles popped one by one until Kevin emptied the ss. "That was fast! What''s the rush?" Unlike other bars, "Saints" Bar was exclusive to high-end people. The service was top notch from start to finish. The vibe was fantastic, and the aroma of alcohol reached every nostril. The music yed at just the right volume. Some people could be put off by the long lines, but these esteemed guests did not need to wait at all. The lighting was never harsh, so anyone wanting to dance could do so whenever they wanted. The room was big enough to hold a party of ten celebrities, and often did. Celebrities loved going there to rub elbows with other elites. But that night, only five people were invited, including Roy himself and Kevin, five in total. "Aren''t we here to drink?" Kevin didn''t want to talk a lot. He just wanted to drown his sorrows. He was restless and out of sorts, and a few rounds were just what he needed to calm down. "Worried about my sister-inw?" Roy knew that Kevin must be bothered by this, or this normally calm man wouldn''t have drunk so much. It had been many years since they''d seen each other, but Roy had never seen him drink so hard. "Do me a favor, and don''t bring her up again, okay?" He wasn''t worried, but rather cursing her name right now. He hated her for letting him down again and again. He had tried to be patient, to take things as they came, but she was so impatient. She disappointed him again and again. Roy nodded. "I know, I know. Don''t talk about her. Fine. Bottom''s up!" After drinking one ss after another, Kevin couldn''t drink any more. At that moment, Roy knew it was time to call Kevin''s girlfriend. By the time Cherry arrived, there were only two people left, Roy and Kevin. Seeing Cherry, Roy immediately raised his head and said, "Now that you''re here, I''ll leave him to you." Roy had put away more than a few drinks, butpared to Kevin, he was still the sober one. Because Kevin waspletely hammered. As soon as Roy called her, Cherry rushed over. "Why would he drink like this?" She had originally nned to go to the hospital to check on Ruth. The She sat beside Kevin, trying to help him up. But he seemed to be so drunk that he couldn''t even keep his feet. "Something''s bugging him, which is why he drank so much. I''m headed out. Have fun!" Roy waved at Cherry and staggered out the door. Cherry frowned. She took a long look at Kevin, and she felt bitter inside. Kevin had never been this liquored up before. Something must have happened. Was it because of Anne? "What''s wrong with you?" Cherry draped one of Kevin''s arms around her shoulders. It took all her strength to support him. "Why did you drink so much?" "Oh, there you are!" Struggling to straighten up, Kevin stared at the woman in front of him and frowned. "Why are you here? Did Roy invite you? Where is he?" At least he still recognized her. That was promising. "Roy left," Cherry sighed. "I told you he was a bad influence on you. You''re a mess, Kevin. What did he do to you?" Then Cherry moved forward, trying to help him out the door, but he didn''t want to go anywhere. "Come on. Let''s go home." "No. I''m not drunk enough." Kevin shook off Cherry''s hand and steadied himself, palms t on the table. He clearly wasn''t done drinking. Cherry was angry. She grabbed his arm and said angrily, "Tell me what''s going on! Is it Anne?" "How is that possible?" Kevin chuckled. "I wouldn''t be drinking ''cause of you. Don''t overthink it." "What? Me? What are you talking about?" Cherry didn''t like Kevin''s crazy look. She looked at the man next to her and stamped her feet with anger. "Kevin, why did you drink?" "I don''t know." Kevin shook his head and sobered up a little. The blurred figures in front of him finally ovepped. "Why are you here, Cherry?" "I''m serious. Who do you think I am?" Cherry looked at Kevin angrily. She bit her lips and knew that she needed to grin and bear it. After all, as far as Kevin knew, she''d always been considerate. "Kevin, let''s go home." She turned around, took his coat and helped him out. It took Kevin a long time to stand up straight. He put all his weight on Cherry, and his vision was blurry. "Why did you do it?" When he spoke, Cherry froze. "Tell me, why did you do it?" His tone was extremely cold, but there seemed to be some sadness in it. Cherry frowned. "What are you talking about?" "Why did you push Ruth down the stairs?" He started speaking more clearly. Cherry''s heart beat faster and faster, and cold sweat dripped down her back. "I don''t understand." Cherry began to get nervous. She didn''t know what Kevin meant. Did he already know she pushed Ruth down the stairs? So maybe that was why he came here to drink? Was he trying to forget? She still didn''t dare admit it and face herself. Ruth probably would have been okay if Cherry hadn''t tripped her. She put her feet in the way and Ruth tumbled down the stairs. But why did Kevin know this when no one saw her? Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. "Are you still pretending?" Kevin sneered. He shook his body and pointed his index finger at Cherry''s sweating face. "You''re such a vicious woman. Why did you do that? Why would you do something like that?" Cherry couldn''t help trembling. Seeing that Kevin was so serious, she almost admitted it. "Anne! You are so stubborn!" As soon as Kevin finished hisst sentence, he fell onto the sofa, and his eyes closed. Cherry was relieved. It turned out that he was not talking about her, but about Anne instead. The mood in Ruth''s ward was oppressive. Shey in the bed, eyes closed, not stirring at all. Linda sat at her bedside. Her eyes were red and swollen, tears streaming down her cheeks. Staring at Ruth in the bed, Craig also wiped tears from his eyes. "n, you have to seek justice for your sister!" After crying, Linda looked up at n, who stood by the window. Ruth always studied abroad, and n seldom saw her. But he loved his sister very much. He''d take time out to visit her during holidays. They had formed a deep bond. Then when Ruth finally came home, this happened. And somehow Anne was in the thick of it. n wasmitted to finding her, and getting revenge for his sister. Clenching his fists, n turned around and said, "Mom, don''t worry. She won''t be happy when I get to her!" As soon as he finished speaking, he took out his phone and dialed a number. On the top floor of Sun Group, n stood against the wind. He had been on the rooftop for a long time. As he looked down at the buildings of the whole city, a bloodthirsty smile spread across his face. His thoughts were interrupted by the voice of his secretary. "Boss, the person you''re looking for is here." n didn''t turn around, but said softly, "Okay, I know. Let hime up." "Mr. n." It was a man''s voice, dull and t. n finally turned around and looked at him. "You''re finally here." "Yes. I heard you want to get rid of someone. Do you have the information I requested?" He had a nondescript face hidden under a huge hat. From n''s vantage point, all he could see were tightly-pursed lips. "Yes, all the information is here." n held a man envelope behind his back. He handed it to the nondescript man. The man raised his hand and took the document. Casting a sidelong nce at n, the man opened the envelope and took a photo from it. He frowned when he first saw it. "This woman looks familiar." Yes, Anne was very famous. She was Kevin''s wife. Although Kevin didn''t love her, she was still a member of the Fu Family. No one would mess with her without a good reason. "Yes, she is Kevin''s wife, Anne Luo." Chapter 45 Its Not About The Money Chapter 45 It''s Not About The Money n looked up, hatred in his eyes. "What? You have a problem with thismission?" The man raised his head slightly. The brim of his hat rode a little higher, so n could see more of his face. What kind of face was it? The scars crisscrossing his dark face could only be described in terrible terms. It startled him, and he involuntarily took a step back. The expression on his face changed slightly. He plucked up his courage and continued, "Well, I''ll give you fifty million after it''s done." "Mr. n, it''s not about the money." Perhaps this man realized that his appearance had frightened n. He immediately lowered his head and his voice was full of foreboding. "Kevin is a powerful man. We wouldn''t want to anger him." n certainly understood their reason. He couldn''t afford to offend Kevin, but he understood money was often a powerful motivator. "How about eighty million?" n impatiently took out a check from his pocket and handed it to the man, "Here is fifty million. And another thirty million once your job is done." "I''m sorry, Mr. n. We can''t take this contract. I think you need to find someone else." The man lowered the brim of his hat and returned the documents in his hand to n, preparing to leave. As soon as he lifted his foot, n spoke again. "I think the media might be very interested in what you''ve done in the past. You have to understand¡ª I''m used to getting what I want." A sinister smile appeared on n''s face. Looking at the man''s back, which was a little stiff, he continued, "You don''t want your family to know that, do you?" The man didn''t expect that n would do this. He was stunned. He turned his back to n. "You''re ying a dangerous game. What do you want?" Normally, n would never threaten others like that, but he was determined to get justice. Anne really pissed him off. "I want her gone, but it needs to look like an ident. A car ident." It would be best if he could kill Anne. If he couldn''t, she deserved to be disabled, to suffer the way Ruth did. As long as he could get justice for Ruth, n was willing to pay no matter how much money it took. "A car ident?" The man''s body trembled. "Do you want her dead?" "At least disabled." n narrowed her eyes and said viciously, "I''ll be satisfied if you arrange for a car to hit her and cripple her." The man lowered his head and kept silent for a long time. "Well? I need at least a nod, and the fifty million is yours." n approached the man and he seemed to move his head hesitantly. He tucked the check into the assassin''s pocket. "You''ve always been efficient. I''ll wait for your report." After saying that, n tidied up his clothes and left the rooftop. It took the man a long time to raise his head and look in the direction n left. He took the check from his pocket, looked at the numbers on it, and finally made up his mind. In the Fu Family''s Vi. When he opened his eyes, the first thing he saw was the familiar ceiling. Then he looked around and found that it was all ck and white. He shook his head, trying to wake himself up. Well, it was much better to be in his own room than lying in the street. He looked at the rm clock on the bedside table. It was nine o''clock in the morning. How much did he drinkst night? How long did he sleep? "Are you awake?" Cherry entered the room and put the prepared sober-up soup aside. Seeing that Kevin was finally awake, she felt relieved. "Feeling any better?" "How did I get back here? I don''t remember much." Kevin thumped his head, trying to remember what happenedst night, but he only recalled that he went out drinking with Roy, and nothing else. Cherry sat down on the sofa and nced at the outside. "I took you home. How do you think you got here?" After saying that, she pouted and looked at him discontentedly. Kevin was not in the mood to care about Cherry''s moods. He lifted the quilt and got out of bed. As soon as his feet hit the floor, he felt dizzy. "Why don''t you lie down a little longer?" "Is Ruth awake?" The two spoke almost at the same time. As soon as Kevin opened his mouth, Cherry''s face immediately changed. The first thing Kevin did when he woke up was to ask about Ruth. She turned around and said angrily, "I don''t know!" "What''s wrong with you? Why are you so angry?" Kevin frowned. Cherry seldom lost her temper. Something was wrong. "What do you think?" Cherry stood up and looked at Kevin, with tears in her eyes. "You were so drunk ask about me this morning, but the first name you mention is Ruth!" How could Cherry not be angry? She stayed with Kevinst night until he fell asleep. She was so tired ¡ªshe was awake most of the night, worrying about him. She came to see him bright and early, but he didn''t care about her at all. Kevin had changed a lot since Anne got pregnant. What annoyed her most was that he called out Anne''s namest night. N?velDrama.Org owns all content. And Anne was the whole reason he was drinking! All this was because of Anne, but she could not lose her temper at all. She could only endure it. "I''m sorry." Kevin walked close to Cherry and took her hand. His angr face softened. "I haven''t had a whole lot of time for you recently, but you took care of me for so longst night." As soon as he finished speaking, he raised her hand and nted a gentle kiss on the back of it. When Cherry saw Kevin''s sweet demeanor, her anger evaporated. Of course she knew what a woman should do at this time. As soon as Kevin let go of her hand, she threw herself into his arms. "Kevin, I don''t think you love me as much as you used to." "What makes you think that?" He put his arms around Cherry''s slender waist, but his mind was on Anne''s expressionless face. He didn''t know how the woman was doing. He hadn''t contacted her since he left the hospital that day. He knew as long as Emily and Sam were there, there should be no problem. So he didn''t visit her. "Well... You''re not as warm as you used to be. You''re less attentive, too." She pushed him away, only to find that Kevin''s eyes were unfocused and he hadn''t listened to her. She was very angry, but she could only say slowly, "I know you''re upset about what happened on Ruth, but could you also care about me?" "Cherry, I have something I need to deal with. I''ll be back tonight." Then Kevin let go of Cherry''s hands, walked to the two-meter-high wardrobe, took out a set of clothes and was about to get changed. He just woke up and was about to go out. Cherry was naturally unhappy. She followed him and asked, "Where are you going?" "You may go out first. I''ll change my clothes." While unbuttoning his shirt, Kevin stood with his back to her. Cherry could tell he was impatient, so she gnashed her teeth and went out silently. Thest thing she wanted to do was to upset Kevin. Except acting like a spoiled brat, she never dared to do anything else, not to mention getting angry. It was ridiculous to think about it then. In the ward of the hospital, Anne got the green light from doctors. They said she could get out of bed that day. She was about to take a walk in the hospital garden. She wanted Emily along to help, which surprised her friend. A few days ago, she didn''t want to go out, buty on bed all the time, thinking about something. She hadn''t eaten muchtely, and was so thin. Sam had been giving Anne an injection once a day by then, but she couldn''t keep doing that. Emily decided to try her best to cheer Anne up. The two of them came to the garden. The sun shone brightly. Bathed in sunlight, Anne finally felt warm. "Anne, are you feeling better today?" Emily held Anne''s arm carefully, afraid that something bad might happen to her. Anne shook her head, "I''m fine. Don''t worry about me. It''s a nice day out. You should go shopping." It was not a good idea for Emily to be by her side 24/7. Emily should have a life of her own. But because of her, Emily had been with her almost all the time, and even stayed overnight in the hospital. This made Anne feel a little guilty. "What''s the fun of going shopping alone?" Saying this, Emily felt a little sad. She shook her head and shoved these negative thoughts out of her mind. "By the way, I heard that the South Pole saw some record temperatures yesterday. Those poor pr bears..." As soon as Emily was done talking, Anne burst intoughter. "What are youughing at?" Emily wanted to change the topic, but she didn''t expect that Anne would suddenlyugh. But when Anne smiled, Emily felt that the whole world was sunny. It took a long time for Anne to stopughing enough to talk. She raised her hand and pointed at Emily''s forehead with her slender finger. "I think you''re pulling my leg." "Of course not!" Emily blinked her eyes and said, "It''s true. I just watched the news yesterday!" "Really?" "Pr bears live around the North Pole, and Penguins live around the South Pole." Anne She even made up her own fake news, and was tens of thousands of miles off. "How could it be?" Emily frowned and said in disbelief, "Oh my God! Are there only penguins in the South Pole? But I remember pr bears being photographed with penguins!" "Well, you can go online and check for yourself!" She was in a better mood all of a sudden. She really wanted to thank Emily for her good sense of humor. Anne looked into the distance and saw many children in hospital clothes ying ball on the green grass. They seemed to be very happy. She walked towards that direction involuntarily. By the time Emily realized what had happened, Anne had gotten quite far. Emily rushed over and shouted, "Wait for me, Anne!" Chapter 46 She Was Too Stubborn Chapter 46 She Was Too Stubborn Emily paused the moment a familiar figure appeared in front of Anne. ''Kevin? He''s finally here.'' Emily saw who approached Anne. She stopped walking and gave them space. She wanted to see if Kevin finally realized something and believed Anne. "It seems that you have lived a good life." Anne suddenly froze. Her smile vanished as her heart started racing. She lifted her head and saw Kevin''s face. She could not distinguish his expression. As she faced him, she didn''t know what to do. "What are you doing here?" she asked him. When she was in aa, he was nowhere to find. He hadn''t contacted anyone, even Sam or Emily. He neglected his responsibilities as a husband. She felt sad that the person in front of her was too heartless. Her cold tone made Kevin depressed. "Can''t Ie here?" "Yes, you can." Anne loathed Kevin. She had already given up on the man in front of her. She started to walk in another direction when Kevin suddenly grabbed her arm. "Wait a minute -- I have something to tell you!" N?velDrama.Org owns all content. Emily hid in the corner when she saw Kevin grab Anne''s arm. She couldn''t believe what happened. "By God! Is Kevin begging for forgiveness?" "What are you doing?" Anne was startled at what he did. But her heart was already filled with coldness and she couldn''t care for him. She was disgusted at his touch. She couldn''t even bare looking at his face. Kevin saw her expression, which made him feel worse. "I came here today just to ask you something." Anne removed his hand and took a deep breath. "Is there anything unclear between us?" Kevin hesitated but still asked her, "Did you push Ruth down the esctor?" It was what she expected. ''What was I thinking? Of course, it was the same question.'' Anne thought. All the hope in her heart faded. She felt ridiculous at that moment. She smirked and answered, "Kevin, you have already known the answer in your heart. Why do you ask me again?" Kevin was annoyed to see the smile on her face. He knew that the woman always liked to contradict him. He hoped she could be a little softer so he could reciprocate the feelings. ''Why does she always go against me? Why is she unwilling to admit defeat?'' Kevin thought, frustrated at her actions. "I just want to ask you in person." "Ask me?" Anne mocked him more. "You thought I was a cruel woman the first time you saw me, didn''t you? I think in your conception, it''s a piece of cake for me to push someone downstairs." Kevin stared at her eyes -- it was so cold. Her words stunned him as he realized that she was right -- he already judged her. "Don''t you have anything to exin?" Kevin hoped she would surrender as he asked. "Exin what?" Anne kept her straight face. She couldn''t feel anything anymore. "I''m telling you, I didn''t push Ruth down. I didn''t touch her from beginning to end. Do you believe me?" Kevin was about to tell her, ''I believe,'' but something stopped him. He started to look at her face seriously. "I need evidence, or how can I know if you are lying?" "Ha-ha." Anne turned around and said, "No, it''s your business how you think of this matter. I know what I have done and that''s enough. Those who believe me will always believe me." She paused and stared nkly at him again. "Those who don''t believe me will never do all their lives. So what the use of trying to convince those people who would never have faith in me?" "You--" Irritation rose at Kevin''s heart again. He didn''t like how Anne spoke. He knew that she never enjoyed exining herself. ''If only she could, I would make an excuse and put my dignity down for her.'' He knew what he thought was ridiculous. Anne''s pride wouldn''t allow her to do that. "What? Do you have any other questions to ask me?" The shine from the sun and the strong wind suddenly made Anne dizzy. "Anne, can you change your temper?" Kevin softened his tone. He couldn''t bear to see her pale face. Anne pursed her lips. "Why should I change?" Kevin started to feel ill-tempered again. "Don''t you think you are stubborn? What''s the point of doing this?" "It has no point," Anne abruptly answered as the wind breezed against her body. She was about to fall but still kept to stood still. Kevin noticed that Anne was pale as a piece of paper. He tried to lift her as she nudged. "How about going inside first? It''s windy today. You''re not fit to go out." "Thank you." She clenched her fists and tried to control her emotions. She proceeded and started to walk with heavy steps. She heard the footsteps behind her. She frowned when she knew Kevin was following her. She did not know how to push him away. As Emily saw both of them walking towards her with stiff expression, she knew that what she imagined would never happen. By the look of them, Kevin seemed to have made Anne miserable again. She shifted her gaze at Anne and noticed her pale face. She looked weak and was about to fall. "Anne." Emily immediately ran towards her. Her heart throbbed as she saw her lips turning white. Anne felt relieved the moment she saw Emily. She suddenly grabbed her palm and tried to speak. "Hiss¡ª" Emily trembled when she felt Anne''s cold hands. "Your hand¡­" "Emily,e with me." Anne struggled to mumble the words. She pulled Emily and walked faster. Emily understood what Anne meant and immediately apanied her back to the ward. Kevin saw them. He was clueless about what was happening. He noticed how Emily nced back at him. He did not know why it made him feel anxious. As soon as they arrived at the door of the ward, Sam came rushing towards them. "Anne, where have you been?" Sam furrowed his brows as he noticed her pale face. It was windy outside. Anne shouldn''t have gone out. He grimaced at the thought. He knew that she almost fainted out as he examined her. "I''m sorry, Sam. I asked Anne to go out. I thought the sun was good for Anne, but I didn''t expect the wind to be so strong outside." Emily felt guilty for what had happened, but Sam ignored her. He assisted Anne and spoke in a reproachful voice. "Come on in! Don''t catch a cold again." "Okay." Anne nodded and noticed Kevin standing behind. She ignored him and entered the ward. Sam also noticed Kevin. "What are you doing here?" Sam was displeased at his appearance. He chose to turn a blind eye at Anne when she needed him most. He did not get why he suddenly appeared. Kevin moved his gaze at Sam. "Sam, don''t forget who you are talking to now." His voice was domineering while his expression was nk. There was no joy, no sadness, nor even anger. Sam stared at him and said coldly, "Don''t forget what you have promised." Sam came near close to him, drawing tension between them. "You promised you wouldn''t make her sad again. But you broke her heart." "So what?" Kevin scowled. "Sam, don''t you think you care too much?" Kevin knew Sam was a responsible doctor and a good friend. But he felt that something between him and Anne was not just a simple doctor and patient rtionship. "What do you mean?" Sam stared at Kevin fearlessly. "I tell you if you don''t like her, don''t hurt her. Since she is still pregnant with your child, you know what to do about Ruth." Kevin stood still with his hands behind his back and answered coldly, "I don''t need you to teach me what to do." "If you know what to do, I won''t waste my time and teach you," Sam answered, not thinking about being cautious with his words. "Sam, you have passed the line. Do you even know that?" Kevin answered, slightly provoked. "So have you, Kevin." The two of them seemed to have no intention of giving up. Neither of them would back down from their opinions. The intense atmosphere made the corridor colder. "Are they quarreling?" Anne felt so much better after she drank some hot water andy down. She heard the conversation between Kevin and Sam clearly as if they ignored her existence. The two men who were known for their amicable friendship were willing to confront each other for her. Oh, she was so lucky! Emily bit her lips and nodded slightly. "They seem to be quarreling." She turned her head on the side. It was good that there was someone confronting Kevin. She had long thought that Kevin had gone too far, but she didn''t dare to say it. After all, he was too powerful. Fortunately, Sam was not afraid of anything. He did not care who he was talking to. As long as he wanted to fight back, he would do it. The thought made her happy. Her lips curled up into a sweet smile. Anne noticed her smile and found it strange. "What are youughing at?" It was unusual for Emily tough at such an inappropriate moment. "Nothing." Emily came to her senses when Anne noticed her. She suddenly felt shy at what she did and lowered her head. Anne seemed to know what Emily was thinking and chose to keep quiet. She smiled as she didn''t expose the lovely girl''s thought. Chapter 47 Picking Her Up Chapter 47 Picking Her Up Sometimes, Anne really envied Emily. She had a good family and parents who loved her. She was lovely and innocent like any other girls of her age. She was like a bottle of pure filtered water, so fresh and crystalline that everyone wanted her. Anne lowered her eyes. The sounds outside finally stopped. She didn''t know what they were saying "Anne, he''s here to pick you up." Sam''s voice bounced Anne out of her thoughts. She raised her head suddenly and asked, "What?" Why would Kevin want to pick her up? Didn''t he hate her? He believed she pushed Ruth down the stairs, so there was no love lost there. Why would he take her home? "Emily, help her pack her things." Kevin entered the room, as if he didn''t care how Anne reacted at all. Since he promised Sam he''d settle this matter for Anne, he was going to keep her close. Emily cast an embarrassed look at Anne. Judging from her expression, it was obvious that Anne didn''t want to go anywhere with Kevin. "Kevin, what do you think you''re doing?" Anne raised her eyebrows and asked, "Isn''t that you don''t you trust me?" "I didn''t say I trust you now. "But I have to protect my kid," said Kevin ruthlessly. He knew n was vengeful. Anne had put his sister in a vegetative state, after all. How could n let that slide? When he left this morning, Roy told him n had put a price on her head, and was looking into hit men who might do the job. If he hadn''t let Sam know, thetter wouldn''t have agreed to let him take Anne with him. "No. I''m not going with you." Anne wasn''t going to stay with someone who didn''t trust her. She would rather stay in the hospital until the baby was born. "Anne, don''t make this any harder than it has to be." Kevin had never been patient with Anne. Seeing her temperamental like that, he was not in the mood to y around. Anne''s eyes were as calm as water. "I said I wouldn''t go with you." She was so stubborn. She wanted to pretend she was tough around Kevin. Even if her heart was already riddled with holes, she would still hold on and show him her strong side. Because Anne was behaving that way, Sam decided to step in. He didn''t like the idea of her going with Kevin, but he understood why. Kevin was right. Only Kevin could defend her from n. "You''d better go with him, Anne." This really bbergasted Anne. Wasn''t Sam always on her side? Why would he speak up for Kevin like that? When Anne was looking at him in surprise, Sam just looked away and kept silent. Emily was also confused. She couldn''t understand why Sam said that. "Emily, help her get packed," he said. Then he turned and left the ward. Looking at his receding figure, Emily frowned. What was wrong with Sam? This wasn''t like him at all. Hearing that, Emily didn''t hesitate anymore. She helped Anne gather up her luggage. She believed that as long as Sam thought it was okay, there must be a good reason. Anne slowly sat up straight, and looked into Kevin''s eyes. She didn''t like what she saw there. So she made her gaze just as cold. Her pale face turned white, like a shard of piercing ice. She got in the car, Kevin''s exclusive luxury car. While sitting in the familiar seat, Anne habitually looked out of the window. Kevin sat beside her. They were so close that they could hear every breath, every heartbeat. Looking out of the window at the neon lights, Anne couldn''t help but sigh in her heart, ''How time flies! I''m not ready yet.'' "Where do you want to go?" Hearing Kevin''s question, Anne moved her shoulder and said, "Wherever." She didn''t understand why Kevin asked her where she wanted to go. Ridiculous! Did she have a choice? "Hey, can you stop talking to me like that?" Kevin was furious. He didn''t know what was on Anne''s mind. He''d madepromises, trying to be nicer to her. Why didn''t she understand his good intentions? "Kevin, I don''t want to fight." Anne curled up while leaning against the window. She was so tired and didn''t want to talk, especially to the man beside her. She knew that he didn''t love her, but he had to take some responsibilities. In that case, he would just end up resenting her. "I didn''t know we were fighting." Kevin stretched out his hand and spun her around, forcing her to look at him. When he saw her pale, beautiful face, his heart twitched. He frowned. Since when did he feel heartbroken when he saw this face? "Sorry, I was wrong." Anne looked away and the camel shawl draped over her slid to her elbow. The night wind whipped her long hair, and she shivered from the chill. "Don''t you have a brain? Close the window!" Hearing the roar, their driver immediately rolled up all the windows. When Kevin was angry, others tended to be careful. "Anne, it''s high time you swallowed your pride and did the right thing!" After scolding the driver, Kevin turned on Anne. He really hated her stubbornness. She was always so high and mighty. Who was she showing off to? What did she think she had to prove? "Whatever you say." Anne raised her hand, pushed his hand away and said, "You don''t have to get so angry. Don''t worry about me and you will find your life a lot happier. Why are you always mad?" After saying that, she smiled coldly at him. "You¡ª" Kevin was speechless with anger. "I just care about my baby." Yes, from beginning to end, he cared so much about her safety and her health only because of the baby she carried. When she didn''t eat, he couldn''t stop thinking about how weak she might get, so he tried his best to learn cooking. If she got into trouble, he would rush over and deal with whatever he needed to. However, all this was for the child. Kevin''s words didn''t affect Anne''s mood. Instead, she smiled calmly. "I know. I''ll make sure the baby is safe and sound." With a smile in her eyes, Anne continued, "After the baby is born, I''ll let you live a quiet life, and then you don''t need to see me anymore." Kevin smiled. "Yeah, I can''t wait." After that, the two of them didn''t say a word. The driver in the front was sweating. He wanted to ask, but he didn''t dare. He was afraid that he would anger Kevin again. After hesitating for a while, he asked, "Young Master, where are we going?" "Where do you think we should go?" After another roar, Kevin said impatiently, "Take us to your hostess'' house." Anne frowned and asked in confusion, "Why do you want to go to my house?" "Didn''t you say you didn''t care where we went?" Kevin closed his eyes to rest and kept silent. Anne pursed her lips and looked away from Kevin''s profile and his cold expression. Since Kevin left with Anne, Emily had been worried. After hesitating for a long time, she walked to Sam''s office. Sam stood in front of the office window. He wore a white gown, holding a cup of coffee in his hand. His expression was cheerless. Standing at the door, Emily raised her hand and knocked. "Come in, please." Without turning his head, Sam asked, "What''s up?" "Sam, it''s me." Emily bit her lips and walked around Sam so she stood beside him. When he knew it was Emily, Sam turned to face her, taking another sip of coffee. "Why are you here? Are they gone?" Sam walked to his desk and sat down, motioning for Emily to do the same. "Yes, they left." Emily nodded. "Something''s bugging me, so I want to ask you." "It''s about why I agreed to let Kevin take care of Anne, isn''t it?" Putting down the coffee cup in his hand, Sam pinched between his eyebrows with his index finger. Emily couldn''t help nodding. "Yeah, I don''t get it. You know that Kevin thinks Anne hurt Ruth. I''m afraid that he will do something to Anne." Emily felt sick whenever she thought of Kevin''s behavior a few days ago. And today, she noticed that when Anne followed Kevin to leave forlornly, she had lost her elegance and liveliness. Even from the back she seemed lonely. Obviously, Anne didn''t want to go with Kevin. "It''s not Kevin she needs to worry about." With a serious look on his face, Sam said, "Ruth''s brother is on the warpath. Even now, he''s consulting with professionals to hurt Anne. I thought it was a good idea for Kevin to be there to protect her." Content held by N?velDrama.Org. "What? What was n nning?" Emily shouted. "Will Anne be all right?" Sam shook his head. He wasn''t sure either. n was cruel and merciless. If he really made up his mind to hurt Anne, only Kevin could help her. "No wonder you agreed." Emily lowered her eyebrows and said worriedly, "I hope everything will turn out okay." "So, are you free tonight?" Sam changed the subject and said in a much brisk tone. Emily raised her eyes and asked in confusion, "What''s up?" "Do you remember that I asked you to have dinner with my family?" Emily quickly blushed bright red. It was getting hot in there. Looking at Sam''s handsome face, she didn''t know how to respond. "Did you forget?" As he saw that Emily didn''t answer, the corners of his mouth twitched. ''How could she forget things so quickly?'' "Of course not!" Hearing that, Emily immediately shook her head with a smile on her face. She said, "Of course I remember. Tonight? I''m free. When do you want to do this?" "Well, pretty soon." Sam raised his hand and looked at the quartz watch on his wrist. Then he asked, "How about eight o''clock tonight?" Chapter 48 Meeting His Parents Chapter 48 Meeting His Parents "Sounds good." Emily stood up and asked, "Do I need to go home and change my clothes or anything?" "You look good." Sam looked at Emily up and down. The girl had a natural beauty that didn''t need too much embellishment. Emily was a striking woman. While she was not as ssically lovely as Anne, any man would be happy to have her on his arm. She was also from a rich family, so she had the refinement and grace of a well- to-do woman. She had always been an excellent woman. Sam appreciated her for that. "Really?" Emily frowned and looked at her clothes. The more she looked at them, the more dissatisfied she became. "I''m serious, Sam. I need to go home and change. I''ll see you tonight!" After that, Emily left. At this point, Sam could do nothing but shake his head, smiling. Emily showed up on time, eight o''clock in the evening, as agreed. It was the first time meeting his parents. No matter what, she had to look her best. They agreed to meet at a cafe near the Feng Family''s house. Emily went back home, picked out a decent evening dress and put it on. Apanied by Lee Zhang, the family chauffeur, she entered the cafe elegantly. Lee Zhang was an older man who had watched Emily grow up. He could tell that she had a date, because she didn''t dress that way normally. Emily looked around nervously, fearing she might miss Sam. "Miss, who are you waiting for?" Hearing the voice, Emily whipped her head around. When she saw the familiar face, she said yfully, "Mr. Zhang, why are you still here?" "Just came to see who''s giving you butterflies, that''s all." After saying that, the chauffeurughed under his breath. She looked at him again, smiling. She got even more nervous. "Well, Mr. Zhang, I don''t need any help here. I''ll call youter tonight, okay?" Emily said as she pushed the old knight into the car. Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. She didn''t want Lee Zhang finding out anything. If he knew, her parents would also know, before she had a chance to tell them. Anything but that. "Okay, okay. I''ll go." Lee Zhang got into the car with a smile. Before he left, he left Emily with a parting shot. "Miss, be confident. You got this!" "Aww, Mr. Zhang!" Emily was so shy that she stamped her feet, but her heart was as sweet as honey. She was happy she could hang out with Sam at his home, but then, she was a little nervous. Sam was on the way to the cafe, after leaving the hospital. Fortunately, he didn''t forget his date with Emily. He was a workaholic and often forgot a lot of things when he was working. Fortunately, he didn''t forget about his rendezvous with Emily. "Buzz!" His phone rang when he was halfway there. Sam answered, "Hello?" "Sam, where are you? I need you here. Busy?" It was Anne''s voice. Sam immediately found a ce and stopped the car. "What''s wrong?" Anne''s voice sounded weak. Something must have happened. "I don''t know. My belly hurts. I wonder if it''s the baby." Anne''s voice was quiet and weak. It must hurt a lot. Sam started the engine without hesitation. "Where is Kevin?" He was worried something like that might happen. It seemed that Kevin was shirking his responsibilities yet again. Anne was biting her lips and sweating. "He left. Not sure why." As soon as he got home, Kevin went out again without looking back. He didn''t even tell her where he was going. She was happy to be back home, but she didn''t expect that kind of pain as soon as she returned to her room. "Don''t worry. I''ll be right there." After hanging up the phone, Sam roared off to Anne''s house. But he forgot about Emily, and she was left waiting in front of the cafe. When he arrived, Sam found Anne lying on the ground. She was curled into a fetal position, sweating and trembling. "Anne! Are you okay?" There was no servant in the house, and Anne was left there alone. As soon as Kevin left, she didn''t know who to call in case something happened. And something did happen. She felt pain in her womb. She decided to call Sam. She wouldn''t forgive herself if there were something wrong with the baby. Sam helped her up and reached out to feel her forehead. It was not hot and her temperature was normal. But why was she sweating like that? "Lie down on the sofa please." Sam helped Anne up and got her settled on the sofa. Then he went to get her a ss of water. And when he turned the tap on, only lukewarm water came out. She had no hot water. When he walked into the kitchen, Sam saw that the kitchen was covered with ayer of dust. He frowned and asked, "Where on earth is Kevin? How could he leave you here alone?" Anne pressed her hands tight against her belly, and her face became paler and paler. "I never count on him doing anything for me." Her voice was so low that others could barely hear it. But Sam heard it clearly, which made him more disgusted with what Kevin did. "Lie down and don''t try to talk." As he boiled water, Sam fetched some wet towels to mop the sweat from Anne''s forehead. "You''re very weak now. A little cold wind will make it worse, so you''d better stay inside in theing few days." "Okay." In fact, Anne didn''t want to go anywhere. She would rather stay at home alone. When Sam saw that her face had turned blue, his eyes narrowed. He stood up and wanted to call Kevin. She asked him what he wanted to do. It was as if Anne read his mind. Staring at her lovely face, Sam said softly, "I want to ask him if he wants the baby or not." "Ha-ha." With a bitter smile, Anne said, "How could he not?" Her smile had a lot of meaning. Seeing her smile so sadly, Sam finally put the phone into his pocket. In front of the cafe, Emily was pacing back and forth, the wind catching her coat and threatening to tear it from her. She took out her phone and checked the time. It was already nine o''clock, but Sam still wasn''t here. She wanted to call him, but decided against it. What if he was in the middle of surgery? What if there were still several patients waiting to see the doctor? Thinking of this, she gave up on the idea. She wore a pair of high-heeled shoes and was made up to replicate the natural look. If she was going on a date, she wanted to look the part. But after standing in the wind for so long, she couldn''t hold on any longer. Her feet hurt a lot. After she sat in the coffee chair by the door, a waiter came over and asked, "Miss, can I help you?" "No, thanks." As soon as she refused, Emily called the waiter back. "I''m sorry, a cup of Mhiato, please." Waiting for someone was a torturous process. Emily didn''t realize that until then. She''d waited awhile, and she really couldn''t understand why Sam wasn''t there yet. She took out her phone and looked at it again and again, but there were no missed calls. Did Sam really forget her? She found Sam''s number in her contact list, but she couldn''t press it. After thinking for a long time, she gritted her teeth and decided to wait. She wouldn''t call Sam until thest minute. It would be bad if she disturbed him. However, she waited a long time, but didn''t see Sam. It was not until the coffee shop was about to close that a waiter came up to talk to her. "Miss, I''m sorry. We''re closing the doors now. Are you headed back home? It''ste." Emily''s clothing and manner suggested that she must be a richdy. Never mind that she only ordered a cup of coffee¡ªthe waiter treated her respectfully. Hearing that, Emily lowered her eyes and smiled awkwardly. "Sorry for getting in the way. I guess I''m leaving now." After saying that, she stood up, and the smile on her lonely face gradually stiffened. ''It''s sote. Sam hasn''te yet. He must have forgotten me,'' she thought. Putting her arms around her exposed shoulders, Emily nodded slightly to the waiter and left the cafe. The lights in the coffee shop dimmed. The baristas and waiters left the cafe too. Emily still waited in front of the doors to the coffee shop. It was already eleven o''clock. It was almost midnight. Emily was guessing that Sam wouldn''t be here. Somehow, her vision blurred through the tears. She sniffed, and tears fell from the corners of her eyes. Her tears were caught by her nostrils, hanging there. She never cried easily. Her nose was itchy. She raised her hand and wiped the tears from her face. The wind was getting stronger and stronger, and the sky was overcast. It looked like rain. As soon as Emily took out her phone and was about to call Lee Zhang, bean-sized rain drops fell from the sky. With a click, a raindrop fell on her face. She frowned and was wet all over before she ducked under an overhang. She took out her bag and put it over her head. She ran to the door of the coffee shop. Fortunately, there was a roof for her to avoid the rain, but the rain was too heavy. Even if there was a ce to protect her from the rain, the rain kept falling on her face. She felt hurt, hard stricken. She couldn''t help but squat down and cry loudly in the rain. "Sam! Where are you? Why are you doing this to me?" She cried hysterically, but no one responded. At the same time, in her vi, Anne finally felt much better in the care of Sam, and the pain had gradually receded. It was not until Sam heard the thunder outside that something dawned on him. Rain covered the whole French window. Looking at the rain outside, Sam trembled and the bright smile of Emily appeared in his mind. "Damn it!" All of a sudden, he shouted. Anne asked with a worried look, "What''s wrong?" "It''s raining." He looked upset. Damn it! How could he forget that he had a date with Emily that night! Chapter 49 Stand her up Chapter 49 Stand her up "Anne, why don''t you go to bed early? I need to head out as I have to deal with something." Before Anne could even respond, Sam had already left. As she watched his receding figure, she couldn''t help but feel sad. In such a stormy night, she was left alone in the room, and only the baby inside her could keep her When Sam arrived at the cafe, it had already closed. He looked around and couldn''t see Emily anywhere. Holding the umbre in his hand, he stood under the rain. After a while, he figured Emily wasn''t stupid. She must''ve left already. Meanwhile, Emily had just returned home. She had caught a cold from staying in the rain for too long. As a result, she had a fever. Shey on the bed, her lips turning purple while her face was white as a sheet. Even though she was bundled up in a thick quilt, she still shivered. Every now and then, Amy woulde in and check on her. The servant found the whole thing to be strange. Didn''t she juste home from a date? Why did she Oddly enough, Emily hadn''t said a word since she came back. She''d been staring at the ceiling with a nk look on her face the whole time. She didn''t budge until she heard her phone ringing. "Mrs. Wang, who''s calling?" "Oh, it''s Mr. Sam." Amy picked up the phone, looked at the caller ID before handing it to Emily. She thought Emily would answer the call. Instead, Emily merely stared at the phone as it continued to ring. When it finally stopped, Emily said, "Next time this person calls, don''t bother telling me." "Okay." Amy had no idea what had happened but she merely nodded. She guessed that something must have happened between Sam and Emily. They were good friends but if Emily didn''t want to answer his call, something wrong must have gone down. Emily closed her eyes and said weakly, "Mrs. Wang, you can leave now. I''ll just lie down for a while." Original content from N?velDrama.Org. "Okay, miss. Good night." Amy tucked in her quilt first before leaving. She made sure to turn off the lights before closing the door behind her. In the dark, Emily stared up at the ceiling as tears streamed down her face. If she were being honest, she wanted to answer Sam''s phone call. She wanted to ask him why he didn''t show up but she didn''t have courage to do so. Perhaps this was what it felt like to be in love. She''d never felt so heartbroken before. She turned and nced at her phone¡ªhis name was written on the screen, a missed call. She had thought to change his name on her phone into something sweet. However, in fear that someone would see, she decided against it. As she dwelled in her sadness, she began to consider if she was just overthinking this. Maybe he didn''t care about her at all. The more she thought about it, the more upset she felt. She couldn''t sleep. At that moment, she couldn''t help but think of Anne. However, it was already sote. She couldn''t possibly disturb Anne at this hour. Her eyes were red and swollen while her voice was hoarse. Thete hour didn''t stop her from dialing Anne''s number. Fortunately, it only took one ring before Anne picked up. "Emily?" When Emily heard Anne''s voice, her hand trembled. She didn''t expect that Anne would still be up so "Anne, were you asleep?" Her voice was guttural and frail. Anne immediately sat up, closing the book she was reading. Uneasily, she asked, "Are you okay? Why do you sound like that?" "What?" Lips quivering, Emily exined, "Nothing, nothing. Why aren''t you sleeping yet? It''s sote." "Aren''t you supposed to be sleeping too?" ''I don''t really feel like sleeping. Kevin hasn''t returned yet,'' Anne thought to herself. He must have gone to see Cherry. She never stood a chance with him. "Well, I can''t fall asleep." Emily shifted to a morefortable position. Hearing Anne''s voice put her in a much better mood. "May I ask you a question?" "Go ahead." Anne tried her best to sound lively. Emily probably had something on her mind which was why she was still up. The least Anne could do was listen to her. "If you had an appointment to meet up with someone but that someone didn''t show up, what does it mean?" Emily''s heart pounded in her chest. She''d never experienced this before. He was the first person she ever liked yet it seemed that she meant nothing to him. She was willing to do anything for him. Still, she didn''t want to talk to him in fear that she would disturb him. She had to be careful with what she did and what she said. But even so, she still felt utterly lost. "Maybe he had something else to do." Anne could tell how upset Emily was just by the tone of her voice. "Did you ask him why?" "No." Smiling bitterly, Emily said, "I don''t have the courage to ask him. Anne, what do I do? I feel so worthless. I waited for him in the coffee shop for hours until the coffee shop closed. It was raining heavily and he didn''t show up. He didn''t even give me an exnation." As she spoke, she began to sob. She''d never cried this hard before. This was also the first time that she hadined about something. She always thought that she was a positive and optimistic person. She was a fearless woman who didn''t care about anything. However, Sam was her weakness. Just a single word from him was enough to shatter her into pieces. "Anne, am I annoying? Why else would he treat me like this?" Emily began to sob harder. Anne remained silent as she listened to her crying in silence. "I don''t need him to do anything for me. As long as he talks to me, I''d be very happy already. It''s just so sad that he forgot what he had promised me." Emily exhaled sharply, her pillow already damp with her tears. She didn''t want to cry anymore. "I''m done crying. I''ve decided that I won''t like him anymore starting tomorrow. I don''t want to see him." "Emily." Anne finally spoke up. "You like him, don''t you?" "I don''t know. Maybe." Wiping away her tears, Emily nodded and added, "My heart still hurts." "That''s love." Anne smiled. "You silly girl, why didn''t you tell me that you had fallen in love with someone?" She grimaced at the thought of sweet Emily being treated like that. "It''s not that I didn''t want to tell you. It''s just that I didn''t think there was a chance for me to be with him. I wanted to keep it to myself." Emily exined, "At first, I thought maybe we could just be friends. It''s all my fault. At the back of my mind, I still thought I held a chance to win his heart if I gave it a try. Now I feel so ashamed." "Emily, you''re an amazing girl who deserves a good man." Anne checked the time. She figured Emily was probably pretty worn out from all the crying. "Go to sleep. Why don''t youe over tomorrow? I''m just at home." "Okay." Emily grinned and said, "You''re right. I''m a great girl. I''ll meet a good man sooner orter. Good night, Anne." "Good night." After hanging up the phone, Emily ced her phone aside and promptly closed her eyes. She just wanted to get Sam out of her head and sleep well that night. Meanwhile, a wave ofplex emotions surged in Sam''s chest. He put his phone down. He figured Emily was probably angry. Why else wouldn''t she answer her phone? Still, this was quite uncharacteristic of Emily. She had always been a spirited girl. Even if he did stand her up, she would still answer his call. It seemed that things were much more serious than Sam had estimated it to be. He stood in front of the window, looking solemn. He knew he owed Emily an apology in person. "Son, what''s on your mind?" By the time he came back, his parents were already sleeping. So he was a bit startled when he heard his mother''s voice. "Mom, I thought you were sleeping." Sam turned around and threw his phone towards the sofa. He looked worn out, his eyebrows knitted together. So many things were happening recently¡ªway more than he could handle. Lynne, Sam''s mother, walked up to him. She couldn''t help but notice his exhaustion. "Why did you "Something happened to Anne. I went to see her." Sam sat on the sofa and gestured for his mother to do the same "s," Lynne sighed as she sat next to Sam on the sofa. She rubbed the back of his hand. "Son, maybe you shouldn''t be focusing so much of your attention and energy on that woman. She''s someone else''s wife, not yours!" Sam frowned. "Mom, what are you talking about?" He didn''t seem all too pleased with what his mother had said. It was his responsibility to take care of Anne as her doctor and her friend. He couldn''t possibly ignore Anne especially if she needed his help. "I thought you were bringing home a girl tonight," Lynne said meaningfully. "Your father and I waited up for you but you didn''te. We intended to call you but we didn''t. Do you want to know why?" Sam turned his head, his eyes gleaming. "Why?" "Because we know that you always keep your promise. You''re a man of your word. This is the first time that you didn''t keep your word. No matter what happened, you shouldn''t do it again." "Mom, I know. It was my fault," Sam said, frowning. Chapter 50 Sparks Chapter 50 Sparks Was that the reason why Emily didn''t call him either? He had thought about it when he was driving home. Why didn''t anyone call him when he had stood up Emily and his parents at the same time? He thought he would receive a bunch of missed calls from Emily but he could not have been more mistaken. She didn''t even send him a message to ask where he was. He hadpletely forgotten about their ns the entire time she was waiting for him. It was his fault. "It''s good that you understand." Lynne stood up and shot Sam a pitiful look. "Son, you''re an adult now. You don''t need to talk to us about everything. You should know better. If you didn''t call us to cancel, you probably didn''t call that girl either. She must have waited for you for a long time. You owe her an apology." Sam lowered his head, not saying a word. "Okay." After a long pause, he raised his head. "I know, mom. You should go back to bed." "Good night." Lynne turned and left. Sam withdrew his gaze and turned his attention back to his phone ¡ªstaring at all his failed calls. That night, he didn''t sleep a wink. The following day, Emily got up early. She decided she was going to get some exercise to keep her spirits up. She donned her sportswear as she headed to the garden to do some yoga. She inhaled the morning breeze, feeling refreshed. As she did yoga, she watched the servants trim the trees and do the gardening in the courtyard. "Miss, why are you up so early today?" Emily seemed to be in a good mood, aplete swerve from how she was yesterday which was utterly miserable. Needless to say, Amy was confused. "Mrs. Wang, it''s good for me to get up early, isn''t it?" Emily bent down, smiling yfully. Her eyes were still a little swollen as she had cried way too much "Of course, miss. You seem to be in a good mood." Amy continued to trim the flowers and nts with a smile on her face. Emily continued doing yoga, seemingly rxed. She bent over, attempting to do a difficult pose. Suddenly, a pair of ck shoes came into her sight. She frowned as she looked up. It was Sam. She almost lost her bnce the minute she saw him. He immediately reached out to support her. "Watch out!" His voice was unusually gentle which startled Emily. When she collected herself, she straightened up and pushed him away. "What are you doing here?" To be honest, she hadn''t forgiven Sam yet so she really didn''t want to see him. She averted her gaze. She knew if she looked him in the eye, she wouldn''t be able to control her emotions. "I''m sorry," Sam blurted out. Emily knew why he was saying sorry but unfortunately, she wasn''t ready to ept his apology just yet. "Sorry for what?" Emily brazenly stared him down. "I waste yesterday." Guilt filled Sam''s eyes. Emily put on a knowing smile. "Oh, it''s not that you werete. You didn''t show up at all." Emily turned around and waved her hand. She made her way to the chair and sat down. "I don''t need your apology." "I''m sorry." Sam followed her. The fact that she was so calm made him feel even worse. "I''m apologizing to you. It was my fault." He had never apologized so sincerely to anyone before. He already felt bad enough about what had happened. Seeing the look on Emily''s face now didn''t help with his guilt. Emily grabbed the coffee on the table and casually took a sip. Sam''s eyes glinted as he watched her drink her coffee. How could it have slipped his mind that Emily was born to a rich family? She had never done any household work in her entire life. Still, she was so different that he often forgot this fact about her. She had always been graceful and noble but he never seemed to notice it until then. "Okay, I forgive you." Emily raised her head and smiled sweetly. Acting as if nothing happenedst night, she thought for a moment. Finally, she said, "Have a seat. You came here to apologize to me?" Sam sat down across from Emily. He wasn''t used to seeing her like this. He realized he preferred if she just got mad at him. Her indifference only aggravated his guilt. "I was afraid you''d be upset." Emily suddenly froze. It didn''t take long for her to recover as she called for the servant and asked for a cup of coffee for Sam. Sam frowned, unable to rx. "Why would I be upset? You must have been busy. I''m sorry for bothering you." Emily smiled nonchntly. Despite the fact that she was crying her eyes outst night, she chose to keep her Sam grew even more anxious upon hearing this. "Emily, you''re not mad at me?" "Yup." Emily nodded. She looked sincere and innocent as if she couldn''t care less. "Look at you. We''ve been friends for years. You even got up early just to go here and apologize. You are too polite." At that moment, a servant came over with a cup of coffee. Grinning, Emily offered, "Have some coffee. Once we''re done, I need to head over to Anne''s ce." At the mention of Anne, it suddenly urred to Sam that while he had apologized already, he still hadn''t told her why he stood her upst night. "Yesterday, I was on my way to see you but I received a phone call on the drive¡ª" "You don''t have to exin to me." Emily stood up, looked down at her clothes and shook her head. "I''m going to change my clothes. Wait for me here." She stalked off without looking back. Once she had left, she was finally able to breathe freely. While she might have seemed calm, for some reason, she still felt nervous. She really didn''t want to Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. hear Sam''s exnation. Her heart ached every time he opened his mouth. The wound was still raw. She was still hurting. Sam lowered his head as he watched her figure recede, looking solemn. Suddenly, Amy approached him. "Dr. Feng, did you make an appointment with ourdy yesterday?" Amy had overheard their conversation. She was easily able to connect the dots especially knowing how Emily actedst night. Perhaps, Emily was excited to see him but he stood her up which could exin why she seemed so downtrodden when she came home. Sam nodded, guilt welling up in his chest. If Emily was mad at him, he would find a way to make it up to her. Instead, she didn''t seem the least bit fazed. What could he do then? He couldn''t even apologize to her properly because she kept cutting him off. "Why didn''t you show up?" Amy sighed and looked at Sam reproachfully. "Ourdy is a simple woman, young and inexperienced. She waited for you until elevenst night. If it weren''t for..." "Mrs. Wang!" As Emily made her way downstairs, she saw that Amy was talking to Sam. She didn''t need to hear their conversation to know that they were discussing the events ofst night. She couldn''t risk Amy telling Sam anything. "Miss." Amy didn''t expect for Emily to show up so suddenly. She wasn''t even able to get her point across to Sam. "Mrs. Wang, why don''t you go back to work?" Emily walked up to Sam, the difort on her face undeniable. "Let''s go." She didn''t want him to know that she had waited for himst night. More so, she didn''t want him to know that she had caught a cold for standing under the rain for so long. It was way too embarrassing. Sam stood up and looked at Emily in the eye. "Are you hiding something from me?" "Why would I hide anything from you?" Emily darted her eyes. She turned and headed to the door. "Are you going to visit Anne today? If you are, we can go together. I''m going there anyway." "Let''s go." Sam decided to let it go since Emily obviously didn''t want to talk about it. He walked past her as he made his way out of the door. Emily bit her lips as she followed behind him, heaving a sigh of relief. Anne had suffered a stomach achest night. When she got up that morning, she was starving. Unfortunately, she couldn''t find anything to eat. She hadn''t been here in so long. She should''ve known that the pantry was going to be empty. Having been so dependent on both Sam and Emily, she hadn''t even noticed that she didn''t have any food at home. After cleaning up for a bit around the house, she nned to go to the supermarket nearby to stock up on some food. As she walked on the familiar road, she inhaled the fresh air. Clutching her stomach, she whispered, "Baby, I want to ask you a question. If you never see your mother in the future, would you miss me?" She wasn''t far along in her pregnancy yet. Still, that didn''t stop her frommunicating with her baby. A lot of people were milling around themunity. To get to the nearest supermarket, she had to cross two roads. She walked briskly at the side of the road. Just as she was about to cross the road, a group of people filed out of a car and ran towards her. She instinctively moved aside but it was obvious that they were heading her way. They reached out and grabbed both of her arms. "What are you doing?" As soon as she opened her mouth, she felt a pain in her shoulder and immediately fainted. When she woke up, she was wearing a blindfold. It didn''t take long for her to realize that she had been kidnapped. Who would do this to her? Was it n? She tried to listen to her surroundings, trying to make out any sort of noise but she couldn''t hear anything. The only thing she could hear were the birds chirping and the wind mildly howling. Other than that, the silence was deafening. Chapter 51 Kidnapped Chapter 51 Kidnapped "Anybody here?" Anne called out nervously. Her racing heart calmed down a bit when no one responded at first. A couple of secondster, however, a man''s voice rang in her ears. "Boss, she''s awake!" ''Is that the kidnapper?'' Anne gulped, her palms getting sweaty. "Okay," another man replied with a grunt. "Take off her blindfold." "Yes, sir!" All of a sudden, her eyes were flooded with light. Squinting, she slowly opened her lids until her pupils grew ustomed to the sudden brightness. A man with a peaked cap was standing in front of her. With his head lowered and his face hidden in the shadows, it was difficult for her to see what he looked like. Around him stood a group of men. They were all stocky, ugly men. What was more, they all had a scar right across their faces. Despite this, they were dressed in ck, formal suits, matched with newly polished leather shoes. "Who are you? Why did you kidnap me?" Facing the group of fierce men, Anne was not afraid. On the contrary, she was calmer than she was a little while back. "Aren''t you afraid?" the man with the cap asked bemusedly. In his entire lifetime, he had kidnapped so many women. This was the first time he had encountered someone who boldly spoke up after regaining consciousness. There was no doubt in his mind now that she was indeed Kevin''s woman, who had exceeded others in both bravery and wisdom. Anne smiled. "Why should I be afraid?" "Well... You got kidnapped. Can''t you see that?" Of course, she could feel the ties around her wrists and ankles wrapped around the arms and legs of the sturdy chair. Aside from the light hanging overhead, everything else was so dark and deste. It was difficult to figure out where this ce was or if they were still even in the city at all. It was the kind of scene you would see happen in a TV show. Anne knew well that she had gotten into trouble. Even so, there was not an ounce of fear in her heart. "I know." Anne raised her head and looked around, almost arrogantly. "I just don''t understand why you need to have so many people to kidnap one woman. It''s such a waste of time, don''t you think?" "She has a point, boss. Two people can easily handle her. There''s really no point for you toe and personally handle this, is there?" The man standing next to her said to the man in the middle. "I mean, with all due respect, you said that the job was to render her disabled using a car. It just doesn''t make sense why we still had to kidnap her, boss." "Disabled?" Anne frowned as she looked at the man in front of her. However, the man kept his head down and low. "Someone asked you to hurt me?" she asked incredulously. "That''s right," one of the other men answered. "Eighty million dors to cripple you, to be exact." "Eighty million?" Anne chuckled. "I didn''t expect that I would be so valuable! Then why haven''t you crippled me yet?" "Well..." One of the men scratched his head. "We don''t understand either. Boss, what are your orders?" Atst, the man in the middle finally raised his head slowly. It was at that moment Anne saw his face clearly. ''Oh my god... Is this guy for real? How are there so many cuts on his face?'' Despite thinking this, Anne maintained her calm demeanor. "I''ll give you some credit... You''re the first woman to look at my face without any sort of reaction." There were scars scattered all across the man''s face. Menacing as he looked, however, his eyes were bright Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. and animated. Deep inside, Anne was not asposed as she looked. Without a doubt, this man truly looked sinister and terrifying! Her intuition was telling her that this man was not an ordinary gangster. Squaring her shoulders, she looked straight into his eyes. "Why would I react?" she asked after a while. "Do you think I''m scared of someone like you?" "I did my homework on you, you know. You''re pregnant, aren''t you?" The way the man said these words were more like a statement rather than a question. "So you didn''t hurt me because you knew I was pregnant?" With a smile in her eyes, Anne looked at the man''s face with a sly inquisitiveness. "n was the one who ordered you to hurt me, wasn''t it? Now it all makes sense. When he hired you, I bet he didn''t tell you that I was pregnant with Kevin''s baby." "Yes." With a deep breath, the man stood up and walked over to Anne, his step echoing into the darkness. Slowly, he bent down until his face was directly in front of hers. "He didn''t tell me you were pregnant," he said, almost matter-of-factly, his breath grazing over her cheek. "Well, at least you were smart enough to do a bit of investigation on your own." Even though his wretched face was only a few centimeters away from her, Anne didn''t blink nor flinch even once. With confidence, she looked directly into his eyes, and couldn''t help but think that she had seen this person before. Perhaps there was a stubbornness in his gaze that mirrored her own. "Lucky for you, we would never dare to hurt Kevin''s woman, especially a woman as smart as you." With a small smirk, the man stood straight up. Now that it was clear that this woman was not as ordinary as she looked, he felt that the situation had gotten a lot more interesting. "If you weren''t going to hurt me, what was the point of kidnapping me?" Anne asked. Looking carefully at the woman in front of him, the man kept silent for a long time, his hands sped behind him. Finally, he grinned and shrugged. "I want to know how much money Kevin is willing to spend to get you back." "Ha-ha." Anne sneered, "How much do you think he will spend?" "One hundred million. He just agreed to that amount, in fact." The man turned around and sat back in his seat. With his legs crossed, he looked carefully at Anne. She was beautiful, with her big, beautiful eyes framed with delicately arched brows. ''Pity,'' he thought. ''Kevin doesn''t know how to appreciate this woman.'' It was said that Kevin''s wife was a vicious woman, but she didn''t look like one. "He already knows that I''m here?" Anne''s eyes widened in surprise before she looked away from the man''s gaze. "Of course he''d pay that much. That''s because I''m carrying his child. Nothing more, nothing less." Undoubtedly, if Anne wasn''t carrying his baby inside of her, there was arge chance he really wouldn''t care about her at all. "By the way," the man said casually. "I know you didn''t push Ruth down the stairs." "How?" Anne looked back at him again with shock. "In this silly world, there''s nothing I don''t know. As long as I want to know something, I''ll do eventually." Behind the arrogance in his voice, Anne detected a certain and unusual elegance. This man must have been a very powerful person in the past. What happened to him that drove him to this kind of life was beyond her knowledge and imagination. "Don''t try to see through me, Anne," he sneered when he saw Anne trying to analyze him. Seeing through a person like him, however, was a challenge in itself. "I was just wondering what kind of person you are." It was the first time that Anne had been so interested in a stranger. For a moment, she had forgotten the situation she was in and that she was being held captive by these men. "You''re a curious little thing, aren''t you?" In a single, swift movement, the man reached into his suit and nced at his pocket watch. "Kevin will be here in about five minutes," he said with a smile. "Mrs. Anne, what do you think about co-starring with me in a show?" "A show?" Her heart skipped a nervous beat. "Precisely." The man closed the watch with a snap. "Don''t you want to know whether Kevin loves you or not?" "I already know the answer to that," she answered, a sarcastic smile ying on her lips. "He never loved me." After everything that had happened, how was it possible that she didn''t know who she was to him? There was no need to confirm it through an act. That was ridiculous. "Is that so? For what it''s worth, I believe that is false." As if on cue, another man came in. "Boss, Kevin is here." "Invite him in." Not long after, another pair of footsteps echoed in the room. "Long time no see, Cole." Kevin''s figure slowly appeared at the door, and Anne''s heart suddenly trembled. ''He really came.'' Warmth flooded her chest. "Yeah, long time no see." The man, Cole Song, stood up, not bothering to hide his face from Kevin''s view. With their faces side by side, Cole'' Song''s face looked really terrible and gruesome. What surprised Anne was how warm their greetings were! "You know each other?" How was it possible that Kevin knew her captor? ''Is this some kind of sick joke?'' "We have been friends for many years, haven''t we?" Cole Song smiled and put his arm over Kevin''s shoulder. On the other hand, Kevin was a bit more reserved. When he looked at Anne, there was a difort in his eyes. "Was it really necessary for you to tie up my wife like this?" Even though Kevin''s voice was low, there was an intimidating air to it. The other men in the room knew that it was best not to offend a man like Kevin. Seeing the confrontation between the two, they unconsciously held their breath. "Somebody untie Mrs. Anne," Cole Song said dismissively. At once, two of his men quickly went over to untie Anne. After releasing her from her bounds, they stood beside her attentively, waiting for further orders. "Here''s the money!" With a bit of force, Kevin threw arge bag in front of Cole Song. In a heartbeat, one of Cole'' Songs men swooped in and took the bag away. "One hundred million?" Clicking his tongue, Cole Song frowned and shook his head. "Kevin, you''re really willing to spend one hundred million to save your wife." "I''m not saving her. I''m saving my unborn child." Stepping away, Kevin red at Cole Song with a piercing look in his eyes. "You should start setting some boundaries, Cole. Know what you should and shouldn''t do." "Oh, I know what my boundaries are." Cole Song smiled, "If I didn''t, you and I wouldn''t have made such a lovely deal." "Anne,e here," Kevin ordered. He didn''t want to be entangled with Cole Song a second longer. Looking over at her, he wondered why this woman had been so calm this entire time. ''What on earth is she thinking about right now?'' "As much as I want to go there, can''t you see these two men standing guard behind me?" Anne replied, her face still void of any expression. It was clear that Kevin was getting angrier, but this was exactly the reaction she wanted from him. He had treated her badly in the past. Now was her chance to get back at him. "Cole, what are you ying at?" At this point, Kevin was getting really infuriated. Even though Cole Song had taken the money, he still wouldn''t let Anne go. This was exactly what Cole Song wanted Anne to do. It was just beyond his expectation that Anne easily and willingly slipped into the role. "I don''t think I made it clear," Cole Song stated, pursing his lips in thought. "You see, the one hundred million only means that you could redeem you child. For your wife? That would cost you an extra two hundred million." Two hundred million! The words rang so crisply in the air that it almost scared Anne to death. ''Two hundred million... There''s no way...'' In her heart, she knew that she was not as valuable to Kevin aspared to the baby inside of her. "Cole, do you know what you are talking about?" Kevin sneered, his hands clenched in anger. No one had ever dared to fool him like this. Despite his fury, Cole Song only seemed to get even cockier. "Oh, don''t be silly! I''m sure two hundred million is nothing to you." Cole Song smiled as he lightly dusted his sleeves. "You know, it''s not easy for me to exin everything to n." Chapter 52 Is She Worth Two Hundred Million Chapter 52 Is She Worth Two Hundred Million "As for n, I will exin it to him. I don''t need you to show up again." Kevin stared at Cole coldly, as if his nce was a piece of pr ice. "Was I too ignorant of you? Have you just lost your morality? Since when did you start to take on dirty jobs too?" "Business is business! You must have heard this saying, right?" Cole pulled a long face and asked seriously, "Are you willing to pay two hundred million dors or not?" Even though Anne knew that Kevin wasn''t willing to, she still wanted to hear it from him. Yes or no? "What if I don''t want to?" Kevin raised his head and looked at Cole. "Two hundred million to save this woman? That''s unnecessary." A bitter smile emerged from the corners of the Anne''s lips as she looked down. In fact, she already predicted this oue, but she was unwilling to admit it. Cole''s eyes fixated on Anne''s face for a moment. Noticing the change of her expression, he looked at Kevin with a smile. "Really? Is that so? You mean to say that you''re not going to save her?" Kevin was not a fool. Even if he wanted to save the baby, it was still in Anne''s womb. Therefore, no matter what, he had to save her. In other words, he had to pay the two hundred million ransom. He narrowed his eyes, and the tension in the atmosphere felt heavier. He immediately looked up. "Cole, do you know what you''re doing?" "Nothing. I was only kidding." Coleughed and looked at the woman with his raised eyebrows. "I wanted to y it with you, but it seems like the ending can already be predicted." He paused and waved at his men. "Forget it. Let''s go. This is boring." Cole left with arge group of his men. He looked so arrogant and mboyant. Anne stood straight from the chair. She turned her head and looked at Kevin with her clear eyes. Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. "Thank you." "For what?" Kevin raised his brows and asked. "Thank you for saving me." Coldness shed in her eyes. "No, it''s to save the baby in my womb." Two hundred million was not a small amount. Even though for Kevin, it was not that big of a deal. However, it was impossible for Anne to pay off the money all her life. Kevin turned around and said in an icy voice, "You''re wee. As you''ve said, it had nothing to do with you. It was to save my baby." His words left Anne a little stunned. Her expression didn''t change that much. "What are you going to do with n?" If he failed this time, n would not let it go. He would definitely take action for Ruth''s sake once more. Kevin''s eyes darkened. "I will handle it myself." He swept his eyes across the room and spitted in disgust. People like Cole always did things at such a disgraceful level. Couldn''t he use a more high-end ce for kidnapping?'' After he looked around, he reached for the door. He was about to leave, but he didn''t hear a sound behind him. He turned around and scowled at the woman who didn''t want to move an inch. "What are you doing? You don''t want to leave?" Anne kept her gaze still and said, "I''ll go back by myself." "Are you kidding me?" he asked impatiently. "Do you want to go out and see the surroundings by yourself? Do you know how long it took me just to find you?" "I didn''t ask you toe to me," Anne lowered her head and whispered. She was telling the truth. She didn''t expect that Kevin would turn up and save her. Didn''t he say that he wouldn''t interfere in Ruth''s matters? "You¡­" Kevin stared at her with his eyes that burned in anger. "Are you stupid?" Anne bit her lips and red at him. "Enough? Am I wrong? I never asked you to save me. I haven''t even thought about it," she answered. "Then who do you think wille and save you?" "Of course¡ª" The name "Sam" almost slipped out of her mouth. When she saw that Kevin''s face turned blue, she managed to press her lips tightly and didn''t dare to say anything more. In all honesty, she didn''t want to die. The temperature of the air decreased at a fast pace. If she continued to stay here, she would freeze to death. "Who is it?" Kevin took a step and shortened the distance between them. His eyes focused on her. He stared at the woman who had her brows tightly creased. A cold, hard smile appeared at the corners of his mouth. Anne clenched her fists tightly when she saw how Kevin walk slowly towards her. Gloom spread across her face. "No one. I just said it casually." "I''m sure that you''re well aware that lying to me will nevere to a good end, Anne." Kevin grabbed her arm after he spoke. Her frown deepened. She screamed when she felt a little pain. Kevin''s grip was so firm that it was impossible to break free. She couldn''tprehend why this man was upset again. She didn''t say anything, yet he got so angry. "I didn''t lie to you." Under his oppressive aura, Anne twisted her arm and tried to break free from his cruel grip. However, no matter how hard she struggled, Kevin didn''t want to let her go. She growled anxiously in a low voice, "Kevin, what the hell do you want? Let go of me!" "Let go of you?" Kevin sneered. His eyes red as he looked at Anne. "I''ll let you go soon, but you better behave yourself for the rest of the time." Anne looked up at him stubbornly, unwilling to give in. "I know. I don''t need you to remind me" "You don''t need me to remind you?" Kevin shook Anne''s arm and asked, "If you really know what you should do, why did you go out alone today?" The man held her so tight that she almost fell to her knees. She was thrown out violently. Her ankle twisted in the process, which caused her to fall back. Fortunately, there was a wall behind her to lean back. Still, the pain from her foot was intense from being twisted. "There''s no food at home. Is it wrong for me to go out and buy something?" With a sharp pain, she raised her head and looked at Kevin. Suddenly, she felt a chill in her heart. "Do you want me to starve to death? Or do you want your baby to starve to death?" Kevin''s expression changed when he heard her sentiment. "What did you say? There was no food at home?" Anne straightened herself up and red at him. "Or what? Why do you think I went to the supermarket early in the morning?" It was not until then that Kevin realized that the woman had moved out of that house for a long time. There should be nothing left in there. He left in a hurry yesterday. Why didn''t he think of this? "Okay, I know." His expression returned to normal. He red at her andmanded in his usual cold voice, "Let''s go back." Anne lowered her head and tried to stand up to catch up with him. However, the pain in her foot made her unable to move. She bit her lower lip so hard that it almost turned pale, but she still couldn''t move even an inch. "What''s wrong with you now?" Kevinpletely lost his patience. He turned around and saw the woman''s forehead sweating profusely. His heart twitched at the sight. "What''s wrong with you?" He rushed back to Anne and saw her biting her lip with a painful expression on her face. Even though she was in pain, the woman refused to answer him. What was the point of saying anything? She was not dumb enough to be scolded again. "It''s none of your business," she answered stubbornly. Thest person she wanted to rely on was Kevin whenever she was hurt. She didn''t want to be looked down upon by him. "What''s wrong with you?" He couldn''t bear to see her in pain, so he took the initiative to examine her body. Finally, he saw that her ankle looked swollen. "Did you sprain your ankle?" "Thanks to you," she answered sarcastically as she red at him. Her face was devoid of any emotion. If Kevin hadn''t pushed her so hard, she wouldn''t have sprained her ankle. Kevin frowned and asked, "Did I do this?" "Forget it," she dismissed. "I said you don''t need to worry about it. You can go back first. I will go back by myself." She stepped forward and endured the pain that came with every step she took. "Let me carry you." Kevin''s voice was so near. She doubted that she had heard him wrong. Still, she chose not to respond. Kevin scowled. "Didn''t you hear me?" Her heart skipped a beat at this. She stiffened and asked, "What did you say?" "I''ll carry you to the car." His car was parked on the road. Since the ce was remote, it was impossible to drive the car in. If she wanted to go back, Kevin had to carry her. Anne turned around and rejected him, "No, I can do it myself." He sighed and walked up to her. He squatted down andmanded, "Come up." It was an irresistible order. She looked at the broad shoulders in front of her. She hesitated and refused to go up. Kevin couldn''t wait anymore, so he picked up her hands andtched them around his neck. "Hold on tight." He straightened up his back and effortlessly carried Anne on it. The moment he felt her body against his, upset and loneliness upied his being. For a one-month pregnant woman, Anne felt light. On the other hand, the woman could feel her heart beating faster than before. His back was so broad and warm that people would want to approach and hold him subconsciously. "Why did you carry me on your back?" She looked around and found out that the road back was not as easy as she thought because tall grass was everywhere. It would have been difficult to walk alone, not to mention, Kevin had her on his back. "Or what? Do you really want to go back by yourself as you''ve said?" He lifted her up and continued to walk forward. It was getting dark. The road ahead was barely visible. ''Damn it! Cole was so good at choosing a ce. What a damned choice!'' he cursed to himself. "I thought you wouldn''t care about me." Chapter 53 Hating Her Chapter 53 Hating Her If this were in the past, Kevin wouldn''t even spare her a nce. He''d just let her fend for herself. However, that day, not only did he stay with her but he also carried her on his back for the first time. "What do you think? If you weren''t pregnant with my child, do you think I''d even care about you?" Kevin said coolly. As expected, this only made Anne feel worse. Whenever Kevin showed her the slightest amount of kindness, she always let herself hope a little too much. She''d fool herself into thinking that Kevin didn''t hate her that much. If she worked a little harder, maybe he''d change how he perceived her. She had to learn the hard way that this was all just a pipe dream. No matter what happened, Kevin would always see her as a vicious woman who did not deserve to be forgiven. The only reason why he put up with her was because she was carrying his baby. Anne remained silent. Kevin quipped, "Why aren''t you saying anything?" "I don''t know what to say." Since they didn''t have much inmon, they always ended up fighting anytime they tried to make conversation. When were they ever nice to each other? Kevin peered at the light ahead. "We should be there soon." "Okay." Anne merely nodded. She seemed to have seen a long asphalt road ahead of them. When his car finally came into view, he put Anne down and said, "Get down and get in the car." The moment Anne got off his back, a void seemed to have filled her chest. The warmth she felt instantly vanished, reced with an undeniable coldness. She nced at Kevin''s mmy face. She could tell he was worn out. "Kevin, I really didn''t push Ruth downstairs." Kevin froze just as he was about to open the door. "Why are you bringing that up now?" Anne shook her head, smiling. "I don''t know. I just hope you believe me," Anne said sincerely, her eyes glinting under the moonlight. Kevin looked up. "What if I say I don''t believe you?" Anne lowered her head. "Forget it. I don''t know why I said that. I know you''ll always believe that I''m the one who pushed her downstairs. I know you don''t believe me. It was just wishful thinking." Then she opened the door and got in the car. Kevin frowned when he saw Anne get inside. He then followed her inside. He settled himself in the driver''s seat as he started the engine only to find that something was wrong with the car. "What''s wrong?" When the car merely sputtered, Kevin gnashed his teeth. Anne asked, "What''s going on with the car?" Kevin mmed his fist into the steering wheel. "Damn Cole! All the tires burst!" Anne frowned. "What?" Kevin looked out the window, irked. "I always knew he''d never change." "Do you really know each other?" Anne had already suspected this back when she was in the cabin. It turned out that the two of them really knew each other. "I didn''t want to mention it." Kevin opened the door, got out of the car and took out his phone. "Hello? Who''s this?" Roy''s end of the line was muffled¡ªit was obvious that he was in a bar. He''d already stepped out but the noise could still be picked up. Kevin''s face darkened. "Where are you?" "A bar. Where else would I be?" Roy then asked seriously, "Why do you call me? Are youing?" "I''m in the suburbs." Kevin looked around. The ce waspletely deserted. He couldn''t find any signs of civilization as there was no nearby towns or shops. He hadn''t even seen a single car pass by. "What?" Roy shouted, "Where are you? Suburbs? What are you doing there? At this hour?" "It''s a long story. Get someone toe here. All my tires burst." Kevin raised his foot and kicked the t tire. Cole was probably smirking in delight right now. "Are you kidding me?" Disbelief wasced in Roy''s tone. "Who would even do that to you? Are they trying to get themselves killed? If you want toe here and have a drink, I won''t stop you. But don''t get drunk this time!" "Listen!" Kevin interrupted Roy. "Get someone to pick me up in thirty minutes. Thirty minutes!" He didn''t seem to be joking around so Roy collected himself. "Are you really in the suburbs?" "You know I don''t like repeating myself," Kevin said tly. "I''ll send you my location." "Wait a minute," Roy suddenly said. "Who are you with right now? Are you with..." "I''m with Anne," Kevin said impatiently. Roy was acting as if he was in on the biggest gossip of the town. "Oh my God! You''re in the suburbs?" Content held by N?velDrama.Org. "Roy, if you don''t want to get into trouble," Kevin said coldly. In fear, Roy abruptly said, "Okay, okay. I know." Kevin hung up the call as he nced at Anne inside the car. She didn''t seem the least bit anxious as she sat there in silence, ring at Kevin. "Aren''t you worried at all?" "Why would I be worried?" She lowered her gaze as she continued, "Kevin, there''s nothing in the world that you can''t handle. I''m sure someone''s going toe pick us up in thirty minutes." Kevin narrowed his eyes. "You really do have faith in me." Anne reached out and opened the door. What would she do inside the car for thirty minutes? She stepped out of the car, carefully lifting her sprained ankle. She couldn''t help but be amazed at the spectacr view¡ªthe countryside road looked especially beautiful at night. When she looked up at the sky, thousands of stars were littered across the night nket. The cold breeze blew, bringing along with it the sweet smell of nature. She closed her eyes and inhaled sharply, relishing the chilly night. Kevin frowned as he watched her, looking confused. "What are you doing?" Anne opened her eyes and said lightly, "Don''t you think it''s beautiful?" "Nope." She turned to scowl at Kevin. He really was boring. How did Cherry stand being with him? At the thought of this, she smiled to herself. This did not go unnoticed by Kevin. It was an impish grin and it made her look even a bit attractive. As he gazed at her, he couldn''t help but be slightly stunned. "Kevin, has my cousin ever said that you are unromantic?" "What?" Kevin''s face shifted. "Unromantic?" He would never be connected to the word unromantic. He was the young master of the Fu Family. How could he not know anything about being a romantic? "No." He shook his head, vehemently denying it. Anne looked at him incredulously. "I don''t believe it." "Anne, what do you mean by that? Do you want me to prove myself to you just so you would believe me?" Kevin said coldly, frowning. Anne arched her eyebrows, not saying a word. It was obvious that she was still finding it difficult to believe him. "With a woman like you, how could I be a romantic? It just doesn''t make sense." He looked at her disdainfully. Anne had a sour look on her face as she gazed back at him. Kevin had a habit of being careless with his words. He could be charming if he wanted to¡ªwith someone he truly loved. How could she expect to be treated the same? Anne withdrew her gaze as she looked into the distance, enjoying the scenery. Suddenly, the wait didn''t seem so daunting with Kevin by her side. Meanwhile, Kevin was visibly annoyed as he checked his watch for the nth time. Frowning, the cold was starting to get to him as he shivered. "Damn it! Why hasn''t anyonee?" "It''s been barely twenty minutes since you made that call. Just be patient," Anne said lightly, ncing at her own watch. "I promised Cherry we''d watch a movie today now we can''t because of you!" Kevin said impatiently, scowling at Anne. The look on Anne''s face dimmed. She felt as if a knife had stabbed her in the chest. Now she understood why he was in such a hurry. It was because Cherry was waiting for him. "Well, you don''t have to save me next time this happens again!" "If you weren''t carrying my child, I wouldn''t havee!" Her words irritated him. What did she mean by that anyway? He already came to save her. What more did she want? Why didn''t she just appreciate it? She didn''t have to be so scornful. While Anne kept herposure on the surface, turmoil filled her chest on the inside. Meanwhile, a bright yellow Lamborghini and a ck Ferrari suddenly pulled over in front of them. Roy got off the car first. He circled Kevin''s car, looking surprised. "Wow! Kevin, who would do this to you? Don''t they know who you are? They''re practically begging for trouble." Cole was the only person Kevin could think of that would do this. He immediately stiffened at the thought of this. "I need to take Anne home first. You stay here and deal with the car." With that, Kevin picked Anne up and put her inside Roy''s Lamborghini. He settled himself in the driver''s seat, started the car, and drove off. "Hey! Why are you leaving me here? Why didn''t you take me with you?" Roy waved his hand anxiously but the car had already disappeared from his sight. The night was chilly. The cold breeze made Anne shiver. It didn''t help that she was wearing a thin dress and riding in a convertible car in the cold night. She couldn''t help but cross her arms to warm herself up. Kevin''s heart skipped a beat when he noticed this. As much as he wanted to avoid talking to her, he couldn''t help himself. Creak! He mmed his foot on the brakes as Anne abruptly leaned forward. Chapter 54 His Occasional Tenderness Chapter 54 His asional Tenderness "Kevin, why did you brake so suddenly? Don''t you know it''s dangerous?" Still suffering from the shock, Anne returned to consciousness and looked at Kevin with discontent. With a quick nce at her, Kevin swiftly took off his coat and put it around her body. When Anne gazed at the handsome face in front of her, her heart thumped wildly. Did he stop the car just to cover her with his clothes? "Are you feeling warmer?" Kevin''s deep and maic voice came through with its unique masculine charm. "Yes..." Anne awkwardly averted her gaze from his dark eyes. He could always make her heart beat uncontrobly. His gesture made her frozen heart melt. He must care about her a little, didn''t he? "Why did you put your coat on me?" Her voice was cautious and her beautiful eyes were concealing unexpressed expectations. She would be satisfied with any answer as long as it showed Kevin''s care for her. "For the baby! It is in your belly, so you can''t get sick!" Kevin wanted to say he was afraid that she would catch a cold, but those words gotpletely altered when they left his mouth. The color in Anne''s eyes vanished in an instant. She turned to look out of the window and smiled bitterly. She should have known that his actions were solely motivated by the baby''s well-being. However, she couldn''t help but feel that she had ttered herself. He didn''t care about her at all. If she didn''t carry his child in her womb, his indifference would be such as to let her freeze to death. After sensing the change in her mood and seeing her eyes turn cold, Kevin became a little irritable. He wondered why he had begun to care about this woman recently. They didn''t share a word all the way back to the vi. Anne opened the door and got out of the car. She frowned as her sprained foot caused her a sharp pain. Kevin strode forward, but seeing the struggle and sweat on her pale face made him feel sorry for her. He turned back, lifted Anne up and headed toward the living room. With shock spreading on her features, Anne wrapped her arms around his neck tightly. Even though she knew that all he was doing was for the baby''s sake, her heart couldn''t help but beat for him. Waiting anxiously in the living room, Cherry rushed over when she saw Kevin arrive. "Kevin, you''re finally back! I was so worried about you..." She walked up to him with apprehension glimmering in her beautiful eyes. But as soon as she saw Anne in his arms, anger and jealousy took over. What was more, she was wearing Kevin''s coat. At that sight, Cherry''s hate for Anne reached its peak. She hated the kidnappers too for not killing her directly. But she knew how to hide her true emotions in front of Kevin. "Anne, are you okay? I was really scared when I heard what happened." Cherry''s eyes were filled with anxiety and worry. If Anne hadn''t seen Cherry''s true colors, she would have thought that she was really worried about her. "I''m fine. Thank you for your concern." Her expression was indifferent and her words emotionless. "That''s good. That''s good. You must have freaked out today. Let me help you back to your room." Annoyed by seeing Anne leaning on Kevin, Cherry extended her hand to help her get down. "Ouch, it hurts!" As soon as her feet touched the ground, Anne cried out in pain. "What''s wrong? Does it still hurt?" Kevin held Anne''s arm delicately. There was an imperceptible tone of concern in his voice. He couldn''t help but feel a little guilty at the thought of her pain. "Hmm. It seems to hurt more than before!" Looking at Anne''s pained expression, Kevin felt a sting in his heart. He scurried to hold her up again. "I''ll send you back to your room first, and then ask Sam to check on youter." As if he had forgotten Cherry''s existence altogether, Kevin headed upstairs with Anne in his arms. As they walked past Cherry, Anne gave her acent look. She always pretended to be innocent, kind and sensible in front of Kevin, but she could be very wicked in private. Kevin was not worried about her, but Anne wanted to give Cherry a dose of her own medicine even if that meant using the pregnancy to her advantage. Under Anne''s provocative gaze, Cherry felt anger bubbling up inside of her with no way out. All she could do was re at her fiercely. ''Anne, just wait and see. How dare you y tricks on me? I will make you suffer.'' Despite her rage, Cherry wanted Kevin to see how considerate and concerned she was about Anne''s safety, so she swallowed her feelings and followed them upstairs. "Get some rest," Kevin said in an indifferent tone after putting Anne on the bed carefully. Without the warmth of his arms, Anne felt a gust of gelid wind rip through her heart. How she wished she could stay enveloped in his embrace for a longer time. "Kevin, go take a hot shower first. Your clothes are dirty. I''ll take care of Anne here. Don''t worry." Walking gracefully to him, Cherry gently wiped the sweat off his forehead with tenderness in her bright eyes. "Okay. I''ll see you after I take a shower, honey..." After stamping a quick kiss on Cherry''s smooth forehead, Kevin turned around and left. At the sight of their public disy of affection, Anne kept a cold expression on her face. She was already used to the two of them deliberately flirting in front of her. After Kevin left, the smile disappeared from Cherry''s face giving way to a gloomy re. "Why was Kevin carrying you and why were you wearing his coat?" Her questioning voice was no longer as gentle and kind as it was in front of Kevin. Now, bitterness and coldness were spreading across her beautiful and delicate features. "Why should I answer your questions? Who do you think you are?" Anne replied, looking at her with disdain. She didn''t have to pretend anymore now that Cherry had showed her true colors. "You! Anne, I tell you, no matter what tricks you use, Kevin won''t like you. He will only hate you more!" Anne was speechless. Cherry''s face was distorted with rage and her words were meaner than before. "You are the one who yed tricks. You pushed Ruth, but you framed me. If Kevin gets to know the truth one day, do you think he will still like a vicious woman like you?" Her eyes brimmed with anger, her tone cold as ice. Original content from N?velDrama.Org. Flustered for a moment by Anne''s attempt to expose the truth, Cherry quicklyposed herself and sneered. "Even if you tell Kevin, do you think he will believe you? He will only think that you are even more vicious if you''re capable of ming your own cousin!" Cherry smirked with arrogance. She didn''t care if Anne had told Kevin. Because she knew that he had alreadybeled Anne as a wicked woman. No matter what she said, he would not believe it. Anne threw a cold re at Cherry, her eyes full of hatred. She had been set up again and again, so that Kevin would think she was a vicious woman. ''Sooner orter he will know the truth!'' Anne swore to herself that she would clear her name one day. She wouldn''t take the me for the rest of her life! "Then I''ll wait and see. I''m afraid that before Kevin believes you, he will have already kicked you out. Ha-ha!" Cherry was not afraid of such thing at all because she would not let it happen. "Before I am driven out of the door, you are only a mistress who is despised by everyone!" Not to be outdone, Anne fought back with tenacity. No matter how much Kevin loved Cherry, as long as Anne didn''t divorce him, Cherry would always be a shameful mistress who couldn''t get Kevin''s body. "Who is the mistress?" She pointed at Anne angrily with hatred in her beautiful eyes. "What are you if you are not a mistress?" The mocking smile at the corners of Anne''s mouth was ring. "Anne! Don''t be so confident. As soon as you give birth to the baby, Kevin will kick you out!" Suppressing her anger, Cherry replied to Anne''s deliberate provocation with acent look. As soon as Kevin''s child was born, Anne would be kicked out of the house, and Cherry would be his wife. Staring coldly into Cherry''s smug expression, Anne clenched her fists furiously. Half an hourter, Kevin came back from his shower. As he entered the room, Cherry sat beside Anne and put on a worried expression. "Cherry, let''s go. You have taken care of her for a long time. You must be tired." Kevin approached her and wrapped his arms around her pitifully. "It''s okay. I''m not tired. Anne must be frightened by what has happened to her today. It''s my duty to take care of her," Cherry said considerately with a content smile on her face, while giving Anne a provocative sideways nce. "It''s okay as long as the baby is fine. Don''t worry about the rest." Kevin''s tone was ruthless as he cast a cold nce at Anne. "Kevin, how can you say that? After all, Anne is my cousin. How can we leave her alone?" Cherry pouted and looked at Kevin with discontent. It was indeed a meing out of her mouth, but it sounded like she was sincerely worried. Looking unmoved by her deceitfulness, Anne kept her disdain to herself. She had to admit that Cherry''s acting skills were really extraordinary. No wonder Kevin was obsessed with her. "A vicious woman like her is not qualified to be your cousin!" He snorted and turned his gaze back to Anne with contempt. Chapter 55 True Colors Chapter 55 True Colors "All right, all right. Anne''s foot is hurt. Quit being so mean." Holding Kevin''s arm intimately, she almost pressed her whole body against him. When she talked to him, all his troubles seemed to disappear. It didn''t matter how much he despised Anne. "Well, let''s go. I don''t want to be around her one more minute than I have to." Kevin held Cherry''s hand and walked out. "Wait!" A secondter, Cherry stopped Kevin. "Your coat''s still here. I think it''s dirty. I''ll get the servant to wash it for you tomorrow." She walked to Anne''s bedside, picked up the coat Anne had worn earlier and gave her a defiant look. But when she turned to look at Kevin, the defiant look had been reced with a soft, gentle one. She was such a chimera, able to change her expression so radically, and so quickly. "Just throw the coat away. It''s appropriate, considering she has worn it." Kevin looked at the coat that Anne had just worn with a frown. He took it from Cherry, looked at her, and threw it in the trash. When Anne watched him do this, her heart was deeply hurt. He did it unflinchingly, too, like it was the most natural action in the world. Even the coat she had worn was nothing but trash to him. Cherry acted agitated, but she said his name with a bratty smile, "Kevin..."Original content from N?velDrama.Org. "I get it, honey. I can read your mind. You''re too kind, but it''s not worth it to waste time on such a woman!" Kevin rubbed Cherry''s nose in a disgustingly cutesy way, a gentle smile in his ck eyes. Looking at the two love birds, Anne felt so heartbroken that she could not breathe. She turned her face away from them and tried to hide her pain from him. It almost seemed like Kevin was tender and caring toward Cherry, and disdainful to Anne. "Good night, Anne. I''lle by to see you tomorrow." After she said that, Cherry took Kevin''s arm and left. Kevin closed the door, leaving Anne alone with her emotions. There was no need to hide them anymore. She sniffed and forced herself not to cry. She had been hurt so many times and was used to it by now. Why was she still crying? Maybe because her heart hurt so much? Why did she feel as if someone were squeezing her heart when she saw the two of them show their love for each other? Cherry started in on Kevin the moment the door was closed. She was angry and jealous, and started demanding answers. "What happened between you and Anne? How did her foot get hurt? And why was she wearing your coat?" Raising his dashing eyebrows, Kevin fired back at her, smiling. "Jealous?" "Would you think that I''m petty by asking such questions?" Cherry looked at Kevin with hesitation and worry. There was hurt in her big watery eyes. Rubbing Cherry''s nose again, Kevin whispered in her ear, "I''m happy you''re jealous. It proves you love me." Hearing his answer, Cherry blushed shyly, with her beautiful eyes full of tenderness. "What about Anne? What are you going to do with her? When are you sending her back?" Cherry had not been happy since Anne moved into Kevin''s vi. She really wanted her to leave as soon as possible. "She''s still pregnant with my kid. You saw what happened today. I need to protect my child, so she can stay here until the baby''s born." Cherry was a little disappointed by Kevin''s answer. She frowned. Kevin''s words made her anxious and resentful. It was all dependent on Anne. She had only been pregnant for a month. She had another eight months to go. Cherry was a little worried. Anne liked Kevin. What if she did something to win his heart while she was staying there? She frowned and kept plotting how to get Kevin to kick Anne out. "What''s wrong? You don''t want her to stay?" Kevin asked when he saw Cherry''s worried look. "No, it''s fine. If Anne lives there with you, it''s very convenient for you to take care of her." Cherry forced a smile. She didn''t want him to know any different. "It''s settled then. It''s gettingte. I''ll take you back to your room." He knew that Cherry was the most considerate woman in the world, and what he liked most was how gentle and kind she was. Taking onest worried look at Anne''s room, Cherry went upstairs, arm in arm with Kevin. Kevin stayed with Cherry for a while, and it waste when he came out. Instead of going to bed immediately, he left the vi to meet up with n. Anne was carrying his baby then, so he would never allow anything to happen to her. In the VIP room of Heaven on the Earth, n kept drinking with two beautiful women in his arms. The music was deafening, but perfect for a festive mood. When he saw Kevine in, n waved his hand. The two beautiful women around him immediately left, and the music stopped. "Kevin! What do youe for at thiste hour?" n stood up and walked towards Kevin. His expression still cold, Kevin frowned and sat down. "n, my wife was kidnapped today. Did you arrange for that to happen?" Without niceties, Kevin cut to the chase. His eyes were ck and focused on the man he considered a friend. n wasn''t surprised. In fact, he''d been expecting this conversation, and he figured that was why Kevin was here. "Kevin, my sister''s in aa right now, thanks to Anne. Is it wrong for me to want justice?" The image of his sister lying in the hospital bed was burned in his brain. He was unable to forget about this, and his eyes were full of hatred. He swore he''d avenge his sister. "Of course not, but you can''t hurt her now!" Kevin didn''t show any emotion on his face after hearing what n said. "You want to protect her? Everyone tells me you two aren''t on the best of terms." n''s expression was morose, his tone filled with anger. Although he couldn''t hurt the person Kevin wanted to protect, he would never let go of this grudge, not as long as he lived. "She''s pregnant with my kid now. You won''t harm anyone in the Fu Family. That includes her. Remember, I can be vengeful, too." He''d never let anything happen to Anne, for the sake of their child. "What? She''s pregnant?" n frowned and pretended to be surprised. In fact, he already knew Anne was pregnant, but he pretended not to know. "n, it''s no secret. Come on, admit it. You knew, huh?" Kevin raised his eyebrows. His tone was icy. With a flicker in his dark eyes, n looked away in panic. "I really didn''t know. Don''t you believe me, Kevin?" "Frankly, I don''t care if you knew or not. I won''t let you harm my child!" Kevin said. He nced at n coldly as he said this. "But don''t worry. This woman is just a tool to give birth to a baby. As long as the delivery goes smoothly, then she''s all yours after that. You can get your revenge after the baby''s born." Kevin''s ck eyes reflected a mysterious darkness. As long as Anne gave birth to his child, his marriage with her would be terminated, and then the two of them would have nothing to do with each other. n looked at Kevin in surprise. "You can''t be serious," he said, his voice full of suspicion. If what Kevin said was true, it would be much easier for him to avenge his sister after Anne gave birth to the baby. "Are you doubting what I said?" Kevin frowned with displeasure, and his dark eyes shed with coldness. "Not at all. I just thought I was hearing things for a sec. I hope you remember what you said." Since Anne was pregnant with Kevin''s child, it was impossible to hurt her. He would have to wait a few more months and avenge his sister after Anne gave birth to the child! "Of course! Then I won''t disturb you anymore!" After saying this coldly, Kevin stood up and left. "Ouch, it hurts. Sam, be gentle..." Looking at her red and swollen ankle, Anne was in such pain that tears welled in her eyes. "Calm down. Hold on, Anne. Your ankle is swollen like a grapefruit. I need to do this, so the blood doesn''t pool there." Sam kneaded and skillfully massaged Anne''s ankle. His eyes were focused and serious, with a unique male charm. "Why were you so careless? You sprained your ankle walking down the road." Sam sounded distressed and helpless. Anne didn''t tell him that she sprained her ankle when Kevin pushed her. She didn''t want to mention his name then, because the thought of him only made her heart ache. "I didn''t mean to..." Anne didn''t intend to sprain her ankle, but she couldn''t help it. "Be more careful when you walk, okay? You''re pregnant now. No matter what you doter, you must be careful. Fortunately, you just sprained your ankle this time. What if you fell?" Sam continued to nag her as he massaged the ankle. While she felt his concern, a smile appeared on her face. It felt good to have someone to care about her. But when did Sam be so nagging? He used to be a man of few words. "Well, it''s almost done. We should see a significant effect tomorrow. I''ll help you apply the medicine again, and it''ll be gone before you know it." Sam wiped his hands with a towel and quickly reassembled the medical kit. "Sam, thank you. Thank you for taking care of me all the time..." When she heard his caring tone, there was a sour feeling in her heart. She had no one to take care of her until now. Maybe that was what she''d been missing. Chapter 56 Persistent Rivalry Chapter 56 Persistent Rivalry "You don''t have to be so polite with me." Sam gazed earnestly towards Anne, the corner of his eyes crinkling. "I''m just being grateful. You''re amongst the very few who care about me." Besides Emily, there wasn''t anyone else that worried about her like this. "I will always care for you..." Sam¡¯s heart ached when he noticed how surprised she looked at his response. He was aware of the mistreatment she had to face, being in the Fu Family. He felt sorry for her since there was nothing he could do to help her. "Okay..." She had been pretending to be strong her whole life, but hearing Sam¡¯s words made her eyes sting. She was not unfamiliar to the cold and condescending treatment she had to face on the daily. Despite that she had to face those situations calmly, a word of concern from her friend almost made her tear up. "Anne, It doesn''t matter what others think. I will always believe that you are a kind person." She was instantly in a better mood, which only made Sam pity her even more. Anne had to face so much suffering every day. It made him want to bear some of the pain for her. "Thank you¡­" Anne trailed off, unsure of how to respond. "It¡¯s gettingte, you should head back. I¡¯ll go to sleep as well since I feel tired." She was trying her best to hold back her tears as she rigidly stood in one ce, not wanting to give away her weakness. "Okay. Go to bed early. Call me if you feel ufortable." Then Sam headed back, leaving with the medical kit. Anne watched him walk away, holding her breath. The moment he was gone, she felt the tough exterior copse. She kept wiping her eyes with the back of her hand, but her tears would not stop. After a long and torturous day, she fell asleep quickly. Her face was still flushed as she snuggled into her nket. With eyshes glistening, an aggrieved expression was painted on her pale face, making her look delicate. The next morning, Anne woke up with her eyes swollen from the previous night. She stumbled out of bed, limping towards her dressing table. She let out a chuckle when she saw her puffy face in the mirror. Contrary to the mess she was in, Anne had always thought of herself as strong. As she staggered back to the bed, she stared down at her sprained ankle. Most of the swelling was gone. ¡®He is indeed a good doctor!¡¯ she thought to herself. "Anne." A voice called out, as her bedroom door slowly opened. "Emily? Why are you here?" Anne was surprised to see her friend, a hint of joy ying in her eyes. "Sam told me that you hurt your foot! I came here to have a look. Are you okay? Does it hurt?" Emily darted her eyes towards Anne''s feet, her eyes growing in size as she noticed the reddened ankle. "It¡¯s not as bad as it looks. I¡¯m fine, it¡¯s just a sprained ankle." The corners of her mouth turned up when Anne saw the worried expression on Emily¡¯s face. "Anne, you are still pregnant! You can¡¯t afford to be this careless!" Emily was now perched up on the Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. edge of her bed, chattering away. She felt sorry for Anne. She had noticed the silent torment she was enduring on her own. Despite wanting to stand up for her friend, she realized she didn''t have the power. She could only watch her friend suffer from afar. "Well, don''t worry. I¡¯ll take good care of myself." Anne beamed at her friend, her heart growing soft at her sympathy. In her heart, she had always viewed Emily as more of a sister than her assistant. "Have you had breakfast yet? Let me help you downstairs to eat something," Emily asked as she held Anne carefully, leading her outside. As they stepped downstairs, Kevin and Cherry could be seen sitting at the table. Anne felt revolted at the sight of them feeding each other. stering on a cold face, she walked towards the dining table. She was in no mood to see the two of them, but she couldn''t starve for the sake of the baby she was carrying. "Anne? Why are you downstairs? Does your foot feel better? Does it still hurt?" When Anne showed up, Cherry was quick toe over as if she was concerned. "I''m much better now, thank you," without sparing a nce, she harshly answered. Kevin frowned when he noticed Anne¡¯s indifference. "Let me help you sit down. I have asked for tonics to be served to you. I was going to send them up to your room since I wasn''t expecting you toe down." Cherry was putting on a fake persona, pretending to care for Anne, but she was rejected coldly. "Don''t bother, cousin. I can walk there myself." Anne gritted her teeth, shaking off Cherry¡¯s hold on her hand. Anne''s cold attitude irritated Cherry, but she had to hide her emotions in front of Kevin. "Anne..." Cherry drawled, ncing at Kevin with a sullen face. She had managed to tear up, making her look pitiful. "Anne, what''s wrong with you? You should be d that Cherry is willing to help you. You don''t have to be so rude!" Kevin couldn''t help but yell, not being able to see his sweetheart sad. His eyes were brimming with disgust as he stared at Anne. If she was not carrying his child, he would have driven her out of his house a long time ago. Anne eyed Kevin back. She was used to his cruel words. She had heard even worse. "Kevin, don¡¯t say that to Anne! It''s my fault..." Cherry shook her head disapprovingly, as she walked towards him. She seemed to be on Anne¡¯s side, but she kept giving Kevin looks as if she was hurt. "Cherry, you are too kind. Why do you care for someone like her! She can never appreciate a good heart like yours!" Kevin held Cherry in his arms tofort her. As he cast cold nces towards Anne, the disgust in his eyes grew more intense. Although she was riddled with wounds, Anne did not let her indifferent expression falter. She knew even if she had shown even an ounce of weakness, Kevin wouldn''t feel sorry for her. Instead, he would use her of ying tricks. She picked up the chopsticks and started eating quietly. Although the food was tasteless, she forced herself to swallow for her baby. "Anne, I know you still me me for Ruth''s ident. If thinking that I pushed her will make you happy, then I don''t care¡­" Cherry looked at Anne pitifully, as if she felt greatly hurt. Kevin, on the other hand, could not bear to see her suffer any more grievance. He embraced her, speaking in an affectionate tone. "Cherry, don''t say that again. Do you hear me? What happened to Ruth has nothing to do with you! Why would you take the me for such a sorry excuse of a woman?" Anne sneered at the couple. ¡®Her acting is really good!¡¯ she angrily thought. Cherry knew that Kevin would hate her to be wrongly used, but she still pretended to be anguished in front of him. This way, she could portray Anne to be a heartless woman. ¡®Cherry is so cunning! What an awful person!¡¯ Anne¡¯s thoughts spilled out her mouth before she could stop them. "It''s good that you just admitted to pushing Ruth down the stairs!" Anne felt like she had nothing to lose with these two. "Anne! Do you have any conscience? Cherry has been willing to do anything to make you happy! How can you even say such things?" Kevin''s eyes burned into Anne''s. There was anger in his tone. He could not believe the vicious usation this woman wasying on his sweetheart! "She admitted it herself. Didn''t you hear?" Anne slightly raised her head, her tone still calm. ¡®Cherry had just said it, on her own free will! Was he deaf? Or was his love for her making him blind?¡¯ "Kevin, stop! Don¡¯t me her. It was my fault that I impelled her to say such things!" Tears spilled over her cheeks, as Cherry tightly held onto his arms. He saw her as kind, someone who wouldpromise for others all the time. This made him worry about her. "Cherry, stop saying that. Whoever did it has to be responsible. Since you didn''t do it, why admit it?" Kevin would never allow his woman to be wronged. Resting her head against Kevin¡¯s chest, Cherry peeked at Anne with acent look. Emily stood behind Anne, watching the whole scene unravel. Even though she hated Cherry and thought of her as pretentious, it was not her ce to step in. "Yes, you''re right! Whoever did it will be responsible. The person who pushed Ruth will receive their due punishment!" Anne red at Cherry. There was no trace of anger in her voice. Of course, Cherry knew the purpose behind her words. She grew angry, looking back at Anne. Anne could feel the hostility in Cherry''s eyes, but she didn''t respond. Chapter 57 I Want Her Dead! Chapter 57 I Want Her Dead! "Why are you so vicious, Anne? Do you want something bad to happen to Cherry?" He didn''t believe Cherry was guilty of anything, and he was very angry when he heard what Anne said. Why was this woman always so mean? It was rude of her to curse Cherry when he could hear her. "I want her dead!" When she said this, Anne clenched her chopsticks, and her beautiful eyes were full of hatred. Cherry had gone out of her way to hurt Anne many times. No one who knew this could me Anne for hating her. Anne knew Cherry hated her too, but her elder cousin disguised her intentions well. Kevin stood up abruptly and raised his hand, intending to p his nominal wife. With acent sneer on her face, Cherry was looking forward to seeing Anne being beaten. On the other hand, Emily could only stand behind Anne and be extremely anxious. She could do nothing to help her. Worse, she had to watch her being bullied. "I see. Now that you''re not afraid of the baby dying at the hands of its father, you can do what you want." Anne didn''t flinch. She looked calm as usual, but her tone suddenly became cold, which made Kevin''s heart jolt. He still held his hand aloft, ready to strike her. But he showed no sign he''d do more than that. Anne had expected that Kevin wouldn''t really hit her. It was not because he cared about her, but the baby she carried. Although it hurt, it worked. Cherry was a little disappointed. She wanted to see Anne beaten, but she couldn''t let Kevin know that. With mock desperation, she stood up and held his arm. "Kevin, calm down. It was just a joke. Don''t take it so seriously." The vicious words dripping from Anne''s mouth made Cherry hate her even more, but she had a reputation to protect. Cherry''s voice brought Kevin back to his senses. The shivering feeling in his heart vanished. "Anne watch yourself. If you say another bad thing about Cherry, I won''t hold back!" After saying those cial words, Kevin stood up and strode away. "Kevin..." Cherry called his name anxiously, but she got no response. It was not until he was out of earshot that Cherry shed Anne her smug smile. "You''ve been with Kevin how long? And you still haven''t learned to control your temper?" Even then, Cherry pretended to care about Anne. She intended it as a concerned reminder, but the look in her eyes betrayed her heart. "What goes on between me and Kevin is none of your business!" Anne said coldly, not even looking at Cherry. She knew that Cherry was showing off in front of her on purpose, which had happened many times. She wasn''t worth bothering with. "You''re so ungrateful!" Cherry couldn''t say anything more without blowing her top. She red at Anne, and the vicious glint in her eyes was obvious. Knowing that she couldn''t do much to rattle Anne, Cherry stalked off, her high heels clicking against the floor. Anne finally let down her guard. It took a toll, being that strong. She silently loosened her grip on the chopsticks. Seeing her like this, Emily walked up and held her hand in sympathy. She was angry at what Kevin and Cherry had said to Anne. "They crossed the line this time. How could they do that to you?" Even she could tell Cherry was a malevolent woman. Why couldn''t such a smart person like Kevin see that? Instead, he was obsessed with her. "It''s okay. I''m used to it," Anne said calmly. But she had a bitter smile on her lips when she said that. "Anne..." Emily said her name sadly, feeling upset, as if she were the one being mistreated. ''Anne''s such a great girl. What''s wrong with Kevin? How could he fall for an evil maniptive bitch like Cherry?'' "I''m fine, Emily. Don''t worry about me." Anne felt warmth in her heart and gave her friend a reassuring smile. She knew Emily''s concern was genuine. Hearing that, Emily didn''tin anymore, but she still felt sorry for Anne. "I''m full. Help me upstairs, okay? I''m going back home. I can get yelled at there just as easily." She had to face Cherry and Kevin every day. She was not in a good mood, and it was not good for her baby, either, so she decided to hide. "But you don''t have anyone to take care of you. You sure you''ll be okay there?" Emily knew what was on her mind, but she was worried for her safety. "It''s okay. I practically raised myself. I''m better off alone." Anne gave her the thumbs up, and wore a confident expression. "I''m still gonna drop by and check on you. I''ll miss you." Emily held Anne''s arm and carefully walked her up the stairs. Since it was Kevin''s vi, it was inconvenient for Emily to stay all that long. She left after hanging out with Anne for a while. Anne opened a book to kill time. "Kevin, you just said you got me a gift. What is it? Don''t keep me guessing." She heard Cherry''s voice from outside, full of surprise and happiness. Anne frowned. How irritating! "Guess." Kevin''s gentle voice was brimming over with affection. "I can''t. I''m too excited. Tell me!" Hearing Cherry''s kittenish, too-high-by-an-octave voice, Anne got goose bumps. It was like nails on a ckboard. Did Kevin actually like that? That voice must have done something for him. Maybe it robbed him of his senses? "Open it and see if you like it or not." Smiling, he handed a delicate jewelry box to Cherry. His look contained a great amount of affection. Cherry took it from him delicately. When she opened it and saw what was inside, her face was amazed and excited. "Wow, what a beautiful bracelet!" "Do you like it?" Original content from N?velDrama.Org. Kevin asked, a smug smile on his face. "I don''t care if you got me a in grey rock. If it''s from you, I''ll love it." Cherry stood on tiptoe to leave a kiss on Kevin''s face. Her face blushed. Kevin smiled when he touched his cheek. "Remember that designer from Italy? This is his handiwork especially designed for you. Its name is Lifetime Love." With a happy look on her face, Cherry couldn''t help but jump into Kevin''s arms and hold him tightly. All the bad things she had done were worth it. "Kevin, I love you!" "I love you too!" The two embraced outside the door for a long time. Hearing them exchange sweet nothings, Anne felt more and more upset. Although she had heard and seen too much, her heart still ached every time. She covered her ears. She didn''t want to hear them anymore. At longst, the two of them left. Anne took awhile to calm herself down. She brushed the messy hair away from her forehead, and her eyes returned to their usual coldness. Walking out of the room, Anne limped to Kevin''s study. She knew he was there. She knocked on the door, and soon his deep voice came from inside. Anne pushed the door open and walked into the room. Enduring the pain in her ankle, she walked towards him. "Why aren''t you lying down? What are you doing?" When he saw Anne, Kevin''s face immediately turned cold. His tone said he was bored. Obviously, he didn''t want to see her. She wasn''t surprised. That was like Kevin. Although she felt a little bitter in her heart, she looked calm on the surface and betrayed no emotion. "I wanted to tell you¡ªI''ll be leaving soon." Anne cut to the chase. After saying these words, she turned and walked out. "Stop!" Suddenly, Kevin stood up. When he looked at her, he felt annoyed, and frowned. "Did I say you could leave?" His voice was domineering, arrogant. He strode over to Anne and looked at her with a surly expression. "You should be eager for me to leave as soon as possible, so no one will disturb you and your sweetheart flirting with each other." As she thought of what had just happened outside her door, a sneer yed across Anne''s face When he heard the word "flirting", Kevin got even madder. "You''re pregnant with my baby now. You''re safe here. You will live here till the baby''s born. After that, all bets are off," Kevin ordered frostily. She was lucky it was Cole who kidnapped her, and not someone else. She might not be here today, if not for that fact. "I can protect myself and my baby," she said in a chilly tone, her brows furrowed. In this vi, she could smell Cherry everywhere. Her perfume lingered. Anne didn''t want to stay here for even one more minute. She just wanted out as soon as possible. "You have no right to refuse. After you give birth to the baby, I don''t care what happens. You''re not living here after that." After a nce at her belly, Kevin looked down at her with disdain. When she gave birth to the baby, it would have nothing to do with him. Once that happened, he wouldn''t be tied to her anymore. Anne kept sneering in her heart, because she knew that he would have kicked her out if she wasn''t pregnant with his child. "Okay, I''ll leave after the baby is born." After saying that in a fit of pique, Anne turned on her heel and limped out. Chapter 58 Showing Off Chapter 58 Showing Off Since Kevin forced her to stay, Anne had no other choice but to obey. Anne seemed a little irritated while sitting on the bed. If she stayed, she would have to face the two of them showing off their love every day. Her heart was not made of stone. It hurt to see the man she loved holding another woman in his arms. He had never chosen to believe her. She was his legal wife, but her presence was not needed here. It was almost a sleepless night. On the second day, when Anne woke up, she looked into the mirror and noticed a pair of dark circles under her eyes. The swelling of her ankle had almost disappeared, and it was no longer as painful as before. When she came downstairs to have breakfast, she thought that she would see Cherry and Kevin openly flirting with each other again, but this time she only saw Cherry. Kevin was not around. With her eyebrows creased together, Anne walked towards the table one step at a time without looking at Cherry. In fact, when she went downstairs, Cherry had already noticed her. The moment she saw Anne, disdain and resentment filled her bright eyes. "Anne, didn''t you sleep wellst night? Why are there dark circles under your eyes? Aren''t you used to living here yet?" Cherry asked derisively, as if she was thedy of the house. Anne looked at her indifferently and said, "This is also my home. How can I not get used to living here? How about you, cousin? Did you sleep wellst night knowing that I''m here?" Anne knew that Cherry was trying to create a rift between her and Kevin. She also knew that Cherry was afraid that Kevin would keep her around. She must be very unhappy when she slept herest night. "Why would I be ufortable? You''re my cousin, and you''re pregnant with Kevin''s child. Of course there is no inconvenience for me to look after you if you live here," Cherry said with a fake smile. She was a total hypocrite who tried to be sympathetic in front of Anne while stabbing her on the back. "Thank you so much, cousin. I''d like to express my gratitude in advance for that." Anne just smiled deceptively, and continued to eat her breakfast. Cherry was a bit pissed off. She frowned as Anne ignored her, but in an instant it was reced by a sweet smile. "Anne, look at my bracelet. Isn''t it beautiful? This is a gift from Kevin. Its name is Lifetime Love. I didn''t expect him to care about me so much." There was a smug look on Cherry''s face as she held the diamond bracelet on her wrist in front of Anne. She knew that Anne still had feelings for Kevin and she wanted to make her jealous. Anne felt her heart aching again when she nced at the diamond bracelet on Cherry''s wrist. The bracelet was as beautiful as its name, Lifetime Love. Cherry must be the love of Kevin''s life, while she meant nothing to him. "It''s fine as long as you think it''s beautiful!" Anne didn''t show that she was hurt. Of course, she knew that Cherry was just trying to piss her off and she didn''t want to satisfy her by showing her weakness. Seeing Anne emotionless like it was all nothing to her, Cherry was still unwilling to give up, so she spoke again. "In fact, I think it''s just ordinary. But Kevin promised that he would design our rings by himself when we get married." Genuine bliss can be traced on Cherry''s face whichpletely tore Anne''s heart into pieces. When they get married? Had Kevin decided to marry her already? Did he really want to kick her out so soon? Anne wore a stolid expression and didn''t say anything, as if she hadn''t heard Cherry''s words at all. Cherry wanted to see the pain in her, but she managed to hide it. Although she looked calm, her hand was slightly trembling as she held her chopsticks. Cherry was very observant, she immediately noticed the uneasiness in Anne. She couldn''t help but feel victorious. "Anne, I hope you can attend our wedding. After all, we are family. I don''t want to get married without the blessing from my family. Cherry looked at her sincerely. However, Anne could clearly see the tant mockery in the eyes of her cousin. Anne couldn''t control her anger anymore. When she was about tosh out, she heard Kevin''s voice "Cherry, have you finished your breakfast?" Kevin walked over to Cherry and nced at Anne when he passed her by. "Not yet. I''m waiting for you so that we can eat together." Cherry clung to Kevin and looked at him gently. "My Cherry, you are so thoughtful..." While looking at Cherry tenderly, Kevin kissed her forehead. "Hey, what are you doing? Anne is still here." Cherry sheepishly nudged Kevin. Kevin turned her eyes to Anne who was eating quietly without any emotion on her face. "It''s none of her business. Come on, let''s eat. Don''t starve yourself." Kevin''s cold attitude towards Anne made Cherry feel triumphant. She was certain that she was the most important person in his heart. Anne found her breakfast tasteless and nd. The vegetables in her bowl were almost all greens, without a single piece of meat. In order to nourish the baby inside Anne, her breakfast was changed into vegetable dishes and nutritious soup. However, Anne didn''t change her living habits. She still kept on eating light foods. While ncing at Anne, Kevin frowned and wondered how this woman could eat only green vegetables. Without any hesitation, Kevin picked up a piece of sweet and sour spareribs and put it into Anne''s bowl. "You are too thin. Eat more nutritious foods." Thinking of the time when she was kidnapped, Kevin remembered that she barely weighed anything when he carried her on his back. He felt distressed out of the blue. Original content from N?velDrama.Org. There was a hint of surprise and excitement in her eyes for a second. It was a wonderful moment until she realized that Kevin was just doing such things for the sake of their child. Anne smiled bitterly as she gently rubbed her abdomen. Kevin cared a little bit about her, because she was carrying their child. If she was not pregnant, he wouldn''t look at her even if she starved to death. Anne ate up the sweet and sour spareribs, but it was still tasteless. However, since Kevin handed it over, she felt a little satisfied. When Kevin took the initiative to refill Anne''s bowl, Cherry felt jealous and got furious. She felt a pang of anxiety in her heart. "Yes, Kevin is right. Look at yourself, Anne. You are so thin, you should eat more!" She picked up a piece of braised pork and put it into Anne''s bowl. Her tone was full of concern, but the jealousy and hatred in her eyes could not be concealed. Anne frowned and looked at the greasy braised pork in her bowl. Nausea quickly overcame her. She stood up and ran to the nearest bathroom. Soon, they heard her vomiting. Cherry''s face darkened. She doubted whether Anne embarrassed her on purpose. Kevin felt worried after hearing Anne vomit in the restroom. In Cherry''s perception, Kevin was frowning in disgust. He was a neat freak, so he must be unable to stand the sound of vomiting. "Kevin, what''s wrong? Can''t you eat anymore?" Cherry pretended to care about Kevin and asked gently. "Nothing!" His indifferent voice made her feel alienated. Kevin walked closer to the bathroom and listened while Anne vomited. "Kevin, this is just morning sickness. She will be fine right after." Cherry didn''t want Kevin to pay too much attention to Anne, so she tried to draw his attention back to her. "Tell the servants to cook light and nutritious food in the next following days and don''t serve greasy things like braised pork on the table," Kevin ordered while looking at the braised pork in Anne''s bowl. She vomited after seeing the braised pork. She couldn''t stand anything too greasy. "Okay, I''ll tell the servants in the kitchenter," Cherry responded in a gently voice, hiding her clenched fists behind her. She wondered why Kevin suddenly became so concerned about Anne that day. It just made her despise Anne even more. Since Anne conceived his baby, Kevin had changed his attitude towards her a lot. Cherry was afraid that if things went on like this, she might lose Kevin. "E¡­" Anne almost vomited her stomach up. She felt terrible and disgusted while looking at the toilet bowl. She stood up and rinsed her mouth with cold water. She tidied up the mess that she made and straightened her hair before going outside. When she was back at the table, she didn''t want to see the braised pork in her bowl. She didn''t know why she felt nauseous when seeing such a greasy food. Kevin immediately picked up the braised pork in her bowl and threw it directly into the trash can beside him, as if he was able to read her mind. Cherry felt a stinging pain in her heart when she saw what Kevin just did. He actually threw the food she picked up directly into the trash can, and disregarded her feelings "Since you can''t eat greasy foods, you should eat something light," Kevin said. Anne widened her eyes in surprise. She nced at his calm eyes, and then she lowered her head again. Although she knew that he did all of these for the sake of their child, she still couldn''t help but expect that he would care about her a little bit. Cherry stared at Anne viciously. If eyes could kill people, Anne wouldn''t know how many times she had died. Anne looked back indifferently. She didn''t want to argue with her, so she focused on eating again. She had just ate some in dishes. Now she finally appreciated the food despite feeling ufortable after vomiting earlier. Chapter 59 Being Framed Chapter 59 Being Framed Anne''s morning sickness was only getting worse. Her face was utterly pale and she could barely eat anything throughout the day. Kevin spent most of his day in the study. Whenever he would hear Anne vomiting, he would feel mildly annoyed. She was already so thin. How could her body stand all that throwing up? Suddenly, the door flew open as Cherry strode in. She had a huge smile on her face, holding what seemed to be a container in her hands. "Kevin, what''s on your mind? Something seems to be bothering you," Cherry asked in concern as she ced the soup in front of him. She then fondly held his arm as a way tofort him. "Nothing. Just work. What are you doing here?" Kevin really wasn''t in the mood to hash it out with Cherry. She didn''t find this suspicious as this was pretty normal behavior for him. He was a workaholic whose life revolved around his career. "You''ve been working so hard. You must be exhausted. I made you some soup to help you with the stress." Cherry pushed the soup towards Kevin, looking worried. He looked at her affectionately, shing her a smile as he took the soup. Just as he was about to drink the soup, he stopped. Frowning slightly, he seemed to have realized something. "What''s wrong, Kevin? Don''t you want the soup?" Cherry frowned, looking nervous. "Anne''s morning sickness is getting worse. She hasn''t eaten anything the whole day. Why don''t you just give the soup to her?" Kevin said lightly as he put the soup back on the tray. The smile on Cherry''s face froze as she looked at Kevin, visibly taken aback. "Oh, that''s right. How could I forget about Anne? I was so focused on you." After a momentary silence, she forced a smile. As she spoke, her tone was gentle but the envy in her eyes was undeniable. Kevin turned and returned her gaze. In a soft tone, he said, "I''m doing this for the baby''s sake. I need to make sure the baby is healthy. Do you understand?" He decided to exin himself as he was worried that Cherry would feel ufortable. Cherry smiled back, feigning concern. "Kevin, you don''t have to exin anything to me. Anne is pregnant and she''s my cousin. I should take care of her. I''m sorry I wasn''t more sensitive. I''ll bring her the soup right now." She acted as if she was considerate and truly cared about Anne. In reality, she abhorred Anne. She couldn''t help but notice that Kevin''s concern for Anne had been increasing recently. She couldn''t let this go on any further. "Honey, we can go shoppingter after I''m done with work." He got up and nted a quick kiss on Cherry''s forehead. Cherry left with the soup, beaming. However, the minute she stepped out of the study, the smile on her face instantly soured. She didn''t even bother knocking on Anne''s door as she just went straight inside her room. At that moment, Anne was preupied, reading a book. When she looked up, her eyes instantly turned cold at the sight of Cherry. "What are you doing here?" Anne asked bleakly. "I''m here to bring you some soup. You''re still carrying Kevin''s child after all. You need to take good care of yourself," Cherry said snidely, glowering at Anne. "You don''t have to pretend to care about me. Kevin isn''t here. You can stop this pretense right now." Anne looked at Cherry with disdain, her eyes filled with resentment. She was tired of ying this game with Cherry. Cherry shot her a dirty look, visiblytled. "You''re dreaming if you think Kevin''s going to fall in love with you just because you''re pregnant with his child. He has nothing but hatred for you. If you weren''t carrying his child, he probably wouldn''t even look at you. I''m the only woman in his heart." As Cherry spoke, she proudly lifted her wrist to show off the bracelet that Kevin had given her. Sneering, Anne deliberately looked away. While she knew that Cherry was just purposely showing off, she still couldn''t help but feel downcast. "Please get out. I don''t want to see you anymore," Anne said coldly as she closed the book in her hands rather irritably. "What right do you have to tell me what to do?" Contempt was written all over Cherry''s face as she approached Anne, still holding the container of soup in her hands. Content held by N?velDrama.Org. "I asked you to get out. What''s so hard to understand about that?" Anne was visibly sickened by Cherry, not even bothering to hide it anymore. Cherry opened her mouth, ready to retort when she heard Kevin''s footsteps nearing. Upon hearing this, an idea came to her. "Ah!" She fell on the ground as the soup sshed all over her now red and swollen arm. Anne looked at Cherry in utter confusion, wondering what was going on. It didn''t take long for her to figure out what Cherry was doing. Startled, Kevin rushed inside. As soon as he arrived, he saw Cherry on the floor. "What''s going on? Kevin approached Cherry and helped her up, looking at her pitifully. Cherry made sure she looked aggrieved as she nursed her swollen arm. "Anne, I know we don''t get along that well but you can''t do this to me. I''m still your cousin..." Tears streamed down her cheeks as if she had been terribly maltreated. As expected, Kevin couldn''t help but feel sorry for her. "Cherry, what the hell are you talking about? You fell down on purpose. You''re framing me!" Anne was seething. She couldn''t believe Cherry would go this far. "Anne, how can you say that? What happened to you? Are you still the same Anne I know?" Cherry looked afflicted, pretending to be disappointed. "Anne, did you do this?" Kevin red at Anne. "Would you believe me even if I tell you the truth?" Anne asked indifferently as she looked him in the eye. She knew in her heart that he would never believe her but a small part of her still hoped that he would. "Do you really think Cherry would do something like that? Only you would be capable of doing something like that!" Kevin said spitefully. Anne was taking it too far this time. How dare she hurt Cherry? Anne tried to hide her sadness by sneering. "Why bother asking me if you weren''t going to believe me no matter what I say? If you think I did it then so be it! So what?" She might as well just admit it since Kevin wasn''t going to believe her either way. p! Without warning, Kevin pped her across the face. Her cheeks stung in pain. Visibly shocked, she red at Kevin as she asked, her voice shaking, "How dare you hit me?" She never expected this from Kevin. She was surprised that he would willingly hit a woman for Cherry''s sake. Kevin''s eyes glinted, not knowing what had gotten into him. He didn''t know why he suddenly couldn''t control himself. As he gazed at her swollen cheek, guilt and pity welled up inside him. However, when he thought of what she had done to Cherry, all these emotions suddenly disappeared. "You deserve it! No one''s allowed to hurt Cherry!" Kevin spat brazenly. Anne stared him down, feeling her heart ache. She never expected him to be so ruthless to her. Cherry seemed pleased with herself as she scowled at Anne. As far as Kevin was concerned, if Anne hurt Cherry then she deserved his enmity. "Kevin, I''m going to make you regret this one day!" Anne warned, trying to hold back the tears in her eyes. Kevin and Cherry were thest two people she would ever show her weakness to. For some reason, Kevin felt briefly flustered. "Kevin..." Cherry whimpered, lifting her head. "Does it still hurt, Cherry?" He asked worriedly as he held her swollen arm. "Yes, it hurt but it''s much better now..." Cherry''s eyes were brimming with tears, sessfully inciting Kevin''s sympathy. "Let''s apply some medicine on it first," Kevin said gently as he wrapped his arm around her shoulder. "Okay..." Cherry cast Anne a cold look as she walked out of the room with Kevin''s assistance. Just as they were about to leave, Kevin turned around, a sour look on his face. "If you do anything to hurt Cherry again, I''ll make sure you pay for it. You better watch yourself from now on." Kevin was visibly outraged. Anne balled her fists in frustration. She couldn''t believe Cherry would have the nerve to frame her so tantly like that! Chapter 60 Hypocrisy Chapter 60 Hypocrisy Kevin carefully tended to Cherry''s wound as soon as they arrived at her room. The tenderness in his eyes was palpable. "Does it still hurt?" Seeing the look of resignation on Cherry''s face only made him worry even more. "It doesn''t hurt. It''s just a little red and swollen. Nothing too serious. Don''t worry," Cherry said gently. "What are you talking about? It''spletely swollen. You''re so considerate. You don''t even want to admit that it hurts." Kevin sighed helplessly. Sometimes, she could be too thoughtful for her own good. Cherry beamed at this. "Kevin, can you stop ming Anne for what happened? I don''t think she did it on purpose." She held Kevin''s arm, hoping to defend Anne. At the mention of Anne, Kevin began to get all riled up once more. "Cherry, you shouldn''t be so kind to her. You may see her as your cousin but she obviously doesn''t treat you the same way!" He hated seeing Cherry have topromise for someone like Anne. "Kevin, don''t be mad at Anne. I''m sure she didn''t do it on purpose." Kevin''s hatred for Anne only intensified with the way Cherry was defending her. This was exactly what she wanted. She wanted Anne to suffer more. While this made her happy, she still had to act concerned in front of Kevin. She was smart enough to know that this was what she needed to do to gain Kevin''s sympathy and drive his hatred for Anne. "Cherry, maybe you shouldn''t talk to her anymore. I don''t know if she would do something like this to you again. From now on, you should just stay away from her, got it?" Kevin exhaled sharply. He was afraid that Anne would attempt to hurt Cherry again. "Kevin, to be honest with you, I understand why Anne hates me. After all, considering our rtionship..." Cherry looked remorseful at the mention of their rtionship. "You''re the woman I love. There''s no reason for you to worry about anything else. Once she gives birth, I''m divorcing her. I promise you will get what you deserve right the minute all of this is over," Kevin promised firmly. As far as he was concerned, he deserved a kind-hearted and considerate woman like Cherry as his wife¡ªunlike Anne. "Well, I trust you. I just don''t want Anne to hate me." Cherry threw herself into his arms in utter joy. She made sure to restrain herself and not get too excited though. "The nerve of her to hate you! After she gives birth to the baby, she''ll mean nothing to me." If it weren''t for the baby, he wouldn''t even have anything to do with Anne. Cherry buried herself in his chest, smirking proudly to herself. Much to her delight, she had achieved her goal. Meanwhile, Anne walked over to her vanity to check her red and swollen face in the mirror. She couldn''t help but smile bitterly. Her face was still stinging along with her heart. Was Cherry that important to Kevin that he would willingly hit her for that woman? Anne made her way downstairs and grabbed some ice cubes from the fridge. She neatly wrapped them with a towel to help with the swelling. As the servants walked past her, they whispered amongst themselves. Even the servants in this house didn''t take her seriously. At that moment, Kevin headed downstairs too. When he saw Anne, he frowned as he approached her. She had already seen him but she didn''t expect that he would talk to her. Wordlessly, she walked past him, intending to go back to her room upstairs. She didn''t even look at him as they walked past each other, acting indifferently. "Stop!" Kevin said as he turned around, clearly annoyed. Suppressing the anger in her heart, she stopped in her tracks and turned to look at him. "What now?" She looked at him coldly. "You weren''t even going to say anything to me?" Kevin turned around and walked towards her, the look on his face unfathomable. "I have nothing to say to you. What am I supposed to do? Wait for you to hit me?" Anne spat. Her face turned cold as she thought of how ruthless Kevin was when he hit her earlier. Kevin was rendered speechless. He gazed at her, the mark that his p had left was still visible on her cheek. "Does it still hurt? Do you need a doctor?" Kevin said lightly as a strange look spread across his face. "Don''t bother, Mr. Kevin! If you aren''t going to say anything else, please excuse me as I need to go back to my room." Anne knew that he was only acting concerned for the baby''s sake. Anne brushing him off hurt Kevin''s pride. For some reason, he felt angry once more but he didn''t know why. As time passed, she was growing more and more distant. She wasn''t always like this. In the past, she would defend herself no matter what bad things she had done. Now it seemed as if she didn''t care enough to do that anymore. Her constant excuses and exnations used to irk him but now that she wasn''t doing that anymore, he found himself just as irked as before. Not long after, Sam arrived for his daily check-up on Anne. The first thing he saw was Kevin sitting in the living room with a glum look on his face. When Kevin saw Sam, he frowned as he approached him. "Are you here to check up on Anne again?" Kevin asked calmly. "Yes. What''s up with you today? Why do you suddenly care about Anne?" Sam asked, his tone aloof. The irony in Kevin''s words was not lost on him. Kevin scowled. "Do you have any issues with that? She''s carrying my child!" He snorted. He couldn''t figure out why he was so upset about Saming every two or three days to check up on Anne. He began to consider getting a new doctor for her. "Of course I''m fine with it Anne''s your wife after all," Sam said, sounding unimpressed. He''d always been detached and never showed his emotions easily, not even in front of Kevin. His indifference annoyed Kevin for no reason at all. Recently, Kevin found himself unable to control his emotions. "Mr. Kevin, if you don''t have any other instructions, I''ll head upstairs now." Sam nodded at Kevin before making his way upstairs. Kevin frowned as he watched him leave. Sam politely knocked on Anne''s door before entering her room. When he saw Anne reading on her bed, he smiled faintly. "You seem to be in a good mood today. That''s good for the baby." Then Sam put down his medical kit and walked towards Anne. "It''s not like I have anything else to do here. Besides, there are some people I don''t want to see here, so I might as well just kill time in my room." Anne closed her book and turned towards Sam. Sam was just about to respond to what she had said when he saw her swollen face. Nervously, he asked, "Why is your face swollen? Did someone hit you?" He strode towards her, pity stered across his face. Anne briskly turned her head away, not wanting Sam to see her like this. "Nothing." She wasn''t in the mood to talk about the events of today. "Look at your face. Who hit you? Kevin? Cherry?" Sam''s usually gentle voice turned cold as anger filled his eyes. "Sam, I''m fine. I really don''t want to talk about it. Just let it go, okay?" Anne could tell that Sam was worried about her. However, she knew there was no point in telling him the truth as she would only be causing him trouble. Original content from N?velDrama.Org. Sam frowned as he looked at her solemnly. He was clearly worried about her. It seemed that she was always being mistreated her. As much as he wanted to help her, his hands were tied. Oftentimes, he felt guilty about this. "Well, if you don''t want to talk about it, I''ll let it go but please stand up for yourself." Sam sighed helplessly. He had to respect Anne''s wishes. "Okay, I know." Sam''s sincerity towards her never failed to make her feel better. Perhaps this was why she didn''t feel the need to put up her defenses when she was around him. "Let me put some ointment on your face first. Look at your swollen face." Sam promptly took out some ointment from his medical kit. Then he gently applied it on her swollen face. The pain instantly disappeared as Anne gradually smoothed out her knitted eyebrows. She could feel the warmth emanating from his gentle touch. Sam could feel his heart pounding in his chest, tenderness visible in his eyes. As the tension rose between them, Anne leaned back, moving away from his touch. Sam quickly withdrew his hand, feeling the awkwardness. "Here. Keep the ointment. Apply it again tonight before you sleep. It''ll ease the swellingpletely." Sam handed her ointment, shing her an easy smile. "Okay, okay. Thanks." To Anne, Sam was a loyal friend. As Sam gazed at her, he felt the urge to protect her. Unfortunately, he wasn''t in the position to do so. Chapter 61 Sarcasm Chapter 61 Sarcasm Sam carefully examined Anne, ensuring that the baby was fine. Before he left, he gave her a few reminders to better take care of herself. When he came downstairs, Kevin was still in the living room. He nodded at Kevin before leaving. Kevin ignored him, merely ring at him. Since Anne couldn''t stand having to deal with Kevin and Cherry''s overt public disys of affection, she barely left her room in the vi. She heard her door open. Smiling slightly, she lifted her head. "Why are you back? Did you forget something?" The smile on Anne''s face froze as soon as she finished speaking. She was startled to find that it was Kevin who hade and not Sam. She instantly pulled a long face and asked coldly, "What are you doing here?" "Why are you so disappointed to see me?" Kevin asked, his toneced with sarcasm and jealousy. ''Why did the smile on her face disappear the minute she realized it was me and not Sam?'' Keven thought to himself. "You know, don''t you? What are you doing here? To settle ounts with me? Did your sweetheart act all miserable in front of you again?" Anne snapped, looking spiteful. The thought of Cherry framing Anne so she could victimize herself made Anne sick to the stomach. How foolish could Kevin be to believe Cherry''sme story? "Do you think all women are as scheming as you are? You''ll never be as kindhearted as Cherry!" Kevin said vindictively, ring at Anne. He couldn''t stand Anne badmouthing Cherry. After everything that had happened, he couldn''t believe that Anne would still try to get in between them. By then, Anne was already used to all the hurtful words that were thrown her way. She didn''t even seem the least bit fazed. Her heart had long been riddled with holes, and she didn''t care if he stabbed her with more of these hurtful words. She didn''t bother holding out hope for him, anyway. "If you''re not here to make peace with me then please leave. I don''t want to see you." Anne''s face was expressionless while her tone was stone cold. "Really? You don''t want to see me? Who do you want to see then? Sam?" He narrowed his eyes, looking haughty. Anne clearly felt the tension in the air. "It''s none of your business! Please get out!" Anne couldn''t help but be puzzled. What the hell did Kevin want from her? Why did he care who she Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. wanted to see? What did that have to do with him? "None of my business? Anne, don''t forget that you''re still my wife!" None of his business? How dare she talked to him like that! "Once I give birth to this baby, we have no reason to still be in each other''s lives," Anne said coolly. Her eyes still looked calm, not stirred by what he said. Kevin clenched his fists, trying to curb his anger. "That''s so only after you give birth. Before that, you''re not allowed to associate yourself with any man." So she wanted to see Sam but not him? Had she forgotten that she was still his wife? Or was she trying to seduce Sam so she could get married the minute they divorced? "What right do you have to impose such a rule on me? That''s not in the contract." What was going on with Kevin? Why was he barging into her room just to tell her that she wasn''t allowed to talk to other men? Was he jealous? Impossible. He absolutely loathed her. Why would he be jealous? He must be out of his mind. That was the only possible exnation. "It takes effect from now on! Anne, you''d better behave yourself!" Kevin threatened. His tone was cold and domineering. He really was taking it too far now. "Then can I also stop you from talking to Cherry from now on? Shouldn''t you also watch yourself?" Anne raised her head and looked at him brazenly, not wanting to go down without a fight. He was forbidding her from talking to other men. What about him and Cherry then? He paraded his mistress at home without even bothering to hide it yet he had the nerve to ask this of her. How shameless! "Who do you think you are? How dare youpare yourself to Cherry?" Cherry was Kevin''s love and light while Anne meant next to nothing to him. Anne spoke as if she stood a chance against Cherry. Sneering, Anne turned away. She couldn''t take it anymore. "Get out!" She''d never treated Kevin like this before. At that moment, he was thest person she wanted to see. "Anne, say that to my face again!" Kevin strode towards her. He pinched her chin and forced her to look into his eyes. Without resisting, Anne boldly stared him down. As she looked into his eyes, she couldn''t help but feel a sense of familiarity. However, this man in front of her was no longer hers. She was overwhelmed, and tears welled up in her eyes. She blinked her eyes to stop herself from crying. Kevin''s heart ached seeing her like this. Now more than ever, he felt sorry for her. "Why won''t you believe me? Why do you keep torturing me?" Anne said, her tone exposing her despair. He''d never seen her like this before. She''d always hoped that even just once, he would believe her. But he never did. He always chose to believe Cherry over her. Kevin''s chest tightened as an array ofplex emotions surged inside him. For some reason, Anne''s words hit him like a brick, leaving a bitter taste in his mouth. For a while, they held each other''s gaze in silence. At this moment, Anne longed for him to say that he believed her. This was all she wanted. Just as he was about to open his mouth, the image of Anne pushing Cherry suddenly came to his mind. At that instant, his eyes turned cold. He pushed her away and said snidely, "Anne, stop acting innocent in front of me. No matter what you say, I won''t believe you!" Flustered as he was and won over by her words, he was almost deceived by her pretense. An ironic smile tugged at the corners of Anne''s mouth. "Yes, I was just acting pitiful and innocent. I thought you would believe but I didn''t expect that your hatred for me ran so deep. You refuse to believe me even if I''m such a good actress." She felt as if her heart was being pricked by a thousand needles. She was done. There was no use trying to convince a man who hated her to the core. "Anne, you!" Kevin growled. Was this damn woman trying to y tricks on him? He couldn''t believe he almost fell for her act! What a scheming woman! Rage seeped inside him along with traces of disappointment. Perhaps, deep inside, he hoped that she wasn''t the vicious woman he thought her to be. "Mr. Kevin, you shouldn''t believe anything a despicable woman like me says because anything that Anne taunted, smiling disdainfully. Kevin was fuming. It was almost as if she was trying to purposely drive him mad. "Anne, are you trying to get yourself killed?" Kevin gnashed his teeth. If Anne weren''t pregnant, he would''ve hit her already. "If you''re not scared of hurting the baby, go on, do whatever you want!" Anne shrugged her shoulders, maintaining herposure. She knew Kevin wouldn''t do anything to her for the baby''s sake. She was well aware that the moment she gave birth to this baby, he would get rid of her as if she was day-old bread. With a loud bang, Kevin hurled the tablemp on the floor. The sound of ss shattering filled the room as he mmed his fist on the wall, consequently bruising his hand. Anne was startled. When she saw his injured hand, her heart twitched. Kevin red at her, the look on his face murderous. Hearing the ruckus, Cherry rushed inside. She thought Anne was making a mess and wanted to see for herself what was going on. Thest thing she expected was to see Kevin in Anne''s room. "Kevin, what are you doing here? What happened?" She quickly walked over to him, pretending to be anxious. Kevin kept a straight face, still not saying a word as he fixated his gaze on Anne. Cherry followed suit and shot Anne a cold look. After a while, she looked back at Kevin once more. When she finally noticed his injured hand, she eximed, "Kevin, are you hurt? What happened?" Carefully holding his hand, she began shedding tears. When Kevin felt her hot tears trickle at the back of his hand, he collected himself. "Don''t cry. It''s just a minor wound." He gently wiped the tears away from Cherry''s face. "I don''t like seeing you get hurt..." Tears streamed down her cheeks. Kevin was moved by Cherry''s concern. Only Anne could see right through her act. Chapter 62 Going To The Company Together Chapter 62 Going To The Company Together "Don''t cry. It isn''t even serious. It''ll heal in no time." Cherry kept sobbing. Instead of feeling bad for her, Kevin felt exasperated. He wanted to get angry but he didn''t have a reason to. "Is this because of Anne?" Cherry dabbed her tears dry, ncing at Anne who was sitting on her bed. Why else would Kevin be here? More so, his hand was injured. This definitely had something to do with her. At the thought of this, Cherry sharpened her gaze towards Anne. Anne remained unperturbed, looking back at her calmly. After all, she was already used to this. "It has nothing to do with her. I hurt my hand on my own," Kevin negated, casting a cold nce at Anne. Cherry seemed mildly surprised that Kevin technically defended Anne. The resentment inside her heightened as she continued to glower at Anne. Who knew what Anne did to make Kevin suddenly act this way? It seemed that she had underestimated her cousin. "Kevin, let me bandage you up first. Look at your hand. It''s bleeding." Cherry pulled Kevin, intending to leave with him. Kevin followed behind her. With that, Anne withdrew her gaze, feeling a pang of pain shoot in her heart. She almost lost her cool just now as she began to feel concern for him. Still, she made sure to keep calm and collected. If she showed any traces of worry on her face, he would think she was just acting. Just as he was nearing the door, he stopped and looked back at Anne, a series ofplicated emotions shing through his eyes. All this did not go unnoticed by Cherry. She grew anxious. Why had Kevin''s attitude towards Anne suddenly changed? What really happened here? "Kevin..." Cherry called his name in a low voice, her eyes filled with bitterness. He felt a flicker of irritation but when he looked at her, he gave her a lopsided grin. He took her hand and they left together. Silence restored in the room. Anne''s chest rose and fell with rapid breaths as she thought of Kevin mming his fist into the wall. How angry was he that he used so much force enough to injure his own hand? After a sleepless night, Anne woke up with two dark circles under her eyes. It took her a few days of rest to recover and go back to work. She figured it was much better to be at work rather than deal with Cherry every day at the vi. As soon she stepped out of the vi, Kevin''s red Ferrari pulled over in front of her, blocking her way. Her face contorted. Not wanting to argue with him any longer, she decided to ignore him. "Get in the car!" Kevinmanded. Anne stopped and turned around to look at him, her expression hardened. "Why would I get in the car with you?" Didn''t he just tell her that he wasn''t interested in being around her except when they had to have sex every once in a while ording to the contract. Anger settled over him as he shot her a dirty look. How ungrateful could she be? He was already offering her a ride yet she still had the nerve to snap back at him. "I''m going to work. I can drive you there. Get in the car now," Kevin said inly as he drew in a long breath, suppressing his anger. Anne seemed skeptical. Since when was Kevin so nice to her that he would offer her a ride? She would be lying if she said she wasn''t ttered. Still, she wasn''t naive enough to believe that he would suddenly change overnight. "No, it''s still early. I can use the subway." She didn''t want to be around him because she knew he was only going to be mean to her. Rage consumed him. He had never been rejected by a woman before. Anne really was audacious! "I asked you to get in the car. Did you hear me?" Kevin''s lips drew back in a snarl as he got out of the car and strode towards her. "I said no!" Anne frowned as she jerked away. What was going on with Kevin? He acted as if she owed him the entire world. Why wouldn''t he just leave her alone? "Anne, I''m giving you twenty seconds to get in the car with me or I''m ramming you inside myself!" Smoldering with resentment, he leered at her. Anne knew that he was a man of his word. If she didn''t get in the car, he wouldn''t hesitate to use force to get her inside. With this in mind, she figured it was best if she didn''t resist. She decided to get in the car on her own ord, not wanting to cause any more trouble. He simpered as he watched her settle herself inside the car. He got back inside and started the car. Anne sat quietly in the passenger seat and looked out of the window wordlessly. The atmosphere was thick with an odd tension. He sized her up before breaking the silence and saying, "You didn''t want to see me?" It might have sounded like a question but with his tone, it was hard to tell what he truly felt. "You already know the answer to that," Anne said simply. Kevin paraded his mistress around the vi and spewed out hurtful words towards Anne every day as if it was his job. Why on earth would she want to see him? Kevin wasn''t the least bit surprised with her cold answer. Instead, he seemed a little disappointed. "Maybe if you were as kind as Cherry, I wouldn''t hate you so much," Kevin said nonchntly as he kept his eyes on the road. Anne curled her lips. Why was he always mentioning Cherry? He always brought her up every chance he got. "Well, once you find out the truth, you probably won''t feel the same way." He wouldn''t be able to say that if he found out what really happened. "While you''re still pregnant, I won''t bother you anymore as long as you behave yourself." He would intentionally hurt her every day but as time passed, he eventually found it uninteresting. Now he found himself regretting what he did every time he was mean to her. "What''s up with you these days? Why are you behaving so strangely? Is it because of the baby?" If Kevin had said these words to her before she was pregnant, she would have happily epted them. However, that wasn''t the case now. She knew the only reason why he would be nice to her was because of the baby. As much as she wanted to deny it, she couldn''t. "Of course it''s for the baby. Why? Did you think I was doing it for you?" Anne''s heart sank upon hearing the chilliness in his tone. Having mentally equipped herself for this, she wasn''t too disappointed. "Of course, I know better than to think that." Even though they were married, they were no different from two strangers passing each other by on the street. The air around them was thick with unease. Silence fell upon them. Anne looked straight ahead. From her peripheral vision, she could spot his right hand tightly wrapped in gauze. After a while, she asked, "How''s your hand? Does it still hurt?" Her tone was calm as ever. She was still concerned about him, but she didn''t want him to know. "It''s just a minor wound!" Kevin nced at his injured hand indifferently. Anne seemed visibly relieved. She''d been worrying about his hand sincest night. She was d to hear that he was fine. The two of them had a few more awkward exchanges before arriving at thepany. The moment Anne stepped out of Kevin''s car, she instantly attracted the attention of many people. "What''s going on? Why is she getting off the CEO''s car? Is the world ending?" "I thought Mr. Kevin hated her? Why would he give her a ride? What''s happening?" The employees whispered amongst themselves, openly gossiping about Anne and Kevin. Anne wasn''t new to this¡ªshe had long gotten used to being talked about. Thus, she remained unfazed. Just as she was about to head inside the building, she heard Kevin''s deep voice. "Wait for me here after work. We''ll go home together." He couldn''t stand the idea of her taking the subway when she was well into her pregnancy. While he loathed her, he still couldn''t control himself. Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. "No, thanks. I can go home by myself. I bet Cherry won''t be happy to hear about this." Anne was just doing her best to stay out of trouble. Cherry was a petty woman who would take revenge over the smallest thing. If she found out that Anne went home riding with Kevin, who knew what she could do to Anne? Since Anne was pregnant, she didn''t have much energy to deal with the likes of Cherry nowadays. She longed to spend her days in peace and quiet. "The subway is always crowded. If something happens to the baby, do you think you are able to take the responsibility? You can''t say no to me." Kevin wasn''t all too pleased with Anne rejecting him not only once but twice just this morning alone. Anne snapped her brows together. It seemed that Kevin was getting more and more overbearing. Didn''t he care about Cherry''s feelings anymore? Wasn''t Cherry his sweetheart? "I see," she replied, her tone resigned. There was no point in arguing with him after all. Chapter 63 He Changed Chapter 63 He Changed Kevin was annoyed by Anne''s chilly attitude. This woman was pulling further and further away from him. Her figure gradually disappeared, but the people in the office were still talking about what just happened. Kevin''s face was unhappy and his tone was serious. "Do you alle to the office to babble? If you don''t want to work, head down to HR and turn in your resignation! " In an instant, everyone went back to their cubicles, and a hushed silence fell over the office, save the ringing of phones and the cking of printers. Anne sat in her own office and got to work. The whole morning passed so quickly that she didn''t even notice. Emily, her assistant, walked in and stood beside her. "Anne, what do you want for lunch? Shall we go together or should I get some takeout for you?" As an assistant, Emily was very conscientious. She would even help with the little things. "Let''s go out to lunch. I''m pregnant now, and I should get some exercise." Anne touched her baby bump with her slender hand. As she thought of the little life that was growing inside of her, her heart softened. "Okay, let''s go now. It''s my treat!" Emily took up Anne''s hand happily and looked enthusiastic. Looking at her lovely appearance, Anne couldn''t helpughing. The coldness in her bright eyes faded. It made her seem so much more essible. But when the two of them were about to leave the office hand in hand, someone opened the door to Anne''s office suite. It was Kevin, his tall, slender figure looking very businesslike. The smile on Anne''s face disappeared, and her eyes turned cold again. "Something I can help you with, Mr. Kevin?" Anne''s tone was indifferent and respectful, but it contained no warmth. "Can''t I simplye to see you?" Kevin asked in a calm tone. He frowned at her attempt to create distance. The woman was smiling happily a minute ago. As soon as she saw him, she became reticent. She must really hate him. "Of course you can. You''re the president and everyone here is your employee. You can pop in whenever you want." Her tone was still indifferent. She was a little annoyed. She didn''t know what was wrong with Kevin these days. He always did something unusual and deliberately found something to yell at her for. But to avoid an argument, she just simply took it. Looking at Anne unhappily, Kevin was even angrier. Her indifferent attitude made him really mad. "It''s lunch time. You can have lunch with me." He was cold and impatient, and his statement sounded more like amand than anything else. Anne looked at Kevin in surprise, wondering if he was out of his mind. He wanted to have lunch with her? What was wrong with him? When she came to her senses, Anne looked at him calmly and refused without hesitation. "No, thanks. I told Emily I''d have lunch with her. I don''t have time to eat with you. So if you don''t mind..." She knew what was he was thinking. Anne didn''t want to be alone with him, even for a second. "So, Emily¡ªyou''re having lunch with Anne?" Kevin looked at Emily and raised his voice as if he was asking, but there was a threat in that question somewhere. "Well, Anne and I were still figuring that out." She gave Anne a panicked look and tried to avoid a confrontation with Kevin. Surprised, Anne looked at Emily with dissatisfaction in her beautiful eyes. A moment ago, the two of them had made a deal, but this girl told Kevin a different story, which put her in an awkward position. Emily looked at Kevin. "Anne''s got to be starving by now. So go ahead and take her out if you want. I have something else to do, so I''ll leave you two alone." After she said this, Emily winked at Anne, signaling her to seize the opportunity and slip away quickly. Seeing that, Anne felt a little taken aback. Emily did know how Kevin treated her, but this girl still wanted her to go out with Kevin. How ridiculous! "Do you have time now?" There was a hint of a smile in Kevin''s ck eyes. He actually found this woman quite cute. "Kevin, what do you want? I didn''t do anything wrong, did I?" Anne couldn''t stand the man, and there he was again. Her expression showed that she was exasperated. This man''s attitude made her feel a little uneasy. She was used to his cold words. "Did I say you did anything wrong?" While frowning slightly, Kevin was also annoyed by Anne''s attitude. What kind of person did she think he was? He just wanted to have lunch with her. "You seem to want to cause drama all the time. If you''re not happy with my job performance, just tell me. Quit bugging me!" Anne couldn''t stand Kevin''s attitude anymore, and she blew up at him. This man really made her blood boil. He hated her a lot, but he was good at doing a 180 and giving her false hope. She really hated his back and forth, because she never knew what to expect. Talk about hot and cold running men! "Do you think I''m causing drama and bugging you now?" Kevin said this slowly, his face turning stony. This damn woman thought he was bothering her. He had better things to do. "Yeah. You almost make me think you care about me." Content held by N?velDrama.Org. When she said that, there was a self-mocking smile on Anne''s face. He didn''t care about her. He even said as much. "What I care about is the baby you''re carrying!" This was not what he intended to say. The words just got altered the moment they when they left his mouth. His uncaring expression only made her resent him more. "Don''t worry, I''ll take good care of the baby." Anne tried to rein in her emotions so she could speak calmly. "You look so frail. Think I can turn a blind eye to that? As far as I can tell, you haven''t gained any weight since your pregnancy, instead you''ve lost a lot." This woman was too skinny. She said she could take good care of herself. Most of the time, she really didn''t know how to take care of herself. Anne looked at Kevin in surprise. She didn''t expect him to pay so much attention to her. But soon she realized that he just cared about the baby. It was normal for him to notice such trivial things like her weight. She had to remind herself it was all about the kid. "Let''s go have lunch!" Kevin didn''t want to argue with Anne anymore, so he took her hand and strode out with her. Anne had wanted to take her hand back, but she was a little reluctant to part with him. He still had a ce in her heart. The temperature of his palm melted her icyposure. Everyone''s eyes widened and their jaws dropped. They were holding hands! Since when were they that close? "What the hell is going on? What''s wrong with Mr. Kevin? I thought he hated her." "He does. Or at least, I thought he did. Why is he being so nice to her? Anne took the CEO''s car to the office this morning." "Do you think this means something? Is he really going to be with Anne, then?" After they left, people began to gossip, and Anne and Kevin were all they could talk about. As soon as she walked in the office, Cherry heard people talking about this. Anger instantly welled up in her beautiful eyes. If she hadn''te at just the right time, she wouldn''t even have known that Anne managed to get so close to Kevin. "Ahem!" Cherry deliberately coughed and nced coldly at the employees chatting among themselves. What they were talking about made her unhappy. They looked around at the source of the sound she made. When they saw Cherry, theypsed into awkward silence. Everyone looked at her, embarrassed for the moment. It wasn''t long before a couple employees approached her. "Miss Cherry! You''re here. Looking for the president?" "Please sit here and make yourselffortable, Miss Cherry. I''ll make you a cup of coffee." Everyone knew that Cherry was the apple of Kevin''s eye, so they tried their best to please her. After all, this woman was very likely to be the future wife of their president. They wanted to make sure they weren''t on her hit list. Cherry nced at the people beside her and struggled to keep her tone indifferent. "Did you just say that Kevin took Anne to lunch?" Cherry hated her to death, but she pretended to be calm. "Yes. A moment ago, the two of them were holding hands. Miss Cherry, you have to be careful of Anne." One of the women sat in next to Cherry and tried to remind her. "I don''t need to be careful. Anne is my cousin." She stressed the word "cousin". Cherry hated her cousin, though. And the fact that she stole her man when she was away was just too much. "Miss Ye, you are too kind. Anne''s not as innocent and kind-hearted as you. I think she''s trying to take Kevin away from you!" One of them kept reminding Cherry of this, in a tone full of disgust for Anne. "That''s right. Anne''s pretty hot. What if the CEO bes infatuated with her? What if she uses that to her advantage? So, Miss Cherry, you do have to be careful." As Cherry heard this, the smile on her face froze, and her beautiful eyes grew even colder. If that was what Anne wanted, Cherry had to stop her. Kevin was her man and she was the future wife of the president of thepany! She would never let Anne have a chance. "Just stop talking about it. I know Kevin loves me more than anyone. He won''t let me down." Forcing a smile, Cherry pretended not to care. Chapter 64 Ironic Chapter 64 Ironic They came to a high-end French restaurant. The lights were low and strategically ced. The floor incorporated a white and ck checkered design; the walls were dark gray, covered in vintage art, and the tables were small and white. The chairs were made of wood and wicker, alternating between in and ck. The tables were made for couples to be closer to each other. While looking at the loving couples in the restaurant, Anne felt that this was the most unlikely spot for her and Kevin to eat. Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. People who came here were usually the closest lovers, and the two of them did not fit that description at all. "I think we''d better find another restaurant," Anne said. "This really isn''t us." She looked at Kevin to gauge his reaction. He frowned and looked at her unhappily, inexplicable anger shone in his ck eyes. "Why not? What''s wrong with this ce?" Kevin knew what she was thinking, and that was why he was even less happy. "Take a look around. See that couple? And that one? Everyone here is very much in love. Don''t you think it''s kind of ironic for us to grab a meal here?" Anne couldn''t ept the fact that she was having lunch with Kevin in a warm and romantic setting like this one. "Not really. A man and his wife should be fine eating here." The more this woman wanted to escape, the more he wanted to stay here for lunch. "You know our marriage is a sham, right? It''s a contractual agreement. You''re the one that keeps reminding me." Her words were still calm. She felt a sense of relief when she thought of it. Their rtionship would be over the moment the baby was born. "Even if it is a contract, you''re still my wife. I don''t want to hear you bring that up again!" Kevin reminded Anne coldly as he dragged her to a seat. The two of them sat face to face, and their expressions were passionless. Anne looked away. "Mr. Kevin, we haven''t seen you in forever!" The manager of the restaurant came to greet Kevin as soon as he found his VIP. Kevin''s face softened. He looked at the restaurant manager and replied indifferently, "I''ve been busy. And that gives me a healthy appetite." "Right. You must be very busy since you have such a bigpany to manage. Who is your guest? You usuallye here with Miss Cherry." Although Kevin looked indifferent, the restaurant manager was quite enthusiastic. When she heard Cherry''s name, Anne frowned. A sh of disgust shed through her beautiful eyes, and she felt a little bitter in her heart. So he''d been to this restaurant before¡ªand he''d brought Cherry along. At the same time, Kevin''s eyes turned cold when he heard the restaurant manager''s words. "Two filet Mignons, medium well. Open a bottle of Bordeaux red wine. I need some juice, too; my wife is pregnant and can''t drink wine." The manager was taken aback. He hadn''t expected that this was Kevin''s wife. He knew he said something wrong and felt a little flustered. "Yes, Mr. Kevin. It''ll be just a moment." The manager tried cover up his embarrassment, but it was too awkward. He left a little hastily. There were only two people left at the table, but the atmosphere was oppressive in the extreme. Anne''s face was even colder than before. And Kevin was even more annoyed by her reaction. Soon, the waiter served the food Kevin had ordered. Anne ate in silence. She didn''t feel like talking. "All out of words? That''s not like you." Kevin frowned and looked at Anne unhappily, with mes shining in his ck eyes. "We have nothing to talk about." Anne cut the steak calmly without raising her eyes to look at him. "But I think we have a lot to talk about! Anne, do you really hate me, or are you deliberately ying hard to get?" Kevin didn''t believe any woman would change her attitude towards him so soon. She was unmoved by his grand gestures. Maybe she was trying to attract his attention. Hard to get? He was too narcissistic. The reason why she was so cold to him then was that she had given up. "Does it matter? You''re not going to listen to a word I say." No matter what she said, Kevin would not believe her. "Anne, I hate when you get like this, when you''re so damn apathetic." Damn it! He used to hope that she''d keep her distance. And then when that happened, he felt as if he''d lost something. "Isn''t that what you want? Please don''t bother me again, Kevin. After I give birth to the baby, we''ll have nothing to do with each other." Anne couldn''t stand this man. He hated her, but always found time to bother her. It had taken some doing, but she pushed him out of her heart. And here he was worming his way back in. It wasn''t fair. Kevin looked at Anne sullenly. His anger was building, and he had no outlet. This woman wanted to distance herself from him? "Don''t worry. After you give birth, you''ll get your wish!" After saying that, Kevin lost his appetite and left. Watching him leave, Anne breathed a sigh of relief and felt much more rxed. She ate the steak in her te quietly and then walked out of the restaurant. Looking at the sun high above her, she sighed helplessly. It was so hot and she had to walk back to the office in the sun. After she had taken two steps, Kevin''s car stopped in front of her. "You haven''t left yet?" Anne looked at him in surprise. She thought he had left a long time ago, but she didn''t expect him to be waiting around. She had been alone in the restaurant for at least ten minutes, which meant he had been waiting here all the time? As she thought of that, some part of her heart started to soften. "Get in the car now. Do you want a tan?" Kevin said in a cold tone, sounding very unhappy, as if he were still angry about what she said. Anne really didn''t want to get in the car, but she had little choice if she wanted shade. Plus she was pregnant. Even if she didn''t care about herself, she had to think about the baby. Kevin had been waiting until then, probably because he was worried about the baby. If she weren''t pregnant, he would have left long ago. She got into the car and Kevin started the engine after giving her an uncaring look. He didn''t say a word the whole way back, as if she hadpletely irritated him. The situation was depressing but Anne was much relieved. When they arrived at the office, Kevin parked his car and walked into thepany without sparing a nce at her. Anne got used to it, so she didn''t know there was anything wrong. She watched him enter the office building, then she walked toward thepany, too. As soon as she entered the office, Emily quickly followed behind her. She looked at her curiously, excitement in her lovely eyes. "So, how''d it go? Are you closer with the president?" She was more curious about the rtionship between Anne and Kevin than anyone else. Anne red at her. "You''ve got some exining to do. Why did you lie to Kevin about our lunch ns?" Emily had pushed them together. Anne was not happy. With a guilty smile, Emily started speaking a mile a minute. "Look, I did it for you. I thought if you guys could get some alone time, maybe things would improve. They could only get better, right?" "You know what he''s like," Anne said with a smile of self-mockery. "How can anything get better?" Of course, she knew Kevin was kind to her at times, but his disgust for her was deeply rooted in his bones. Their rtionship would probably be like that for the rest of their lives. Emily felt sorry, sorry for Anne, sorry she set things up. She knew how Kevin treated her, and that they never seemed to get along. "Anne, don''t say that. I think he loves you. He just can''t always show it. I see him doing little things that make me think he cares." Through careful observation, Emily discovered when Kevin looked at Anne, his eyes were no longer reflected the disgust they used to. "That''s just because of the baby. Without this little guy..."¡ª she patted her belly¡ª"...his attitude wouldn''t have changed at all." What Emily said didn''t work on Anne, because she knew that Kevin hated her. She''d known it for a long time. Emily sighed helplessly. Anne had been hurt too many times, so she couldn''t believe it. For a moment, Emily couldn''t help but feel sorry for her friend. "All right, Anne. Let''s not dwell on this. It''s bad for the baby. Hey, I''m thirsty. How does a ss of milk sound?" Putting her arm around Anne''s shoulder, Emilyforted her and tried to lighten the mood. Cherry waited impatiently in the president''s office, Kevin and Anne had been out to lunch for a long time, but they hadn''te back yet. She felt uneasy. His attitude towards Anne had changed. She could see it in his eyes. He didn''t hate Anne as much as before. That was not what she wanted to see. Finally, when she was about to lose her patience, someone opened the door. Kevin''s slender figure appeared in the doorway. He didn''t look good, frowning. "Hi Kevin. Did you miss me?" Cherry stood up and walked towards him with a gentle smile on her face. A trace of surprise shed through Kevin'' ck eyes when he saw her, but soon it was reced by tenderness. "Cherry, why are you here?" There was no emotion in his voice. "I missed you so much. I wanted to have lunch with you, but you and Anne had left by the time I got here." Cherry said Anne''s name on purpose. She wanted to take a close look, find out how he reacted. She took everything into ount, even actions Kevin did unconsciously. He frowned slightly and his eyes became deeper. "Why didn''t you call me before you got here? If I knew you wereing, I would have waited for you." Chapter 65 Im Ignoring You Chapter 65 I''m Ignoring You Kevin ignored Cherry''s mention of Anne and continued to walk towards her to hold her delicate hand. His tone was unusually gentle. His eyes were soft but there was no warmth in there, like he was a heartless person. For the first time in his life he didn''t feel excited to see Cherry. Instead, he felt a pang of disappointment. "I didn''t tell you in advance because I didn''t want to dy your work. You''re already so busy every day, and yet you still have time to spare to apany me. I''m already satisfied with that," Cherry said seductively with tenderness on her face. Her words were soforting that people would have felt an urge to hold her in their arms. "My Cherry, you''ve always been so considerate," he whispered in a doting manner as he held her in his arms. Upon hearing this, happiness shed across her eyes but it quickly turned to coldness when she thought of Anne. "Kevin, don''t you hate Anne anymore? I feel that you''ve started to care about her recently," Cherry asked cautiously after a brief silence. Sensing the jealousy that wasced on her words, Kevin stroked her hair endearingly and exined, "I only care about her because she has my baby, that''s all. Don''t think about it too much." He thought about what Anne had said that day and he felt unhappy. "Kevin, that''s not what I meant. You should care about Anne as she''s pregnant," Cherry exined anxiously, worried that her good image in the man''s heart would be affected. She was well aware that Kevin liked her because she was a considerate and kind woman, traits that she pretended to have. She was afraid that those slip of selfish words might change his feelings towards her, so she immediately took them back. "I know that you didn''t mean what you said. I just wanted to make you feel at ease. In my heart, you are the only woman that deserves my love." Kevin embraced her tightly, sealing his promise. Remembering Anne''s cold face, he felt a little depressed. Since the woman was so ungrateful, he would never show concern for her in the future. He wanted to see how long she could hold on. After her lover had reassured her, relief washed over Cherry''s heart. In return, she promised herself that she wouldn''t allow Anne to have a chance to contact him. They spent a long time inside Kevin''s office. When she was about to leave, she walked past Anne''s office. Her eyes turned cold as she strode in. "Emily, bring me the real estate documents," Annemanded without raising her head, thinking that it was her secretary who pushed the door open. "What an arrogant woman! How dare you order me around?" Cherry said in her sharp voiceced with sarcasm. Her vicious eyes were emotionless. The hatred in her heart was so strong she wanted to skin Anne alive. Upon hearing her venomous tone, Anne put down the documents in her hands and looked up to her. "What are you doing here? It''s working hours, I don''t have any time to spare for you." She knew that nothing good would happen in her cousin''s presence. The moment she saw her, she felt inexplicably irritated. All she wanted at that time was for Cherry to leave as soon as possible. "You''re getting on my nerves. Don''t you know that? If Kevin finds out that you''re talking to me this way, what do you think he''ll do?" Cherry spat out on purpose as her beautiful eyes burned with anger at Anne''s cold voice. She knew that he was Anne''s weakness so she used that to her advantage. Being threatened by Cherry, Anne felt the same hatred burst out from her eyes. She disliked being threatened the most. "If you are not afraid of ruining your good image in his heart, you should probably tell him. Isn''t that your strong point?" She already had a bad image in Kevin''s mind, so she didn''t care about maintaining a fa?ade in front of him. "How dare you talk to me in that way! You''re so full of yourself just because you''re pregnant with his child. Don''t forget that you''re just a tool for surrogacy. Once the child is born, you''re as good as nothing to him!" When Anne heard the word "surrogate", she felt as if her heart was stabbed from inside. The rtionship she had with Kevin was like a thorn in her heart. As long as it prickled, a dull pain would always emerge. She was getting pale as she turned to stare at Cherry with so much hatred. "Before I give birth to this baby, you are nothing but a mistress. What qualifications do you think you have toe here and teach me a lesson? Do you think you have the right to dere ownership?" She was not a fool. She knew why the woman had made trouble for her too many times. Cherry didn''t feel at ease even though Kevin was attracted to her pretentious kindness. Perhaps she was worried that her true colors would be exposed. She failed to marry Kevin as she wished, which had always weighed heavily on her heart. If it weren''t for the fact that Anne was the only one who could give birth to his child, she would have be Kevin''s wife long ago. "Don''t act too proud, Anne. Let''s see how long you can keep that arrogance of yours! The moment you give birth to that baby, Kevin wouldn''t spare you a nce even if you cry and beg." After saying those savage words, Cherry stared daggers at her again. The pregnant woman frowned and red back at her. Those words had been used too many times to threaten her. "Aren''t you worried that you might not get what you want? Cherry, Kevin will see through your facade one day!" She refused to believe that Cherry could keep her mask of a good woman for a lifetime. Kevin was just bewitched by her beguiling beauty for the time being. As a smart man, he would soon find out that something was wrong. "You don''t have to worry about that. You better look after yourself more because once the baby is born, you''re as good as worthless!" Cherry snorted and looked at her with disdain. As long as she became Kevin''s wife, she would do anything just make him fall head-over-heels for her. Employees outside Anne''s office looked at them. With a need to avoid any rumors and further arguments Anne said coldly, "It''s office hours. Please leave." She got up and showed her the way out. "Humph! Anne, I''ll wait and see the day you''re kicked out!" she voiced out, stomping her feet on her way to the door. The moment Cherry stepped out, Emily immediately rushed in. She was worried about Anne. "Anne, what happened? What was Cherry doing in here?" Emily knew that Cherry had always been hostile towards Anne. Because of that, she never liked that woman either. "Nothing. She was just looking for something to vent out her frustrations," Anne dismissed, trying to Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. avoid the topic. "How can there be such a terrible woman in this world? She always causes trouble for you. She would even go as far as framing you for something you didn''t do!" Emily thought of what the woman had done to hurt her friend and she couldn''t help but defend her wholeheartedly. Cherry was the most horrible woman she had ever met. She was wicked in and out but she pretended to be kind in front of other people. It was annoying to see that people fell for her act. "It''s alright. Just ignore her." Cherry became more undisguised when it came to her hostility towards Anne, but at least it felt more genuine. If Cherry pretended to care about her, she would have felt like a hypocrite. Anne would rather see her true face. "Don''t take what she said to the heart. She said that on purpose to piss you off. You''re pregnant, you shouldn''t stress yourself over this matter," Emily uttered in concern as she looked at Anne''s t belly. "I''m fine. I know that it''s not worth getting angry for." She looked at herpanion who seemed to be more affected when it came to her encounter with Cherry. "By the way, how are you doing with Sam?" Anne asked Emily as if she remembered something. Upon hearing his name, Emily''s heart ached and disappointment soon overwhelmed her face, but she quickly concealed it. "What do you mean? What would even happen between him and I?" she looked away and asked in an unnatural tone. "Do you think I wouldn''t figure it out? You like Sam, don''t you?" A long time ago, Anne found out that Emily had feelings for Sam. She honestly felt that they seemed like a good match. Emily''s expressions became more unnatural with every word Anne said, and there was a trace of sadness buried in her eyes. "Even if I like him, so what? He doesn''t like me back." A bitter smile appeared at the corner of her lips. Anne had never seen her in such a depressive state. It seemed that Emily truly liked Sam. "Who says he doesn''t like you? I do think that he loves you," Anne said and patted her shoulder. She didn''t want to see Emily upset. But for Emily, it was nothing more than a pitiful attempt tofort her. "Anne, please don''t say that just to appease me. If Sam really did like me, howe I don''t feel it? We have known each other for years. He has always been so indifferent towards me," she said in a muffled tone. Her heart was overwhelmed with disappointment as she lowered her head. Chapter 66 Accompanying Her For Prenatal Checkups Chapter 66 Apanying Her For Prenatal Checkups Emily had known Sam for so many years. If he really liked her, how could she not feel it at all? And she knew the one he liked was Anne. "Anne, you don''t have tofort me. I''m fine with it." Emily smiled bitterly, her tone disappointed. Seeing her so unconfident, Anne frowned helplessly. One had to learn some things by oneself, because other people''s experiences were only suggestions. "Well, I believe that you two can be together. But now the most important thing is to work. Don''t think about these things anymore." Anne didn''t want to see her upset, so she smiled and changed the topic. "Well, I''ll go and sort out the real estate information for you first." Emily was a very dedicated assistant. When she heard what Anne had just said, she immediately started to focus on her work. "Go ahead." Anne gave her a faint smile with appreciation in her beautiful eyes. After parting ways with Kevin on bad terms that day, their rtionship seemed to return to normal. Every time they met, Kevin put on a cold face, but his words were less vicious than in the past. Even so, Anne was satisfied with how things were now. At least, she didn''t have to hear his hurtful words anymore. One day after work, she was at the bus station, waiting for the bus. A bright silver Ferrari stopped slowly, and Kevin''s handsome face appeared behind the window. Seeing it was him, Anne looked away on purpose. "Get in the car! I''m going back too. I''ll take you home!" Kevin said impatiently, while frowning with dissatisfaction. "No, thanks. I have to go to the hospital." Anne didn''t want to get in his car at all, not to mention be with him alone. "What are you going to do in the hospital? Are you not feeling well?" Kevin''s frown deepened as an almost imperceptible trace of worry appeared in his ck eyes. "I need to do a prenatal check-up to check the baby''s heath." Anne didn''t try to hide it because he had the right to be up to date with the baby''s health. At that, a wave of relief washed over Kevin''s face. He had thought there was something wrong with her. "I''ll go with you." Somehow, Kevin wanted her to be with him at that moment. Anne''s expression clouded up irritably. She had just enjoyed two peaceful days. What did he want to do now? "No, thanks. I want to go by myself!" Her voice was cold and alienated. "The baby is mine. I have the right to know everything about him!" Kevin replied with a serious expression. He wanted to remind her of his role in that situation. She had always been a stubborn woman, and that gave him a really hard time. Rendered speechless by Kevin''s words, Anne felt even more annoyed. She kept standing there with no intention of getting in the car. "Anne, do you want me to carry you inside?" At her stubbornness, Kevin''s face darkened and his tone grew aggressive. How could that woman ignore his requests? Damn it! When did he be so invisible! His way of threatening was really unique! Throwing him a cold stare, Anne had nned to stand her ground till the end, but she felt pressured by the strange looks of the people around her. "Hey, can you drive your car away? You are in front of the bus!" a middle-aged woman said to Kevin with discontent after drawing near the car. Herint didn''t annoy him. On the contrary, he looked at Anne with a smile. "If you don''t get in the car, I won''t move from here. What do you think these women will do? Will they criticize you?" shing a yful smirk, Kevin wanted to see how tough that little woman was. Anne glowered at him. That man was really annoying! Gritting her teeth, she got in the car and mmed the door shut, as if she was taking her anger out on it. "This car is worth twenty-six million dors. If you break the door, you will probably have to pay me over a million for the reparation." Kevin turned to look at Anne with a content smile on his lips. That woman looked cute when she was angry. Over a million? Was he ripping her off? Although she was intimidated by the figure Kevin had mentioned, Anne maintained herposure. "Your car is so expensive. Howe would it break so easily? Is it made of paper?" Anne retorted coldly, refusing to be outdone. She knew that Kevin was deliberately trying to me her. "You used too much strength. No matter how expensive the car is, the door can still break if you m it like that." Kevin was amused by her angry look. Left speechless, Anne could only re at him. Original content from N?velDrama.Org. "It''s almost time for my appointment with the doctor. Are we going or not?" she asked, while ncing anxiously at the watch on her wrist. She couldn''t tell how much time she had wasted because of Kevin. But if she had taken the bus, she would almost be at the hospital at that time. Throwing her onest look, Kevin started the car and drove toward the hospital. He was a good driver and made it to their destination quickly. Standing in the corridor of the hospital, Anne was nervous and expectant. Kevin was surprised to see her like this. He had never seen her so emotional. After taking a few deep breaths, Anne knocked on the door of the doctor''s office. "Hello, doctor. I''m Anne," she said, while entering cautiously. "I have an appointment at four o''clock." "Okay. I''ll check your information first." The doctor smiled gently at her and took the documents handed to her. "You are in the early stage of pregnancy." The doctor put down the documents after examining them. "Come and have a check-up with me first." Anne stood up and followed the doctor into the color ultrasonic room without sparing a nce at Kevin. He followed them in. While the doctor was carrying out Anne''s color ultrasound examination, he was watching carefully too. Somehow, it felt like that he was a husband who apanied his wife for a prenatal check-up. Anne''s heart was pounding nervously in her chest. After the ultrasound examination, the doctor asked them to wait outside. "Why are you so nervous?" Seeing the anxiety on Anne''s face, Kevin raised his eyebrows and asked in an indifferent tone, "Do you really care about this child? The baby is in my body now. Shouldn''t I be nervous?" Dissatisfied with Kevin''s question, she spoke in a cold voice. It was the first time that she had a living being growing inside of her. How could she not be nervous? Instead of being annoyed with her answer, he felt sorry for her. As soon as the baby would be born, she was destined to part ways with him forever. Would she be able to bear such pain? Just as Kevin was about to say something, the doctor came out of the ultrasonic room. She held a color ultrasound picture in front of the two and pointed at a blurry figure. "Look. This is your child. It is still young and not fully developed. But it is very healthy." Although it was just a vague spot, Anne seemed to feel her child as she stared at the picture. A satisfied smile blossomed on her face. She hadn''t been so happy in a long time. Kevin looked at her in amazement. Her beautiful and simple smile seemed to shake off the numbness in his eyes. Seeing her joy, he couldn''t help but smile too. His state of mind seemed to have improved recently because of her smile. As she walked out of the hospital, Anne couldn''t take her eyes off the ultrasound picture she was holding tightly in her hand. "It''s just a blurry picture. Is it worth for you to be so happy?" Kevin was quite puzzled and couldn''t figure out what that woman was thinking. Was she satisfied so easily? He clearly remembered that she cared about fame and fortune very much. Otherwise, she would not have asked to be the vice president of thepany when she promised to give birth to his child. "The baby is not in your body. You can''t feel what it is like to be a mother." Cradling the ultrasound picture carefully in her hands, she looked ahead. From that day on, she would save every examination sheet of the baby and keep them safe. After all, the time he grew in her body was the only time she could spend with him. After the birth, she would never see her child again, so she had to make some memories with him. "Anne, I advise you not to get too attached to this baby, or you will be the only one who will suffer in the end." The loving look on her face annoyed Kevin even more. He couldn''t help but imagine how hurt this woman would be after getting separated from her child. "Kevin, do you think everyone is as cold-blooded as you? Whether I love my child or not has nothing do to with you!" What was that man taking about? Why didn''t he let her love her child? She didn''t understand how he could be so ruthless. "You know I won''t let you see each other after the baby is born. I said that for your own good." Kevin looked at Anne with a frown quickly forming on his forehead. Did she understand that he did it for her good? He just didn''t want her to suffer in the future. Kevin''s words cut through her chest like a sharp sword, draining all the color from her face. She felt sad at the thought that she would never see her child after it was born. Chapter 67 You Have No Right To Say No Chapter 67 You Have No Right To Say No Even though Anne knew that she was going to be separated from the baby as soon as she gave birth, that didn''t stop her from loving the baby anyway. "Don''t worry. I won''t go back on my promise," she said lightly as she lowered her gaze. Distress filled Kevin''s chest upon hearing this. He wanted to say something tofort her but for some reason, he couldn''t bring himself to. What was he doing? How could he suddenly havepassion for her? Was he forgetting how despicable she truly was? She was probably only saying that to further whatever her motives were. Kevin pulled a long face at the thought of this as he started the car wordlessly. When they arrived at the vi, he pulled over the car in front of the gate. "Get off. I''m going to park the car." Anne shot him a sidelong nce before quickly getting off. Now that she wasn''t anywhere near him, she felt much more rxed now. At that moment, it just so happened that Cherry had been waiting outside for Kevin toe home. She saw the exact moment that Anne had gotten out of the car. Anger rose in her like a tide. Why did Anne get out of Kevin''s car? She was probably seducing Kevin again! Smoldering in fury, she strode towards Anne. Anne could instantly tell that Cherry was fuming so she walked past her, intending to ignore her. However, Cherry wasn''t going to let her go just that easily. "Stop!" Cherry shouted to Anne''s back, her eyes full of hostility. Anne stopped in her tracks, a cold look on her face. She was also furious in her heart. "What''s up?" She looked at Cherry icily, her tone emotionless. "Why did you get out of Kevin''s car just now? What did you do to seduce Kevin again?" Cherry used, eyes burning with rage. "Do I owe you an exnation? What right do you have to question me?" Anne looked at Cherry with disdain, her eyes even colder than Cherry''s. At the end of the day, she was still Kevin''s wife while Cherry was nothing but a mistress. Cherry did not have the right to talk to her like that. As far as Cherry was concerned, only she upied Kevin''s heart. Anne was the one who destroyed her rtionship with him. "I have all the right in the world. The minute you and Kevin divorce, he''ll marry me. You should know that better than anyone," Cherry said haughtily. "Then talk to me again when you''re Kevin''s wife already. Before that happens, you''re still nothing." Anne glowered at Cherry. What irked her the most was how smug Cherry was. It was like a thorn that pricked her heart. Anne''s rtionship with Kevin had only be the mess it was now because of Cherry. If it weren''t for her, maybe things would be different. Original content from N?velDrama.Org. "Anne, I''m warning you. You better stay away from Kevin. He''s mine." Since Cherry didn''t win Kevin over by fair means, she was constantly worried that he would be taken away from her. From the very beginning, she could tell that Kevin treated Anne differently. That was precisely why she sabotaged Anne so that Kevin would hate her. Just as Anne was about to retort, she saw Kevin approaching them. She knew that if she said something, Kevin would only take Cherry''s side so she shut her mouth. "Cherry, what are you doing here? What are you two talking about?" Kevin frowned slightly as he looked back and forth between the two. "Kevin, I was waiting for you. I saw Anne was here already so I decided to chat with her." Cherry walked towards Kevin and grabbed his arm lovingly. He nced at Cherry''s hands that were wrapped around his arm as a hint of irritation shed through his eyes. He didn''t like it when she was so close to him. Nheless, he wore a gentle smile on his face. "Really? Just a friendly chat? She wasn''t mean to you?" It seemed as if whenever Anne and Cherry interacted with each other, it always ended badly with Cherry being mistreated. Upon hearing this, Anne couldn''t help but wonder just how Kevin saw her. Did he really think she was that horrible? Was he so scared that she would do something to his precious Cherry? Kevin''s seeming concern was not lost on Cherry as she cast a knowing nce at Anne, viciousness burning in her eyes. "No, I was just trying to have a casual chat with her but it looks she doesn''t want to talk to me," Cherry muttered, lowering her head as a way to feign disappointment. Anne swallowed her frustration. It was obvious that Cherry was trying to, once again, get on Kevin''s side by passively badmouthing her. She fixed her cold gaze on Kevin, awaiting his response. Cherry was the apple of Kevin''s eye. He would protect her no matter what especially from Anne. So it shouldn''te as a surprise that as soon as he heard this, he scowled at Anne. "If she doesn''t want to talk to you then just ignore her. She doesn''t deserve to talk to you anyway." Kevin''s tone oozed of disdain and arrogance, a sharp contrast to Anne''s humble manner. A sneer escaped Anne''s mouth¡ªshe''d already expected this. "Kevin, you shouldn''t talk like that. That''s not a very nice thing to say in front of Anne." Cherry smirked to herself when she saw the contempt in Kevin''s eyes. It seemed as if she had nothing to worry about after all¡ªKevin still hated Anne. She purposely sported a dissatisfied look as she gently rubbed Kevin''s shoulder. However, to Kevin, this rubbed off a different way¡ªhe felt like he was being seduced. A woman as lovely as Cherry would no doubt be able to attract any man to protect her and Kevin was no exception. He quickly nted a soft kiss on her face as he said gently, "Cherry, you''re too kind. That''s why people tend to take advantage of you." At the thought of what Anne had done to hurt Cherry, his hatred for Anne intensified. Tears welled up in Anne''s eyes as she watched the intimate scene between the two. She couldn''t help but look away. She couldn''t stand it anymore. She turned around and left. "Where are you going?" She''d barely taken two steps when she heard Kevin''s cold voicee from behind her. She stopped cold in her tracks. "Go back to your room and rest." Without looking back, Anne stalked off. "Did I dismiss you already?" Kevin''s tone was stone cold. Needless to say, he didn''t like that Anne was so calm despite the fact that he and Cherry were overtly being intimate right in front of her very eyes. Confusion surged inside him. He hated Anne to her very core and was very clear what kind of person she was, but he couldn''t help but be drawn towards her. Anne stopped again, balling her hands into fists to suppress her anger. Cherry wasn''t amiss to all this¡ªshe too had noticed Kevin''s strange behavior that seemed to pop up every now and then. She raised her head and shot Kevin a suspicious look. While he was always cold towards Anne, he still inadvertently showed his concern for her. Worried as Cherry was, she couldn''t figure out how Kevin truly felt about Anne. "Anything else?" Anne said indifferently as she turned to Kevin, rage pulsing through her veins. "What''s wrong with you? Didn''t you hear what Cherry just said? Who are you to ignore her? Why aren''t you answering her question?" Kevin looked at Anne with displeasure written across his face. It took all he had to not hit Anne and get rid of that arrogant expression on her face. "Kevin, you''re taking this too far. Don''t I have the right to choose when I want to talk or not? You love Cherry because she''s important to you but that doesn''t mean that I feel the same way. Why should I treat her the way you do? Am I obliged to do that?" Anne spat. This was the first time that she had snapped at Kevin. She couldn''t stand it any longer. She''d been trying to hold herself back for the longest time but this was the final straw. Kevin seemed taken aback that Anne would raise her voice at him. The surprise on his face was quickly reced with anger. "Anne! You have no right to say no in this family!" Kevin strode towards Anne, his aura domineering. How dare she yell at him? Was she trying to get herself in trouble? No woman had ever spoken to him like that¡ªnot even Cherry. "Kevin, watch yourself!" Anne''s eyes glinted as resentment festered inside her. She was slightly trembling, not knowing if it was out of anger or sadness. Cherry sneered as she watched the dispute between the two. There was no doubt in her mind that Anne was trying to provoke Kevin. Since Kevin hated being disrespected the most, he was instantly triggered by Anne''s attitude. "Let it go, Kevin. Don''t make things difficult for her. She''s pregnant. You shouldn''t be fighting with her. Even if you don''t care about her, you should at least think about the baby," Cherry said calmly as she approached Kevin, pretending to be diplomatic. She seemed anxious but Anne could see right through her pretentiousness. Anne red at her. She couldn''t believe such a scheming and hypocritical person could exist! Chapter 68 Her Misfortune With The Fu Family Chapter 68 Her Misfortune With The Fu Family "She should feel lucky that she is pregnant with my child. Otherwise, I won''t let her go easily for treating you like this!" With a snort, Kevin looked down at Anne, his eyes were fiery and intimidating. "Kevin, I know you feel sorry for me, but don''t be too angry. I don''t want to see you like this," Cherry said pretending to be distressed. She clung to Kevin''s arms with a sardonic smile on her face. "Then let''s leave her alone. Let''s go!" Kevin said in a cold tone. He didn''t want to see Anne''s indifferent face that made people want to tear her apart, so he put his arms around Cherry''s shoulder and walked away. When he passed by Anne, he suddenly stopped. Cherry looked at him with a hint of worry in her beautiful eyes. "By the way, my mother ising tonight. I think you should know what to do!" After saying that, he left with Cherry in his arms. Anne was left no chance to speak. She stood still, and waited until the two disappeared in front of her. She looked up to the sky and tried to hold back the tears in her eyes. She wouldn''t cry for him anymore. There were no tears left to cry for him. When she returned to her room, she changed into a more dignified and elegant dress. The light purple dress made her fair skin more delicate. There was no makeup on her face either. It made her look clean andfortable. Since her features were very delicate, even without makeup, she was still undeniably beautiful. It was almost dinner time. Anne waited in the living room early. Although the people of the Fu Family didn''t like her, she was the nominal wife of Kevin, so she had to show respect for the elders. Soon, footsteps were heard from outside the living room. Cherry held the arm of Kevin''s mother, Selma. The two walked in, talking andughing. When Anne saw theming, she was surprised. Since when did Cherry be so familiar with Kevin''s mother? However, at this moment, Anne had no time to overthink about it. She stood up and walked towards Selma in a hurry. "Mom¡­" Anne uttered the word awkwardly. She slightly lowered her head and didn''t dare to look into Selma''s eyes. Seeing the submissive look on Anne''s face, Selma showed a look of disgust and impatience. "Oh Mrs. Anne, your shelf is quiterge, I didn''t see you until I came in. I am wee here, am I?" Selma looked at Anne coldly with obvious repugnance on her face. It was obvious in her very first sentence that she despised Anne so much. Anne slightly frowned and said respectfully, while bearing the displeasure in her heart, "No, mom, you are thinking too much." Anne tried to hide her pain in front of them. Although Selma would no longer be her mother-inw after the baby was born, she still had to respect her before the divorce. "Don''t call me mom, Mrs. Anne. You should be very clear about the rtionship between you and my son. You two are just a contractual couple. After you give birth to the child, we will have nothing to do with each other. So, you''d better stop calling me mom from now on." In Selma''s mind, a vain and vicious woman like Anne didn''t deserve to be her daughter-inw. In her mind, the best choice for her son was Cherry. She saw Cherry as a dignified, kind-hearted, and most of all a refined woman. There was definitely no ce for Anne in the Fu Family. Anne''s face turned pale in embarrassment. She was barely holding back her emotions. Cherry felt so triumphant after witnessing how Selma hated Anne so much. She obviously hoped that Selma would hate Anne even more. But she pretended to be a good person, and spoke for Anne, "Auntie, Anne is pregnant with Kevin''s child. She probably didn''t pick you up because she was not feeling well. Please don''t be angry." Cherry acted like she came from a humble family. She spoke softly, and her words were full of sincerity. This just made Selma more satisfied and determined to be her future mother-inw. "Cherry, that''s so considerate of you. I just came here today to check on Kevin. I didn''t expect you to pick me up personally. I''m sorry to disturb you." Selma seemed to be an angel when she talked to Cherry. It was as if she became apletely different person. Her smile was so sweet, and her eyes could definitely tell how much she wanted Cherry as her future daughter-inw. "Auntie, how can you say that? You are Kevin''s mother. It will always be my pleasure to treat you this way," Cherry answered politely. "Cherry, I''m liking you even more. If only you could give birth to a baby for Kevin, it would be perfect!" Selma said with pity as she looked at Cherry''s beautiful face. If Cherry could give birth to a baby for Kevin, Selma would never let Anne stay with her son. Cherry felt slightly disappointed with what she heard. She also wanted to conceive Kevin''s child. If only she was able to conceive, Anne would not have the chance to stay with him, and she would not be worried every day. "Aunt Selma, it''s all my fault. I''m incapable¡­" Cherry lowered her head and bit her lip. The fact that she wouldn''t be able to conceive Kevin''s child made her feel distressed. Even if they ended up being together in the future, she will not be able to give him a child. She felt so anxious and "How can I me you for this? It''s all because of Kevin''s blood. He needs a specific woman to give birth to his child." Realizing that she had hurt Cherry''s feelings, Selma hurriedlyforted her. Anne just listened to their conversation. They were as close as family, while she was treated like a She lowered her head and smiled bitterly. She felt like a lost child, so lonely and helpless. She really wanted to find someone she could rely on. "Well, Auntie, let''s not stand her anymore. Come on in and have a seat." A hypocritical smile appeared on Cherry''s face again. She held Selma''s arm intimately as they walked to the living room together. "Were you nning keep me standing here and talking?" Selma was even more pissed off when she saw Anne''s expressionless face. At this moment, her tone was somewhat acerbic. "Mom¡­ Auntie, let me make coffee for you." As soon as Anne called out the word ''mom'', she quickly changed her word and went into the kitchen to make coffee for Selma. Selma stared at Anne with so much dissatisfaction as the poor girl went to the kitchen. "Oh my God! She''s a useless piece of crap. She doesn''t even have the least bit of respect for the elders!" Selma walked into the living room with an irritated look. Cherry just followed her and sneered at Anne after hearing what Selma said. "Auntie, Anne has always been like this since childhood. She is always cold to everyone. Don''t take it to heart. It''s bad for your health," Cherry said softly as she sat next to Selma. "s, if it weren''t for the child, I wouldn''t have let Kevin marry this vile woman. But don''t worry, Cherry. After she gives birth to the baby, I will let you marry Kevin as soon as possible." Selma wished she could divorce Anne and Kevin soon. She couldn''t wait for her son to marry Cherry. However, for the sake of the child, Selma must hold her patience a little longer. She had to wait until Anne gave birth to the baby. When Cherry heard Selma''s words, excitement shed into her eyes. "Really? Auntie, do you really approve of me and Kevin?" If she could get Selma''s support, even if Kevin felt a little affection towards Anne, it would be impossible for them to be together because of Selma''s disagreement. "Of course I agree. If I can have a considerate daughter-inw like you, I would treasure you all my life." Selma looked at Cherry sincerely, sping her hands. When Anne came out of the kitchen after making the coffee, she happened to hear their conversation. She could not help but feel bitter and scornful. She had just been pregnant, and the Fu Family had already started to n for the future. After she and Kevin divorced, they would immediately let Kevin marry Cherry. It was ironic for Anne, who was still Kevin''s wife. Ignoring the derisive look of the two women in the living room, she walked over calmly with a cup of coffee in her hand. Content held by N?velDrama.Org. "Auntie, would you like some coffee?" Anne''s tone was indifferent. This time, Selma''s attitude didn''t affect her at all. She had learned to hide her emotions for such a long time. Selma rolled her eyes at Anne, picked up the coffee, and took a sip. However, as soon as she took a sip, she suddenly spit it out. "What kind of coffee are you making? This tastes so terrible!" Selma threw the cup of coffee on the table. "This is the coffee I bought from the supermarket some time ago. The coffee beans imported from Germany have been sold out, so¡­" Anne tried to exin calmly. In fact, when she made coffee just now, she found that the coffee beans imported from Germany where missing, so she had no choice but to use the coffee beans she bought from the supermarket. "The coffee beans from the supermarket? Mrs. Anne, do you think I only deserve some cheap coffee from the supermarket?" Selma was just overly infuriated with Anne''s answer. Her eyes were filled with disgust and anger towards Anne. She felt nothing but hatred for Anne. Chapter 69 Isolated And Helpless Chapter 69 Isted And Helpless "Aunt Selma, I didn''t mean that. I really just couldn''t find coffee beans imported from Germany," Anne apologized sincerely. She felt anxious as she looked at Selma''s infuriated face. She tried her best to calm her down but it seemed like she really had nothing to do with a woman who despised her so much. "Mrs. Anne, are you merely focused on yourself that you don''t take me seriously at all? How could you entertain me with a coffee that even the servants don''t drink?" Selma didn''t listen to Anne''s exnation at all. At this moment, she was really burning with anger. She finally had enough reason to despise her even more. "Aunt Selma, I..." Anne wanted to exin for herself, but she couldn''t find any reason. She saw the coffee beans in the kitchen a few days ago, but why did they suddenly disappear today? What was going on? At first, Anne wanted to tell the truth, but she knew that Selma would not believe her, so she could only doubt it in her heart. "That''s enough, Mrs. Anne. If you don''t wee me here, I will nevere here again!" Selma stood up and was about to leave. Anne wanted her to stay, despite seeing her infuriated face. Cherry was always prepared to be in action. She had already stopped Selma before Anne could. "Auntie, please don''t be angry. I''m sure that Anne didn''t intend to do that I knew that you wereing today, so I prepared some French coffee beans just for you. I didn''t know if you would like them or not, so I didn''t take them out until you got here." Cherry was so used to being a hypocrite, so she had practiced well in showing her sincerest affection towards the people she wanted to grift. She showed her genuine kindness to Selma which made her satisfied even more. Selma''s anger subsided after beingforted by Cherry. She just red at Anne when she sat down. "Auntie, please wait for me here. I''ll take them out now." After saying that, Cherry proudly red at Anne as she quickly walked towards her own room. Soon she handed some coffee beans to Anne. "Anne, can you help me brew a cup of coffee for Aunt Selma? I have to stay here and talk to her, so I don''t have time." Cherry felt so triumphant today. It was like winning a jackpot prize. She gained so much praise from Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. Selma today. She grinned cheerfully as she went back to entertain Selma. Today, Anne hadpletely gave a bad impression on Selma. If Anne pushed herself to live with the Fu Family, she would totally have a hard time. Although Anne knew that Cherry was showing off in front of her on purpose, she had no choice but to take the coffee beans from her. Kevin''s voice came as soon as she walked into the kitchen. "Mom, who angered you just now? I heard that you were quite upset earlier." Kevin came down the stairs, and stood in front of Selma. He looked rather dashing with a smile painted on his face. Selma''s face softened when she saw her dearest son, but when she thought of what Anne had just done, her eyes were still burning with anger. "It''s all because of Anne. She just gave me a cup of coffee that she just bought from the supermarket. She didn''t take me seriously which made me feel so unwee." Kevin frowned after hearing her mother''s rants. His dark eyes red with coldness. "How could this happen?" Kevin raised his voice and narrowed his eyes in anger. "Kevin, Anne is really going too far this time. How could she entertain Aunt Selma this way?" Cherry ignited his anger with her words. Although this was all done on purpose, she sounded euphemistic enough to hide her ulterior motive. Kevin had always thought that Cherry was mindful of his feelings. Hearing her words, he got even angrier. "I see!" he said coldly. No one could figure out what he wanted to do to solve this matter based on the expression on his face. "Auntie, the coffee is ready." A few minutester, Anne put the coffee in front of Selma. She felt more cautious at the moment because of what just happened. She was afraid that she would irritate Selma again in any way. Selma rolled her eyes at Anne, picked up the coffee and took a sip of coffee. "How is it Auntie? Is it good?" Cherry looked at Selma nervously and asked in a soft voice. She put a lot of effort on it to surely impress Selma. She was afraid that Selma would be dissatisfied with whatever reason she might cause. It''s hard to lose a treasure you already hold. "It''s good Cherry! You have great taste. I love it." Selma''s words made her heart flutter in bliss. She was relieved that Selma was satisfied. "As long as you like it." With a faint smile, Cherry held Selma''s arm intimately while saying these words. A faint smile appeared on Kevin''s face as well when he saw his mother happy. He nced at the indifferent look on Anne''s face, and a hint of coldness shed into his eyes. ''This woman doesn''t care about my mother at all. Is it because she doesn''t care about me that much, so she treated my mother the same as she treated me?'' And also, she called his mother aunt just now. Didn''t she know that the two of them were still husband and wife? "Auntie, the meal is already served. Shall we eat together?" Cherry said. Rich dishes had already been served on the table. The meal was much more extravagant because of Selma''s arrival. "Auntie, I heard from Kevin that you don''t like greasy food, so I asked the chef to cook light food. Would you like to have a try?" The dishes on the table were light. Although there were only a few meat dishes, they were garnished well to look appealing in the eyes. It could be seen that Cherry had everything prepared to wee Selma. "Cherry, you are so sweet and considerate. You even know my preferences so well. I''m relieved that my son has a woman as considerate as you by his side." Selma meant that she agreed with Cherry and Kevin together. They have her full support and approval. Thus, Cherry smiled like a victorious woman. "Auntie, Anne is still here." Cherry pretended to be embarrassed, and showed a fake consideration for Anne in front of them. "Anyway, the two are going to divorce sooner orter. After the baby is born, I will hold a wedding for the both of you as soon as possible." Anne waspletely ignored at the dining table. The only attention she got was a look of disgust from Selma. Despite hearing such painful derations of Selma, she still managed to remain calm. However, that was only on the surface. In fact, deep inside, she was feeling more isted and helpless as the seconds went by. Kevin felt slightly irritated of seeing Anne wearing an indifferent expression. It seemed like no matter what was said on the table, this woman hardly gave a reaction. "Mom, you''re here to visit me, not to discuss my marriage. Let''s just eat for now. We can talk about it Kevin interrupted his mother impatiently. Having the thought of marriage right after Anne gave birth to their baby made him feel unknown restlessness in his heart. Looking at his irritated face, Cherry frowned in disappointment. Why didn''t he want to mention the marriage with her? Kevin looked really irritated this time. Selma could not help but add, "Kevin, I''m doing this for your own good. It''s your fortune to marry a considerate woman like Cherry in the future. You must seize it and don''t you dare to bully her." "Mom! I told you not to talk about it. Let''s eat!" The displeasure was apparent in Kevin''s eyes. He was definitely in no mood to talk about the marriage. Cherry felt a little disappointed, but just let Kevin be. They all started eating the delicious meals on the table. "Aunt Selma, we can talk about my rtionship with Kevinter. Besides, the most important thing to me is that we''re together. No worries Auntie, we are not in a rush. I am already satisfied to be at Kevin''s side." Cherry smiled gently and looked at Kevin affectionately. Everyone thought that Anne seduced Kevin for fame and fortune. Now that Cherry acted different from what they thought of Anne, Selma was relieved and felt really happy. After all, every mother wanted her son to have someone who truly loved him. "Okay, then. Let''s just continue eating." Selma considered his son''s mood and continued eating instead of pressing the issue. "Come on, Cherry. Eat more. You look too thin." Selma picked up food for Cherry and passed it onto her te with a smile. "Thank you, Auntie." Cherry was ttered and gave Selma a bright smile. She nced at Anne who was eating quietly. She looked so pathetic on the other side of the table, just like an outsider. Cherry couldn''t help but stifle augh. Anne knew that no one wanted her to be at the table. Although deep inside, she really felt ufortable and awkward, she could still manage to remain calm. Kevin felt a little distressed watching Anne getting ignored at the table. He put some vegetables into her bowl and said softly, "Eat more. You''re getting thin." There was no expression on his face, but all the people who were present at that time, were stunned. The people who knew Kevin best were none other than Selma and Cherry. The two of them could see that Kevin had changed his attitude towards Anne. On the other hand, Anne was quietly looking at Kevin. She didn''t know what trick he was ying. Did he really care for her? Or did he do it on purpose to humiliate her? Obviously, it was thetter. Anne would never believe that this man would have the heart to care about her. "Thank you!" No matter what the reason was, she didn''t want to overthink about it at this time, she had endured so much today. She just thanked him and continued to eat. Selma didn''t like how Kevin cared for Anne. She didn''t deserve Kevin''s affection. Cherry finally came to her senses after she was lost in thought by what Kevin just did. Although she felt jealous of Anne, she still wore a smile on her face. "That''s right, Anne. You should eat more nutritious foods for the baby to be healthy." Anne could see how fake of a person Cherry was. Her smile was so evil that she couldn''t help but to feel disgusted. Chapter 70 Impatient Kevin Chapter 70 Impatient Kevin Unwilling to take another look at Cherry''s fake appearance, Anne focused all of her attention on her meal. Everyone present hated her anyway, and she didn''t care about any of them. Cherry was a little embarrassed by Anne''s disrespect. She threw Kevin an aggrieved look with her beautiful eyes, but she pretended to be unbothered. Kevin was not in the mood to care about such a trifle, so he automatically ignored Cherry''s annoyance. In the past, he would have definitely taught Anne a lesson without hesitation. Now, he had no idea what was wrong with him¡ªit was like any hurtful word he said to Anne bounced back to him. Selma, who was watching them, got fed up with the situation. She leveled Anne with a cold, dissatisfied stare. "Mrs. Anne, your upbringing isudable. How could you ignore your sister in front of so many people? Is this how your mother raised you?" Selma intensely disliked Anne. She would always find fault with Anne no matter what she did. Selma''s implied insult toward her mother had Anne seething. She could bear whatever Selma said, but she would never allow anyone to insult her family. "Auntie, you are my elder, so I respect you¡ªbut please don''t involve my mother in this, and please respect others." Anne raised her eyes to meet Selma''s, with barely suppressed anger burning in their depths. "Why should I? Can a lowly person such as you bepared to me? Mrs. Anne, have you forgotten how you deliberately approached Kevin?" Selma''s face clearly reflected her disdain. Who did this woman think she was¡ªdid she think she was Selma''s equal? Selma was the noble wife of the Fu Family. How could such a person bepared with her? Cherry coolly witnessed the argument brewing between Anne and Selma and sneered inwardly. She had been looking forward to this scene. If Anne managed topletely offend Selma, then she would have an awful time in the Fu Family in the future. Clenching her fists, Anne tried hard to hold back her anger. The older woman evidently looked down upon her, but Anne could never let her malign her mother. "Enough!" Anne was about to open her mouth to retort when Kevin''s cold voice angrily interrupted the exchange. Everyone turned to look at him and saw his thunderous expression. His ck eyes swept coldly over the people present. "Mom, do you know what you have just said? What do you mean by a lowly person like Anne being Kevin might look aloof and detached, but he had never thought himself as above others. What Selma had said just now irritated him. "Kevin, I didn''t mean that, I..." Selma also realized that she had said something wrong in front of Kevin. She anxiously tried to exin herself but was cut off before she could finish her words. "From now on, I don''t want to hear such words from you." Somehow, Kevin felt sorry for Anne when his mother belittled her. He couldn''t stand others looking down upon Anne, including his mother. Selma frowned slightly. She was far from satisfied, but she kept silent for fear of displeasing Kevin. Cherry threw Kevin with a conflicted look. He was different these days, and this change in him made Cherry feel strange and uneasy. To Cherry, Kevin''s attitude towards Anne seemed highly suspicious. She began to worry that he had actually fallen in love with her. She had done so many things to be with him. It was not easy, but she seeded in getting him. Thus, this affinity that he had started to show toward Anne was making her ufortable. "Kevin, how can you talk to Auntie like that?" Cherry looked at Kevin reproachfully, and the note of disapproval in her voice was evident. The fact that Kevin even stood up for Anne in front of his mother was worrying Cherry. What brought on his change in attitude towards her? Cherry gave Kevin this mild scolding to make a good impression on Selma. Moreover, it was to remind Kevin that she found his current attitude towards Anne to be uneptable. Kevin frowned with displeasure. Cherry''s words left him slightly dissatisfied, but he didn''t say anything when he thought of what Anne had done before. "Anne, go back to your room and have a rest if you are full." When he saw the restrained expression on Anne''s face, his mood worsened. However, he could not show his displeasure even if he felt sorry for her. "Okay, I''m going back to my room. Please enjoy the rest of the meal." Anne rxed when she heard Kevin''s words, which felt like a reprieve. She really did not want to stay there for a minute longer. Following Anne''s receding figure with their eyes, both Cherry and Selma red at her back with anger and disgust. However, Cherry did a better job of hiding her emotions. "I''m full, too. I still have work to do." Kevin, who was put in a bad mood by the exchange during dinner, lost his appetite. He immediately stood up and left, leaving no room for Cherry and Selma to speak. Cherry''s disappointment showed in the longing eyes that followed Kevin out of the room. She could not help feeling aggrieved. Sitting next to her, Selma saw her expression and tried tofort her. "Cherry, Kevin has always been like this. Don''t take it to heart." With a faint smile, Cherry nodded in understanding. "Auntie, I''m fine. Kevin is always cold and indifferent. I understand him, but I feel that he seems to treat Anne like..." Cherry''s words trailed off, but she knew that Selma understood what she meant. She only said it to test Kevin''s mother. True enough, Selma''s reaction satisfied her. "Kevin will never fall in love with a woman like Anne! Besides, I will never allow such a woman to be my daughter-inw. Once she gives birth to the baby, Kevin will drop her immediately!" Selma said in an agitated tone. Her hatred of Anne was apparent. Even disregarding all of the gossip about Anne that had reached her ears, Selma formed a terrible impression of the woman today because of her behavior. She would never allow her to enter the Fu Family. Cherry''s mouth slightly curved up in a subtle grin. Selma''s words reassured her somewhat, because she knew that Kevin''s mother would never allow Anne to stay with her son. "But..." Cherry countered in a worried tone, calcted to make it seem like she wanted to say something but stopped on a second thought. Selma seemed to see through Cherry''s concerns. She held her hand and said firmly, "Cherry, you are the one I want as a daughter-inw. Don''t worry¡ªonce the two of them get divorced, I will immediately make Kevin marry you." Selma did not know much about Cherry, but she was already fond of her. Such a considerate daughter- inw could only bring her joy. Her mood was definitely improved by the thought. "Auntie, that wasn''t really what I meant. I just want to stay with Kevin, and I am not after the position of his wife." Fearing that Selma would misunderstand her, Cherry hastily exined and pretended to be infatuated with Kevin to win Selma''s favor. Selma smiled in satisfaction upon knowing that this woman loved her son so much. At the same time, she was more certain that Cherry was the daughter-inw she wanted. Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. "Cherry, I know that you are a kind, considerate girl, but how can I let you stay with Kevin without a title? I will definitely let you marry into our family," Selma said firmly with a pleased smile on her face. "Thank you, Auntie. If ever I were lucky enough to be Kevin''s wife, I will be the most filial daughter-inw in the world," Cherry said in an excited tone, throwing her arms around the older woman. With Selma''s promise, her entry into the Fu Family would definitely progress smoothly. Back in her room, Anne had yet to shake off her irritation. Recalling what Selma had said about making Cherry marry Kevin once Anne had given birth to her baby, her resentment grew. She had just recently gotten pregnant, yet the Fu family had already begun nning Kevin''s and her divorce. They had never epted her nor taken her seriously. At the same time, Kevin was stewing in the study. Now that he had witnessed someone making trouble for Anne, he actually felt sorry for her. What was happening to him? Giving in to a sudden impulse, he stood up to head toward Anne''s bedroom. He wanted to see her and know what she was doing right now. However, as soon as he opened the study door, Cherry appeared in front of him and blocked his way. Surprise and disappointment shed in Kevin''s dark eyes. "It''s sote. Why don''t you go back to your room and have a rest?" Kevin asked with a faint smile that failed to reach his eyes. He did not know when he had lost the feeling of delight upon seeing her. "I just came here from sending away Aunt Selma. I know that you didn''t eat much during dinner, so I wanted to ask if you''d like me to prepare a night snack for you." Cherry''s thoughtfulness had always been Kevin''s favorite, but now, he felt inexplicably impatient about it. "No, thanks. I''m not hungry. It''ste now. Go back to your room and rest." However, at the thought of Cherry''s kindness to him, he tried to suppress his irritation and spoke to her in a gentle tone. At that moment, he didn''t want to be with Cherry. He could imagine how upsetting a discussion of their future would be, and he was not looking forward to it. Kevin''s cold expression made Cherry feel wronged. After looking up at him for a few moments, she asked, "Kevin, where are you going? Do you want to see Anne?" Cherry posed a question, but she obviously knew the answer. After all, she clearly saw the disappointment in his eyes when he opened the door and saw her. Kevin gave a start at Cherry''s words, and his eyes shed guiltily. Chapter 71 Fire and Ice Chapter 71 Fire and Ice Anne knew Selma was gone, but that didn''t help her mood any. Despair, mncholy, they threatened to suffocate her. She decided to go outside and get some fresh air. She had to get out of the vi. The only things it had to offer her were hostile vibes and despondency. She put on a coat and tiptoed downstairs. When she walked out of the vi, she felt like she had just walked out of a cage. Even the air tasted free. "Kevin, did I do something to piss you off? You seem a little distanttely." After thinking about this for a while, Cherry raised her beautiful eyes, hurt reflected in them. She was very uneasy now. She was really worried that Kevin did not love her as much as before. As he heard Cherry''s sad words, a trace of impatience shed in Kevin''s ck eyes, but there was a hint of heartache there. "Cherry, what are you saying? How could you make me angry? You''ve always been the most thoughtful woman. You have a special ce in my heart," Kevin answered softly, pinching her cheek. There was a faint smile in his ck eyes, but it wasn''t from deep in his heart. Although Cherry got the answer, she was still troubled. She looked him directly in the eye and asked again, "So why do I still feel bad? It seems like you''ve been closed off to me for awhile. Kevin, don''t you love me anymore?" She gave him a pitiful look, and the tears in her eyes made her seem lost in the depths of despair. When he saw her like this, his heart softenedpletely. "Why wouldn''t I love you? You''ve always been my one and only. But I have a lot on my te now. Running thepany takes all my time. I''m sorry if it feels like I''m ignoring you. After things settle down we''ll take a trip to travel abroad, okay?" Kevin said in a quiet, maic voice. He pulled Cherry into his arms and put his chin on top of her head. Holding his waist greedily, Cherry didn''t want to let him go. She remembered how he acted around Anne, and there was fear in Cherry''s tone. "Kevin, I really love you, and I''m afraid of losing you. I know you hate to see me like this, but I really can''t help thinking this way." When Cherry said this, she couldn''t stop herself from bursting into tears. Feeling the hot tears, Kevin lowered his head and wiped them away. "Don''t overthink it. You just need to know that you''re the only woman in my heart. You are my sweetheart." He gently touched Cherry''s nose. His voice was full of tenderness. Every time he saw Cherry like this, he couldn''t help but feel sorry for her. But she knew just how to y Kevin just like a fiddle. She wanted him to feel guilty for ignoring her. That was why she acted like this. "I know you won''t let me down, Kevin. We''ll always be together, right?" She looked up at Kevin, her beautiful eyes full of nervous expectation. "I won''t let you down." After saying this firmly, Kevin held her tightly in his arms again. It was not until quite a whileter that they separated... "Cherry, I have work to do. You can go to your room and get some sleep." Although he had another woman in his arms, he couldn''t help thinking about how Anne was doing. He wondered if she were still angry about what happened tonight. Although he cared for Anne, he always told himself that he cared about her only because of the baby she carried. "I get it. You''re busy. So go ahead and get that done. I''m going to bed," Cherry said this amiably, reluctant to leave his arms. She kissed his cheek before walking off. After Cherry left, Kevin felt like a great burden had been lifted from him. The gentleness in his eyes disappeared quickly. Content held by N?velDrama.Org. He wanted to go to check Anne, but he gave up the idea because of what had just happened. He kept telling himself that the woman he loved most was Cherry. He couldn''t make Cherry feel uneasy because of Anne. No matter how much he tried to push it away, the restlessness in his heart did not disappear. It waste at night, but he wasn''t tired at all. When he came downstairs, an icy wind blew and Anne''s face shed through his mind. He must be crazy, otherwise why would he always think of this woman? He looked out of the vi and saw a familiar figure. Anne walked along the sidewalk, alone, outside the vi. Frowning, Kevin felt a little annoyed. It was so cold outside, but this woman braved the winds and winter chill. Didn''t she know she was still pregnant? Did she know how to take care of herself? Kevin strode toward Anne, determined to teach this little woman a lesson. "Anne!" he shouted angrily behind her. Anne smiled bitterly. ''I must be hearing things. That sounds like Kevin? Has the cold gotten to me? It''s sote. Why would Kevin be calling out to me? He should be with Cherry.'' His mother got so angry because of her. He had to show her who was boss. But Anne didn''t even turn her head. That just made Kevin even moodier. Was she just ignoring him? "Anne, can you hear me?" Kevin frowned and said this in a much colder tone. He just called the woman, but she pretended not to hear him. She was impossible. When Anne heard Kevin''s voice again, she was sure that she wasn''t hallucinating. It was really him calling her name. She turned around and saw Kevin giving her a dirty look. There was anger in his gaze. "Why are you here?" Anne said. Her peaceful mood was shattered by his arrival. "I should ask you the same question. Why aren''t you in bed?" Kevin asked coldly. He wasn''t about to answer her questions. The temperature was low at the time. But she was dressed in a blouse and leggings. Her outfit might befortable. But it still didn''t offer much protection from the cold. She really didn''t know how to take care of herself. His tone was hostile, and Anne frowned when she thought of it. Was he here to get even with her for offending his mother? As she thought of this, the expression on her face became colder and her gaze turned positively arctic. "I''m out for a walk. It''ste. You here to get even or what?" Anne worked to keep her voice calm. "Get even? What are you talking about?" He looked at her in confusion. Regardless, his tone was unpleasant. "Didn''t youe to yell at me about what happened with your mom?" Looking at Kevin with uncertainty, Anne was surprised that this man could let that slide so easily. Kevin realized what she meant and got even more upset. "Really? Is that how you think of me? That''s between you and her. Why would I bother to make trouble for you because of such a trivial matter?" He suppressed his anger, and kept his tone even. "Youy into me about everything else. Why not now?" There was mockery in Anne''s tone and scorn in her ck eyes. She was right, at least from her point of view. He was vengeful, and a control freak. And it only took a word from Cherry to get him to berate Anne. Why wouldn''t she think he''d do the same now? Of course, Kevin could hear the irony in her words. His chest rose and fell rapidly as he tried to contain his rage. It took him a lot of effort to fight the impulse to hit this woman. "Go ahead, say that again!" Kevin greeted his teeth, and his eyes turned intensely cold. "Since you didn''t hear me clearly, forget it. It''s gettingte. I need some sleep." She didn''t fear his anger. Her tone remained calm. She wondered if that might annoy him more. The pregnant woman made to leave. Kevin stood in front of Anne and looked down at her with his dark, treacherous eyes. "Did I say you could leave?" His voice was horribly distorted, thick with anger and grief. His stare might be colder than a two-dog night, but his rage was white hot. This woman dared to talk to him like that. She was courting death. "What is it now?" Feeling his anger, Anne was a little flustered in her heart, but she kept up a defiant facade. He had hurt her too much. She wasn''t going to give in to him now. "I''m in a bad mood. I want you to take a walk with me," Kevin said indifferently. "I think you''ll have more fun if you invite Cherry along. Isn''t a walk with your sweetheart better than walking with me?" Anne refused without hesitation. She didn''t want to take a walk with him. He was so angry now. If she offended him again, she would be in trouble. And when she thought of the two of them taking a walk together, she couldn''t help feeling disgusted. The idea was really weird. "What if I say I want you toe along?" At the mention of Cherry''s name, Kevin got even more irritated. His frosty gaze swept across her skin like knives. How could Kevin be so overbearing? What on earth did she do to offend him and why did he torture her like this! Chapter 72 His Kiss Chapter 72 His Kiss "So what''s it to be, Kevin? You are going to leave your sweetheart at the vi and take a walk with me?" Anne asked sarcastically, suppressing her anger. Although he never denied Cherry was his sweetheart, he was very unhappy when he heard Anne bring her up. He didn''t want to think about Cherry when he dealt with Anne. "You''re my wife. Shouldn''t you want to take a walk with me?" As he took a step closer, Anne felt like she was being intimidated. She was forced to look up at him. His eyes were so dark that no one could see what he was thinking. Her heart beat uncontrobly. In a panic, she looked away. This man was so handsome. Although she didn''t know how many times she had seen him, her heart beat faster for him. But she quickly calmed down and put on a defiant look. "I think you forgot that we''re headed for a divorce. In a few short months, we won''t be husband and wife, and you''ll be free to marry Cherry. Shouldn''t you pay more attention to her?" She hadn''t forgotten what Selma promised to Cherry. Anne felt like her heart had been stabbed by a needle, and her dissatisfaction was in on her face. "Quit saying her name!" Kevin said in an evil, domineering tone. He clenched his fists and suppressed his anger. This woman always brought up Cherry. Didn''t she feel anything for him? "Why? Because I''m not good enough to say her name?" Kevin had threatened her many times, and she remembered clearly what he had said to hurt her. There was a flicker of dark light in his ck eyes, and he felt like he was going to explode in a fireball of rage. Did he say that?! "Enough! I don''t want to get into it with you. You need to stop!" He couldn''t stand the indifference on the woman''s face any more. When he shouted at her, his ck eyes were gloomy and terrible. Anne could sense he was close to the breaking point. She decided to stop poking the bear. After all, if this man got angry, he could do anything. "Take a walk with me!" he said coldly and turned to walk in front. He finally cooled down his anger. Looking at his receding form in displeasure, Anne could only follow him. The two walked in tandem, two meters from each other. Walking with her head down, Anne was lost in thought. Suddenly, she felt something in her way and she bumped into it. She rubbed her forehead in pain and raised her head. At a nce, she met his deep eyes... She struggled to tear her gaze away as she rubbed her forehead. "Why didn''t you tell me you stopped?" "That''s on you. If you didn''t keep your head down, you''d be able to see what''s going on. And why are you walking so far away from me? Do you hate me that much?" Kevin asked in an unpleasant tone, staring at Anne with a gloomy face. "You told me not to stand so close to you. I assumed that extended to everything." Anne remembered that Kevin asked her to keep her distance from him. She remembered every word he said that hurt her. "That was then, and this is now. Things have changed. Do you understand?" ''Damn it! Why does she always dredge up the past and throw it in my face? She just needs to learn to follow instructions!'' "Kevin, what do you want from me? You tell me to do something and I do it. What more do you want?" This man was nitpicking. No matter what she did, he found a reason to get angry. "What more do I want? Anne! Are you an idiot? I want you to do as I ask." This woman stayed so far away from him. It was like he''d give her some deadly virus if she came too close. Did she hate him that much? Idiot? Could this man be any more of a jerk? Why was he calling her an idiot? "So what are your orders, sir?" Trying her best to hold back her anger, Anne put on an ugly smile and mocked him. "Come here,e with me!" Now that Anne was pregnant, Kevin didn''t want to argue with her, so he had to hold back. Although she was thoroughly unhappy, Anne still obediently walked over to him. He took her small hands in his, and the warm feeling made Anne shake violently. She looked at the sped hands in shock, unable to gather her thoughts. Content ? N?velDrama.Org. Kevin took her hand voluntarily. What was wrong with him? Was he drugged or what? Seeing her surprised look, Kevin smiled in satisfaction. So she did have feelings for him! Anne had been hiding them. But now everything was out in the open. She had him in her heart. The two walked hand in hand. Suddenly, Kevin broke the silence. His voice sounded indifferent and emotionless. "Are you sure you don''t love me anymore?" But only he knew thest trace of nervousness in his heart. "I can''t afford to love you." The words were simple enough. But her tone was so tragic, so cutting. To hear her meant infinite sadness. When she said this, even Kevin couldn''t help feeling heartbroken. He looked at her with sympathy. She appeared calm, as if nothing had happened. He gave her aplicated look. "What if I gave you a chance with me?" Although he knew that the woman in front of him could be vicious, he got really angry when he saw her grim determination. He actually hoped that this woman would show some emotion around him. "Kevin, are you kidding me? Gave me a chance? You''re funny. You should do stand-up." When Anne came to her senses, she looked at him with a mirthless smile. She was sure that this man was out of his mind. How could he joke like that with her? She knew how much he hated her. He rarely looked at her with anything approaching affection. How could they possibly get involved? The sneer on Anne''s face made Kevin angry again. Why did she keep looking at him like that? What was she thinking? "Was it that funny?" His face darkened and his voice sounded threatening. "Yes! This is the most ridiculous joke you''ve ever yed. I''m not falling for it." There was still a disdainful sneer on her face. She didn''t believe a word he said. As soon as she finished speaking, he reached out and grabbed her. He spun her around to face him. When she was about to say something, he suddenly lowered his head and kissed her heavily on the lips. His sexy lips were so hot that Anne opened her eyes wide in shock and her heart thumped wildly. Her mind went nk. His kiss was cruel, devouring her will to resist. The kisssted awhile, and was a long timeing. Anne''s mind had been numb during the process. She had lost her ability to think. Kevin felt her soft lips. Her lips were very sweet, and there was a hint of peach. He was reluctant to break the embrace, so he stood there, holding her. He didn''t let go until she was about to suffocate. His ck eyes were filled with desire. It was not until Anne gasped for breath that she realized what was happening. She looked at Kevin in shock. She couldn''t believe that this man had kissed her. What was he thinking? Hadn''t he always hated her? Why did he suddenly do this to her? Was it because he was horny, and she was the closest warm body? With an attractive, evil smile at the corners of his mouth, Kevin leaned forward slightly and whispered in her ear in a low and charming voice. "So, do you still think I''m joking?" Aftering back to her senses, Anne looked at him in shock. "Kevin, what are you doing? Are you out of your damn mind?" Although she loved him deeply, this came as a huge shock. She wasn''t sure how she felt. Even if the two of them were in a contractual rtionship, she was pregnant now and had no obligation to cooperate with him beyond that. "No. I know exactly what happened. I kissed you! This wasn''t an ident." His smile was alluring, though he looked at hercently. He could tell she was into it too. "Aren''t you afraid that Cherry will be sad when she finds out?" He was probably horny and that was why he decided to kiss her. When she thought about it, she got angry. When he heard Cherry''s name again, his eyes darkened immediately. "I keep telling you not to bring her into this! Are you trying to piss me off? Anne! Please! Just listen to me!" When he heard Cherry''s name being mentioned, he did regret what he did. He felt guilty, because he was supposed to be in love with Cherry, not Anne. But the feeling was fleeting. He was pissed at Anne for even saying her name. "Now don''t get all high and mighty with me. You''re the one with a problem. Think of it as a friendly reminder of how she''ll feel," Anne said in a harsh tone. This was deliberate. Maybe he would back off if she kept saying Cherry''s name. "Anne!" Kevin shouted Anne''s name. He couldn''t control his anger anymore. He intended it to be a sweet, intimate moment, something to savor. But Anne had to ruin the mood by dragging Cherry into it. Chapter 73 Anne, Kiss Me! Chapter 73 Anne, Kiss Me! Anne didn''t understand why Kevin was the one who got angry this time. She was the one who was supposed to feel such strong emotions, wasn''t she? Her face turned cold. She didn''t want to talk to the man in front of her any longer. "I''m tired. I''m going back to get some rest!" She turned around, and was about to leave. She couldn''t calm down with the thought of what they just did. "Stop!" Kevin said with a sharp voice. He strode to her, and looked into her cold eyes intensely. "Listen, Anne, even if I hate you, you are still my woman. You can only love me!" He didn''t understand why Anne''s personality was so stolid, so cold. He couldn''t help but feel frustrated in front of her. Anne did not utter a word and just stared at him. In her mind, she was so confused of what was happening to Kevin. He was totally strange and foolish to tell her such things. "Kevin, don''t you think you''re being selfish? Why should I love you despite how much you hate me? What right do you have to order me like this? As far as I know, this is not included in our contract, right?" He was a total jerk to make her love him knowing that he despised her so much. Anne had enough of his selfishness. "Then it will be included from now on! Anne, don''t forget that I''m in charge of our affairs!" Kevin was even more irritated and dissatisfied with her attitude. He was already giving her a chance to love him, but it seemed like she was not interested at all. "Kevin, can you be reasonable for once! Why are you so domineering? Do you really think you can force someone to love you?" Anne burst in anger. She couldn''t stand the arrogance of this man any longer. How could he make such a request when it seemed impossible for him to even like her? She couldn''t let her destiny fall to the whims of this inconsiderate man. "I will get whatever the hell I want." "Kevin, you are the most shameless man I have ever known!" Anne pushed him away and tried to run away. Kevin stopped her and held her tightly in his arms. His strength made Anne unable to resist. No matter how hard she tried, she couldn''t manage to break free. "You have no right to refuse my order. You are my woman, so your heart must belong to me!" Kevin whispered to her ear in a low and charming voice. On the contrary, his words were sharp, as if he didn''t care about her feelings at all. Anne felt infuriated after hearing his words. The thought of how this man used to revile her made her feel more upset. "Kevin, let go of me!" She used up all her strength to escape from his arms. What did this man think of her? "What if I say no?" Kevin raised his eyebrows and sounded adamant. Even if Anne refused him over and over, and even if he didn''t like her, he would still manage to get her heart. "Can you stop being so shameless? Are you going to betray Cherry, the love of your life?" Anne waspletely infuriated. She already came to the extent of using Cherry in order to stop him. As expected, as soon as she said that, the intensity in his eyes dissipated and was immediately reced by a coldness. She still looked at him with dissatisfaction. She couldn''t stand his ridiculous attempt at controlling her emotions. "Anne, have you forgotten what I said?" His tone was threatening. He was beyond reproach. He couldn''t imagine how much longer this woman would refuse him. He had repeated himself and made every word clear to her but it seemed that she didn''t take any of it seriously. "Let go of me first!" Anne felt a hint of fear. This man could do anything when he was angry. However, she wouldn''t admit defeat. She couldn''t show him her fragileness at this point. "Kiss me!" hemanded. He red at her and held her tightly. He was not going to take no for an answer. She was startled by his actions. She was frozen in fear and shock. "Kevin, what has gotten into you? Let go of me!" What did get into his mind to make him act like this? He was so outrageous and unpredictable. Anne doubted if the man in front of her was the real Kevin, or someone possessed by another spirit. "Anne, I want you to kiss me!" Kevin repeated himself, a shade more strongly. His eyes were so intimidating when he red at her. Anne''s attitude made him really unhappy to a point where he hadpletely lost all his patience. He was full of possessive desire for this woman and that desire made him lose his mind. "Why should I kiss you? Kevin, look at me clearly. I''m Anne, the woman you hate the most!" Anne wondered if he was drunk and had just mistaken her for someone else. She didn''t know what to think of him anymore. He was so foolish to ask the woman he hated the most to kiss him. "I know who you are. I just want you to kiss me, Anne!" ''Damn it! Did this woman think that I had mistaken her for someone else? I''m not drunk. How could I not know who the woman in front of me is?'' "Are you sure you won''t regret it if I kiss you?" After a moment, Anne sighed and finally took Kevin seriously. "I will never regret what I have said, so kiss me right now!" The tone of his voice was full of certainty. Anne made up her mind, and closed her eyes. Then, she tiptoed to reach for his lips. His lips were so soft. She feltfortable which made her feel infatuated with him. Although she didn''t know what was wrong with Kevin, she didn''t hide what she truly felt for him at that moment. She just took that moment as her chance to kiss him. Anyway, it was not her loss, since she truly felt something for him. Kevin felt satisfied after feeling Anne''s supple lips. He smiled and slowly closed his eyes. Standing in front of the window, Cherry clearly saw that Anne took the initiative to kiss Kevin. Her heart was ovee with anger and jealousy. She looked at them sharply from afar and shouted, "Anne, how dare you steal my man? You''re going to regret this. I will never let you get away with this!" Clenching her fists tightly, Cherry didn''t feel any pain even if her nails sank into her flesh. At this moment, all she could feel was her hatred for Anne. She had already known that Anne didn''t give up on Kevin, but now Anne dared to take the initiative to kiss Kevin on the road. That bitch was bing too much. She had crossed the line. However, Kevin didn''t push Anne away. He even seemed to enjoy it, which made Cherry feel perturbed. She felt anxious with the thought that Kevin might have been the one who initiated the kiss, and that sooner orter he would fall in love with Anne. It was never easy for Cherry to win his heart. She had invested so much to have him, so she couldn''t let all her efforts go to waste. She wanted to be the only woman he loved. Anne finally came back to her senses and pushed Kevin away. After a long moment of kissing, her lips became more attractive. They felt so supple on his lips. They even turned a little redder than before. "Are you satisfied now? Can I leave now?" Anne raised her head and looked at him coldly. She had done what he had asked her to do. All she wanted to do now was to leave. "What if I say I''m not satisfied? Are you going to kiss me again?" The anger in Kevin''s heart disappeared because of the wonderful kiss. He couldn''t help but feel happy in his heart. "Kevin, you are so shameless!" Anne felt angry again. She had never thought that he could go this far. She had thought of him so highly before. With a smile at the corners of his lips, Kevin remained calm. He looked at her from head to toe with lust Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. in his eyes, as if implying something. It was a long time ago since thest time Anne had been intimate with him, but still she knew exactly what his look meant. She couldn''t help but feel a little nervous. A cold breeze blew over, and she felt a little cold in her thin clothes. When Kevin noticed that she felt a little cold, he took off his coat and put it on her. "You are still pregnant. Aren''t you afraid of getting sick by just wearing thin clothes when you went out?" he said in an imperceptible caring tone and looked at Anne discontentedly. In fact, even Kevin himself didn''t know that his feelings for Anne had changed greatly. Anne was surprised with what he did, but after hearing his words, she felt a little disappointed. She knew that he just did it for the sake of their child. "It''s getting cold. I''m going back. Here''s your coat." She didn''t want to ept the coat because she knew that he just put it on her for the sake of their child. Without hesitation, she took it off and handed it to him. She turned around and was about to leave. "I asked you to put this on!" Kevin put his coat on her forcefully. Why did she reject his care all of a sudden? "No, it''s not necessary. Your coat costs at least a million dors. It''s a pity if you throw it into the trash bin when I return it to you." Anne remembered the time she was kidnapped. Kevin also gave her his coat but when she returned it to him, he just threw it into the trash bin. The thought made her heart ache a little bit. This was the reason why Anne had said those words just now. Kevin knew what she meant. He got furious, but he couldn''t vent it. He realized that somehow he was wrong and sometimes he could really go too far. "I have so many coats, so I can just throw them away at will. Don''t think it''s a waste." Even though he realized that somehow his treatment towards her was unfair, and that he wanted to say that he wouldn''t throw it away, the words just got altered the moment when they left his mouth. Chapter 74 Seducing Kevin Chapter 74 Seducing Kevin Anne red at Kevin with discontentment. Gritting her teeth, she took off his coat and threw it at him. Not waiting for his reaction, she turned around and quickly left. As Kevin watched her leave, his lips turned down into a deep frown. However, even though he was displeased with her actions, he made no move to follow her. Meanwhile, Cherry had been standing in front of the window the whole time, and saw how that little scene yed out. As she saw how much Kevin cared about Anne''s health, her heart tightened with jealousy. ''No,'' she convinced herself. ''He just cares about her because she''s carrying his unborn child.'' Despite thinking this, she couldn''t put her mind at ease. It went without question that she knew Kevin really well. In the past, she knew that he would never have done such a considerate thing to Anne. But he had changed a lot recently. Although he had clearly said that he didn''t like Anne, Cherry grew more and more uneasy. Maybe it was because Kevin had told her that he had something important to do, and did not mention the fact that he was actually going to meet up with Anne. If it was indeed just a harmless visit, he wouldn''t have the need to hide this from Cherry. Upon reaching her room, Anne closed the door behind her and tightly clutched her chest. She could feel her heart beating uncontrobly. Even though she was able to be calm in front of Kevin, her emotions were all over the ce. After taking a few minutes topose herself, she took a deep breath and got ready for bed. Kevin stood downstairs the whole time, leaving only when he saw the light of Anne''s room go out. Quietly, he went back to his room, heading straight to the bathroom to freshen up. When he came out, he was taken aback to see a woman on his bed. Lying on her side, Cherry blushed heavily as she straightened out herce nightgown. Her big eyes stared up at Kevin sheepishly. The sight of her made Kevin''s heart stop in his chest. "It''s sote. Why haven''t you gone to bed? And when did youe to my room?" Kevin dried his hair and casually strode towards her. "I''ve been knocking on your door, but you weren''t answering. So I let myself in. I decided to lie down here for a bit while I waited for you to finish your shower," Cherry said in a soft tone with a seductive smile on her face. The slight flush on her cheeks greatly elevated her charm. "What''s up?" Kevin asked indifferently as he looked away from her. "Nothing. I just can''t fall asleep. I wanted to have a chat with you. Are you getting annoyed by me now?" Her soft voice rang sweetly in the room as she kept her gentle gaze on Kevin''s face. With a smile of his own, Kevin looked back at her tenderly. "Why would I be annoyed by you?" After staring into each other''s eyes for a few seconds, Kevin withdrew his gaze, the smile on his face slowly fading away. "It''ste now," he added in a lower voice. "You should get to bed. I''ll just apany you tomorrow if you want." Seeing her lying down on his bed actually made him somewhat annoyed. Right now, he wanted to get her out of his room as soon as possible. Even though he sugar-coated his words, it was obvious to Cherry what he was trying to say. Despite the fact that his tone was gentle, it didn''t take much for her to realize that he was trying to drive her away. Tears welled up in her big eyes as she looked at him in dismay. "Kevin, are you starting to hate me? You didn''t have a problem being with me no matter what the time was." This change in his attitude really made her heart flutter uneasily. If he didn''t love her, how else could she possibly get her happily-ever-after with him? A slight frown appeared on Kevin''s lips as he got even more annoyed at her. Still, there was a gentleness in his eyes. Even up until now, he thought that Cherry was the woman he loved the most. "What are you talking about, Cherry? How can I hate you? I like you so much." He sat next to her and put his arm around her shoulders. In the past, if she had heard these words from him, she would have been over the moon with happiness. Now, unfortunately, the uneasiness in her heart grew even more. After seeing his interaction with Anne just a while ago, Cherry was determined not to get the least bit careless. "You really don''t hate me, Kevin?" Raising her head, she looked up at him with uncertainty. The tears welling up at the corners of her eyes made her look so pitiful. As he saw her like this, the impatience in his heart melted away. After thinking about it, he had to admit that he had really been neglecting her a lot recently. "When did you be so unsure of yourself? Or is it because you have no confidence about my love for you?" Kevin''s words were as smooth as butter, his eyes as warm as honey. There wasn''t a moment that he wasn''t gentle with Cherry. "Of course not. How can I not have confidence in you? I love you so much. Maybe that''s the reason why I''m so afraid you''ll end up hating me." With Kevin acting especially loving towards her, she continued her charade and shrank back into his arms helplessly. Her nightgown rubbed against him. It was thin enough for Kevin to feel the warmth and suppleness of her skin underneath it. It went without question that Cherry was an attractive woman. Any man would easily lose control and give in to his desires with a woman like her. Even Kevin couldn''t help but swallow and look away restlessly. "It''s a bit cold, don''t you think? You''d better put on more clothes." When he first saw her in his room, he already had a guess or two what her intentions were. Needless to say, he had been trying the entire time not to think about it. Cherry was really a scheming woman. From the way he talked and moved, she could feel that he was getting tense. A small proud smile crept up her lips. As long as she was able to seduce Kevin like this, she was sure that there was no way he would stop loving her. "Can you hold me in your arms, Kevin? It feels so nice," she said in a low voice, feeling victorious at this point. However, much to her surprise, he gently pushed her away. "Cherry, it''s gettingte. You''d better go back to your room and have a rest. We can talk tomorrow!" He stood up and walked away from the bed, trying to calm himself down. Although Kevin was a man with strong self-control, he was still like any other man after all. To be around such a beautiful woman like Cherry and not do anything was impossible. As she felt that Kevin''s desire was getting stronger and stronger, her beautiful eyes shed with sess. Then she raised her head and looked him in the eye. She asked in a surprisingly serious tone, "Kevin, will you marry me?" For a while, Kevin didn''t say a word. Perhaps it was because he didn''t know the answer to her question. Or maybe he didn''t want to answer it at all. But then he turned around and looked at her with loving eyes. Just as Cherry began to worry, Kevin finally spoke. "Of course I''ll marry you." Overflowing joy filled up her heart as she heard that. "I want to be all yours, Kevin. I want to be your woman. My heart and my body belong to no one but you." Standing up, she hugged onto his arm, leaning her whole body against his as she whispered her words into his ear. Even though Kevin knew what she was trying to say, he still kept a level head. "And you will be. Just not right now." Once again, he pushed her aside. He did not forget his agreement with Anne. Sex was off the table until they finalized their divorce. Biting on her lower lip, Cherry was surprised to hear his refusal. She did not expect that he would able to control himself up to this point. "Why do we have to wait? You already said that you would marry me. Why not make me your woman right now?" Feeling wronged, Cherry looked at him anxiously. There was no way she was going to let herself be rejected like this. No one had ever rejected her as much as he had just done now. "I made an agreement with Anne that I won''t sleep with you before we have our divorce." In truth, there was something else stopping Kevin from having sex with Cherry. He just didn''t know what it was. Despite this, he didn''t want to hurt her feelings. Using his divorce agreement was just an excuse. "Come on, Kevin... I won''t let Anne know about it. I know you are a person who keeps your promise, but I don''t want much. I just want to finally be your woman. Can''t you do this for me?" As tears streamed down her face, Cherry lowered her head in disappointment. Her voice broke in sobs in childlike manner. The sight of her sorrow made Kevin''s heart tremble in despair. "Cherry, let''s talk about this some other time please. It''ste now. Go back to your room and get some rest." Sighing helplessly, Kevin held her in his arms, and rested his chin on her head. Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. He had made it clear that he would not betray his agreement with Anne. It was his belief before that Cherry would respect his decision. He had no idea how determined and desperate she was this time. Before he realized what was happening, Cherry suddenly raised her head and kissed his lips. Completely in shock, Kevin''s mind went nk. Cherry had always been reserved in his mind, and he never expected that she would do such a thing. For a split second, he was upset at her move. But it didn''t take long for him to give in. Closing his eyes, he held her tightly as he kissed her back with passion. Chapter 75 Kevins Refusal Chapter 75 Kevin''s Refusal As Cherry felt Kevin''s passion, her beautiful eyes twinkled with triumph. She realized that she had crossed an invisible barrier and she was about to be his woman. As long as Kevin slept with her, she would see to it that he would bepletely infatuated with her. And in that way Anne wouldn''t stand a chance to be with him. With these thoughts in her mind, Cherry doubled her efforts and fervently started removing her clothes, so that Kevin could feel her sensuous body and lose himself in her. Kevin felt Cherry''s cool bare skin under his palms. His breathing grew faster in anticipation to make Cherry his woman. Just as he was about to im her, Anne''s face suddenly shed through his mind. He felt as if someone sshed him with ice water. He was numb all over. He let go of Cherry who was in his arms. Cherry was shocked with Kevin''s abruptness. "Kevin, what''s wrong? Without Kevin to cover her, Cherry was almost naked. Kevin couldn''t look at Cherry''s body anymore. He abruptly got out of bed and quickly put on his shirt. "Cherry, it''ste. I''m tired. Please go back to your room." He was unable to understand what was happening to him. Anne''s face popped out in his mind at the critical moment. And he wouldn''t be able to do anything knowing that the woman under him was Cherry and not Anne. Cherry was surprised with Kevin''s words. Her eyes dimmed with unhappiness. "Kevin, what''s wrong with you? We were just about¡­" Cherry being a woman, she was too shy to say the words out loud. However the message could be read quite clearly in her beautiful eyes. She could feel that he clearly wanted her, but she didn''t expect him to stop at this very moment. "Cherry, I always keep my word and I will do what I''ve promised Anne." He brought up the agreement, because at the moment he couldn''t think of any other excuse to refuse Cherry. "Kevin, I just want you. I want to be your woman now!" Shepletely lost it when she heard Kevin take Anne''s name. It was because of Anne. Again! She was furious when she realized that Kevin could control his desire for her because of Anne and the agreement. She was trying to calm herself down, but she couldn''t. Because she didn''t believe Kevin stopped himself for a mere agreement. Anne had to be the main reason for this change in his mood. These thoughts running through Cherry''s mind made her all the more desperate and unwilling to make Kevin walk away from her so easily. She had to make him desperate for her and make him im her. Only then would she be at ease. Without giving a second thought about her nakedness, Cherry quickly got out of bed and walked to Kevin. She hugged him, making sure her entire body was pressed intimately to his. However, Kevin who had calmed down by now, was sickened and annoyed by Cherry''s behavior. He could feel the beginnings of anger taking root, but he knew he couldn''t lose his temper. "Cherry, stop this. Go back to your room and get some rest. We''ll talk about thister." Impatiently Kevin unwrapped Cherry''s arms from his body and pushed her away from him. He sounded so cold and distant. Cherry couldn''t believe that Kevin pushed her away again. She looked at him with eyes filled with grief and bitterness. Her beautiful eyes quickly filled with tears. "Okay, I''ll go¡­" She turned away dejectedly as if her world hade to an end. She picked up her pajamas and started slowly putting them on. She felt as if they weighed a ton. She sobbed quietly with tears running down her cheeks. Hearing her quiet sobs, Kevin was irritated and felt a little bit guilty for his behavior towards her. He couldn''t help but refuse her, even though he knew it would make her sad. "Cherry, I..." He was unsure what to say to her. He wanted to say something tofort her. But, somehow he knew whatever he would say, it would only make her more sad. "Kevin, you don''t have to exin anything. Actually, I don''t think I want to hear your exnation right now." Cherry was afraid that she would not be able to hear that Anne was the actual reason for Kevin pushing her away. She did not want to ept it. Without looking at Kevin, Cherry ran out of the bedroom, crying. Once she reached her room, she mmed the door shut. She was furious. She was sure that the only reason behind Kevin''s change of behavior towards her was Anne. Somehow Anne was much more important to him than she thought. The very thought of it made Cherry queasy to her very core. She couldn''t let this go on. The morning sun was shining brightly in the room. Anne forgot to close the curtains before going to sleepst night. She groaned and turned away from the re of the sun. She tried to open her eyes, but they felt as though her eyelids were stuck together. With a lot of effort and will power she tried to open her eyes, but her strength failed her. She felt very weak. Her mouth was dry and felt as if it was filled with cotton. Desperately in need of water, she struggled to sit up. She walked slowly towards the table for a ss of water. She grabbed the ss, but the effort to walk drained her of her remaining energy. Her body was shivering with weakness. The ss slipped from her hand and shattered into pieces on the floor, moments before her legs gave way. "Ah!" Anne cried out in pain. A piece of broken ss pierced her slender palm. She tried to sit straight and ended leaning against the leg of the table. The pain and all the blood made her sick to her stomach. She tried to remove the ss piece, but it hurt too much. Sighing helplessly, she leaned her head back and closed her eyes. "What''s wrong? What happened?" All of a sudden the door opened and Kevin burst into Anne''s bedroom. He looked quite worried. The moment his eyes rested on Anne sitting on the floor, cradling her bloodied hand, he immediately rushed to her side. "What''s going on? What did you do?" he questioned her anxiously looking at her bleeding hand. Then he lifted her in his arms and gently ced her on the bed. "Nothing serious. It was an ident. No big deal," Anne replied as if the incident was nothing to worry about. She felt a flicker of happiness, when she saw the concern in Kevin''s eyes. She immediately doused the flicker of happiness and tried to gather herself. She wanted to hide behind her veil of indifference and not show how Kevin actually made her feel. Because she did not want to get hurt again by him. "Your hand is bleeding. How can you say it is not a big deal? Can''t you take care of yourself?" Kevin was furious when he heard Anne make light of the ident. Didn''t she care? Was she so careless? Her hand was bleeding and definitely hurting like hell, yet she said it was fine. What was going on in her mind? Taking her hand gently, Kevin looked at the bleeding woman with a distressed expression in his pitch ck eyes. "Wait here. I''ll get the first aid kit." He got up to leave the room. As he was nearing the door, Cherry walked in. Seeing Cherry in Anne''s room, Kevin frowned slightly, but continued to walk out of the room, without saying anything to her. "Anne, what are you trying to do? Are you trying to gain Kevin''s attention by hurting yourself so early in the morning?" Cherry inquired coldly seeing Anne''s injured hand. Anne frowned with displeasure at Cherry''s question. Her face turned to stone. Cherry was an insidious person, hence she felt that everyone was as insidious as her. "Don''t try to figure out what other people''s intentions are with that insidious mind of yours. Not everyone is as scheming and cunning as you!" Anne retorted in a cold tone. She ignored Cherry. She was not feeling well. The pain in her hand had multiplied threefold. And she didn''t want to lower her standards as the same level as Cherry. Arguing with that woman was undoubtedly like casting pearls before a swine. She was in absolutely no mood to talk to Cherry. Content held by N?velDrama.Org. "Really? Don''t even bother to think that I don''t know what you did to seduce Kevin. I know clearly what happened between the two of you outside the vist night. Kevin is mine! You cannot take him away from me by ying your cheap tricks!" The very thought of Kevin and Anne in an intimate scene outside the vist night filled Cherry''s entire body with rage. Her beautiful eyes were filled with malice when she red at Anne. ''How dare Anne try to take my man away from me? I will not spare her!'' Cherry swore to herself. "Are you spying on Kevin?!" Anne frowned slightly and a hint of coldness shed in her eyes. From what she knew, there was no one aroundst night outside the vi. How did Cherry know what transpired between her and Kevin her? Cherry panicked and began to feel guilty on hearing Anne''s question. But she would not admit to it. "I didn''t! Anne, don''t talk nonsense. Believe it or not, I will tell Kevin that you ndered me!" Cherry red at Anne angrily. The viciousness in her eyes was more obvious than before. If Anne continued to stay here, sooner orter she would be a problem. She must find a clever way to drive Anne away, without iting to bite her in the behind. Being hounded by Cherry, Anne was terribly unhappy and wanted to fight back, but at that very moment Kevin returned to the bedroom with the first aid kit in his hand. In the past, she had argued with Cherry in front of Kevin and she had suffered a lot in the bargain. Now, she was no longer the naive girl that she was before. Life had taught her to be smart. The best way of not being on the receiving end of Kevin''s hurtful words was to merely not have a direct conflict with Cherry. Moreover, Anne didn''t want to pay any more attention to these matters now. Anne was dizzy and the bleeding hand made matters worse. She shook her head to clear her thoughts and tried to concentrate. "I''ll have to take the broken ss piece out first. It will hurt. Try to bear it." It was the first time that Kevin had spoken to Anne in such gentle tones and not in the disgusted and cold way that he usually spoke to her in. Anne was surprised and she looked into his gentle eyes. Her heart grew tender. This was the very first time that she had seen him speak to her so gently. She continued to look at him nkly and was not sure whether she should be happy or sad. Kevin gently held her hand in his and with the help of the tweezers he carefully removed the broken ss from her palm. He checked her hand closely to see whether there were any stray pieces of ss. He applied the antiseptic and gently blew on her hand, so that she shouldn''t feel the sting of the medicine. The entire time his eyes were filled with concern for her. Looking at Kevin''s love and tenderness towards Anne, Cherry was consumed with jealousy. She couldn''t stand it anymore, and that made her more angry and hostile towards Anne. "Kevin, let me wrap the bandage for Anne," Cherrymented as she walked towards Kevin. She wanted to rip the gauze from his hands. She did not want him to have any physical contact with Anne. But Kevin refused, "No, that''s okay. I''ll do it." Anne looked at Kevin in surprise. She couldn''t understand what was happening. She didn''t expect him to refuse his sweetheart. The abrupt and cold way Kevin spoke to Cherry made Anne''s heart throb a bit. She desperately tried to be aloof and not be affected by it, but her cold heart seemed to be warming up a bit. Chapter 76 Cherrys Uneasiness Chapter 76 Cherry''s Uneasiness The way Kevin refused her made Cherry even more furious. She stared at Anne with such hostility and malevolence in her eyes. It was unknown how many times she had wanted to kill Anne. Anne had already been used to Cherry''s malefic gaze. She nced back at her nonchntly and then ignored her the rest of the time. Kevin was not so skilled in wrapping bandages, and it was evident in the way that he treated Anne''s wound. Her hand looked like a traditional Chinese rice pudding after Kevin bandaged it. She just hurt her palms but Kevin wrapped her hand entirely. "Are you really not going to let me eat? What made you think it was okay to wrap my whole hand like this?" Anne said while rolling her eyes in annoyance at Kevin. She thought he was proficient in everything until she saw the way he poorly wrapped her hand like that. "Well, you still get your left hand. Don''t you?" He got frustrated upon seeing the look of disappointment on Anne''s face. He thought what he did for her was special but her reaction clearly gave him the impression that it wasn''t. He started thinking that she might have been a little ungrateful this time. "I do, but I can''t use chopsticks using my left hand. So, what''s the point?" she grunted, while looking at Kevin dismissively. Was this man really just ying tricks on her? "Is that the only problem? Then I''ll feed you!" Kevin said without hesitation,pletely ignoring the reaction of the two women. Anne was taken aback. She couldn''t believe Kevin would respond like that. In a normal situation, she would expect him to just tell her to starve to death. But today was clearly different. He even offered to feed her. She started wondering why he had changed all of a sudden. Cherry was shocked too. Her hatred for Anne grew even more. Kevin''s inclination towards Anne was getting more and more obvious, and she did not want it to keep going on like that. She knew she had to do something to prevent Anne to get between her and Kevin. "Since when have you be so concerned about Anne?" Cherry said with a hint of jealousy in her tone and tried to force a little smile. "She is pregnant with my child. Shouldn''t I care about her?" Kevin said without having any guilty feelings about Cherry''s question. "Yeah, I get that she is bearing your child, so it''s only natural for you to care for her. I''m just curious why you seem to have changed drastically all of a sudden." Cherry was obviously confounded when she heard Kevin''s response. It would seem that he was aware of how his attitude towards Anne had changed, but he didn''t try to hide his affection towards her in front of Cherry. Meanwhile, Anne could not help but sneer while noticing the panic on Cherry''s face. Cherry had been so good at pretending, but he might find out about her true colors soon. "Cherry, go and ask the kitchen crew to prepare some nutritious soup for Anne. She needs it. She is too thin," Kevin ordered. Cherry just said one wrong sentence, so that didn''t cause Kevin to suspect too much. But what he said next made it more difficult for her to ept. She stared at Anne with so much hatred once again. She really wished she could just kill her at that moment. She couldn''t ept that Kevin actually ordered her to do things for that bitch. But she knew that no matter how much she hated Anne from the beginning, she could never let it show whenever she was in front of Kevin. So she took a deep breath and said, "Alright, I''ll take care of it." After speaking in the most gentle tone she could muster, she turned around and did what Kevin asked for. Anne and Kevin were then left alone, and the atmosphere started to get extremely awkward. As much as Anne really tried, she couldn''t work up a word to say. She would have resorted to just driving him away if he hadn''t shown that he cared for her moments ago. She thought to herself that if she would have her cold face on, it would seem like she was totally ungrateful. "Kevin, thank you. I really appreciate what you just did for me," Anne said, as if breaking the ice after an awkward silence between them. She tried to sound more sincere to lighten the mood. "Aha, Anne! I guess it turns out that you still have some conscience left in you," Kevin snorted. He felt so nervous around her just now, but this woman merely thanked him for what he did. He thought that was not enough. He should have just epted Anne''s gratitude and been content, but that was not him. He was really good at ruining the atmosphere. Anne curled her lips in dissatisfaction and stood up. She started feeling dizzy again and she felt a chill feeling. She slightly frowned and tried to ignore the difort she was feeling. She fell down again after taking a couple of steps. She felt as if she was stepping on something ridiculously soft like cotton, and that she lost her strength altogether. "Anne, are you alright? What''s happened?" Kevin reacted immediately and managed to catch her. Worry filled his eyes as he witnessed how she was that day. He wondered if she was sick or something. He tried to check her temperature by touching her forehead with his slender fingers that were a little cold from fear and worry. His face turned pale and he felt flustered when he felt that her temperature was high. "Oh, Anne! Didn''t you feel that you had a fever?" he said while anxiously looking at her. He had never felt so worried before. "Ah, well. I''m fine, I''m fine. Don''t worry. I''ll just drink some water and then I''ll be okay." Anne said while struggling to stand up from Kevin''s arms, but he was holding her tightly. "What do you mean you''re fine? Your temperature is too high right now for you to tell me you''re just fine! You are pregnant. You''re sick, and you''re trying to just ignore it. Don''t you care about the safety of the child you''re bearing?" He was starting to get angry for he had never seen a mother who couldn''t care less if she had a fever while she was pregnant. Hearing him talk about the baby made Anne slightly tremble. She said she was fine because she didn''t want to ept that Kevin was trying to show that he cared. She forgot that the baby might be affected by her fever. "I''ll call Samter. He should be here soon." She put away Kevin''s arms that were wrapped around her, and picked up her phone to call Sam. Kevin knew how much Sam cared about Anne. When he heard her mention his name, his face instantly darkened. He had nned to stop her from calling Sam, but when he remembered her current physical condition, he thought he''d rather not object and just bear the unhappiness he was feeling in his heart. After she hung the phone up, shey on her bed, still feeling ufortable. She wanted to get some sleep. Her body seemed to be in an ice cer, shivering from the chills. Her thin body seemed to shrink into a small ball into the quilt. Seeing her like this, Kevin felt heartbroken. Her pale face and tightly furrowed eyebrows which were painful to watch. Original content from N?velDrama.Org. He took off his coat andid it down on the quilt. He held Anne tightly from behind to try and give her some warmth. The sudden warmth startled Anne, and when she came to her senses, she pushed Kevin away with all her strength. "What are you doing? Let go of me!" She was really angry, but she could not even shout, so it didn''t sound intimidating at all. "What did you think I was doing? Anne, don''t be ridiculous. I''m not being dirty or anything. I just wanted to try and provide you some warmth." Seeing the vignce and surprise in her eyes, Kevin figured out what she might have been worrying about. This woman''s thoughts were pretty odd. She was so sick now and she was still thinking that he might do something to her? Was he such a bad man who would even take advantage of a sick woman in her eyes? "I¡­ when did I say that? It was you who went to my bed without my permission!" Anne blushed a little while speaking in an unnatural tone. She was thinking too much. How could a man like Kevin want to do that to her? The two of them had sex before because Kevin wanted to have a baby. But now that she was already pregnant, this man should feel disgusted to touch her again. Besides, he already had a beautiful woman like Cherry by his side. "I had pure intentions when I went to your bed. It was for your own good. Tell me, don''t you feel warmer now after I just held you?" he said looking at Anne while feeling a little annoyed. He cared about her so much but she wasn''t even appreciative of it. She wanted to push him away until she heard him say that. She felt a little warmth in her chest. It turned out that he did have some humanity in him. Thinking about how Kevin did something nice for her she felt relieved. She moved her body while still in his arms and finally found afortable position. Kevin''s face became a little stiff while Anne moved restlessly. He asked himself if she was deliberately torturing him. "Anne, you better behave yourself or you will pay for it!" he whispered in her ear while gritting his teeth. As soon as she felt his warm breath on her neck, she moved her body, and in an embarrassed tone she said, "What did I do to offend you this time?" She thought about how capricious Kevin was. She didn''t even say anything, so she couldn''t think of a reason why he had to threaten her like that. "Anne, are you trying to seduce me?" Kevin leaned his thing against Anne''s thigh. The sound of his voice was quite charming. Having done a considerable amount of intimate things with him before, Anne knew what he was trying to do. She started feeling agitated and somewhat annoyed. She wanted to kick him out of bed. However, when she felt something hard against her thigh, she didn''t dare to move anymore. She feared it would just cause his desire to grow stronger. "How about you leave my bed?" she blurted out. All she wanted then was for him to leave her alone immediately. She was really worried that he wouldn''t be able to control himself. After all, she shouldn''t be doing something like that with him now. "Do you honestly think you can decide that for me right now?" Kevin said in an enticing and surly voice, showing his strong desire that he clearly didn''t want to let go of her. Chapter 77 Kevin Is Jealous Chapter 77 Kevin Is Jealous "What do you want now?" Content held by N?velDrama.Org. Anne looked at Kevin sharply. She had to endure the soreness she felt all throughout her body. She regretted letting him stay on her bed. "Did I say that I wanted to do anything?" Kevin whispered to her ear. His voice was attractive, yet held a hint of distress. "Kevin, I don''t want to talk to you right now. You''d better leave. Sam will arrive soon. I''m sure that you don''t want to be misunderstood by others, right?" Seeing that Kevin had no intention of leaving her bed, Anne took the initiative to threaten him. "Is it really me who''s afraid to be misunderstood, or you?" Hearing Sam''s nameing from her mouth made Kevin furious. His eyes turned cold and intimidating. She had always mentioned of this man. Was he really that important to her? Why would she bother what Sam would think of her? She was left speechless. She just stared at him with a hint of worry in her eyes. She was thinking of how angry Cherry would be if she found out about it. "Just get out of my bed as soon as possible, or Cherry, the ''love of your life'', would be sad if she finds out about this." Anne used Cherry in order to stop Kevin again. She knew that he would always feel a sense of guilt when he heard the name of the love of his life. She looked righteous as she ignored his gloomy face. Although she missed this man''s embrace, she had to push him away. She was tired of being harassed by Cherry all the time, and she didn''t have enough strength to argue with her over and over. "Anne, I have warned you before. Didn''t you take it seriously? Are you irritating me on purpose?" Kevin said coldly. He was really irritated every time Anne acted like this. Feeling his anger, Anne felt a little uneasy. A shiver ran down her spine as she looked at his fearsome eyes. "No, I didn''t. I was just kindly reminding you that I don''t want to cause a conflict between the two of you. I know that if that happens, I would definitely be the one who bears the brunt of the consequences again." She was so used to being med by Kevin every now and then. Every time Cherry looked sad, he would harass her and put all the me on her. She didn''t want to be treated like trash anymore. "A kind reminder? Do I need to be kindly reminded, Anne?" Kevin sounded threatening. Anne was a bit frightened after hearing him. This woman didn''t take his words seriously. He wanted to teach her a lesson for this and see if she would still dare to irritate him afterwards. Anne had had enough of him. Feeling the hard thing that leaned against her thigh, she became nervous. Did this man really want to do that to her again? She still felt debilitated. Couldn''t he at least consider that? Besides, this man always hated her. How was it possible that he wanted her now? What was on his mind? "Kevin, are you serious?" Anne said shortly. She didn''t dare to say one more word because of the fear of angering him even more. "Do you think that I will make fun of you over this kind of thing? Do you think I''m a fool?" He was totally disappointed of how she acted. The way she responded made him even more upset. He swore that if Anne dared to say anything to irritate him again, he would definitely coerce her to sexual intimation. "Of course not. I just feel that you hate me so much that you would do that to anyone except me," Anne said fawningly with a forced smile. She tried to convince him of his hatred towards her. In that way, she thought that he might feel better, and realize that she was not the woman to get intimate with. However, this just made him feel more frustrated. "Anne, do you honestly think that I will just casually sleep with another woman?" What the hell did this woman think of him, a yboy? What did she mean by saying that he would do it to anyone except her? "I¡­ I didn''t mean that. I¡­" Anne didn''t know how to express herself to him. She had been feeling dizzy. She didn''t even know how to handle this man any longer. She wished that she could just y possum and get rid of him. Suddenly, a knock was heard from the door, and soon the slender figure of Sam appeared in the room. Anne sighed in relief when she saw hime in. She felt that he was her salvation. His arrival was definitely in a good timing! "Anne, what are you doing?" When Sam saw the two lying on the bed and hugging each other, his eyes darkened and he felt disappointed. Just as how it was expected, Sam already misunderstood them. Knowing this, Anne exined immediately with a trace of anxiety in her eyes, "Sam, we did nothing." "Wait, what do you mean by nothing? We both have done everything. Isn''t it a little inappropriate for you to deny it?" How could this woman be so anxious in front of Sam? What did he really mean to her? Sam was so important that she didn''t care about Kevin at all when she saw him. Anne didn''t expect that Kevin woulde out to mess up the situation. At that moment, she felt really upset, and her eyes were so full of dissatisfaction. "Kevin, what do you mean? We did not do anything!" Damn it! What would Sam think of her now? Kevin seemed like he was really out of his mind. There was nothing that happened between the two of them! "If we hadn''t done it, would you be pregnant with my child? Anne, the baby in you is the best proof that you are my woman!" Kevin tantly dered his ownership. After saying that, he looked at Sam with so much intensity. This man even brought up what happened in the past. He was acting so desperate! Anne stared daggers at Kevin. He was really getting into her nerves. It came to a point where she just wanted to kick him out of her bed. How could there be such a shameless man in the world? She shifted her eyes to Sam. Suddenly, her eyes were filled with angst. She was worried that Sam would misunderstand the rtionship between her and Kevin. However, there was no expression on Sam''s face. He was still as gentle as before. Although he was shocked when he saw the two of them on the bed, he surely believed that Anne was telling the truth. "Anne, if you''re not feeling well, let me check you first." Completely ignoring the presence of Kevin in the room, Sam looked at Anne''s face with his soft eyes and gave her a tender smile. "I''m so sorry to bother you all the time." Every time Anne got sick, Sam would always be there to take care of her. As time went by, she felt a little guilty. "You don''t have to be so polite to me. It''s my duty to take care of you," Sam said in a gentle manner. He didn''t want their rtionship to be so alienated. Kevin, who waspletely ignored by the two, felt angry again. ''Damn it! When she saw Sam, she already ignored my presence. What about me? Am I nothing to her?'' "Mr. Kevin, I want to have a physical examination for Anne. Can you please excuse us?" Sam said indifferently while staring at Kevin who was lying on the bed next to Anne. "What if I say no?" Kevin said arrogantly. There was so much malice in his dark eyes. Sam didn''t expect his answer. Nevertheless, he wanted to appear calm, so he smiled at Kevin. "But Mr. Kevin, I can''t do a physical examination of her because you are in the middle. She looks pale, she must be seriously ill. Do you want to dy her treatment? Please reconsider. She is pregnant with your child," Sam spoke wlessly. He was neither humble nor pushy. Even Kevin couldn''t find any ws in his manner of speaking. He had already rified his point. There was no way for Kevin to be resistant. It would be a shame for him to do so. Consequently, Kevin got out of the bed at once. He looked at Sam coldly. It was the first time that he had been left with no words to rebut. Anne finally let out a sigh of relief. She couldn''t help but feel astounded. Sam was incredible! He was able to put Kevin in the right ce with just a few sentences. "Sam, you''d better take good care of her. If anything happens to the baby, I won''t let you go easily!" Kevin said in a harsh tone before leaving the room. Anne felt relieved when he left the room. She didn''t feel anything but oppression whenever Kevin was around. "Come on, let''s check your temperature first." Sam gently smiled at her. He sat next to her, and handed her the thermometer. Anne put the thermometer under her armpit and smiled at him. She started to admire Sam even more. "Do you feel any difort other than fever and dizziness?" Sam''s voice sounded so warm and "No, I think it''s just a slight fever. Other than that, I''m fine." When the thought of what she had done with Kevin outside the vist night came to her mind, the look on Anne''s face became a little unnatural. She had no idea of what was going on in Kevin''s mind. His attitude towards her had changed a lot. Sometimes, she couldn''t help but doubt if the person before her was the real Kevin. "Now that there''s nothing serious, I''m relieved. I''ll prescribe you medicines that pregnant women can take. You must take them on time, okay?" Sam reminded her patiently and took out some medicine from his med kit. "Don''t worry, I will take the medicine on time. I will take care of myself for the sake of this baby." Sam treated her like a child. Anne couldn''t help but feel happy. She was a grown-up, yet he reminded her to take medicine all the time. "I''m afraid that you might forget it. How about this? I will call you every day at the exact time when you should take your medicine, so that there''ll be no chance for you to forget it." Sam knew that Anne wouldn''t feel like doing anything when she was in a bad mood. Now that she lived here, he wanted to take care of her and remind her of the things she needed to do. He was worried that she might neglect herself every time she was in a bad mood. Chapter 78 Suppressed Feelings Chapter 78 Suppressed Feelings As soon as Sam left, Kevin came back to Anne''s room. The moment he entered, he red at her coldly. ''I haven''t done anything wrong, have I?'' Anne wondered. The silence between them grew uneasily as they stared each other down. "I assume that your Sam is gone?" Finally, Kevin spoke up as he slowly walked up to her. The darkness in his eyes never wavered. The thought of how Sam had cared for her just now was making him deeply upset. Frowning, Anne narrowed her eyes at Kevin unhappily. Was he... jealous? Did he think that there was something between her and Sam? "Wait... ''My'' Sam? What do you mean by that exactly?" Anne crossed her arms over her chest. There was a spitefulness in her tone as she raised her eyebrow at him. This man acted so strange recently. "Do I have to spell it out for you? I can see how close you are with him." With his thoughtspletely preupied, Kevin didn''t even notice the jealously in his own tone. "I don''t think I need to exin my rtionship with Sam to you, Mr. Kevin!" Even though she heard the jealousy in his voice, Anne figured that he was only acting that way because of his unreasonable possessiveness and nothing more. With his face growing even darker, he leaned over towards her, putting his face merely centimeters away from hers. His nostrils red with anger. "You don''t need to exin to me? Don''t forget that you''re still my wife!" His hands balled up into fists at his side as he gritted his teeth. In his mind, she was still her woman. How could he let her say something like that to him? "Wife? Are you kidding me? Our marriage meant nothing! In case you forgot, we only got married because we had an agreement. But if we''re going by your logic, maybe you''d also want to exin your rtionship with Cherry to me!" Anne sneered disdainfully at Kevin as she held her ground. It didn''t make sense to her that he would act up all of a sudden. Both of them knew that their marriage was just a superficial one. Yet, here he was now, acting as if they were really husband and wife! Kevin''s eyes burned with anger the moment she mentioned Cherry. "Don''t try to change the subject right now, damn it! Are you trying to piss me off?" ''This woman! Why can''t she just stop mentioning Cherry?!'' "I''m just telling it as it is. Why, are you telling me there''s nothing going on between you two?" Even though he was already fuming, Anne boldly confronted him. How could this man be so domineering and unreasonable? He was the one who stormed into her room Original content from N?velDrama.Org. and questioned her rtionship with Sam. And yet when she was the one asking questions, he started getting all defensive! "You''ve always known what she means a lot to me. Do I really have to exin it to you again?" Kevin said slowly when he stared at Anne''s beautiful face. He tried his best to suppress as much of his anger as he could. A mischievous smile crept up the corners of his lips. It was the perfect time for him to find out how Anne would react when he talked about Cherry, to see whether or not she would get upset. Taking a step back, he shrugged indifferently. "My rtionship with Cherry is--" "Enough! I don''t want to hear it!" Before he could get another word out, Anne snapped at him. Even though Kevin was not able to finish his sentence, her heart started to ache. It was difficult for her to hear anything about his intimacy with that woman. "Anne, are you angry?" The pain in her eyes were as in as day. When he saw how much she cared, there was an undeniable happiness and satisfaction that surged through Kevin. "No, I just don''t want to hear anything about you two. Who cares about who you''re with? It has nothing to do with me!" With a scoff, Anne turned away from him, trying her best to keep her emotions in order. "Really? Is that so? So I guess you don''t mind what happened between me and Cherry, right?" Once again, Kevin was getting frustrated at her stubbornness. What did he have to do to make this woman admit that she cared about him! "Yes, I don''t mind at all. I don''t care if she''s just your friend or if you two are sleeping with each other. Your business is your own. I don''t need an exnation from you!" As she spoke, Anne kept her gaze away from Kevin. She knew that if she cast one nce at him, she might not be able to hold in what she was really feeling. In truth, she badly wanted to tell him how much pain his involvement with Cherry was causing her. Every time she saw them being together intimately, sadness and hate overwhelmed her entire being. "Say that again to my face. Say it!" Kevin fumed. ''How can she be this firm? Doesn''t she care about me at all?!'' Finally, she looked back at him. Although she was intending to say her words directly at his face, she found herself unable to do so. Other than the fact that she didn''t want to push her luck with his anger, she could feel the destion in his voice. "Please, just get out. I''m tired. I don''t want to talk to you anymore" All this arguing had Anne feelingpletely drained. It was just hard for her to figure out what Kevin wanted at this point. No matter what she said, he always had something to say against her. "What if I say no?" he asked sternly. There had never been a woman who drove him away so persistently. He was really pissed off. This made him want her to be submissive to him more. With a sense of pride, he raised his chin as he red at her. ''This man is really shameless to the extreme!'' Anne thought. "If you''re so insistent on staying, then stay. Do whatever you want. Either way, I''m tired and I''m going to bed!" Afterwards, she quickly turned around and slumped into her mattress. With her back towards him, she took a deep breath and tightly closed her eyes. ''I don''t care! Do what you want. I just need you out of my head!'' she screamed in her mind. Frowning, Kevin clicked his tongue in annoyance, thinking of what he should do. For a while, Anne calmed down, thinking that he would finally leave her alone now that she was ignoring himpletely. Unfortunately, she didn''t know Kevin well enough. Not long after, he walked up to the bed andy down beside her. "What are you doing?!" She tried to push him off the bed but to no avail. Before she knew it, he had his arms tightly around her. "I''m tired too! Can''t I rest here?" He held on to her and didn''t let her go no matter how hard she tried to push him away. "You have your own room! Get out of here!" Heat rushed up her face as anger filled her heart. She couldn''t believe the way this man acted! Did he really think she was some pushover, someone he could bully whenever he desired? "Is it so wrong that I want to sleep with you in my arms?! You are my wife! You''re obliged to sleep with me!" Kevin said coldly, his tone domineering. The more she pushed away, the tighter he held onto her body. ''This guy is unbelievable! How does he still have the audacity to say something like that?!'' At this point, she really wanted to kick him down. "You have so many women around you. Just sh them a smile and I''m sure they''lle running to make you happy." Sarcasm oozed in her tone as she sneered at him. She kept thinking about what an awful person Kevin was to her. He didn''t even love her to begin with and yet he was asking so much from her. Just when she was about to push him even harder, Kevin leaned in and kissed her. ''What--!'' Her face got even redder. Her eyes widened in anger. "Are you serious?! You''re so shameless!" All of her patience had "Shameless? Come on. Say that again!" he threatened. "Kevin, you--!" With his face so close to hers, she couldn''t bring herself to repeat those words. As ast resort, she tried again to push him away without much sess. "Anne..." Kevin whispered in her ear, his voice abruptly low and charming. Her heart skipped a beat. All of a sudden, she was unable to move, fearing that he might do something out of line. It wasn''t because she was thinking of her own well-being. Even though they had already slept together, she was still pregnant. If anything happened, it might jeopardize the baby''s health. "Kevin, get a grip on yourself. I''m not Cherry, okay?" she said through her teeth. Why was he doing this to her now? In her heart, she knew that the person he wanted was Cherry. "I know what I''m doing. But if you ever mention that woman''s name again, don''t think for a second that I don''t have my ways of punishing you." ''Damn! How dare she mention another woman''s name at such a moment! What a fool she is!'' When Anne heard what he said, her lips pressed into a fine line. There was no way she would dare to say anything more now. She was really afraid that he would really do something to her if he was angry. "Fine. But I''m really tired. For the sake of the baby, just let me rest," Anne said cautiously, observing carefully how he would react. At first, Kevin didn''t want to let go of her, but when he heard what she said, his hold of her loosened a bit. Of course he was worried about the baby as much as she was. Even so, it irritated him that he wasn''t able to get his way. After a while, his eyes lit up. "The doctor said that the first three months are dangerous period, and you will be fine afterwards," he said in a low voice. "If my memory serves me right, you''ll be three months into your pregnancy in a few days." There was a trace of dissatisfaction in his tone, though he had tried hard to suppress it. Chapter 79 Release His Beastly Desires Chapter 79 Release His Beastly Desires What did he mean by that? Did he never really n to let her go? "Kevin, can you go out? I''m tired, and I want to rest!" She didn''t want to talk about it anymore, so she asked Kevin to leave her alone. "This is my home, and you are my woman. You have no right to drive me away!" Kevin grunted with displeasure. He felt aggrieved that this woman kept on pushing him away. The thought of dealing with this absurd and arrogant man made Anne upset. However, he was still Content ? N?velDrama.Org. hugging her from behind. She couldn''t escape from the tightness of his embrace, so she had no choice but to suppress her anger, and let herself calm down. She closed her eyes and ignored him. No matter what she said, it turned out fruitless because he didn''t want to listen to anything she had to say. She did not want to waste her time talking anymore, so it was better for her to stay calm. The hazy feeling returned to her, and soon she fell asleep. Every angle emphasized her beauty. Her features were so delicate and pleasing to the eye. As soon as she fell asleep, her tempting lips slightly opened. Kevin found her attractive. Staring at her while she was sleeping made him feel a strange desire. There was a trace of tenderness in his eyes. He touched her face gently with his slender fingers, and felt the warmth of her cheeks on his fingertips. Anne moved a bit when she felt that someone was stroking her face. Her pretty eyebrows wrinkled slightly. Kevin leaned closer to her, and was about to kiss her tempting lips, but the door suddenly opened. He was surprised when he turned his face at the door. He saw Cherry''s pale face. Her once alluring eyes were now filled with pain. He immediately came back to his senses and bolted out of the bed. He lifted the quilt and straightened his clothes. "Cherry, what are you doing here?" His tone was indifferent. He was trying to avoid exining what she had witnessed. Seeing Kevin''s indifferent expression made Cherry feel even worse. Soon, tears welled up in her eyes. "I didn''t see you in your room just now. The servant told me that you were in Anne''s room, so I came to take a look." She started to feel uneasy by the time the servant told her that Kevin had been in Anne''s room for a long time. It seemed like the thing she was most afraid of happening had already happened. "Yes, she caught a cold." It was a tepid sentence again, with no intention to exin at all. "Kevin, did you just¡­" After a moment of silence, Cherry finally voiced out what was on her mind. Anxiety overcame her face. She was afraid that Kevin was beginning to fall for Anne. Kevin frowned in displeasure. In his mind, if Cherry didn''te in, he could have kissed Anne already. She ruined the moment he was supposed to have. "You already saw what happened just now." Kevin wore his cold expression. He was not in the mood to exin himself to Cherry. Her heart was already pierced, but his words stabbed it again. His words felt sharper than a knife. Cherry felt even worse. "Kevin, are you tempted by Anne¡­ Are you¡­" Cherry was afraid of hearing Kevin''s answer. She didn''t want to hear an answer that would shatter her heart. Kevin was surprised by her question. He had not even thought about it himself. He just knew that he cared more and more about this woman through every passing day. As time passed by, he found himself desiring greater than what he had with her. It seemed that he was really falling for her... The thought startled him. How could he fall in love with the woman he used to hate all his life? Why did it have to be Anne, a vicious and scheming woman? "Cherry, you''re overthinking again. How could I fall in love with her? You know that men just need to release their desires every now and then." Kevin seemed to have forgotten that Anne was there. He was not aware that his exnation to Cherry would also hurt Anne. A tear silently streaked across the corner of her eyes. "Really?" Cherry couldn''t believe Kevin''s exnation. In her mind, he had already fallen in love with Anne. Tears were about to roll down her face and her eyes looked pitiful. Kevin felt guilty when he saw her face. "Of course what I said is true. Don''t you believe me?" He strode to Cherry and held her in his arms. He gently stroked her hair and calmed her down. Although she still didn''t believe him, Cherry didn''t dare to mention Anne in front of him. She was afraid that if she kept on doubting him, he would really tell her the truth and he would start to hate her. "I believe you, Kevin. No matter what you say, I believe you. I just hope you won''t let me down." Cherry looked into his eyes with full sincerity. She wanted to see through his heart and feel a sense of reassurance. "Don''t worry. I won''t," Kevin said in a sincere tone. He then kissed her softly and smiled at her. "Then let''s go out. Don''t disturb Anne''s rest here. If you are worried about her, I''ll be the one who will take good care of her." Cherry vowed that she would put a boundary between Kevin and Anne from now on. She didn''t want to see him lingering around her nor check on her anymore. "Don''t worry. The maid will take care of her," Kevin ndly replied. He didn''t want Cherry to overthink about it. He deliberately used a cold tone when talking about Anne to assure Cherry that he had no interest in Anne at all. Seeing that Kevin had returned to his usual indifference to Anne, Cherry felt relieved. However, she couldn''t deny that Anne was really a threat to her ever since she stayed in this house. At first, she was trying to build up herself by showing how much she cared for Anne, but now that everything seemed to work differently, her new n was to find a way to get her out of the house. After the door was closed, Anne opened her eyes and smiled bitterly. All this time when she almost believed that Kevin had really changed, she was awakened to the reality that he would always despise her and that she would be thest person that he would fall in love with. It turned out that it was all just a show to release his beastly desires. She was so stupid to fall for his tenderness. Why hadn''t she thought of his ulterior motive? She was almost moved by every moment with him only to find out that he was only ying with her. When he was happy, he was gentle to her. When he was angry, he just said those hurtful words that shattered her heart to pieces. Where did he even get the nerve to do that? It was really an unbelievable misfortune. She didn''t want to sleep anymore. She couldn''t because the truth bothered her. She got up, and endured the dizziness. Then she drank a ss of water; she needed to be sober now. Suddenly, the phone rang. It was a message from Sam, reminding her to take the medicine. She felt a little warmer after reading his message. Life was really tough, but at least, she had a friend who really cared about her. She hadn''t seen Kevin for two days. It was not new to her anymore. At this time, it was certain that he was with Cherry. "Kevin, didn''t I say that I didn''t need to buy clothes? I already have a lot in our house." Standing at the top of the stairs, Anne stared at the two people who were walking hand in hand. They were so intimate with each other. In this vi, it looked as if Anne was the detestable third party, a miserable concubine. "Change them all! Thetest clothes of this season fit you very well. You will look even more beautiful in them," Kevin said in a forthright tone, and smiled at Cherry sweetly. "Okay, as long as you like." Kevin held Cherry closer. He knew exactly how to capture her heart, and drive her doubt away. Anne couldn''t stand to watch their intimate scene, so she just turned around and went upstairs. Their smiling faces put her off the mood. "Anne? Why are you standing there?" Cherry asked as soon as Anne turned around. As a matter of fact, she had already noticed Anne''s presence. She clung to Kevin''s arms on purpose to make her feel jealous, as if telling her that Kevin was never going to be her man. Kevin turned to look at the stairs and saw Anne''s slender back. His eyes darkened, but he remained calm. Anne calmed herself down. She had to endure these people again. How pitiful she really was. She turned to face the two of them and said in an indifferent tone, "I''m sorry to bother you. You can continue!" After saying that, she turned around and walk away. Kevin felt dissatisfied by what happened. The smile on his face disappeared quickly. Cherry failed to see Anne get jealous. Anne never gave her the satisfaction by showing any sign of weakness and she didn''t take her seriously at all. Cherry was infuriated with the thought. "Kevin, Anne seems to be getting colder and colder now. She didn''t even show any reaction when she saw the two of us. Did I do something wrong again?" Cherry appeared aggrieved and held Kevin''s arms. Just like her old habits, she practiced her hypocrisy in front of Kevin again. She yed the role of a victim and put the me on Anne in her most imperceptible way. "It''s okay. Just ignore her. She has always been like this anyway." If it happened in the past, Kevin would surely have taught Anne a lesson. However, surprisingly, it was different now. He couldn''t be ruthless to Anne anymore just like what Cherry always wanted to happen. Cherry looked at Kevin in shock. She didn''t expect this answer from him. She thought that he would teach Anne a lesson for making her sad. This change in his attitude made her worry. "Kevin, Anne¡­" She still wanted to nder Anne more because she couldn''t ept how Kevin reacted this time. She thought that maybe he didn''t take it seriously, so she had to ignite the fire in him. "Cherry, I still have some work to deal with. You can go back to your room first." Kevin interrupted Cherry, as if he had already expected what she was going to say. Cherry simply threw a cold stare at Kevin as he went up to the stairs. She gritted her teeth in anger. In her mind, Anne was a cold and calcting woman. She despised her even more for changing Kevin so much in such a short period of time. Chapter 80 A Vicious Plan Chapter 80 A Vicious n The more Cherry thought about it, the angrier she became. The viciousness in her beautiful eyes became increasingly obvious. She could never ept the fact that Kevin was treating Anne better these days. Now seemed the perfect time to teach Anne a lesson. She took out her phone and dialed n''s number, a vicious look appearing in her eyes. "Miss Cherry, how kind of you to remember to call," a sarcastic voice said from the other end as soon as the call was connected. Cherry frowned in annoyance at n''s tone. However, she told herself to bear it because she needed to use him to deal with Anne. "n, what are you talking about? After all is said and done, Ruth is still my friend, and it hurts me to see her be like this." Putting on a pitiful look, Cherry acted so realistically that people who did not know her might actually think that she was really sad. "This is all because of Anne," the man said in an angry voice. "If she hadn''t pushed my sister down the stairs, she never would have be like this!" On the other end of the line, n''s eyes shed with a vengeful fire, as if he wanted to skin Anne and rip her to pieces. Cherry sneered at the man''s response. Because of the man''s deep-seated hatred for Anne, he would never let her go. "I feel your anger, and it''spletely understandable. Even I didn''t know that Anne was such a horrible person. Not only did she ce Ruth in a miserable situation, she''s also trying to take away Kevin!" Cherry sobbed in a low voice, the feigned anguish apparent in her voice. "What a vicious woman! She even plotted against her own cousin?" n hated Anne with a bitter passion, and Cherry''s words riled him up even more. "n, aren''t you going to take revenge for what was done to your sister? If you want, maybe I can help you." With a proud sneer on her face, Cherry spoke out her innermost thoughts. "As long as I can avenge my sister, I will do anything no matter what the cost. Miss Cherry, do you have any good ideas?" n looked furious, and he seethed inwardly at the thought of his poor sister, who was left in a vegetative state because of Anne. "n, I have a few ideas, but I don''t know if you would dare to do any of them," Cherry said tentatively, and the hatred in her eyes red more intensely. "There''s nothing in this world that I wouldn''t do for my sister''s sake. Tell me what''s on your mind, and I will go along with your n as long as it can help me avenge my sister!" n was outraged at being looked down upon by a woman, but he needed to work with the woman so he did not say anything. "n, you are so cool being such a good brother. This is my n..." In detailing the n she had prepared, she felt as if she had already triumphed as she could see the scene how Anne ended tragically in her n and disappeared from her life forever. There was a moment of silence on the other end of the call. Your n is good," n said eventually. "But I didn''t think that you were so ruthless that you would want to have your cousin killed. As the saying goes, ''one may know the face but not the heart.''" His voice dripped with irony. Even he felt that Cherry''s n was too cruel. Cherry''s face turned cold after her n was ridiculed by n. "You can''t even do that? If you don''t have the guts, then forget it." After saying those words, she pretended to end the call. "Miss Cherry, you underestimated me. As long as I can avenge my sister, it would be worth it no matter how much I have to pay." n''s voice came through again from the other end of the call, and Cherry felt a little smug at his response. "Okay, then it''s settled." Cherry ended the call with a malevolent smile on her face. Soon, she would make Anne disappear from her and Kevin''s sight forever. With her out of the picture, no one would dare to mess with her rtionship with Kevin. At lunch time, Anne went downstairs to find Cherry and Kevin already seated at the table. Earlier, Kevin''s brows furrowed in a slight frown when he saw that Anne had yet toe down. Soon enough, she appeared in front of them. When she saw the other two people, she looked away indifferently. For some reason, Kevin hated it when she ignored him. Her coldness grated on his nerves. "Why were you soteing downstairs?" Looking at Anne sitting opposite to him, Kevin asked lightly, but his tone carried a hint of annoyance. "I was reading a book and lost track of the time. I''ll be careful next time," Anne exined calmly in order to prevent unnecessary trouble for herself. Day in and day out, she stayed in the vi, and her activities were limited to reading. She felt she would really get bored and sick if her routine went on like this. Her words were proper, wless, and delivered in a tone that was neither warm nor cold. Still Kevin found himself dissatisfied with her answer. "Let''s eat," he said impatiently, picking up a dish and passing it to Cherry. Anne looked at the action with a face that betrayed no expression. She had be used to seeing this, so she didn''t feel anything. She silently focused on her own meal, ignoring the two of them. Every time she had dinner, she just wanted to finish it as soon as possible and go back to her room to rest. "Anne. It''s not good for the baby''s development if you stay in the room reading every day. You should go out for a walk when you have time," Cherry said softly halfway through the meal. Although Anne knew that her concern was just a facade, she was somewhat moved by it. Indeed, she had been cooped up in her room every day and even hardly ever exercised. She felt ufortable all over and was dying to go out to rx. "I see. Thank you for your concern, Cherry," she said indifferently without looking at the other woman. Kevin frowned and looked worried. "You''re pregnant, so it''s best if you don''t go alone. If you want to go out, I''ll take you." This woman was so frail, so the thought of her going out alone naturally worried him. His words surprised the two women present. Cherry looked at him in surprise, dissatisfaction clear in her eyes. Her n would be spoiled if Kevin went with Anne, so she would never let that happen. "No, thanks. I''m used to being alone," Anne answered Kevin calmly after taking a minute topose Original content from N?velDrama.Org. herself. Since she knew that the man''s attitude towards her had changed because he was horny, she was She would rather be alone than be apanied by him. Kevin''s face clouded over and his ck eyes were burning. Ungrateful woman! She refused him again! Seeing his expression, Cherry was d that things were going ording to her n. "Kevin, don''t worry. I can go with Anne. I will take good care of her," Cherry said gently, giving Kevin a reassuring smile. "I said, I didn''t need anyone to apany me!" No one knew better than her what kind of person Cherry was. If she went out with her, her mood would only worsen. "If you want to go out, you must have someone with you, or else you should just stay in the vi and not go anywhere." Damn it! Didn''t she know that he was doing this for her good? How dare she refused him again and again! Kevin''s words made Anne inexplicably angry. She was not his prisoner, so why did she need to be followed at all times? However, she could only push down this kind of anger into the bottom of her heart. She did not dare to show it in front of Kevin because this man might really not let her leave the vi. "I see. Thank you, Cherry," Anne said indifferently, trying to suppress her anger. "Anne, what are you talking about? You are pregnant now, so it''s my duty to take care of you." ted that her n was already half-sessful, Cherry smiled more brightly. Although he was disappointed that Anne chose Cherry, Kevin had no reason to be angry. After lunch, Anne changed into a rtively casual dress in her room. Although she was already more than three months along, her lower abdomen was still very t, and on could hardly tell that she was expecting. Her clothes were ordinary. Although she had married Kevin, she never received anything that she deserved. Cherry was herplete opposite. Every time big luxury brandsunched theirtest clothes, Kevin would buy them all for her. Standing side by side, the two women seemed to havee from different worlds, because beside Cherry who wore limited edition clothing, Anne hardly stood out. As he stood at the foot of the stairs, it urred to Kevin for the first time that this little woman had never asked him for anything since she married him. "Anne, let''s go." Knowing that Kevin''s eyes were on them, Cherry deliberately looped her arm around Anne''s, giving the illusion of intimacy. She knew that Anne would shrug her off without hesitation, but that was exactly what she wanted. As expected, as soon as she touched Anne''s arm, Anne frowned and shook her off. "We two are not that close yet, so please keep away from me." After uttering these words hostilely, Anne took a cold nce at Cherry and walked ahead of the other woman. Keeping up the pretense, Cherry shot a wounded look at Kevin and followed behind Anne with a disappointed expression on her face. Chapter 81 Saved By Kevin Chapter 81 Saved By Kevin Cherry followed Anne like a shadow. Fixing her eyes on her adversary, she could barely hide the viciousness that lurked beneath her deep set eyes. ''Anne, I can''t wait to see how long your arrogance canst. Soon you will disappear from Kevin''s life forever,'' she thought. Having walked a few steps ahead, Anne paused for a moment and looked back at Cherry coldly. "Now that Kevin isn''t here. You don''t have to pretend to stay with me. I just want to take a walk alone!" There were so many things about Cherry that disconcerted Anne. Her eyes betrayed the rest of her body. Anne could see that there was a cunning fox lurking behind the fa?ade of her grace. "No can do, Anne! I''ve promised Kevin to take good care of you, haven''t I? How can I leave you? What if something...bad were to happen to you! How could I live with myself?" She said this so haughtily that it made Anne''s blood boil. With a fake smile stered across her face, Cherry glided up to Anne in an instant. The event that she had been patiently waiting for was yet to happen. How could she leave already? "Kevin is not here. You don''t have to be pretend around me. I know exactly who you are and what you want!" As Anne sensed the deceit in Cherry''s demeanor, her face burnt brightly and her tone grew impatient. "I don''t like you at all. I honestly wish you would just disappear from my sight forever. I know that you''re manipting Kevin and sabotaging what we have! Why else would he behave so coldly with me recently? You must have used your vile tricks on him!" As Cherry thought of Kevin''s indifference to her these days, her eyes gleamed with rage again. If it weren''t for Anne, she would have been Kevin''s wife long ago. It had been her destiny, before Anne ruined everything. "Do you think everyone is as despicable and desperate as you to get a man using dirty tricks?" A sneer formed at the corner of her mouth. The expression in Anne''s eyes grew colder than before. "You bitch! How dare you seduce Kevin! I won''t let you get away with it!" Cherry couldn''t stand being called despicable. That was a word she hated too deeply. The anger and hurt rose in her and she made no effort to hide her emotions. "I wonder if Kevin will still think of you as the ''kindest woman in the world'' if he sees your true colors." Looking at Cherry''s new avatar, Anne felt more contempt towards her. Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. She couldn''t believe she had to talk to a person as vile as Cherry. "Kevin will never know. Don''t worry about that, honey! He''ll never know because you won''t be in his life for much longer." Cherry''s eyes drifted to a white car parked at a short distance from them. A knowing smile spread across her angelic face. The end was near for the woman in front of her. This knowledge gave her a cold satisfaction. "Cherry, what do you mean by that?" Cherry''s words sent a chill down Anne''s spine. At first, she thought it was simply ramblings of an unstable woman. But in a moment, she realized it was more of a warning. She looked around instinctively to find the source of imminent danger. "You will know what I mean soon, honey!" The cold smile was intact across her face. Cherry saw the car that was racing towards Anne from the corner of her eye. Soon, Anne would be dead and no one wouldpete with her for Kevin''s love. As the screeching sound of the car brake filled the air, Anne was pulled away by someone with great force. She fell down to the ground in a warm embrace with her savior. Kevin let out a muffled groan as his back hit the ground. His face twisted as a sharp pain went up his spine. Her mind went nk in that instant. Anne was totally confused. It took her a long time to process what had just happened. When the driver realized that Anne had been saved by Kevin, he quickly fled the scene. When she came to her senses, Anne found herself safely cradled in Kevin''s arms. He was looking up at her, his eyes wrought with concern. "Kevin... Are you okay? Are you hurt?" Her voice was gued with anxiety. She searched his face and then further down his lean body for any traces of injury. "I''m fine. What about you? Are you hurt?" Both of them staggered to their feet. Kevin examined Anne and touched her cheeks almost unconsciously. Everything that had just transpired happened too suddenly toprehend. If he hadn''t reacted in time, Anne would have been dead right now. Obviously, Cherry didn''t expect Kevin to appear out of thin air like he had. She had thought that Anne would definitely die this time. Butdy luck was on Anne''s side that day and Kevin appeared right in time to save the day. The scheming look on Cherry''s face had given away to pure rage. Inside, she was only moments away from going hysterical, but Kevin was right in front of her and she had to keep up the act. "Anne, are you okay? I was terrified!" Running towards Anne, Cherry pretended to be innocent and looked at her with worry. Hearing her hypocritical words of concern, Anne turned around and looked at her coldly. "Cherry, did you have something to do with this? You wanted to kill me, didn''t you?" Thinking of what Cherry had said right before the car approached her, Anne was sure that what had happened was no ident. It must have been her n! "Anne, what are you talking about? You are my cousin. Why would I want to kill you? How could you even think such a thing?!" Cherry protested innocently, fluttering her doe-like eyes. "Cherry, can you stop pretending? Do you think I will believe you if you just say it has nothing to do with you?" Anne couldn''t control her rage anymore. Cherry was not only trying to sabotage her, but she was trying to get her killed. There was no way she could forgive her. She had never expected that Cherry would do such a cruel thing to her. ''Murderer! That''s what she is. She wanted kill me and my baby! How could this woman be so vicious?!'' thought Anne to herself. "Anne, you have really misunderstood me. I didn''t expect something like that to happen. How could I have known? I really don''t know how it happened. You are my cousin. Do you think I''m cruel enough to want to hurt you?" Cherry exined anxiously. Kevin was watching her silently and his silence always made her anxious. She was really worried that Kevin would believe what Anne was saying. If he did, that would be the end of her n. Her dreams, her destiny... would all be doomed. "Then what did you mean when you told me that I would disappear from Kevin''s life forever? You knew something was going to happen, didn''t you? Cherry, how can you be such a cold-hearted bitch?" At the realization that Cherry wanted to kill her and her baby, Anne''s mind was clouded by a vicious anger. She would never allow anyone to hurt her baby. "Anne, I have not said anything of that sort! How can you frame me for murder so casually? I''m your cousin. Even if you want to push me away from Kevin, you can''t use me of something you have no proof for!" Cherry had always been excellent at ying the victim. Her eyes were soon filled with fake tears. She knew that she couldn''t make Anne believe her. But it was more important that Kevin believed her story. So she turned quickly to Kevin, her eyes pleading for mercy. "Kevin, I had nothing to do with what happened. I don''t know who was in that car or what happened! You must believe me!" Holding Kevin''s arm, Cherry was trying too hard to look sincere. Kevin''s face darkened and he pursed his mouth to form a thin line. He could tell that someone was deliberately trying to hurt Anne. Even a fool could tell what had happened was no ident. But he couldn''t be sure it was Cherry. "Cherry, I have never seen such a vicious woman like you. I can''t believe you would stoop so low." Kevin''s silence had made Anne feel uneasy. She was worried that Kevin still believed in Cherry''s innocence. "Enough! I''ll get to the bottom of this. But I don''t believe it had anything to do with Cherry." In Kevin''s mind, Cherry was the kindest woman in the world. He couldn''t even phantom the idea that such a vicious act could be done by someone like her. As Anne heard what Kevin said to defend Cherry, her entire body grew stiff. She was in shock, more by Kevin''s reaction than by what had happened. It was so obvious that it was Cherry who had arranged the mishap, but Kevin still chose to believe she was innocent. It was in that moment that Anne realized the truth about Kevin''s heart. She realized that she and the baby she was carrying would never be as important as Cherry to him. "Kevin, thank you for believing me. If you had believed Anne''s lies, I really don''t know what to do," Cherry threw herself into Kevin''s arms and said, dramatically. "I''ll find out who is behind this. I will never let you be wronged." Holding Cherry in his arms, Kevin said firmly. Looking coldly at the two people who were snuggling up to each other, Anne felt disgusted. In fact. It was clear where his affectionsid. When Anne turned around to leave, she felt a sharp pain in her belly. She covered her belly with her hand and slowly sat on the ground. Her hands began to shiver slightly as panic rose in her heart. Although she had escaped death, her body had more or less suffered from the hit! The rising pain in her belly made her panic even more. She was worried that it had hurt the baby and the thought terrified her. Kevin soon noticed the shift in her behavior. Seeing her hold on to her belly, he pushed away Cherry and rushed towards her. "Anne, what''s wrong with you? Are you feeling okay?" His face flushed with anxiety. Anne was still enraged because he''d believed Cherry''s words. She didn''t want to anywhere near him at that moment, so she pushed him away coldly. "It''s none of your business!" She stood up carefully, afraid that any quick movements would hurt the baby. Seeing the pain in Anne''s eyes, Cherry felt a sudden surge of happiness. Even if she couldn''t get rid of Anne this time, it would be great if she could make the baby in Anne''s belly disappear. If Anne lost the child she was carrying, Kevin and his family would not let her stay. "Anne, what''s wrong with you? Is there something wrong with the baby? Anne''s cold attitude irritated Kevin. This woman seemed to be enduring some pain, but she still had the nerve to throw a tantrum on him. Didn''t she know that she was a pregnant woman? Chapter 82 Preterm Labor Symptoms Chapter 82 Preterm Labor Symptoms "I said it was none of your business! You should pay more attention to your darling," Anne said in a jealous tone again while pushing Kevin away. She felt an indescribable grievance at the thought that Cherry wanted to kill her and the baby she was carrying. She felt even worse because Kevin was still favoring Cherry. "I''m really worried about your condition. We need to go to the hospital for a checkup. Let''s go!" Although Kevin was unhappy with the attitude Anne was disying, he still couldn''t help but feel worried about her and the baby. He would never want anything bad to happen to them, especially to their child. He then carried Anne and walked towards his car. "Kevin, put me down! I can handle myself. And it''s absolutely none of your business if I''m sick or not!" Anne was struggling to break free, but she was still furious that Kevin insisted on taking her to the hospital. Kevin started to feel annoyed at how childish she was behaving. His impatience was written all over his face. He kept thinking about how immature it was for her to keep throwing tantrums. "Anne, I swear, you better behave yourself or I will throw you to the ground!" Looking down at her angry face, Kevin could not help but roar in a low voice. He wouldn''t have cared about her if he wasn''t worried about her health. "Go on, then! Do it! Throw me to the ground!" Anne snorted while looking unconvinced. She thought she''d rather be thrown to the ground by this man than be held in his arms, because the thought of him just holding Cherry made her feel sick. "Damn it! If you want something bad to happen to the baby, you can give it a try and see if I would ever dare throw you down like you want!" The damn woman didn''t take his threat to heart at all. She really had a leopard''s courage and became more and more daring. When Anne heard the word ''baby'', she froze all of a sudden. Although she hated Kevin''s persistence, she felt a pain inside her now. She started getting really worried that there might have been something wrong with the baby, and that she was being apathetic about it. She thought that if she struggled even more, the pain she was feeling would get even worse. She suddenly became silent and even though she was still angry, she stopped moving as if she wanted Kevin to let go of her. After all, the most important thing to her at that moment was the safety of her child. Seeing her slowly calm down, Kevin looked at her indifferently and the look in his eyes softened. "You can stop worrying now. I won''t let anything happen to the baby." After putting her down on the passenger''s seat, Kevin drove away as if he hadpletely forgotten Content ? N?velDrama.Org. about Cherry''s existence. Watching the car being driven further away, Cherry started to feel vexed. She felt neglected that Kevin didn''t even look at her before they drove away. Now all she could think about was how she wanted something bad to happen to the baby inside Anne. If Anne lost the baby, she would really have no hold on Kevin anymore. As the car drove on, the searing pain inside Anne''s belly became stronger. Soon enough, her face was covered with cold sweat. As the pain worsened, she became more terrified for the safety of her child. She was really afraid that she might lose the baby. "Hurry up, Kevin!" Ignoring the feeling of disgust she had for him, she caressed her belly and kept praying in her heart, hoping that no ident would happen to her baby. "How are you feeling? Are you feeling ufortable? Is it still painful?" Kevin was looking at her worriedly. He was so anxious and he felt really sorry for her. Watching her endure the pain made him feel a tinge of pain in his heart. "I''m fine. I''m just really worried about the baby." Anne didn''t really care anymore about herself. All she could think about was the baby. She started feeling like she was the one to me because she didn''t act on it as soon as she felt something wrong. "The baby will be fine. Don''t worry." Kevin noticed that she was in a state of panic already, so he stepped on the gas to speed up the car. While he was driving, he tried to offer some words offort. When they arrived at the hospital, Kevin carried her straight to the emergency room. It helped that he already asked his assistant to arrange everything before they got to the hospital. All the best doctors were already waiting for them. As soon as they saw Anne, they quickly examined her. An hourter, Anne got sent to the ward. Her face was so pale but she had fallen fast asleep as soon as they set her on a hospital bed. "How is she?" Kevin asked the doctor in a low voice so as not to wake Anne up while gazing upon her. "Mr. Kevin, I assure you that there is nothing to worry about. She is just having pretermbor symptoms. It''s not a big deal. She will be fine. She just needs rest," said one of the middle-aged doctors that attended to Anne. "How about the baby? Is the baby alright? I''m sorry, I just can''t help but feel worried." Kevin was obviously unhinged. "The baby is alright but this youngdy''s body is still a little weak. Like I said, she just needs rest, and she has to make sure to take good care of herself from now on. Otherwise, an ident may ur at any given moment," the doctor whispered to Kevin. "I see. Thank you. You can leave now." Kevin waved his hand impatiently, gesturing the doctor to leave him. Kevin and Anne were left all alone in a room together once more. The atmosphere started getting awkward. Anne had just dreamt that Cherry stabbed her stomach with a knife and a lot of blood were flowing out of it. "My baby, don''t¡­ Don''t!" Anne clutched the bed sheet tightly with both of her hands. She was obviously in pain. Kevin felt concerned. He immediately went to her side and held her hand tightly. Anne appeared as a formidably strong woman, but in reality, she had a really fragile heart. However, if Kevin ever tried to look back on all the terrible things she had done before, he would have every right to hate her. Despite that, when he witnessed her being hit by a car earlier, the only thing he could feel was fear. Just when the car was about to hit her, his mind wentpletely nk. At that moment, all he wanted to do was protect her even if it meant that he would be the one in danger. He seemed to have paid more and more attention to her. Every time he saw her suffering, he would feel sorry for her, and he felt jealous whenever he would see her talking andughing with other men. In Anne''s dream, the hands that held her gave her a sense of security. As she tried to gradually rx her body, her dream became less terrible. As Kevin continued to hold her hands and stare at her, he noticed her eyebrows rxed, and he couldn''t help but smile. The look in his eyes became gentle. "Anne, I will definitely investigate this matter," he whispered firmly in Anne''s ear, then he turned around and left the ward. Slowly, Anne opened her eyes. There was coldness in her eyes. In fact, she had woken up once Kevin held her hand but she didn''t open her eyes, so that she didn''t have to face him. She clearly heard what he had whispered. She didn''t expect anything from him anymore. She was sure that Cherry was the one behind all of it. He just didn''t believe her. Meanwhile, inside the office of the Fu Group''s Chief Executive Officer, Kevin exuded a strong and imposing aura. He was always intimidating without even trying. "How''s the investigation going? Have you found out who owns the car?" said Kevin in a cold tone as he looked at his assistant, Lanny Li. He was less than five meters away from Kevin, and had been standing there respectfully with his head down. "President, I found out who was driving the car. He is a man named John Li. He is a rouge and has no proper job," Lanny Li replied respectfully as soon as he heard Kevin''s question. "Do you honestly think that that''s what I wanted to hear? What I want is the result of the investigation!" Kevin waspletely dissatisfied at Lanny Li''s response. The cold vibe that he was giving off got stronger. Lanny Li could feel that the temperature around him had dropped several degrees. "President, I''ve also found out that John Li met up with n''s secretary a few days ago. Now I think n must have had something to do with the ident," Lanny Li replied solemnly as he trembled from fear. n? It was him again! He should have known that n wouldn''t give up so easily. It seemed that he didn''t take what he said "Leave me!" His eyes narrowed, radiating a dangerous light. How bold and daring of n to even do such a thing when he knew fully well that Anne was pregnant with Kevin''s baby. He was definitely underestimating Kevin. n''s sister, Ruth, had been left in a vegetative state because of Anne. If it weren''t for that, he would not have let n gost time. It would seem that he really had to teach him a lesson this time. In a high-end club called Heaven on the Earth, n yed billiards with a few ipetent friends. He held two ravishing women in his arms, hisrge hands touching their slender bodies from time to time. "Mr. n, you haven''t been around for a long time. I was almost convinced you had forgotten about me," the woman to his right said in a coquettish tone as she picked up a ss of wine and handed it to n. She asionally touched him and teased him with her sexy figure. "How could I forget about you? I have just been a little busy recently. I came to see you as soon as I had some free time," he said, putting down the ss. He gently pulled her in by her chin and kissed her. "Mr. n, you are so bad! You''re always taking advantage of me!" the woman he just kissed said in a flirtatious tone as she pushed him away. "Ha-ha! It''s funny to see how shy you are. I really like you. Come on, have a drink!" "Mr. n, you''re so lucky to have two beautiful women in your arms! Suddenly, Kevin''s cold and disdainful voice came from behind. He paced towards n with terror in his eyes. n recognized Kevin''s voice and he followed where it came from. He started to feel a sense of panic as soon as he confirmed it was really Kevin. "Oh, Kevin, as I live and breathe," he said, trying to sound confident and unbothered. "What brings you here? You here to have some fun?" n pushed thedies aside and walked towards Kevin. "I''m not here to have fun or mess around with you. You must know why I''m here right now. Don''t even try to act dumb." There was a demonic smile painted on Kevin''s face, and the icy stareing from his ck eyes made people tremble on their seats. Chapter 83 Unleashing Her Hatred Chapter 83 Unleashing Her Hatred "Anne, what are you talking about? I really care about you. How can you talk to me like that?" Cherry''s eyes showed a hint of anger but the dejection in them was felt the most. Well, that was how she had always been. She used to y the role of a victim. She looked at Anne from top to toe. She felt a little disappointed while seeing Anne standing in front of her safe and sound, wearing her usual selfposed facial expression. How could she possibly survive after being hit like that? Cherry had taken a huge risk to carry out the n. Now all her efforts seemed futile, because no matter what she did, nothing had ever worked out in the end. "Care? I think what you really cared about is whether something had happened to my child, and if your vicious n had seeded or not," Anne said derisively. Cherry''s look was filled with hypocrisy. She was the one who was vicious all this time, not Anne. She was an angel with a rotten heart who always pretended to be kind in front of everyone. Anne couldn''t help but wonder if Kevin was blind or just a stupid man, because he hadn''t seen Cherry''s true colors for such a long time. "Anne, you have to be responsible for what you said. If Kevin knew that you treated me like this, he will definitely stand up for me!" Cherry was speechless for a moment and stared at Anne with anger in her eyes. Anne was getting bolder as time passed by. Before, as long as Kevin was mentioned, she wouldn''t dare to make trouble again. But now, she didn''t care for anyone anymore nor fear what they were capable of. Cherry had always used Kevin to suppress Anne, but not all things were meant to work all the time. It didn''t work on Anne now. She was tougher and wiser than Cherry used to know. "Then go and tell him now. You''d better let him kick me out of here." Anne was more eager than ever to exasperate Kevin. If she would really be banished by him, she would totally feel happy. Who wouldn''t want freedom from Kevin and Cherry whose cruelty couldn''t be "Don''t even think about leaving here!" Suddenly, a cold voice came in. Kevin strode towards Anne and red at her. This damn woman still wanted to leave here. It seemed that she really didn''t take his words seriously. Anne was a bit surprised of Kevin''s sudden appearance and she couldn''t help but wonder when he had "Listen Anne, you are my woman. Wherever I ask you to be, you have to be there. Do you understand?" Kevin''s slender fingers raised Anne''s chin. He acted like he was in full control of her life and there was no way for her to escape. Anne waspletely worthless in his eyes. He would never treat her like how a delicate woman should be treated. To him, she was nothing but a piece of trash which he could throw anytime he wanted. "I''m not feeling well recently. I want to stay in Sam''s house for a few days. If you don''t want something bad to happen to the baby inside me, you''d better not refuse," Anne said coldly and turned around. She didn''t want to stay in this vi any longer. It was beyond torment to deal with these inconsiderate people every now and then. "Sam? Do you think I will give you a chance to see that man again?" Kevin looked at her ruthlessly, he was burning with anger when she mentioned that name. ''Damn it, it sucks to hear her think of another man. Did shepletely forget that I''m her husband?'' "What do you mean by that?" Anne didn''t understand what he meant. Looking at how arbitrary of a person he was, she had a bad feeling. "You are not allowed to see him before the divorce. Do you understand?" Kevin sneered, with a look of arrogance and disdain on his face. He was totally unreasonable over this matter. He was always imperious towards Anne, making sure that everything about her was under his control. "Kevin, what right do you have to decide on me? How could you restrict me from seeing someone?" Anne already had to endure Cherry and Kevin every day. This was a proof of how tough she really was, but this was already too much. The two had already gone too far. She could no longer endure. "What right? Because I am Kevin Fu!" Kevin strode upstairs andpletely ignored the anger on Anne''s face. Anne red at his back as he went upstairs. She couldn''t ept how arrogant and domineering this man had always been. She and Kevin were just in a contractual rtionship. She was not his prisoner and he never had the right to decide for her. "Sam is my private doctor, yet you don''t want me to see him until we get divorced. Do you really want something bad to happen to the baby inside me?" She had no choice but threaten Kevin with his baby. She knew that he only cared for the baby all this time. Maybe he woulde back to his senses and reconsider her request for their own child. However, Anne might have underestimated this man. She almost forgot that this man was iparably ruthless. He slowly turned around and smiled mockingly. What he said made Anne lose the only hope she had. "I''ve arranged another private doctor for you. The doctor will be here tonight. Don''t worry about the baby''s safety." Kevin seemed to have done everything ording to n. He knew that Anne woulde to an extent of using their child''s safety to threaten him, so he had to be wiser. Anne clenched her fists and looked at Kevin with hatred. This man had be more ruthless to her. Cherry had been silently listening to the argument of the two. Although she wanted Kevin to be ruthless to Anne, she was not satisfied of what she had witnessed. She was worried that Kevin would keep Anne by his side for a longer period of time. Though the way he talked to Anne showed that he was heartless, he seemed to have no ns of letting her go. Cherry felt anxious of how the man he loved had changed. Kevin was not like this before. He would never care for Anne just like now. "Have you heard what Kevin said just now? Just stay here to nourish the fetus. Don''t do anything out of line, or you will have a hard time," Cherry reminded her coldly as she raised her slender hand, and looked at her newly manicured nails. "What I''m doing is none of your business. You''d better focus on your own and pray for yourself. You''d better not let Kevin know what you have done. Otherwise, that luxurious life of yours will end up in misery." Anne didn''t hold back her disgust to Cherry. She couldn''t let this woman humiliate her again. She knew Kevin at least. He couldn''t bear to be cheated by women. Based on how arrogant he was, he would surely made every woman who would dare to cheat on her suffer. However, he was still deluded by the angelic character that Cherry pretended to be. When he saw her true colors one day, he would rece her blissful life with suffering. "You!" Once again, Cherry''s weakness was caught by Anne. She got really upset and her eyes were filled with hatred for Anne. "Cherry, I''m warning you, don''t you dare try to hurt my baby again or else I will put you to a ce you deserve to be in!" Anne sounded threatening. Though she didn''t want to invite trouble before the divorce, she would never tolerate anyone who would dare to hurt her baby. She would surelye to the extent of being capable of something she had never expected herself to do. After saying that, she went upstairs and left Cherry no chance to speak. Cherry stared at Anne wickedly. She couldn''t bear Anne''s unusual attitude towards her. She already had the guts to voice out. As soon as Anne went back to her room, she felt worried about the baby inside her. She promised herself that she would do anything in order to protect her child. That day, she didn''t do anything because of the fear that too much exhaustion might affect her baby. After reading a book, she fell asleep. She dreamt of someone who was gently touching her face. It was a touch she had always longed for. In that dream, Kevin doted on her and their baby more. They lived happily together, without the ruthless Cherry who had manipted Kevin and framed her before. It was a wonderful dream. Anne never wanted to wake up, she wished that her dream woulde into reality. But in the end, it was just a dream, made to disappear when someone had already awakened. The reason why she woke up was that she was hungry. She didn''t want to see the faces of Kevin and Cherry, so she didn''t go downstairs for dinner, but she couldn''t hold her hunger any longer. She slowly opened her eyes and breathed heavily. She asked herself, since when did her life turn so miserable? "Are you hungry?" A familiar male voice was suddenly heard in the room. Anne looked at the man who just spoke. Since the light was off, she hardly recognized that it was Kevin. At first, she was a bit frightened when she heard the voice. It took a moment for her to calm down. She looked at him coldly and spoke in a cold manner, "What are you doing in my room in the middle of the night? Do you want to see if I''m dead or not?" All of a sudden, she remembered what Kevin''s assistant had said before, and her heart was quickly filled with anger. "If you really die, I will bury you well for the sake of our marriage!" At first, Anne thought that he was just being ironic and mean, but his words were really sharp. She Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. wished she could kill him instantly. "What are you doing in my room at thiste hour?" Anne knew that she would not win over a narrow- minded person like Kevin, so she just decided to remain calm. This man was really unpredictable. What came into his mind to bother him at this time? Why would he pop out in her room in the middle of night to frighten her? "Go downstairs for the meal!" Kevin didn''t answer her question and stood up after he said these words shortly. He would never show her how much he really cared. Most of all, she would never know the reason as to why he came into her room at that time. When he had seen her sleeping so soundly earlier, he was a little reluctant to leave. Chapter 84 The Unusual Kevin Chapter 84 The Unusual Kevin Anne looked at the man in front of her and rolled her eyes. She couldn''t help herself butin in her heart, Was this man crazy? Did he wait in her room for her to wake up, so they could have dinner together? She knew it was ridiculous of her to think this way. However, if Kevin really appeared in her room for this sole reason, then he must be out of his mind. She was already hungry, so she shook her and decided not to think about the reason why he was in her room. Her priority at the moment was to fill her stomach. She didn''t mind getting hungry but she didn''t have the heart to starve the baby in her belly. She got out of her bed and followed Kevin to the dining room. It was alreadyte in the evening, and all the servants and chefs had already gone to bed. She looked around the kitchen and sighed helplessly when she found out that there was no ready- made food that could ease her hunger. It was ironic because in that fancy kitchen, except for some fresh ingredients, there was nothing that could fill her stomach. She heaved a sigh again. It seemed that she had to cook something herself. Otherwise, she would starve until dawn, and there was no way she could endure that. She took a quick look inside the fridge, but she was disappointed when she realized that most of them were imported from abroad. She had never seen such ingredients, let alone made them into something she could eat. She hesitated for a moment and finally took out two tomatoes, a couple of eggs, and noodles that she pulled out from the pantry. She rolled up her sleeves and was about to cook when she realized that Kevin was there with her. He was standing just a few paces away from her. Even though she didn''t like the man at all, it would be awkward if he just stood there and watched her eat aler. "Are you hungry? Would you like to have some too?" she asked carefully; her eyes weren''t as cold as usual. "Okay," Kevin replied with azy voice. "Alright, just wait for a bit. It''ll be ready soon." Anne started to cook the noodles while he sat by the table and watched her cook. As he observed her every move, for some reason, he found her charming while she was cooking. Just the idea that a woman was in his kitchen and was preparing midnight snacks for him made him feel warm inside. This was something he hadn''t felt before. Anne finished her task after half an hour. She put the bowls of noodles on the table and handed one of the bowls to Kevin. "This is the dinner you prepared for such a long time?" he asked with dissatisfaction. He frowned and stared at the noodles in his bowl. Since childhood, he had never had such a simple supper. "I''m not familiar with many of the ingredients in the fridge and it''s alreadyte. I don''t have much time to prepare something grand. If you don''t want to eat, then suit yourself." His ungratefulness fumed her a little. She cooked a bowl of noodles for him out of kindness, but all he could do was stare at the food with disgusted eyes. Anne stretched out her hands and tried to take the noodles back, but Kevin, who had sharp eyes and agile hands, quickly moved the bowl away from her. "Mr. Kevin, I thought you didn''t want to eat such a simple dinner?" she asked sarcastically. The corners of her mouth twitched at his antics. "I never said that I didn''t want to eat it," he retorted confidently. Anne''s mockery failed to embarrass him. What an indecisive man! Anne couldn''t help but be speechless at how contradicting his personality was. He was obviously disgusted, and yet he insisted on eating the food. Her stomach growled and hunger came again. She decided not to argue with Kevin anymore, so she lowered her head and began to eat. She quickly ate her food, andfort overwhelmed her when the hunger disappeared. A wistful smile appeared on Kevin''s lips when he saw her eating heartily. As if that was his cue, he proceeded to eat his meal. He ate the noodles quickly but he didn''t gobble them up. Instead, the way he ate exuded a sense of refined elegance. He picked up a napkin and wiped his mouth gracefully after he had finished all the noodles and drank the soup. "Don''t put scallion in the noodles next time. I don''t like it!" His indifferent tone made it seem like this kind of conversation was a usual thing for them. Anne stopped in the middle of her meal, stunned by his words. ''Next time? What is he trying to say? Does it mean that I would cook noodles for him again in the future? What did he mean about hating the scallion? He had eaten everything, and yet he dared toin about the scallion? If he didn''t like it, then howe he almost ate up the bowl?'' she thought and frowned slightly at his contradiction. "You better not put eggs in it either!" He straightened his sleeves and looked at Anne. Anne furrowed her eyebrows. She could only stare at him with her mouth ajar because of how shameless he was. "Mr. Kevin, I remember that you looked very disgusted earlier. Now you''re giving me so many reminders? Did you realize that the noodles I cooked for you were good enough for your refined tastes?" The irony in her words was very obvious. Anne couldn''t bear this man''s arrogance and imperial posture. "It was not terrible," he answered in a calm manner. He then looked at the woman with his devilishly attractive smile. In her eyes, his smile looked annoying and she wanted to give him a beating, but she didn''t have the guts to do it. It was the first time that she had found out how shameless Kevin was. "Mr. Kevin, if you don''t like it, you can go find your sweetheart and ask her to cook something you like." She thought that if the noodles tonight were made by Cherry, Kevin would not be so stingy with praises. His face darkened when Anne mentioned Cherry''s name. ''Damn it! How could she mention her at a time like this? I had been nice to her, but she just had to ruin the moment!'' "Anne, haven''t I warned you before? Do you want me to warn you again?" Kevin''s face was as cold as ice, and the tone of his voice was obviously threatening. "You don''t have to remind me. I remember it very clearly." Anne''s heart was filled with dissatisfaction because she knew that he was upset again. She didn''t have the courage to go against this man. Instead of talking back, she just lowered her head unwillingly and continued to eat. Her thin pink lips that were stained by the soup looked glossy under the light. He stared at her and swallowed thickly. His Adam''s apple visibly moved as he realized how attractive she was. He had always been a man who never suppressed himself, so he stood up and strode towards her. He looked down at her condescendingly as desire clouded his ck eyes. Anne looked up when she saw a shadow hovering above her. She was surprised when she saw how he stared at her. Fear suddenly engulfed her eyes. Was he going to settle ounts with her just because of what she had said? "I know I said something wrong. I apologize for that." Anne stood up abruptly to apologize to Kevin, hoping he would forgive her. "Don''t you think it''s toote to apologize now? You''ve provoked me several times. I think it''s time to teach you a lesson." He looked down at her in a condescending manner. The flustered woman that looked like a deer caught by the headlights made his heart beat faster. "Mr. Kevin, I¡­ Well..." Before she had the chance to finish her sentence, Kevin tightly pressed his lips against hers. Her eyes widened in surprised at his brazen act. Kevin was kissing her? He was kissing her!!! . . Immersed in her mind battle, shepletely forgot to resist and let him kiss her. Her mind went nk Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. and she couldn''te to her senses. When she was able to fullyprehend what happened, she pushed him away. This man obviously took advantage of the rtionship she had with him. "Isn''t it toote for you to resist now?" He let go of her for a moment and smiled mischievously. Without further ado, he pulled her closer and kissed her again. Anne tried her best to resist him by pushing him away with both of her hands. The woman was like a wild cat. The more she resisted, the more he desired her. He felt how hard she clenched her teeth. He raised his eyebrows and shed a grin. Anne was already fuming. She was so angry that she wanted to p him. However, he held her so tightly that there was no room for her to resist. "Anne, I advise you to stop resisting. I''m sure you''ll be mine tonight." Her body trembled slightly, and she was absent-minded for a moment. It was toote when she realized that her body had been picked up by Kevin. Then he carried her towards her room. The man ced her on the bed gently and easily restrained her arms. Her face was flushed red in anger, but he only smiled at her. "Your resistance is futile, Anne. Just close your eyes and let it happen." His voice felt magical, and for a moment, Anne had forgotten how to struggle. Chapter 85 Forgot To Resist Chapter 85 Forgot To Resist There was a malicious smile across Kevin''s face.Anne''s heart was pounding. She forgot to resist and the fact that this man didn''t even love her.He consumed her, kissing her more passionately this time. The look in his eyes gave him away¡ªhe was losing himself.All of a sudden, she came back to her senses. Quivering, she pushed him away. It seemed that the shock factor had rendered her motionless."Kevin, stop. Let go of me!"She clutched his chest, attempting to get him off her but to no avail as she was too weak."Anne, don''t you think you''re a little toote? I''m already here, why would I give up halfway?"He shed her a bitter grin. It was obvious that he had no intentions of letting her go."Kevin, stop right now! Think about the baby!"Anne wasn''t even worried about being vited by him. Instead, she was concerned about what could happen to the baby if she physically strained herself.Upon hearing this, Kevin paused as if he was considering this. However, not long after, he resumed, still refusing to give up."Don''t worry. I won''t hurt the baby."Since she was pregnant, he would have to be more careful and gentle now.Eyes widened, she glowered at him. More than anything, she just wanted to kick him off the bed. He was hell-bent on getting his way even if that meant harassing Content held by N?velDrama.Org. her."Kevin, have you forgotten about what the doctor advised? He told me I couldn''t strain myself physically. You''re going to hurt the baby."Despite her bubbling anger, she figured it was better if she just talked to him calmly. She knew him very well after all. If she got on his nerves, he would only get more stubborn."I''m going to be very gentle..."Kevin tenaciously insisted. Anne could feel her heart beating rapidly in her chest, the authoritarian look on his face affecting her tremendously.After a night of turmoil, Kevin found great satisfaction as he relished Anne''s body much to his confusion.He found himself ringly uninterested in other women. Even if Cherry took off all her clothes in front of him, he wouldn''t even react. But when it came to Anne, he found himself losing his self-control.When Anne woke up that morning, she felt sore all over as she recalled the events ofst night. A flush of embarrassment tinted her face.She turned over only to find that Kevin wasn''t there anymore. Still, his side of the bed felt warm.She stroked her stomach and was relieved to find that everything seemed fine. She was worried that what had happenedst night would hurt the baby.Enduring her exhaustion, she got up and changed her clothes. She checked her reflection on the mirror and found that her neck was littered with marks. She was mildly stunned and a flush came over her face once more.After cleaning herself up, she dragged her worn out body downstairs.Breakfast was alreadyid out on the table. Both Kevin and Cherry were already seated.Anne lowered her gaze as she wordlessly took a seat.As they had breakfast, she identally nced at Kevin. Seeing him so nonchnt made her feel angry for some reason.He had forced himself on herst night and now he was acting as if nothing had happened. Who wouldn''t be upset?"Cherry, I heard that MH has already released theirtest collection of jewelry. You can go and check it outter to see if there''s anything you like,"Kevin said lightly as he looked at her affectionately."Okay, you cane with me. We haven''t been spending time with each othertely."Cherry smiled in delight.As Anne focused on her meal in silence, she couldn''t help but seethe.He had slept with herst night and now he was doting on another woman in front of her. What was Anne''s role in his life? Was she just a toy he could y with?"Okay, I can cancel my work today. How about I spend the entire day with you?"Kevin suggested eagerly. A trace of tenderness was visible in his eyes, something that only appeared when he looked at Cherry."You''re too kind, Kevin."Cherry was instantly thrilled at Kevin''s sudden show of affection. It had been a long time since he treated her like this."As long as you''re happy," Kevin said softly as he nted a gentle kiss on her forehead.Normally, Anne didn''t mind when the two were being intimate in front of her. But for some reason, she couldn''t stand it now.All of a sudden, she stood up and turned to leave, not wanting to see any of this anymore."Anne, since you''re not doing much, why don''t youe with us? Since your jewelry collection is quiteckluster, I can ask Kevin to buy you a set."Cherry suddenly stopped Anne from leaving. While her tone seemed casual, the inconspicuous ridicule in it was not lost on Anne.While she wasn''t in the mood to respond to Cherry''s provocation, the bitterness that churned inside her could not be helped.Everyone knew that Anne was Kevin''s real wife. It was clear that Cherry was the shameful mistress here, yet she manipted the narrative by making it seem as if Kevin would only give Anne a set of jewelry if she asked if from Kevin for Anne.A faint smile appeared on Kevin''s face as he nced at Anne. The look on his face was unfathomable.Anne turned back around, calming herself down. She wasn''t going to show her weakness to Cherry."I don''t need it. What''s the use of wearing jewelry anyway? It''s just an essory."Her tone was chilly,ced with irony.essory¡ªmuch like Cherry was.Cherry was a smart woman. She immediately understood what Anne meant as a wave of fury crashed through her.She clenched her fists, trying to suppress her anger. No matter how outraged she was, she couldn''t show this to Kevin."If she doesn''t want to go, she can just stay home and rest."Kevin didn''t seem the least bit irritated. If anything, he even looked happy that Anne didn''t want to go.Anne was obviously jealous of Cherry and it showed in her sarcastic remark.Anne turned around, not sparing a nce at either of them and headed upstairs. Kevin could tell that she was fuming.Anne couldn''t help but wonder how Kevin really saw her. Was she just a piece of trash that he could easily discard after sleeping with her?"Kevin, Anne seems to really hate me. What do you think I should do? How can we make her understand us?"Cherry intentionally tried to incite empathy from Kevin, hoping that he would defend her from Anne."Ignore her. She''s just a little hedgehog with thorns,"Kevin said dismissively without even looking at her. He was not so gentle and loving to her as he was before.Cherry didn''t expect his answer. Wasn''t he going to defend her?"But I don''t like this feeling at all. I hate that my own cousin sees me as an enemy,"Cherry said woefully as she grabbed Kevin''s arm.Kevin frowned slightly with displeasure, impatience flickering in his eyes."Well, don''t put too much of your energy on her. Let''s go."He didn''t want to hear Cherry say something bad about Anne. After saying that, he stood up.She clenched her jaw at his fickleness. Despite his show of affection for her earlier, she still couldn''t feel that he truly loved her.Before, if Anne had spoken to her like this, he would have stood up for her. But today, he didn''t. Instead, he shrugged it off.She looked towards Anne''s room, her eyes zing with fury. Ever since Anne lived in this vi, Kevin''s attitude towards her had grown colder. She couldn''t help but be worried as a wave of uneasiness welled up in her chest.Anne really was a huge threat to her.She swallowed back her anger and put on an easy smile as she followed behind Kevin.Meanwhile, Kevin kept a straight face even though Cherry was by his side. He neither felt happy nor pleased as he used to be when Cherry was around. Chapter 86 A Little Off Chapter 86 A Little Off Cherry frowned when she sensed that Kevin was a little off."Kevin, what''s wrong? You look a little unhappy today." She clung on her lover''s arm and almost leaned her whole body against him."Nothing. I was just thinking about work," he answered indifferently after he threw a nce at the woman."You promised me you would stay with me the whole day. Can you stop thinking about your work?"Cherry asked like a spoiled kid after she heard his exnation. A faint smile spread across her lips while she held onto him.She might have seemed happy but that didn''t mean she couldn''t feel that Kevin was being perfunctory towards her.He didn''t even look at her today as if he had forgotten that she existed. She could feel him getting colder and further away from her."Kevin, do you think this one looks good on me?"She tried to draw back his attention. She picked up a diamond ne and put it on her corbone and stared at her lover expectantly."My Cherry looks good in whatever she wears."He was not in the mood to choose a ne for her at all. He only said those words this morning because he wanted to know whether Anne loved him or not.The little woman seemed to be angry at him this morning. That could be an indication that she cared for him.His voice sounded like he was pampering her yet Cherry couldn''t feel any of his emotion.Kevin looked around the shop and his gaze fell at a piece of jewelry that caught his attention. It was a simple ne with a leaf pendant.He picked up the essory and gave out a satisfied smile as he imagined how the ne would suit the little woman.His lover noticed him staring at a ne so she came over curiously. She felt giddy at the thought of Kevin being so focused on selecting a ne for her.When she saw the essory in his hand and found out that it had no grand style, she frowned. She was not satisfied with his choice."I don''t think that would suit me, Kevin. That''s too simple-looking."She preferred to have a piece of high- end and elegant jewelry on her. She would never pay attention to such a simple style."It might not suit you, but it will to someone."Although the style was ordinary, it would look good on Anne''s neck. She had a cold personality that made people feel like she was a pretty girl of humble birth. With this simple but not rustic style, she would definitely look good.Kevin''s words made Cherry realize that the ne was not for her. Anger immediately burned in her heart. He didn''t need to tell her anything, as she could almost guess for whom the ne was.Hatred and anger intertwined at the pit of her stomach. It only made her hate for Anne grow stronger."How about this one? Do you think it''s beautiful?" Cherry held a dazzling diamond ne crafted withplicated workmanship and handed it to him. She was expectant once again.She just wanted to draw his attention back to her. Maybe if he could notice her, he would soon forget about Anne.He nced at the ne in his hand and creased his forehead lightly. If that happened in the past, he would have praised her endlessly. But for some reason, he felt that she was somewhat vulgar.The jewelry seemed to have no special feature except for being big and sparkly."As long as you like it,"he answered. Even though he didn''t like the ne in her hand, he didn''t have the heart to say it out loud. After all, he had always thought that he liked Cherry in his heart.The woman stered a big smile on her face and tip-toed to give her man a chaste kiss on his cheek.He turned his head towards her and gave a faint smile, a smile that failed to reach his eyes.Cherry looked at the diamond ne in her hand and felt a little proud. A piece of jewelry bought by Kevin could be worth tens of millions. When she got to be his wife, she could get whatever she wanted in the world.She bought a lot of luxury goods in just a half-day of their shopping spree. Every time he swiped his card, Kevin didn''t even blink no matter how much he had to pay."Are you done with your shopping?"He looked at his wristwatch and found out that it was already two o''clock in the afternoon. He became impatient after he realized that Anne had been alone in the Vi for hours."I have bought so many things, Kevin. Do you think that I¡­"Cherry trailed on her words when she saw the impatience in his eyes. She thought that she had bought too much. She got anxious at the thought that he might consider her as a materialistic woman.She was worried that her image that she built so hard in his heart would crumble just because of this."If you like, I could even buy the whole city for you."He knew that his emotions were too visible in her eyes and this might have got Cherry to overthink some things.Slowly, remorse wed in his heart. It felt like he changed into another person. He even cared about that vicious woman."Kevin, do you think I''m a high-maintenance woman?"she asked. His words made her inexplicably excited. No woman would not be tempted if the man said things like that."My Cherry is the most perfect person in my heart. Why would I perceive you as a materialistic woman? Today the shopping only costs a few million. Do you think I am the type of man who would be stingy in money when ites to his woman?"Kevin didn''t even think about the money he spent on her. It wasn''t that much of a big deal."That''s not what I mean. I just don''t want you to think that I''m a demanding woman."His words made her panic. She quickly reached out and held his arm then rested her head on his shoulder."I can buy anything I want for my woman. Only those incapable will think that their women are demanding."He didn''t know anything about being materialistic, just like how he didn''t know anything about money."It''s gettingte. We should go back,"he said coldly and went to his car. He wasn''t in the mood to continue to hang out with her.With onest nce at the luxury goods in her assistant''s hands, Cherry smiled and joined the man in his car.When they returned to the vi, her gaze fell on the woman who was having her meal past the mealtime.Anne''s eyes darkened when she saw the two of them walk hand in hand. The reason why she ate after lunchtime was because she wanted to avoid an encounter with them. This coincidence just ruined her day.When Kevin''s eyes fell at the simple meal she had, his eyes turned cold."Who prepared the lunch?"His voice wasced with irritation and the people in his presence were left to wonder what made him upset.A dead silence fell upon them. Even Cherry couldn''tprehend the change in his mood."Didn''t you hear me?" he asked again after he got impatient for theck of response.When everyone came back to their senses, one of the maids came forward. She stood in front of him as her body trembled in fear."I was the one who prepared the lunch today, Mr. Kevin," the maid answered cautiously, scared that he might vent his anger on her.Anne frowned upon the confusion caused by Kevin. ''What''s wrong with him? He got angry as soon as he came back. Was it because Cherry didn''t take good care of him when they went out?'' she wondered."Why were you the one that prepared the food? Where is the chef?"Kevin burned in anger after he saw how simple the pregnant woman''s food was. Even the servants in the vi didn''t eat that kind of food."The chef is not feeling well today. Since Mr. Kevin and Miss Cherry went out today, I¡­"The maid got scared to proceed with her words when she felt the fuming presence of Kevin."So you prepared some food for Anne that even servants like you wouldn''t eat?"His slender fingers pointed at her food as his anger continued to rise."I''m sorry Mr. Kevin. I''m going to prepare something else this instant." The maid was about to walk away but stopped on her way."From now on, you are no longer a servant of our Fu Family. As for the chef, get out of the vi together! We will never hire people like you again!"Thinking that whenever he wasn''t in the vi, the servants treated Anne this way, he becameOriginal content from N?velDrama.Org. more furious.''Isn''t this woman very scheming? Did she really have to endure this kind of treatment?'' he thought."Mr. Kevin, I know I was wrong. Please don''t fire me¡­" The maid knelt and begged for mercy.Her desperation to keep her job was because serving the Fu Family was a good choice. The sry alone was several times higher than an ordinary white-cored job.Kevin ignored the servant''s plea. His cold eyes had fixed on the pathetic-looking food in front of Anne ever since he arrived.Cherry got upset after she saw how worked up Kevin was for her cousin''s sake. She threw a ferocious look towards her and quickly walked towards Kevin."Kevin, don''t be like this. I don''t think the maid did it on purpose. Don''t you think your punishment is too grave?"she cooed him. Her gentle voice contracted the look in her eyes which were full of malice as they stared at Anne. Chapter 87 Getting Angry Chapter 87 Getting Angry Even though Kevin was visibly angry, Anne refused to believe that it was all because he cared about her. If anything, it was probably because of the baby.The maid looked at Cherry expectantly. Everyone knew that Kevin loved her. Perhaps he would change his mind with her by his side.However, to their surprise, he didn''t calm down as they had assumed."Why are you still standing there? Didn''t you understand what I just said?" Kevin said coldly, and his face dimmed."Kevin, what''s wrong with you today? Why are you so angry all of a sudden?"Cherry felt a little embarrassed at how Kevin ignored her. This was the first time that he hadn''t paid attention to what she had said."Don''t make me repeat myself for the third time!" Kevin spat.The servants left in a hurry out of utter fear. Even Cherry was frightened of him.Anne frowned as she looked at the outraged Kevin. She couldn''t help but wonder what had happened to him that made him behave this way. Would he take his anger out on her?"I''m full. I''m going back to my room." She wasn''t interested in spending any more time around the two. As much as possible, she wanted to avoid them.This only angered Kevin further. It was obvious that Anne was trying to purposely avoid him."Anne, stop!" Kevin approached her, anger burning in his charcoal eyes.''Oh my God! He''s going to take his anger out on me!''"What can I do for you?" Anne asked calmly Content held by N?velDrama.Org. as she turned around, eyeing Kevin gravely."Are you trying to avoid me?" he mumbled, obviously pissed.Anne seemed unfazed."No..." she said lightly, keeping herposure."Oh really? Then why did you leave the minute you saw me?" he asked questioningly. The displeasure on his face was hard to ignore."Kevin, you seem to be in a bad mood. I''m afraid your temper will only worsen if I''m around. After all, I am the person you hate the most,"Anne said spitefully. With the way he was treating her after their night together, her anger was definitely warranted."Did I ever say that?" Kevin asked unhappily. When did he ever say that he hated her?"You''ve always hated me, right?" Anne retorted, staring him down.A fresh swell of rage rose inside him upon hearing this.''Damn it! She really knows how to fight back now.''"Why didn''t you say anything when the maid served you that scrappy meal just now?" ''Damn this woman!Now she is really getting more and more sharp-tongued. But why didn''t she tell the maid off?''Scrappy? Was the food she had eaten just nothing but scrap to him now?"I thought the food was good. What''s wrong with that?"While she knew that the maid deliberately made things difficult for her at home whenever Kevin wasn''t around, the food she was being served was still much better than any ordinary family''s meals."Good? Anne, do you not care about yourself or the baby you''re carrying? Don''t forget that you''re still pregnant with my child!"''Is this damn woman purposely trying to get on my nerves? She was served pure rubbish and she ims it was good!'' Kevin thought inwardly.Anne realized that he was just concerned about the baby.She smiled bitterly, and a hint of disappointment could be detected in her eyes. She hoped that Kevin was genuinely concerned about her but she knew that was just wishful thinking. All he cared about was the baby in her stomach."I''ll be careful more in the future," Anne said calmly as she lowered her gaze.Kevin intended to chastise her further. When he saw the look on her face, he became even more irritated.Cherry was seething, shooting daggers at Anne. Kevin was beginning to genuinely care about Anne all the while forgetting about her."Kevin, calm down. What''s going on with you today? You were so happy earlier but the minute we came back, you lost your temper."Smiling, Cherry neared towards Kevin as she leaned her body against him.Feeling her weight against him, he frowned in impatience, annoyance sparking in his eyes."Cherry, go back to your room and rest. I have some work to do."Having spent the entire day with Cherry, he had grown tired of her¡ªfor some reason, he didn''t want to be around her any longer."All right, I''ll go back to my room. Come spend time with me after you''re done with your work." She then red at Anne before heading upstairs.After Cherry had left, Kevin and Anne were now alone in the living room. The atmosphere was thick with tension."I''m going back to my room to rest." Anne nced at him, visibly uneasy. She turned, intending to leave."Stop!" Kevinmanded. He walked in front of her, eyeing her coldly."Anne, you''re not allowed to leave without my permission." ''This damn woman avoids me like I''m the gue.''''How domineering,'' Anne thought to herself."What can I do for you, Mr. Kevin? If there''s nothing else, can I go back to my room now and rest?" She forced a smile, shoving aside the displeasure that arose in her chest."No way!"The corners of Anne''s mouth twitched. She was at a loss for words and she couldn''t help but feel that Kevin was doing this on purpose to spite her.What on earth did she do to offend him? He got all riled up every time he saw her."Mr. Kevin, what do you want? What did I do wrong?" Anne asked sharply, peering up at him."Did I say you did something wrong?" Kevin retorted, arching his eyebrows.His tone made Anne unhappy. Now she was sure that he was just trying to get to her."Kevin, what on earth do you want? What do you want me to do?"He was trying to get on her nerves. She had a limit too and he was quickly inciting her temper."Go to your room!"Kevin said indifferently. He wasn''t angry because of her rude words. He only shoot her a cold nce and walked away first.As she watched him head to her room, she was rendered speechless.After hesitating for a moment, she finally followed him.As soon as she entered the room, the door was mmed shut.Before she could even react, Kevin immediately pulled her into his arms."Kevin, what are you doing? Let go of me!" Realizing what was going on, Anne struggled to free herself from his tight grip."Really? You still don''t know what I want to do? I didn''t have a good timest night. Let''s finish what we started."Kevin''s loins were burning as desire filled him."Kevin, you''re a pervert!"Anne scolded, blushing. Was this the only thing in his mind?"Do you want me to tell you if I''m a pervert or not? Or do you want me to show you?"Kevin couldn''t control himself, his desire for her was eating him up.He had no idea when he started feeling this way. On the inside, he was still in denial. He convinced himself that he was just obsessed with her body.As realization dawned on Anne, she began to panic."Kevin, let go of me. Aren''t you afraid that someone''s going to hear us?"Anne kept struggling. She didn''t want to do this especially after he had acted as if nothing had happened after they had just slept with each other Kevin pressed Anne against the wall, kissing her passionately despite her protests.Shock and disbelief were written all over Anne''s face. He really was going to do this. Wasn''t he worried about servants passing by and possibly hearing them?She felt disgusted at the thought of what Kevin was going to do to her in her own room. He didn''t even seem to care that it was the middle of the day!She tried to resist but couldn''t because he had shoved his mouth against hers.When he finally let her go, she exhaled sharply, ring at him."Enough! Kevin, don''t you even feel guilty? Why are you doing this to me? What right do you have to do this to me?" Anne roared as tears streamed down her face.He didn''t even love her yet he kept doing this to her. How did he really see her then? Chapter 88 Lack Of Interest Chapter 88 Lack Of Interest As Kevin looked at the tears that rolled down Anne''s face, a trace of distress passed through his heart. His expression became a little stiff, and he frowned impatiently. "Why are you crying?" His emotions were filled with guilt and anger. This stubborn woman made him feel insulted for the first time. There were so many women out there who were desperate to get into his bed. This woman who had all the chance to be intimate with him did nothing but resist him over and over. She cried as if she had suffered a lot, when in fact he just intended to give her pleasure. "Kevin, what on earth do you want me to do to make you stop torturing me like this?" Anne felt that she really couldn''t stand it anymore. She couldn''t stand Kevin''s hot and cold attitude towards her, let alone his moodiness. "Torture you? Anne, do you think what I''m doing is torturing you?" Kevin seemed to have taken the word ''torture'' seriously. His face darkened at an instant. ''Damn it! How could she think that I am torturing her now?'' "Kevin, I''m tired enough of living in this vi. Please don''t torture me anymore, okay?" Anne pleaded in a quavering voice. She wiped her tears and looked into his eyes seriously. All she wanted now was to nourish the baby until her time of delivery. She promised to herself that right after she gave birth to her child, she would terminate the agreement with Kevin. She couldn''t wait to have her freedom. "Listen, Anne, you are mine, so it''s your duty to please me!" Kevin held Anne''s shoulders with his hands and shouted at the top of his lungs. "Please you? Have you forgotten that our rtionship is merely based on the contract? There is no such term in our agreement," Anne said coldly as her tears fell down her face. Kevin showed no mercy in front of her. His eyes were fiery and intimidating. She had never seen him this angry, and it made her feel uneasy. Did this man want to give her a beating? She couldn''t help but worry for safety, and mostly the safety of her child. Kevin was capable of anything when he was exasperated. But to her surprise, Kevin''s mood shifted so quickly, as if he had a serious mental illness. His gloomy face was suddenly reced with a bright one. However, there was something wrong behind his smile. "Anne, do you want me to terminate the contract by deliberately saying these words to me?" Kevin leaned to Anne closer and smiled wickedly. He looked at her keenly as if he had already known what was on her mind. Anne was left speechless. How did hee to this conclusion? As far as she remembered, she had not mentioned a thing about wanting him to terminate the agreement from the beginning to the end. This man''s mind was incredibly confusing. "Kevin, you seem to have misunderstood me. I have never said such words!" Anne managed to hide her confusion and still looked at him seriously. She exined herself only to contradict what he had misunderstood. Kevin always had a bad impression of her. She didn''t want him to think of her like that, so she did everything to change what was in his mind. "You haven''t said it, but clearly this is what you had in mind. Since when are you too cowardly to admit it?" Kevin scowled in a dissatisfied and cold manner. The damn woman had the guts to admit the uneptable things that she had done in front of him before. What stopped her from admitting the truth right now? His arrogance made Anne upset and she was left no words to say. He only believed whatever he thought was right. "Mr. Kevin, how do you know that is what I had in mind?" Anne asked coldly, trying her best to suppress the anger in her heart. "Didn''t you refuse me just because of the agreement? If there was no agreement, would you still refuse?" Would you?" Kevin smiledcently. He had long believed that Anne kept on refusing him because of the contract. Anne was speechless as she looked into his eyes. She didn''t know how to protect herself from this stone-hearted and selfish man. She ran out of ways to make him believe her. What else could she do? Kevin touched her face with his big palm. His touch made her tremble in fear. "Why are you speechless? Is it because I''ve seen through you?" He raised his eyebrows and smiled brightly. "Kevin, did you ever realize how arrogant you are? Arrogance is a disease that needs to be cured!" Anne retaliated in anger and looked at him sharply. This man did nothing but aggravate her. "What did you say? Say that again!" He suddenly strangled her with his own hands. His fingers turned white due to the force he was exerting. He gritted his teeth. What Anne said exacerbated the situation. Anne could hardly breathe. His grip on her neck was so tight. Still and all, she looked at him fiercely and never bowed down. "If you are not afraid that the baby might be in danger, you can strangle me to death!" Her voice was a bit raspy. She was still unwilling to give up despite the pain she felt. Kevin, who was on the verge of his outrage, became more furious. She was really courting death in front of him, who had lost himself in aggression. "Anne, are you threatening me?" His aura was as dark as the depths of hell, and his eyes were burning ferociously. "I''m telling the truth. If you don''t let me go, something bad might really happen to the baby." Anne got more worried about the baby inside her. He seemed uncontroble at the moment and she was afraid that her child might be endangered by his anger. She knew exactly what he was capable of, Content ? N?velDrama.Org. yet she chose to infuriate him even more. Although Kevin had an impulse to strangle her to death, he returned to his senses when he heard her words. "Listen up, Anne. No one can threaten me, especially you!" He finally let go of her. The mark of his hands could be traced around her neck. She panted in exhaustion, and immediately stroked her belly. After a moment, Kevin mmed the door shut, leaving a loud bang. Anne calmed herself down and sat on the bed. She was exhausted of arguing with him almost every day, and now, she was almost strangled to death. She was starting to understand Kevin less. This man was totally unpredictable. There might be more arguments awaiting in the future. Who knew? It might be worse than what just happened. When Kevin returned to his room, his face was still gloomy and his dark aura hadn''t subsided yet. When Cherry noticed that someone came in, she quickly stood up and walked towards him with a sweet smile. "Kevin, you''re back!" She held his arm and looked at him with dazzling eyes. Kevin frowned in displeasure when he saw her in his room. However, he tried to hold his temper. "Why are you here?" His tone was stolid, and no one could tell what he was thinking at that moment, not even Cherry, who knew him the most. "I went to the study room to look for you, but you weren''t there. Did you go to Anne''s room earlier?" Cherry asked him cautiously. Kevin''s anger had subsided earlier, but when he heard her mention Anne, his countenance turned grim again. "Don''t mention her name in front of me anymore! Do you understand?" ''She is such an ungrateful woman. Since she wants to escape from me, then I will just let her be.'' The smile on Cherry''s facepletely disappeared because of Kevin''s strange attitude. However, when the meaning of what he said sank into her mind, she chuckled in her heart. It seemed that Anne irritated him that much. She felt triumphant with the thought. She held his hand tightly as she said in a spoiled tone, "Kevin, what''s wrong with you? Who made you angry again? Is it Anne?" She mentioned Anne''s name again to make him totally despise that damn woman. "Cherry, I don''t want to repeat what I just said! I''m tired, get out of my room!" Kevin was inexplicably irritated after hearing Anne''s name over and over. He just wanted to be left alone. No one could ease his anger this time, not even Cherry. She didn''t expect that he would also be cold to her. She felt a little sad, but she was satisfied knowing that he would never like Anne again based on how he was acting. "I''m sorry, Kevin. I didn''t mean to do that. I''m just worried about you. Don''t be angry with me." Tears welled up in her alluring eyes. She looked at him as if she had suffered a lot. Kevin had had enough today, and seeing how pitiful she looked annoyed him even more. Yet he suppressed his anger, and held her in his arms. "It''s my fault. I shouldn''t have lost my temper on you." The dark aura had finally subsided when he looked at her angelic face. It was reced with tenderness in his eyes. "Kevin, can I ask how Anne made you angry?" Cherry looked up at him with a hint of worry in her eyes. She was curious about what Anne did to upset him like this. "It doesn''t matter what she has done. You are the most important person in my life!" Kevin smiled foolishly and kissed her lips. The pitiful Cherry didn''t know that the kiss was not meant for her. It was truly meant for Anne. He just couldn''t do it to her because she had always refused him. Anne was really a tough person. But he was definitely the toughest. He vowed that he would surely punish her for having the guts to threaten him like that. Cherry was carried away by Kevin''s actions. When she came to her senses, she responded by kissing him more passionately. Kevin hadn''t done such intimate actions with her for a long time, maybe because he was always focused on Anne these past few days. Cherry hoped that their rtionship could go further. Although Cherry''s features were undeniably iparable to Anne''s, Kevin didn''t feel the same interest he had towards Anne to the woman he was kissing right now. Anne was simply irresistible, nothing more, nothing less. He ended the intimate moment and nudged her away. She was expecting the next thing that would happen after the passionate kiss, but the excitement she felt was ruined so soon. She was surprised by the way he was acting. "Kevin, what''s wrong with you? Did I do anything wrong?" Chapter 89 I Promise Chapter 89 I Promise Cherry frowned as she gazed at Kevin, feeling wronged. "Cherry, it''s gettingte. You should go to bed early." Kevin lookedposed as if nothing had just happened. "Kevin, what''s going on with you? Why are you being so cold to me? Did I do something wrong? Tell me so I can do something about it." Cherry refused to give up. She could feel that he was aroused. If he wanted her, she wasn''t going to hold back. "No, I''m just not in the mood to do it now." Inwardly, Kevin began to hate himself. Damn it! Anne refused him. But the more she refused him, the more he wanted her. And now he wasn''t even interested in Cherry. Cherry didn''t buy his answer. She could tell that Kevin was behaving like this was because of Anne. Her hatred for Anne surged through her veins. "Kevin, don''t you like me anymore?" After a long silence, Cherry finally plucked up the courage to ask the question that had been brewing at the back of her mind for so long. She was tired of walking on egg shells every single day. Upon hearing this, Kevin frowned, feeling mildly annoyed. However, when he thought back to how he had been treating Cherry these past few days, he knew he had to be more patient. "What do you mean? You''re the only woman I like. Why would I not like you? Cherry, you''re overthinking this." Smiling gently, Kevin fondly caressed Cherry''s face. Original content from N?velDrama.Org. Feeling his warmth, Cherry grabbed his hand and looked at him expectantly. "Kevin, promise me you will always love me, okay? I''m scared that you''ll hate me and leave me." "I promise," Kevin said softly, shing her a soft smile. Cherry lightened up when she finally heard the answer she wanted. Kevin was a man of his word. If he promised her this, there was no doubt in her mind that he would keep it. "I''m going to bed now. You should sleep too." After nting a quick kiss on Kevin''s cheek, Cherry left his room. The minute the door was closed, the smile on Kevin''s face vanished. He was filled with anger when he recalled how Anne had refused him just now. If she wanted to avoid him then so be it! That night, Anne tossed and turned, barely getting any sleep. She still felt uneasy whenever Kevin''s angry face appeared in her mind. She began to doubt if she had been too harsh with him. That morning, dark circles were visible under Anne''s eyes. When she headed downstairs, she found Kevin and Cherry being overtly intimate with each other. "Kevin, you''re so annoying. What are you doing with your hand?" Cherry shyly pushed Kevin away, obviously enjoying herself. Following the voice, Anne looked towards the sofa. On the sofa, it seemed that Kevin was on top of Cherry, exploring her body with his hand rather yfully. Rage gripped Anne seeing him do this to another woman especially after what had happenedst night. She had long suspected that he was merely using her like a toy. If he wanted someone to satisfy his urges, why didn''t he just go to Cherry? She turned away as hearing Cherry''s giggles made her seethe inwardly. "Enough!" Anne mmed her ss of water on the table as she red at the two on the sofa. "If you want to make out, go back to your room!" Even if she didn''t want Kevin anymore, she still couldn''t ept the fact that he was flirting with another woman right in front of her very eyes. Upon hearing Anne''s voice boom across the room, the two were visibly stunned. Kevin got off Cherry, shing her a yful smile. However, his eyes showed his disdain. "Anne, Kevin and I were just..." Cherry sat up and scowled at Anne. Since she had her back facing Kevin, he couldn''t see her expression. "Cherry, don''t you have any sense of shame? I guess that''s what''s to be expected from a mistress!" Anne exploded, unable to take it any longer. Her chest heaved violently, anger surging inside her. All this time, she''d been silently enduring the shamelessness of their illicit affair. When Cherry heard this, her face turned pale. Her jaw tightened in anger. However, she couldn''t show this to Kevin. She had to act pitiful in front of him. "Anne, I''m your cousin. How could you call me that? Do you know how much it hurts me when you talk to me like that?" Her eyes glistened with tears. Seeing her like this, any man would want to protect her. Kevin lit up when he noticed that Anne was fuming. Was she jealous? ''I thought she didn''t care about me,'' he thought to himself. "Cousin? Cherry, if you really take me as your cousin, would you do this to me? Seducing your own cousin''s husband?" Anne sneered as she looked at Cherry, her eyes gleaming with mockery and disdain. "Anne, I know you''re mad about me and Kevin but we really love each other. Don''t me me, okay?" "Stop pretending. It''s disgusting! And I don''t need your apology!" Snorting, Anne turned around and stalked off, making her way upstairs. The moment she turned around, her tough exterior copsed. Her eyes swam with tears as she hurried back to her room. She didn''t know why she said any of that. She knew this was going toe back and bite her in the ass but she couldn''t control herself. Seeing the two of them flirting in front of her was thest straw for her. "Kevin..." Cherry whimpered. When she turned to look at Kevin, she made sure she looked pitiful. "Don''t cry. It''s not a big deal." He gently wiped the tears off her face. His tone was so indifferent that it was hard to tell how he really felt. "What Anne said made me so upset. I know it''s my fault that we''re together but I can''t control myself. I love you and I want to be with you," Cherry said in an aggrieved tone as she threw herself into his arms. "I know." His voice was still cold and emotionless. "Kevin, don''t you care about what Anne just said? Aren''t you even mad?" Cherry raised her eyes to look at him, feeling reluctant at hisckluster response. Kevin didn''t even seem affected at all. Naturally, Cherry felt a little disappointed. In the past, if Anne had talked to her like this, he would have stood up for her and told Anne off. "You shouldn''t stoop down to her level. She''s nothing but a surrogate. Once she gives birth to the baby, she''ll be gone." Kevin felt displeased at the thought of Anne not caring. If she didn''t care about him, why did he care about her then? Cherry looked at him suspiciously, as if she was gauging his sincerity. Anne felt helpless staying in this vi. She couldn''t even talk to anyone. She picked up her phone. She hesitated for a long time before finally deciding to call Ryan. As soon as she dialed the number, she instantly regretted it. She wanted to hang up but unfortunately, Ryan already answered the call. "Anne, you finally remembered to call me." Ryan''s tone was gentle but a hint of surprise could be detected in it. "Ryan, how have you been doing?" Anne said quietly as she pressed the phone against her ear. "Anne, I missed you so much..." Ryan said seriously after a long pause. Anne found herself at a loss for words. Regret filled her. Why did she call him anyway? While Ryan was special to her, her love for him was purely tonic. "Ryan..." "Anne, let''s meet up. We can eat your favorite seafood noodles," Ryan interrupted her before she could finish what she was going to say. Seafood noodles? He still remembered her favorite food as a child. She wanted to cry. Her eyes turned red. She''d been repressing herself for so long. Her heart softened knowing that Ryan still cared about her. It wasn''t what he just said but rather that he seemed to still genuinely care about her. "Okay, see you in half an hour." In the end, Anne couldn''t refuse. Despite her reluctance, she knew that he was the only person who really cared about her. She didn''t want to lose that. After Ryan hung up the phone, his eyes gleamed as he grinned from ear to ear. Anne collected herself as she put on some light make-up, attempting to hide the fact that she had just cried. She didn''t want Ryan to know about her current situation. Chapter 90 Fuck Off! Chapter 90 Fuck Off! When Anne got downstairs, Kevin was still there, but Cherry was not. She nced at him indifferently. Then, she walked past him and prepared to leave. She couldn''t help feeling angry when she thought of what Kevin and Cherry just did. "Stop!" Kevin''s cold voice wormed its way into earshot. He stood up and strode towards her. "Where are you going?" Suppressing her anger, Anne turned her head and fixed him with an icy re. "Out for a walk." "I''ll go with you!" It was not a request. It was a statement. Kevin''s face was cheerless and his words were even more domineering than usual. "No, thanks. You should spend more time with Cherry," she replied in a chilly tone. And with that, she left the vi. When Kevin looked at the woman walking away from him, his face darkened, his ck eyes filled with anger. This damn woman refused him again! Anne came to the street Ryan talked about. They often yed there when they were young. More than ten years had passed, but the street was still the same as always. The gates of memory were thrown wide. She smiled as she remembered happier times. She lost herself in reverie, in treats and toys and the sound of childrenughing. "Do you remember this ce? A voice pulled her back to reality. It was gentle, pleasant. It was Ryan. "We came here a lot when we were kids," he added. Anne turned in the direction of the voice. His handsome face was so close to her. His eyes were tender, and the smile at the corners of his mouth was even more so. For a moment, Anne was daydreaming. When she realized what was going on, she took a couple steps back. But the pregnant woman was heedless of the stairs behind her and lost her bnce. "Ah..." At the thought of the baby she carried, panic shed through her eyes. "Watch out!" Ryan''s voice reached her ears, and the next second, she was in his arms. Anne buried her face in Ryan''s chest. Being this close to him, she thought she could hear his heart beating. "You are still as careless as ever." Ryan held her in his arms, an affectionate smile on his handsome face. She was still the same as when she was a child. Hearing his voice, Anne broke free from his arms in a hurry. She felt more than a little awkward. "Thank you..." she said in a small voice, with a trace of blush. She wasn''t sure why she was so nervous. Maybe it was because she hadn''t been that close to him before. Nearby, in a pure ck Ferrari, Kevin looked at the two joylessly. Their intimate behavior and Anne''s shyness stung his heart. He gripped the steering wheel tightly with both hands, and his fingertips began to turn white from the strain. "So formal, Anne! I think I liked you better when we were kids. You didn''t used to worry about being polite." Ryan felt that there was a rift that had grown between them. He wasn''t happy about that. "Ryan, I..." She stumbled over her words, not sure what to say next. "Hey, I''m hungry. Let''s get some seafood chow mein! You still like that, right?" Without giving her a chance to answer, Ryan took her hand and led her towards the shop. Anne didn''t like how close he was. She wanted to get rid of Ryan, but he held her hand more tightly when she tried to slip away. So she could only let him hold her hand. "This is the ce. I remember you told me you liked looking out the window." Ryan took Anne to the table they used to sit at. He pointed towards the window, tenderness in his ck eyes. "Do you remember everything about us?" Anne smiled. She was moved. He did remember. Memories of a simpler time. "I''ll hold those memories of us in my heart forever." His voice was mellow and soothing, but also bewitching. He was smooth and maic. Anne was amazed for a moment. She didn''t know what to say to that. The waiter brought two bowls of noodles and ced them in front of the two. "Ah, here we are. Dig in. Does it taste the same as when you were a kid?" As if he had noticed her awkwardness, Ryan handed a pair of chopsticks to her and changed the topic. Taking the chopsticks, Anne smiled at him and began to eat. "I remember this used to be your favorite." Ryan gracefully ced all the seafood in his bowl into Anne''s. He wasn''t wrong. All of the seafood in her bowl was what she enjoyed best as a child. Anne was on the verge of tears. "Ryan, don''t be so good to me..." She was used to being ignored, and Ryan''s warmth made her ufortable. It was like she was used to abuse. "I can''t help it. It''s how I am. You''ll always be the little girl in my heart who I need to take care of." Ryan''s ck eyes were full of sympathy and love in equal measure. Anne couldn''t control her tears anymore. In a panic, she wiped them with the back of her hand. She didn''t want Ryan to see her this way. "Now, now. No tears. I''ll start feeling bad for you." Ryan gently wiped her tears with his slender fingers. His eyes were full of pity. She had changed a lot while they were apart. She was no longer as carefree Content held by N?velDrama.Org. as she had been as a child. Kevin red at the two people sitting by the window, the mes of anger consuming his heart. So this faithless bitch came here on a date with Ryan. Good, very good! So she was going to cheat on him! Starting the car, Kevin whipped the wheel this way and that, as if trying to vent his anger. After meeting Ryan, Anne felt much better. Although she lived a miserable life with Kevin, at least there was someone who really cared about her. Back at the vi, Kevin turned up there unexpectedly. Frowning, Anne ignored him and tried to go back to her room. Kevin grabbed the coffee cup in his hand and smashed it against the wall. Brown liquid ran down the walls and pooled on the floor. The cupy in shards. Bang! Startled by the sound, Anne stopped. After that, she walked towards the stairs again. She didn''t know why this man was so angry. "Anne, stop!" His tone was frigid and terrible. He walked behind her. His sharp eyes were like swords, and she could feel his rage. "What''s up, Mr. Kevin?" Anne said calmly. "Where did you go? Who did you meet? What did you do?" He spat out a barrage of questions, and his face darkened more and more with every word. "Ohe on, Mr. Kevin. Do I really need to tell you? I''m not a child!" This man had no right to ask her anything. "You''d better tell me the truth! Don''t try me!" This damn woman was bashful in Ryan''s arms, but now she looked defiant. "Mr. Kevin, are you out of your mind?" What had she done to offend this man? She wondered if he were crazy! "What did you say?" Kevin grabbed her shoulder and growled. "Kevin, what are you doing? You''re hurting me. Let go!" There was a piercing pain in her shoulder. Anne frowned tightly, and a thought urred to her. This man was really violent. He tended to hit her whenever he got riled up. "Answer my question! Tell me!" Kevin stared at her with his red eyes, as if he were going to swallow her. "Let go of me!" She struggled hard. As Kevin tightened his grip, the expression on her face reflected more and more pain. "Who is he to you? A boyfriend?" Kevin asked harshly, fighting the urge to kill Anne. "Did you follow me?" Shocked, Anne looked at him angrily. "You shouldn''t follow me! And as for me and Ryan? That''s our business. You shouldn''t even care!" What right do you have to ask?" She was furious at the thought of Kevin stalking her. "What right? Anne, have you forgotten who you are?" He moved his hand to her chin, and pinched her jaw, forcing her to look into his eyes. "Anne, you have to remember you''re my woman. Don''t try to cheat on me before we divorce, or you''ll die miserably!" "So you can be with another woman, but I can''t date other guys? Kevin, don''t you think you''re being too controlling?" Holding back her tears, Anne looked at him stubbornly. This man could find another woman and bring her to his vi. Why couldn''t she find another man? Besides, it''s not like she and Ryan were doing anything. "Controlling? I''ll show what controlling is!" He kissed her lips suddenly. "HMM..." She pounded on Kevin''s chest with all her might. She was humiliated. What made him think he could do what he wanted? But no matter how hard she struggled, Kevin wouldn''t let her go. "Ouch..." He pushed her away and red at her. This damn woman bit him! Was she a dog? "Damn! You even bit me?" Pulling Anne to his side, Kevin looked down at her with anger in his eyes. "Fuck off, Kevin!" Anne couldn''t control her anger anymore. Fuck off? And now she was cursing at him too? "I''ll do more than that!" Kevin picked up Anne and whisked her upstairs. "What are you doing? Let go of me!" Knowing what Kevin was going to do, Anne panicked and struggled harder, but Kevin was on the verge of exploding, ignoring her cries of protest. Chapter 91 It Was Not Worth Crying Over Him Chapter 91 It Was Not Worth Crying Over Him After ravishing Anne, Kevin left, not caring what she thought about it. He might not want her, but he wouldn''t let another man have her. Even if they divorced, that rule would still be in ce. He wouldn''t allow her to be with someone else. Looking at the marks left on her body by Kevin, Anne bit his lower lip and tried hard not to cry. She kept telling herself in her heart it was not worth crying over a guy like him! Soaking in the bathtub, she kept soaping up her body, trying to wash off the fiend''s smell. In the study, Kevin smashed nearly everything he could get his hands on, but his anger remained. He couldn''t get the thought of Anne with another man out of his mind, and that sent him into a murderous rage. When the butler heard the crashing sounds, he rushed to the study. He looked around the room. Items were scattered about the room helter-skelter. Had a tornado made its way inside? "Sir, what''s wrong? Why are you so angry all of a sudden?" "Go and investigate Ryan''spany. I want stock prices, businesses they''re involved in, everything! I want it on my desk in an hour!" Kevin had fought down his anger in order to give the butler his orders. "Yes, sir. I''m on it now." The butler looked at Kevin in confusion, pushed the door open and walked out. Sitting at his desk, Kevin looked terrible with his gloomy face. ''Ryan, you dared to touch my woman! No one can do that but me! You''ll pay for that!'' An hourter, the butler returned to the study with the documents. Kevin had calmed down by this time, but his eyes were still sinister and frightening. "Sir, here''s what you asked for," the butler said respectfully. He theny the files on Kevin''s desk carefully. As Kevin paged through the documents, his ck eyes were full of disdain. "Set up a special department for me at thepany. Take away all the projects that Ryan has his hands in. Have them re-assigned to the new department. Spare no expense to do this." Ryan was dumb enough to challenge him in the business world, and had no idea who he was dealing with. "Begging your pardon, sir, but why would you do that?" The butler looked at Kevin in confusion. He didn''t understand why the young master suddenly wanted to hurt Ryan financially. They were still partners, after all. Hearing the question, Kevin frowned deeply and his tone became colder. "None of your business. Just do it!" "Yes, sir. I''m going now!" Frightened by Kevin''s anger, the butler didn''t waste any more time. He opened the door and half-walked-half-ran through it. As soon as the butler walked out of the study, he greeted Cherry, who was walking towards him. "Hello, Miss Cherry. The young master is in a bad mood right now. You''d bettereter," the butler said. Cherry looked at the butler in confusion, worry in her beautiful eyes. "What''s wrong with Kevin? Why is he suddenly in a bad mood? I heard some crashing sounds. What happened?" "Ahem... Nothing serious. Work is getting to him. Don''t worry too much, Miss Cherry." Cherry was unconvinced. He didn''t sound like he believed it, either. "Then I''ll go inside and see him." Confused, Cherry nced at the butler, walked past him and pushed the door open. "Get out! Quit bugging me!" Kevin said impatiently, thinking it was the butler again. "Kevin, what''s wrong with you? Who made you so angry?" Cherry was obviously stymied for a moment. After she came to her senses, she walked gracefully towards him. There was a gentle smile on her face. Hearing her voice, Kevin raised his head and looked at her indifferently. This wasn''t the reaction she expected. "Why are you here? I thought you were asleep." Cherry walked up to him and sat on hisp. "I heard you blew your top and was worried about you, so I wanted to see if I could help you feel better. Can you tell me who pissed you off?" His dashing eyebrows wrinkled slightly, and irritation spread in the bottom of his heart. "No one. Just a disobedient dog!" As he thought of Anne, his face turned cold again. Frowning, Cherry looked at him in confusion. She didn''t understand what he was talking about. "A dog? Seriously? Why are you upset over that? I get worried when you get like this." She approached him and was about to kiss him. "Cherry, I''m really busy at work right now. Why don''t you go back to your room and wait for me?" Kevin asked in an uncaring tone. Disappointed, Cherry stood up. A dash of chagrin shed in her beautiful eyes. Recently, no matter how hard she tried to seduce him, Kevin wasn''t moved at all. "Okay, I''ll do it. On one condition: hang out with me after you finish your work." Pouting, she looked at him discontentedly. She had to be his woman. That was the only way she felt good about herself. "Fine. After I''m done. See ya then!" Kevin was a little annoyed. He didn''t know why he wasn''t as excited as he was before when he saw Cherry. They used to be so close with each other. It was not until Cherry left that he felt less irritable. For two days in a row, Anne deliberately avoided Kevin, because she didn''t want to see him again. When she thought about how he forced himself on her, her heart was filled with hatred. She would never forgive him for treating her like that. One day, Anne got up early in the morning. She''d had gotten lots of sleep and wanted to get to work. Moreover, she had to personally follow up the project with Ryan''spany. When she walked into the living room, she didn''t see Cherry or Kevin. There were just two servants cleaning. She breathed a sigh of relief and walked out quickly. She felt a lot better after she left the vi. Walking leisurely along the sidewalk, she took a deep breath of fresh morning air. Then, she heard the squeal of tires behind her. The fiery red Porsche pulled up alongside her, and the window slowly lowered. The face that was revealed behind this window didn''t make Anne happy at all. It was Kevin. When she saw him, Anne panicked and tried to get away. Thest person she wanted to see was this guy. Her action irritated Kevin. He was always angry nowadays, and he got even angrier at the sight of her trying to avoid him. "Anne, are you ignoring me?" He had never been ignored by a woman like this. This damn woman was trying his patience! Pretending not to hear him, Anne continued to walk forward. All she wanted now was to get rid of this man as soon as possible. Kevin got out of the car. He mmed the door loudly, and roared amand: "Anne, stop!" Marshaling the anger in her heart, Anne turned to him and red. "Mr. Kevin, what can I do for you?" Her tone was polite, without emotion. She acted as if she barely knew him. "Come off it, woman! You act like you hate me!" What was wrong with her? She smiled so sweetly for Ryan. But now, her stony face made his blood freeze. From the car, Cherry could tell Kevin was upset with Anne. But she was not happy at all. She clearly sensed that Kevin cared for Anne. "Mr. Kevin, you have done the worst thing to me. Should I smile when I see you?" She sneered at him, and her words dripped with contempt. This man had raped her. Was she supposed to be nice to him? She had never despised anyone this much! "You should feel honored. Not every woman gets a chance with me. Don''t be so ungrateful!" Nearly every woman in the city dreamed of getting him in bed. Many had tried. She should feel happy he made her wishe true! "Ha-ha..." Instead of being angry, Anne smiled sarcastically. "So I should thank you, right?" This man was ridiculously arrogant! Did all the women in the world want to sleep with him? He was really hopeless! "Watch your mouth, woman! My patience is almost gone. Don''t force me to hit you!" Kevin''s expression was one of barely disguised rage. His words were even more infuriating. Hit her? So the man had now turned more violent. "Mr. Kevin, since you don''t want me to piss you off, don''t bug me anymore. Who knows what I might say next? I might piss you off more!" Wasn''t he the drama king? He said that she was making him mad. This guy didn''t know right from wrong. The tension between them was like dynamite. One spark and everything would explode. Cherry Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. couldn''t stand it anymore. She opened the door and got out. She red at Anne with hatred, and then walked gracefully towards Kevin in heels ten centimeters high. "Kevin, what''s going on here? Why did you two get into it as soon as you see each other? Anne, I haven''t seen you aroundtely. Everything okay?" Cherry said in a spoiled tone, holding Kevin''s arm intimately. "Nothing. I just slept with her once!" Staring at Anne, Kevin snorted with disdain. His words made Anne want to strangle him. He just slept with her once. Did this man have no sense of shame? Chapter 92 Paled Chapter 92 Paled Cherry''s face turned pale and her smile disappeared upon hearing Kevin''s answer. She looked at Anne with vicious eyes, clenching her fists. She didn''t know what despicable method this bitch had used to tempt Kevin into having sex with him. At that moment, All Cherry wanted was to tear her apart. This little bitch dared to seduce him right under her nose! Tightening her grasp around Kevin''s arm, she tried her best to put on a fake smile, and hold back her anger. "Kevin, how could you treat Anne like this? You know, if you want, I can satisfy you¡­" Cherry felt restless. She had tried so many times to be his woman, and she always failed miserably. Content ? N?velDrama.Org. But this bitch¡­ she managed to get into his bed so easily! "I''ve already slept with her countless times, what''s one more?" he proudly dered, without a trace of guilt in his voice. Anne''s chest kept heaving because of anger. How she wished she could p this man in the face! He was utterly shameless! "Kevin, don''t you have any sense of shame?" "What is shame? Tell me." Kevin removed his arm from Cherry''s hold and walked closer to Anne. His devilish smile was attractive, but it stuck fear into the hearts of anyone who witnessed it. Staring at her own hands that were shaken off by Kevin, Cherry frowned in destion. If things went on like this, Anne would eventually ruin her ns. "Kevin, what are you trying to do? Stay away from me!" Anne was quivering with every step he took. She didn''t know what he wanted to do to her, but she was well aware that this man was capable of anything. "Why are you dodging? Why are you so afraid of me?" As he noticed how terrified Anne was, his heart was about to burst in anger. Damn it! Was he a monster? This little woman was so mortified of him, that she thought that he would eat her alive! Anne regretted what she had said moments ago. If she had offended him, she was surely going to be punished for it. "Kevin, don''te any closer! Stop!" She was wearing a five-centimeter high-heeled shoes, and because of how nervous she was, she identally snapped the heels and sprained her ankle. "Watch out!" Kevin quickly wrapped his arms around her waist and pulled her into his arms. Before she could say a word, Anne opened her enchanting eyes. "Damn you! Let''s see if you can hide from me or not!" As he felt the woman''s fear as he held her in his arms, his anger subsided. She looked as defenseless and innocent as a rabbit, and it made her look more pleasant. It was not until she heard his baritone voice that she came to her senses, and suddenly broke free from his arms. She realized that it was best not to be involved with this man anymore. Otherwise, she wouldn''t know what might happen to her next. "Anne, where the hell are you going? Anne!" That damned woman! He just saved her from an ident, and she didn''t even bother to thank him! She just walked away like she didn''t take him seriously. "I''m leaving. I have to go to thepany." She knew that if she didn''t answer his question, he wouldn''t let her leave, so she had no choice but to answer. "Then let me drive you there!" "No, thanks. I can walk by myself." What a joke! She just wanted to hide from him. She would rather have a donkey kick her head than to get anywhere near him. Cherry was staring daggers at her, and she would rather not add to her troubles. But before she could take two steps, Kevin carried her on his shoulders and brought her to the car. "Kevin, put me down. You''re going to hurt the baby!" Anne was worried that Kevin didn''t care if he might hurt their child or not. Hearing her incessant begging, he decided to put her down, and shoved her inside the car. Cherry was burning with jealousy because of what she was seeing. How dare that bitch get carried by Kevin like this? "What are you waiting for, Cherry? Get in the car!" Kevin ordered her in an indifferent tone, noticing that she was dazed. "Okay." Cherry managed to regain herposure and fake a smile. She stared at Kevin''s face from the back seat, as if she wanted to see through what he was thinking about Anne. "Anne, don''t wear high heels anymore. Do you hear me?" Kevin couldn''t help but berate her because of what happened earlier. If he didn''t have a keen eye and agile reflexes, she would''ve fallen and gotten herself hurt. "What if I''m going to work? Am I going to wear t shoes?" Anne muttered in a low voice as he lowered her head. "From now on, you must wear t shoes only. If I see you go to work in high heels again, I will break your legs!" His frigid voice came out of his mouth. He was unbothered by how violent he sounded. Anne rolled her eyes at him, speechless. Since when did this man be so nosy? Her Cherry was still wearing ten-centimeter high heels. Why didn''t he care about it? Instead, he worried about her more. Kevin''s words were nothing but a busybody''s words in Anne''s ears, but Cherry sensed his concern for Anne. She hated her even more because of this. Enduring the growing hatred in her heart, she shed a warm smile and looked at Anne. "Anne, you''re pregnant. It''s not safe to wear high-heeled shoes. You''d better listen to Kevin." Anne was disgusted by Cherry''s pretense. If this vile woman had any talent, it was acting in front of Kevin. Even though she hated her to the bone, she still couldn''t help but smile. Whether she liked her or not, Cherry was a good actress. "You don''t need to worry about my shoes. You''d better worry about yourself first." Anne nced at Cherry with disdain. "Anne, what kind of attitude is that? Cherry cares so much about you. Is this how you repay her for her kindness?" Kevin was dissatisfied by Anne''s rudeness. He was displeased by the fact that she had the gall to act so bossy around him. "Mr. Kevin, are you going to tell me how to behave in front of my cousin? Do I have to please her, and serve her like a maid?" Anne looked apathetic. She waspletely devoid of emotion. In Kevin''s mind, Cherry was more important than anything else. She had been used to it, but she couldn''t pretend to be friendly in front of a woman who desired nothing but to harm her! There was absolutely no way she could do it! Creak¡ª Kevin floored the breaks and stopped the car. "Get off the car!" hemanded, looking at Anne with displeasure. Anne took a look outside and found that they hadn''t arrived at thepany yet. She was a little angry. For a man, he was quite moody. Was he really nning to leave her there? It was too far from the bus station, and it would take her a long time to get there. She had to admit that Kevin was going too far. Noticing the change in Anne''s expression, Cherry felt victorious. It seemed that she was still the most important person in Kevin''s heart. He would drive Anne out of the car just because she was a little rude to her. It seemed that Anne was not that important to Kevin. Getting out of the car in anger, Anne strode away without even ncing at Kevin. "Damn it! Where are you going, Anne?" he shouted from behind as he chased her and grabbed her hand. "Didn''t you ask me to get off the car? Kevin, how long are you going to y tricks on me?" She red at him with a grievous stare in her eyes. Kevin soon realized what she was thinking. He sighed in disbelief, picked her up, and dragged her to the shopping mall on their right. Anne stared at him in surprise, confused by his actions. "Kevin, what are you doing? Why are you taking me to the mall?" What did this man want to do? He even carried her into the mall. "To buy you shoes!" he said these words without even casting a nce at the woman in his arms. To buy shoes... The man asked her to get off the car to buy her shoes, not to leave her on the road? Cherry was furious to see that Kevin was holding Anne again. She felt like she didn''t exist, and she was redundant. Anne was the woman that Kevin truly loved, not her! When they arrived at an exclusive brand shoes store, he put Anne on the sofa. The shop assistant saw him and quickly approached him "Mr. Kevin, what can I do for you?" Kevin was a regr customer here, and the shop clerks knew how generous he was. His arrival was undoubtedly simr to the arrival of the God of wealth. Naturally, everyone was excited every time he came to their store. Sure enough, Kevin was a generous man. "Pack up all the t shoes that are suitable for this pregnant women here, size 36!" Anne was surprised to hear that Kevin knew what size of shoes she was wearing. "Okay, Mr. Kevin. Please wait for a moment. We''ll pack them for you right now." Chapter 93 Buying Shoes For Her Chapter 93 Buying Shoes For Her The two shop assistants packed the shoes in haste when they heard Kevin''s words. "You don''t have to buy so many shoes, and I don''t have that much money with me." Anne casually nced at one pair of shoes. Her eyes widened when she saw that it was worth more than one hundred thousand. She thought that even if he sold her, it wouldn''t be enough to pay for the shoes. Kevin frowned when he heard what she said. A hint of coldness shed in his eyes. ''Damn this woman! What''s on her mind? Can''t I even afford some shoes for my woman in her eyes?'' he thought. "My woman doesn''t need to pay for shoes herself!" That was an insult for Kevin. He could afford what his woman wanted to buy, and she didn''t need to pay for it. Cherry suddenly intervened. She looked at Anne as she spoke softly. "Anne, you are pregnant with Kevin''s child. For the child''s sake, Kevin wouldn''t treat you shabbily," However, she told her those words on purpose. It was to prove to Anne that Kevin was just treating her well because she was carrying his baby. Kevin nced at her indifferently. He understood what Cherry was trying to imply. "Mr. Kevin, all the size 36 t shoes in our shop have been packed for you. Would you like to take a look?" One of the salespersons came to Kevin, bent over slightly, and spoke respectfully. "No, thanks. Just put these in the trunk of my car!" He took out the gold card and handed it to the sales clerk without ncing at the shoes. "Okay, Mr. Kevin. Please wait a moment!" Soon enough, the clerk''s respectful voice was heard again. "Mr. Kevin, the amount of money you spent this time is four million one hundred thousand." Four million and one hundred thousand! My God! How could several pairs of shoes cost millions? "No, there''s no need. I can''t wear all of those. Just leave me two pairs, thank you." Although it was Kevin who paid, Anne still felt the need to oppose when she heard that those few pairs cost millions. "Well.." The sales clerk looked at Kevin hesitantly. It was the first time that she had encountered this kind of Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. situation. Before, when Kevin brought his other women, they would like to buy the whole shop right away, but Anne was different. She was the only one who thought that those were too much. "Don''t listen to her. Put them all in the trunk!" Kevinmanded with a cold look in his eyes. ''Damn this woman! How dare she humiliate me? Since when do I give back what I''ve already bought?'' His forehead creased at the thought. "As you wish, Mr. Kevin. I''ll go now!" The sales clerk hurriedly put the packed shoes into his car''s trunk. "Kevin, I really can''t wear so many shoes. Besides, I can''t pay you back over four million anytime soon!" It cost him over four million to buy those pair of shoes. Thinking of how long she would need to pay that kind of debt gave Anne a migraine. "Anne, shut up! When did I say that you have to pay me back?" ''Damn it! Does she think I''m such a stingy man that I need her to pay me back the money? Is she taunting me on purpose?'' . Anne didn''t know what offended him as she stared at his grumpy face. She just wanted him to save his money. What was so wrong about that? Cherry immediately felt hatred towards Anne as she stared at her innocent face. She clenched her teeth while she thought, ''Was this bitch using this method to seduce Kevin?'' "Mr. Kevin, here is your card." The clerk sessfully swiped the card and handed it to Kevin respectfully. The clerk was a young girl. When she saw Kevin, she couldn''t help but stare in awe at his handsome face. "Try on these shoes." Kevin gave Anne a pair of pink t shoes. "Okay." She honestly didn''t want to wear high heels, so she obediently wore the t shoes he handed. The corners of his lips curled into a smile. He felt satisfied that she wore them without any resistance. "Let''s go." Kevin started to walk. He hadpletely forgotten that Cherry was there with them. He had been too focused on Anne that he forgot that Cherry was right behind them. "Kevin..." Cherry stopped him. She couldn''t stand his indifference towards her. She felt that the only person he could see at that moment was Anne. He stopped in his tracks, stared at her, and asked, "What''s wrong? Why do you look unhappy?" He noticed her aggrieved expression, so he gently wrapped her in his arms. "Kevin, can we talk?" Cherry said seriously as she stared into his eyes. "Talk about what?" His brows furrowed, and he wondered what she wanted to talk about. Cherry nced at Anne in the distance, and her eyes flickered with hesitation. Anne got into the car when she knew that Cherry wanted her to leave. On the other hand, she also didn''t want to see her pretending to be pitiful in front of Kevin. "She''s gone. Now can you tell me what you wanted to say?" He looked at Cherry with a tender gaze and a faint smile on his lips. Cherry bit her lower lip and started to feel embarrassed. She didn''t know what he would think of her if she told him what she was thinking. "Kevin, do you like Anne? Your attitude towards her haspletely changed," she uttered the words carefully. He noticed how sad she looked as she said those words. Her tears made him feel sorry for her. A disdainful smile appeared on his face after he was dazed for a moment. "Cherry, why do you suddenly ask such a question? Shouldn''t you know whether I like her or not?" He didn''t imagine he could fall in love with a vicious woman like Anne. At most, he was only interested in her body. "But your attitude towards her today made me uneasy. Kevin, I know I''m in no position to say anything, but I''m really afraid that you won''t love me anymore." Tears streamed down her beautiful eyes as she stared at him. Kevin immediately regretted how he had ignored her. He always hated to see her crying like this. He pulled her towards him and held her tightly in his arms, his chin rested on her head as he spoke seriously. "Cherry, how can I not love you? You are the only woman I love. As for Anne, I will never fall in love with a woman like her." He just had a strong possessive desire for Anne, and nothing more. He couldn''t allow any man to touch his woman. "So you really don''t like her? But I''m really scared. I don''t know if I''ll have the motivation to continue living if you really don''t love me anymore." Tears fell down from her eyes like a waterfall. The sorrow in her countenance broke his heart. "What are you afraid of? I just said that you are the only woman I love." His face softened while he gently wiped her tears. "Kevin, promise me that if you stopped loving me one day, you must tell me. I don''t like this uneasy feeling. I''m really scared¡­" Cherry hugged him even tighter. She uttered the words like a child who had suffered a lot. "That day will nevere," he answered in a firm tone while holding her tightly in his arms. Anne looked at them through the car window. Her heart felt like it was being pricked by a needle as she saw them holding each other affectionately. Tears suddenly fell down her face. She forced herself to stop looking at them, but her body was out of control. After a while, the two finally decided to return to the car. Kevin took the initiative to fasten the seatbelt for Cherry with gentleness in his eyes. "When we arrive at thepanyter, I will ask my assistant to book the whole cinema and I will go to the cinema with you in the evening," he whispered in Cherry''s ear. His voice was neither loud nor soft, but those words couldn''t escape Anne''s ears. Anne pretended not to hear anything, and forced herself not to nce at them. "Okay¡­" Cherry was delighted by what he said. She quickly kissed him on his cheek like an excited child. "Just a kiss on the cheek? What about here?" Kevin pointed his lips as he spoke in a tender voice. His eyes were charming when he stared at Cherry. Her face turned red before she gave him a peck in his lips. Kevin nced at Anne from the corner of his eyes. It made him angry when he noticed how she didn''t care about what was happening. He pulled Cherry closer and started to kiss her passionately. Their tongues intertwined and a thin voice escaped Cherry''s mouth. A sh of pride appeared in her eyes. Anne''s body trembled. She tried her best to control herself not to look at them. She thought that as long as she didn''t see them, she would feel fine. She underestimated her sensitivity. Even if she pretended not to know what had happened, just the thought of them kissing each other tormented her mind. "You two go on ahead. I''m leaving now!" Anne bolted out of the car because she couldn''t bear to watch them anymore. Kevin released Cherry as soon as Anne left. Cherry''s face was red and blooming, but Kevin''s face was the opposite. It was nk as if he was not the one who kissed her passionately. "Kevin¡­" Cherry ran her fingers along his chest and called his name. She looked a bit discontented. Holding her hand on his chest, he said, "Cherry, it''s gettingte. I''m going to thepany." Chapter 94 Fight Over Chapter 94 Fight Over "Well, you go ahead and do your work. Then maybe you can apany me after, okay?" There was a pout on Cherry''s face as she looked up at Kevin with her big eyes. "Okay. After." Slowly, Kevin pushed away her hand from his chest. There was a faint smile on his face that didn''t quite reflect in his eyes. In fact, it was easy to see that he looked a bit irritated. However, Cherry didn''t seem to notice. "I''ll be going now. Drive carefully." She pressed her lips against his cheek and kissed him again, her face blushed shyly. "Yeah." As soon as Cherry got off the car, the smile on Kevin''s face disappearedpletely as his Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. brows furrowed together. Meanwhile, as Anne sat in the office, she couldn''t keep her mind off what she had seen. It was incredibly upsetting for her to witness Cherry and Kevin kissing each other passionately. ''No, enough!'' She shook her head as she tried to push back those thoughts to the back of her head. Much to her dismay, the scene was so deeply engraved to her thoughts, making it impossible to forget. "Hey, Anne. What''s up with you? You look a little pale. Are you alright?" Emily asked worriedly when she saw Anne''s brows furrow deeply. Straightening up in her seat, Anne sighed. "I''m fine. Don''t worry about it." With a forced smile, she looked up at her friend reassuringly. "Are you sure thought? You''re clearly not looking too good..." Emily knew that Anne was a strong woman. Even if she did not feel that well, she would keep on working, which was why it was worrying right now to see her so out of it. "I''m really fine. Don''t worry about me." With a slightly bigger smile, she patted Emily''s hand. "We are going to meet Mr. Ryan in half an hour. I''m sure he''s on his way right now. There are a lot of details we need to talk aboutter at the meeting." With a shrug, Emily briefed her about the day ahead of them. "Alright. Go and prepare. I''ll head off to the conference room in a while so I can wee him." There was a clear, professional tone in her voice. Even though her rtionship with Ryan was not exactly that ordinary, she knew when and how to separate work and personal affairs. Later that day, Anne made her way to the conference room and waited. About five minutester, she heard Emily''s voicee from outside. "Nice to meet you, Mr. Ryan. Our vice president is waiting for you. Please, follow me." At the next second, the door opened. Looking up, Anne saw Ryan''s tall figure appear in front of her. He looked so sharp in his silver-gray suit, his pale, blonde hair scattered across his forehead. From the moment he entered the room, he waspletely transfixed by Anne. "Long time no see, Mrs. Anne." With a gentle smile on his face, Ryan reached out his hand to her. The charming smile at the corners of his mouth made him look more handsome. For a while, she stood there absent-mindedly. Had it really been that long since theyst saw each other? Wasn''t it they had seen each other just the other day? Coming back to her senses, Anne blinked and smiled. Raising her slender hand, she was just about to return Ryan''s handshake. "What are you doing? How dare you shake hands with him?" All of a sudden, Kevin''s cold voice rang in the air. With a malicious stare, he strode over at once. "Mr. Kevin... What are you doing here?" Anne asked with a frown. Although she didn''t know why he suddenly appeared in the meeting room, she had a bad feeling in her heart. Her intuition was screaming at her that this man had bad intentions. "Stop what you''re doing right NOW!" Kevin growled when he saw that Anne didn''t have the slightest intention of withdrawing her hand. ''Damn it! Is she really meeting up with Ryan here in thepany? Who does she think I am?!'' With a frown, her delicate eyebrows knitted tightly. Still, she didn''t move an inch. ''What is this guy''s deal?!'' Seeing her indifference, Kevin grabbed her wrist and pulled away her grasp from Ryan''s hand. Ryan felt angry seeing that Kevin acted so rude to Anne. Unintimidated, he red coldly at Kevin. "What are you trying to do, Mr. Kevin?" Maybe it was the way he said those words, or maybe he just really disliked this man. Whatever the reason, Kevin got even more irritated. He met Ryan''s stare with the same amount of intensity. "I think I''m the one who''s supposed to be asking that question! Isn''t it inappropriate to take advantage of her like this?" At the moment, he remembered how he caught Anne and Ryan in an embrace. A new wave of anger surged up in him once more. The two men stood face to face, neither of them willing to back down to the other. As Anne looked at them back and forth, she couldn''t help but feel a bit flustered. "Excuse me? Mr. Kevin, I do hope you''re not trying to talk about personal matter with me during work hours. I''m here simply because I have some business to do with Mrs. Anne. You can even sit down with us and listen to our meeting if you prefer." The smile on Ryan''s face resurfaced. His eyes, however, still had that coldness deep in them. "That won''t be necessary. Someone else will take over Mrs. Anne''s duties. There is no need for you to have any more discussion with her in the future," Kevin said through his teeth. Being a man himself, he knew that Ryan had an unspoken desire towards Anne. There was no way he was going to let that grow into anything more. Whether or not Kevin really loved her, he had this idea that she belonged to him and him alone. Any man who dared to take her away from him was asking for trouble. Ryan narrowed his eyes at him, his gaze as sharp as daggers. Just when he was about to say something, Anne suddenly interrupted, "I''m not backing down from this project. I''ve been working hard on this. And now you expect me to just give it to someone else?" Crossing her arms over her chest, she looked firmly at Kevin. What right did this man have to make a decision for her in the first ce? Meeting her stare, Kevin badly wanted to do foul things to her. ''This damn woman is really good at disgracing me!'' On the other hand, Ryan smiled in approval. In his head, he was thinking that Anne said those things because she cared about him. "Did you hear what I just said? Or do I have to repeat myself to you?" All of a sudden, Kevin''s voice was loud and cold. As he looked down at Anne, his ck eyes burned with fury. "You can repeat yourself all you want. I still won''t agree to abandon my project." Despite his fury, she stood her ground without even beating an eysh. "Anne, you--!" Kevin''s hands balled up to fists at his side. With all his might, he tried to control his anger. If he didn''t, he might have ended up hurting her. Smiling smugly, Ryan nodded towards Anne''s direction. Then he shifted his gaze from her to Kevin and spoke up. "I have to agree with her, Mr. Kevin. It wouldn''t be appropriate for you to abuse your power like this, especially since she had worked hard to get this project." "This is mypany! I don''t remember asking for your opinion. And on top of that, this woman is mine! I don''t need you telling me what to do!" Kevin''s voice rang crisply in the air as he imed ownership over Anne. At this, Ryan''s face darkened as fury shed in his eyes. "Oh, I can assure you that that''s about to change." A mischievous smile crept up into his lips as he raised an eyebrow at Kevin. ''No matter what this guy says or does, I''ll find a way to bring Anne back into my life!'' "Enough! In case you two have forgotten, we''re inside thepany. On top of that, regardless of where we are, I am not some object you two can fight over for!" At this point, Anne was also at the end of her wits. She knew her value, and it irritated her that these two men were so keen to objectify her like this. It was the first time that Kevin had seen Anne so angry. Stunned, he rxed a bit, but still maintained his cold gaze. "There''s a lot of work to be done, Mr. Kevin. If you don''t have anything else to say, please leave." They probably would''ve been done by now if Kevin had not arrived unannounced. All Anne wanted was for him to disappear so that she could finish up the things she needed to do. Just when Kevin''s anger was starting to boil up again, he saw her intense stare. He swallowed down his words. With a snort, he turned around and walked away. Acent smile appeared on Ryan''s face. Then he looked at Anne with some sympathy. "Has he always been like this to you?" It was uneptable to him that Kevin would treat Anne so harshly. How could the woman he cared about the most be trampled on by a man like Kevin so easily? "Mr. Ryan, let''s please talk about business first. Save the personal matter for a different time. We have a lot of work to do." Without faltering, Anne maintained her professional demeanor. Right now, she didn''t want to think about Kevin nor did she want Ryan to worry about her. "Well, since you don''t want to talk about it, I won''t ask. Just remember that I will always be here for you." His voice was filled with tenderness. Even though he respected Anne''s wishes, he was determined to investigate on this matter on his own. Lowering her eyes, Anne didn''t respond to his words. She could feel his concern for her and she was flustered, not knowing how to handle their rtionship. In about an hour, they finished up their meeting. Before Ryan could say anything more, Anne bade him good bye and sent him out of the conference room. She didn''t want to give him a chance to ask her about her involvement with Kevin. Not right now, at least. With a smile, Ryan left at once. As he walked out of the hall, all of the women he passed by couldn''t help but stare in awe at his handsomeness. But he didn''t notice any single one of them. As he stepped into his car, his eyes darkened once again. "Go and find out more about Anne and Kevin. I want to know everything there is to know!" he coldly ordered to his assistant. The gentle look he had while he was with Anne hadpletely disappeared. Though he was still good- looking, there was an intense expression on his face that was impossible to paint. "Yes, sir. I''ll report back to you as soon as possible." The assistant didn''t dare to ask any questions or make any qualms. "Let''s go," Ryan said coldly as he grinded his teeth impatiently. "Yes, sir!" The car started and sped away. From his office, through his floor-to-ceiling windows, Kevin stared down at Ryan''s car that had just left. His eyes narrowed as a coldness shed behind them. Chapter 95 What An Overbearing Man! Chapter 95 What An Overbearing Man! After an entire day''s worth of work, Anne was exhausted. She didn''t know if it was just because she was pregnant or if she had just been resting too much recently. She walked on the streets, feeling irritable when she recalled Kevin''s unusual behavior that day. For the life of her, she couldn''t figure out why he would treat Ryan like that in the meeting earlier. It was so uncharacteristic of him. His mood swingstely had been crazy. It seemed that he was purposely trying to get on her nerves. She didn''t know what on earth he wanted her to do then he could let her go. She absolutely loathed him but for some reason, she couldn''t get him off her mind. Why couldn''t she just forget about him? It seemed that he was deeply etched in her heart. Anne smiled ironically, forcing herself to not think about it anymore. Suddenly, a loud horn red into her ears. Eyebrows furrowed together, she looked back and found the ck Rolls-Royce following behind her. She already knew who it was. Scowling, she turned her head away, ignoring Kevin. "Anne, I''m giving you ten seconds to get in. If you don''t, you can''t me me for using force," Kevin said spitefully. More than anything, he hated her indifference towards him. That scowl on her face didn''t help either. ''What an overbearing man!'' Anne cursed inwardly. Despite her unwillingness, she had no choice but to get inside the car. After all, she knew this man was capable of doing anything. She couldn''t risk it. It was entirely possible that Kevin would cause a scene out on the streets and she definitely didn''t want that. "Why do you look like that whenever you see me?" Kevin frowned slightly as he nced at Anne from the corner of his eye, visibly unhappy. Her face was stone cold as if this was thest ce she wanted to be. "Mr. Kevin, can we talk?" She needed to talk to him as this was getting out of hand already. At the very least, she wanted to be civil with him before they divorced. "Okay, what do you want to talk to me about?" Kevin said inly. His straightforwardness briefly took Anne aback. Within the next moment, she had collected herself. "Mr. Kevin, I know you hate me but I hope that we can get along and make peace with each other before we divorce," Anne said seriously, looking at him. "Do you think we''re not getting along now?" Kevin asked coolly. The look on his face was unfathomable but his eyes told her all she needed to know¡ªhe wasn''t in a good mood. "Mr. Kevin, don''t you think you''re bing more and more irritable? I''m also pretty sure that you''re getting more hostile towards me now." As she recalled all that Kevin had done to her, aversion filled her eyes. She didn''t even know what she had done to offend him yet that didn''t stop him from punishing her. "Did I say I was getting more hostile towards you?" Kevin retorted, his face darkened. Anne tightened her jaw, seemingly frustrated seeing him being so unreasonable. "Mr. Kevin, you don''t think that what you''ve been doing to me these past few days is too much?" "I don''t think so," Kevin answered confidently, curling his lips. Anne was seething but she knew better than to snap at him. "Mr. Kevin, as soon as I give birth to this baby, we''re cutting each other off. Let''s just stay away from each other until the divorce, okay?" Anne said honestly, looking at Kevin expectantly. Surely, this request shouldn''t be too difficult for him to agree to. Text ? 2024 N?velDrama.Org. "You want us to stay away from each other? Anne, are you nning to divorce me now?" Kevin glowered at her. ''This damn woman wants to stay away from me.'' With the way Kevin was looking at her, she grew flustered. "Our rtionship exists only because of the contract. Once all this is over, I have the right to n for my future." Once she gave birth to the baby, he was going to divorce her. Shouldn''t she have the freedom to make ns for her life? "What are you going to do? Are you going to throw yourself into Ryan''s arms after divorcing me? Are you forgetting who you are?" ''Damn it! Is she just saying all this to me because she wants to move on already? Is it because of Ryan?" "Mr. Kevin, Ryan and I are merely friends. It''s not what you think." She couldn''t help but be anxious at the thought of Kevin misunderstanding her rtionship with Ryan. This wasn''t what she wanted at all. "Is that so? Then tell me. What should I think about you two? If you two are just friends, why would you hug each other?" The image of her smiling happily in Ryan''s arms was still vivid in his mind. The thought of her meeting up with another man behind his back immediately triggered him as anger thrummed through his veins. Anne couldn''t help but feel wronged. Why was he so adamant on pushing this narrative on her? When did he see her hugging Ryan? "What? You don''t know what to say after you''ve been caught red-handed?" Kevin snapped before Anne could say anything. His mouth set in a hard line, fuming. ''Isn''t she even going to bother to exin herself?'' he thought inwardly. "Say what? Mr. Kevin, since you want to believe that Ryan and I are having an affair, what else is there for me to say? Would you even believe me if I tried to exin my side to you?" Glowering at Kevin, Anne was unable to restrain her anger anymore. He had always been self-righteous. Just because he was insisting that she was having an affair with Ryan, did that make it true? "Anne, you need to give me an exnation! Also, you''re not allowed to see Ryan from now on." For the first time, Kevin felt that Ryan was a threat to him. He couldn''t shake off the feeling that his possessions were being coveted by others. He absolutely hated feeling this way. To say the least, it wasn''t a pleasant feeling at all. Anne took several deep breaths as a way to calm herself down before fixing her gaze back at him. "Mr. Kevin, Ryan and I are just friends. I can''t promise that I won''t see him again. What I can promise you is that I won''t be too intimate with anyone until I give birth." This was the most she couldpromise. While she only saw Ryan as a friend, he was still very important to her. He was the only person who remembered her birthday and seemed to genuinely still care about her. She couldn''t possibly let go of such a person. "You can''t promise me that? How wonderful Anne, are you purposely challenging me? Or are you cheating on me?" ''Damn it! How dare she turn me down? I treat her so well. She''s getting bolder and bolder!'' "¡­¡­" She had made herself very clear, but he wasn''t going to back down. For once, couldn''t they just have a calm conversation? "Mr. Kevin, I don''t know how to make myself any clearer to you. I won''t be unfaithful to you until we divorce. I assure you that." Divorce? Why did she keep bringing up the divorce? Was she so eager to end their rtionship? "Listen carefully, Anne. Without my permission, you''re not allowed to be around any other man and you''re not allowed to have an intimate rtionship with them," Kevin said arrogantly. It didn''t matter if he wanted her or not¡ªno one else could have her. "Kevin, can you stop trying to control me?" Anger rippled through her. She couldn''t believe what she was hearing. It seemed that it was impossible to have a proper conversation with him. "No! Anne, you need to remember that you are my woman. Until I abandon you, I will remain as the only man in your heart and eyes," he said rather brazenly, with his chest puffed out as if he had all the reason in the world by his side. "¡­¡­" Anne red at him, too angry to say a word. She never should have expected that she''d be able to have a level-headed conversation with him. Her face turned red, utterly enraged. Now more than ever, she knew that Kevin was hopeless. "Mr. Kevin, we have nothing to say to each other anymore. I''ll get out of the car now. Please stop the car." She was done trying to talk some reason into him. With that, she looked out of the window. The car screeched to a halt. The sudden impact caused Anne to lean forward rather abruptly. She shot daggers at Kevin. Didn''t he know that she was pregnant? Doing this could hurt the baby! Anne opened the door indignantly. Just as she was about to get off the car, Kevin grabbed her by the arm and pulled her towards him. "Since we don''t have anything to say to each other. Why don''t we do something that doesn''t need talking?" Kevin said maliciously. He suddenly bent over, the lust in his eyes undeniable. "Kevin, what are you doing? Let go of me!" Anne became flustered and struggled to free herself from his grip, knowing what he was about to do. Chapter 96 Seeing Her Crying Chapter 96 Seeing Her Crying "Let you go? You are my woman. Shouldn''t it be your job to treat me well? Listen, Anne. There is only one man in the world who can touch you. That is me!" Kevin sped the nape of Anne''s neck, forcing her to look at him. She tried her best to resist, but the man didn''t move at all. She didn''t have enough strength to wriggle out of his forceful grasp. His kiss was overbearing. Feeling controlled, Anne shouted at him angrily, "Kevin, you bastard! Let go of me!" What else could that man do more than that! "Bastard? If Ryan did this to you, you wouldn''t call him a bastard," Kevin replied in a cold voice, while staring at Anne maliciously. "Kevin, don''t think that everyone is as despicable and shameless as you. Ryan is nothing like you!" That man often threatened her violently. How could hepete with Ryan? Not to mention that Ryan would never do such a thing to her. Even if he wanted to, he would never force her. ''Despicable? Shameless? Damn it! How can she describe me with such harsh words?'' "If it was Ryan who was doing this to you, he might not be as gentle as me. Anne, see clearly who is in front of you!" Knowing that Ryan was in her mind made Kevin feel his heart burn with the mes of jealousy. "Kevin, get out of my way. I hate you!" That was the first time that she had hated him from the bottom of her heart. "Then I don''t mind making you hate me more. Anne, you are mine!" He kissed her again. Anne had never felt so humiliated. No longer able to control the grievance in her heart, she let hot tears fall down along her cheeks. Feeling the teardrops against his skin, Kevin suddenly raised his head and pointed his ck eyes at her. Her fair face was streaked by tears that were sliding down the corners of her eyes. Her gaze was now full of stubbornness and forbearance. Seeing her pitiful but restrained look, Kevin felt an ache take over his heart. Frustrated, he let go of Anne. He straightened his back and hit the steering wheel with his fist. The car screeched. Anne sat up straight too and tidied up her clothes quietly, while looking at his gloomy face. "You''d better not piss me off again, or I won''t let you go so easily next time!" Without sparing her another nce, he started the car quickly. Wiping away her tears, Anne thought, ''It''s obvious that this man is bothering me on purpose.'' She just wanted to have a good talk with him, but she didn''t expect that he would go out of his mind, and she was terrified by his possessiveness and strength. "Stop the car. I want to get off!" She didn''t want to be in his presence at all. His cruelty and coldness made her want to escape. He was a dangerous man. If she wanted to live a peaceful life before giving birth, she had better stay away from him. "Anne, I said don''t provoke me anymore!" ''Damn it! I haven''t even touched her yet. What else does she want? She is so ungrateful.'' "Kevin, could you please let me go? For the sake of our child, please don''t hold me back, okay?" She put her hand delicately on her belly. Kevin cared about the baby the most. He might take her words seriously. "Anne, don''t even think about it. You are my woman. You should do whatever I want you to do!" Let her go? Impossible! She aroused his interest, and he would not let her go easily. Throwing a helpless look at Kevin, Anne started feeling a little depressed. It seemed that it was really difficult for her to get rid of that man''s torture. The car sped all the way to the vi. It was not until it came to a full stop that Anne breathed a long sigh of relief. She opened the door and got out of the car hurriedly. She wanted to get away from Kevin as quickly as she could. "Kevin, you''re back?" As soon as the car stopped, Cherry came over and beamed at Kevin excitedly. But after she saw Anne getting out of his car, her smile faded instantly. "Anne? What are you doing in Kevin''s car?" She faked a smile. Despite her anger toward Anne for meddling into Kevin''s life, Cherry had to pretend to be generous and decent in front of him. "We happened to be both on our way home, so I gave her a ride," Kevin exined in an indifferent tone and enveloped Cherry in his arms. "I see." Seeing Cherry''s fake smile, Anne frowned with displeasure. Then, she strode past her, ready to leave. "Kevin, didn''t you say that you would take me to the cinema this morning? When are we going?" Just as Anne brushed past her, Cherry red at her and took hold of Kevin''s arm lovingly, gazing at him with admiration. "Since you want to go, let''s go now." Kevin''s words were full of affection. He looked at Cherry with tenderness, but from the corner of his eye, he had been ncing at Anne all the time. "Kevin, you are so kind!" At his answer, Cherry stood on her tiptoes and pecked him on the cheek, shing a happy smile on her gracious face. "Anne!" Seeing that Anne was about to enter the living room, Kevin called out her name. Her heart skipped a beat, and an almost imperceptible frown formed on her forehead. Finally, she turned around slowly and said in an indifferent tone, "Mr. Kevin, is there anything else?" Anne knew better than to provoke him in front of Cherry. Being familiar with Cherry''s character, she knew she would get herself into trouble. "Since you have nothing to do at home, you can go to the cinema with us." Kevin''s impassive voice came through again. He decided that as long as Anne could see him all the time, she would be in no mood to think of other men. He wanted to be the only man in Anne''s eyes. Cherry gawked at Kevin, confused by his sudden decision. With anger spreading across her features, she red at Anne viciously. Sensing the hostility in Cherry''s eyes, Anne didn''t want to cause problems for herself, so she refused without hesitation, "No, I don''t want to go." "I am ordering you!" With a gelid expression, Kevin let out his domineering and irresistibly strong voice once again. Her face straight, Anne looked at him glumly. Anger rose in her heart again. It seemed that what she had said to that man earlier had fallen on deaf ears. He was still trying to torture her. Without saying a word, she stood still and kept looking at Kevin with a cold expression. She didn''t want topromise at all. Leaning against Kevin''s chest, Cherry seemed to feel his anger. Although she was not happy with that situation, she pretended to be considerate. "Anne, you don''t have anything to do at home. Why don''t you go with us? Kevin booked the whole cinema anyway. It will be boring if we go there alone." By emphasizing that Kevin had booked the whole cinema on purpose, Cherry wanted to let Anne know how important she was in Kevin''s heart. "No, I won''t go. Since Mr. Kevin booked the whole cinema for you, he must want to surprise you. If I join, I''m afraid I will ruin the atmosphere." She looked indifferent and there was no trace of sadness on her face caused by Cherry''s words. After all, she had experienced a lot of simr situations, so she could conceal her emotions well. Content ? N?velDrama.Org. "Anne, don''t make me repeat what I said, or you know the consequences." ''Damn it! Didn''t that woman feel anything when she heard what Cherry said? She doesn''t even want to ruin my time with Cherry out of kindness.'' At Kevin''s threat, Anne''s heart jolted. As she thought of what had happened earlier, her face turned pale. That man was undoubtedly powerful. He could do anything to make her life a living hell. In the end, shepromised, terrified that he would force her to do something she didn''t want to. With a nk stare, she walked toward the two. No emotion blemished her beautiful face. Satisfied with the result of his threat, Kevin smiledcently. ''I don''t believe that I can''t make this little woman fall in love with me.'' Chapter 97 Compromise Chapter 97 Compromise When Anne walked towards Kevin, he grinned jauntily and whispered in her ear in a low attractive voice, "Anne, I suggest you not to go against me, because you don''t have the qualification." Kevin''s arrogant tone conveyed disdain. It must be a piece of cake for him to get any woman he wanted. Anne clenched her fist and tried to hold back her anger. She knew that in this man''s eyes, she was nothing but someone he could just y with. He would never take her seriously and that was an absolute reality. "Kevin, it''s gettingte. Let''s get in the car." Cherry didn''t want him to give much attention to Anne, so she held his arm tightly and tried to get his attention. "Okay, get in the car." Kevin smiled sweetly and opened the door for her. He was always a gentleman to Cherry. Sitting silently at the back seat, Anne looked at Cherry''s hand that was holding Kevin''s. She felt a little sad for herself. Thinking of how Kevin treated her just now, she was very upset. When they arrived at the cinema, the director and the staff were already waiting outside. As soon as Content ? N?velDrama.Org. they saw Kevin''s car, they rushed over to wee him, as if he was a celebrity. "Mr. Kevin, we''re d that you are finally here. We have prepared everything well for you," The director said respectfully and looked at Kevin with a dazzling eyes. "Okay," Kevin replied coldly without evenying his eyes to the director. "Mr. Kevin, what can I do for you? I''ll send someone to prepare whatever you need." The director still tried to catch Kevin up as he walked away from him. "None, thanks." Holding Cherry''s hand, Kevin proceeded into the cinema andpletely ignored the director. Anne felt like she was some kind of a third wheel as she followed behind the two. When they came in the cinema room, Anne sat behind Kevin and Cherry. She didn''t want to keep a close distance to them. "Anne, why are you sitting so far away? Do I look like I''m gonna eat you?" Kevin turned to Anne who was behind him and spoke in an irritated tone. He could clearly sense that this woman was deliberately distancing herself from him since the moment they arrived at the cinema. "I''m afraid that I might ruin the moment between you two." After casting a nce at Kevin, Anne shifted her gaze to the screen. "Sit in the front!" Kevin said indignantly and pointed at the seat beside him. "I don''t want!" Anne retorted without hesitation. Kevin''s face darkened when she rejected him. This woman did nothing but refuse him over and over. "Anne!" Kevin blustered and looked at her sharply. Anne clearly felt the tension in the air. Cherry rolled her eyes on the two. Anne already ruined her moment with Kevin. Although he held her in his arms, his attention was all drawn to Anne. "Kevin, don''t force her anymore. She had always wanted to be alone, just let her be." She didn''t want to let Anne seat beside Kevin because he would just turn his attention to her even more. Hearing Cherry''s words, Kevin just furrowed his eyebrows and averted his eyes. He seemed to have given up. "Well, let''s begin!" Kevin raised his hand and ordered the attendant to y the movie. Afterwards, he made himselffortable and put his arm on Cherry''s shoulder. Anne looked at the wide screen quietly and tried to ignore the couple in front of her. However, no matter how hard she tried, she couldn''t help but look at them. She would never enjoy a movie with these people. Cherry took a popcorn from the bucket and offered it to Kevin intimately. He smiled and kissed her. Anne tried so much to ignore them, but they were so insensitive to disy their affection knowing that she was behind them. "Kevin, don''t do this. Anne is still here," Cherry talked as if she was shy for what Kevin just did in front of Anne. However, Anne would never be deceived by those hypocritical looks of Cherry. Of course she knew that Cherry loved how Kevin disyed his affection. Ignoring such provocation of Cherry, Anne just shifted her eyes to the wide screen and continued watching. She doubted whether Kevin just made out with Cherry because he didn''t care about her presence at all, or he really did it on purpose. "Why are you still sitting there? Get out of here!" Kevin said in a rude tone. The displeasure on his face was obvious. Anne looked at him in shock. He regretted that she hade with them. She had too much and couldn''t stand for more. This man was so foolish to restrict her from seeing other men when it was him who kept on doing such thing. "I''ll wait for you outside," Anne tried to sound calm and stood up. She kept telling herself that he was not worthy of her emotions and that she shouldn''t be sad over him. But her heart was aching. She didn''t deserve such kind of treatment. She immediately left as soon as the tears fell down her face. Cherry smiled evilly while staring at Anne walk away. In her mind, Anne definitely deserved it. She felt so much satisfaction in her heart now that Kevin finally let the woman leave. "Kevin, Anne has left," Cherry reminded him as she turned her head to him. Her blushing cheeks and her expectant eyes clearly showed what was on her mind. However, to Kevin, what he did with Cherry was only a show. Now that Anne had left, he was in no mood to continue the show. He took back his hand from Cherry''s waist. "Without that annoying woman, we can now watch a movie peacefully," he said. Cherry frowned when she felt the coldness in Kevin. She was obviously confused. Did he still care for Anne? Did he do it on purpose to make Anne jealous and see if she was affected or not? A random thought shed in her mind, and she felt furious. It turned out that Kevin did it not because of his admiration towards her, but to attest Anne''s feelings. "Kevin¡­" Cherry looked at him with resentment. She would never be willing to be used by him, especially to get Anne''s attention. "Cherry, didn''t you say that you wanted to see the Iron Man? It''s starting at this time." Kevin interrupted what she was about to say and changed the topic. As usual, he was not in the mood to exin to her. Noticing his impatience made Cherry feel a little more sad, but she just stayed silent. The sky was already gray when Anne walked out of the cinema, as if it was about to rain in no time. The cold wind blew which made her shiver. Thinking of the cold and disgusted look in Kevin''s eyes, Anne felt downhearted as if she had lost the only hope in her heart. Two hours have passed, but Kevin and Cherry hadn''te out yet. She felt really cold this time. If she waited outside a little longer, she would most probably get sick. The staff of the cinema looked at Anne expressionlessly. No one amodated her, because they didn''t know her rtionship with Kevin. It was always Cherry who was with him, so they didn''t show high respect towards her. Finally, Kevin came out with Cherry in his arms. When he saw Anne shivering in the cold wind, his eyes widened. "Anne, are you an idiot? Why didn''t you wait in the lounge?" He doubted if this woman was a fool. It was cold, yet she still stayed outside. "I don''t know where the lounge is," Anne said in a low voice. She felt cold all over and had no strength to argue with him. In fact, she wanted to wait in the car, but it was locked. The key of the car was with Kevin. However, she didn''t dare to tell him about it. She would be asking for trouble if she went inside and disturbed their intimate moment again. She had thought that Kevin would let it go, but the next thing that happened was out of her expectation. His cold eyes shifted to the attendants at the door. "My woman has been standing outside for three hours and this is how you take care of her!" His stare could almost kill the attendants on the spot. He was so furious of the fact that Anne had stood outside for such a long time considering that she was pregnant. "Mr. Kevin¡­ We apologize. It''s our fault." Two attendants came towards Kevin to apologize. They lowered their heads in fear. "From now on, I don''t want to see your faces here ever again!" Kevin said furiously and pointed at them. "Mr. Kevin¡­ We know we were wrong. Please forgive us¡­" Kevin made the two attendants anxious. They tried to please him but he was totally infuriated of what they had done. "Fuck off! I''ll give you three seconds!" Kevin ordered them impatiently, giving off a cold vibe. "Kevin, this has nothing to do with them. Don''t do this. This job is not easy for them." Seeing that Kevin had made up his mind to fire the two attendants, Anne sympathized with them and tried to convince him not to terminate them from their jobs. They did nothing serious. It was too much for them to lose their jobs because of this matter. "Anne, how dare you speak for others? Are you stupid? Why didn''t you find a warm ce to stay in?" ''This damn woman, she is freezing cold now, yet she still chose to stand for the people who have neglected her despite noticing that she is pregnant. Was it really from her heart, or she was just pretending to be kind?'' Anne was startled after being scolded by him. She even forgot to defend for the two attendants. Chapter 98 He Seems To Care About Her Chapter 98 He Seems To Care About Her Staring at Kevin in a daze, Anne could tell from the look on his face that he was concerned about her. Did he genuinely care about her? She couldn''t be sure as he always made it clear to her that all he felt towards her was disgust. Anne shook the thought away. How could he care about her? Even if he did, it was probably only because of the baby she was carrying. "Are you dumb? Why aren''t you saying anything?" Kevin couldn''t help but be irritated at Anne''sck of response. She used to be so disobedient, but today she actually said nothing. "I..." Anne mored for words, not knowing what to say. "Kevin..." As expected, Cherry was dissatisfied with the shift in his attitude towards Anne. It seemed that she was getting more and more important to him. "Put it on!" Kevinmanded as he took off his coat and handed it to Anne. Staring at the coat, Anne found herself absent-minded. Was he really showing concern for her? Cherry shot a warning look at Anne, her eyes sharp as knives. Anne frowned, feeling Cherry''s burning gaze on her. Not wanting to cause any more trouble, she decided to refuse Kevin''s offer. "No, thanks." She pushed his hand away, turning her back to him. For the briefest moment, she couldn''t help but be moved at Kevin''s show of concern towards her. Cherry sneered as she gaped at Anne''s back. ''This bitch is smart. She knows that if she seduces Kevin in front of me, I won''t let her get away with it.'' Kevin''s hands froze midair, his chest heaving violently. ''Damn it! She refused me again!'' He wasn''t going to stand by and let this woman refuse him again. "Put it on. If something goes wrong with the baby, you can''t afford to take the responsibility for it." He forcibly put the coat on Anne''s shoulders. He made sure to use his strength so she wouldn''t be able to resist. Anne couldn''t help but stunned at the sudden warmth. A strange feeling arose in her heart. Did Kevin really care about her? If she wasn''t sure before, she was sure now. Even though he mentioned the baby, she could still feel his concern for her. "Thank you..." she said in a small voice, lowering her head. Kevin wasn''t able to help himself as a smile tugged at the corners of his mouth. He didn''t know why but seeing her ept his gesture lightened up his mood. "You''re my wife. You don''t need to thank me." He didn''t want her to be polite to him like this. He liked it better if she just epted it naturally. "¡­¡­" Anne was rendered speechless. He wasn''t holding back on dering his possessiveness over her. "Let''s go." All of a sudden, Anne''s stomach grumbled much to her embarrassment. "Are you hungry?" Kevin broke out into a smile. He found her adorable so much so that he wanted to pinch her cheeks. "Hmm... A little," Anne said honestly. "Well, then, let''s have dinner!" As he said this, he walked towards the car, opened the door, and got in. Initially, Anne intended to refuse, unable to bear Cherry''s cold gaze anymore. However, she couldn''t ignore her hunger any longer. After hesitating for a bit, she decided to get in the car. She needed to prioritize her health after all. If she wasn''t pregnant, she had no problems starving but she had to think about the baby. As soon as she began walking towards Kevin''s car, Cherry caught up with her, ring at her. "Anne, I''m warning you. You''d better stay away from Kevin or I''ll make you pay for this!" ''If you want to get in my way, don''t me me for being ruthless,'' Cherry thought to herself in spite. Never in a million years would she allow anyone to take Kevin away from her. "It''s not like you treat me any other way. You''re nothing but mean to me 24/7," Anne spat. The annoyance on her face was palpable. Cherry was merely pretending to be a kind woman just so she could win over Kevin''s heart. Was it even possible that this type of rtionship couldst? Could she keep up the pretense in front of Kevin for a lifetime? "If you don''t want any idents to happen to you and the baby, I strongly advise you to stay away from Kevin. Otherwise, I can''t guarantee the safety of your baby." Cherry nced at Anne''s slightly swollen stomach, viciousness flickering in her eyes. If it weren''t for the fact that Anne was carrying Kevin''s child, he wouldn''t even so much as look at her. If the child was out of the picture, would Kevin still care about Anne? Anne defensively clutched her stomach as she leered at Cherry. She had no doubts that Cherry was capable of doing something evil. Thus, she needed to protect the baby. "Cherry, if you do anything to the baby, I''ll make sure you get what you deserve even if it''s thest thing I do!" Anne''s sharp gaze made Cherry a little flustered. When Cherry gave it more thought, she realized that Anne was incapable and ipetent. What could such a woman really do to protect the baby she was carrying? "Let''s wait and see!" With that, Cherry stalked off. She opened the car door and got in. Anne tightened her hands into fists, trying to suppress the fury that sprang to life inside her. After a while, she finally got inside the car. "What were you doing outside? Isn''t it too cold out there? If you want to, feel free and go out and soak in all the coldness until you freeze to death," Kevin said snidely as he turned to look at Anne who was in the backseat, his eyes narrowed in dissatisfaction. What was the point of lingering outside? Didn''t she want to get inside the car? "..." Anne was rendered speechless. She couldn''t help but be mildly irked at Kevin''sment. "No, thanks, I already spent three hours outside in the numbing cold. I think that''s more than enough," Anne snapped back. Anger rose in her as she thought of how merciless he was when he asked her to This content ? N?v/elDr(a)m/a.Org. get out of the cinema room. The exasperation in her tone was not lost on Kevin. Normally, he would be pissed at this but now, he couldn''t help but find it amusing. If he wasn''t mistaken, she sounded resentful. ''Is she jealous of Cherry?'' Kevin wondered in his mind. It looked like Anne did care about him. "What were you two talking about outside?" he asked, his tone emotionless. Anne nced at Cherry. When she recalled Cherry''s threats, anger churned inside her once more. She opened her mouth, intending to tell Kevin everything but was interrupted by Cherry. "Nothing. I just reminded Anne to take good care of herself. She''s pregnant with your child after all. Naturally, I would be worried." As Cherry spoke, she shot a malicious nce at Anne''s stomach and her mouth slightly curved up in a subtle grin. Scowling, Anne thought to herself, ''Wow, Cherry''s acting skills are out of this world. How brilliant that she could even say something she knows full well she doesn''t mean.'' In reality, Cherry was an evil woman who merely pretended to be kind-hearted in front of Kevin. Anne felt a chill run down her spine as she eyed Cherry''s pretentious smile. For the life of her, she couldn''t understand how on earth Kevin was able stand her. Well, Kevin did like that Cherry acted innocent and weak in front of him. "Cherry, I''m so lucky to have such a kind and gentle woman like you," Kevin said sweetly, shing her a soft smile. What he appreciated the most about Cherry was her kind heart. She wasn''t like most women he knew. More than anything, he needed a good woman like Cherry by his side. "Oh, Kevin, stop. You make me sound like I''m a saint. Anne''s my cousin and the baby she''s carrying is yours. Why wouldn''t I care?" A blush tinted Cherry''s face, feeling giddy about Kevin''s words. When Kevin wasn''t paying attention, she made sure to look at Anne haughtily as if provoking her. "I''m hungry. Let''s eat," Anne suddenly said, unable to bear Cherry''s hypocritical attitude any longer. She, of all people, knew just how vicious Cherry could be yet she was forced to see her pretend to be kind in front of Kevin. It was disgusting. "Cherry, what would you like to eat tonight?" Kevin asked as he drove the car steadily. He turned to look at Cherry who was next to him. A hint of tenderness always seemed to cloud his face whenever he looked at her. "I think I want western food. That western restaurant we went tost time wasn''t so bad and we have so many memories there." "Okay, whatever you want. We''ll go there if that''s what you want." Kevin sped up, smiling lovingly. Anne knew that Cherry said that on purpose so she would hear it. She had to constantly remind herself not to let Cherry''s provocation get to her. However, the difort that was welling up inside her was getting a little harder to ignore. Since Kevin sped up his driving, it took no time at all before they arrived at the western restaurant that Cherry suggested they eat at. As soon as they entered the restaurant, the manager immediately greeted them warmly, looking at Kevin with a polite smile. Chapter 99 Do You Love Me Or Not Chapter 99 Do You Love Me Or Not "Mr. Kevin, wee! I haven''t seen you around here in so long." Despite the manager''s overt enthusiasm, Kevin remained indifferent¡ªhe didn''t even spare the manager a nce. Anne skimmed the restaurant with her eyes, noticing that the restaurant was rather cozy instead of grand and magnificent. While the ce was undoubtedly sophisticated, its ambience seemed to be tailored to couples on romantic dates. "Mr. Kevin, I''ve already prepared your table for you. Do you want your usual orders?" The manager remained as devoted and spirited as ever despite Kevin''s less than warm response. "Yes, the usual," Kevin answered inly as he led the way to the private room. "Okay, let me call on a waiter to serve you now." The manager continued to tail Kevin around. Kevin was more than used to this kind of treatment which could exin why he seemed impatient. He drew his brows together as he asked rather rudely, "What are you still doing here? Are you waiting for me to treat you to a meal?" "No, no, no. Mr. Kevin, please enjoy your meal. I''m leaving now. If you need anything, please call me and I''ll assist you." Noticing Kevin''s displeasure, the manager hurriedly left. Anne, Kevin, and Cherry began to eat their meal in the private room¡ªthe atmosphere was admittedly a little awkward. Anne resorted to keeping her head down as she ate her steak. She wasn''t in the mood to see Kevin and Cherry showing off their rtionship to her face. She shrank back, pretending as if she didn''t even exist. Kevin frowned slightly when he noticed Anne scarfing down her food, barely chewing it. He began to cut up several pieces of his steak. After he was finished, he scooped it up and ced them on Anne''s te. "Slow down. Don''t act like this is your first time eating in years. Other people might think I''m not treating you well." Despite Anne''s rather unpolished eating habits, he found himself amused and endeared more than anything. Anne nced at the cut-up steak on her te. Something flickered across her eyes as she looked at Kevin in shock. Did he really cut up the steak for her? Since when was he so considerate? She was at a loss. He''d never treated her like this before. "Are you out of your mind?" Kevin couldn''t help but chuckle when he saw the look on Anne''s face. Her eyes were wide as saucers and her mouth gaped open. Was she that moved? At the thought of this, he broke out into a huge smile. His good looks together with the warm smile took Anne aback, who was utterly mesmerized for a moment. He was an excellent and handsome man who could make any woman fall in love with him. She had to pinch herself out of her daze. She had to remind herself that if she continued this, Cherry would definitely make her regret it. Instinctively, she nced at Cherry who, as expected, was side-eyeing her sharply. Cherry''s threats suddenly echoed in her mind. She pushed the steak towards Kevin and said coolly, "Thanks for your concern, Mr. Kevin. But shouldn''t you be doing this for your sweetheart instead of me? We shouldn''t be doing anything that would make people misunderstand your intimate behavior towards me." Kevin scowled at her. ''Did she refuse me again?'' "Anne!" he hissed, visibly seething. No woman had ever dared to refuse him so many times. "Yes, Mr. Kevin?" Anne said calmly, seemingly unfazed. Inwardly, her heart was pounding in her chest. "Anne, don''t try me." ''Damn it! Why is she acting as if nothing had just happened? She has no right to turn me down.'' "Mr. Kevin, you''re thinking way too much of this. I''m full." She kept herposure as she looked him in the eye. Despite knowing full well that he was pissed, she still stood her ground. "Kevin..." Cherry wasn''t stupid¡ªshe knew Kevin was angry because Anne had refused him which could only mean that he cared about Anne. She couldn''t help but feel uneasy. "Humph!" Snorting, Kevin stood up and walked away. ''Damn it, I can''t even look at her face right now. I''m so mad that I want to strangle her to death at the sight of her.'' "Kevin, where are you going?" Cherry hurriedly followed behind him only to have the door of the private room mmed shut to her face. She immediately turned her head to look at Anne, her eyes instantly turning cold. "Just because he cut up the steak for you doesn''t mean he''s in love with you. He''s merely concerned about the baby." She refused to admit that Kevin did that because he cared about Anne. "Mr. Kevin has nothing to do with me. Don''t worry. I won''t do anything." Anne knew that Cherry made it a point to sabotage her because of her fear that Kevin would fall out of love with her. She had to keep up the pretense of being unconcerned as a way to protect herself and the baby. "Why should I worry? Don''t you know that I''m the only woman that Kevin loves? What should I worry about? Do you think you''ll be with Kevin forever?" Sneering, Cherry red at Anne. The viciousness in her eyes was undeniable. "Really? If you''re so secure about your rtionship with Kevin, why are you always targeting me? Isn''t it because you''re afraid that Kevin will fall in love with me?" Anne taunted. While she knew that there was no chance that Kevin would fall in love with her, she knew better than to let Cherry get to her. "Stop talking nonsense. I''m not the least bit worried that Kevin will fall in love with you. If anything, I''m pretty sure he''s disgusted by the mere sight of you. Why the hell would he fall in love with you?" Cherry spat. She had to remind herself how many times Kevin had misunderstood Anne to assure herself that Anne did not stand a chance with him. "The only reason why Kevin and I have so many misunderstandings is because of you. I really want to see how he''s going to react if he finds out the truth about you. Would he still even love you?" Anne''s hatred for Cherry was burning inside her. Cherry was an evil woman who always threw Anne under the bus. "Even if Kevin doesn''t love me, he will never love you. If I were you, I''d make up an excuse to leave the vi. As soon as you give birth to that baby, I better not see your face anymore or I''ll make sure to teach you a lesson." It was obvious that Kevin''s attitude towards Anne was changing. Cherry had to get rid of her happen. "You don''t need to tell me to leave. I''ll do that on my own." Anne had been wanting to leave that hellish vi for so long. If she did then she wouldn''t have to deal with Cherry and Kevin every single day anymore. She had grown tired of Cherry''s hypocrisy. With that, she turned and left the room. When she arrived at the car, Kevin still seemed furious. She got inside the car in silence. She figured it was better to just not say anything, not wanting to cause any more trouble. However, this only enraged Kevin further. Was he invisible? Why didn''t she even look at him? "Get out!" He roared as he mmed his fist on the steering wheel. ''It''s like she knows exactly how to piss me off!'' "Okay," she answered simply as she opened the door. Considering Kevin''s unpredictable behavior, she reckoned it was safer to keep some distance from him for now. "Come on! I told you to get out and you actually do it?" Kevin bellowed. He felt like he was losing his mind. ''I don''t know what to do with this damn woman!'' "¡­¡­" She found herself at a loss for words. ''Could he get any crazier?'' she thought to herself. "Mr. Kevin, do you want me to stay in the car or get out of the car?" she asked coolly, trying to restrain herself. "Anne, I want you to answer me right now and tell me the truth. Do you love me or not?" He swiftly turned his head and eyed her sharply. He was done with her ying hard to get. Once and for all, he wanted to hear from her mouth if she loved him or not. She averted her gaze, feeling as if he could see right through her. Panic welled up inside her as her heart beat rapidly. Yes, she loved him! But he didn''t love her. He only loved Cherry. "This question is meaningless. I don''t want to answer it." She refused to admit it. Even if she did, it was pointless. "Answer my question!" he snapped. Why was it so difficult for her to answer this question? "Mr. Kevin, I think you should talk about this with your mistress, not me. I''m just your wife on paper after all." Was that all there was to their rtionship? A mere agreement? A meaningless contract? Once the agreement was over, they would part ways. He knew perfectly well what she meant. When he recalled how she constantly brought up the divorce, he grew furious again. Content ? N?velDrama.Org. ''Why is she so excited to divorce me?'' Any woman would kill to be with him yet she couldn''t wait to get away from him. Chapter 100 Kiss Me Chapter 100 Kiss Me "Anne! I''ll give you thest chance. If you don''t answer my question, I''ll force your body to tell the truth!" Kevin looked at Anne sharply and growled in anger. He had lost all his patience in forcing this woman to tell him that she loved him. Force her body to tell the truth? What did this man mean? Did he want to¡­ After realizing what he meant, Anne felt humiliated. What did he think of her? A thing he could use to satisfy himself? Remembering thest time when he forced her onto his bed caused the angst in her heart to surge up. Could he do anything else except this? "Kevin, can you be realistic? Is my answer really that important to you?" On a second thought, it didn''t matter whether she loved him or not. Besides, he found love anywhere he went. He never ran out of admiration from every woman he encountered. "It seems that you have chosen to let your body tell me the truth!" All of a sudden, Kevin pulled her over and kissed her torridly with his tempting lips. Anne was surprised by his aggressiveness. This man was really serious with every word he said. She tried to push him away. She didn''t like to be forced, especially on this kind of things. "Kevin, let me go! Let me go!" she shouted when his lips left hers. What was wrong with this man? Why was he doing all of this to her? He had caused her nothing but suffering. "Let you go? Why should I let you go? Shouldn''t I do such a thing to my woman?" Kevin said in a low husky voice and stared at her red lips which he had kissed just now. His voice was full of lust, but at the same time, it was filled with rage. "Kevin, can you please calm down? I know that you hate me and you don''t want to see me. I''ll get out of here right now, okay?" Anne thought that he did such thing because he hated her so much. How contradicting his mind to his actions was! Well, that was his nature, an unpredictable man who seemed out of his mind every time he dealt with her. "It''s toote!" Kevin said in an exasperated tone. He sat closer to Anne. He looked at her dreadfully, as if he was gonna swallow her in the next moment. "Kevin, don''te over. We are in the car!" Anne leaned against the window of the car and looked at him apprehensively. "Haven''t you tried such thing in the car? How about I let you experience it right now?" Kevin smiled enigmatically and approached Anne slowly. Anxiety was drawn all over her face which made him a bit satisfied. He liked seeing this woman in fear and in distress. He felt like he was the one in charge every time this woman felt lost and anxious. "Obscene!" Kevin''s explicit words made Anne blush at the moment. This man was so brazen. How could he say such obnoxious words? "I''ll let you know what''s obscene!" After a moment, Kevin harassed Anne and used up all his strength to make her give in. He would never give up on making this woman fall in love with him. Anne tried so hard to escape from his arms, but no matter how hard she tried she couldn''t resist his force. He was far stronger than her that even if she had opened the door of the car, he managed to grab her back before she could even go out. "It''s toote to run!" . ''If she had just answered my question earlier, I wouldn''t have treated her like this. She asked for it.'' "Kevin, you pervert! Let go of me!" Anne had never imagined that Kevin would be capable of harassing her like this. He would reallye to whatever extent just to get what he wanted. Why did he treat her like this every time? She couldn''t help but shout abuse. "Anne, don''t you dare curse me again!" ''Damn it! How dare she kept swearing at me and refusing me all the time!'' "Will you let me go if I stop scolding you?" Content ? N?velDrama.Org. Looking at Kevin pitifully, Anne hoped that this man would feel a little mercy in his heart to let her go. After all, she had endured so much, and she didn''t want to be humiliated for the second time. "Kiss me. If you take the initiative to kiss me, I''ll let you go." Kevin stared at her with his tempting eyes and gave her a meaningful smile. There was a moment of silence. They just stared at each other while waiting for the next thing that would happen. Kevin would never let her go easily. He would definitely give her a hard time, before he let her go. What else should Anne do to satisfy him, so that he would never bother her again? But first, she needed to know what he truly wanted to figure it out. "Anne, I don''t have much patience. If you don''t do it now, I might change my mind." Seeing Anne speechless made Kevin feel a little impatient. Anne was never ready for such kind of thing as she didn''t want to be forced to do something like that. However, she thought that it might just be worth it to do what he asked. Besides, he told her that he would let her go if she did so. Feeling determined and having her mind all made up, Anne closed her eyes and quickly kissed Kevin''s thin and soft lips. But when she was about to let go, Kevin pulled her close and deepened the kiss. Anne opened her eyes in shock. She was carried away by the kiss and hadn''te to her senses until she heard a loud sound. Cherry''s bag fell to the ground. She looked incredulously at the two people kissing in the car. Her eyes were full of pain and confusion. Tears welled up in her alluring eyes. She just came back a littleter than Anne. It was just a short interval. How did this happen so quickly? How did Anne seduce Kevin in such a short period of time? Was it a lie when Anne told her that she wouldn''t do anything to get between them? Kevin noticed her presence. Feeling annoyed that the sweet moment was disturbed, he frowned and immediately let go of Anne. "Cherry." He managed to call Cherry by her name lightly and showed no guilt. "Kevin, what are you two¡­" Cherry tried her best to hold back the tears that already welled up in her eyes. She choked back her sobs, as if she had seen Kevin cheating on her with Anne! "Nothing. Don''t worry." Kevin had no intention of exining their actions. He believed that Cherry had already seen what happened between him and Anne just now. Why bother saying more about it? Anne was ming Kevin in her heart while tidying up her messy clothes. Now, Cherry would totally give her a hard time. Cherry would never let her go easily because of what just happened. She would make Anne pay for seducing his man. "Don''t get me wrong. It''s not what you think. There''s nothing between the two of us." Anne was aware that Cherry might not believe her. She hated this woman so much, but in order to save herself from any argument that might arise after this scene, she exined to her patiently. Anne''s exnation was useless to Cherry. She had always despised Anne, and now there was definitely no reason to change that feeling towards her anymore. It was Kevin who was in a bad mood. Despite causing two women too much suffering at the same time, he still had the guts to be upset. He was angry with how Anne rified their personal rtionship to Cherry. "Anne, how could you say that there was nothing between us? Is the kiss fake?" The fact that Anne denied their rtionship made him furious to the point where he could strangle her to death if she said that again. "¡­" Anne looked at Kevin and said no word. How important was it to him to reveal their status to others? Did he have no shame left in his heart, especially to Cherry? Anne exined not only for her own good but also for Kevin. If she hadn''t exined Cherry, the love of his life, would surely be sad. "Kevin, I''m doing this for your own good," Anne muttered. Kevin was the most arrogant man she had met. No matter what intention she had, he would always take it useless. "Being the person that I am, I don''t need your exnation for me!" Kevin looked at Anne with disdain. She was getting on his nerves. "Well, I''m fine, Kevin." Cherry red at Anne, pretending to be aggrieved. "Get in the car. It''s gettingte. Let''s go back." He ignored Cherry''s grievance. Before, he used to feel guilty when she looked at him with grievance in her eyes, but now he seemed to not care at all. And more than that, he was even a little annoyed. Cherry thought that Kevin would exin to her andfort her, so as to make her feel that he had always loved her so much and nothing would ever change it. She was totally disappointed at him right now. The car was running fast. The atmosphere inside was truly awkward. Sitting in the corner of the back seat, Anne acted like she was not existing. "Anne, I''ll ask the kitchen to prepare a cup of ginger decoction for you when we get back. The breeze tonight had made you shiver for a long time. Don''t catch a cold." After a long moment of silence. Kevin spoke up first. Although he said those words because he cared for her, Anne just chose to ignore it and pretended to hear nothing. Cherry hated Anne immensely. When she heard Kevin say such caring words to Anne, she became more furious. It had confused her more and more. She doubted whether he did this on purpose to make her hate Anne or he truly cared for her. She tried her best to suppress her hatred towards Anne. She couldn''t burst out in front of Kevin or else she would give him a bad impression. "That''s right, Anne. You must take good care of yourself now. Don''t let anything bad happen to the baby inside you." Cherry spoke in a soft tone, but Anne distinguished threat in those caring words. She couldn''t help but worry. ''I''m in trouble now. I''m sure Cherry would do her best to take revenge.'' "I see, thank you for your concern," Anne said trying to sound calm. "That''s good. I admire your obedience." It was unusual to see Anne being so obedient. Kevin smiled with satisfaction. He found her more worthy of admiration when she was obedient just like now. Cherry was a bit worried when she saw Kevin smile. What was Anne''s ce in his heart that she could make him smile like this? ''No, I have to get rid of her as soon as possible, or I would be in endless trouble,'' Cherry thought. As soon as they arrived at the vi, Anne went out of the car quickly because she didn''t want to see Cherry''s sharp gaze anymore. "Anne, why are you running so fast? Are you afraid of me?" When she heard Kevin''s voice, chill went down her spine. Every time she tried to avoid him, he was always annoyed and dissatisfied. Chapter 101 Change In Front Of Me Chapter 101 Change In Front Of Me Anne suddenly stopped. She could practically feel Cherry stare daggers at her. What did Kevin want? How could he let her go? Anne turned slowly to look at Kevin. She felt like weeping but had no tears. "I''m a little tired and I need to lie down. What can I do for you, Mr. Kevin?" Anne tried her best to sound calm. She also didn''t want to look guilty. That might make Cherry think that there was really something between her and Kevin. "From now on, don''t avoid me when seeing me. Do you hear me?" Kevin strode over to Anne and looked down at her with his dashing eyebrows askew. He looked domineering. She couldn''t do anything other than try to recover from him berating her. She was left speechless by his overbearing manner. This man always misbehaved around her. Cherry was still here. Wasn''t he afraid that his sweetheart would be sad? Didn''t he care about Cherry the most? "Are you deaf? Did you hear what I said?" Kevin growled. Unable to get a satisfactory answer, he responded the way he usually did, anger reflected in his ck eyes. "Well... I heard you..." Anne answered quickly, frightened by Kevin''s behavior. "Good girl." With a smug smile, Kevin patted Anne''s head like he might pat a puppy''s. "It''s gettingte. Go back to Original content from N?velDrama.Org. the vi and get some rest." Being touched like a pet, Anne was a little annoyed. She rolled her eyes at Kevin, turned, and left quickly. Watching her leave, Kevin didn''t even know his eyes showed tenderness. Behind him, Cherry''s temples throbbed with hatred, and her vicious gaze followed Anne into the living room. She walked up to Kevin and looked at him with those lost puppy dog eyes. She was trying for that look, hoping to manipte him. "Kevin, why did you kiss Anne? Do you love her?" She looked at him with a pained expression. Kevin turned to look at her. "No, but I find her fascinating," he said calmly. Kevin was never good at disguising himself, nor did he sugarcoat the truth to please a woman. "Okay, then what are you nning? What happens after the baby''s born? What about me?" Tears like a broken line of beads streamed down her cheeks. She looked so pitiful. "I''m just interested in her. A woman like her won''t tie me down for the rest of my life," Kevin said with disdain. He was just possessive of Anne. When his interest in her faded, he would let her go. "But Kevin, have you ever thought about my feelings? I''m really sad to see you care so much about Anne." Tears streamed down Cherry''s cheeks. She could barely move. Her limbs felt like lead. "Don''t be so narrow-minded. Aren''t you supposed to be kind-hearted and open-minded?" Kevin wiped the tears from her face. "Not really. Not when ites to love, anyway. I know Anne hates how intimate I am with you, but I can''t help it. And I''m also jealous when I see you get so close to Anne." "Don''t worry. I''m only interested in her for the time being. You''re always the woman I love most," Kevin said gently, holding her hand. Seeing the way Kevin acted around Anne, Cherry was nervous about her future with him. His nonchnt attitude did little to reassure her. When she was about to say something, she was interrupted. "Cherry, it''s gettingte. Get some rest. Don''t worry. I know what to do!" After saying that, Kevin held Cherry''s hand and walked towards the living room, giving her no chance to speak. At first, Cherry had a lot to say, but her words were stuck in her throat. Seeing that Kevin didn''t care about it, she was more determined to make Anne stay away from Kevin. Anne went back to her room, thoroughly frozen from the wind she stood in for hours. As soon as she got in, she took a hot shower. She stretched herself tiredly, wrapped her wet hair in a towel, and walked out of the bathroom. "Ah!" As soon as she opened the bathroom door, she was startled by the sudden appearance of a person at the door. After the initial shock, she calmed down and looked at Kevin vigntly. "It''s sote. Why aren''t you in bed?" "Why are you so surprised? It seems that you don''t want to see me at all." As he saw no other expression on her face except shock, Kevin''s eyes darkened and displeasure welled in his heart. "No, it''s okay..." Knowing that Kevin''s long face was a prelude to a storm, Anne tried to calm him down. "Really?" Raising his eyebrows, Kevin couldn''t believe it. "Yes, I''m telling the truth." This man was temperamental. She was really worried if she said something wrong, he would lose his temper again. "That''s good." Hearing her affirmative answer again, Kevin raised his eyebrowscently. Then he eyed Anne''s attractive corbone. His Adam''s apple bobbed. "Anne, are you trying to get me all hot and bothered?" He couldn''t take his eyes off her, and there were emotions in his ck eyes. "What are you talking about?" Frowning, Anne was confused by what Kevin had just said. Why did this man say a thing like that? But when she looked in the direction of Kevin''s gaze, she blushed all of a sudden. Where was this man looking? Crossing her hands over her chest, Anne looked at Kevin vigntly, fearing he''d do something. He''d proven he had no limits. Looking at Anne''s face, Kevin couldn''t help sniggering. Did she really think that she could stop him? "Do you think you''re safe from me with your hand on your chest?" With an attractive, evil smile at the corners of his mouth, he leered at her with hungry eyes. "You rascal!" Anne''s face was quite red. From anger or shyness she could not say. "Rascal? I haven''t done anything to you, but I''m a rascal now? So I guess I should live up to the name you called me." Kevin took two steps towards her, with a touch of deep color in his eyes. "You... What are you doing? Stay away from me!" Looking at Kevin vigntly, Anne was a little flustered. Did this man want to do that to her again? "Fine. I''ll stay here. But you need to get closer to me." Kevin stopped and looked at Anne calmly. Her guarded stance made her look really cute. He asked her to walk over to him. She''d do that¡ªwhen hell froze over. Then Anne turned around and stalked into the bedroom. She had to change her clothes as soon as possible. If she stayed like this, maybe Kevin would really do something to her. "Running away?" Kevin raised his eyebrows. She still managed to surprise him. If he really wanted her, did she think she could escape? Not the brightest bulb in the bunch. "Do you mind? I need a little privacy. I''m trying to change..." She finally got her clothes from the wardrobe, but this man was right in front of her. She couldn''t change clothes while he leered at her. She wore nothing other than a bath towel now. "What do you think?" Amused by her words, Kevin stood there and looked at her with interest. He liked to see her angry and helpless. "Kevin, leave. Now. How can I change my clothes with you right there?" "I''ve seen and touched every part of your body. You don''t have to be so bashful in front of me." Kevin had no intention of leaving. The floor show was worth it. Why would he miss out on that? ''This man is so shameless. How could he actually say that without blinking an eye?'' All of a sudden, Anne''s face was red like a ripe tomato, as if it could drip blood. "For thest time: out!" She was a little anxious and wondered how long he would stay here. "No can do. I''m staying right here!" He refused without hesitation, without any discussion. "What do you want? I''m pregnant now. You can''t force me." Worrying that Kevin might lose control of himself, Anne tried to remind him of his child. "Don''t worry. I won''t force you today as long as you don''t piss me off." He had nned toe to see her anyway. The fact that she was just stepping out of the shower was an unexpected bonus. Anne breathed a sigh of relief. Looking at Kevin with uncertainty, she asked in a low voice, "You really won''t touch me?" "Do I like a liar? You don''t trust me?" It was really ufortable to have a woman suspicious of his motives. "No, you don''t look like a liar. Alright." Anne didn''t dare to say she didn''t trust him. If she did, who knew what Kevin might do? "Then why are you still dawdling? Hurry up and change. Are you waiting for me to slip into something morefortable?" He raised his eyebrows, indicating that she should change her clothes as soon as possible. Anne made up her mind. She knew that he wouldn''t leave, so her best option was to just do it as quickly as possible. She untied the bath towel and put on her pajamas as fast as she could. But all she really wanted was to find a hole in the ground to hide in. ''Hmm... I think you looked better in the towel. Pajamas are so boring.'' Chapter 102 I Just Want To Sleep With You Chapter 102 I Just Want To Sleep With You "So, I''ve changed into my pajamas," she said quietly. "Can you leave now?" Anne''s face was painted red in shame as she couldn¡¯t bear to get a glimpse at Kevin''s face. Just the thought of changing her clothes in front of him felt intensely awkward for Anne. Raising his dashing brows, Kevin grinned sardonically at Anne. He said, "Did I say anything about leaving after you changed your clothes?" He studied her bodynguage like a painting for a moment. He could not see through what was running around her mind other than her persistent desire to shoo him away. She was like a timepse of night and day. One moment she was warm like the eternal sunshine, then in a snap, she would be unemotionally hollow as a starless night with a freezing gale of cold, yet he was eager to stay in this swinging mood of hers. "Then, what do you want?" Anne heaved a helpless sigh, and said. "I''m tired and I need to rest." It was Anne''s turn to consider Kevin statuesque figure. Tonight, he was incredibly handsome and charming, but his expression seemed like he craved to abduct her for the rest of her life. What was wrong with this man? Why was he suddenly everywhere? And now, it was apparent that she couldn''t even stay away from him in the safety of her room. "I''m exhausted too," he quipped. "Let''s rest together!" He strode towards Anne step by step with a mischievous smile ying at the corners of his mouth. The look in his eyes became more and more rampant as he leisurely loomed towards her. Seeing the hint of manic in his nearing obsidian pupils, Anne felt a sudden rush of panic creeping inside her skin. Was he the type of man to break his word as if he never said it? "Don''te any closer!" she said as she took a few anxious steps back. "You said you wouldn''t touch me. You can''t break your promise!" She watched him as he froze in hesitation for a split second before he shrugged the thought and continued to draw himself closer. She started to feel the pressure of the seeming wall of fright crushing her into a corner. If this man was nning to do something to her, there was no way she''d be able to stop him. "Why are you so afraid of me, Anne?" he soothed. "If I say I''m not going to touch you, I''m not going to touch you. I just want to sleep with you!" Kevin was frustrated at Anne''s petty avoidance of him. He wasn''t used to women being such a pain in the neck. He usually had a way tosso women into his arms. ¡®Don¡¯t worry, I¡¯m not a monster. I don¡¯t intend to bite¡­ Unless you want me to,¡¯ he pondered wistfully to himself. "What are you doing stepping far away? Just get over here and take off my clothes!" he demanded domineeringly. Kevin grew impatient at the thought of her putting up such a fight, but the more this stubborn woman avoided his ws, the more he grew eager to get her. ''Take off his clothes? Did he just ask me to undress him?'' Anne thought. She couldn''t believe what she just heard. He was being inappropriately blunt. Did he just forget that he said he wouldn''t touch her? Anne felt severely mortified. She prayed to the gods that this man would just turn around and leave her in her solitude. What did he want with her anyway? He was a goldenrod that could reel in any other girl he wanted. Whenever his presence shrouded her, she could barely breathe. Her mindset was locked in fear that he would force himself on her. "Don¡¯t make me repeat myself, or the promise I have just made will be revoked!" ''Damn it! If she won¡¯te over any sooner, I would have sex with her right here and then. I know I said that I wouldn''t touch her, but her hesitation makes me want to teach her a lesson,'' he argued with himself. "You have your personal bedroom. So, why do you want to sleep in mine?" she asked. His room was double the size of hers, but he insisted on huddling in her small chamber. She found it difficult to guess what was going on in his oundish mind. "I like it here," he said. "It''s cozy." Silence filled the four corners of the room as Anne was left with a nk cognizance. "Come here quickly. Don''t test my patience!" Kevin continued to stride towards Anne to remind her that he was starting to run out of patience. "Alright, alright. I''ll take it off for you!" Anne nagged in impatience and walked towards him, fearing the possibility of rattling this man to the brink of an explosion. Standing in front of him, Anne tentatively began unbuttoning his shirt. The more buttons she unfurled, the more his slim fit polo shirt revealed his amazing anatomy. His feverish skin had a warm ivory tone, and his chest and abdomen were firm and taut. She could feel the brawn that sprawled beneath his lean and sinewy muscles. As Anne removed the draping shirt and began to unfasten his pants, she marveled at how amazing he looked from the tip of his toes to the ends of his slick-back hair. She never looked at men from a sexual standpoint because she didn''t bother noticing them at all, but Kevin was oozing with sexiness. Her cheeks began to blush into a rosy red color. Kevin watched as her expression transformed from being reluctant to feeling embarrassed, and finally, to be tickled with interest. A sly grin crept up his face as he lowered his head and whispered in her ear, "What? Are you enchanted by me? If you change your mind, I can help you," he teased. His voice was a husky growl and seductive. She felt his warm breath swirl her face which made her cheeks blossomed crimson as she wondered whether he could tell the intensity rising in her body. "What are you talking about? What makes you think I''d be enchanted by you?" Anne tried to maintain herposure, but the scrutinizing stare on his face showed her that he knew exactly what she had been feeling. Ashamed, Anne turned her head away and didn''t dare to gaze at Kevin''s face again. She couldn''t afford to give away any more hints than she already had. "Oh, you¡¯re not? Then why were you staring at me like I¡¯m a starving carnivore? I know that look on a woman''s face. I''ve seen it before," he proudly disputed. "Anne, you don''t need to feel embarrassed. I will give it to you as long as you want." The look on her face made Kevin want to tease her to her limit. She was so cute when she was shy and defiant. "I don''t know what you are talking about, but I''m going to bed," she said in a hurry. She didn''t know how to deal with his cockiness anymore. She was afraid that he would say something even more explicit, and her ears had certainly had their fill of his full-frontal words. She quickly jumped in her little bed and buried herself under the protection of her quilt. Raising his intrigued eyebrows, Kevin walked towards the bed as he felt more confident again. He knew he was seeping into her erotic interests. Pulling back the quilt with brute force, she was revealed in a curled-up position as she felt ufortably naked. Keviny beside Anne and squeezed her tightly in his embrace. Feeling the encapsting warmth of his body, Anne stiffened up, and her heart began to race wildly. Once upon a time, all this princess ever wanted was to be smooched in the mighty caress of Kevin. And now that it was finally happening, she begged nothing but to be free from his cage-like grip. Anne tried to squirm a bit to loosen his hold on her. This was ridiculous. There was no way she would be able to sleep like this. And a part of her was cautiously afraid that if she continued to allow him to hold her like this, she would step directly into his snare like the many foolish others that she had seen fall for it. "Don''t move around so much, Anne. If you keep moving, I can''t guarantee that I won''t do anything to you." He maintained his hold around her soft and plumped slender figure. He was trying his best to be on his best behavior, but the way she wriggled in his arms just sent his passionate drive rocketing into the sky. Hearing those words, Anne solidified again like an armadillo. She became so terrified that she didn''t dare make any movement at all. After spending a few moments of extreme spooning, Kevin seemed to rx a little bit, but Anne was going nuts to get out of this situation. How could she even close her eyes when he was holding her in this disturbingly spicy position? "Kevin, can you go back to your room now? I''m not used to being held like this. I prefer sleeping alone." She had been snoozing with her solitude in her room since the first day. And tonight, suddenly, there was a man in her bed, insisting on cuddling her like this. It was incredibly unsettling especially since it was the man that she loved and hated vigorously at the same time. "Then I''ll sleep with you until you get used to it," he said stubbornly. He tightened his clutch around her a little bit, making her unable to move. The slightest movement could either anger him or turn him on, so she froze like a deer in the headlights, but deep down, she felt absurdly ill at ease. There was no way in the world could she doze off like this. "Seriously, Kevin. I''m not used to this kind of thing. Could you please let me go a little?" Her body continued to be rigid as she was getting more and more perturbed. "Habits are created by repetition," he said. "Don¡¯t worry, you''ll get used to this after a few weeks." Kevin''s voice was still cocky andmanding, but there was a hint of displeasure in his tonality when he said this. "Kevin..." she pleaded once more, but before she could even start her sentence, Kevin interrupted, "Anne, if you really can''t sleep like this, I wouldn''t mind doing something else with you!" His voice sounded aggressive and menacing this time which made her feel that he might forcefully pry himself on her if she didn''t watch her mouth. Anne decided to bite her tongue and speak nothing. She didn''t want to give him any reason to break his promise. She closed her eyes and tried her best to endure the difort of being wrapped like a present by this big hunk of a man who had no business being in her bed. He seemed dangerous enough to be capable of something rash. And she wasn''t prepared to deal with the consequences if he did decide to assault her. She kept her eyes closed and remained immobile for what felt like a century. It wasn''t until the sun peeked that she fell asleep, and when her eyes opened again, it was almost the day¡¯s peak at noon. Remembering that Kevin had slept beside herst night, Anne was haste to nce at her side. Surprisingly, Kevin wasn¡¯t there. The bed felt oddly uninviting and barren without him. A sense of loss shed on the back of her mind, and this added confusion to her ever-growing puzzled feelings. She should be happy that he was gone, right? Why did she feel disappointed? She shook her head and tried to liberate herself from the clinging thought of Kevin. It wasn''t enough that he terrorized her constantly for her to stop bugging herself with the reflections of him even though he wasn¡¯t around. After getting dressed, Anne gazed at herself in the mirror and saw two puffy dark circles under her eyes. She heaved a sigh of strain. She couldn¡¯t manage to sleep wellst night with Kevin in bed with her. This content ? N?v/elDr(a)m/a.Org. Amidst the quiet room, her grumbling stomach echoed loudly. She looked down and rubbed her swollen belly. The baby was demanding more and more from her every single day. She briskly left her room and headed downstairs. She peeked cautiously around the banister to see who was around. There was no one in the living room except for a few servants dusting off some pictures, and with luck, there was no sign of Kevin or Cherry. Turning towards the corner of the dining room, she spotted a pair of maids preparing lunch and approached them desperately. "Could you please prepare some food for me? I''m starving," she asked. Hearing her words, the two maids rolled their eyes and pretended like they never heard a word. They feigned to be overly upied with their task at hand. She knew that no one, not even the servants respected her in this vi. She felt pokes of rudeness in their behavior, but she tried to suppress the need tosh out at them. There was no point in yelling at the people that you were trying to convince feeding you. "Please... I''m hungry. Please serve me some food." "Oh, you really think you are thedy of this house. You think so highly of yourself now. You have no right to order us around," said one of the maids who stopped what she was doing to scowl at Anne with disdain. Everyone in this family knew that Anne had no status, and in Mr. Kevin''s eyes, she had less right to be here than a servant. "You can sneer at me all you want, but don''t you know that it''s Kevin''s baby that''s growing in my belly? He will not be pleased if his baby goes hungry and something happens to it!" Anne finally fought back as the tip of her anger exited her mouth. The attitude of the two maids made Anne feel so defeated and disregarded. She just wanted something as simple as a meal, but the sassy maids were certain that they did not have an ounce of obligation to amodate her. If it was Cherry who stood where she was, they would have swiftly prepared a mile- long feast to the table. "You have some nerve to threaten us with your child. It''s not strange that you now think that you are somebody because of the child. But it''s sad that it''s only the child in your womb that Mr. Kevin cares!" The other maid looked disgustedly at Anne. They thought it was too shallow for her to use her pregnancy against them. They honestly had no idea about her history with Kevin, yet they judged that she only had the baby for a malicious and sneaky purpose. Anne felt her rage fire up as their harsh words came pouring like gas. Indeed, she knew in herself that she had no status in this family. Even the lowliest of servants in that household treated her like a pile of dirt. "You said it yourself. Kevin cares for the child in my womb. What do you think he''ll do if he hears that you lunatics are treating me like this? He could banish both of you for the detriment of the baby''s health!" Anne said in an aloof and nasty tone. She was set aze by this unjust treatment. If she didn''t fight back to survive in this vi, then the wicked tyrants would just trample her like a worthless schmuck. Chapter 103 Cut Her Tongue Out Chapter 103 Cut Her Tongue Out "Anne, when did you be so eloquent? You now learned to name drop Kevin to the servants to get what you want, huh?" Cherry walked downstairs. Her lovely, arrogant eyes were filled with disdain. Her voice was acerbic, and her expression was cold. ''Anne''s really living it up. She thinks she''s the hostess because Kevin is interested in her. That won''t "Now that you''re down here, Miss Cherry, what would you like for lunch? We''ll fix something right away." When the two maids saw Cherry, they immediately fawned all over her. Cherry looked at Anne with a smug smile, and a sneer in her beautiful eyes. In this vi the servants felt Cherry was the real hostess, while Anne was just a tool to give birth to the child. As Anne felt Cherry''s gaze, her annoyance red. This woman was obviously acting against her. "Not now, Cherry. I''m not in the mood to argue with you. Just understand: if anything happens to my kid, Kevin wille down on you like a thumb on a bug," Anne said coldly. Anger seared through her as she said this. "You''re seriously threatening me with Kevin? I don''t think he''ll do anything to me." Cherry looked at Anne with disgust. ''This bitch really thinks she''s somebody. She actually had the audacity to say that to me.'' And the maids jumped to Cherry''s defense. "Who do you think you are? Mr. Kevin will only get angry when Miss Cherry is hurt. He probably won''t even look at you." "Since when do maids insult thedy of the house?" Kevin had also juste down the stairs. He trembled with fury as anger seared through him. His words were clear, and his tone held a hint of danger. So this was how they treated Anne when he wasn''t around. Even the maids were in on it. Damn it! "Mr. Ke... Mr. Kevin." When the maid who spoke saw Kevin, she lowered her head and held her breath. Simrly, panic shed through Cherry''s beautiful eyes when she heard his voice, but she was good at hiding it. Kevin strode over, and his eyes were fixed on the maid who had just spoken disrespectfully to Anne. Waves of hate could be felting from him. "I asked you a question. Did you think this was okay? Are you the hostess of this vi?" His cold voice was like a devil out of hell. "No... I didn''t mean anything by it. I just said it without thinking. Please forgive me, Mr. Kevin." The maid was so frightened by Kevin that she stammered, fear widened her eyes. "You said it without thinking? You''ll have lots of time to think about why you can''t talk anymore." After saying this, Kevin crooked his finger and immediately two bodyguards came over. "Mr. Kevin!" "Cut her tongue out!" Kevin''s face was calm, but his tone was frightening. "Mr. Kevin, please forgive me. I won''t do it again. Please forgive me." The maid fell on her knees with a thud, and tears of fear rolled down her cheeks. It was the first time Kevin had dealt with a person in such a vicious manner, and even Cherry was a little scared. But at the thought that he did all this just because of Anne, she was mad and she decided to do something to stop him. "Kevin, don''t you think that''s too cruel? She''s just a maid. I think she''s learned her lesson." "If I go easy on her, it sets a bad precedent. This will remind them that my wife and I deserve respect." Cherry''s pleading didn''t change Kevin''s mind. The thought of thatck of respect sent him into a rage. His message had to be clear. "I still think it''s way over the top." Taking Kevin''s arm, Cherry pleaded for the maid again. She really didn''t care about the maid, but she didn''t want Anne to think she was more important than she really was in Kevin''s heart. Seeing that Cherry''s pleading didn''t work, the maid was even more afraid. She cast a quick nce at Anne, who had an indifferent face, and knelt down in front of her to beg for mercy. "Mrs. Anne, please help me. I know I was wrong. I will never talk to you in a disrespectful tone again. Please help me." Kneeling on the ground, the maid apologized from the bottom of her heart. She really felt bad about what she did. If she had known that Anne was so important in Kevin''s heart, she wouldn''t have said anything like that. Anne looked down at the maid kneeling on the ground. Although she was still a little angry with the maid''s attitude, Kevin''s punishment was too harsh. "Mr. Kevin, I think she has realized her mistake. Please forgive her this time." Anne wasn''t sure whether Kevin would listen to her or not. He was a man of his word, not to mention that she was not that important in his heart. "Are you really going to let her get away with it?" Kevin asked coldly, frowning deeply. "Yes." "Very well. I''ll take your advice. Let her go." Looking at the sincere expression in Anne''s eyes, Kevin agreed without any particr reason. He didn''t know why he wanted to avenge this woman. "Thank you, Mr. Kevin. Thank you, Mrs. Anne." Kevin''s words set Anne''s heart at rest. Right now, the maid was grateful to Anne. If it weren''t for her, the maid''s tongue would have been removed. Although the maid had apologized, Anne was still unhappy. She gave the maid an indifferent look and turned away. In Cherry''s eyes, Anne was arrogant. She was unhappy that Kevin supported Anne, and he even listened to Anne''s advice but not hers. ''This bitch is too much. If she stays here, I''ll lose Kevin to her! No, I must find a way to get this slut out.'' After returning to her room, Cherry thought for a while and finally came up with a n. Didn''t n hold a grudge against Anne? He must be very unhappy since their n to get rid of Anne failedst time. Cherry thought she might be able to use that to her advantage. Thinking of this, she dialed n''s number again. "Miss Cherry, what a surprise. Why are you calling?" n''s cold voice came from the other end of the phone. Cherry could tell from his tone that n didn''t like her. "Hello, Mr. n. Long time no talk. I just called to see how you were doing," Cherry said in a sweet voice, forcing a fake smile. "I know who you are. You''re anything but sweet and innocent, and rarely do anything without an ulterior Content ? N?velDrama.Org. motive. So, out with it." n snorted with disdain. He was annoyed by the call already. The smile on her face froze, and her face darkened. n didn''t pull any punches. Fortunately, it was just a phone call. n couldn''t see her fuming on the other end. "You get straight to the point, Mr. n. I like that. Actually, I''m calling to help you, help you avenge your sister!" Cherry knew that n loved his sister more than anything. She brought Ruth up to stoke those fires of hatred in his heart. "Avenge my sister? Why would you say that?" She could tell he was ufortable. His tone was calm, but there was anger there, bubbling just beneath the surface. "You haven''t avenged her, have you? Are you going to just let Anne get away with it? She''s the one who hurt your sister, after all." When she mentioned Anne, Cherry clenched her fists and gnashed her teeth. She did not like how Kevin seemed to be falling for Anne. And she really hoped that she could kill her. "I know all this. No, I haven''t been able to get my revenge. And? You just called to remind me that I need to avenge my sister? Get to the point. I''m not a patient man." When n thought of his sister, his tone suddenly became cold and hatred welled in his heart. She was still in aa. If it weren''t for Anne, his sister would still be walking and talking. He could take her out to eat, they could go shopping, and whatever else she wanted. Those experiences had been stolen from him. "Of course I''m not calling to remind you. The point is that I want to help you get your revenge." When she knew that n''s hatred had been reawakened, her heart did a little victory dance. Though brave, ncked wisdom and tact. It was easy to influence someone like him with some tricks. But n became smart this time. He knew Kevin was protecting Anne. He didn''t trust Cherry, either. "Help me? I think Miss Cherry just wants to use me. You want to use me to get rid of Anne, probably because she''s a threat to your ns with Kevin. Am I right?" He had already figured out what Cherry was up to. Did this woman really think that she was that smart? Did she think she could use just anyone? Now that n had seen through her real intentions, Cherry felt a little embarrassed. It seemed that n was much smarter than she thought. "... Why, Mr. n. I don''t know what you''re talking about. I really want to help you. Don''t you believe me?" Although Cherry had been exposed, she had to defend herself. Would n even listen to her anymore? She didn''t know, but she had to try. Chapter 104 Going Abroad Chapter 104 Going Abroad "Miss Cherry, save your words. You just want me to deal with Anne, don''t you? Unfortunately, I won''t listen to you this time. I will definitely avenge my sister. Mr. Kevin has promised me that once the child is born, Anne will be at my mercy and he will never interfere!" Since the woman was being protected by Kevin, n could not avenge her sister yet. If he really hurt that damned woman, he would also have a hard time. Cherry didn''t expect him to be so firm in his decision this time. He ignored every word she had said and that made her even more anxious. "Mr. n, if Kevin falls in love with Anne, do you think that even if she gives birth to the child you will still have the chance to get back at her?" She tried to persuade him as hatred dominated her heart. "What do you mean by that?" Just as she had predicted, n''s tone changed on the other end of the line after he heard her. "I said, if Kevin fell in love with Anne, he would protect her even after the baby was born. If that happens, then it would be impossible for you to avenge your sister. That''s why you should get rid of her, as soon as possible." There was no need for her to deny the truth this time. If she didn''t tell him the truth, n would never help her. There was a few seconds of silence in the other end of line. Her shoulders slumped when she thought that he might not cooperate, but a sliver of hope emerged when he spoke. "Do you have a good n in mind? Is there any way to make sure that Anne will pay for what she did?" His ultimate goal was for Anne to pay a heavy price. He would have a hard time avenging his sister if Kevin fell in love with that insufferable bitch. "Now that you have agreed to cooperate with me, let me be in charge. I will make a careful n, and this time, I won''t fail." A vicious cold light glinted in her eyes. It made her lookpletely devoid of emotion. This time, she was definitely getting rid of Anne once and for all. Text ? 2024 N?velDrama.Org. "I see. I''ll wait for your further instructions. I hope, you won''t let me down this time!" After he dropped the call, Cherry put on a wicked smile. ''Let me see if you''ve got yourdy-luck this time, Anne.'' The pregnant woman woke up the next morning and found Emily sitting on her bed. Her eyes widened at the unannounced appearance of her friend. "Emily, what are you doing here at this hour? Do you need anything?" she asked in concern when she noticed that her friend didn''t look well. "You''re awake! I thought you would sleep until noon," Emily bantered instead of answering her question. "I''ve been sleeping a lot recently. By the way, what brings you here?" "I just wanted to say goodbye. I''m nning to study broad, so I won''t be seeing you for a long time," Emily said after some hesitation. She could barely look at her friend in the eye. Anne had a moment of consternation and reluctance. She sounded anxious when she spoke. "You''re going abroad? Why is it so sudden? I''ve never heard you mention this before." "I made that decision in the spur of the moment. I realized that I''m still ipetent when ites to my work, and I figured that I can enhance it abroad. That''s why I can''t be your assistant from now on. Not yet, at least." Emily looked past the window with a bothered look on her face. She swallowed the lump on her throat and tried to hold back her tears. "You''re acting a bit strange today. Are you hiding something from me?" Anne narrowed her eyes and asked. She couldn''t help but be suspicious of her friend''s unusual attitude. Emily used to have a carefree personality. Every time she had to make a decision, she would consult Anne first. The fact that she told her this after she decided she was leaving was strange. "No, I''m not hiding anything. I just wanted to bid you goodbye before I leave." Tears welled up in Emily''s eyes, but she held them back. Anne was embraced with sadness when she saw the reluctance in her eyes. She had known Emily for a while now, and she was like a sister to her. She couldn''t bear the thought of being away from Emily for a long time. But she didn''t want to be selfish. She was well aware that there would be a lot of opportunities for her if she studied there. "You''lle back, right? Let''s just work together when you get back!" A sincere smile spread across her lips. She gave a heartfelt hug for Emily as she tried her best not to cry. "I will, but please, do me a favor. While I''m away don''t let yourself get hurt again." She knew that once she left, there would be less danger for Anne. However, she was worried because there was someone in the vi who would do everything in her power to hurt Anne. Anne was too kindpared to that vile woman, Cherry. "Don''t worry about me. I''m a grown woman, I can handle myself. You must take care of yourself once you get there. Don''t forget to call me often, alright?" There was a gentle tug in Anne''s heart when she sensed how worried her friend was for her. Even though she would be in a foreignnd soon, Emily still worried about her. "Don''t worry about me! I''m a strong and independent young woman. I can definitely take care of myself!" To make sure Anne wouldn''t worry so much about her, Emily made a promise. "Okay, it''s gettingte. Let''s go downstairs and eat breakfast. You went here so early. I''m sure you haven''t eaten anything yet." Anne got out of her bed and got dressed. After that, she looked at Emily gently and led her downstairs. When they arrived in the dining area, Kevin and Cherry were sitting at the table already. The two sat side by side and the maid quickly served their breakfasts. Emily took this chance to throw a strange look towards the man. The atmosphere was a little weird and suffocating. After she sat down, Cherry recalled what happened this morning and sneered at Anne. "Anne, did you know that this morning¡­" "Cherry, this is your favorite salmon. You should eat more," Kevin interrupted her by putting a piece of salmon on her te before she could finish her sentence. His sudden gentleness was a pleasant surprise to Cherry, but then she quickly realized that it was to prevent her from telling her cousin what happened this morning. "Thank you, Kevin!" She gave a chaste kiss on the man''s cheek, looking happy. Cherry was more intimate towards Kevin now that she knew that Anne could see everything. Anne maintained a nk expression even though she was fuming because of what she witnessed. On the other hand, Emily didn''t hide her hostility and disgust towards Cherry. She red at her with sharp eyes full of disdain. This woman was really good at acting. She deliberately disyed a gleeful expression in front of Anne. "I''ll drive you to the airport after breakfast, Emily." Kevin raised his head and said after he ignored Cherry''s supposedly sweet act. "Thank you, Mr. Kevin." Emily quickly retracted her gaze from Cherry, and lowered her head to agree. "I''ming with you!" Emily was leaving soon. Anne had no idea how long it would take before she would see her again. The least she could do was to see her off at the airport. "No way! The airport is way too far. You''re pregnant. You''re not supposed to get tired. I''ll send her off alone," Kevin refused without hesitation. His tone was cold and domineering. "I''ll be fine. She''ll be gone for a long time. I want to send her off," she exined in a low voice as she looked at Kevin''s domineering countenance. "I said, you can''t go and that''s final. Just stay here in the vi and don''t go anywhere!" This damned little woman. Did he not make himself clear enough? He had said that she wasn''t allowed to go, and she still insisted oning. "It''s alright, Anne. You''re pregnant and it would be a long drive. Just stay here, I will call you when I get to the airport," Emily persuaded her determined friend. Anne looked at her with confusion. She was acting really strange today. If this happened in the past, she would''ve pestered Anne to send her off. Now that Anne took the initiative to send her off, she didn''t want Anne to go. "Alright, just make sure to call me as soon as you arrive." She dropped the subject and didn''t insist anymore. She just lowered her head in disappointment. "Since you''re going abroad, I should give you something. Wait for me, I''ll go get something from my room." Kevin''s eyes darkened after Anne went upstairs. He looked at Cherry next to him and said coldly, "Without my permission, you''re not allowed to say anything to her regarding what happened this morning. Emily will be the one to admit that it was her fault that Ruth fell down the stairs, and it had nothing to do with Anne." Kevin was displeased because of Cherry''s loose tongue. She almost told Anne what happened this morning. Since the little woman was pregnant, he didn''t want her to get hurt. Not now, not ever. He wanted to protect her. Cherry looked at him in disbelief. She couldn''t believe that Kevin had asked Emily to take the me just for her cousin''s sake. Chapter 105 Protect My Woman And Child Chapter 105 Protect My Woman And Child "Kevin, why did you do that?" Cherry asked as she looked at him in disbelief. "To protect my woman and my child," he answered. The fact that he said it so naturally made her heart twitch. In Kevin''s heart, Anne was his woman and he would do anything to protect her well. "You''re willing to make others take the me just to protect her? Do you know how unfair you sound right now?" It might sound like it, but Cherry didn''t feel any trace of sympathy for Emily. It was just so hard for her to ept that Kevin would do anything just to protect her cousin. ''I''m his real woman. His care and protection should be all on me!'' she thought angrily. "I did it voluntarily! As long as I can protect her, I''m willing to do anything," Emily answered instead and threw a cold look towards Cherry. Anne was like her real sister and she couldn''t bear to see her in danger. n was a dangerous person. If he believed that Anne was the one who pushed his sister down the stairs, he would never let her go. Cherry clenched her fist in anger. She already nned everything carefully and Emily just had toe out and disrupt her n. "I don''t want Anne to find out about this. Am I clear, Cherry?" He looked at her with sharp eyes. "Yes, I won''t tell her." She lowered her head to hide the hatred that crept on her. ''That bitch is so lucky to have an assistant who could make such a big sacrifice for her.'' Emily was about to say something but stopped midway when she saw Anne descend the staircase with a jewelry box in her hand. "This is for you," she said and handed the jewelry box to Emily with a smile. Confused, Emily opened the box and saw a simple ne inside. "Anne, what''s this?" "I''ve been wearing that ne since I was a child. It''s nothing grand but this means a lot for me. Since you''re going somewhere far, I want you to have it." She picked up the ne and put it on Emily with warmth in her eyes. "Thank you. I wouldn''t mind doing anything for such a good friend like you." She held Anne tightly and finally broke into tears. "Silly girl, what are you talking about? Eat your breakfast quickly or else you''ll bete." She looked at her with amusement. Was she that excited to leave that her sentence made no sense at all? What did she mean by she wouldn''t mind doing anything just for her? The two were too reluctant to part and that made Cherry look at them with disdain. ''What a bitch! She''s really good at pretending. It is all because of her that her friend has to leave abroad. How could she just ept it so easily?'' After breakfast, Emily bid her goodbye and entered Kevin''s car. As soon as the door was closed, the man looked at her. "Don''t you regret it? It''s not toote for you to back out now." "I don''t regret it," Emily said in an affirmative voice. This could serve as her payback for Anne''s kindness towards her. "I have arranged everything for you abroad. I also made sure that n will never hurt you." Kevin''s voice was monotonous and his face void of any emotion. For him, Emily was a hardworking assistant. This time, he wanted to salute her for her courage to stand up just to protect her friend. "Thank you, Mr. Kevin." Without further ado, Kevin started the engine and drove away. Anne withdrew her gaze once the car has disappeared from her sight. She reluctantly sighed and turned around to walk towards the vi but stopped midway. "I didn''t expect you to have such a good rtionship with your assistant," Cherry said before Anne could take another step. The pregnant woman didn''t want to converse with her so she ignored her and tried to bypass her. However, Cherry wouldn''t let her go easily. Her n failed again. That only fueled her hate towards thedy. She hated the fact that Anne was always lucky and that she could get out of danger every single time. "She''s my friend and not just an assistant!" Anne creased her forehead. She got annoyed when she sensed the sarcasm thatced the woman''s voice. "Friend? Really now because I''ve never seen anyone who could betray their friends for their own safety," Cherry sneered and said sarcastically. "What do you mean? I never betrayed my friends." She looked at her with uninterested eyes because Cherry''s words annoyed her. She didn''t know what the woman bbed about. "You''ll know what I mean soon. Too bad because when that timees, I''m sure that you''ll regret it," Cherry said and cheered up when she saw the anxious look on Anne''s face. The more she saw how miserable she was, the more ecstatic she felt. "Speak in words that I can understand!" Anne demanded. She could see just by Cherry''s expression that something bad was about to happen and her intuition told her that it was about Emily. Her friend was acting strange today. She had noticed it when they were in her room. "Don''t worry." Cherry stepped closer to her ears and smiled triumphantly. "I''ll tell you, just not now," she whispered. Anne clenched her fists and suppressed her anger at the woman''s provocative tone. All she wanted was to hear what happened and what her words meant. "You''re not always lucky, you know? Sooner orter, Kevin would kick you out of here mercilessly." Cherry smirked and looked at her coldly. She might have failed this time but she wouldn''t give up easily. She would never be satisfied unless her cousin was driven out of here like a stray dog. Content ? N?velDrama.Org. "Then wait until that dayes." Even though Anne felt restless, she refused to show it. She would never give that type of satisfaction to her cousin. She walked past the woman and strode towards the vi. Cherry stomped her feet in anger after she failed to draw a reaction from her cousin. Anne felt uneasy the moment she returned to her room. She wanted to know if Emily hid some things from her and why she had to go abroad suddenly. Annoyed at being kept in the dark, she dialed her friend''s number. If her question was left unanswered, she would continue to be restless. When she dialed Emily''s number, her call was immediately dropped in the voicemail. Her phone was already off. Anne walked back and forth in her room as she bit her nails. She was worried and she couldn''t get Cherry''s words out of her mind. Her cousin would never b things that had no meaning. There must be something that happened. Kevin came back in the evening after he went to see Emily off. He had such a long day. Anne tossed and turned on her bed and couldn''t put her mind at ease. It was almost midnight when the door in her room was pushed open. Steady footsteps could be heard inside the quiet room. She knew it was Kevin''s so she sat up and looked at the door. His slender figure slowly approached her. "You came back sote," she said. Kevin smiled and strode to her side when he heard the hint of anxiety in her voice. "It was only a day yet you missed me already," he teased. He thought Anne sounded worried because she didn''t see him the whole day and missed him in his absence. Suddenly his mood was lifted just by the thought of it. "When did I say that I missed you? You''re such a narcissistic person." She rolled her eyes at him. Which eye of this man saw that she missed him? "It''s not about being narcissistic but having the ability. Tell me, did you fall in love with me?" Kevin smiled evilly. "¡­" This man was not only narcissistic, but he was also arrogant! She wanted to wipe off that proud smirk of his face. She always perceived him as a serious person and not an assuming one. She held back the impulsive feeling in her heart that wanted to point out his arrogance. Instead, she looked at his deep ck orbs and said seriously, "Actually, I just want to ask you something." "What is it?" He stood up straight and frowned with displeasure. "There must be a reason behind Emily''s sudden decision to go abroad. She must have hidden it from me. Do you have any idea what that is?" She was sure that he knew something. Otherwise, he would have never initiated to see Emily off. This man hated it when women were close to him. Aside from Cherry and Emily, he also acted unusually. "Is that the only thing that you''re concerned about? The matter about Emily?" he asked coldly as he looked at her unhappily. ''It was me who came back sote. All she cared about was her assistant, damn it! I was the one who was busy because of her all day!'' "Well, I just¡­ I think she was hiding something from me." She sensed the coldness in his voice. Honestly, she didn''t know what upset him because he looked so fine earlier. She didn''t know if she had said something wrong that offended him. "Anne, I came backte at night. Aren''t you supposed to care about your man? How could you think about your assistant at this time?" he whined. Chapter 106 Sleep With You Chapter 106 Sleep With You Kevin kept a straight face, his eyes narrowed in dissatisfaction. "Well¡­" Anne wanted to ask more about Emily, but seeing that he was a little bit angry, she shut her mouth. "Mr. Kevin, it''s gettingte. Return to your room and have a rest. You must be exhausted from work. You should take good care of yourself," Anne promptly said to prevent him from getting angry. "Did I say that I wanted to go back to my room and have a rest?" Kevin''s face was still sullen. The aggravation in his eyes remained as it is. ''This damn woman is so pretentious.'' "Mr. Kevin, do you want to¡­" Anne was speechless about this man. He was extremely difficult to please. "Sleep with you! I''m going to take a shower. Wait for me on the bed!" Kevin walked into the bathroom immediately after saying that. He did not give Anne any chance to exin. "¡­¡­" ''What is wrong with him these days? He takes my room as his own.'' At the thought of his domineering behavior, Anne felt aghast. But when she thought that he hugged her and slept with her every day, she seemed to be at ease and looking forward to it. For the past two months, Kevin slept in Anne''s room almost every night. His attitude towards her was much better. Cherry had witnessed all the changes in Kevin. She knew that he cared more and more about Anne, or perhaps he had fallen in love with her. After Cherry''s n failedst time, she had always held a grudge against Anne. The baby would be born soon. What if Kevin decided not to kick Anne out of the vi? It couldn''t be. She must find a way to sever their rtionship. One day, Kevin left early for work, leaving Anne and Cherry alone in the vi. Cherry looked at Anne, who was eating her breakfast silently. A vicious look shed across Cherry''s ravishing eyes. "You seem to be in a good mood these days, even though someone sacrificed so much for you. You don''t have any conscience at all," Cherry said sarcastically, raising her brow at her. Frowning, Anne stopped eating and gave her a cold stare. "I don''t know what you are talking about. Please don''t disturb me. I''m having my breakfast!" Anne did not seem to be affected as she had already been used to Cherry''s mockery. "You are indeed a broad-minded woman. How could you sit here and leisurely eat breakfast? Haven''t you figured out why your assistant went abroad long ago? Original content from N?velDrama.Org. Kevin had given an order not to tell Anne about what happened to Emily, but Cherry did not care so much now. If she just let Anne live such a peaceful life, she would lose her position in the vi eventually. Hearing Cherry mention Emily, Anne interrupted what she was doing and fixed her eyes at her sharply. "Cherry, what do you mean? Just say it. Don''t beat around the bush!" She anticipated that what Cherry was about to say must be something bad. "Your assistant went abroad so suddenly. Don''t you know why? She went away because of you!" Cherry red at Anne contemptuously. As she remembered that herst n fell through because of Emily''s interference, hatred took hold of her heart. "Emily suddenly decided to go overseas. You must know the reason, right? Cherry, tell me!" Emily had been away for some time. During that time, Anne had asked Kevin over and over, but she didn''t get an answer. The longer she waited, the more worried she got. "Although n promised Kevin that he wouldn''t harm you before you give birth to the baby, he wouldn''t let you go easily since he wanted to avenge her sister so much. Your assistant was afraid that n might do something to hurt you, so she went to him and imed that she pushed Ruth down the stairs. She did it all to protect you!" Cherry gave Anne a frigid look. She could not help, but feel jealous when she thought Anne had a friend who cared so much about her. "What did you say? Emily went to n and said that she pushed Ruth down the stairs?" Anne immediately stood up from her seat and asked. She could not believe what she heard. She put herself in danger for her. How could Emily be so reckless? "Anne, now that you know the truth, can you still sit here and have breakfast peacefully? Emily had paid the price for you. I''m afraid she won''t be home for a while longer." Knowing that Emily had done so much for her, Anne felt guilty. How could she be so foolish? "No, I can''t let them me her for a crime she did not do. I will tell everyone that it was you who pushed Ruth downstairs!" Emily was like Anne''s sister. She could not let her bear such a big crime for her. It was Cherry who did it. It had nothing to do with her nor Emily. "Do you think someone will believe you? Anne, it has been a long time, but you''re still naive!" Cherry sneered with disdain. She did not take Anne''s words seriously, because she was confident that no one would believe her. "Cherry, how can you be so hypocritical and cruel? You pushed Ruth down the stairs. Why did you let someone bear the punishment that you deserve to get?" Anne became furious. Cherry was the one who hurt Ruth. If n wanted to take revenge, he should "I pushed her down the stairs! But even if you tell everyone, they would not believe you!" Cherry taunted and looked at her with pleasure. She would love to see if Anne could still stay at ease. Anne was burning with rage as she glowered at Cherry. She had never despised this woman so much before. All of a sudden, there was an excruciating pain in her belly. Anne tightly frowned with her beautiful eyebrows and covered her belly with her hands. Cherry was surprised seeing her face instantly turn pale. This woman was so vulnerable. She just said a few words, but it already affected her baby. Meanwhile, Cherry was happy to see this. It would be better if the baby would die even before it was born. She could not help but snicker at the thought that Kevin would kick Anne out of the vi. "Why are you still standing there? Hurry up and send me to the hospital!" Anne nced at Cherry''s gloating face and said coldly as she endured the pain. "Take you to the hospital? Why would I do that? What good will it do to me?" Cherry smirked. She looked as if she was watching a good show. Did Anne really think that she would help her? She was rather eager to see something happen to the baby Anne was bearing. "Yes, it will do no good to you. But if anything happens to my baby, and Kevin knows you did nothing, do you think he will still love you? If so, you could say goodbye to the image you have worked hard to create in his heart." The pain grew worse in Anne''s belly. She knew that she had to go to the hospital now. She might have a miscarriage if she did not act immediately. Cherry, who had been dying to see a good show, stopped smiling as Anne''s words sunk in. She looked at Anne viciously. This woman finally began to suppress her using Kevin''s influence. "Are you threatening me, Anne? Do you think I will get scared if you say that?" She walked up to Anne and whispered cold-heartedly. "I''m not threatening you. I''m just telling the truth. If anything happens to my baby, your wedding with Kevin will never take ce!" Anne sought support from the chair and walked out with difficulty. She had to go to the hospital as soon as possible. Being intimidated by Anne, Cherry knew that what she said was true. If Kevin knew she did not do anything to help Anne when she was in danger, he would definitely think that she was a heartless woman. It seemed that she had to send Anne to the hospital today. "Okay, I''ll take you to the hospital. But it has nothing to do with me if something wrong happened with your baby." A sneer shed across Cherry''s lips as she walked to help Anne. Anne stared at her in surprise. She did not expect that Cherry would be struck by conscience and changed her mind. Did she get frightened of what she just said? After she got inside Cherry''s car, the pain in her belly became worse. Her face turned paler and paler. There weren''t many cars on the road, but Cherry''s driving speed was unexpectedly slow. It was not until then that Anne realized that why Cherry suddenly changed her mind to help her. She was obviously doing it on purpose, so she could buy time. It took the car nearly half an hour to arrive at the nearest hospital. The doctor gave a series of tests upon Anne. "Doctor, is my baby all right?" The pain was alleviated a little. Anne looked at the doctor who examined her, anxiously waiting for his reply. "You have pretermbor symptoms. Fortunately, it is not too serious. You must learn to control your emotions as you are pregnant," the doctor reminded her when he saw the distress on her face. "Thank you, doctor. I''ll be careful." Anne was relieved when she knew that the baby was fine. If something happened to her child, she would feel guilty for the rest of her life. Chapter 107 A Deliberate Accident Chapter 107 A Deliberate ident "Well, have a good rest here. Don''t exhaust yourself." The doctor left after he advised Anne to rest for a while. As soon as the doctor left, someone came into the room. Anne thought that it was a nurse, but she was surprised to see Kevin striding towards her. How did he know that she was there? She hadn''t told him that she was in the hospital. "Kevin, why are you here?" Looking at him curiously, Anne felt that he was in a bad mood at the moment. "Are you stupid? You can''t even take good care of yourself!" Kevin growled as he walked closer to her. His aura was gloomy and his eyes were filled with anger, but with a hint of worry. God knew how worried he was when he knew that she had an ident. Why was she so careless every time? She had always made everyone around her worry. Anne was stunned by Kevin''s words. She realized that he got furious because he had worried a lot about the baby inside her. She frowned with the thought. "I''m sorry. I will be careful next time," she lowered her head and apologized in a sincere tone. Kevin was also surprised by her attitude this time. She seemed to be more obedient than she used to be. Before, she would even look at him indifferently and defend herself for being in such situation. He noticed that she looked so debilitated. At least at this moment, he knew how to consider her situation, so he didn''t let his temper burst out on her. He sat next to her and looked away. He said in an unnatural voice, "How do you feel now? Are you still not feeling well?" Although he was angry because this woman didn''t take good care of herself, he tried to be calm as much as he could as he cared about her health more than anything else now. "Kevin, don''t worry. The doctor already said that the baby is fine," Anne said softly. Even if Kevin appeared calm, she was still a little disappointed with the thought that he only cared for the baby inside her. "The baby? Did I ask for the condition of our baby?" Kevin asked coldly and looked at Anne unhappily. ''What did she mean? Did she think that it was only the baby inside her whom I cared for?'' There was a moment of silence between them. Confusion was traced all over their faces. Anne looked at Kevin speechlessly. ''Is this man asking for something she did not mean?'' "Kevin, what you care about the most is the safety of your child, isn''t it?" Anne looked at him and said lightly. Her face looked indifferent, but Kevin was infuriated. How could he still control his temper if she was like this? ''This damn woman always knows how to provoke me.'' Suddenly, he stood up and looked down at Anne. His eyes burned with fury. "From now on, you should stay in the hospital to protect the baby. You are not allowed to go anywhere!" "I know. I will keep the baby safe. Don''t worry, Kevin." The most important thing for Anne now was to protect her baby, so she didn''t dare to object his order. The baby? ''Why was she only mentioning the baby? What about herself? She must have thought that I only cared for the baby inside her,'' Kevin wondered. The more he thought of Anne misinterpreting what he said, the more he became irritated. He was Content ? N?velDrama.Org. afraid that he would not be able to manage his temper any longer, so he just turned around and strode towards the door. "Kevin, are you leaving now?" Seeing that he was about to leave, Anne tried to stop him. Kevin stopped and turned around with a sweet smile. "What? You don''t want me to leave?" His coquettish smile conveyed the good mood he had at the moment. His mood had shifted so quickly, that if Anne had asked for him to stay, he definitely would. "No, that''s not what I meant. I just want to ask you something¡­" Sometimes, Anne couldn''t interpret what was on Kevin''s mind. She was left speechless. She didn''t even show a bit of what she truly felt. How could he think so? Kevin looked disappointed and his face turned cold when Anne denied what he said. "Anne, do you know that a proper coquetry will make a man love you even more?" Kevin said teasingly. Anne seemed to have provoked his impulse to strangle her to death. ''The level of "¡­¡­" Anne was left no words to say. She didn''t understand what he meant at all. She recalled what she had just said to him and as far as she knew, she had not said anything to irritate him. What caused his anger all of a sudden? "Kevin, I just want to ask you something about Emily. I heard that she went abroad for me. Is it true?" Regardless of what Kevin felt at that time, Anne wanted to know if Emily really left because of her or not. "Who told you this?" Kevin was startled after hearing her question. He red at her for a moment. If he knew the person who had told Anne about it, he would surely not let that person go. Anne was frightened by his tone. It was Cherry who told her such thing, and she just wanted to confirm it. She couldn''t help but feel guilty over the thought that Emily went abroad to protect her. "No one told me. I guessed it myself." Anne lied not to protect Cherry, but because she knew that Kevin would not believe her anyway. He would just think that she was deliberately against Cherry. Of course, Cherry would also lie if she was confronted by Kevin. In the end, Anne would be left unlucky and would have to endure all the me that Kevin would put on her. Anne had endured too much of these things. She had already predicted the oue if she told him the truth. She didn''t want any trouble for herself anymore. "Anne, do you think I will believe what you said? Are you some kind of a psychic to know the reason why Emily went abroad?" Kevin thought that Anne was trying to outsmart him. He couldn''t control his temper anymore. "¡­¡­" Was this man really eager to know the truth? Anne thought. "Tell me! Who told you this?" Kevin thought that Anne''s angst over Emily''s matter had almost caused her to have a miscarriage. He swore that he would make the person who told Anne such thing to pay. "If I tell you that it was Cherry who told me, will you believe me?" Kevin furrowed his eyebrows as he stared at Anne. Her tone was sarcastic, but there was still a glimmer of hope in her that Kevin would believe her. "I believe you!" After a long time, Kevin had finally sensed that there was something wrong about the attitude of Cherry. He could tell that she was hostile towards Anne. He was blinded by the kindness that Cherry had showed him all the time and thought that she would never do something to hurt Anne, so he never suspected her. However, it was beyond his expectation that Cherry would take the initiative to tell Anne about the matter of Emily, which caused Anne to get too emotional and end in the hospital. Anne looked at Kevin in surprise. She didn''t expect his answer. She thought that he would always stand for his sweetheart and would never take time to believe her. But what happened now? What made him believe her? "Have a rest. I''ll be backter," Kevin said to her in a calm tone. He seemed to have finally ovee his anger. The car sped all the way back to the vi. At this moment, Cherry was having her coffee in the living room, waiting to hear about Anne''s miserable condition. But when the maid told her that Kevin hade back, she immediately ran to the kitchen to make some soup for Anne, pretending that she really cared for her. Kevin went straight to the kitchen when the maid told him that Cherry was there. "Cherry." Staring at Cherry who was pretending to be busy at the moment, Kevin somehow felt slightly absurd. It was so unusual for him to face his sweetheart with an irritated look. "Kevin, you''re home!" Cherry looked at him in surprise. Kevin just looked at her silently. His sharp eyes made her a bit scared. "Kevin, you should have known about what happened to Anne, right?" She showed a hint of guilt in her eyes, as if she was truly worried about Anne. "Yes." Kevin had no expression on his face. "Kevin, it''s all my fault. I didn''t take good care of Anne," Cherry said softly trying to get his sympathy. Kevin hated to see her pitiful. Every time she felt sad, he managed to restrain himself from losing his temper. Cherry had always used this advantage to pretend to be aggrieved in front of him. "Why did you tell Anne about Emily? Didn''t I say that no one was allowed to mention it in front of her?" This time, Kevin was not affected by the hypocrisy of Cherry. He only felt anger in his heart. Cherry used to be a kind and generous woman in his heart, but this was a different case. He felt very disappointed. "K Kevin... " Cherry stammered and looked at him in shock. He already knew¡­ She was flustered at the moment, and had a hard time to think of a reason to cover herself up. "Kevin, I didn''t mean it. It was a slip of the tongue. Please believe me. I really didn''t mean to tell Anne about it," Cherry exined anxiously, fearing that Kevin might not believe her this time. If he knew that she told it to Anne on purpose, she would never know what he would think of her. She was so afraid that the impression she had built up in his heart for such a long time would be ruined. "Do you know that what you told her had almost cause her to have a miscarriage? I have always thought that you are a considerate and kind-hearted woman¡­" Kevin looked at her with discourage in his eyes. He wanted her to understand that what he needed was a kind-hearted woman, not a petty one. "Kevin, I really know that I was wrong. I was so careless to say such things to Anne. Please forgive me." Cherry ran to him and hugged him tightly. She was so afraid of the discontentment in his tone. "Cherry you should know what I meant. I don''t like to be manipted by women." Cherry did her best to exin that she had identally spilled up, but Kevin did not believe her at all. Still and all, Cherry was so important to Kevin, so he was careful of the words that came out from his mouth. Chapter 108 Feeling His Concern Chapter 108 Feeling His Concern Having stayed by Kevin''s side for such a long time, Cherry understood what he meant. He didn''t believe her exnation. "Kevin, I''m sorry. I''m truly sorry. I know I shouldn''t have done that, but I''m really jealous. I''m a human being. I''m afraid that you will fall in love with Anne and abandon me. I''m sorry. I shouldn''t be so selfish!" Throwing herself into Kevin''s arms, Cherry spoke in a hurry, fearing that he would change his opinion of her because of that matter. With a displeased frown cutting through his forehead, Kevin pushed the woman away and replied in an indifferent tone, "I don''t want this kind of thing to happen again. She is pregnant with my child. Until the baby is born, I will never allow anything bad to happen to her. Do you understand?" Cherry''s actions had really disappointed Kevin that time, making him a little angry too. "I know. I will never do such a stupid thing again. Please, don''t be angry with me." Feeling Kevin''s indifference, Cherry panicked. "Cherry, I can forgive you this time, but there will be no next time!" Kevin still couldn''t bring himself to scold her harshly. After all, he had always thought that she was the woman he loved. "It won''t happen again. I won''t do anything to make you angry again." Looking at him in surprise, Cherry wrapped his arms around him and smiled proudly. The fact that he was not angry with her for what had happened could only mean that she was much more important than Anne in his eyes. "I have to go to the hospital. Ask the cook to make some tonic soup and send it there." Irritated, he lightly pushed Cherry away from his arms. "Kevin, how is Anne now? Is she feeling better?" Seeing his gloomy face, Cherry asked that question cautiously. She really hoped to hear him say that Anne was in a bad condition. "She is fine now!" After pronouncing those words with indifference, Kevin turned around and left straight away without looking back. Staring at his receding figure with malice in her beautiful eyes, Cherry clenched her fists. ''How lucky Anne is! Nothing happened to her!'' Soon, Kevin arrived at the ward where Anne was hospitalized. Looking at her pale face while she was sleeping on the bed, he felt a little sorry for her. He gently smoothed the hair on her forehead with his slender fingers. Even though he was careful, Anne felt his touch. She slowly opened her eyes and focused them on Kevin''s handsome face. For a moment, her brain was totally absent. "Kevin, why are you here?" She was surprised by his presence. Hadn''t he left? Why was he still there? "I am here for you!" He let out those words in a casual but serious tone. Staring at him in shock, she felt her heart starting to beat wildly after hearing his words. "Kevin, in fact, I don''t need anyone to take care of me. You are so busy with your work, so you don''t need to worry about it. I can protect the baby in my belly." As she realized that Kevin''s behavior might be only caused by his worry for the baby''s well-being, she felt a wave of disappointment wash over her. But after all that time, she had learned to disguise her emotions. Kevin didn''t even notice the disillusion in her eyes. "Anne!" He red at her angrily with his piercing dark eyes. ''This damn woman always talks about the baby. I haven''t even mentioned it!'' "What is it? Did I say something wrong?" Anne asked confused, after sensing the sudden anger in Kevin''s voice and seeing the gloominess on his handsome face. Text ? 2024 N?velDrama.Org. She recalled quickly her words, and it seemed to her that she didn''t say anything wrong. What happened to that man? Why did he get so angry all of a sudden? "How dare you say the word ''baby'' again?" ''Damn it! She doesn''t know what was wrong. Good, very good! This woman is really heartless.'' "¡­¡­" She looked at Kevin in confusion. What happened to him? Could that man be more capricious? "I thought you were worried about the baby, so..." Trying to exin herself, Anne kept her voice low. She didn''t want Kevin''s growing anger to affect her in any way. "You didn''t understand what I just said. Anne, are you an idiot? Do you really think I''m just worried about the baby?" ''Damn this woman! How can''t she see that I care about her?'' Anne''s confusion turned quickly into shock as she tried to make out the meaning of Kevin''s words. Did he indirectly tell her that he cared about her? But her astonishment onlysted a few seconds. She was well aware that Kevin hated her too much to be able to care about her. "Kevin, it''s gettingte. I want to get some rest." She didn''t want her hopes to transform into disappointment again. She would rather believe that Kevin had never cared about her. "Are you sending me away?" His frown deepening, Kevin spoke in a much colder tone. Anne could always make him angry easily. "I..." ncing at his cold eyes, Anne lowered her head in panic, unable to exin herself. "Answer my question!" At her silence, Kevin''s face turned even colder. ''This damn woman. Would she die if she said something to make me feel better? She doesn''t know how to please a man with words. I really don''t know why I care about her more and more.'' "I... I didn''t mean that. I just think you must be very tired after a whole day''s work, so I want you to go home early and get some rest," she said hurriedly, not really meaning those words. She just didn''t want to fuel Kevin''s anger even more. That man was a little moody recently. She had to be careful. "Really? Anne, you''d better tell the truth, or I will not spare you." He was satisfied with her exnation. "I''m telling the truth. It''s gettingte. Kevin, you''d better go home and get some rest." She felt a little guilty saying that. All she wanted now was that Kevin could leave as soon as possible. She always felt depressed when he was around. "I''ll stay here with you tonight." "¡­¡­" Shock spread across her features as she began to doubt his sanity. Since when did he talk to her in such a gentle tone? It was not his style at all. "In... In fact, I can stay here alone. Besides, there are two maids outside. Kevin, you''d better go back and get a good rest." However, in her heart, she hoped that he could stay there with her. But his personality was so uncertain that she felt ufortable in his presence. "Don''t make me repeat myself!" ''Damn this woman! Didn''t she understand what I just said?'' "I see..." Lowering her head, Anne stayed silent. She didn''t dare to say anything more, fearing that Kevin would punish her if he was unhappy with her answer. "But there is only one bed here. Where are you going to sleep?" Although that was a VIP ward, there was only one bed. If Kevin wanted to stay, there was no ce for him to rest. "Over there!" He pointed at a sofa not far away from the bed. Anne couldn''t imagine that the famous and powerful boss was going to sleep on a sofa. It wasn''t in line with his identity at all. "How about I sleep on the sofa and leave the bed to you?" Anne sat up and lifted the quilt, ready to get out of bed. She didn''t even dare to think about letting a man like Kevin sleep on the sofa. "Lie down!" ''This damn woman wants to sleep on the sofa. Doesn''t she know that she is still very weak? Who is the patient now?'' Shocked by Kevin''s roar, Anne froze in her tracks. Why did that man get angry for no reason? Was it wrong for her to leave the bed to him? Wasn''t it enough to make him satisfied? "Anne, don''t be silly. Remember, you are a patient now!" Standing up, Kevin stared at Anne sullenly, his ck eyes brimming with anger. ''What is she thinking about? Why does she want me to get the bed?'' Anne looked at Kevin in shock, wondering whether the reason why he got angry all of a sudden was because he was caring about her. At that idea, Anne''s heart started beating uncontrobly. She gazed at Kevin with a serious look in her beautiful eyes. For the first time, she could clearly feel that he cared about her. Kevin frowned awkwardly and eyed her with discontent. ''Why does this woman keep looking at me like this? Has she realized that I care about her by now?'' He strode up to her and wrapped his arms around her. Feeling his warm embrace, Anne felt like she was dreaming. Was that a dream? How could he be so gentle to her? Suddenly, the door of the ward flung open and Cherry came in. As she watched the two people hugging, her face froze and a vicious expression shed through her beautiful shiny eyes. ''What a bitch! Anne has been seducing Kevin all this time. That''s why he cares about her so much,'' Cherry thought. "How are you, Anne? Are you feeling better?" Trying to suppress her anger, Cherry put on a faint smile and walked toward the two. Hearing her voice, Anne frowned uneasily and wiggled out of Kevin''s arms. "What are you doing here? I don''t want to see you!" she said coldly, shooting a pointing look at her. Chapter 109 Ill Stay With Her Chapter 109 I''ll Stay With Her "Anne, I know you almost had a miscarriage and need more nutrition. So I made this soup for you. Drink up while it''s still hot," Cherry said nicely, shing Anne a kind smile as she approached her. "I''m not drinking that," Anne refused without hesitation, a cold look on her face. The smile on Cherry''s face froze instantly as she turned to Kevin, aggrieved. "Anne, I know you hate me right now but you have to take care of yourself. Don''t forget that you''re still pregnant. The baby needs nutrition." Cherry opened the container and scooped out adleful of soup enough to fill a bowl which she handed to Anne. "Would you really go out of your way just to cook for me? You''d be much happier if something happened to the baby, right?" Anne spat, eyeing Cherry coldly. She wasn''t going to believe for one second that Cherry was genuinely concerned about her. "Anne, what are you talking about? How can you see me that way? Why would I want anything to happen to the baby?" Cherry asked, feigning anxiousness. She was only putting up an act since Kevin was there. "Anne, this is too much. Cherry did this nice gesture out of kindness. Why would you talk to her like that?" Kevin fixed his gaze on Anne, visibly disgruntled. As much as he felt sorry for her, seeing her treat Cherry like that infuriated him. Her eyes bored into him, eyebrows knitted together as if she was disappointed in him. He might seem to care about her but the minute Cherry showed up, all his attention went to her. It didn''t matter that his attitude towards her had improved because Cherry was the woman he loved and he would always choose Cherry over her. "Out of kindness? If it really was out of kindness, why would she choose to tell me about Emily today? If it really was out of kindness, why did she purposely slow the car down while we were on the way to the hospital?" Her anger spiked when she recalled what Cherry had done to her that morning. She couldn''t believe how vicious Cherry could be. They should be looking out for each other not sabotaging each other! Why did Cherry have to hurt her? "Anne, I did not slow the car down on purpose. I tried my best to drive as fast as I could. Stop using me of such things in front of Kevin!" Cherry retorted apprehensively. She feared that Kevin would believe Anne. A burning hatred for Anne surged in her chest. It was obvious that Anne only said this because Kevin was here. "use? Hrious!" Anne sneered, disdain filling her eyes. Cherry could make a living out of her acting skills. There was no point in arguing with her because she would always have something to fight back with. "Kevin, you have to trust me. I didn''t do that! She''s framing me!" Cherry immediately defended herself, gripping Kevin''s arm. It seemed that Anne was slowly bing more and more to Kevin¡ªher suspicion that Kevin would believe Anne over her was not unwarranted. "I trust you." To Kevin, Cherry was a kind-hearted woman. He could believe that Cherry would tell Anne about Emily out of jealousy but what he couldn''t ept was Cherry purposely slowing the car down in a vile attempt to hurt the baby. "Kevin, thank you for believing me!" Cherry heaved a sigh of relief as she threw herself into his arms. As Anne looked back and forth between the two, she''d already expected that he would believe Cherry''s words over hers but her heart still dropped when she heard it actuallye out of Kevin''s mouth. "Are you two done? If you are, please leave. I want to rest." It pained her to watch the two embrace so lovingly. She couldn''t handle any form of stress right now. For the sake of the baby, she needed to maintain a peaceful state of mind. "Have some soup first," Kevin said gruffly as he lightly pushed Cherry away. "I already told you I don''t want to!" Who knows what Cherry put in the soup? It was entirely possible that she could have poisoned it. It would certainly favor her if something happened to the baby. For the safety of the baby, Anne was going to stay away from anything that Cherry touched. "Anne, don''t try me!" ''Does this damn woman want to starve herself to death? It''s been a while since she ate something. Even if she isn''t hungry, she should think about the baby. The baby still needs nutrition!'' "It''s my decision whether I want to drink the soup or not. Please get out. I don''t want to see you right now," Anne said coldly as she turned around. These two thoroughly disgusted her. "That''s not for you to decide. I''m going to force this down your throat if I have to!" Kevin walked towards Anne and handed her the bowl of soup. It wasn''t difficult to believe that he really could do something like that. She glowered at him. How could he be so oppressive? Didn''t she have the right do what she wanted anymore? "You''re leaving me no choice," Kevin said, his tone grating as he narrowed his eyes. She seethed knowing full well that he meant what he said. Not wanting to cause any more trouble, she grabbed the bowl from him and quickly drank up the soup. Once she was down, she mmed the bowl back down on the table and scowled at the two. "I finished the soup. You can leave now!" As Cherry scrutinized Anne''s attitude towards Kevin, she couldn''t help but despise her for being so ungrateful. Still, she figured it was better this way. It bode well for her that Anne treated Kevin like that. She approached Kevin and grabbed his arm as she whispered, "Kevin, let''s go. Anne needs to rest. She needs the quiet right now." She didn''t want Kevin staying anywhere near Anne any longer. "You can leave. I''ll stay with her," Kevin said indifferently as he eyed Cherry''s hand on his arm. "Kevin..." Cherry started, frowning. "It''s gettingte. You should go and get some rest." For some reason, Cherry was starting to annoy Kevin that just the mere sight of her irked him. "Okay. I''ll go now then..." Cherry shut her mouth when she noticed that Kevin was getting impatient. She had no choice but to leave no matter how much she didn''t want to. As she made her way to the door, she turned and shot Anne a sharp re. The room fell silent once more. However, the atmosphere this time was much different¡ªit was rather depressing. "Mr. Kevin, it''ste. Aren''t you worried about your sweetheart driving home alone?" Anne asked sarcastically, peering up at him frigidly. "Anne, what are you so jealous of? I stayed, right?" The mockeryced in her tone was not lost on him. He could tell she was jealous and that made him feel much better. "¡­¡­" Jealous? Where the hell did he get that idea? His mind was so strange. "Mr. Kevin, I think you must have misunderstood me. I''m not jealous at all. Even if I am, it''s not because of you," she said snidely, as if what Kevin said was a joke to her. "Anne!" He was at a loss for words as he glowered at her. This was thest thing he expected her to say. ''Damn it! There''s not much she''s good at except for making me angry.'' When he noticed how pale she was, he quelled his anger. She was in poor health so he couldn''t possibly go off on her right now. ''I''m tired. I just want to rest." She was tired of arguing with him. With that, shey on the bed with her back facing him. While her indifference upset him, he restrained himself. Meanwhile, Cherry stood in the hallway, foaming at the mouth. Anne was so rude to him just now, but Kevin was not angry. Instead, he stayed behind so he could apany Anne. Now more than ever, it was apparent how much he had grown to care about Anne. How could she possibly let this go? No, she needed to figure out a way to put a stop to this whole thing. She balled her hands into fists as her mind raced. Suddenly, a familiar figure appeared in front of her. n? What was he doing here? Confused, she carefully neared him. n had just walked into the VIP ward. She then noticed that Ruth''s name beside the ward door. Ruth was also in this hospital? That was great. A vicious sneer tugged at the corners of her mouth. This was the perfect answer to her problem as an idea came to her. Once and for all, she was going to destroy Anne and drive her away from Kevin. She took onest look at the ward, curling her lips before leaving. That morning, Anne awoke and squinted her eyes at the zing morning sun that shone through the window of the ward. She struggled to sit up as her eyes immediately went towards the sofa. When she realized that the Content ? N?velDrama.Org. ward was empty, a bitter smile appeared on her face. Why on earth would Kevin spend the night sleeping on the sofa? What was she thinking? Did she really expect that he would do that for her? Her expression sour. She couldn''t help but feel mildly disappointed. She knew in her heart that he would leave eventually but she still couldn''t help but expect otherwise. Chapter 110 Ruth Is Dead Chapter 110 Ruth Is Dead Anne smiled bitterly. She convinced herself not to think of Kevin anymore. She went out of bed and drank a ss of water. She felt a little sad while looking around at the empty ward. Now, she was really lonely. No one was there to apany her. Even Emily, who was the kindest person to her, had gone abroad to protect her. She felt guilty in causing her friend to sacrifice so much for her. When Anne was bombarded with these thoughts, she thought that her life had been miserable since then, so maybe her existence in this world was no longer necessary. The door of the ward was opened, and the slender figure of Kevin appeared in her sight. He looked at Anne with sadness in his eyes and frowned slightly. "Why don''t you lie down on the bed? What are you going to do?" He strode to Anne and spoke with so much concern in his tone. He looked down at her pitifully. Staring at his handsome face, Anne couldn''t help but wonder why he still hadn''t left. "You didn''t leave?" she asked softly with curiosity in her eyes. "Are you expecting me to leave?" He looked at her with discontentment. ''What the hell was she talking about? Doesn''t she want me to be here? I have stayed with her the whole night and haven''t slept. How could this woman be so heartless?'' "No, no!" Anne didn''t know why she responded so quickly. Did she also hope to be apanied by Kevin in her heart? Kevin was surprised to hear her answer. He smiled sweetly. This woman finally made him satisfied with the way she responded to him. "So you want me to be here? Am I right, Anne?" Kevin asked wanting to confirm what she meant, and to assure that the happiness he felt was for real. Feeling a little awkward, Anne took a step back. She didn''t dare to look into his eyes. She wanted to appear tough and not give in to him, but she couldn''t ignore what her heart truly wanted to say. "I¡­" She spoke with full hesitation of how she would articte the emotions in her heart. If she told him that she wanted him to be here, how would he react? Kevin looked at her patiently waiting for an answer. Suddenly, her belly made a sound. Her stomach growled abruptly in the quiet ward. She felt so embarrassed, so she looked away. "Are you hungry?" Kevin furrowed his eyebrows, and asked Anne with concern. "Yes," Anne answered in a low voice. Her face was turning red in so much difiture that she couldn''t even look into his eyes. Hearing her answer, Kevin pped his hands to call the attention of the servants. They immediately came inside and brought a variety of dishes. Anne was shocked at the moment. She looked at Kevin in disbelief. "These are¡­" "Aren''t you hungry? Hurry up and eat." Her eyes were wide open, and the disbelief in them amused Kevin. Sometimes, this woman made him feel that she was a person who tended to be happy even in the smallest things. "You left this morning to prepare breakfast for me?" Anne''s eyes were dazzling in so much happiness. Her tone was full of satisfaction. "Or what?" Kevin didn''t give a direct answer, but what he meant was very clear. The reason as to why he wasn''t in the ward in the early morning was that he had gone to prepare breakfast for her. Her heart was beating so fast. It was the first time that Anne had felt touched by this man. "Thank you." Tears welled up in her eyes. She looked away unnaturally, because she didn''t want to show what she truly felt for what Kevin had just done. She thought that no one would ever apany her, but she was surprised that Kevin did despite of being the least person to be capable of such thing. "You are hungry. Come and eat. I consulted the doctor yesterday and he said that you needed more nutrition." Kevindled a bowl of soup for her and handed it to her gently. He was acting so unusual. Anne took a sip of her soup. Her heart was fluttering in so much happiness because of Kevin''s unusual attitude. He really cared about her. He even took the time to consult the doctor for her. Anne raised her head and was about to say something to Kevin when the door suddenly opened. Recognizing who just came in, Anne frowned and didn''t continue what she wanted to say. "Kevin, Anne." Cherry walked in gracefully with a smile on her face. "Didn''t I say that I didn''t want to see you? Could you please leave right now?" Anne frowned. She was more irritated by her presence. "Anne, I know you are still mad at me," Cherry said in a gentle tone. Anne looked at her, curious of what she was thinking right now and what she was going to do next. "Well, you two should calm down. Cherry,e and have breakfast with us." Every time Anne nced at Cherry, her eyes were full of hostility, which made Kevin a little dissatisfied. He didn''t understand why this woman didn''t like Cherry. Was it because she was jealous of her rtionship with him? Having this thought made Kevin smile slightly. It seemed that this woman cared about him a lot. She was jealous of Cherry, so she was hostile to her. That must be the case. "What are youughing at?" Anne frowned and red at him. He seemed to be in a good mood. Did he ask Cherry toe here on purpose? Anne was moved by his efforts this morning, but now, she was filled with anger. Noticing the displeasure in her eyes, Kevin was about to ask her when a loud sound was heard outside. "Mr. n, you can''t go in. Mr. Kevin is inside now. If you break in by force, we can''t bear his me." A nurse''s anxious voice was clearly heard from outside. Anne looked at the door curiously. "Get out of my way! I''m going to kill that bitch, Anne!" n shouted at the top of his lungs. Hearing that it was n who was causing the trouble outside, Anne couldn''t help but frown. ''Why did hee here at this time? Does he still want to avenge his sister?'' Anne thought. "Mr. n, don''t make things difficult for us. We are in the hospital. Please calm down." The nurse tried her best to suppress n''s aggression. Kevin was still in the ward. If anyone barged in and irritated him, the nurse would definitely lose her job. "Let him in!" Kevin ordered loudly, while staring at the door with a gloomy face. n''s tall and strong figure appeared in the ward as expected. When he saw Anne sitting at the corner, he was infuriated and acted as if he was crazy. "You bitch, I''m going to kill you!" n pounced on Anne, with a shiny knife in his hand. Content ? N?velDrama.Org. Seeing the knife in his hand, Anne was frightened. She quickly stood up and retreated. ''Is n crazy? He wants to kill me.'' Kevin stepped in front of Anne immediately and stretched his hand out to control n. "Mr. n, do you still want to hurt my woman in front of me? Don''t you take me seriously?" Kevin''s face was intimidating. His deep eyes were burning as hell, and his voice was as cold as death. "Mr. Kevin, I will kill this woman today no matter what! It''s her! She killed my sister!" The bright knife pointed at Anne. n was so eager to pierce the knife into her. He stared at her sharply, as if he wanted to skin her alive. Looking at the agitated man, Cherry sneered. A wry smile appeared on her face. ''Anne, let''s see if you are still so lucky this time!'' Knowing that n still wanted to take revenge for Ruth, Kevin frowned and he felt more irritated. "I said I would give you an exnation after she gave birth to my baby!" n was really annoying. He had made a concession before, but now he was haunting Anne aggressively again. What urged him to do so? "Exnation? My sister has been killed by her. I don''t want the exnation anymore." n stared at Anne with murderous eyes, his hands shaking violently. He was really determined to take Anne''s life right at the moment. "Killed?" Kevin frowned in surprise. "What? Ruth is dead?" Kevin was not the only one who was shocked, but Anne as well. Now, n was not the only one mourning for his sister, Anne also felt bad. "Anne, you are still pretending. You killed my sister, and I''m going to take my revenge!" n held the knife tightly, and tried to get rid of Kevin''s control. However, he was not able to get past him. "n, what are you talking about? When did I hurt your sister? Don''t sling mud at me!" n said that she killed Ruth. Anne was so angry over his usation. She would never bear such a big crime as murder. Moreover, Ruth''s death had nothing to do with her. In fact, she still couldn''t believe that Ruth had died. "Sling mud at you? Now you still deny, huh? Do you think I will let you go no matter what your response may be? I''m telling you, Anne, no matter what it takes, I will kill you with my own hands!" n had been overwhelmed by hatred and angst over the death of her sister. He wanted to do nothing but end the life the woman who killed his sister. It was the only way to make himself feel relieved. "Mr. n, do you have any evidence that Anne killed Ruth?" Kevin said coldly. Killing was a serious crime. Kevin would never turn a blind eye even to his woman, if the usation was real. Chapter 111 Evidence Chapter 111 Evidence "Evidence? You want evidence? We have it all on video. There are surveince cameras everywhere in this hospital! She crept into my sister''s roomst night and took off her oxygen mask. She killed Ruth!" n''s tone was confident, and anger burned hell-hot in his gaze. Anne tried anxiously to defend herself. She had no idea Ruth was in this hospital, and she hadn''t left the ward all night. How could she kill her? "It''s gotta be a mistake. I didn''t know your sister was even here. I don''t even know the ward she''s in. Check the footage again. It''s not me." "I can vouch for her. Anne was in the ward all night. I don''t know who murdered your sister, but it wasn''t her," Kevin said. He stayed overnight in the hospital with Anne. She had been in her ward all the time. There was no way she could have killed Ruth. "Mr. Kevin, what are you talking about? You''re defending her? I''m not wasting any more time arguing about this. You''ll know the truth after you watch the video!" n was afraid of Kevin, and had every reason to be. He knew it wouldn''t be easy to avenge his sister while Anne was under Kevin''s protection. But he had to avenge his sister''s death. "Bring me the surveince video!" Kevin let go of n''s hand and waved at the two bodyguards at the door. n calmed down, but there was murder in his eyes when he red at Anne. His eyes were terrible to behold, but even so, Anne still plucked up her courage to walk up to him. She looked him right in the eye. "Mr. n, I know you think I''m the murderer, but I had nothing to do with your sister''s death. I know you think I pushed her down the stairs, too. That wasn''t me, either. I''m not a killer. You have to believe me." She had defended herself against allegations that she pushed Ruth down the stairs more times than she could count. Although she knew that no one would believe her, she still tried to stick up for herself. "Is that supposed to convince me? You did it. You''ll pay with your life. I''ll kill you if it''s thest thing I do!" n didn''t listen to her exnation at all. He was full of hatred now. He just wanted to kill her. How could he be rational at a time like this? Anne knew her exnation was useless, but she didn''t hurt Ruth. Why did bad things always happen to her? It was so unfair! Cherry noted Anne''s pale face, and the corners of her mouth curled into a slight smile. She wondered if Kevin would like Anne so much once he saw the surveince video. The atmosphere in the hospital was extremely tense. The bodyguards who went to get the surveince video came back. One carried a monitor, the other plugged his smartphone into it. The administrators had given Kevin temporary ess to the video footage stored on their hard drive. ording to the surveince video, it was 11:35 pm. It was eerily silent, no sound needed. After a while, a woman in a hospital gown entered Ruth''s ward. Ten minutester, the woman walked out again. The woman turned to face the camera. It was Anne! But how? She looked a little flustered and her pace was quicker than normal.Text ? 2024 N?velDrama.Org. Looking at herself in the video, Anne was shocked. How could she be there? She had never been to any ward other than the one she spent the night in. What was going on? How could this be? Kevin stroked his chin while he pondered what he''d just seen. Judging from the timestamp on the video, he had just gone to the office to ask the doctor about her condition. Did she really kill Ruth after he left? "This clearly shows you were in the ward at the time of her death. Can you exin that?" n gave Anne a burning re. "No, that''s not me. I have never been to that ward. I didn''t kill her." Anne didn''t know what was going on with the video and why a woman who looked exactly like her appeared on the screen. But she was sure that the woman in the video was not her, absolutely not her. "I didn''t know you had it in you, Anne. How could you kill someone? Don''t you know it''s illegal?" Cherry deliberately said this around Kevin, to make him believe that Anne had really killed someone. "No, I really didn''t. The woman in the video is not me. I didn''t kill Ruth!" Anne tried to stick up onest time for herself, and then she fell into chaos. "Why did you kill Ruth? What good would it do you?" Kevin turned and looked at her coldly, a strange light buried in his deep eyes. "No, I didn''t kill him. Kevin, please believe me. I really didn''t kill her. You stayed with mest night, didn''t you? You should know that I didn''t leave the ward, so it''s impossible for me to have killed anyone!" She thought Kevin might be herst hope. He had been with herst night, and he should be able to defend her. "I wasn''t in the ward when this happened. Why did Ruth die when I wasn''t there? Exin that." He stared at Anne coldly. Kevin didn''t want to believe that she killed Ruth, but now all the evidence pointed to her, so he had to believe it. Anne took a step back uncontrobly and looked at Kevin in shock, with disappointment in her beautiful eyes. "Even you don''t believe me, do you? Do you also think I killed Ruth?" She thought he would believe her, but she still overestimated herself. How could this man unconditionally believe her? "I didn''t think you were that kind of woman. I must have been blind to marry a woman like you." In addition to being angry, Kevin also hated her. Why was this woman so vicious? Why couldn''t this woman learn to be kind! "Ha-ha, all of you think I am the murderer, don''t you? Everyone thinks I killed Ruth." With a bitter smile, Anne stopped defending herself. She gave up, letting them think what they wanted to. "Well, Mr. Kevin, now you know what happened. You won''t stop me from avenging my sister, will you?" Seeing that Kevin believed that his sister was killed by Anne, n became more confident. As long as Kevin didn''t stop him, he could easily kill Anne. Kevin kept silent and looked at n coldly, but he didn''t stop him. As Anne looked at Kevin''s reaction, her heart sank. Was he really going to watch n kill her? She took a step back every time n advanced. She was still pregnant, so she couldn''t die. What about the baby in her belly if she was dead? "n, you can''t kill me. I''m pregnant now. Do you want to kill my baby?" Anne looked at n in a panic, hoping that he still had onest shred of humanity in him. "You killed my sister. So who cares if you''re pregnant? You''re an evil bitch and deserve to die!" n raised the dagger high, and the lights in the hospital glinted evilly on the sharp de. Staring at the knife, Anne was terrified. She covered her belly tightly with her hands, trying to keep the baby from being hurt. Cherry sneered and savored the fear on Anne''s face. She started to fantasize about the grisly scene of n killing Anne! It was too perfect! She looked forward to getting rid of this woman once and for all. Seeing that the dagger in n''s hand was about to fall, Anne closed her eyes obediently. She knew she couldn''t escape this, but if she died, what about the baby in her belly? She thought she might die in the next second, but after what seemed like an eternity, she felt no pain. When she opened her eyes, she saw that Kevin had stopped n at the critical moment. The knife in his hand was only a few centimeters away from her. Kevin''s hand was wrapped tightly around n''s wrist, stopping him from striking the fatal blow. "What the hell are you doing, Mr. Kevin? You already know this woman killed my sister. Why are you trying to stop me?" n said, coldly. The cauldron of n''s eyes burned with scalding fury. Looking at Kevin expectantly, Anne thought, ''Now that he''s saved my life, does that mean he doesn''t want me to die?'' But the next moment, her hopes were dashed against the cruel rocks of reality. "If you want to kill her, fine, but not before the baby is born." He had to protect her. The baby was too important to the Fu Family. As she looked at Kevin''s uncaring expression, a bitter smile appeared on Anne''s face. The only reason he saved her was because of the baby in her belly. If she weren''t pregnant, he wouldn''t even care. "Mr. Kevin, you''re making a mistake. You won''t stop me." Now n was full of hatred. How could he listen to Kevin anymore? His one consuming thought was to kill Anne. "You''re wrong, Mr. n. She''s under my protection. You won''ty a finger on her. If anything happens to her baby, you''ll die by my hand. I''ll take out on your whole family too. There won''t be any Suns left by the time I''m done! Don''t believe me? Try me." Everyone got goose bumps when he said that. He sounded deadly serious, and was willing to go great lengths to protect his child. n knew how powerful Kevin was. If he really got angry, he could destroy more than ten Sun Families. Chapter 112 Dystocia Chapter 112 Dystocia "Mr. Kevin, are you sure you can leave Anne to me after she gives birth safely?" n looked over at Kevin suspiciously. If he continued to protect Anne, then his sister''s revenge would be impossible! "You are eager to get even. I can understand. As soon as this baby is born, I will have nothing to do with this woman." Kevin gritted his teeth. How could she have been so merciless? "Okay! I''ll wait until she gives birth, just for your sake." Casting a pointed stare towards Anne, n turned around and left. A deafening silence settled in the room. Anne had a sullen look on her face, as she gazed towards Kevin. She wondered if she should thank him. "Kevin, don''t you trust me? Do you really believe I killed Ruth?" with hopeful eyes, Anne questioned Kevin as she looked at his expressionless face. "The evidence is irrefutable. Do you still want to deny it? How could you be so heartless?" He looked at her with a cold expression. A sharp pain cut through her abdomen and her face scrunched up in an instant. She let out a painful moan, her forehead breaking into a sweat. "What? You feel guilty now?" Unaware of the pain she was in, Kevin droned on. He was growing angrier, now that she no longer defended herself. "It hurts..." Her breathing grew heavier, as the pain shot up her belly like fire. She stumbled as she sat down on the bed, the intense aching making her dizzy. As soon as he saw her tormented expression, Kevin''s anger dissipated. He was quick to rush to her side, as he asked anxiously, "What''s wrong?" "I think I¡¯m going to have a baby..." Anne could feel the baby moving in her belly, impatient toe out. Maybe she was also sad seeing her mother being wronged. "What are you waiting for? Find the doctor!" Turning back towards Cherry, Kevin roared in her face. His emotions were getting out of his control. "Okay, I''ll go!" Cherry was startled by his outburst. She quickly turned around and ran out to look for a doctor. "Anne, how do you feel? Is it painful?" Kevin moved closer to Anne, rubbing her back. Although he was still angry that she had killed Ruth, his heart crumpled at the sight of her suffering. "You don''t have to pretend to care about me. I''ll give birth to the baby. Don''t worry." As far as Anne knew, all Kevin cared about was the baby in her belly. "Are you mad at me? Don¡¯t speak like that." He was aware that Anne was hurt by his words, but he only said them to ensure her safety. Even if the birth safely happened, he would still try to protect her. He would never let n hurt her even in the slightest. "It hurts..." The stabbing pain in her belly was growing worse. She couldn''t help but cry out softly, her face twisting in torment. Kevin''s heart clenched. Looking at her suffer, he wished he could share her pain. About half an hourter, a scream tore through the delivery room. Kevin paced outside, his forehead creased in worry. The delivery was taking so long, but the baby still hadn''t been born. How much pain did that little woman have to suffer? Cherry, on the other hand, was seated calmly. There was a malicious smile ying on her lips, every time she heard Anne¡¯s painful cry. However, when her eyes fell upon Kevin¡¯s worried face, her dissatisfaction grew. He was still concerned about Anne in his heart. "Have a rest. You have been standing there for a long time," Cherry slowly walked up to him and whispered, not being able to watch him be anxious anymore. "No! I¡¯m fine!" he coldly replied, his eyes not leaving the entrance to the delivery room. His heart was wrenching at Anne''s painful cry. How could he rest? After a long time, Anne¡¯s screams gradually faded away, but there was still no cries of a baby heard. Kevin was growing impatient, and he couldn''t wait anymore. He pounded on the door so hard that his knuckles turned red. "Open the door. I want to go in!" It was torture for him waiting outside. He wanted to know how she was doing. "Kevin, what are you doing? This is the delivery room. You can''t just go in." Cherry hurried to stop him, seeing his absurd behavior. ¡®Why is he so worried about Anne?¡¯ "Get out of my way!" Kevin¡¯s face darkened as he pushed her hands off of him. Startled by his coldness, Cherry panicked. Just as she was thinking of how to stop him, the delivery room creaked open. A doctor emerged, his medical gloves smeared with blood. Kevin''s eyes turned red before he burst out in anger. "Where is she? Is she okay?" He roughly grabbed the doctor''s cor, his heart rate increasing. "Mr. Kevin, please calm down. Mrs. Anne is not in a good condition right now. She is likely to have dystocia and a massive hemorrhage." Text ? 2024 N?velDrama.Org. The doctor quickly spoke, panicking under Kevin¡¯s re. "What do you mean by that?" Kevin''s fists instinctively tightened, as he spoke in a hushed breath. When Cherry heard the doctor, her eyebrows raised. She felt excited at the mere idea of Anne''s grave situation. ''Only God can help her now,'' she mused. "Mr. Kevin, in case she suffers from a hemorrhage, would you wish to save the mother or the child?" the doctor asked Kevin seriously. "Of course we want to keep the baby!" Cherry loudly stated, forgetting to wait for Kevin¡¯s reply. A cold gaze settled on her, as Kevin stared at her, deep in thought. She realized that she said something wrong. He had always thought of her as the kindest person. The fact that she was so quick to disregard Anne''s life might have made him extremely disappointed. "I want to save them both! I don¡¯t care what you have to do. Save both of them!" He could never give up on either of them. They belonged to him. He wouldn''t allow any ident to ur in his presence. "Mr. Kevin, we will try our best." The doctor nodded gravely and headed back into the delivery room. As the door was about to close, Kevin pushed it open and entered. "Mr. Kevin, you can''te in here. You have to wait outside. We will inform you immediately if there is any news," the doctor called out to him, persuading him to return. Kevin, however, strode onwards. "My woman is inside!" He needed to make sure she was okay. He had to go in! "Mr. Kevin! It''s against the rules! No one is allowed to enter without permission!" the doctor shouted. Aware of Kevin''s power, he was very respectful. "Those rules are not for me. Believe me when I say, I can make this hospital disappear with one Without wasting any more time, Kevin pushed the doctor out his way and walked inside. Anne could be seen lying on the bed, her face pale and her forehead shining with sweat. She had been struggling for so long that she had no strength to cry out. "Anne, you have to be strong!" Kevin¡¯s heart ached at the sight, her weak state making him feel sad. Despite his distress, he never showed any emotions on his face. His tone was still domineering and indifferent as usual. Anne weakly turned to look at Kevin, her bottom lip quivering at the sight. "What are you doing here? I don''t want to see you." As she thought back to his cruel and ruthless acts, tears started streaming down her cheeks. "Anne, the most important thing for you now is to give birth to the baby!" ''Damn it! Why is she still angry with me? Doesn''t she know that her safety is the most important now?¡¯ he thought. "I know you only care about the baby. If it weren''t for it, you would have let n kill me." She smiled bitterly, her voice sounding hoarse from all the screaming. ¡®The only reason this man has entered the room is that he is worried about my baby. I don¡¯t mean anything to him!¡¯ Kevin swallowed heavily at her response. She really believed that he wanted nothing to do with her. "You said you didn''t kill Ruth. You have to survive if you want to find evidence and convince me of it. You can¡¯t die with this usation on you!" Kevin had never believed that Ruth¡¯s death was caused by Anne, but he had also seen the irrefutable evidence. As she heard his words, her eyes shed with a glimmer of hope. He was right. She had to live to find evidence to prove her innocence. She must prove that Cherry had framed her. Staring at Kevin, Anne let her intense emotions fuel her strength, as she pushed with all her might. A loud baby¡¯s cry broke through the delivery room as the baby was finally born safely. Chapter 113 Hanging By A Thread Chapter 113 Hanging By A Thread When he heard the baby crying, Kevin breathed a long sigh of relief. "Congrattions, Mr. Kevin! It''s a boy!" The doctor was excited as he came to Kevin with the newborn baby. Kevin''s eyes had been fixed on Anne''s face, and even the doctor''s words did not attract his attention. Right now, his eyes were only focused on the woman on the bed. "My God! She''s hemorrhaging!" one of the doctors eximed in panic. "What? That''s a big one! I need blood in here, stat! And my tools! We need to find out what we''re up against here. It might be a uterine rupture!" When Kevin heard the words "big one" associated with the hemorrhage, his mind went nk for a moment, followed by mind-numbing fear. "We''re out of that blood type. It might take too long to get more. What should we do?" The doctor''s expression was grim when he saw Anne''s condition. Losing more and more blood, Anne became progressively weaker, and her eyes went ssy. Was she really going to die like this? She hadn''t even seen her child once, and worse she was still charged with murder. She was not ready for this. So not ready. Unable to hold on any longer, she slowly closed her eyes. As she did so, she saw Kevin''s worried expression. He did care after all... "What are you waiting for? Save her! If anything happens to her, I''ll kill you all right here and now!" Kevin yelled at the doctors in a panic he had never experienced before. He would never allow anything to happen to this woman! No way! "We''re trying our best, Mr. Kevin. Other hospitals might have the blood stores we need, but I don''t think there''s time," one of the doctors said anxiously. He trembled in the face of Kevin''s murderous fury. "Use my blood, then! We share the same type!" Kevin didn''t know why he was afraid that this woman might really die. "Yes, yes, Mr. Kevin. We''ll get that set up right away." Since Kevin was going to be the main donor for the transfusion, the hospital staff were more careful with him. He didn''t even blink when they fitted him with an IV needle to transfer his precious blood to her body. He sat on the edge of Anne''s bed, and the blood in his body flowed into Anne''s IV and her body. The tubes connecting them were red. Looking at her pale face, for the first time, Kevin felt heartache and fear. As the blood traveled through the tubes, Kevin''s face turned pale. "Mr. Kevin, I don''t think this is a good idea. You''ll be in danger if things go on like this. At least drink some juice." Seeing no change in Anne''s condition, the doctor wanted to give up. After all, Kevin was an important man. If anything happened to him because of a woman in their hospital, there could bewsuits or worse. They couldn''t bear it. "I don''t care. Listen to me: save her at any cost. If she dies, you all die with her!" The doctor wanted to give up, which made Kevin angrier. As long as she was alive, he would not give up. All the doctors present were astonished by Kevin''s imposing manner. They exchanged nces, wondering if they should continue. What if something really happened to Kevin? "Keep me hooked up!" he roared. He wanted to keep these doctors mobilized. Whether awed by his presence or fearing what he might do, the doctors continued the transfusion process. Finally, half an hourter, the bleeding stopped, and her vitals were good. Anne was out of danger. When Kevin stood up, his body began to shake. He looked absolutely drained. "Mr. Kevin, let me get some orderlies for you, and they''ll set up another bed." "No, just take care of her." Looking at the pale woman on the bed, Kevin stood up and left. Anne was sent back to the ward. It took her two days to wake up. She opened her eyes in a daze and looked around the familiar ward. She couldn''t think clearly. "You''re awake," Cherry said indifferently. Anne turned to look at her and frowned deeply. After her life hung by a thread for several days, the first person she saw was Cherry. She didn''t wanted to see her at all. Text ? 2024 N?velDrama.Org. "What are you doing here? Checking to see if I''m dead?" Although her voice was not loud, it was still icy. "You should thank your lucky stars you know Kevin. You''d be dead if it weren''t for him!" Cherry was annoyed by Anne''s attitude. This bitch really didn''t know how to repay kindness. At the thought that Kevin might lose his life to save Anne, Cherry wanted to kill that woman. "Cherry!" It was Kevin himself. He''d seen a side of Cherry recently that he''d never seen before. Why was she being mean to a woman who had barely survived a brush with death? Knowing that she had made a gaffe in front of Kevin, Cherry shut her mouth and walked quickly over to him. "Kevin, I just feel sorry for you, so I¡ª" Kevin cut her off. "Let bygones be bygones!" He walked over to Anne''s bedside. He looked down at the woman whose life he just saved. Her face was still pale, but she looked much better after two day''s rest. "Where''s my baby?" she asked. Where''s the kid? I want to see him," she insisted. It was not until she saw Kevin that she thought of her child. She hadn''t seen the little tyke since he was born. As a first-time mother, she couldn''t help getting excited at the thought of seeing her child. "I took him away. You can''t see him," Kevin said uncaringly. He looked down like a king. "Why? Why won''t you let me see him? He''s my kid too!" Hearing that Kevin wouldn''t allow her to see her newborn, Anne suddenly sat up and red at him. Kevin was patient, and kept his voice even. "Well, we''re pretty much over now. The agreement is clear on that. Once the baby is born, then we won''t have anything to do with each other." Kevin just stared at her. He had no sympathy for her situation. "Kevin, can you let me see my child? Just once? Please?" She felt very sad that she couldn''t see the child she almost died giving birth to. Only despair dwelt in the smoking ruins of her soul. "No way! From now on, that child has nothing to do with you. Since we''re done, he''s not really your kid, is he?" Kevin turned on his heel after he said that coldly, ready to walk out. She held Kevin''s hand with all her strength and looked at him with pleading eyes. "Kevin, please let me see my child. I promise this will be the only time." She was satisfied as long as she could see her child. If she never knew what he looked like, she would feel guilty for the rest of her life. "I''m not going to change my mind. You have nothing to do with the child. Cherry is the kid''s mom now." Shaking Anne''s hand loose, Kevin turned around and strode away. As she watched him leave, Anne''s throat clenched in grief, despair in her beautiful eyes. He was his same ruthless self, the one who could bring her to tears with a word. After Kevin rounded a corner and vanished from sight, Cherry walked over with a smug look on her face. "Just give up. You''re not going to see him. Kevin doesn''t owe you anything. Get out of our lives now, while you still have some dignity." Cherry couldn''t help feelingcent when she thought about Anne having nothing to do with Kevin now. Kevin''s heart was as good as hers. Cherry''s wordspletely irritated her. All thought of how weak she was flew out the window. She unleashed her rage on Cherry. "Why? Why are you doing this to me? What gives you the right to stop me from seeing my son?" She risked her life to give birth to this baby, and no one had the right to prevent her from seeing him. "Why? He''s Kevin. Is that enough?" Her agitation made Cherry feel even happier. She liked to see Anne desperate and helpless. The ward quieted down instantly. Yes, because of Kevin, she had no chance to see her child, but she wasn''t about to give up. Looking at her devastated face, Cherry became more and more arrogant and delighted. She snorted disdainfully and said something to crush Anne again, "Anne, now that you''ve given birth to the baby, you''re nothing. Don''t expect Kevin to treat you like he used to!" Anne almost heard the sound of her heart breaking. Why? Why was he so cruel to her... Seeing her words had the intended effect, Cherry left gracefully. Now that Kevin had broken up with Anne and they had nothing to do with each other, he would be hers. Lying on the bed, Anne seemed to have lost her soul. The pure ck Rolls Royce sped down the road. Kevin sat in the back seat with a dark expression, and a mysterious emotion shed through his ck eyes. "Mr. Kevin, if I may... I think you''ve been too hard on Mrs. Anne. She''s just given birth. She nearly died. It might be too much for her." The assistant drove the car and looked at his employer''s gloomy expression in the rearview mirror. "What do you know? I''m protecting her. n''s probably going after her as we speak. If I break her, if she loses all hope, then she''ll go overseas with Sam. She''ll be safe that way." Kevin did this just to force her to leave here. If she saw the child, she might be reluctant to leave. "It''s not easy for a man to find a woman he truly loves, Mr. Kevin. Why don''t you stay with her and protect her? She''s probably safer with you than out on her own." Chapter 114 Pleading Chapter 114 Pleading A woman he truly loved? Did he love her? How could it be possible? He was just interested in her body. How could he fall in love with a woman like her? He knew that his ideal woman was like Cherry, a beautiful, generous, and kind-hearted woman. "Do you think I would fall in love with such a woman? Am I that tasteless in your eyes?" Kevin answered coldly. He looked at his assistant with disdain. He would never admit that he liked that woman. He kept himself believing that the only woman he loved was Cherry. But it was different when he saw Anne''s devastated eyes today. It was too painful that he almost agreed to her request of seeing the baby. The assistant shook his head helplessly, disappointed when he heard the president''s answer. It was undeniable that he didn''t want to admit his feelings for her. His thoughts were just tooplicated to understand. Kevin had his servants arrange the baby''s room before he arrived at the vi. There were several servants waiting in the room, taking care of the newborn child. "Mr. Kevin!" The servants bowed to him the moment they saw him. "All of you leave now." Kevin motioned them to go out without ncing at any of them. The servants obeyed his order at once. He headed to the side of the crib and checked on his baby. He caressed his little face and noticed that it somehow looked like him, but surprisingly replicated Anne''s features as well. "Do you also think I am too ruthless to her? Will you hate me when you grow up?" It was funny how he asked a two-day-old baby that question. He knew that the baby couldn''t understand what he was thinking, but he feltpelled to speak his mind in front of him. In the hospital, Anne was still lying on the bed in distress. She was in a daze. She couldn''t ept that she couldn''t see her child. The door of the ward suddenly flung open. Sam immediately checked on her and noticed that she was aplete mess. He felt so bad seeing her like that. "Anne, how are you feeling? Are you all right?" "Why is he so cruel to me? Why? Why can''t I even see my own child?" She suddenly burst out in tears when her gaze turned to him. ''Why did Kevin do this to her? Why!'' The thought made Sam furious. "Calm down, Anne. I know you''re depressed right now, and I understand how you feel¡­ But it may be good for you if you can''t see the child. If you see the child, I''m certain you would never let him go." He knew that Anne would be more emotionally attached if she saw the child. How could she be willing to leave him if she saw him? "But that''s my child. Has he ever thought about my feelings when he did this? I''m the mother of the child. Don''t I even have the right to see him?" Her beautiful eyes were filled with torment as she looked at Sam. The tearsing out were full of pain. "Anne, let''s not think about it now, okay? The most important thing for you now is to take good care of yourself." Sam was worried that Anne''s emotional instability would break her. He knew that if he couldn''t persuade her, she might copse. She was still very weak. Her mental breakdown would put her into a dangerous situation. "Sam, please help me to see my child. I beg you!" She knew what Sam was capable, and she only hoped that he could grant her request. His heart couldn''t refuse her pleading face. But every time he remembered what Kevin had said to him before, he had to be cautious of his actions. "Okay, I''ll figure something out. But before that, you must have a good rest, okay?" To convince Anne to rest, Sam could only temporarily calm her emotions. The most important thing right now was her health. "Okay, thank you, thank you!" Her eyes beamed with gratitude. She knew that with his power, the chances of seeing the child were much higher. "Then you should lie down and get some rest. I''ll ask the cook to prepare lunch for you and deliver it It gave him relief that she was no longer obsessing over her child. She obediently rested on her bed after Sam reassured her. However, she still thought about her child. She couldn''t wait to finally see what the baby looked like. This content ? N?v/elDr(a)m/a.Org. A few days had passed, and Anne was able to recover quickly. She was finally feeling good enough to be discharged from the hospital. Since she couldn''t go back to Kevin''s vi, she had to go back to her own house. Sam offered her to stay in his ce for the time being so he could take care of her, but she refused. "Thanks for driving me home, Sam." She smiled and thanked him with a grateful tone. "Anne. I think it''s more convenient for you to live in my house so that I can take care of you. I''m worried about you living here alone." He wanted to say something, but when he stared into her eyes, the calmness stopped him. "No, thanks. I''m used to living here alone. It''s good for me to live here." Sam had gone through so much trouble because of Anne, and her conscience wouldn''t allow her to cause him any more trouble. After all, they were just friends. "Well, since you insist, I won''t force you. But remember, if you need any help at all, call me any time." He had always been a gentleman, and she knew that he wouldn''t force anyone to do anything. "Okay." Anne smiled and bowed to him slightly. Her face suddenly turned serious when she asked him, "Have you thought of any way to help me see my child?" Although she hadn''t mentioned the child for two days, her mind was still full of expectations of seeing her child. The most important thing for her was to see her baby. He suddenly felt mixed emotions when he heard what she said. "Not yet. I''ve been worried about your health these days, so I haven''t figured out a way to let you see your child. But don''t worry. I''ll help you find a way." He forced a smile when he answered. Truthfully, he didn''t want her to see the baby. That way, his efforts would be useless. "I see." The expectation in her eyes was reced by disappointment when she heard his answer. "You should go. I want to go to bed." Her mood went stale when she heard that he still hadn''t nned for the baby. "Okay, I''ll go on ahead. Get some rest," he answered and left. The moment he came downstairs, Sam noticed a familiar luxury car not far away. Even though the windows of the car were tinted, his eyes seemed to distinguish the person inside. In the seat of his car, Kevin looked at Anne''s window on the third floor with an impassive expression on his face. Sam withdrew his gaze and rode his car. He knew who it was. He was baffled by Kevin''s behavior towards Anne. Why did he continue to hurt her? Couldn''t he just let her live in peace? Didn''t Kevin say he would protect his woman at all costs? Why did he ask someone else to protect her? Kevin had been there for almost an hour. His assistant already knew that he had no intention of going upstairs, but he still reminded him with a bit of hesitation in his voice, "Mr. Kevin, aren''t you going upstairs?" He had been Kevin''s assistant for several years, but still, he could never figure out what his boss was thinking. What made him more puzzled was when Kevin told him that he didn''t like Anne, but the moment he heard that she was discharged from the hospital, he came rushing here and stayed for an hour. "Let''s go." Kevin suddenly decided and turned his gaze towards the road. He wouldn''t allow a vicious woman to stay at his ce. He wanted nothing to do with a woman like her. She should just disappear from his life. The assistant shook his head in disbelief because of Kevin''s order. He started the engine and drove away. Anne opened the window to let the air in and saw a familiar car was driving away. A bitter smile crept to her face. She knew that she was so stupid to expect that Kevin woulde back to her. That man was so apathetic towards him. Why would he even appear here? He should be holding Cherry in his arms by now. After all, their rtionship had already ended. There was no reason for him to restrain himself anymore. Kevin finally arrived at the vi. The expression on his face couldn''t be distinguished as he walked through the long corridor. As soon as he entered the living room, Cherry threw herself into his arms. "Kevin, why did youe back sote? It''s a weekend today. Where have you been all morning?" She calmly asked him as she gently took off his coat. "I went out to do something," he answered and sat on the sofa without minding Cherry. Cherry hadn''t noticed his indifference. She proceeded to sit on hisp and wrapped her arms around his neck. "Kevin, why are you preupied these days? Is there anything bothering you?" Kevin seldom talked to her these days, and it made Cherry a little anxious. "Nothing. I just had to take care of some things in thepany." He spoke passively, frowning at her continued insistence. "Kevin, now that you have ended your rtionship with Anne, the matter between the two of us¡­" They had already broken up for so long. Kevin never mentioned that they would get married. Cherry was worried because she felt that his attitude hadn''t changed even when Anne was no longer around. "The matter between us will be talked aboutter." Kevin decided before that after Anne gave birth to the child, he would marry Cherry immediately. But without knowing why, when he already faced the problem, it seemed that he was starting to change his mind about that decision. She was dissatisfied with his answer. What did he mean by that? Did he not want to marry her anymore? Chapter 115 Ruthlessness Chapter 115 Ruthlessness "Kevin, do you still have feelings for Anne? After the two of you broke up, you''ve been so cold towards me. Don''t you love me anymore?" Cherry looked at him with grief and forbearance in her beautiful eyes. She knew that it would be difficult for her to discard Anne''s existence in his lifepletely. Still, that didn''t mean she could tolerate his mean demeanor towards her. The woman''s words fueled his upset feeling more. "Please, I don''t want to repeat what I''ve just said anymore!" Her eyes widened in surprise. She looked at him as pain surged within her heart. It was the first time Text ? 2024 N?velDrama.Org. that he had snapped in front of her. She bit her lower lip and tried to stop the tears that filled her eyes. It was the first time her almond eyes had looked pitiful. "Sorry, I was just scared," she whispered. Then she turned her back and walked upstairs after she had wiped the tears off her face. When he saw the look in her eyes, Kevin slightly frowned. He was regretful at the dismissed tone in his voice, but he couldn''t help it. Not with how impatience ate his heart away. All he thought about was Anne. The thought of getting married to Cherry never crossed his mind. Deep inside him, he knew that the woman he nned to marry was Cherry. However, his heart resisted just by the thought of it. He seemed to have changed for he had never been influenced by the idea of love. Gloom gnawed his heart as he sat on the sofa. His head screamed and was full of Anne. From this moment onwards, the person who was in charge of taking care of her was Sam. ''Would that damned woman take this opportunity to fall in love with him?'' Kevin felt like he''d go insane just by the thought of it. While he was lost in various fancies and conjectures, the butler came in and saw the heavy look in his eyes. "Mr. Kevin, Miss Anne is at the door," the butler informed. Kevin stared at the butler with utter surprise after he heard her name. "What is she doing here?" Her sudden appearance made him want to rush out and see her, but he restrained himself. "Miss Anne said that she came here to see the child," the butler said hesitantly as he looked at Kevin''s gloomy face. "Tell her to go away. I won''t let her see my child." He had already predicted the reason for her sudden appearance. He felt sorry for her, but he wouldn''t let her see the baby. "Yes, I will tell her to go away this instant," the butler answered and left quickly. He went to the gate of the vi and saw that the woman stood and waited patiently. He walked over towards her. "Miss Anne, Mr. Kevin said that he didn''t want to see you at the moment. Please go back," he said indifferently and ordered the guard to close the gate. "Butler, please let me see Kevin. I just need to see my child." His words made Anne anxious. All she wanted was to see her baby. Why did he have to refuse so stubbornly? "Miss. Anne, please don''t make things hard for me. I am just a housekeeper who passes on Mr. Kevin''s words." He felt a little soft after he had seen the pleading eyes of the woman, but his job was more important for him than her dilemma. After that, the security guards came in and closed the gates without further notice. Anne watched as the iron gates isted her from the people inside. She squatted on the ground and cried bitterly. ''I just wanted to catch a glimpse of my child.'' Kevin stood by the huge French window and looked at the crouched figure outside with heartache. The woman was more stubborn than he had thought. He had already made himself clear while they were in the hospital, but she refused to give up. Anne stood by the closed gate for two hours and didn''t move to leave. All the while, Kevin matched with her and stood by the window and watched her. ''Damn it! It hasn''t been that long since she gave birth to the baby. How could she just stand there and not care for her body at all? Is she not aware that it could harm her body?'' "Mr. Kevin, Miss. Anne has been standing by the gate for almost three hours. Would you like toe down and see her?" The butler walked towards Kevin and tried to persuade him. He couldn''t keep his mouth shut anymore after he saw that Anne remained outside. "Drive that woman away and warn her to never enter the vi again," Kevin ordered in a cold, harsh voice as he clenched his fists. The butler sighed helplessly after he heard his order. He wanted to say something but shut his mouth in the end. He walked towards the entrance and when he opened the gate, the woman had turned a little pale. As soon as the gate opened, she quickly turned her body and faced the butler. "Butler, did Mr. Kevin finally agreed to let me see my child?" She looked at the butler and seemed a little excited about his sudden appearance. The moment the butler caught a glimpse of the expectant look on her face, he looked away awkwardly. He didn''t want to see her disappointed. However, his job was being Kevin''s butler so he had to follow his order. "Miss Anne, you should probably go back. Mr. Kevin will never see you nor will he let you see the child. It''s useless for you to wait here." The butler sighed and looked at her sympathetically. "Why are you being so cruel to me? How could Kevin do this to me? Butler, please let me in. I''m begging you." Hatred towards Kevin ran across her heart. The man had been so ruthless towards her. He didn''t just refuse to let her see the child; he also hid from her. He was heartless! Did he never harbor any sort of feeling for her? "Miss Anne, please don''t make this difficult for me. No one dares to disobey Mr. Kevin." He looked at her, embarrassed that he couldn''t do anything to help her. He would be punished if he did. "Go and tell Kevin that I won''t move here until he lets me see the child!" She would never give up. She must see her child no matter what. The butler shook his head at the determined woman in front of him before he closed the gate. The sound of the gate shut close was like the button that made her heart run cold. Her child was in this vi, yet she couldn''t go and see him. Kevin was really ruthless¡­ "Why is she still there? Didn''t I ask you to drive her away?" The man turned around and eyed his butler maliciously after he had realized that the woman didn''t move an inch from the gate. "Mr. Kevin, Miss. Anne was firm. She said that she wouldn''t leave unless she saw her child," he answered cautiously as he tried his best to bear the anger of his master. Kevin knew that her decision would never change so he felt sorry towards her. Still, he held back his pity for Anne and said coldly, "Since it seems like she loves to stand outside, let her. Let''s see where her stubbornness would lead her." When she couldn''t stand any longer, she would leave. What was he so worried about? The butler noticed that his boss''s expression contradicted the words he just uttered. He wanted to say something butter decided not to. Instead, he shook his head at the man''s hardheadedness and left. It was clear that his master was worried about the woman''s well-being yet he decided to hurt her. He really couldn''t grasp the logic that ran through his master''s mind. Kevin thought that Anne wouldn''tst long but he clearly underestimated the woman''s perseverance. She remained standing by the gate until night. She didn''t consume anything, neither rice nor water. She could feel her limbs get weak and her body started to shake. She had just given birth to the baby and wasn''t fully recovered yet. It was obvious that her body was getting tired and she wouldn''t be able to hold on for too long but still, she refused to leave just like that. Inside the vi, Cherry looked at Anne by the French window. She stood by the gate unsteadily and visibly weak. "Kevin, she has been standing there for too long. Since you refused to see her, why didn''t you ask the butler to drive her away?" She reminded him in a low voice, careful to hide her heart that wished her cousin would just disappear and never appear in front of him again. "If she wants to stand there, just leave her alone," Kevin said coldly. His harsh voice made Cherry feel uneasy. She just couldn''t read what was on his mind. She turned around and looked at Anne with disdain. ''How shameless! Even after all this, she still refused to let Kevin go.'' After a while, lightning struck up in the sky and thunder roared angrily. Heavy rain started to pour. Anne felt the drop of cold rain against her skin and was pulled out of her trance. She looked up at the angry sky and asked if the God above opposed her idea of seeing her child too. "Mr. Kevin, it''s raining," the butler walked up towards Kevin and said in a restrained voice. He had meant to remind him that Anne was still out there but since Cherry was with his presence, he swallowed back his words. Kevin stood up abruptly and strode towards the French window. The woman at the gate remained standing still and showed no sign of leaving. ''What the hell is this woman up to? It''s raining! Is she trying to test and see for how long her body could His handsome face darkened as he banged his fist hard against the ss window. Chapter 116 Fainted Chapter 116 Fainted Cherry bore her animosity-filled eyes at Kevin, hatred burning inside her as she balled her hands into fists. "Mr. Kevin, do I need to bring an umbre for Miss Anne?" the butler asked hesitantly as he looked at Kevin. Kevin turned his gaze towards the woman who was standing outside, still refusing to leave. He felt his chest tighten. Why was this damn woman so persistent? "No need," Cherry said snidely before Kevin could say anything. "Kevin is trying to make her quit. If you give her an umbre, it will only draw her back in." Upon hearing the coldness in Cherry''s tone, Kevin leered at her, visibly irked. The Cherry he used to know would have kindly offered the umbre to Anne. What had happened to her? It was like she was apletely different woman. Since when was she so ruthless? As if she read his mind, she began to exin defensively, "Kevin, I know it''s too much but Anne won''t leave until shepletely gives up. Do you want her to wait by the door forever?" She approached him and held his arm. Even though he was annoyed by her, he knew she had a point. If he really wanted Anne to give up already, he couldn''t spare her any hope. "Then keep her waiting outside. If she gets tired, she''ll leave on her own," he said coldly, abruptly drawing the curtains and effectively blocking their view of Anne outside. Seeing this, Cherry smiled proudly. It seemed that Anne didn''t weigh much in his heart after all. They returned to the dining table. He had his meal with a nk look pasted on his face. Without even so much as a nce at Cherry, he went straight to his study on the second floor after he had finished eating. The rain kept pouring, showing no signs of letting up. Along with this, Kevin''s anxiety heightened. It was undoubtedly cold outside yet Anne was still standing under the pelting rain for so long. "Butler, hand me the umbre!" In the end, his pity for Anne prevailed. He put on his coat and stormed out of the room. When he arrived downstairs, he was met with Cherry''s questioning. He walked past her as if he hadn''t heard her. Cherry didn''t have to ask where he was going. Just seeing the look on his face was enough to tell her what he was going to do. With this recognition, she shook with fury. ''She''s so annoying! She really is willing to do anything just to hound Kevin. It''s been a while and she still hasn''t left!'' As the downpour continued, the brutal cold enveloped Anne. Unable to hold on any longer, she fell into a heap on the ground as the cascades of rainshed against her body. As she was on the verge of losing consciousness, a familiar voice sounded in her ears. "Anne, wake up!" Kevin said angrily as he helped her up. ''Damn it! How could she torture herself like this?'' Anne tried to open her eyes as a hazy image of Kevin''s handsome face appeared in front of her. "Please, let me see my child..." she choked out before she finally fainted. "Anne, wake up!" Kevin tried shaking her awake. It pained him to see her so pale and weak. At that moment, he questioned himself. Had he been too harsh on her? He continued to call her name but to no avail. He picked her up in his arms and ran back to the vi, his clothes soaking wet. The butler held an umbre for him and trotted after him. "Kevin, why did you bring Anne back?" Sitting in the living room, Cherry was surprised to see Kevin barge inside, holding Anne in his arms. Disdain instantly filled her heart. Without even looking at her, Kevin made his way upstairs. Her hands squeezed into fists as she restrained herself. Kevin brought Anne to his bedroom. He turned to the butler and in a cold voice, ordered, "What are you doing standing here? Call the doctor!" "Yes, yes, I''m going now!" The butler jumped to his feet and left quickly, startled by Kevin''s sudden Content ? N?velDrama.Org. anger. Kevin ced his palm over Anne''s forehead¡ªshe was burning up. He felt his heart tremble. "You stupid woman, why are you so stubborn?" As much as he was worried about her, there was a part of him that was mad at her as well. Why didn''t she care about her own health? Her clothes had been drenched in the rain. He picked her up and headed to the bathroom. He carefully took her clothes off. He couldn''t help but notice that she had grown noticeably thinner after giving birth. He gently patted her dry, unable to take his eyes off her smooth and fair skin. A strong arousal rushed inside him. Fighting the urge inside him, he hurriedly clothed her. Half an hourter, the doctor finally arrived. "How is she?" Kevin asked, the look on his face unreadable. "Mr. Kevin, the patient fainted because she was rained on. Her temperature''s pretty high. She has a fever and she''s quite weak," the doctor answered matter-of-factly. "When will she wake up?" he asked indifferently but the worry in his eyes was undeniable. "I''m not sure yet. As I said, she''s weak so it may take a while," the doctor said cautiously. "I see. You can leave now," Kevin said, frowning slightly. The coldness hung in the air as the doctor quickly left the room, not wanting to stay a second longer than he needed to. Kevin studied Anne''s face¡ªshe seemed so pure as a flush tinted her face from the fever. She''d only been gone for a few days and he already missed her. If it weren''t for what she did to Ruth, he might not have broken up with her so soon and he might not have been so cold to her. Just as Kevin was lost in thought, Cherry pushed the door open and walked in. She immediately saw that he had been staring at Anne so intently that he didn''t even notice that she hade in. Rage gripped her at the sight of this. As the days passed, Kevin''s attitude towards Anne was shifting and it was getting more and more apparent. Gone was the disgust in his eyes as heartache and concern reced it. "Kevin, you brought Anne here. Aren''t you worried that she''ll continue to pester you? You''re giving her hope," Cherry said icily as she hid the hate in his eyes and walked towards him. "I''ll handle it. Don''t worry," Kevin responded coldly, frowning impatiently. "I''m only saying this for Anne''s sake. Kevin, you should send her back before she wakes up. If she wakes up and finds out she''s here, she''ll cry and ask to see the child," Cherry persuaded as she wrapped her hands around his arm. "Are you doubting my decision?" Kevin spat as he nced at her, displeasure written all over his face. He couldn''t help but notice that Cherry wasn''t as considerate as she was before. If anything, she was even a little merciless. Cherry hastily averted her gaze, stering a fake smile across her face. "Of course not. I''m just worried that when she wakes up, she''ll keep pestering you. You don''t want that to happen, do you?" Cherry quipped cautiously. She leaned against Kevin, looking at him tenderly. "I''ll handle it. You can leave now," Kevin said emotionlessly, withdrawing his gaze from her. He didn''t want to hear another word out of her. As Cherry felt his resistance, resentment stewed inside her. Surely, this sudden shift in his attitude towards her was Anne''s fault. He would never treat her this way if Anne wasn''t here. She was mad that Kevin asked her to leave. "All right. I''m leaving. You should go to bed early too." It took a lot of effort for Cherry to force out this rather curt reply. With that, she exited the room. Sitting on the edge of the bed, Kevin glued his eyes on Anne who still hadn''t woken up. For some reason, he couldn''t bring himself to look away. He ran a hand through her hair, moving it away from her forehead. He had a gentle look on his face as he recalled the day she gave birth. The despair on her face then made his heart ache inexplicably. "If you hadn''t killed Ruth, I wouldn''t have been so heartless towards you. Why did things have to turn out that way?" If she hadn''t done such a horrible thing, he might have kept her by his side for the rest of his life. Shey unconscious. If only she could hear him right now, she wouldn''t be so disappointed. After all, he was basically confessing his feelings for her at that moment. Chapter 117 His Feelings Changed Chapter 117 His Feelings Changed Anne opened her eyes in a dazed expression and felt as if her head was about to explode. Her blurry vision turned slowly clear. There was a man standing in front of her bed. His tall figure attracted her attention. It was like what she saw before she fainted. At that moment, she had thought it was Kevin, but when she saw him clearly, she felt a little disappointed. It was not Kevin, but Sam. "Anne, you finally woke up. Do you know how worried I was about you?" Relieved by her awakening, Sam immediately helped her sit up. His voice was full of concern. "Sam, where am I? And why are you with me?" Anne asked, looking at Sam in confusion. Before she fainted, it was Kevin who held her in his arms. Why was Sam beside her now? "You passed out in the Fu Family''s Vi. I brought you back," Sam answered hurriedly, with his eyes darting back and forth. Kevin told him not to reveal her that he saved her. "I see." Anne trusted Sampletely, so she didn''t doubt the authenticity of his words. But as she took in the fact that it wasn''t Kevin who saved her, she felt inexplicably disappointed. "You just woke up and your temperature is still high. You''d better get some rest now. I''ll tell the cook to prepare something in for you." As he looked at her flushed face, a hint of pity shed through Sam''s eyes. "Sam..." Anne called him in a hurry, seeing that he was about to leave. "Do you need anything else?" He turned around and looked at her. His tone was surprisingly gentle. "About the baby..." After going through so many ups and downs, Anne hadn''t seen her son yet. She was getting more and more anxious. "Anne, as far as I know, Kevin sent the child abroad, so..." He didn''t finish his sentence. He just stared at her face as it grew paler, and felt sorry for her. "Sent abroad? How could this be? The baby is still so young. How could he send him abroad?" The thought that the child was now so far away from her caused an indescribable pain in her heart. He was still so young. How could Kevin be so cruel and send him abroad? How could he live with himself after doing that? Her heart was full of hatred toward him. Why was he so cruel? What he wanted most was a child. How could he be so merciless to him? "Calm down. I believe that Kevin will provide well for the baby." At her pained expression, a worried frown formed on Sam''s forehead. Now he began to regret his decision. Did lying to her do her any good? "Provide well? He did his best to take the child away from me. Is this how he treats him now?" Anne was getting restless. Her son had lost his mother after he was born, and now his father was abandoning him. Although both his parents were alive, he was an orphan. No, she couldn''t leave her child alone abroad. She had to find him. "Sam, tell me, where is my son now? I have to find him. I have to find him!" Anne looked at Sam with uneasiness in her eyes. She was getting more and more worried about her child. She didn''t want him to be alone in another country. Seeing her anxious look, Sam felt a little guilty. She had suffered enough, but now he was causing her even more pain. Although it seemed that what he was doing was for her good, he knew how miserable she was. "I only know that he was sent to America. I couldn''t find out anything else." Sam didn''t dare to look into her eyes. He was afraid that he couldn''t continue his lie. "I''m going to America. I''ll book the earliest flight." Most of Kevin''s power was in America. It was very likely that he would send his child there, so Anne didn''t doubt Sam''s words at all. She wished she had wings to fly to America right away. "Calm down. You still have high fever," he said in a decisive tone, forcing her to stay put. "How can you take the ne in your current situation?" He couldn''t bear to see her like that. She was so weak that she couldn''t endure any more torture. The most important thing for him now was to take good care of her body. "But my child is in America. I must find him." Tears welled up in her eyes. The thought of her child being alone in a foreign country made her heart ache. "Don''t worry. He is Kevin''s child. Kevin will definitely take care of him. Besides, you are so weak now. If you don''t get a good rest, I''m afraid that you will fall ill. If this happens, you won''t be able to see your son, will you?" Sam tried to persuade her patiently. Although she was still worried about her son, Anne knew that if her body copsed, it would be more difficult for her to find her son. "Good girl. You should take good care of yourself now. When you recover, I will go to America with you. I will help you find your son," he said in a gentle tone, while caressing her head delicately. "Sam, thank you for helping me so much these days. I owe you. I will definitely repay you someday." She felt like a stray dog, but Sam still helped her without reservation. She was silently moved by his recent efforts. At her words of gratitude, Sam was stunned, and the smile on his face became a little unnatural. If she had known that he had been lying to her, would she still be so grateful to him? Or would she rather be angry with him? Content rights belong to N?velDrama.Org. "Get some rest. I''ll get you something to eat." Unable to uphold Anne''s grateful gaze, Sam walked out hastily. Anne had always trusted him, but he had lied to her. If she found out the truth, he wouldn''t know how to face her. After Sam left, Anne calmed down gradually, but she became more determined to find her child. In the bedroom, Kevin was sitting on a chair with his eyes pointed at the empty bed, reliving the moment when Anne was lying on it. He didn''t know whether she had woken up or not. Sam must have told her by now that the child had been sent abroad. As soon as she left, they would no longer cross paths with each other. Although it was cruel, his purpose was to protect her. If she went to America, he could send his secret force to protect her, and n would have no way to hurt her. A knock on the door interrupted Kevin''s thoughts. A slight unhappy frown started to weigh down on his features. Not getting any response, Cherry opened the door and walked in. She was wearing a light pink nightdress that was revealing her perfect figure. Her delicate corbone was partly visible thanks to the see-through fabric of her dress. "Kevin, it''s sote. Why don''t you go to bed?" Cherry walked gracefully to Kevin''s side. Her almond eyes were crisp like a spring night, and a faint smell of alcohol was emanating from her skin. "It''s sote. What are you doing here?" Having a look at her revealing clothes, Kevin guessed the purpose of herte visit, which made him a little irritable. He had no interest in Cherry''s body at all. All he wanted to know was whether Anne was doing well. "Kevin, I know you are in a bad mood now, so I came here to keep youpany." While speaking, Cherry leaned against Kevin''s arm. Her eyes were full of affection, and her words a little ambiguous. Kevin deepened his frown, and his eyes turned colder. "No, thanks. Go back and have a good night!" He averted his gaze to hide the impatience in his eyes. "Kevin, I know you may feel sorry for Anne, but you did it for her good, so..." Feeling unhappy deep in her heart, Cherry kept smiling on the outside. "From now on, don''t mention the name ''Anne'' in front of me. This woman will soon disappear from my life forever." Anne''s name was like a fire brand in his heart. He was thinking about her all the time. A little annoyed, he wondered since when he began to be controlled by a woman. "Kevin, can you really forget Anne? I think you are still thinking about her." It was obvious that Kevin was thinking about that bitch, Anne. Cherry was aware that she had to be his woman as soon as possible, so that she could rest easy. "Cherry, you weren''t so inquisitive before. When did you be so stubborn?" Kevin''s voice grew gelid, and the displeasure in his ck eyes became more and more obvious. He felt that she had changed a lot recently. She was not as considerate as before. Flustered by Kevin''s reproach, Cherry shed a panicked smile. "Kevin, I care about our rtionship. You have nothing to do with Anne anymore, so I obviously don''t want you to still think about her. After all, it''s us who will be together for the rest of our lives. I just hope that I''m the only one in your heart." She just couldn''t wrap her head around the fact that Kevin still loved Anne even if she left. Everything changed, even Kevin''s feelings for her. "From now on, you will be the only woman in my life, Cherry. Are you satisfied with this promise?" His voice was calm, but his dark eyes were brimming with disgust. Chapter 118 Starting With Selma Chapter 118 Starting With Selma Cherry felt his edginess, and her eyes glistened with tears. "Kevin, you said we would have the wedding after the baby was born. When is it really going to happen?" Until she was thedy of the Fu Family, she wouldn''t be ill at ease. "Let''s talk about it next time. I still have so many things to deal with. A lot of things are going on at work and I don''t really have the energy right now." He couldn''t help but feel less than enthused at the thought of marrying Cherry. In the past, he couldn''t wait to marry her as long as Anne gave birth to the baby but now he felt as if he wanted to escape. She clenched her fists as she gazed at Kevin, fuming. She knew very well what hisckluster response meant. If he really wanted to marry her, he wouldn''t havee up with so many excuses. "Kevin..." she whimpered, purposely appealing to his pity. He hated seeing her like this and she was going to use that to her advantage. All she needed to do was act upset as whenever she did this, Kevin promised her anything she wanted. To her, this n was fool-proof. She tried convincing herself that he was only acting this way because he felt guilty about Anne. However, it seemed that she had overestimated her position in Kevin''s heart. He only grew more irritable instead of coaxing her. Normally, he would coo her and ask her what he could do to make her happy. "Why don''t you leave and go to bed early?" Kevin said indifferently as he walked into the bathroom without even looking at her. There was no doubt in Cherry''s mind that Kevin was bing more apathetic towards her. Things couldn''t go on like this. If he continued to dy the marriage, they might end up not being able to get married at all. Did that mean that all her hard work would be put to waste? The door of the bathroom closed as the sound of water running came. Reluctantly, she left the room. She knew him very well which meant that she knew better than to provoke him. If she pushed him further, he would certainly cancel the marriage altogether. After giving it more thought, she decided she was going to start with Selma. Selma liked her very much and was, in fact, very excited about her joining the Fu Family. At the airport. Anne stood at the gate of the airport, looking out in the distance rather hesitantly. She couldn''t believe she was finally leaving this ce. Perhaps this would be thest time that she was going to be here if she could find her child. This ce had left her heart broken and riddled with bad memories. Even then, she was, to some extent, reluctant to leave. Could it be a person that she did not want to leave behind? As Kevin''s handsome face appeared in her mind, a bitter smile tugged at the corners of her mouth. Even though he was cruel to her, he was, on asion, sweet and gentle towards her. For some reason, she couldn''t make herself forget him. She cursed herself inwardly for her foolishness. "Anne. It''s gettingte. We''re boarding now," Sam reminded her in a low voice as he walked up to her. Up until then, he was silent. "Okay, let''s go." When Anne came to her senses, she trudged forward with her suitcase. At that moment, nothing was more important to her than looking for her child. The child was all she cared about. She didn''t care what it would cost her or how long it would take as long as she could find him. Not long after, the ne took off. Just like that, this city would be nothing more than a distant memory. She smiled faintly, bittersweet memories surging in her mind. Leaving this city would be a new beginning for her. "Do you regret it, Anne?" Sam asked hesitantly as he eyed Anne''s seeminglyposed demeanor. Knowing full well that her child wasn''t really in America, he felt guilty. If Anne found out he was lying to her, would she hate him? "I don''t," Anne said firmly. Now more than ever, she knew what her priorities were. The solemnity of her tone told Sam just how important this child really was to her. "Would you hate me if you found out one day that I lied to you?" Sam asked nervously as he bore his gaze into her. He had a serious look on his face. She returned his gaze, looking flummoxed. For some reason, he was acting strange that day. He had never asked her such a thing before. Besides, she trusted him, so she believed that he would never lie to her. "No, I won''t. You''ve helped me a lot. Even if you lied to me, I would still thank you." She had seen how well Sam had taken care of her these days. She didn''t have it in her heart to hate such a good friend like Sam. He felt guilty upon hearing her answer without hesitation. She trusted him but that didn''t stop him from lying to her. "Sam, do you have something to tell me? Why are you acting so weird today? What''s going on?" she asked worriedly. What was going on with Sam today? Why was he asking such strange questions? "No, no. I''m just worried about you," Sam hurriedly answered, flustered under her questioning gaze. "Don''t worry about me. I''m fine." With that, Anne gave him a reassuring smile. Sam withdrew his gaze, unable to look at her in the eye anymore. He couldn''t stand how she was so vocal about trusting him when he had been lying to her. In the Fu Family''s Vi, Selma sat on the sofa in the living room as she looked at Cherry, smiling. Cherry seemed lovelier than Anne ever did who only annoyed her. "Auntie, why didn''t you tell me that you wereing? I could''ve picked you up." Cherry handed Selma a cup of coffee, smiling lightheartedly. "I asked the driver to drive me. It''s not a big deal. Why would you need to pick me up?" Selma seemed satisfied at Cherry''s good manners. "Auntie, what are you talking about? You''re an elder. It''s my duty to pick you up." She looked considerate and obedient. "Cherry, I''m here today to ask you when you and Kevin are getting married. It''s been a while since Anne left. Have you two talked about your ns yet?" Selma was getting a little restless as it had been a considerable amount of time since Kevinst told her that he was getting married. Theck of updates on that regard came off as rming to her. Upon hearing this, Cherry lowered her head in dismay. "Auntie, it''s not up to me. You should ask Kevin." She fidgeted with her fingers, acting as if she was wronged. "Cherry, what''s going on? Are you and Kevin fighting?" Selma was wise enough to notice the grievance on Cherry''s face. She could tell that something was going on between the two. She couldn''t help but feel anxious. "No. It''s nothing. Kevin and I are good. Don''t worry," Cherry halfheartedly denied. She did this on purpose to indirectly tell Selma that there was indeed something going on between her and Kevin. "Cherry, if Kevin isn''t treat you right, just tell me and I''ll set him straight." "Auntie, it''s really not a big deal. It''s not about Kevin. It''s me. I''m just not worthy..." Cherry lowered her head, looking remorseful as her eyes swam with tears. This content ? N?v/elDr(a)m/a.Org. "What happened? Tell me or I''ll ask Kevin myself!" Selma urged as she pulled a long face at Cherry''s hesitance to tell her the whole story. "Auntie, don''t talk to Kevin. Don''t bother him..." Cherry didn''t want Kevin to know that it was her who told Selma about this. "If you don''t want me to talk to Kevin, you need to tell me what exactly happened," Selma pressed. "Recently, every time I mention the wedding to Kevin, he shrugs it off. I think he still hasn''t moved on from Anne." At the mention of Anne, Cherry had to control the hatred that burned inside her. After all, she had to keep up her act of being kind and considerate to Selma. If it weren''t for Anne, she and Kevin would have been married by now. "That stupid Kevin! What''s so good about Anne? Does she evenpare to you? Why would he fall in love with someone like her?" Selma grew furious. She did not like Anne at all. Cherry smiled triumphantly as she had sessfully incited the reaction she was hoping for from Selma. "Auntie, it''s my fault. I failed to win his heart. If he really doesn''t want to marry me, I won''t force him. I just want to be with him." Cherry continued to act aggrieved, hoping to rouse some sympathy from Selma. "Silly girl, what are you talking about? You''re my future daughter-inw. You and Kevin should get married. Don''t worry. I''ll get to the bottom of this and make sure that you two get married." It took a long time before she finally found a daughter-inw that she was satisfied with. How could she not do something about this? What if Kevin found another woman that was like Anne? She couldn''t risk it. "Auntie, I don''t want to force Kevin. I don''t want him to be unhappy." Cherry was thrilled to see that Selma was on her side. With Selma pressuring Kevin, he surely wouldn''t be able to postpone the wedding any longer. "Why would he be unhappy? He deserves to have a kind and generous wife like you." Chapter 119 Pressuring Him Chapter 119 Pressuring Him "Auntie, I''m afraid that if you do this, Kevin will be unhappy. I don''t want him to be angry at me," Cherry said in a low voice, pretending to be embarrassed. "Don''t worry, I will just tell him that I am taking care of it. I will make sure Kevin will not have a problem with you. Just wait and be the good future daughter-inw that you have to be," Selma said while smiling and holding Cherry''s hand. "Ah, thanks a lot, Auntie! If I do hit the jackpot and end up marrying Kevin, I will be filial to you then." Cherry get more confidence and security in her heart whenever she remembered Selma''s promise to her. Kevin would definitely stop being perfunctory if Selma continuously pressured him. Text ? 2024 N?velDrama.Org. "Good, good. That''s what I want to hear." Selma was more and more impressed with Cherry, her chosen daughter-inw to be. Cherry was obviously better than Anne. As soon as the two of them finished speaking, Kevin''s slender figure appeared in front of them. His dark eyes glinted with traces of suspicion as he looked at Selma. "What are you doing here?" He took off his coat and sat down in front of Selma. His tone was casual, but there was nock of respect. "Am I not allowed to visit my son? You''re so busy with the business that I hardly see you nowadays," Selmained. "Of course you can visit me. I was actually nning to visit you in a couple of days." Kevin giggled at the sight of his mother''s dissatisfied expression. "That''s what you say every time I miss you ande to see you. It''s like you don''t mean it. What an ungrateful son you are!" Selma was still dissatisfied. Her son was a workaholic. To him, nothing was more important than the Kevin shook his head in disbelief as he stared at his mother''s childish expression. Since when did she be so grumpy? "Kevin, please stay here and talk to auntie for a bit while I make you some coffee." Cherry understood the look in Selma''s eyes, so she made up an excuse to exit the room. As she stood behind the kitchen door, Cherry looked at Kevin apprehensively. It was as if she wanted to see through his real thoughts. "Mom, what is it? Is there something you want to tell me?" He saw the look in his mother''s eyes and figured that she wanted to talk about something. "Kevin, to tell you the truth, I came here today to confirm the date of your wedding with Cherry," Selma stared into her son''s handsome face anxiously. "I''m in no mood to talk about the wedding right now. Let''s talk about itter." He felt irritated when his mother pressed the subject of the wedding again. He hadn''t thought about the wedding these past few days. He actually thought that he didn''t want to go on with the wedding anymore. Selma was displeased at his sudden coldness. She remembered that Cherry had told her that Kevin was still thinking about Anne, and it made her a little angry. "Kevin, you''ve already broken up with that vile woman, and Cherry has been with you for a long time now. Don''t you think it''s time for you to give her the status she deserves? Selma said, a little dissatisfied with his son''s indifferent attitude. "I will take care of the wedding myself, mother. You don''t need to worry about it. Just rx," Kevin said and frowned just at the thought of getting married. You are my child, my son. How can I not be anxious about your marriage?" Kevin''s cold attitude was beyond what Selma expected it to be. At first, she thought Cherry was just exaggerating, but then it dawned on her that maybe Kevin could be acting like that because of that woman named Anne. Kevin picked up the magazine he saw lying on the table and started reading it casually, pretending not to hear what Selma said. "Kevin, are you even listening to me? I am serious!" Selma shouted and snatched the magazine from her son''s hand and threw it on the table. There was a trace of anger in her tone. "Didn''t I just tell you that you don''t need to worry about me?" Kevin said monotonously while looking so annoyed. "Tell me the truth! Are you still thinking about Anne? Do you regret breaking up with her?" Selma yelled. Thinking that her son''s breakup with Anne might have had a huge effect on him made Selma more pissed off. She was just a vicious woman. What did she even do that made Kevin so drawn to her? Anne had been away from Kevin from such a long time, but that didn''t keep Kevin from forgetting about her. That woman must have really been something. Selma saw that Kevin''s eyes narrowed when he heard Anne''s name and that made her unhappy. "From now on, you will stop mentioning that woman''s name especially when you are talking to me. I want nothing to do with her anymore!" Kevin snorted. He didn''t know why he couldn''t help but think about her every time he heard her name. He suddenly wanted to know how she was doing. The feeling had been torturing him, making him petnt. "Now that you have no connection with her anymore, you should just consider holding your wedding with Cherry as soon as possible. Your baby with her is still young and he needs a mother," Selma said while examining her son''s face, waiting for his reaction. She wondered if he really meant what he said. "No one will make my decisions for me! If you have nothing better to do here, then you can go back home and might as well rest. I still have some things to deal with in thepany so I will leave you now," Kevin said without any emotions because he was starting to feel disconnected to everything. He didn''t want to talk with Selma about marriage any longer so he stood up and strode away after he said that. "Kevin!!!" cried Selma. She was enraged that Kevin just left without hesitation. Her son had never talked back at her like this before. It really must have been because of that girl, Anne! Cherry had been eavesdropping their conversation. Hearing Kevin''s determined tone, she clenched her hand tightly while holding the cup of coffee she made. Her eyes were filled with coldness and fury. It took a long time for her to contain her emotions. After that, she came to Selma with the cup of coffee, feeling really let down by the things she just heard. "Cherry¡­" Selma said in a soft and sad tone when she saw Cherrying over. "Auntie, I heard all the things that Kevin just said. I now have confirmed that he doesn''t intend to marry me. I will not force him and make things difficult for you," Cherry said, pretending to sound reasonable, but the grievance that could be heard in her tone could not be denied. Selma felt so disappointed in herself when she saw the misery on Cherry''s face because she had just promised her that she would do whatever it took so that Cherry and Kevin would get married. But it seemed that her ns weren''t even gonna work. "Don''t say that, Cherry. I promised you I will not allow you two not to get married, right? It''s all my fault! Don''t worry, I am gonna figure something out. It''s not toote." The more Cherry showed that she was fine with just leaving Kevin alone if that would make him happier, Selma wanted her more for her son since she thought that Cherry was a really nice and considerate person. She wanted someone like her to be her son''s wife. "But, auntie. Kevin has just made it clear that he doesn''t want to marry me. I also don''t wanna bother you anymore," Cherry said. A few momentster, tears from her beautiful eyes came streaming down her face. Selma couldn''t help but feel sorry for her when she saw her crying. "Kevin is my son, Cherry. He will listen to whatever I say. I want you to be my daughter-inw and he must marry you. He has to!" Selma said in a firm but reassuring tone. She became more determined to make Kevin and Cherry''s marriage happen. Cherry was doing such a good job at acting like she was feeling mncholic about all that Kevin just said and her eyes shed with a hint of sess when she heard Selma''s words. However, she still had uncertainty in her heart because she knew that no one could force Kevin to do something against his will. Meanwhile, Kevin drove his car while his mind was full, thinking about Anne. "Damn it!" Kevin roared and mmed the steering wheel. What was wrong with him? His mind was always full of thoughts about that woman. Damn it! He had no idea if Anne had arrived safely in America or if Sam had been taking good care of her. Deep in his heart, he hoped that Sam could, but just the thought of Sam and Anne together made him insecure. He was scared Anne had already fallen in love with Sam since they were always together. The more he thought about it, the more it made him feel terrible. He drove the car almost at full speed. The wind blew in his ears and his dashing eyebrows deeply furrowed. In America, gazing at the new and strange environment made Anne feel like everything was surreal. She was in America, but she wondered where her child was. "Sam, America is so wide. How are we supposed to find my child? Where will we even start looking?!" Staring in awe at the vast sea of people, Anne got really confused. It would be extremely difficult to find her child in such a huge country. "Don''t worry. I believe you will find your child." Sam walked behind her and gave her a pat on the shoulder to try and give her somefort. "Yes, I will do everything just to find my baby." It didn''t matter to her how hard it was. She would never give up looking for her child. "We shall find a ce to live in first. I''ll buy us a house. A couple of days will not be enough for us to look for your baby so we will be needing a ce to stay in," Sam said. When he saw that Anne was beginning to look a little calmer, he breathed a sigh of relief. He was really worried she would do something radical again like she did before. "Ah! You''re right, but I don''t have much money with me right now," Anne answered awkwardly, lowering her head. "I will handle it. You don''t have to worry about it," Sam replied. He chuckled a little, seeing that Anne''s face turned a little red. Did Anne really think that a gentleman like him would let her pay for the house? "Thank you, Sam. It really means a lot to me." At that moment, apart from thanking him, Anne didn''t really know how she would be able to express her gratitude to him. Chapter 120 I Am Not Joking Chapter 120 I Am Not Joking "You don''t have to be so formal with me. We are friends." Anne''s appreciation had always made Sam feel distant, which disappointed him. Feeling embarrassed, Anne lowered her head. She did not dare to look into his gentle eyes. She could feel his love for her, but she felt awful for being unable to give him what he wanted in return. She could only treat him as a friend. "Let''s go to the hotel first." Sam strode forward and lightly dragged the suitcase for Anne. He knew that she only viewed him as a friend, but he wanted to protect her. "By the way, Emily seems to be in America, right?" Anne suddenly mentioned Emily''s name as she followed behind Sam. Sam stiffened his back after hearing it. He felt strange, but it suddenly disappeared. "Yes. We are in America, maybe we could see her again." It had been several months since Emily came to America, but she hadn''t even called him. He wondered if she was still mad at him for standing her up. "Sam, have you ever thought about how would you face Emily when you meet her again?" Anne knew that Emily was deeply in love with him. She had a feeling that Sam had saved a ce for Emily in his heart. Maybe he had not figured it out at the moment. "Emily and I grew up together. We are very good friends." Sam was worried that Anne might misinterpret him, so he quickly exined his rtionship with her. "Are you surely just friends? Sam, can''t you feel her love for you?" Anne shook her head helplessly. She felt sorry for Emily. The man she loved had not recognized his feelings for her yet. "Anne, you think too much. Emily and I are just friends." Although Sam tried to defend it, his heart was stirred up by what she had said. "I just hope that you seize your happiness and not waste your time on the wrong person." When she said ''the wrong person'' she was referring to herself. She had seen Sam''s kindness to her, and she wanted to repay him. She would give anything except love. Her heart already died, and she would never fall in love with someone again. If she went along with Sam, it would be unfair to him. "Only I know whether it''s worth it or not. Well, let''s just stop talking about it." Sam knew that Anne was rejecting him euphemistically, but he was determined. He would stick to his decision. He believed that Anne would fall in love with him after some time. She shook her head once more. Knowing that Sam would not listen to her, she decided to talk about it They found themselves a decent house and Sam bought it with arge sum of money. Although the house was not that big, the environment was really great. "Let''s stay here for the meantime. Don''t worry about the baby. I will send someone to investigate it," Sam said in fear that Anne would look for her child alone in an unfamiliar ce. "Okay." Even though Anne had not gotten any news about her child, she did not lose hope. She believed that she would find her child someday. Meanwhile, in an office of the Fu Group, Kevin looked particrly bothered. There was still no news regarding Anne after several days, and he had been dreaming of hertely. The assistant standing beside was concerned, so he walked up to him and asked, "Mr. Kevin, are you feeling unwell?" "No!" Kevin frowned in annoyance. The assistant did not dare to say anything more when he saw the unfriendly look on Kevin''s face. "Come here. I have a question for you." Kevin waved his hand and ordered his assistant toe closer. "What can I do for you, Mr. Kevin?" The assistant looked at Kevin nervously, wondering if he had done something wrong. He feared that Kevin was going to fire him. "I kept thinking about a woman every day. I want to know how she is and what she is doing right now. I even dream of her at night. Tell me, what is going on with me?" Kevin was irritated just by speaking what he felt. He was also mad at himself being like this. The assistant was so shocked that his chin almost fell to the ground. He nced at him with bewilderment. Did he hear it right? Did these words reallye from his boss? "Why are you still standing there? Why don''t you answer my question?" Kevin grew tired of waiting for his answer, so he scowled at him. "Mr. Kevin, you must have fallen in love with the woman you are referring to," the assistant answered respectfully as soon as he came to his senses. His boss had always been immune to women. He thought that they were expendable. What changed his mind? Who was the woman his boss fell in love with? "Are you saying I am in love with that woman?" squinting his long and narrow eyes, Kevin said in a cold and confused tone. The thought of him falling in love with a woman was ridiculous. "Kevin, I can assure you!" the assistant firmly said. It exined why his boss had been moody recently. He was not in the mood to work because he kept musing over a woman. He finally liked someone, and it was a miracle. Seeing the assertive look of his assistant, Kevin knitted his brows in puzzlement. Was he truly in love with that woman? "Mr. Kevin, may I ask to whom did you fell in love with? Was it Miss Cherry?" the assistant asked out of curiosity. It was the first time his boss had a crush on a woman. "Fuck off!" Kevin turned around and spat. A mere assistant had no right to gossip about his affairs. "Yes, Mr. Kevin. I''m leaving now." Bing aware of Kevin''s anger, the assistant quickly walked out of the office. He knew his boss''s temper very well. If his boss got irritated, he would lose his job. Kevin was left alone in his huge office. He kept on thinking about what his assistant had said to him. He could not help wondering if he was in love with Anne. Later in the evening, when he returned to the vi, he saw Cherry was waiting for him at the dining table. It was odd to see Anne''s seat vacant. For some reason, he felt disappointed. "Kevin, you''re finally back. Did you work overtime at thepany today?" Cherry asked with a tender smile on her face. "Well, there are a lot of things to deal with at thepanytely." In truth, the reason why Kevin went homete every day was that he did not want to face Cherry. It made him upset whenever she brought up the subject of their marriage, intentionally or unintentionally. "Let''s eat first. The food is getting cold." Unaware of Kevin''s indifference, Cherry took his coat and handed it to the servant. Then, she held his arm and walked to the table. "I prepared all these dishes for you tonight. Have a taste. You look skinnier these days." Cherry thoughtfully picked up the food for him while retaining the smile on her face. "Thank you," Kevin said coldly, without looking at her. "Kevin, we haven''t spent much time together recently. I want you to sleep with me tonight, okay?" Cherry waited for the proper time and said with a trace of grievance in her beautiful eyes. Anne had left a long time ago, but Kevin hadn''t touched her. She was full of resentment and discontent. "I have work to deal with tonight. Perhaps I will sleep in the study. You can go to bed after dinner." Kevin continued eating his dinner in silence. Clenching the hemline of her dress, Cherry suppressed the frustration and bitterness in her heart. She tried her best to keep a smile on her face. "You should prioritize your health over your work," Cherry calmly said after being rejected by Kevin. "Let''s eat first." Kevin frowned in exasperation. Knowing he was angry, Cherry didn''t dare to provoke him, though she was also enraged as she failed to achieve her goal. Text ? 2024 N?velDrama.Org. He treated her cold enough, and she did not want him to make him more disgusted with her. She felt a little anxious as she lowered her head and had dinner quietly. If things went on like this, she would lose him sooner orter. "Kevin, do you miss Anne?" she asked with caution. She carefully observed the expression on Kevin''s face, fearing that he would be furious about the question. She just wanted to annoy him with Anne''s name, but the result seemed to be the opposite. "What if I say yes?" Kevin put down his chopstick and fixed his deep and charming eyes unto Cherry. His tone was different but exceptionally serious. There was no trace of humor. The look on Cherry''s face froze, and then she forced an unnatural smile. "I was just kidding. Why did you take it seriously? I know I''m the only one in your heart. Kevin, I promise I won''t make such kind of joke again." Noticing the seriousness in his eyes, Cherry panicked. "I''m not joking with you. You know me well. I never joke." His words were like knives, stabbing Cherry''s heart word per word, making her tremble in horror. Chapter 121 Commit Suicide Chapter 121 Commit Suicide Cherry looked at Kevin, panicked as fear riddled her eyes. "Kevin, I promise I won''t say that again. Don''t get mad," she stuttered, visibly flustered. She didn''t want Kevin to continue what he was going to say. She couldn''t bear to hear him admit that he loved Anne. Once he said it out loud, there was no going back. She was scared that he would say that he loved Anne and that he wanted her back. "Cherry, I think I need to tell you something." Kevin looked at her dispassionately; not a trace of pity could be seen on his face. In the past, he''d felt guilty when she looked at him like this. However, now that he knew that Anne was the woman he truly loved, the guilt had long disappeared. "Kevin, let''s eat first. The food''s getting cold." As if she had guessed what he was going to say, she intercepted the conversation. Inwardly, she was utterly frightened. "Cherry!" Kevin bellowed, frowning. He could tell she was deliberately changing the topic. What his assistant had said earlier that day was what made him realize that he loved Anne. No matter what it took, he was going to find Anne and never let her go. He would do everything in his power to win her back. "Kevin, please stop. Did you even consider that what you''re going to say could hurt me?" Cherry pleaded, her eyes glistening with tears. She was willing to wait as long as he forwent what he was about to say. She would patiently wait until he was ready to marry her. "Kevin, I know you just don''t want to get married so soon. It doesn''t matter. I can wait until you''re ready. I don''t even care if we don''t end up getting married at all as long as you love me with all your heart." "I want to get Anne back," Kevin said indifferently, averting his gaze. No one could change his mind. He knew he hurt Cherry but he could just make it up to her. Her pupils red, vehemently shocked. How could he say that so easily? What was she to him now? Wasn''t she the woman he loved the most? Why did everything happen so fast? How? Why did he fall in love with Anne? What did Anne have that she didn''t? "Kevin, stop joking with me. It isn''t April Fool''s day. I don''t like this joke, okay? Stop it." Tears streamed down her face as she gazed at Kevin. The hurt in her eyes was palpable. "We''ve been together for quite a while. I won''t be unfair to you. You can get whatever you want as eyes. After all, she didn''t do anything wrong but that didn''t mean that he still loved her. He wanted to break up with her. Any woman would be crushed. "Kevin, I don''t want anything. I just want you. You''re my entire world. I just want to be with you." She wasn''t going to deny that she was partly attracted to Kevin because of his wealth and power. However, thepensation he was offering was worlds apart from being his wife. She wanted more. "Cherry, you know me very well. Once I''ve decided something, I won''t change my mind." With that, he stood up and walked away. As she watched his receding figure, hatred welled up in her heart. This was all Anne''s fault. If it weren''t for Anne, he wouldn''t treat her like this. "Anne, I won''t let you get away with this!" Fuming, she squeezed her hands into fists. After returning to his bedroom, Kevin called his assistant. His assistant answered his phone in just one ring, "Mr. Kevin, what can I do for you?" "Find out where Anne is in America." Now that his feelings for Anne were clear, the first thing he needed to do was find her. "Okay, Mr. Kevin. I''ll get on it," the assistant replied respectfully. After hanging up the call, Kevin couldn''t help but grin. He was excited at the thought of getting Anne back. How he wished he could see her right now. Meanwhile, Cherry stood outside the door, eavesdropping. When she heard the call that Kevin had just made, anger spiked through her. How did his feelings change so easily? He had just broken up with her and he was already looking for Anne. Had he forgotten about his promise to her? No, she had to stop Anne froming back. If Anne came back, Kevin would entirely consign her to oblivion, even more than he already had. In just two days, Kevin already received news about Anne. Thrilled as he was, he wanted to leave for America already so he could get her back. That morning, the private ne was already waiting for him on the helipad on the roof of the Fu Group. Just as he was about to board, he received a call from the butler. Frowning, he almost didn''t answer the call. "This better be about something important or you''re fired." He was displeased. He wanted to see Anne already so he could bring her back. "Mr. Kevin, something is wrong. Miss Cherry..." the butler stammered, seemingly anxious. "What''s wrong with her?" He could tell from the butler''s tone that something must have happened to Cherry. Naturally, he was worried. "Mr. Kevin, I think you need toe home. Miss Cherry said that you were the one she wanted to see," the butler finally said apprehensively. After hanging up, Kevin nced at the private ne from a distance. He paused for a moment, deep in thought before deciding to postpone his trip to go home and check up on Cherry. Upon his arrival at the vi, the butler immediately greeted him at the door. "Mr. Kevin, please go and see Miss Cherry. She insisted on seeing you. I had no choice." The butler looked embarrassed, sweat dripping from his forehead. "What happened?" Kevin asked, mildly irritated as he strode upstairs. "Miss Cherry found out that you were going to America to find Miss Anne today so she cut her wrists, attempting tomit suicide." The butler still seemed terrified. If he hadn''t stopped her in time, Cherry might not be alive today. "Commit suicide?" At the mention of these words, Kevin''s face darkened as coldness enveloped his entire body. He quickened his pace as he made his way to Cherry''s room. When he entered her room, she was lying on the bed, looking weak and frail as the color drained out of her face. "Cherry," he called out her name in concern as he approached her bedside. While he didn''t have feelings for her anymore, he still felt guilty since they were together for so long. Hearing Kevin''s voice, Cherry slowly opened her eyes. When she recognized Kevin, tears instantly welled up in her eyes. "Kevin." Struggling to sit up, Cherry threw herself into Kevin''s arms and held him tightly. "Cherry, what are you doing? Why did you want tomit suicide?" Seeing the bandage around Cherry''s wrist and the blood seeping faintly, Kevin couldn''t help but feel sorry for her. Content ? N?velDrama.Org. "Kevin, please don''t leave me. I can''t live without you," she choked out, tightening her grip on him. Any man would feel sorry hearing her plead like this. "Don''t do such a stupid thing again." He couldn''t be with Cherry anymore no matter how hard she begged. He loved Anne and he wanted to be with her. The most he could do for Cherry waspensate her as generously as he could. "Kevin, you won''t leave me, will you? I''m still the woman you love the most, right?" she pressed when he didn''t answer her affirmatively, sounding neurotic. "Cherry, I''ve already made myself clear to you. You''re just like a sister to me now." Kevin was a man who stood by his decisions, and he decided whom he wanted to love. Now he was thoroughly determined to get Anne back. "Kevin, why? I thought we got along so well. You once told me that I was the only one you would ever love. You told me after you divorced Anne, you would marry me. How did things turn out this way?" Grimacing in pain, she couldn''t ept the void that he had left in her heart. She''d done so many things for him but in the end, they were all in vain. "Cherry, you know that I never change my mind once I''ve decided on something," Kevin said indifferently, unfazed by Cherry''s appeals. "But what about me? What am I going to do without you? Are you really going to abandon me?" She clutched his waist, not wanting to let him go. He kept silent but this spoke volumes. "Kevin..." she called weakly. She couldn''t believe that Kevin was doing this to her. Frowning slightly, he nced at Cherry''s injured hand and sighed helplessly. "Let''s talk about thister. You should focus on recovering." Chapter 122 Triumphant Chapter 122 Triumphant Kevin stripped of Cherry''s arms and helped her lie down gently. "Kevin, will you stay here with me? I beg you please¡­" She pressed once more for Kevin to remain by her side after seeing that he was about to leave her. She had suffered so much to stop him from leaving for America to go look for Anne. How would she possibly let him leave so easily now? "Cherry, I have something to deal with. I will ask the butler to take care of you and give you medical attention." Kevin''s private ne to America was still waiting for him toe aboard. "Are you sure you''ll leave me alone like this? Don''t you want to stay with me a moment longer?" Her tears streamed down her face like broken beads. She feared that Kevin would eventually take Anne back. Kevin stopped and nced at the state of pain Cherry was in, feeling sorry for her. "Kevin, I know you want to find Anne, and I know that I can''t stop you from your own decisions. But, can you not go at this very minute? Can you stay with me for a few more days? I don''t want to lose you so soon." She stared at Kevin with soliciting eyes. s, his heart softened when he saw her so weak. After all, it was ultimately his fault that she became like this. "Okay, I''ll stay with you." Back to the bedside, Kevin sat down beside Cherry and looked at her in a mediocre manner. With a triumphant smile at the corners of her mouth, Cherry cautiously embraced Kevin''s arm and slowly closed her eyes. But Kevin had already made up his mind to get Anne back. If he failed to find a way to reach her, their rtionship would seemingly end, and he could not let such a thing happen. He didn''t move an inch until Cherry fell asleep. He gently shook his arm to release himself from her and tucked her in a quilt before heading out. "Mr. Kevin, is Miss Cherry all right? How is she doing?" the butler said anxiously as soon as he saw Content ? N?velDrama.Org. Kevin step out of Cherry''s room. "What''s wrong with you, butler? How could you let this happen?" Kevin was furious as he red his eyes at the perturbed expression on the butler''s face. He couldn''t even do his job to take care of a person. Kevin had no idea as to why he administered to keep the butler as his right hand at home over the years. "It''s my fault, Mr. Kevin. Please sentence the consequences of my poor actions." The butler was appalled and quickly bowed his head to apologize as he felt Kevin''s annoyance. "Just this once!" Kevin let it slip away. He knew he had no time to discipline the butler. When Cherry woke up, she was alone in her bed and found out that Kevin did not stay the night with her. She was deeply disappointed. It was not until that she confirmed with the servants that he hadn''t gone to look for Anne that she finally felt relieved. She dialed Selma''s number right away and told her everything that had happened recently, especially that Kevin decided to leave to go find Anne in America. On the other end of the phone, Selma was furious. She put the phone down like a judge at the court and made her way to Kevin''s vi in a sh. When she entered the vi, Kevin was there, sitting in the living room, listening to his secretary reporting the possible locality of Anne''s whereabouts over the phone. He hung up the phone right there and then he saw Selma approaching him with urgency. "Mom? What are you doing here?" He was surprised to see Selma at this time, but he still had gotten to his feet and walked up to her. "Why am I here? If I didn''te here, things would be out of hand," Selma said with all guns zing. Seeing Kevin in front of her and considering Cherry''s words, she was infuriated. With a crestfallen smile, he felt a little blue, but he still asked patiently, "What made you so angry and pumped up?" "You want to know what made me angry? Let me ask you, what''s the matter with Cherry?" Selma snorted and strode towards him with tant outrage in her arresting eyes. "Is that why you came all the way here today?" Hearing his mother''s remarks made Kevin''s face turned cold. His stygian eyes dimmed with resentment. "Kevin, tell me what happened!" Selma got even more provoked upon receiving Kevin''s callous attitude. "Don''t you know everything already? What else do I need to exin?" Kevin''s face loured as he had a clue as to why his mother had to see him. "Are you really going out there to find that damsel? Have you forgotten how viscous of a woman she is?" Selma tried hard to suppress her dismay and patiently persuaded him. "I have a list of things to deal with back in thepany. Let''s talk about itter when Ie back." Aware of what his mother was going to say next, Kevin stood up irritably, picked up his coat, and walked out. "Kevin¡­" Selma piqued even more knowing that his son used an alibi to purposely avoid the conversation. ''What''s so good about that bitch? She has been long gone, but my son still can''t forget her scent like a dog,'' she gossiped in her thoughts. Looking at Kevin''s disappearing figure, Selma made up her mind with churlishness to forbid her son from finding that woman. Now that Kevin was more obsessed and desperate to find Anne, his attachment would bepletely irreversible once he got her back. Seeing Cherry''s room from where she stood, Selma went for the stairs in a hurry. In the room, Cherry had overheard Selma talking to Kevin. When Selma stepped into the room, she quickly got out of bed to greet her. "Auntie, thank god you are here." Cherry''s face was still pale as ice and her lips were blue and bloodless. At this moment, she looked frail. "Lie down quickly now. You look so weak. You need to have a rest." Selma hastily assisted Cherry to the bed with pity in her fierce eyes. "It''s okay. I''m much better now. I''m sorry you had to see me like this." Cherry lowered her head with embarrassment in a nk stare. "What are you talking about? I feel so sorry you had to go through this. How could you have done such a silly thing?" Looking at Cherry''s feeble face, Selma felt disheartened for her. "The truth is, I never intended to do this. I was anxious when I heard that Kevin was going to find Anne. I had no idea what to do, so I used such a desperate method." The truth was, Cherry had somemon medical knowledge. Although her wound was deep, she cleverly avoided any vital blood vessels. It looked serious for the part, but it was not lethal. "It''s all about this woman, Anne. That woman is just a nightmare. I don''t know what kind of tactic she used to seduce my son, but he still can''t forget her!" Selma thumped a heavy hand on the table to vent her frustration. "Auntie, it''s my fault. I can''t win his heart, but I promise I am doing the best I can. I want him to be mine, but you know his character. No one can change what he has decided. I fear that sooner orter he will abandon me." Cherry''s lips trembled as tears gushed down her face while she spoke. Her thin frame quivered as she wept as fragile as porcin. Gazing at her with sce, Selma scowled tightly. Compared with Anne, Cherry was the best daughter- inw in her heart. She would never acknowledge someone like Anne. "Dear, it''s not your fault. You should me that bitch, Anne. If it weren''t for her, you and Kevin would have been happily together a long time ago. Don''t worry. I assure you, I will support you on this affair. You are the one and only daughter-inw of the Fu Family. "But Kevin¡­" Cherry trailed off in a worried voice. No one could change Kevin''s mind. Even if she had Selma''s support, she was afraid that she might not be able to marry Kevin sessfully. She was really terrified. What should she do if Kevin was determined to find Anne? If she could not be thedy of the Fu Family, how could she get rid of her father? "Don''t worry. I''ll handle it. I''ll have Kevin marry you willingly." A trace of a grin shed on Selma''s lips. Since Kevin didn''t want to marry Cherry, she should do something that would force him to marry her. "Auntie, have you thought of a way for him to stay with me? What''s your n?" Cherry nervously asked as she was intrigued by Selma''s plot. "I''ve figured a way out of this mess. You just do as I say. I promise he will be willing to marry you." A wicked smile appeared on Selma''s face. "If I can marry Kevin as I wished, I will definitely repay you for your help." Seeing that Selma was self-assured, Cherry felt a little relieved. With Selma on her side, she might be able to marry Kevin as she desired. "Silly girl, we will be a family sooner orter. You don''t have to be so polite to me." Selma was very happy to hear what Cherry said. The mother-inw she chose was very fulfilling. Cherry lowered her head timidly as she thought about her own ploy. Afterforting Cherry, Selma left the vi. Since Kevin had made up his mind to find Anne, she was not to be med if she used some special course of action. As soon as Selma left the vi, Cherry''s phone rang. Seeing the caller ID, she became furious and wanted to hurl her cell phone out, but she couldn''t. "Why did you call me again? Haven''t I told you not to bother me when you have no business talking with me?" Cherry spoke to the person on the other end of the line in a menacing tone as soon as the call connected. "Cherry, what''s wrong with you? It''s me, your father. How could you talk to me in such a tone? Where are your manners?" The man got irked and couldn''t help but lecture Cherry. "Father? I don''t have a father like you. Have you ever seen a father who always came to threaten his daughter for money?" Cherry snorted with disdain. She wasn''t at all pleased with his father treating her like that. "Cut the crap, Cherry. I want money!" The person seemed to pause before switching to an aggressive tone. Chapter 123 Threatened Chapter 123 Threatened "I don''t have any money. I already gave you a lot. I thoughtst time would be the final time you asked. I''m not giving you any more," Cherry said angrily to the man on the other end of the phone. She didn''t have any feelings for her so-called father¡ªother than hatred, that was. Her "father" only threatened her and forced her to give him money. "Fine. Turn me down. And then I''ll expose who you really are, my lovely illegitimate daughter. What do you think Kevin will do when he finds out? Do you think he''ll still want you?" The man on the other end of the phone started fuming when Cherry refused to give him money. So, like he always did, he turned to threats. "Why do you always try to scare me with this? Can''t you just leave me alone?" Cherry sat on the bed dejectedly. Her long hair was messy, and she looked quite embarrassed. "Leave you alone? Why would I do that? You''re such a cash cow. I need a meal ticket and you''re it," he sneered. Cherry wanted to kill him right now. Thanks to him, she had been carefully hiding her identity. He was right. If Kevin found out she wasn''t rich, but instead born out of wedlock, who knew what he might do? "I really am strapped for cash. I gave you a cool millionst time, didn''t I? I''m not made of money!" Every penny Kevin gave her went to her nominal father. What more did the man want? And how far was he willing to go to get it? "I don''t care. I need at least two million this time. If you don''t give me the money, I''ll tell Kevin everything." The man on the other end of the phone didn''t care about her at all. He only wanted money. She wanted to say something more, but he had already hung up. Hearing the telltale "click," Cherry was so angry that she threw the phone at the wall. The rtionship between her and Kevin was tense enough. If her so-called father told Kevin her real identity, he might even dump her. What should she do? What should she do! How could she get two million? By the time Kevin got back to the vi, it was dark, and he was exhausted. When he got to Cherry''s room, he intended to simply walk past it. But then he thought of her sad eyes. His heart softened. He opened the door to her bedroom and walked in. There was only a smallmp, throwing barely enough light to see by. Apparently, she had fallen asleep. Kevin walked to the bedside and tucked her in. He regaled her with a guilty look. He never imagined he would fall in love with Anne, nor did he think he would ever say something so hurtful to Cherry. He looked at her for a while, watching her chest rise and fall, lost in thought. He then stood up and was about to leave, but she grabbed his hand. "Kevin..." Cherry said in a weak voice. She opened her eyes, and there was heartache in that gaze. Pausing, Kevin frowned slightly, and soon a feeling of frustration rose in his heart. "It''s sote. Why are you still awake?" There was no emotion in his voice. "Kevin, can you stay with me for a while? Just a little while." Knowing that Kevin didn''t want to stay with her any longer, Cherry looked at him with sorrow, holding him tightly in her hands, as if she were afraid he would disappear in the next second. "You''re still very weak. Get as much sleep as you can, Cherry. Let''s talk about it when you''re better." Kevin was really worried about her health. And he didn''t want to stick around at thiste hour. He knew what she wanted, but he wasn''t interested. "Kevin, I just want to talk to you. I miss your voice. I really don''t want anything else. Don''t you even want to spend a little time with me?" She bit back tears of grief. Her voice was thick with sadness. Frowning, Kevin looked at her with concern and then sat beside her. "I''ll stay here till you fall asleep," Kevin said in a rare, gentle voice. He had never spoken to her like that since Anne left. "Kevin, are we that far gone? Are you really going to break up with me?" Cherry held his hand tightly and didn''t want to let go. Her beautiful eyes were full of reluctance. "Cherry, let''s talk about it when you''re better." Remembering Cherry had cut her wrist tomit suicide, Kevin still had a lingering fear. He might not want to date her, but he didn''t want her dead, either. He might not get over it if anything really happened to her. After all, he was the one who hurt her. "Okay, let''s talk about itter. Can I rest my head on your shoulder?" Cherry struggled to stand up and leaned against his chest. Listening to his strong heartbeat, she knew this was where she belonged, and she would ever let him go easily. He wanted to push her off, but when he thought of her weak body, his heart softened again. "Go to sleep. I''ll be here with you." Holding Cherry in his arms gently, Kevin looked at her indifferently, with a strange emotion shing in his ck eyes. He didn''t know if Anne was doing well in America. Did she miss him? After a long time, when Kevin saw that Cherry had fallen asleep in his arms, he gentlyid her down, tucked her in and walked out of her bedroom. As soon as the door was closed, Cherry opened her eyes. She hadn''t fallen asleep at all. She was merely pretending. She saw that Kevin was day-dreaming. She knew he was still thinking about Anne. She couldn''t go on like this. If she couldn''t be Kevin''s woman, she couldn''t face her greedy father. She didn''t know if Selma hade up with a decent n. If it went on like this, she really didn''t know what to do. Kevin walked out of the bedroom and dialed a certain number. It was veryte where Kevin was, but not in America. It should be afternoon there. The call was connected quickly. "Mr. Kevin," the man on the other end said respectfully. "I think you know who I''m calling about," said Kevin. "How is she these days?" He cut straight to the chase. He was calling about Anne. "She''s still looking for the child, but she hasn''t found anything yet," the person on the other end of the line answered. "I know. Don''t let anything happen to her, but don''t let her know you''re watching, understand?" He didn''t wait for a reply. He hung up after issuing thatmand. It had been a few days since she came to America, but there was no trace of the child''s whereabouts. And Sam was acting strange, too, like he had something on his mind. Content ? N?velDrama.Org. "Sam, what''s wrong with you? You act like you want to say something. As they say here, it''s a free country." Looking at the frown on his face, Anne couldn''t resist asking him. "It''s nothing. I''m just... thinking about something. Are you headed out now?" Sam''s words tumbled out of his mouth. But his exnation wasn''t entirely convincing. "I''ve heard nothing about my son for a while now. I can''t just wait around here. I have to figure out where he is myself." It had been so long, but there was no news of her child. She couldn''t afford to be patient. Where on earth did Kevin hide her child? "Okay. Be careful. Call me if you need anything." Sam wanted to tell her what was going on. But he was afraid she''d be angry with him if she knew the truth. So he decided not to say anything at all. "Okay, see youter." Without noticing Sam''s reluctance, Anne left. Watching Anne walk away, Sam hesitated. After waiting for quite some time, he finally took out his phone and dialed a number. He knew it was "How long are you going to keep it from her? Do you want to keep her searching for the rest of her life?" Sam read Kevin the riot act as soon he picked up the phone. He was angry at Kevin, and felt bad for Anne. He also felt guilty because he was in on it. "She''lle back to me soon." Standing in front of the huge French window, Kevin looked ahead with a cryptic expression. Since he had made up his mind to get her back, he would definitely let here back. "Have you really made up your mind? I''m not sure about Anne. She doesn''t really talk about you often." Sam knew that Anne had suffered a lot because of Kevin. He always cared for her, so this bothered him. She was sad every day, and yet he still lied to her. He was angry with himself. "Really? The woman I want wille back to me!" Anne was the only one he wanted. One way or another, he''d get her back. "Good luck then," Sam said indifferently and hung up the phone. He didn''t think it would be that easy for Kevin to get her back. Anne was a stubborn person. Kevin had hurt her deeply this time. Was it reasonable to expect her to want to go back to him? Cherry stood quietly on the stairs. She overheard Kevin talking on the phone. He was hoping to get back together with Anne. He looked in the direction of the stairs, and saw Cherry standing there. Seeing her pale face, he frowned. "Why are you up already? Aren''t you supposed to be asleep?" Kevin asked in an indifferent tone. He sat on the sofa, his legs crossed. Biting her lower lip, Cherry walked up to him. Chapter 124 Meet Again Chapter 124 Meet Again Kevin frowned when he saw that Cherry was walking towards him, but he quickly concealed his disappointment. "Kevin, let''s talk. I don''t want to be scared anymore," she mumbled and sat across the attractive man after she nced at his calm demeanor. "What is it that you want to talk about?" He already knew where this conversation was going but he still wanted to hear it from her. "I overheard your phone call just now," she said as she looked at him with disappointed eyes. Sadness started to spread across her already pale features. "And?" he asked impatiently. His answer disheartened the woman. Theck of response and exnation broke her heart. She squeezed her hands that were on her thigh and stared into his eyes again. "Are you really willing to give up the rtionship that we have? We''ve been together for so long and I have always loved you with all my heart. Do you really have to hurt me this way?" shemented as she gazed deeply into his eyes. "Just¡­ forget about this, Cherry. Even if the two of us break up, I will still treat you like a friend." Kevin had already made up his mind. He was determined to take Anne back. Still, guilt made its way into his heart. After all, he owed the woman in front of him. "Don''t you remember the promise you made with my mom when she died? You swore that you would take good care of me, but look at you now. You''re doing theplete opposite!" Tears fell from her eyes and trailed down her porcin skin. She couldn''t hide her pained expression after she mentioned herte mother. He looked at the woman with sympathy. The torment in her eyes fueled his guilt further. Her mother saved his life, and that was why he promised her that he would take good care of Cherry in exchange. At that time, he thought that his heart would only beat for Cherry, but now, he couldn''t control his heart anymore. "I''m grateful that your mother saved me, but¡­" he trailed off on his words. He hesitated to finish his words because he knew that it would hurt her even more. "Please, don''t do this Kevin. You''ve been my everything since my mother died. What am I going to do now that you''re about to leave me too?" Hope quickly overwhelmed her heart as her little act seeded to draw a painful reaction from him. He was a man that was attached to his promises. He hated breaking oaths. He wouldn''t bend his principles just for Anne, would he? "Cherry, I will still treat you like a sister in the future. If you have any difficulties or you need anything, I will help. I could even buy a vi for you if you want. You don''t have to worry about your life." He had to make it clear no matter how much he pitied the woman in front of him. He refused to hesitate anymore. He had been indecisive for a long time, and that was not him. "Do you think I need any of that? I didn''t choose you because of your money nor your house. Don''t insult the rtionship that I have with you. It''s funny because you are my everything yet I have no ce in your heart at all." Tears streamed down her face as she looked at him pleadingly. His heart trembled again. He had something to do with her mother''s death. She died because she saved him. That was why he had always doted on Cherry. It was all because of his guilt. "You know that no one can control me, right?" No one could change his decision, neither his past nor the woman in front of him. Since he wanted Anne back, nothing could prevent him from doing so. The woman clenched her fists and tried her best to get ahold of her emotions. She hated the fact that even after she mentioned her mother''s death, he remained unaffected. She pondered about every possible way that could keep him by her side. "You haven''t fully recovered yet," he said, changing the topic. "I''ve asked the butler to prepare some healthy food for you. Go back to your room and rest for now. I have something to deal with at the Kevin dismissed the conversation and stood up. He left without even throwing a nce at her direction. A strong hatred surged within her heart after he left without hesitation. Her eyes turned cold, and her heart turned even colder. "Anne, even though you''re already gone, you still haunt my life. Now he wants to break up with me because of you. Well, too bad. I''ll never let youe back, nor will I let you take him away from me." Her words were full of hatred and wickedness. Vicious confidence overwhelmed her. She already managed to break the two of them apart once, and it wouldn''t be hard for her to do it again. After the confrontation, Kevin arrived at his office of the Fu Group. "Mr. Kevin, the ne is waiting for you on the rooftop." The secretary bowed after he spoke. "Okay! Let''s go," he replied lightly, and headed straight to the top floor. He turned his phone off because he didn''t want to be disturbed. He was excited to fly to America, so that he could find that little woman. "How has she been doing in America these days? Is she in a rtionship with Sam?" The thought that another man had been with Anne all this time made him ufortable. Now he realized that it was a wrong decision to ask Sam just to take care of Anne back then. He was well aware of Sam''s feelings for Anne, yet he forgot about it and asked Sam to take care of her. He was so wrong. "What do you mean, Mr. Kevin? A loving rtionship?" the secretary asked cautiously as he looked at his gloomy face "What do you think?" Kevin raised his eyebrows slightly as he looked at his secretary. His secretary''s cluelessness was starting to get on his nerves. "Well¡­ Miss Anne seems to have a good rtionship with Mr. Sam. They are quite close." The secretary gave a fair answer. Kevin clicked his tongue and clenched his fists when he heard him. "What do you mean by close?" He couldn''t bring himself to be happy now that he found out that Anne had gotten intimate with another man. How could he react positively if the woman he loved was close to another man? "It''s just that they are very close." Faced with the sudden anger of his boss, the secretary was a little confused. Was the president jealous? "You''ve been my secretary for too long. Do you want me to find someone to rece you?" ''Damn it, what did he mean by close? How close were the two of them?'' Kevin contemted. What he wanted to know was whether they had kissed, or if they were living under the same roof! That was his fucking concern! Kevin''s deep-seated anger terrified his secretary. He shifted his eyes away from him and said, "Mr. Kevin, you''ll see her soon. I''m not the person involved, so how can I know everything..." "How dare you talk back to me? Do you want a three-month cutback on your sry?" His secretary''s words fumed him more, and his anger only intensified when he realized that Anne had spent every passing day with Sam. "Mr. Kevin, please..." The secretary wanted to weep and whine. He was struggling to stayposed. He looked at his boss and contemted if he had said something offensive. He wondered if he did anything to cause this predicament. "Five months!" The CEO''s intimidating voice echoed through the secretary''s ears. "¡­" He looked at Kevin''s emotionless face and was about to break down. To be punished for no reason was just so unfair. Before Kevin could even breathe a word, the ne had alreadynded. Instead of heading towards the There was no one at home when they arrived. He looked around and wondered where the woman went. When he couldn''t find an answer, he sat on the sofa and crossed his legs elegantly. A faint smile spread across his face as the thought of seeing Anne again crossed his mind. "Mr. Kevin, are you going to wait here? Should I send someone to look for Miss Anne?" The secretary stared at his boss who was now in a good mood. When did his boss be this moody? He was clearly in a foul mood when he was on the ne, but now he seemed very excited His behavior had be so uncertain. The secretary stared at the atmosphere nkly and recalled the five-month sry that would be deducted from him. "I''ll wait for her here. Stop bothering me and just leave." He nced at his employee impatiently and dismissed him. The secretary threw a confused look towards him. He tried to grasp his boss''s logic. Since Kevin thought that he was an eyesore, why bother bringing him along to America? No matter how clueless he was, he decided to keep his mouth shut. If he said anything more, his sry deduction might get higher, or worse, he could get fired. "Okay, Mr. Kevin," he answered respectfully and left in a hurry. He didn''t want to make his boss angrier. Kevin looked around the house after his secretary left. Although it was not as big as his vi, this one felt cozier. It was full of her smell, something that he had been longing for. Time passed by unbeknownst to Kevin before he heard footsteps emerging from outside. Anne walked into the yard with a disheartened look on her face. Every passing day, she went to Kevin''s property in American to find out the whereabouts of her child, but she always came back with nothing. She sighed and opened the door dejectedly, but before he could step get inside, the man embraced her. "Ah!" Her eyes widened as she screamed in horror because she thought it was a burr. Before she could see who it was, the man started to kiss her. This content ? N?v/elDr(a)m/a.Org. Was it a rapist? What in God''s name was going on? The person''s scent and the kiss felt awfully familiar to her. Upon the realization, she pushed the man away, and looked at him in astonishment. It was really him. It was Kevin! Her heart was beating like a drum. Seeing him after such a long time pained her heart. She wasn''t sure what to feel at that moment. Chapter 125 Come Back To Me Chapter 125 Come Back To Me "You¡­ Why are you here?" At longst, she finally came back to her senses. The man suddenly appeared in front of her, which Content rights belong to N?velDrama.Org. surprised her beyond words. They hadn''t seen each other for a long time, but she was still beautiful. Kevin walked towards Anne with a pleasing smile, keeping his eyes fixed on her face. "I haven''t seen you for such a long time. Did you miss me?" His voice was deep and gentle. It was her first time hearing him like this. Anne''s heart seemed to be severed by a knife all over again. Enduring the pain in her heart, she looked at him coldly. "Mr. Kevin, what are you doing here? Where is my baby? Where on earth did you take him?" Did his presence mean that the child was here as well? Anne couldn''t help but feel a little excited. A glimmer of light shed through her ravishing eyes. "Of course, I''m here for you. What do you think I''m doing here? Anne, answer my question quickly. Have you missed me?" Anne glowered at him with vexation. ''What is wrong with this man? Why does he keep asking me if I miss him at a very bad time? Did he meet me for this? It''s ridiculous!'' Anne gave him a stern look and said coldly, "Mr. Kevin, I just want to know the news about the baby. I was hoping you can tell me." She knew that there was no connection between them hence she did not want to fantasize over any unrealistic ideas about why he came here. "Do you only care about the baby? Don''t you want to know how I''ve been doing recently?" When he felt her distance, his face turned t with a grievance. Since the beginning, she only talked about the child. She had no interest in him which made him very unhappy. "The rtionship between us was just because we have a child. Mr. Kevin, you are rich. You certainly lead a good life, and this should none of my concern." Anne fought back, disregarding his anger. Indeed, both of them had nothing to do with each other, so why would she still care about him? She was not in any position to do so. "I haven''t seen you for a few days, yet you''ve be much more eloquent!" With a bellow of rage, Kevin strode to her and looked down at her. Anger was glistening from his ck eyes. Anne took a step back as he approached to keep a distance between them. She did not want toe in contact with his breath. "Mr. Kevin, both of us have nothing to do with each other. Please keep your distance. I hope you can tell me something about our child. I am his mother, and I have the right to know if he is well." She turned her eyes directly into his expressing defiance. She did not want to show any weakness. All she wanted was to see her child. "Do you really want to see the baby?" Kevin squinted his long and narrow eyes at her and asked with a gloomy face. "Yes, I want to see my child." She was more determined than ever. "Sure! If you agree to be my woman again, I will let you see the child," he proposed since he wanted her toe back to him. He would not stop her from seeing the baby if she epted his condition. "What?" Anne was flustered by his suggestion. She wondered if she heard it wrong. Was he out of his mind? Shouldn''t he be holding Cherry in his arms and kissing her? What did he mean bying to her at this time? "Didn''t you hear me? I asked you to be my woman. If you agree with me, you can see the child whenever you want." Her surprised and sardonic eyes infuriated Kevin. Damn it! What was her reaction about? Shouldn''t she be happy to hear this? There was a look of disdain on her face. Did she feel contemptuous to be with him? "You are out of your mind. Just leave. Go out! His behavior was unusual. He was nothing like who he was right now. "What did you say? Anne, say that to my face again!" Damn it! How could she drive him away and say that he was out of his mind? They hadn''t seen each other for ages. How dare she talk to him in such a tone? "Mr. Kevin, are you deaf? I have made myself very clear. Didn''t you understand?" Anne struck a harsh look at him. She was not intimidated by his fury at all. Now, she did not want to do anything with this man. "Anne! Kevin could not bear his anger anymore. He yelled out her name in a low voice. "Who gave you permission to talk to me like this?" ''Damn! She''s getting bolder and bolder! How dare she talk to me like that?'' "What do you want, Kevin? If you won''t allow me to see the baby, then you are not wee here anymore. Please leave!" Anne hadpletely lost her patience. She thought that Kevin came all of a sudden because he was bothered by his conscience. She believed that he changed his mind and came to tell her that she could see their child, but she did not expect him to dispute with her. "What do you want? I just made it clear that I wanted to be with you!" Kevin replied with a somber countenance. He was very disappointed. She did not look excited when she saw him. She even kept giving him a straight face. "Are you kidding me, Mr. Kevin? I am the woman you hated the most. Why do you suddenly want me to be your partner? Don''t you think it''s absurd?" she sneered. She did not take his words seriously. She thought this man was crazy. "I don''t hate you anymore." It was true that he no longer loathed her. He even fell in love with her. Anne was speechless. Her face was cold. "Too bad because I hate you. I don''t want to see you from now on." What did he think she was? Did he really think she would just obey everything he said? She was a woman of integrity and did not want to be manipted by a man. "Anne!" Kevin burst into anger. This damn woman said she despised him! He pulled her into his arms. His dark eyes were full of strong possessiveness and exasperation. "Kevin, what are you doing? Let go of me!" She didn''t know what to do when he locked his arms around her. She didn''t want to lust over his breath anymore, so she kept pushing him away. "If you promise to be mine, I''ll let you go!" He tightened his clutch, making her unable to resist at all. It was well-know that Kevin was domineering. Although Anne knew she could not hold out against him, she did not want to be controlled by this man again. "I won''t promise you. Just give up!" What was wrong with him? Why should she listen to him? Why was he forcing her to do what he wanted? "You are bing immensely rebellious. It seems that I need to teach you a lesson, right?" Kevin raised his voice and kissed her heavily before she could react. Her mind went ck. When Anne came to her senses, she wanted to impede him, but she was imprisoned firmly. She was forced to appease him. The door opened and Sam walked in. A trace of astonishment shed through his ck eyes when he saw them kissing passionately. He was stunned for a moment and did not respond. Anne caught a glimpse of Sam from the corner of her eye. She gained strength and heavily pushed Kevin away. At this moment, her beautiful eyes were filled with wrath. "Sam, you''re back!" Anne looked at him awkwardly. She felt abashed at the thought of Sam seeing them kiss. She didn''t even know how to face him. "Anne, what''s going on?" Sam was baffled. Kevin''s sudden appearance surprised him. He didn''t expect him toe so soon. "Nothing, nothing." Anne lowered her head in embarrassment, not knowing how to exin. She was also shocked that Kevin hade. "Didn''t you see what happened? Do you want me to demonstrate it to you again?" Kevin was annoyed by the way Anne exined it to Sam. The two of them had nothing to do with each other. Did she have to exin to him in a hurry? When Sam heard what he said, his face dimmed. "Kevin, what do you want? If you have nothing else to do, you can leave now!" Anne turned around and red at him. Did he know what he was saying? He even wanted to demonstrate it again. How absurd! "Didn''t I make it clear? Do you want me to say it once more? He disappointedly frowned at her. Did this woman ignore his words? Clenching her fists, Anne tried her best to contain her anger. His appearance disturbed her peaceful life. "Please leave. You are not wee here!" After finishing her sentence, Anne turned her back and never looked back at him. Chapter 126 The Plan To Get Anne Back Chapter 126 The n To Get Anne Back "Anne, are you trying to piss me off?" He had tolerated her for so long, but her attitude never changed. "Mr. Kevin, this is my home. I don''t want to see you now. Please leave." Sam noticed the torment in Anne''s eyes. He felt so distressed for her that he immediately told Kevin to leave. "Sam, do you know who you are talking to?" His raging eyes narrowed at him. There was a dangerous pressure emanating from him. "Of course, I know you." Sam wasn''t even moved by his words. He even imitated his imposing manner. After he saw Anne''s eyes, Kevin suppressed his anger. He snorted and left bitterly. When Kevin left, Anne''s legs turned weak. She sat on the sofa and her eyes became empty. His sudden reappearance disturbed her sanity. She didn''t know how to react when she faced him just now. "Anne? Are you okay?" Sam rushed to her side. He suddenly felt guilty for no apparent reason when he saw her reaction. "Sam, why did he suddenly appear this time? Did hee to disturb my peace again?" Her knees shivered as she turned around to face Sam. The confusion was evident in her eyes. She didn''t know what how she would react the next time she saw Kevin. "Anne, do you want toe back to him?" Sam stared into her eyes. The only thing he wanted right now was for her to be happy. "You know it''s impossible for me to be with him. Why did you ask such a question?" Anne suddenly changed her mood when she noticed the concern in his eyes. Thest person she imagined to see was Kevin. She finally drew the line in their rtionship. She no longer wanted him to get involved in her life. "Why is it impossible? I can see that you still can''t forget him and he still has a ce in your heart. In that case, why can''t you two be together? You want to be with him too, right?" It was heartbreaking to push the woman he loved to another man, but the only thing that he wanted for her was to find her happiness. His conscience wouldn''t allow her to be with him unwillingly. He knew that he would only feel bad every single day if he saw that she was unhappy. He only wanted to put a smile on her face. "The two of us are not from the same world at all, and he has Cherry by his side." The thought of Cherry and Kevin being together devastated her. She was puzzled at the thought of why Kevin was still provoking her when he already had the woman he wanted to marry. "What if he leaves Cherry? Will you consider going back to him?" His eyes were expectant and his heart beat rapidly while he awaited her answer. "Sam, what''s wrong with you today? Why do you always ask me such hypothetical and impossible questions? You have never asked such questions before." Her forehead creased as she asked him. Anne was bewildered by his actions. It was unbing of him to ask about her rtionship with Kevin. "Nothing. I just want you to follow your heart. I just want to see you happy." He withdrew his gaze from her and didn''t bother to repeat the question. "My rtionship with him is over. Now, all I want is to see my child. So please, help me." Anne stared into his deep eyes, etching her words into his brain. Thest thing she wanted to happen was to see Kevin. The most important thing for her right at that moment was to see her child, and that was when she could finally be fulfilled. Sam kept silent for a long time, examining the expression in her eyes until he finally spoke. "Okay, I will help you as much as I can. If it''ll make you happy, I''ll do it." He began to doubt his decision when he noticed that she seemed to be disturbed. He didn''t know if what he did for her was the right thing to do. He knew that she was only pretending not to care, but the look in her eyes revealed the truth. As much as he hated to admit it, she still loved Kevin, and it tormented him to think about it. "I''m tired. I''ll go upstairs and get some rest." Her heart couldn''t bear to suppress her emotions anymore, so she decided to head back to her room. Her mind was aplete mess. She couldn''t think straight. Watching her hunched back because of loneliness made Sam feel sorry for her. Kevin drove the car at full speed. The expression on his dashing face could not be painted. That damn woman! He came all the way here just to see her, and this was how she treated him. Not only was she not happy to see him, she even drove him away! The secretary was waiting at the front door when Kevin arrived at his vi in America. He was expecting that his boss woulde back with Anne, but the only person he saw stepping out of the car was Kevin. Did the trip not go well? "Mr. Kevin, where is Miss Anne? She didn''te back with you?" He immediately ran towards Kevin as he asked him cautiously. "Don''t mention that damn woman to me!" Kevin was furious every time he thought of Anne. She was fearless. No woman had ever dared to talk to him in such an attitude. Text ? 2024 N?velDrama.Org. "Mr. Kevin¡­" He was dumbfounded by his boss''s angry face. Wasn''t he fine a few hours ago? Why was he suddenly so angry? "That damn woman is getting bolder and bolder!" The more he thought of it, the more furious he became. Her attitude towards him was nothing like what he had imagined. His expectation that she would rush into arms and beg for him toe back was crushed. "Mr. Kevin, what happened? Is Miss Anne unwilling toe back?" He was hesitant to ask the question when he stared at his gloomy face. "Can''t you tell by the look on my face right now?" Kevin red at him coldly. It was obvious that the secretary knew the answer. "¡­" The secretary couldn''t believe that there was someone that could refuse his boss. He was too shocked to even utter a word. "Mr. Kevin, what are you going to do now?" He sighed helplessly. By the way Kevin treated Anne before, he knew that she would be enraged with his boss the moment he found her. "I''m going home!" Kevin dragged his feet towards the vi. His face was the epitome of frustration because there was nowhere to vent his anger. "Mr. Kevin, are you not going to take Miss Anne back?" The secretary was truly powerless in front of Kevin''s vtile temper. "Didn''t you know that woman refused me?" Kevin stared daggers at him. "Well, I''ll make the arrangements now. Are you nning to head back tonight?" "Did I say that I would go back tonight?" Kevin roared with dissatisfaction. His face could not be more intimidating. Didn''t he say that he wanted to go back just now? He really couldn''t understand his boss''s temper; it was too unpredictable. "Find a way to make that womane back to me willingly." He really would find a way to get her. He couldn''t back down anymore. "There is no other way. If you want Miss Anne toe back to you, you should try to woo her. After all, women are emotional animals." "Write it down for me! Tell me how I can ''woo'' that woman!" Kevin had never made this kind of effort for a woman before. His ego didn''t allow him to do so. "Okay, Mr. Kevin." The corner of the secretary''s mouth twitched, but he still agreed. It seemed that Kevin''s anger signified that he had already fallen in love with Anne. If he didn''t, he wouldn''t have made a move to pursue her. The next day, the secretary had the list ready and handed it to Kevin. The list was two pages long. Kevin''s forehead creased and he furrowed his brows. Had it always been this much trouble to get a woman? "Do I really have to do everything on this list?" He eyed his secretary suspiciously. He doubted that he had to do so much just to get Anne back. "Every woman is different, Mr. Kevin. You have to try everything on that list to know what could impress Miss Anne." There were so many ways listed to pursue a woman, but the truth was, he only listed a few. "Let''s start with the first one. You go and prepare one thousand roses and ce them at her door." "One thousand? Mr. Kevin, are you sure?" He was shocked. His eyes were uncertain if he should follow Kevin''s snap decision. "Is that not enough? Then ten thousand bouquets!" Kevin''s face turned sour when he thought that one thousand bouquets of roses were not enough. Ten thousand... "Mr. Kevin, I feel the need to tell you that one thousand bouquets are simply too many..." Ten thousand bouquets of roses? Did he want to buy all the roses in the city? Where in hell would he find that many roses? "Then if a thousand bouquets are enough, just do as I say before you suffer the consequences." Kevin''s decision was final. After he finished talking, he left the vi at once. The secretary shook his head helplessly as he was thinking about the one thousand bouquets of roses. His boss must be thinking that it was just a number. Anne was so upset because of what happened the other day that she didn''t want to go out at all. Her thoughts were disturbed by a sudden knock at the door. She stared at the door with doubt. When she opened the door, Kevin''s face appeared right in front of her. After she drew a deep breath to calm down, her face became devoid of emotion. "Why are you here again? What are you doing here? I have said yesterday that you are not wee here," Anne said with a cold tone. "Of course, I''m here for you. Why else would I be here?" Kevin said lightly. He tried his best to hold back his anger as he knew that the woman was still furious with him. Chapter 127 Let Me See My Child Chapter 127 Let Me See My Child "Kevin, what do you want from me? I have told you countless times that I don''t ever want to see you again!" With a sullen face and hint of coldness in her eyes, she wondered what Kevin wanted to do. Since he had no ns to let her see their son, why did he bother seeing her? "I have a surprise for you. Come with me." Kevin, who had never been sneered at by any woman, pulled a long face to mask his anger. He stepped forward, snatched her by the wrist, and pulled her out. "What are you up to, Kevin? Let go of me!" She hassled herself free from the man''s tight grip. Her eyes brimmed with anger. She couldn''t stand this man''s bullish act anymore. Why did this man abruptlye to disturb her quiet life? "Can''t you just be a little more obedient? Do you really want me to use force?" He lost all his patience because of her attitude. His face darkened as he looked at her with such annoyance. ''Damn it! Can''t she be a little nicer to me?'' She was stunned for a moment and looked back at Kevin in shock. Why couldn''t he just tell her what he wanted and be done with it? "Can''t you do anything else except threaten the people in front of you?" This man knew nothing but topel her every time. This was his usual style of getting into people, simple and crude! "It works to threaten you. You deserve it, you disobedient girl." With a dimmed face, Kevin snorted and thought, ''That''s how this works on this little woman. As long as I put the squeeze on her, she will obey.'' Silence took over for a moment as he pondered. How brazen was this man to admit it without blinking his eyes... Seeing that Anne stood there indifferently like a tree and refused to leave with him, Kevin got infuriated again and dragged her out directly, this time without saying a word. Anne was obliged to leave with Kevin. He was too overpowering for her to get out of his grip. Moreover, this man was domineering. If she refused to go, he would just insist over and over again. When Kevin pulled her out of the door, she was surprised that he let go of her hand. "Why did you pull me outside? What the heck is wrong with you?" The two stood face to face. With a displeased look on her surface, the absence of enthusiasm in her eyes was more obvious. "Look what''s in front of us?" Ignoring her arrogance, Kevin pointed ahead and said aloof with a smile in his sable eyes. Thinking of how touched would this little woman be once she realized what he was up to, he was in a favorable mood in a jiff. Confused, she looked at the direction his hand pointed. When she saw the path paved like a runway with myriad roses, her eyes seemed to be in awe and her heart pounded wildly. Did he prepare this for her? He had never given her any flowers before. This was a first for her. She felt a dull ache from the bottom of her heart. She owned up to the fact that she had fallen in love with this man before. Even if he barely did a thing for her, she could not help herself but be moved. But why was he doing all this? Why now that her heart stupefied into obliviousness? "Anne, if you are moved, just say it. I won''t think silly of you." Lookingcently at the absentminded demeanor on Anne''s face, Kevin smiled. He was thrilled, thinking that this woman should have already been convinced toe back to him. His voice brought Anne back into to earth in a snap. When she saw the triumphant smirk on Kevin''s face, her heart sank. "Kevin, what is all this? Why are there so many roses in front of my door? It seems like you forgot that your Cherry is not here, right?" Her voice was stone-cold and passionless. Trying her best to hold back the tears dammed in her eyes, she curled her lips sarcastically. "Anne!" Kevin growled with a hostile temper in his ghoulish eyes. Yikes! She thought the roses were for Cherry? Geez! Did she not realize that he did all this for her? "Is there anything else you want to show me, Kevin? If not, please let your men clean this mess. I have no business picking up roses here." She turned her head away from the roses on the road and spoke with a stoic voice. It was not that she wasn''t touched and didn''t appreciate Kevin making a mindful effort for the first time, but the fact that she was aroused by it was enough for her to be rmed. She was afraid because when she saw it, she couldn''t help but be tender and softhearted, and that meant risking herself once more to the possibility of being hurt. She didn''t want to suffer from the same heart-rending pain twice. "Anne, listen to me. These roses are meant for you. They have nothing to do with Cherry. Can''t you see? I want you toe back to me!" Oh, man. Why did she have to piss him off this lot? "Why should Ie back to you? Do you think I''ll just do as you wish? Because you are Kevin?" Anne sneered, and the look in her eyes became frigid as a rock. He was wrong to think that he''d win her back. She knew he was only acting that way because of his unreasonable possessiveness and nothing more. He had always been like this, detached from other people''s belief. As long as he wanted something, he would be zealous and possessive, even treating a person like a ything. "Because you are mine! So you will stay with me. Are we clear on that?" He was desperate to keep her by his side. She was the love of his life, the only woman he wanted. "Kevin, do you have any idea what''s going on? We already broke up. We are done. And if I remembered correctly, you were the one who broke up with me. Have you forgotten?" When she was most vulnerable, this man abandoned her like garbage, and now he suddenly wanted to have her back? He had got to be kidding. No matter how stupid she was, she was not senseless enough to give a man two chances to devastate her. "I regret it now. I want you to return to me. You can''t escape from me." For his one true love, Kevin would do any means necessary to keep her at his side, and this sweet woman could only do so much as returning to him. "Why? Why should Ie back to you? Why would I return and let you hurt me once more? Kevin, am I such a silly doll in your heart? A toy that you can take if you want and throw away as soon as you lose interest?" What did this man think of her as? Amodity? The words ''hurt'' and ''throw'' struck the most throbbing ache in his heart. As he reminisced the things he had done to this woman in the past, a sudden trace of guilt flushed through his ghoulish eyes. Indeed, he had brought misery into her life, but now he just wanted to love her seriously. "I won''t hurt you again. Anne, pleasee back to me." His voice became a little horse, and there was an imperceptible sense of remorse in his tone. He had always been a proud man. He would never admit his mistakes because he didn''t believe he had done wrong in the first ce. But for the first time, he felt regretful about what he had done to Anne. Her heart trembled. She could not believe her eyes. She could see right through thement his eyes manifested. ''Would this conceitful man get off his high horse and really regret? Is he the same Kevin I know?'' An arrogant man begging for her toe back. It was surreal. She thought that this was all a dream. "Kevin, our rtionship was all in the past. Things will never go back to the way it used to be. But could you at least let me see our son? I have been longing to see him. How is he? Is he doing okay?" Unfortunately, she could not bear the pain of such missing any longer. "The child is living a good life. Don''t worry, Cherry will take good care of him. She won''t let anything bad happen to him." The baby was hisst bargaining chip. How could he let her see their son so easily? Anne was shocked to know that Cherry was the one looking after her son. Text ? 2024 N?velDrama.Org. "What? You asked Cherry to take care of my baby? How could you do this? Don''t you know how vicious she is? How can you leave our son to such a person?" Thinking of Cherry''s malicious character, she couldn''t help but be hysterical. Cherry had a copious amount of hatred against her. If she had the child in her custody, she could redirect that loathing to mistreat the boy, right? Thinking of this possibility, Anne couldn''t help but worry. How could she ever trust that the child was safe from harsh conduct? "Cherry will take good care of my son. Don''t worry. She treats the boy as her own." Kevin was agitated with what Anne had said. Perhaps, he felt guilty thinking how he had treated Cherry. "I want to see the child. I want to see my son now!" She needed to see the boy. She had to attest that he was treated well. Otherwise, overthinking about what Cherry could possibly do to the child could be the cause of her detriment. "You can''t see him. Not now." Kevin couldn''t help but feel sorry when he saw her getting emotional. Was there never been another person in this woman''s heart except for her son? In her ticker, he couldn''t evenpare to a child she had never seen? "Kevin, what in the world do you want me to do so that I could see my baby? He is also my child. How could you prevent me from seeing him? What right do you have?!" Kevin refused her wish which made Annepletely lose her mind. It was the first time she had spoken to Kevin in such a high voice. Her protest was almost roared out in the neighborhood. "Calm down, Anne." Why did she be so hysterical all of a sudden? Nothing happened to the baby. "Calm down? How can I calm down? Kevin, how badly do you want to hurt me? Are you driving me crazy so that you can let go of me?" She looked at Kevin in despair. For the first time, she looked dispirited like shattered ss. She had always been optimistic and believed that her child would live a happy life, but now she was anxious as anything. She knew Cherry wouldn''t care for the child''s well-being. The child could suffer. The thought of Cherry''s malefic face made her heart pound like a drum. Chapter 128 Move On From Him Chapter 128 Move On From Him Anne rushed towards Kevin and began mming her fists on his chest, letting out all the anger that she had nursed in her heart. Why did he treat her like this? Why? Kevin neither pushed her away nor did he stop her. It was obvious that she was angry and she needed to let out her anger so he just let her. When she was tired, Kevin pulled her into his arms and held her tightly. Her brain told her to push him away but her heart objected. "Kevin, do you have any idea how much you hurt me? Why? Why didn''t you believe me?" He chose to believe in Cherry over her. He chose to believe that Cherry was kind and she was evil. "I won''t hurt you anymore." He too was mad at her. He knew of the many bad things that she had done yet in the end, he still couldn''t help but fall in love with her. A wave ofplex emotions arose in her heart. She ignored what he said as she struggled out of his arms and pushed him out the door, promptly mming the door to his face. She feared that if she heard his voice again, her heart would soften. She hated it when she couldn''t control her own emotions. Kevin frowned slightly as he looked at the closed door, anger flickering in his eyes. In the end, he decided against knocking again. He took his phone out and dialed his secretary''s number. tly, he ordered, "Clean up these roses for me." It seemed that the idea his secretary gave him did more harm than good. Instead of making progress, Anne had shut him out. Upon hearing Kevin''s unhappy, his secretary asked cautiously, "Mr. Kevin, did it not go well today?" "Did you think that stupid idea of yours would work? What kind of idea was that anyway?" Heshed into his secretary, airing out his frustrations. He briefly considered firing his secretary for that piece of terrible advice that was of no use to him. "I looked it up on the inte. That''s odd. It should have worked." His secretary sounded confused. Generally, women liked roses. This kind of sweet gesture was a surefire way to win any woman''s heart. "You got that idea from the inte?" Kevin hissed. "Well, not really. I also based it on my experience. I don''t have much so I looked it up on the inte to be sure." His secretary quickly defended himself upon hearing Kevin''s stone cold voice. Why did he have to let that slip out? Now Kevin sounded pissed. As it turned out, he had guessed correctly. "I''m deducting half a year''s worth of bonuses from your sry!" He couldn''t believe his damn secretary was stupid enough to rely on the inte for advice on getting Anne back. Was he trying to make a fool of him? "Mr. Kevin, could you please sympathize with me? Five months of my sry has already been knocked off my pay. If you take away my bonuses too, I''m going to end up eating dirt for all my meals." His secretary felt like crying but tears wouldn''te out. How could he be so unlucky? It looked like he had no choice but to suck it up. He knew very well that Kevin wasn''t just any ordinary man. He needed to be strong or else he could lose an entire year''s worth of sry. "Do you think it''s too little? If it''s too little, I''ll double it." Kevin snorted coldly. Not only did his secretary give himme advice but now he was bargaining with him? Maybe he really should fire him. "No, no. That''s enough," his secretary hurriedly said, worried that Kevin would take away the rest of his bonuses too. "What''s your next n?" Kevin was peeved that Anne rejected him despite his grand gesture. He needed to figure out a way to win her back as soon as possible. "Mr. Kevin, why don''t you invite her to a romantic movie? After all, women are driven by their emotions. If you two watch a romantic movie together, she might be reminded of the beautiful memories that you two shared," the secretary suggested. "Are you sure this is going to work? Or am I just going to waste my time again?" Kevin asked skeptically. "I think so. Mr. Kevin, why don''t you try it?" the secretary responded confidently. Inwardly, he really couldn''t be sure. He was just doing his best to make sure he kept the rest of his bonuses. "Then I''ll do that. If this still doesn''t work, I''m deducting the rest of your bonuses for the second half of the year." The warning in Kevin''s tone was palpable. The secretary suddenly felt the urge to leave and find another job¡ªbeing Kevin''s secretary was no easy task. His work wasn''t limited to thepany but now he was also responsible for Kevin''s love life. It seemed that he wasn''t just a secretary now. He was also a nanny. "Book a movie house for tomorrow night and choose a good movie. Understand?" Kevin sorelycked experience in matters like this so he had no choice but to trust his secretary. Anne locked herself in the room as the tears she had been holding back came flooding out. How could she face Kevin? What could she do to see her child? She sat on the sofa in the living room, lost in thought. She had no idea what to do to make everything better. When Sam came back, he saw Anne sitting on the sofa, staring nkly with her eyes reddened. It was Content rights belong to N?velDrama.Org. quite obvious that she had just cried. "Anne, what happened? Did you cry?" He immediately approached her and sat next to her, gazing at her tear-stained pale face. "No, no. It''s nothing. Why are you home so early? I thought you had something to do." Anne quickly wiped her face, not wanting Sam to see her like this. "I finished early so I decided to head home right away. What happened? Just tell me. Maybe I can help out." Sam didn''t buy her excuse for one second. Her eyes were swollen and red¡ªit was clear as day that she had just cried her eyes out. "It''s okay. I''m fine, really. Don''t worry about me. Are you hungry? Let me fix something up for you." Thest thing she wanted was Sam seeing her in such a mess. She quickly stood up and made her way to the kitchen. "Anne, you can''t keep running away forever. You have to follow your heart and listen to the voice deep in your heart. This is the only way you''ll be happy." He shrewdly spected that this must have had something to do with Kevin. It was the only usible exnation. Only Kevin had this effect on her. At times, he found himself wondering what it must feel like to be capable of making Anne feel this way. Upon hearing this, she stiffened up. It seemed that he had seen right through her. "Sometimes, life isn''t as simple as I dream it to be. Thanks for the kind words. I know what to do now." She knew that Sam was only looking out for her. However, there were just some scars that needed more than a lifetime to be healed. How could she just forgive Kevin after all that he''d done to her? "Anne, I just hope you resolve this as soon as possible so you can stop torturing yourself." Did she have any idea how she looked like right now? Sympathy filled his chest. If he could, he would bear all the pain for her so she wouldn''t have to hurt like this. Anne didn''t want to hear any more of what Sam had to say. She feared that if she let herself be persuaded by him, she''d change her mind. After her eventful day, it shouldn''te as a surprise that she was in low spirits. She even forgot to season the meal she had cooked. Sam made a face as he ate his dinner. It tasted so nd but he decided to keep this to himself. "Anne. Why don''t you go upstairs and rest?" he said in concern as he put down his chopsticks, sighing helplessly. "No, thanks. It''ste. The servants have already gone to bed. I''ll clean up the table and go to bedter." She lowered her head and took a bite of the food, immediately spitting it out after. "I forgot to add salt," she said in a small voice, looking at him rather awkwardly. It seemed that she couldn''t do anything right nowadays. How could she forget to season her own cooking? "Yeah, you forgot to add salt. I thought you wouldn''t notice." Sam shook his head, seemingly resigned. Anne was obviously out of it. "Sorry. Let me fix it." She picked up the food on the table and stood up, intending to go back to the kitchen but Sam stopped her. "Don''t bother. Maybe you should take your time and make yourself feel better first. I''m really worried about you." She was disconcerted and upset yet she still volunteered to cook. Why did she have to do this to herself? "I''m fine. Don''t worry about me." Being the proud woman that she was, she didn''t want to admit that she was depressed because of Kevin. Now more than ever, she had to move on from him. "You don''t have to pretend in front of me. Go back to your room and rest. I''ll take it from here," Sam said gently as he took the te from her hand, rubbing her shoulders as a way tofort her. What he really wanted was for her to open up to him and tell him what was bothering her. It made him feel bad that she chose to keep her burdens to herself. Chapter 129 Unable To Dodge Chapter 129 Unable To Dodge On the evening of the following day, Kevin appeared at her door as expected. His long and straight figure was perfectly traced on his solid ck handmade Armani suit. When Anne came out, he was standing beside her with an unfinished cigarette in his hand. He smoked smartly and elegantly, but she could not help furrowing her brows. He did not smoke before. Since when did he learn to do that? But this thought onlysted for a moment. This man was outside of her business. There was no need for her to worry about how he was doing. She looked at him frigidly after she came to her senses. "What are you doing here? I thought we have already talked it through." What on earth did this man want? Why did he keep haunting her all the time? What should she do to make him disappear in her life? "Put away your dead face. It makes me feel awful!" Damn, this was all she could say when she saw him. There were so many women out there dying to see him, but this woman was not well pleased. Dead face? What a mean man! "If you have something to say, please tell me straight away. I have something else to do!" she said, looking at Kevin in frustration. This man was getting on her nerves as he was also getting extremely harsh. He was not wee, but he came to pester her every day. "Get in the car!" he said with a frown. "I won''t go with you!" Why should she listen to him and get in his car? Who was he to her now? And what right did he have to order her? "Anne, don''t test my patience. Don''t drive me into using force." Kevin lost his patience. This little woman put on a long face after she saw him. He had never been treated like this by a woman before. "Kevin, can you stop being so arrogant? Stop showing up in front of my house. I don''t want to see you!" Anne scowled at him. Threatening her was what he did best. "You don''t want to see me? Just so you know, it''s not up to you. I''ll give you three seconds to get in the car. If you don''t, I''ll drag you in." His sullen handsome face dimmed as he looked at Anne. They hadn''t seen each other for a while, but this woman''s temper had grown a lot. She clenched her fists and tried to suppress her anger. He was the one who asked her to get lost, but he frequently pop up in front her house. How ironic, wasn''t it? "Three¡­ Two¡­ One¡­ So you want to y it like that? Fine, I''ll carry you to the car." Few seconds had passed, but there was no responseing from Anne. Kevin slightly raised his eyebrows and immediately walked towards her. Realizing that he was serious, Anne knew that there was no way to stop him. Given her panic, she finally chose topromise. This man''s sense of superiority had cut her off from her right to refuse and the ability to contend with him. Seeing her get in the car obediently, he smiled. Then, he sat beside her. In order to get closer to Anne, he took his driver with him this time, so that he could sit next to her. His mood brightened together with his dark eyes when he felt her breath. "You frequently lost your tempertely. I didn''t expect you to be so grumpy," he chuckled when he saw her enraged. Anne looked cute when she was angry. What was she mad about? Was it because she cared about him? "Everyone has a temper. People would lose temper especially when ites to the person they least want to see," Anne retorted without looking at him. This man was indeed unbelievable. "The person they least want to see¡­are you referring to me?" His eyes narrowed a bit. His good mood suddenly became gloomy because of her statement. Damn it, this woman never failed to put him in such a bad disposition. "You had already answered it. Why do you still ask?" she fiercely replied. There was no trace of fear on her face. If this happened long ago, she would have worried that this man might hurt her, but now she had nothing to be frightened of. sping his fists, Kevin tried hard to hold back his rage. No woman had dared to talk to him in such a tone. This woman was undeniably brave! "Mr. Kevin, be frank if you want to tell me something. If you don''t have anything else, I''ll get off the car!" She did not want to spend one more second with him. It was painful to pretend to be casual in front of him. She felt that she was about to lose her guard. "Why are you in such a hurry to get off the vehicle? Is there another man waiting for you?" Aggravation was evident in his voice. He was unhappy when he thought of Sam, the man who was living with her. He was envious that he got to be with her day and night. Moreover, Sam still liked Anne. He felt robbed. Another man? What did he mean by saying that? Was he jealous? She turned around to look at him in bewilderment and smiled with self-mockery when she saw his nk look. How could this man be jealous because of her? At most, it was because of his possessiveness. "Regardless of whether I have a man or not, Sam is still waiting for me at home. I have to go back now." All of a sudden, an idea came to her mind. If Kevin believed that she had another man, he would not bother her anymore. As soon as she thought of this, she couldn''t resist using Sam as an excuse. After all, he was the most suitable person for this kind of situation. "What do you mean, Anne? Are you telling me that you are with Sam?" He looked at her coldly, and his dark eyes became malicious. If this woman really fell in love with another man, she would not let him go!" "What? If you can have another woman, why can''t I? We just took what we needed when we were together." Noticing that he became agitated, she thought this trick was effective. For a moment, she spoke deviously. After all, she was no longer terrified of what this man would do to her. "Took what we needed? How could you say such a thing?" Kevin felt his heart about to explode. He wanted to strangle her. "Why can''t I say it out loud? Isn''t it natural between men and women? Aren''t they together for sleeping? Aren''t you with Cherry to sleep with her?" A disdainful sneer appeared on her face. There was a frivolous tone in her words. He squeezed his fists, and his chest heaved violently because of anger. This woman had always been very reserved. They hadn''t seen each other for only more than a month, but she became too frivolous. Was she still the same Anne he knew? "Did you sleep with Sam?" He suddenly approached her. His ck eyes were burning as if they would spurt out mes at any time. The idea that this woman had slept with another man made him ufortable. His question made Anne''s false calmness slowly copse. As she looked at his face at a close distance, her heart beat faster. She tried her best to hold back her feelings for him. She snickered and put her arms around his neck out of the blue. Her pink thin lips approached his, and her breath was as fragrant as orchids. "It''s normal for a man to sleep with a woman. You should know that, Mr. Kevin." Her statement meant something. The frivolous smile on her face made Kevin want to throttle her. "Anne!" Kevin growled out Anne''s name and raised his hand. He wanted to beat her, but he did not know what was preventing him from doing it. Content rights belong to N?velDrama.Org. "Mr. Kevin, is there anything else you want to ask me?" Her charming smile remained, but there was a faint disappointment in her eyes as she looked at him. "You already slept with him. Good. Who do you think is better in bed? Sam or me?" Kevin''s face turned bitter, and the coldness around him made people feel as if they had fallen into an eighteenyer ice cer. "Well... I''ve been with him for a long time. I already forgot how I felt when I had sex with you," Anne said. She thought that this man must hate her so much now that he wouldn''t continue to trouble her. "Seriously? Have you forgotten? Do I need to remind you how it felt? After he said this, his tall body came over with fury on his face. "You¡­ What are you doing?" Anne felt a little flustered. His expression was so frightening. Did he really want to kill her? She felt good when she said those things to make him feel bad. But it was not until now that she felt how frightening this man was. If she told him that she regretted doing so, would he change his mind? "You said that you forgot how you felt when we had sex, right? I''ll let you relive it now!" Damn, that was good. Let her recall and know whose woman she was. "I¡­ I''m just kidding. Calm down. Let''s talk it through, okay?" Anne smiled awkwardly and shrank back to the corner. She wanted to distance herself from him, but the space in the car was too small that she was unable to dodge. Chapter 130 Watch A Movie Chapter 130 Watch A Movie "Don''t you think it''s toote for you to say that? Maybe I should show you who''s your man!" Kevin crushed his lips on Anne''s and kissed her hastily without giving her the chance to protest. Her lips didn''t change at all. They were still as sweet as before, the taste that he had been missing all this time. After she left, he couldn''t count how many times he had dreamed of her. Her mind suddenly went haywire and all she could do was open her eyes. When he felt that the woman didn''t refuse, he smiled in the kiss. He always knew that she had some feelings for him. Otherwise, she would have pushed him away. His kiss was dominating and filled with desire for the woman. Anne finally regained her senses when she felt the air got knocked out of her. When she recounted the rtionship she had with the man, she quickly struggled to get out of his grasp. Kevin frowned, displeased with her sudden resistance. He quickly held her head in ce and pulled her closer as he deepened the kiss. He didn''t believe that this woman had no feelings for him whatsoever. He kissed her for God-knows-how-long and only let her go when they had to breathe. "Who do you think is the best kisser now?" He raised his brows as his eyes darkened with lust for her. Once she got her bearing back, the woman red at him. She was confused as to why he kissed her out of nowhere. She was disgusted when she thought that the only reason he did that was to test whether he was a great kisser or not. "Are you crazy?" Anne wiped her lips aggressively as he tried to get rid of the man''s lingering kiss. She hated it whenever this man acted despicably towards her. "Wasn''t Sam crazy when he kissed you? Tell me, did you have sex with him?" He got enraged just by the thought that Anne had sex with him. He was so furious that he even considered killing Sam. "Do I have to answer your question? Do you even have the right to ask me about that?" she rebuked and looked at him coldly. This man knew nothing but extreme possessiveness. "I see you still have that foul-mouth of yours. Do you want me to teach you a lesson?" he asked in a warning tone after she had talked to him in a disrespectful manner. Anne stared daggers at Kevin. She wanted to scream and tell him how despicable he was but she decided to bite her tongue. She knew what type of man he was. If she annoyed him more, she would be the one to suffer in the end. "Stop the car. I want to get off!" she snapped at the secretary when she couldn''t bear her anger anymore. The secretary could only look at her through the rearview mirror. He heaved a sigh but continued to drive. It seemed that his boss''s n of getting his wife back wasn''t going well. "I said, I want to get off!" she yelled once again when the car didn''t stop. However, the driver ignored her plea. She wondered if the secretary was deaf. Otherwise, he would have pulled the car to a stop. "Do you think that I''d let you out of my car? Unless you jump out of here, you''re stuck with me," Kevin dismissed. It was hard enough to get her in the car. Why would he let her get off here easily? He still had a long n ahead. "What are you nning to do? Where are you taking me?" she demanded an answer. At the same time, she wondered how on earth she could get out of the car. "You''ll know it soon." He nced at Anne and sat up straight,pletely ignoring the woman beside him. He decided that he would investigate her rtionship with Sam. If what she said would true, he wouldn''t let him go. The reason why he had favored Sam to go to America with Anne was to take care of her and not to have his way towards her. Anne belonged to him alone. He wanted to ignore the woman''s icy re so he closed his eyes and pretended to be asleep. The car was fast. Soon enough, they arrived at their destination. Kevin opened his eyes the moment their vehicle stopped. He looked at Anne, whose forehead was creased with impatience and annoyance, with his dark and deep eyes. Anne was too focused on her anger that she failed to notice where they were. "We''re here," Kevin informed and got out of the car. The woman took a deep breath and tried to suppress her emotion before she went out of the car. She nced at the word ''Cinema'' that hung above and frowned slightly. She turned around and looked at him, displeased at the ce where they arrived. "Why did you bring me here?" she asked in a monotonous voiceced with impatience. The man must have gonepletely insane that he brought her here. "Obviously, we''re going to watch a movie," he answered with raised brows. ''Is this woman so stupid that she wasn''t able to see that he wanted to watch a movie with her?'' Kevin could vividly remember how his secretary told him that one of the most favorite things women did Content ? N?velDrama.Org. was watch a movie. "Watch a movie, huh?" she sneered at how ridiculous his idea was. Suddenly, she remembered that one time when he hugged Cherry inside the cinema while she stood outside for several hours. For a moment, she wondered if the man had forgotten about it already, or was he trying to reveal her scar? "Hey, what''s wrong?" He asked as he noticed that Anne''s tone was strange. His mood went down when he realized that she didn''t look that happy and excited as he was. He couldn''t decipher what the woman wanted to say with that look and tone. "What''s wrong with me? Can''t you see it yourself? I''m not interested in going and watching a movie with you. Just let me go home, it''s gettingte." Anne turned around and was about to leave but Kevin grabbed her arm. "If you''re not interested, then I am! Stop testing my patience. You know that I have limited patience." No matter how much he wanted to tolerate her, it was still hard to be rejected over and over again. He wanted to go crazy because of this woman''s treatment towards him. "I have limited patience too, Mr. Kevin. Now can you please stop disturbing my life? We both know that we have nothing to do with each other anymore." She wondered what she could do just to get this man out of her life. His logic was out of her grasp. She didn''t know if he had too much free time on his hand that he was too invested in disturbing her life. "Nothing to do with each other, huh? How could you say such things? I never agreed to that!" His strong and domineering voice rang on her ears. He strode towards her, his brows creased tightly. ''He was the one who proposed that they should end their rtionship so what the hell was his problem?'' "Mr. Kevin, aren''t you the one who proposed that we should put an end to our rtionship? I think you should go and get your facts right," she fired back. She could still recall the time when she gave birth to her baby. At the weakest point of her life, the time when she needed him the most, he kicked her out mercilessly. What was he trying to say now? "I want you back right this instant. You got a problem with that?" He noticed that she had changed. Her sharp tongue managed to talk back at him now. She even used his words just so she could get rid of him. ''Problem? Of course, I got a problem with you.'' She got her own life now. She didn''t have to follow whatever he wanted anymore. "Mr. Kevin, I''m not in the mood to watch a movie with you. Now please, if you''ll excuse me," she sighed in exasperation. She turned around once again and tried to leave. It seemed that Kevin was getting more and more overbearing. She didn''t want to deal with a person who only knew how to impose his ideas on others. It was too immature for her liking. Kevin fumed in rage inside upon her words. ''This damned woman!'' He walked towards her and aggressively grabbed her hand then pulled her inside the cinema. "Let go of me! I told you, I don''t want to watch a movie with you! Can''t you listen to me just this once?" she yelled. She hated the fact that this man never considered the feelings of others. He was too self- centered. He only cared about what he wanted. "You know how overbearing I am, Anne. Don''t test my patience!" he bellowed. He had pestered her to go with him in the most humble way he knew but she kept on testing him. It seemed that he had pampered her. "Kevin, let me go!" she protested. Anne was furious not just because he disturbed her but also because of how he treated her. No one deserved to be treated like this. Kevin held her hand tightly and ignored her refusals until they arrived at their designated seats. He enclosed her in his arms and kept her in ce. The movie started and the secretary was courteous enough to not follow them inside. "Kevin, let''s talk." Since she knew that the man would never let her go, Anne decided to talk to him instead. She knew how strange this man''s mind worked after all. "Talk about what? About youing back to me? If you have anything you want, just tell me," he offered. He was determined enough. He could make some concessions as long as the woman would return to him at the end of the day. Anne was speechless. She stared at him with widened eyes and her mouth hung open. She was at a loss of words at how clueless the man was at the subject that she wanted to talk about. "What I want to talk about is how you should never disturb my life anymore. Our rtionship is over. Can you please stop pestering me? Besides, you already have someone by your side. I refuse to be your woman." Cherry was her girlfriend now. So was he asking her to be his mistress by saying that he wanted her back? She wasn''t stupid and she was not that generous to share either! Chapter 131 Does It Bother You That I Have Another Woman Chapter 131 Does It Bother You That I Have Another Woman "Does it bother you that I have another woman?" Staring at Anne with his dark eyes, Kevin waited for her answer. If she would admit that she cared about his rtionship with Cherry, it would make everything so much easier. Right now, there was no other woman he wanted than Anne. If Anne was being truthful, she would say just how much she cared. However, no matter how much pain it was causing her, she would not speak it out. "Whether or not you have another woman around you does not concern me, Mr. Kevin. I''d prefer not to know about your personal rtions. If you may, please do note into my life ever again." There was a calmness in Anne''s eyes as she spoke, which made Kevin feel all the more flustered and angry. "If it is about anything else, we can talk it through. But about what you said, it''s non-negotiable." His voice boomed as his brows tightly knitted across his forehead. There was no chance he was going to let her escape from him. Anne was left speechless. With a helpless look on her face, she couldn''t figure out how she should make him understand what she was trying to say. "You only have two choices," he continued. "One, stay here and watch this movie with me. You can leave afterwards. Or two, you give yourself to me right at this instant!" Recently, the only thing Kevin was keen on doing was threats. Every time he didn''t get his way with Anne, he would throw harsh threats at her, thinking that it would work without fail. ''This man is getting really--!'' Never had she seen such a shameless man saying such horrible things to her! What she wanted to do right now was leave. However, his threat kept ringing in her ears. From the way she knew him, she knew that he kept his promises. If she left, this man might really try to force her into doing something she didn''t want to do. Defeated, she sat quietly beside him. With a content nod, he reached up and put his arm over her shoulders. All the while, Anne kept wishing that the movie would end soon. She remembered how he had watched a movie with Cherry, the two of them sitting beside each other so intimately. The difort she was feeling made it incredibly hard for her not to lean away from Kevin. Meanwhile, Kevin was having a hard time concentrating on the movie ying. From time to time, he would steal nces at Anne. It was rare for him to see her act so obediently like this. Anne, on the other hand, was trying to divert all her focus on the screen to keep her distracted. Eventually, it piqued her interest. The movie was about a young man and a young woman who went through a great number of setbacks. After fixing their rtionship, the two of them lived happily ever after. Seeing the heroine''s heartfelt smile at the end made Anne inexplicably flustered. She couldn''t help but rte to the two main characters, especially when they were going through all their problems. Although it ended on a good note, she still felt that things were not as simple in real life. As the credits started to roll, Anne was stillpletely immersed in the plot. How wonderful it would be if the same thing happened between her and Kevin! "So... Did you like it?" Seeing how quiet she was, Kevin raised his eyebrows and looked at her with amusement. It was just a silly, romance movie after all. The way Anne looked so deep in thought made him curious. Was she feeling as if she was the heroine of the movie? Regaining herposure, Anne took a deep breath and stood up. "Let''s go. You said you would let me leave after watching this with you." Without saying anything more, she stood up and walked out. With a frown, he clicked his tongue in annoyance as he watched her slender back. When she opened the door, he finally stood up and quickly followed her. Even though he still wasn''t content on how she was acting towards him, it was still much better than before. From the way he saw it, it seemed as if she really had feelings for him. The movie had helped a lot in breaking the ice between him and Anne, and Kevin was a bit thankful for his secretary for suggesting this to him. As they sat in the car, Anne just stared out the window and didn''t say a word. In her head, she was still thinking about the movie, and about her and Kevin. "Why are you quiet all of a sudden? Have you gotten dumb or something?" Kevin snorted, as he was not used to her sudden quietness. ''Could this man get any ruder?'' Rolling her eyes at him, Anne threw a sarcastic smile at him. "No." "Then why aren''t you say anything?" Her denial made Kevin a little dissatisfied. Was this woman deliberately not talking to him? "Say what? Is there anything to say between us?" All she wanted to do was be quiet while she thought about things. Couldn''t she do that in peace? As Kevin heard this, his hands tightened on the steering wheel. "Yes! And there is actually a lot to talk about!" ''Damn it! Is she telling me that she still has nothing to say to me?!'' "What do you want me to say, Mr. Kevin? I''m all ears," she said in an indifferent tone. This left Kevin speechless. When he didn''t say anything, Anne shrugged and looked back out the window. "Say my name, damn it! I don''t want to hear you call me Mr. Kevin anymore. Do you understand?" ''Why is she still calling me that?! It''s as if we never had anything special between us!'' It was undeniable that they had done every intimate thing that a couple were supposed to do. ''This man is so overbearing to order me like that,'' Anne thought angrily. "Anne, do you love me?" Ignoring her indifference, he looked at her intensely. His low voice shook with emotion. Shocked, she turned back to look at him. This man''s question was really unexpected. It was so uncharacteristic of him to ask such thing. Was he really serious? Or was he just being crazy again? A secondter, sheughed at herself for overthinking the situation. She was sure that he was only asking this because of his unreasonable possessiveness. Looking out of the window again, she decided not to answer his question at all. "Anne, look into my eyes and answer my question!" HIs voice echoed in the car when he saw how she had ignored him, "I don''t want to answer such a meaningless question. There are so many women who love you. If you want to hear something sweet, you can ask them. I think they will be very happy to answer your question." Why did he ask such a question? His sweetheart obviously loved him so much. He should ask her, shouldn''t he? Why did he suddenly ask her this? "Anne!" His heart was instantly filled with anger. This damn woman actually suggested that he ask someone else! "Yes?" she answered nonchntly, deaf and oblivious to his anger. There was no way she was going to allow herself to hope that their rtionship would be mended. Thest thing she wanted to feel was the sadness and disappointment she felt when they had first parted ways. When Kevin heard her response, his face darkened, but he couldn''t lose his temper inexplicably. The more he did, the more he feared that he might push her away for good. "If you care that I have other women around me, I promise you that I will take care of that." When he said these words, he meant it wholeheartedly. If only Anne was willing toe back into his life, she would be the only woman he would love for the rest of his life. He had not wanted someone as much as he wanted her. That would mean that he would have to get rid of Cherry, which he was more than willing to do for Anne. It was true that Cherry''s mother had saved him. However, he was not some saint. He was not about to let the love of his life slip from his fingers just because he owed someone''s kindness. ''He''ll take care of it?'' Anne thought skeptically. How was he going to do that? She knew that Cherry was his sweetheart. Was he really willing to leave her? On second thought, maybe he was just offering her another agreement so as to keep her by his side for a longer term. Thinking of this, Anne felt pitiful for herself. It was ridiculous that she was still holding up hope that she could have her ''happily ever after'' with this man. "Do you have any other conditions?" Seeing that she didn''t say anything, Kevin asked with a frown. "Do you think there are always ''conditions'' in this world?" This man always put forward conditions to her. Did he think that she was a woman who put interest above everything? Or maybe he just thought so right from the beginning. "So are you telling me that you don''t want anything from me?" There was no emotion on his face, and it was hard to tell whether he was happy or angry from his tone. She looked at him angrily. What did he mean? When did she want anything from him? It was as if he was bound to misunderstand her all the time. Why couldn''t he just listen to her words carefully and figure it out? At that moment, she figured that he was still thinking that she was the one Text ? 2024 N?velDrama.Org. who did that awful thing to Ruth. "If I say that Ruth''s death has nothing to do with me," Anne started, saying each word as carefully as she could, "and that I had nothing to do with the fact that she was pushed down the stairs, would you believe me?" Thinking of the things he had misunderstood her for, she couldn''t help but feel sad. She was "I''ll send someone to investigate it. If you didn''t do it, then you didn''t." In fact, he really didn''t believe that Ruth''s death was caused by Anne. But the surveince video at that time was as clear as day that it was impossible to deny. "Investigate? So are you saying you still don''t believe me? Look, if a part of you still thinks that I''m some vicious woman, why are you still trying to be together with me? Won''t you be doing yourself a favor if you just let me disappear from your life forever?" Just like that, her heart flooded with pain again. Even up until now, he didn''t believe her, and it was just so disappointing for her to know that. How she wished this man could believe her once. Just once... But now, she knew that wasn''t going to happen. "Come on! The only thing I want is you. Why can''t you just let me have what I want?" ''Damn it! She is so annoying!'' Even if she didn''t do it, he still needed time to find out the truth to prove her innocence. If he couldn''t prove her innocence, it wouldn''t matter whether or not he believed her. Others would still think that she was some criminal. However, being his woman and believing in her were twopletely different things. Anne didn''t know why he just couldn''t understand that. Sighing helplessly, she stared out into the window, suddenly feeling emotionally drained. The car zoomed along the highway. Soon enough, they reached the building where she and Sam lived in. "Thank you for taking me home," Anne said. Before Kevin could say another word, she quickly got out of the car and closed the door behind her. Chapter 132 Being Followed Chapter 132 Being Followed Kevin couldn''t help but feel mildly irked as he watched Anne''s receding figure. He had done so many things for her these past few days yet he had barely made any progress. If his secretary hadn''t advised him to take it slow, he wouldn''t have hesitated to use force. After all, the only times he could get her to be obedient before was when he used force. "Mr. Kevin, I think you''re making progress with your rtionship with Miss Anne." His secretary nced at him through the rearview mirror, a hint of excitement flickering in his eyes. "What made you say that?" Kevin said coldly, rolling his eyes. Anne wasn''t even taking him seriously! "At least you two didn''t fight on your way back..." his secretary muttered, shrinking back in fear under Kevin''s sharp gaze. In the past, Anne and Kevin would be at each other''s throats every second they spent together. While it was certainly a stretch to call this progress, it was better than nothing. At the very least, they weren''t constantly quarreling anymore. "Just focus on driving!" Kevin spat as he looked out the window, visibly annoyed. Seeing the displeasure on Kevin''s face, the secretary shut his mouth and continued to drive in silence. "Where were you? Why are youing home sote? I tried calling you but couldn''t get through." As soon as Anne arrived home, Sam hurriedly walked towards her, a worried look on his face. "You called me?" Perplexed, Anne took out her phone only to find that it had been turned off. It must have been Kevin. Only he would be capable of doing something so childish. "What happened? Where were you? You were out for so long," Sam pressed, eyeing her carefully. This time, he noticed that she seemed noticeably pale. "It''s nothing. I just spent some time outside by myself. My phone might have run out of power. That''s probably why I didn''t receive your calls." Anne shed him an awkward smile, purposely omitting Kevin''s name. He could tell that she was embarrassed. It was also obvious that she was lying but he decided not to mention it. "Have you eaten?" He changed the topic. Just seeing the look on her face was enough to tell him whom she had really been with the entire time she was out. "Not yet. I''m going to prepare dinner now." She was a little hungry after being out for so long. "Why don''t we just go out for dinner? You haven''t had a proper meal since you arrived here." Honestly, he just didn''t want to eat her unseasoned food anymore. "I''m going to change my clothes. Wait for me." She then headed upstairs to change her clothes. About half an hourter, they arrived at a western restaurant. It was a rather romantic restaurant much to Sam''s excitement. Meanwhile, Anne just didn''t have the heart to refuse. After all, it was just a meal. He knew perfectly well that she only saw him as a friend. The two of them were very clear about this. From a distance, Kevin sat in his ck Ferrari sports car, a sour look on his face. They had just barely parted ways and she was already having dinner at a romantic restaurant with Sam. What did she take Kevin for anyway? As he watched her smile and chat happily with Sam inside the restaurant, anger surged inside him. Had she forgotten about him already? How could she act as if nothing had happened between them? "I heard they have great food here. You should eat more. You''ve been looking a little thin nowadays." The two sat across from each other. Seeing her face so ashen and sallow, Sam couldn''t help but feel bad for her. He had foolishly thought that bringing her to America would make her feel better. It seemed that no matter where she was, Kevin still haunted her heart. "Okay. Thank you, Sam." Sensing Sam''s concern, Anne smiled stiffly at him. She looked out of the window in an attempt to hide her emotions. Sadness overcame her but she had to pretend to be fine in front of Sam as she didn''t want him to worry about her anymore. "I''ve already told you that you shouldn''t be so polite to me. I thought we were friends." Her courteousness towards him made him feel quite ufortable. If Kevin couldn''t make her happy, he shouldn''t add to her suffering anymore. "It''s just that you''ve helped me so much. I don''t know what else to say but to thank you." " He was the one who was there for her when she was going through the most difficult times of her life. As much as she was moved by his friendship, she couldn''t give him what he wanted. "I did all those things because I wanted to. Don''t dwell on it. All I care about is your happiness. You shouldn''t stress about it." For the first time in his life, he felt strongly about protecting someone. Yet even then, he couldn''t make her happy. He felt so useless and lost. Upon hearing this, she only felt guiltier. How nice it must be if he was the person she loved and not Kevin. "If only he could trust me and care about me as much as you do..." Anne murmured as she lowered her head. ''If only Kevin could care about me and love me as much as Sam did,'' she thought to herself. Although she spoke in a low voice, Sam still heard her clearly. He knew that she still couldn''t let go of Kevin. For a moment, he felt upset. "Anne, are you still thinking about him? If you want toe back to him, I can help you." He knew that she only saw him as a friend¡ªnothing more and nothing less. Kevin was the only one who could make her happy. "Until now, he still believes that I had something to do with Ruth''s death and that I''m the one who murdered her. How could we possibly be together?" An ironic smile tugged at the corners of her mouth. Her heart was filled with bitterness knowing that this was what Kevin believed about her. No matter how many times she tried to exin herself, he still stood by his belief that she was a murderer. Text ? 2024 N?velDrama.Org. "Don''t worry. Soon enough, he''ll find out the truth. I believe you and I know you''d never be able to do something like that." He knew her very well. As far as he was concerned, she had nothing but goodness inside her. How could she kill someone? It was obvious that someone had set her up. "Thank you for believing me. Either way, I don''t care if he believes me or not." More than anything, she was disappointed in Kevin. She''d tried to exin herself so many times already yet he refused to believe her every time. "Let''s eat. We shouldn''t dwell on such negative things. Just forget about them. Let''s go for a walkter. I haven''t taken you to a walk since we arrived here in America." He didn''t want Anne focus on the negative things anymore so he decided to change the topic. "Okay." Anne shed him a grin, shoving Kevin at the back of her mind. She had decided then that she was going to forget about him and cut him off for good. During dinner, Sam purposely told lighthearted stories to make Anne feel better. Fortunately, it seemed to work. Kevin sat in his car, watching as the two had dinner and enjoyed each other''spany. Needless to say, he was stewing in anger. Damn it! Why did she seem so happy around Sam? When she was around Kevin, she barely spared him a smile! "Would you like some more dessert?" Sam asked thoughtfully after they had dinner, seeing that Anne had lightened up. "No, thanks. I already ate a lot. Let''s go." Thankfully, she was feeling a lot better. Her appetite had improved too as she seemed to have had a good meal. "Okay." Tenderness filled his eyes. Knowing that she felt better because of him made him feel inexplicably happy. "Isn''t the night sky beautiful in America too?" Sam quipped when silence fell upon them. He figured if Anne grew quiet, she could end up thinking about Kevin again. "Well, that''s good." She couldn''t bring herself to enjoy the lovely scenery as she couldn''t get her mind off Kevin. It still pained her to remember her hurtful past with him. Amidst the biting cold, Anne shivered, wearing only a thin dress. "Here. Put it on. I forgot to remind you to bundle up." He took off his coat and draped it over her shoulders, looking at her fondly. "Thank you." She averted her gaze, purposely looking away so as to avoid his loving gaze. The more he showed affection for her, the guiltier she felt. Seeing that she didn''t refuse, he smiled from ear to ear. Meanwhile, the ck car continued to trail the two from a distance. Kevin glued his gaze on the two, fuming. Suddenly, a strange feeling overcame Anne as if she could feel someone staring at her. She looked back and found nothing but the uneasiness in her chest didn''t go away. "Sam, it''s gettingte. Let''s go back. I''m tired and I want to go to bed." Unable to ignore her difort, she looked at Sam with an odd expression on her face. "What''s wrong? Are you not feeling well?" Noticing the uneasy look on Anne''s face, Sam seemed concerned as he returned her gaze. "No, I''m fine. I''m just a little tired." She couldn''t quite put her finger on it but she just couldn''t shake off the feeling that someone was watching her. Was she just overthinking things? Chapter 133 Flushed With Anger Chapter 133 Flushed With Anger Seeing the unnatural expression on Anne''s face, Sam frowned worriedly and then nodded in agreement. "Okay. It''ste now. You must be tired. Let''s go back." Sensing that she was vague, Sam didn''t want to force her to do anything. It was not until she got in the car that Anne felt the ufortable feeling behind her disappeared. She didn''t know why but she felt Kevin''s intimidating presence around the perimeter. What was wrong with here? Was she still dreaming about him? "What are you thinking about? You looked distracted just now," asked Sam as he turned to Anne with a gentle smile on his handsome face. "Nothing. It was nothing." Anne concealed the fact that she was thinking of Kevin in her heart just now. "If you are exhausted, just close your eyes and take a rest. I will wake you up once we get home." Sam spoke in a soft, calming voice as he looked at Anne with a pair of gentle eyes. He didn''t want her to be bothered by Kevin all the time anymore. "Okay." It happened that Anne was not in the mood to face the concerned eyes of Sam. After saying that, she reclined her seat, leaned against it, and closed her eyes. All Anne could think about was Kevin. With a scowl, she tried to get rid of the thought of him, but no matter what she did, it was useless. Kevin''s face seemed to be engraved in her mind. No matter how hard she tried distracting her thoughts, his face lingered still in her senses. She lost track of how long the car had been running. And finally, her weary frame gave up to the drowsiness. She managed to get rid of Kevin''s figure in her mind and fell asleep in her seat. When they arrived home, Sam parked the car steadily in the driveway. He had thought of multiple ways to wake up Anne but when she saw her sleeping soundly, he couldn''t bear to do so. This could have been her first quality sleep since God knew when. In her deep sleep, Anne moved a limb, and Sam''s borrowed coat slipped down from her shoulder. She was quiet as a feline when she was asleep. Without the usual indifference and alienation, she was particrly cute in Sam''s eyes. He leaned forward and gently tucked her in his coat. He didn''t want her to catch a cold at this hour. She was not in the best health condition, so he had to take good care of her. The moonlight glistened on Anne''s face through the window and coated her with a faint luster. Being that close to her face, Sam was tempted to kiss her. Perhaps she felt something move in her seat that woke her up. She slowly opened her eyes. When she saw Sam''s gorgeous face being so close to him, Anne was stunned for a moment. She felt awkward as soon as she came to her senses. "Sam? Sam, what are you doing?" The two of them were so close to each other that they could hear each other''s breath. Anne was a bit flustered. It was the first time she had seen Sam in a close-up. Although they were good friends, the two maintained an indescribable outlook of ambiguity. At first, Sam was lost in thought as he stared at Anne. When he heard her voice, he came to an epiphany. For a moment, the atmosphere fell into an awkward situation. "No, nothing. I just saw my coat fall off and I just wanted to cover you up." Sam looked away in a hurry and quickly thought of a suitable reason to prevaricate the silly circumstance. Upon hearing that, Anne couldn''t help but take a look at her clothes. Seeing that what he said was true, she breathed a sigh of relief. The embarrassment just now somewhat escaped through the window gaps. This content ? N?v/elDr(a)m/a.Org. "Didn''t you say you will wake me up when we arrive? You could have tapped my shoulder." Anne had no idea how long she had slept in the car just now. She felt uneasy when she thought of the fact that Sam had been sitting there right beside her all this time. "I just saw you sleeping so soundly. I didn''t have the heart to wake you up. You haven''t had a good rest for quite some time now that''s why I hesitated to disturb you in your sleep." Sam was true to his words. His eyes shed concern when he looked at Anne. Although it was just a typical concern, Anne felt more embarrassed. She knew clearly how he felt about her. "Let''s go inside. It''s gettingte." It was such apact space in the car, and the ambiance would only be more awkward from then on if the two stayed there alone. "You''re right. Let''s go inside." Sam saw right through Anne''s mind. Although he felt a bit disappointed, he still kept a subtle smile on his face. He was like a burst of warm sunshine to people. He made them feel warm and homely. After entering the house, Anne gave back his coat and greeted him good night before she entered her room. Her body-warmth still lingered on his coat which made his heart tremble intensely. He had just felt her alienation. With a ridiculed smile, Sam walked into his room. He knew that she just treated him as a friend, but that was no excuse for him to lose his patience. What happened with Kevin traumatized her so much that Sam had an impulse to take her in his arms and secure her all his life. If she was willing to, he would protect her all the time. He would love her well, keep her safe from harm, and never let her suffer any pain. But even so, he was just a friend to her. It never went any farther from there. From the beginning to the end, she only cared about Kevin. In the car, Kevin looked at the distance with his obscure eyes. His dark eyes shed with coldness, and his aura was intimidating. "Find out about the rtionship between Sam and Anne!" Making a quick call, Kevin spoke to the man at the other end of the phone superciliously. "Okay, Mr. Kevin. I''ll look into it right away." Although it waste at night, the temperature was crisp, yet the secretary couldn''t help but perspire when he felt his boss''s anger through the phone. After hanging up the phone, Kevin took another look at the house where Anne lived, and then viciously stepped on the gas pedal and left in a second. Lying on the bed, Anne had a hard time sleeping. Thinking of the way Sam looked at her just now, she felt dibobted and began to doubt whether she had done something that made him misunderstand her. She loved him, but only as her best friend. She never wanted to add any hint of impurities, nor did she want it to go bad. She sighed helplessly. In her conscience, she had decided to find an opportunity to clear things out with Sam. If the confusion continued, it would most likely end with them not being friends at all. After some time, she finally fell asleep. She must have been tired from thinking things through. But her beauty rest was far fromsting. Her phone rang abruptly. When she saw that the caller ID shed Kevin''s name, she hung up decisively. Since this man made it clear that he had no intention of letting her see their child, why would she even bother seeing him? She begged countless times, but it was useless. After Anne hung up the phone, Kevin flushed with anger. This damn woman dared not to answer his call just now. It was very bold of her to do such a thing. With her sleep interrupted, Anne no longer felt drowsy. She just shut her eyes even though her mind was wide awake and forced herself not to muse about Kevin. But this man was insisting. He dialed her number again and called immediately. She hung up the second time around, but this time she received a message. "Anne, if you don''t answer my call, you won''t be able to see your child for the rest of your life." When she saw the word ''child'', her heart jumped fiercely. Her eyes glistened with sadness. What else could this man do except threaten her? When Anne was lost in her various fancies and conjectures, her phone rang again. It was Kevin''s third call. But this time, without any hesitation she answered the phone. "What on earth do you want me to do to see my baby?" she asked about the child as soon as she picked up the call. "Come out to see me in two minutes. I''m waiting outside." Ignoring Anne''s anxious opener, Kevin spoke unhappily at the thought that Anne dared to hang up on him. "Where on earth is my son? Will you please let me see him?" Anne asked eagerly the second time around, looking for his son''s whereabouts. "Don''t make me repeat what I just said!" After uttering these unsympathetic words, Kevin hung up the phone bluntly this time. ''Damn it! The woman only has the baby in her mind! Couldn''t she see anyone else?'' Hearing the beeping sound of a hung-up call, Anne was so angry that she wanted to send her phone flying. But in order to see her child, she had to endure this menacing man. She put on her clothes and rushed downstairs double time, but as soon as she ran towards Kevin''s car, he drove away at full speed. Anne stared at the disappearing rear lights with her still puffy eyes. What was that all about? He left as soon as she walked towards him. Was this a game of revenge? Anne was left confused. She took out her phone angrily and dialed Kevin''s number. "Hello?" he answered in a stoic voice. "What''s the meaning of this? You asked me toe out and now you left. Is this some kind of joke?" Anne''s tone spelled the word frustration. Her anger caused her face to flush red, which made her skin rosy like a peach. Too bad for Kevin, he was not there to see her charming color. If he saw her like this, he would definitely want to have sex with her. "I just said I''ll give you two minutes. You were three minuteste!" ''The heck! How dare she me me? She was the one who kept me waiting,'' he thought. Kevin''s words left Anne in disbelief, but she too was furious. She was only three minuteste, but this man was insanely punctual. With Anne dumbstruck with his silly promptness, Kevin ended the phone call. He thought, ''This woman didn''t even exin why she waste. What was she doing in the house for so long? Was she with Sam?'' Chapter 134 Threatened Chapter 134 Threatened When Kevin had thought of this possibility, he suddenly felt an urge to kill. Last night, Anne and Sam were so intimate with each other. He couldn''t help but doubt whether it was Sam who was the main reason as to why Anne suddenly turned cold to him now. Anne got really furious when another phone call was hung up. When would this man n to answer her calls? Wasn''t he tired of hanging up the phone over and over? In order to see the child, she tried her best to control her temper a little more and called him again. The phone rang for a long time. When Kevin had seen the name on the phone screen, he smiled teasingly. He was happy with the thought that Anne still couldn''t let him go. "What''s up?" At that time, he was slowly driving with confidence, but he sounded cold as usual. "Where are you now? Let''s have a talk. I''m still at the door," Anne said calmly, trying to suppress the anger in her heart. "Will you hang up on me when I call you then?" Kevin smiled widely. Finally, Anne had vented out what she really felt. It seemed to have been fulfilling to know that she wanted his attention, but he still managed to pretend unhappy. "I promise I won''t do that again. I''ll wait for you at the door. Can youe back for a while?" This man always used Anne''s weakness to threaten her. He was totally unbelievable and shameless. Was there a feeling of satisfaction in him when he threatened her this way? As expected of him, he hung up the phone without saying a word. Anne got totally upset after being hung up for a couple of times. Kevin was so rude to her. He did nothing but irritate her every time. She even had a second thought about talking to him. Although she wasn''t sure of what Kevin meant, she tried to convince herself that he woulde. It was supposed to be only a three-minute drive, but Kevin deliberately drove slowly. He really wanted Anne to lose all the patience she had. It even took him ten minutes before the car pulled over beside her. The window of the car slowly rolled down, and his handsome face appeared in front of Anne. He was wearing a pair of big sses, so his emotions could not be clearly seen at the moment. "Good morning!" Anne didn''t know if he was in a good moor or not. Nevertheless, she tried to initiate the greetings to ease the awkwardness between them. "Are you going to talk to me at the door?" Kevin looked at her nkly and said in a quite intimidating tone. Anne was a bit stunned when she heard him speak in such way. After a moment, she quickly opened the door and got in. As soon as she sat down, the car sped away. She turned her eyes to Kevin''s face. He could hardly be read. His expression was stoic whilst driving on the road. "Kevin, where will you bring us both?" "You will know it soon." Kevin ignored her right after answering her question. He did noty his eyes on her even once. Anne frowned in displeasure. Why did this man be so cold today? What was his problem? He was undeniably enigmatic. The car was running at a high speed. For half an hour, Kevin remained still and silent. The atmosphere inside his car was really awkward. At first, Anne wanted to ask directly about her baby, but she was afraid of how he might react, so she had to hold back the questions in her mind and keep the anxiety to herself. "Kevin, where on earth are you taking me? We have driven for a long time." They car had been driven far away, yet this man didn''t tell her where he was taking her. She was anxious of the thought that he might get irritated any time and he would just throw her on the halfway. If that happened, how would she be able toe back? "Where do you think you can go? Of course to my ce. Do you want to live with Sam all the time?" Every time that Kevin had thought of Anne and Sam living together under the same roof, he couldn''t manage to control his rage. Anne was his woman and he would not definitely allow her to be with another man. This content ? N?v/elDr(a)m/a.Org. "No, I won''t go. Stop the car, I want to get off!" What was wrong with this man? Why would he insist that she go to his ce? She just wanted to know about her child. "Are you sure you won''t go?" Kevin felt so much discontentment with Anne''s refusal. How could she refuse with no hesitation? "No!" Anne said firmly. There was no rtionship between them anymore. Why would she even go to his ce? Besides, she just had made her mind to forget him. If not for the child, she wouldn''t even dare talk to him at all. This woman refused him for the second time. That was a smooth refusal which only exacerbated the atmosphere in the car. Suddenly, the car screeched to a halt. Anne''s eyes were filled with anger, and there was a hint of fear in them. She wondered what would be Kevin''s next n. "Kevin, are you crazy? Don''t you know it''s dangerous? What if the car behind hit you?" "If you don''t want to go, get out of here right now. But if you do so, you will never see the child again!" ''Damn it! This woman is really asking for trouble!'' Anne was about to open the door, but when she heard the word ''child'', she froze on her seat. After a moment of silence, she sat back obediently, having no choice but to go with him. Kevin continued on their way. She had high hopes that she would see her child there. Anne couldn''t help but feel excited with the thought of finally seeing her own child. At least at this point in time, she had finally calmed down and chose to feel better for her child. "Okay, I''ll go!" she said obstinately and averted her eyes right after. This time, her eyes were full of determination. Kevin was relieved when she had changed her mind and his face softened. The car went on and soon arrived at the huge vi. Anne went out of the car immediately. Her eyes dazzled when sheid her eyes on the huge vi. She couldn''t help but admire the luxurious life that Kevin always had. He even had a big mansion in America, however it was not often visited, so it was simply a waste. "What are you waiting for? Follow me!" Kevin said loudly when he saw her standing in front of the door in daze. ''What''s wrong with her? I found her to be easily angered. But does she also be dumb?'' When she came to her senses, she followed Kevin into the vi quickly. She felt her heart pounding so fast as they got closer to the vi. Her heart was fluttering with the thought of seeing her child. Finally, she went in the living room and looked around for her child. "What are you looking at?" You are looking around my big house? It''s beautiful, isn''t it?" Anne didn''t take time to look at Kevin which made him unhappy. "I already followed you here. Can I now see my child?" Anne said in a serious tone with her eyes full of hope. "Have I told you that I allow you to see the baby?" It was about the baby again. Did this woman only care for her baby all the time? He was also there for her to care about. Did she even know that he was her man? How could she ignore him like this? "Kevin, what do you mean? You promised me. How can you break your promise?" Anne looked at Kevin sharply. What did this man mean? Was he ying tricks on her again? "When did I promise you that I would let you see the baby? You think too fast, don''t you?" Kevin raised his eyebrows and gave her an antipathetic look. This woman was so naive. He just threatened her that she would not see her baby again, but he did not literally meant that he was going to let her see the baby today. Her brain was still as shallow as before, easy to manipte when threatened with her weakness. "Kevin, you bastard! How dare you lie to me?" Anne was fooled by this man again. He had made her suffer from the time of her pregnancy until now that she already gave birth of her child. How cruel he really was! He did not have conscience in his heart. "I didn''t lie to you. That''s what you thought. Don''t be so naive. Keep in mind that no matter how good a man is to you, he may tend to be untrue." The man whom Kevin referred to was of course, Sam. He couldn''t afford to lose her woman to another man. He just couldn''t address his anger properly. "What do you mean?" Anne couldn''t understand what Kevin was pointing out, but she became more unhappy to hear his tone. "Don''t you understand what I mean? You''d better exin to me the rtionship between you and Sam!" ''Damn it, how could she pretend not to understand?'' Anne was overly infuriated over the skeptical look on Kevin''s face. "Why should I exin to you? We both have nothing to do with each other now." Why was this man so domineering? It was not like she was obliged to tell him about her rtionship with Sam because the contract of their rtionship was now useless. "Anne, don''t you dare repeat what you just said!" Kevin felt his temples throbbing. His face turned gloomy. This foolish woman was bing more pugnacious. "It will always be the same answer no matter how many times I say it. Kevin, I came here for my child, just for my child. What else do I have to do to see my child? Tell me!" Annepletely lost her patience. Her eyes were burning in so much hatred towards Kevin. She had been threatened and disappointed at the same time for countless times by Kevin. She had enough of it! "Anne! Are you pissing me off?" Kevin matched her anger with his intimidating eyes. Why was it so difficult to make her exin about her rtionship with Sam? He would never put Sam at ease if he found out that there was something that went on between him and Anne. His woman could only belong to him. He would never allow anyone to touch and own her! Anne was prepared to face his wrath no matter what. Although, she was a bit scared of his anger, she would definitely go against him at any cost for the sake of her beloved child. Chapter 135 How Dare She Curse Me! Chapter 135 How Dare She Curse Me! "Kevin, what on earth you want me to do so that I can see my child? I am the mother of this child! You''ve gone way too far now!" As her voice shook, Anne tried her best to control her emotions. However, it was just impossible to keep her anger in. "I''ve gone too far? Do you even hear what you''re saying right now? How dare you speak like that to me!" The only reason this was happening was because he wanted her toe back to him as soon as possible. Of course, Anne didn''t know it at that time. ''Damn it! This darn woman doesn''t know me at all!'' Never in his life had he wanted a woman as much as he wanted Anne. It frustrated him that he had failed again and again to bring her back into his life. How could a man as arrogant as he was ept defeat like that? All of the other women desperately wanted to be around him. Because of this, it made it hard for him to understand why Anne didn''t want him. What was more, she constantly challenged his patience all the time. "Kevin, please let me have a look at the baby. Just one look..." Softening her voice, she figured that it was better it she kept her cool and tried to gently persuade him. Right now, there was nothing she wanted more than to see her child. This sudden change of attitude left him stunned for a moment. He almost wanted to say yes to her, but when he thought about her unwillingness again toe back to him, the anger came surging back up at his heart. "I will ask my secretary to bring your luggage. From this day on, you''ll be living with me." With a scoff, Kevin turned around and went upstairs, not bothering to wait for Anne''s reply. A bitter frown appeared on her lips. Not only was she not allowed to see her baby, but now she was forced to stay here! Things could not have gotten any worse at this point. "I''m not staying here, Kevin! I want to leave!" With long strides, she quickly caught up to him, her voice booming with anger. Why couldn''t this man let her go? There was no way to control all the fury bottled up inside of her. They were supposed to be out of each other''s hair by now. Both of them had their own lives to live. Frustrated and helpless, she was so fed up with Kevin trying to mess up her life. "It''s not up to you whether you live here or not. I''ve made my decision." Kevin stopped and stared at Anne with his dark and deep eyes. His voice was as menacing as his stare. How could this man be so domineering? It was as if he had no empathy at all! "You bastard! Will you stop it and think about other people before you think about yourself?! You always think you know what''s best for everyone, but you don''t!" She gritted her teeth as she held back the tears brimming in her eyes. Even though she knew she could no longer change his mind, she had to try. ''Bastard? This woman... How dare she curse me! Who does she think she is?!'' "I dare you to say that to me again." ''If she dares say anything like that again, I swear I''ll drag her into bed whether she likes it or not! I''ll show her what a real bastard I can be!'' When Anne was about to repeat what she thought of him, she saw the anger flickering in his eyes. Her heart trembled in fear. Feeling the aura he emanated, she knew that he would do something rash if she tried to push his limits even more. Despite this, she was not willing to be controlled and stepped on like this. "Please," Anne said in a soft voice. "Just let me have a look at the baby. I promise I won''t make you angry again, okay?" Looking up at him, she tried to look as pitiful as possible, hoping that maybe he would finally feel sorry for her. It worked, and Kevin''s gaze softened, and for a while there was a torn look on his face. "If you stay with me and don''t make a fuss, I''ll let you see the child." Content rights belong to N?velDrama.Org. At the back of his mind, he thought that if she would juste back to him of her own will, he would let her see the child. Of course he wanted the child''s mother to stay with him. Nothing would be better that that. "You promise you''ll let me see my child if I stay here?" Anne raised her chin as she spoke in a serious tone. It was important for her to see her child, after all. If staying here with Kevin was the price to pay, she would willingly do it. "Don''t try and negotiate with me now. If you even dare to leave, you will never be able to see the kid ever again! I can guarantee you that." As the days passed by, Anne was getting colder and colder towards him. Even though he wanted her to be there, her attitude was not something he was willing to tolerate, and he was thinking of using some special method if she didn''t change. After saying these cold words, he shed another hard look at her before walking straight into the bedroom. Looking at the closed door, her hands clenched up into fists at her side. Angry tears streamed down her big, beautiful eyes. ''Threats! That''s the only thing that man ever does to me!'' For the child''s sake, she knew she had to follow his rules, even though she really wanted to get out of there. He had threatened her that she wouldn''t be able to see her child again if she left, and she wasn''t going to risk that. Meanwhile, Kevin''s secretary shook his head helplessly as he witnessed how badly his boss had treated Anne. ''It''s getting worse and worse,'' the secretary sighed. No woman would want to be treated harshly. It was just too bad for Kevin that he was just so cold all the time and not good at expressing his emotions. The secretary wordlessly took her things up to the bedroom right beside Kevin''s. For a second, Anne hesitated. She didn''t want to in a room that was so close to his. Taking a deep breath, she figured she had no choice. ''At least he''s not making me stay in his room,'' she thought to herself. Looking around the bedroom, she had to admit that it was very elegant and luxurious. However, it didn''t feel like a ce she could call home. After the secretary left, she sat down on the big, soft bed. With a heavy heart, she thought about everything that happened. It was as if there was nothing she could do to go against Kevin''s overbearingness. At that moment, her phone suddenly rang. Looking at the screen, she saw Sam''s name lighting up. She suddenly remembered that she hadn''t told him that she had been brought here by Kevin. "Hey, Sam," she greeted with a half-hearted enthusiasm. "Anne, it''s gettingte. Why haven''t youe home yet? Come on, tell me where you are. I''ll pick you up." On the other end of the phone came Sam''s anxious voice. Normally, Anne wouldn''t stay out thiste without telling him. Hearing how much he cared warmed Anne''s heart. It was nice to hear someone who cared about her after all that shouting Kevin had done to her, despite knowing that Sam wanted more than just being her friend. "I''m... I''m in Kevin''s vi now. I think I''ll have to live here in the meantime. Please don''t worry about me. I''m fine, okay?" she said softly in a calm tone. "What? You''re at Kevin''s house? Why? Are you getting back together with him?" When Sam heard the news that Anne and Kevin were together, his heart trembled. It feared him that he might lose her forever. "No, it''s not what you think. Kevin and I will never be together anymore. You know that. I''m just doing this for the baby. I''m willing to do anything Kevin asks of me as long as I can be around my kid," she exined to him patiently. A pained look appeared in her eyes as she spoke. At this point, she had done everything just to be with her child. If Kevin still wouldn''t allow her to be with her baby, she just might go crazy. "You''re so much better than this, Anne." Even though she was trying to sound happy, Sam could hear the sadness in her voice. It cause him indescribable pain to know that there was little that he could do. Before, Sam had hoped that she would finally return to Kevin and be happy. However, after being around her for a long time, his feelings for her slowly developed. Even though he knew that Anne just saw him as a friend, he still couldn''t help falling in love with her. "I don''t really have a choice right now. I might stay here for a while. Please. Don''t worry." Somehow, although his wordsforted her, it still made her sad. "No. Come on. I''ll pick you up and I''ll help you with the baby. I''ll help you get through this, Anne." He was flustered when he thought of the fact that she and Kevin lived under the same roof, and that was mainly because he was afraid that she would fall in love with Kevin again. What was more, the child was not even in this country at all. At that time, he just didn''t want her to hurt herself, which was why he lied to her. He didn''t expect that things would turn out like this. "No, thanks. You''ve already helped me a lot. I want to thank you for all of the nice things you''ve done for me." Although she knew how Sam felt for her, there was no way she could return his feeling. After saying these words, she quickly hung up the phone, not wanting to hear what he would say next. His kindness was too much, and she couldn''t help but feel that she didn''t deserve it. Tossing her phone onto the bed, Anne buried her face in her hands, feeling so powerless. All the energy felt as if it was drained from her body. Soon enough, shey down and let herself fall asleep. In the middle of the night, Kevin opened Anne''s door and walked right in. Moonlight poured into the room and shone on her resting figure. Walking to the bedside, Kevin looked down at her with aplicated look in his deep eyes. ''This woman is only quiet when she''s asleep,'' he thought to himself. When he hade to America to look for her, he felt as if she had changed, and was more resistant and indifferent towards him. As she slept, her delicate brows tightly knitted on her forehead. It looked like she was having a bad dream. Even her lips were turned down into a sad frown. Seeing her like this made Kevin feel sorry for her. Slowly, he sat down at the edge of the bed and gently stroked her face. Her familiar warmth made Kevin lost in his thoughts as he cherished each second he was next to her. As Anne felt something on her face, her eyes slowly blinked open. When she saw him right beside her, her eyes immediately became vignt. "Why are you here? What are you doing here?" ''How long has he been sitting there?'' Nervousness filled her heart as she tried to move farther away from him. Chapter 136 Deal Chapter 136 Deal "Anne, are you so afraid of me?" Kevin was annoyed by Anne''s wariness. What did she mean? Was she afraid of him? "It''ste and you suddenly came into my room. Shouldn''t I be suspicious? I want to sleep. Please go out." She threw him an angry look and pointed to the door, indicating him to leave. As she nced at the closed door, it suddenly urred to her that she had locked it before going to sleep. Since Kevin coulde in, he must have used the key. At that thought, a trace of anger started spreading across her face. "Are you driving me away? Have you forgotten whose house this is?" With the corners of his mouth curling into a sneer, Kevin bent down slightly to get closer to her. Her body was a little stiff, and her mind spaced out for a moment. When she came back to her senses, her expression was growing furious. "Kevin, did you do it on purpose? Is that why you asked me to stay?" Did that man put all his efforts into bringing her there just to take advantage of her? "A man tries his best to keep a woman by his side. Why do you think he is doing this?" Kevin couldn''t helpughing at the shocked look on Anne''s face. She couldn''t be that dumb not to know what he was talking about. Hearing those wordse out of Kevin''s mouth made Anne feel shy and annoyed at the same time. Could that man be more shameless? As she red at Kevin, her face turned red with anger. "You and I have nothing to do with each other now. If you touch me, I can sue you!" "Sue me? Huh... Okay. Do you need me to be your witness?" Kevin sneered with disdain, the smile at the corners of his mouth growing evil and attractive. That woman was getting more and more interesting. She even came up with the idea of suing him. Did she really think she could sue him in his own territory? He couldn''t figure whether she was stupid or naive. "You! Shameless!" His outrageous words shook Anne to her core. "Anne, I think you should behave yourself. Have you just scolded me for the second time today?" Kevin''s eyes grew dark and cold. How dared that woman test his patience again? He was annoyed by her audacity. "If you didn''t behave shamelessly, nobody would scold you." Trying to keep up, Anne matched Kevin''s angry re. He looked furious, but she was the one entitled to feel offended. "It seems that you still don''t know what obedience is. I''ll teach you now!" With his handsome face turning gloomy, Kevin kissed her. His kiss was strong and overbearing, with a trace of inexplicable tenderness and possession. Her eyes wide open, Anne stared at the attractive face in front of her and felt her heart pounding uncontrobly. She still had feelings for him. Realizing what had happened, Anne tried to push Kevin away, but her resistance was too weak. "Kevin, let go of me!" Anne couldn''t help but shout as soon as his lips detached from hers. Did that man know what he was doing? "Let you go? Do you think it''s possible? You are too naive, aren''t you?" With a smirk, Kevin leaned forward again. Although she still resisted in her heart, Anne''s control over her body softened rapidly. Sensing her reaction, Kevin smiled smugly. After a long while, he let go of her with satisfaction, making sure she was exhausted. He held her tightly in his arms, basking in the familiar scent of her skin. For the first time, Kevin felt his heart filled with happiness. "Do you know how to behave now?" He asked in a hoarse voice, looking at her with tenderness in his ck eyes. At those bold words, Anne red at him with dissatisfaction. That man was really hopeless... The way Anne was staring at him was not intimidating for him at all. It even made her look cute in his This content ? N?v/elDr(a)m/a.Org. eyes. Kevin''s gaze darkened. "When can I see the baby?" Ignoring his question, Anne asked about the child again. Now that he was satisfied, he should agree to let her see the child, right? "All you think about now is the baby?" Kevin''s dark eyes narrowed, and his voice turned suddenly cold. That damn woman was having a good time just now, and all she could think about was the child, without considering him at all. "I have satisfied you. Now you should let me see my child. If it''s not enough, then let''s do it again!" Anney t and closed her eyes tightly. "Is this your trick to see the baby?" Kevin''s face clouded up, and the coldness in his ck eyes made the temperature in the room drop by several degrees in an instant. What the hell did she think of him? His heart was filled with anger. That damn woman had be so different from what she used to be. "Isn''t it what you have in mind? As long as I can satisfy you, will you let me see my son? Now I have done everything I can. Do you have any other requests?" Anne''s tone was in and calm. She thought she had done a good job, but she didn''t know that Kevin was even angrier with her now. Clenching his fists, Kevin tried hard to suppress his impulse to beat the woman up. What did she think of their rtionship? Damn it! She still didn''t understand what he meant. "When you figure out our rtionship, you can talk to me about the child. I advise you not to test my patience again," Kevin uttered with anger in his voice. He put on his clothes, stood up and strode away. He had nned to let Anne see her child, but now it seemed unnecessary. He would talk to her about that when she really came back to his side. "Kevin..." His words made Anne feel a little anxious. What did he mean? She had done what he wanted, so why did he not allow her to see her son? Anger and hatred bubbled up in her chest. What on earth did that man want? What was she supposed to do to be allowed to see her child? As she watched the bedroom door get shut tightly, a panicked feeling gripped her chest. Since he received that phone call from Anne, Sam couldn''t feel at ease. He winced at the thought that she was alone with Kevin, not knowing what he would do to her. After thinking for a while, he still couldn''t let it go. So he dialed Kevin''s number. Looking at the caller ID on his phone, Kevin frowned a little. A hint of coldness shed through his ck eyes. "What''s up?" Kevin asked coldly. "Where is Anne? What are you going to do to her? What do you want from her?" The tone in Sam''s voice was not as gentle as before. Now it sounded faintly angry. "Anne is my woman. You don''t need to worry about what I want to do to her, do you?" Kevin knew that Sam was interested in Anne. His eyes turned suddenly cold and his expression darkened. Anne was his woman, and no one else could get her. "Mr. Kevin, I think you have forgotten that you have nothing to do with Anne now. Your rtionship is over, and Anne now only wants to see her child, not toe back to you. Isn''t it despicable of you to use such tricks now?" Thinking that Anne stayed at Kevin''s because of her child, Sam felt a little better, but he knew that if she stayed there, Kevin would definitely try to get her by any means. "It''s none of your business. Anne is mine, and mine only! I advise you to give up, or I won''t let you go!" His face became red with rage. Breaking up with Anne was the most regretful decision he had ever made. Now that a man who had an improper desire for her pointed it out, he became inexplicably angry. No one dared to meddle in his affairs! Chapter 137 One-night Stand Chapter 137 One-night Stand "I want Anne back." Sam''s voice was colder than the arctic regions as he spoke with Kevin on the phone. The thought of Anne by Kevin''s side made him uneasy. He believed that she would nevere back with Kevin willingly. There was nothing else that she wanted more than to cut her ties with that wretched man once and for all. "Do you truly believe that you could steal my woman?" As if he had heard some joke, Kevin''s lips evoked a mocking sneer, but the coldness of his eyes grew even sharper. Was this an indication that he would not back down? Did Sam really think that he could take Anne away? "I won''t know unless I try," Sam said with his baritone voice, carrying a strong sense of determination in his eyes. If Anne really didn''t want to be with Kevin, then he must take her back at all costs. "You''re wee to try if you think you can take her." With a snort of disdain, Kevin hung up the phone directly. Sam wanted to snatch Anne from him, but it depended on whether he had the ability. In the morning, when Anne went downstairs, there were two big dark circles under her eyes. She obviously didn''t get any sleepst night. "Look at you! Have you been up all night?" Kevin''s eyes narrowed at her, looking at her pale face and sunken dark eyes. "You don''t need to worry about it. It''s none of your business," She replied without even ncing at his direction. A frown creased his forehead. He gritted his teeth in anger as he stared at her. "You still haven''t learned how to speak with courtesy. Didn''t I teach you enoughst night?" Kevin reprimanded Anne for her manners and thought, ''Damn it! How dare she talk to me in such a tone?'' "Don''t you have anything better to do than to threaten other people? Kevin, do you realize how cruel and ruthless you are? You only make me hate you more!" Anne retorted confidently instead of getting intimidated by his infuriated look. She looked at him and remembered the horrid events from the previous evening. A trace of hatred surged in her heart. Cruel? Ruthless? How dare this woman use these two words on him? "Anne, don''t be so ungrateful! Why do you keep on testing my patience?" Kevin said with a straight face. He stared at her with scorching eyes. She was ungrateful? It was this man who always made things difficult for her, and he dared tobel her as ungrateful? Anne smoldered within her thoughts. She could not understand what made the man standing in front of her so cruel. She could not fathom how someone could be so inhumane as to use people''s weaknesses against them.Copyright by N?v/elDrama.Org. "I''m leaving," Anne dered firmly. At this point, she was sure that the child was not here. Since she could not see the baby, she had no reason to stay. "Where do you think you''re going?" He stared at Anne bitterly with his gloomy eyes. ''It had only been a night, but this woman could not help missing Sam?'' Kevin thought. "It has nothing to do with you. I am under no obligation to tell you where I''m going!" ''Are you kidding me? Why should I tell you where I am going?'' she shouted in her head. Now that both of them had terminated their agreement, she didn''t want to listen to him anymore. "Are you saying that it is none of my business? You are my woman. Where you go is my concern." Kevin chewed his words out, holding onto thest bits of patience he had. "Mr. Kevin, I think you''ve misunderstood our rtionship. The two of us have nothing to with each other anymore. If we count what happenedst night, it can only be regarded as a one-night stand." The man was too narcissistic. She would never agree to be with him if it weren''t for the child. "What''s our rtionship then? Tell me, Anne!" As he clenched his fists, blue veins burst on the back of his hands. Kevin felt that he was about to lose control of his emotions. This damn woman said that their rtionship was only a one-night stand. She was getting on his nerves! "Am I wrong? It was nothing more than a one-night stand, wasn''t it?" One-night stand. She felt repulsive as she heard the wordse out of her very own mouth. She had thought that if he got what he wanted, she could see the child, but this man obviously didn''t want to let her go so easily. "Then what are you? A prostitute?" Kevin blurted out. ''This damn woman actually said that their rtionship was a one-night stand!'' A Prostitute? Anne heard his words and her heart trembled with fury. This man''s usation was degrading to hear. When did she be a prostitute? "If I am a hooker, then what are you doing? Whoring around? Mr. Kevin, you are insulting me as well as yourself." When this wretched man insulted her, he insulted himself by extension. "If you think so, then it must be true, right? Well, since I''m a whoremonger, and I don''t mind paying you a few more times, Anne will you stay? I''d be happy to pay." Since she was vigorous to define their rtionship as a one-night stand, he didn''t mind doing it a few more times. He could even do it with her for a lifetime. Was this man out of his mind? How could he say such a thing? "You''re disgusting!" Anne screeched. She cursed him under her breath. She did not wish to see Kevin ever again. She couldn''t wait to get up and leave. There was no way she could stand looking at him for longer than a second. "Where are you going?" Seeing that she was about to leave, his ck eyes burst in anger. ''This damn woman always ignores me like this,'' he murmured in exasperation. "Does it have anything to do with you, Mr. Kevin?" Anne stood up with a challenging tone in her voice. Making her way out, she was pissed at the audacity of this man. Did he think she was obligated to tell him where she was going? Who did he think he was? "Do you think it has nothing to with me? Do you want to get out of here?" Kevin stood up and squinted his eyes, exuding a dangerous glint. Why was she so eager to leave him? She did not want to stay with him for even a minute. Was she that disgusted of him? "Yes, I''m leaving now. I don''t want to see you from now on!" If she stayed with this man, she would only end in his bed. She was not a fool. She would still not see her child''s face, so why bother staying just to suffer at his hands? "Never see me again? Do you think it''s so easy? You are my woman, and you cannot leave me as you please!" Kevin tried his best to hold back his anger, but his ck eyes were ring. Why did she want to escape him so much? Anne squeezed her fists. She felt that she was about to get carried away by her emotions. He was simply too much for her. Not wanting to say another word, she stormed out. Kevin stood up to chase her, but his phone rang. When he saw the caller ID, his eyebrows wrinkled unpleasantly. A trace of irritation shed in his eyes. "Hello, Kevin¡­" Cherry''s chirpy voice came from the other end of the line. "Is there a problem?" Kevin answered the phone with a sense of frustration. He stared at Anne as she was getting further away from him. "Kevin, are you still in America? When are youing back?" Cherry sounded rather cautious. Perhaps she was afraid of upsetting him. "Well, what is it? What''s the matter?" At the same time, when he received a call from Cherry, he became a little unhappy. Because of a stupid phone call, Anne was getting farther and farther away. "Kevin, when will youe back? I miss you¡­" Cherry hesitated for a long time until she finally said it. Kevin had been in America for several days, but there was no news of him at all. She was worried that he was already with Anne. If it happened in the past, Kevin would feel sorry for Cherry when he heard her distressed voice. But this time, he felt nothing more. "Cherry, we''re no longer together. Don''t say that kind of thing anymore." He knew that deep down, Anne didn''t like Cherry to be around him. If he wanted Anne to be back with him, he had to resolve her concerns. He did not have the heart to hurt Cherry. After all, she had done too much for him. But now, all he could think of was Anne. He did not want any other woman except her. Kevin felt that he was going crazy. His words made Cherry''s eyes darken, and her face turned pale in an instant. "Kevin, are you going to keep treating me cold-heartedly? Have youpletely forgotten about us? You used to love me so much, when did you be like this? Am I not good enough for you? Tell me!" She was feeling extremely dejected. She had lost everything she worked hard for. After everything she did, she was left empty-handed, in need of the love and care she always yearned. "Cherry, I have told you everything. There is nothing left between us. All I want now is Anne," Now there was only one woman in his heart, and he did not want anyone else. Cherry was muted. The kindness in her eyes was swallowed by the deep clouds of animosity for Anne. ''I hate Anne so much! If it weren''t for her, things wouldn''t have ended up like this. Kevin and I would still be together right now if she hadn''t interfered,'' she shouted in her head. "Kevin, have you forgotten the promise you made to my mother? You vowed to take care of me for the rest of my life. Do you really have the heart to abandon me?" With a trembling choked voice, Cherry steeled her heart and confronted Kevin. Hearing Cherry mention her mother, Kevin was moved. He was still very grateful for her mother''s life- saving grace, but he was reluctant to be with a woman he didn''t love. Chapter 138 Go Get Her Chapter 138 Go Get Her "I can give you anything you want except marry you." Kevin had made himself clear¡ªhe was never going to marry a woman he didn''t love. Not wanting to talk to Cherry anymore, he hung up the phone without hesitating. He frowned, visibly irked. He looked towards the direction where Anne had just left. She was nowhere to be found and he couldn''t help but feel a little anxious. "Where is she? Where did she go?" he asked coldly as he nced at the secretary. "Miss Anne headed that way, southeast," the secretary said respectfully, lowering his head in an attempt to avoid Kevin''s cold gaze. "Then what are you doing still standing here? Hurry and get her back!" Kevin spat, his eyes sharp as knives. It seemed that his secretary was getting more and more ipetent. Why did he need to spell everything out for him? "Okay, Mr. Kevin. I''ll do it right now!" The secretary quickly ran off upon noticing that Kevin was losing his temper. He could tell that Kevin cared about Anne very much but it was obvious that Kevin was clueless. Kevin seemed at a loss as he was only driving Anne farther away from him. Sighing helplessly, the secretary drove off to chase after Anne. As Anne walked along the road, she found herself getting angrier the more she thought about the situation. Once again, she was set up asst night, she was raped. When she recalled that she hadn''t even seen the child yet, she felt even more frustrated. The ck Rolls-Royce followed closely behind her. The secretary honked the car horn when she didn''t even look back. Anne was already in a bad mood so when she heard the car honk, she became more agitated. Not even looking back, she made her way to the sidewalk. "Miss Anne, where are you going?" the secretary asked loudly, poking his head out when he failed to elicit a response from her. Hearing the secretary''s familiar voice, she stopped in her tracks and turned around in a huff, obviously irritated. "Why are you following me? Why do you care where I go?" she asked spitefully before turning back around in an attempt to leave. "Miss Anne, Mr. Kevin asked me to pick you up. You should get in the car right now." The secretary sounded a little anxious. He could tell that Anne was indifferent to him all thanks to what his boss had done to her. She stopped and turned to look at the secretary, anger burning in her eyes. "Tell Kevin I''m noting back. Wherever I go and whatever I do is none of his business." ''He wants me toe back? Why should I listen to him? Why does he think I should do whatever he asks me to do? What am I to him?'' Anne fumed inside. Seeing the angry look on her face, the secretary sighed and negotiated, "Miss Anne, please don''t make things difficult for me anymore. You know what kind of person Mr. Kevin is. If I don''t bring you back with me, he''ll fire me." The secretary knew that with Kevin''s unpredictability, it wasn''t far-fetched to assume that he would do such a thing. "That''s none of my business. Why are you telling me that?" Anne snapped, purposely looking away. What did Kevin''s secretary getting fired have anything to do with her? Did she owe anything to him? Did she have to suffer for his sake? "Miss Anne, I think you''re misunderstanding Mr. Kevin. He really wants you back. He cares about you. That''s the only reason why he did all those crazy things!" The secretary was beginning to worry about Kevin. It seemed that he didn''t stand a chance with Anne anymore. If things went on like this, how could Anne ever get back together with him? The secretary just said that Kevin cared about her? How ridiculous! How could he say that? All he ever did was torture her. "You can leave now. I''m noting with you. Go and tell him that from now on, we should just stay away from each other." With that, Anne stalked off. Needless to say, the secretary was distressed. Kevin might punish him since he wasn''t able to sessfully bring Anne back. After giving it more thought, he decided to follow Anne and continue to persuade her but to no avail. Anne was adamant on her decision to note with him. From a distance, an icy blue Ferrari sped over and pulled over next to Anne. Sam slowly rolled down the car window. He looked a little pale as the dark circles under his eyes were evident¡ªit seemed as if he didn''t get enough rest. "Anne, I finally found you." He was pleased to see that Anne was safe and sound. "Sam, what are you doing here?" She was a little taken aback at Sam''s sudden appearance. Even then, she was d to see him. "You called me yesterday and I was worried about you. I left early this morning to look for you. Are you okay? Did Kevin do anything to youst night?" Worried, Sam was a little restless knowing that Anne had spent the night with Kevin. He couldn''t help but suspect if she had already agreed to get back together with Kevin. She understood what he meant. When she thought back to how Kevin had raped herst night, she turned pale but kept herposure. "No, nothing." She didn''t want to tell him what had happenedst night. After all, the two of them weren''t close enough for her to tell him about such a topic. "Get in the car. Let''s go home." The look of guilt on her face did not go unnoticed by Sam. He decided to shrug it off. He didn''t want to overthink things. "Okay." Anne got in the car without hesitation, knowing full well that Kevin''s secretary was still behind her. "Miss Anne, you can''t go with him. If you do this, Mr. Kevin will get angry." The secretary''s anxiety was at an all-time high. If Kevin found out that not only did he fail to bring Anne back but also let her leave with Sam, he would kill him. "She''s leaving with me. Go and tell your boss that I''ll do everything in my power to protect Anne if she wants to stay away from him," Sam said firmly, a cold look on his face. Anne gazed at Sam, shock written all over her face. She was mildly flustered. Didn''t he know that Kevin was the worst type of enemy to have? He was basically starting a war with Kevin. "Sam..." she began nervously. However, Sam cut her off before she could finish what she was going to say. "I''m serious. As long as you want to stay away from him, I''ll do everything in my power to help you. I won''t let him disturb your peaceful life." To him, Anne was the most important person in the world. He wasn''t holding back in protecting her as much as he would. This content ? N?v/elDr(a)m/a.Org. It didn''t matter if he had the capabilities to do so. More so, he didn''t care if Kevin was too powerful for him. As her eyes bore into his, she couldn''t help but feel a little flustered. It was obvious what he was trying to say as guilt welled up in her heart. He had done so much for her. How would she pay him back? Smiling faintly, he started the car and drove off. The secretary watched as the car sped off, grimacing. He didn''t even want to think about how angry Kevin would be if he found out what had just happened. Sighing to himself, he started the car and drove back to the vi. As soon as he entered the living room, Kevin red at him. "Where''s the person I asked you to bring back?" Kevin asked coldly. The first thing he noticed was that Anne was nowhere to be found. "Mr. Kevin, Miss Anne was taken away by Sam..." the secretary finally said after hesitating for a while. "Can you repeat that? Who took her away?" Upon the mention of Sam''s name, Kevin was instantly filled with rage. It was obvious what Sam was trying to do with Anne. Who wouldn''t be angry? "Mr. Kevin, Sam also said that if Miss Anne wanted to stay away from you, he would do everything in his power to help her." The secretary lowered his head as he spoke. "Help her stay away from me? How is he so confident? Does he really think he stands a chance against me? Is he trying to get himself killed?" Kevin''s charcoal eyes dimmed. "Mr. Kevin, what are you nning to do next? Miss Anne has already been taken away. I don''t think your n''s going to work anymore." The secretary looked at Kevin worriedly. Originally, Kevin had wanted to spend time with Anne hoping that she would fall back in love with him. Anne being taken away by Sam wasn''t part of the n. "I''ll get her back!" No one could take his woman away casually. "Mr. Kevin, what are you going to do?" the secretary asked cautiously as he studied Kevin''s solemn face. "Go and get her back!" Kevin uttered sharply as he strode out. For a moment, the secretary froze in ce. When he had collected himself, he quickly followed Kevin. Meanwhile, Sam and Anne sat across from each other in the vi. He glued his gaze on her, looking eager. Chapter 139 His Wrath Chapter 139 His Wrath The fiery look in Sam''s eyes made Anne feel uneasy all over. She averted her eyes awkwardly. Sam''s love towards her was getting more obvious. "Sam, thank you for what you did today." After a long moment, Anne broke the silence first. The atmosphere between them made her ufortable. "Why do you thank me? I didn''t help you with anything." Sam felt guilty over the thought that he failed to protect Anne and let Kevin take her away. "No, you have helped me a lot these days. If you were not by my side, I really wouldn''t know how to spend these days. You have been apanying me andforting me." Anne was very grateful of the way Sam treated her. He even put aside his work to apany her to America and look for her child. "Anne. I just want you to know that no matter what happens, I will always be with you, take care of you, and protect you. I won''t let you get hurt again." The look in Sam''s eyes became intense. After what happenedst night, he had already figured it out. He wanted to be more than a friend towards Anne. He had alreadymitted himself to protecting her well and being with her all the time. "Sam, I really appreciate what you have done for me, so I have always considered you as the most important friend in my heart. Do you understand what I mean?" Anne quickly rified what she felt for Sam in the nicest way. She already expected what he was about to say next, so she tried to be clear as much as she could to him. She didn''t want to lose their friendship by looking forward to something more than that. Sam had wanted to tell Anne what he truly felt for her. When he heard her words, his face suddenly turned disappointed. He looked at her sadly. "Anne, do you really just treat me as your friend in your heart? Nothing else?" Sam''s eyes were filled with pain when he looked into Anne''s eyes. His tone was soft and gentle, as if he was afraid of frightening her. He had always been so good towards Anne. Anne didn''t know what to do when she saw the anxiety in his eyes. She didn''t want to discuss such matter with him. She had always regarded him as her friend, nothing more, nothing less. In her mind, their friendship would just be ruined if they shared some intimacy with it. "Sam, I will never let our friendship be ruined, so some things are better left unsaid. I hope you understand clearly the rtionship between us. Nevertheless, you will always be the most important friend for me," Anne said every word with sincerity and lowered her head. She hoped that Sam would understand her. Sam was broken into pieces at once. He looked at Anne and smiled bitterly. Although he had already thought that he might definitely be rejected by her when he spoke of his love, he still couldn''t help but fantasize about her. He felt so much pain in his heart. He had no choice but to ept the truth. To Anne, he would always be a friend, just a friend. "Okay, I know what you mean. I was too impulsive today, sorry." Even if Sam had hoped for his feelings to be reciprocated by Anne and ended up being rejected, he didn''t want to lose their friendship. Besides, it was the only thing he could keep with her. Anne heaved a long sigh of relief after hearing Sam''s response. Fortunately, he didn''t continue to talk about his feelings, or she wouldn''t know how to refuse him. Sam had helped her a lot, but she couldn''t return anything to him, not even reciprocating his love. For a moment, Anne somehow felt guilty. "Sam, I''m sorry¡­" Apart from apologizing for rejecting Sam, Anne didn''t know what to say anymore. "You never need to say sorry to me. It''s all my own choice. You don''t need to feel guilty for what happened today. We will always be friends, right?" Although his heart was pierced, Sam couldn''t afford to me her. He just hoped for her happiness. In that way, he could be happy at least. He would not force Anne to love him knowing that she would not be happy in that way. His words made Anne feel more guilty. She would rather be med than to be tolerated by him. The torment in his heart made her feel bad. "Sam¡­" Anne looked at Sam with pity in her eyes. She didn''t know how to express her feelings norfort him at the moment. She really didn''t want to hurt him. "Well, let''s drop this topic. You haven''t had breakfast yet, right? I''ll take you out to eat something." Sam didn''t want to prolong the torment in his heart, so he already initiated to move on to another topic. The guilt in Anne''s eyes only made him more sad. He would rather choose to stay the way they were before. "Okay." Anne didn''t want to talk about it either, so she agreed without any hesitation. She stood up and walked to the side of Sam. "Anne, get out!" Suddenly, there came the furious growl of Kevin, which surprised the two people in the room. Anne felt a little anxious when she heard Kevin. She didn''t want any trouble anymore. She was nervous with the thought of Kevining to make trouble for her. She thought she should get more cautious around Kevin, because he was acting moody and easily angered recently. "I''ll give you a minute to get out or I''ll burn this house down!" Kevin roared in so much anger. His aura was very dark and his eyes were more fiery than before. Sam frowned unhappily after hearing the threatening voice of Kevin. Suddenly, a trace of anger was drawn on his face. Was this the way Kevin had used to talk to Anne? Anne sighed helplessly and was about to walk out, but Sam stopped her by grabbing her wrist. "Don''t go. Wait here. I''ll go out to have a look." Anne looked worried when Sam strode out of the room. Based on the tone of Kevin, he seemed to have mistreated Anne all this time. Sam would never allow something like that to happen again now that he wasmitted to protecting her. She wanted to go after Sam and stop him, but he had gone far already. She had no idea of what Kevin might be capable of doing towards Sam, and it made her worry the most. Sam red at Kevin when he saw him. At this moment, Kevin was ready to unleash the rage in him. His eyes turned darker when he saw Same out. "Mr. Kevin, what are you doing?" Sam spoke in a cold manner as he walked towards Kevin. "Where is Anne? Get her out!" When Kevin did not see Anne anywhere, he felt exasperated. This woman had seemed to learn how to hide from him now. ''Damn it!'' "Anne doesn''t want to see you now. Mr. Kevin, you''d better leave now!" Sam knew exactly what Anne truly felt towards Kevin. Since she didn''t want to see him, Sam would not allow him to disturb Anne again. "She doesn''t want to see me? She is my woman. Why you are the one to speak for her?" Kevin tried his best to suppress the anger he was feeling in his heart. "Mr. Kevin, you''d better leave now." Sam looked at him indifferently and tried to sound calm as much as he could. "Get her out!" Kevin insisted angrily. Damn it! Did she ask Sam to send him away? What did she think of Kevin? She was still his woman and she had no right to do that! Anne heard everything from outside and she couldn''t help but feel outrageous. What else did he want? He already kept her child from her and now he was causing her trouble. What more? She couldn''t stand him any longer. She had decided to face Kevin with all her might. She opened the door and walked out of the room. Anger was written all over her face. She threw a cold stare at Kevin. "Kevin, what the hell do you want? Why can''t you let me go and give me peace of mind? When can you stop involving me to your troubles?" Anne shouted at the top of her lungs. She had endured so much of this man. He had never given her peace of mind. She wondered what else she must do to get rid of him. "Don''t you know what I want? Do I still need to remind you of my purpose?" Damn it! She even shouted while standing beside that bastard. Didn''t she know that he came at Sam''s house because he was worried about her? What kind of attitude did she inculcate into herself? A lot of women were so desperate to be imed as his woman, but he fell in love with this unreasonable woman who did not even appreciate his feelings. Apparently, he used to hate her, but he felt different towards her now. "It''s impossible for us to be together. I really hope that you stop disturbing my life and let me live in peace, okay?" Anne didn''t want to involve herself with Kevin anymore. She wanted to cut ties with him and gave up with the idea of him changing for the better and letting her see her child. "Impossible? Did you even get my permission?" Kevin strode towards Anne. ''This stubborn woman really needs to be taught a lesson,'' he thought. How could she say those words over and over again? Sam quickly stood in front of Anne to protect her when he saw Kevin striding towards her aggressively. He would not let him do anything to hurt her. "Fuck off!" This content ? N?v/elDr(a)m/a.Org. Kevin''s rage was exacerbated when he saw Sam protecting his woman. He felt really unhappy. Anne made men fall in love with her so easily. It was so unfortunate for him to feel the same as those men. "What if I say no?" Sam looked at Kevin mockingly and showed no fear. Saying no more words, Kevin punched him hardly on his face, unable to control his rage. Without precaution, Sam staggered and almost fell down. He was severely bruised and his lip was also wounded. Sam looked with displeasure and felt really bad at that moment. Chapter 140 Advice Chapter 140 Advice Initially reeling from the shock, Anne regained herposure and ran up to Sam. She knelt down to check if he was alright. She saw the blood flecking his lips. A mix of guilt and sympathy appeared in her beautiful eyes. "Sam, are you okay?" Sam looked a little embarrassed, which made Anne feel sorry for him. Knowing she turned him down, Sam still did this for her. Anne really didn''t know how to face him. "Don''t worry about it, Anne. I''m fine." Sensing the concern in Anne''s tone, Sam wiped the blood from the corner of his mouth. Then he stood up and red at Kevin. Anne got to her feet and did the same. There was an arctic chill in her gaze. "Why did you hit him?" This man was nothing but a violent animal. How could he hit someone? It was really too much. "Why? Do I need a reason to hit someone?" ''Damn it! Why is she so concerned with another guy? She is good at trying my patience! It seems that she doesn''t even know whose woman she is. How could she care about another man in my presence? She really doesn''t care about me at all,'' Kevin thought angrily. "Why are you acting like this? This isn''t your house, Kevin. Please leave." Listening to Kevin, Anne became even angrier. ''This man is just impossible! Probably the worst in the world!'' "Come with me!" He traveled here intending to bring Anne home with him. It was a simplemand. If she agreed to it, he''d have no more reason to be here, and leave as he was asked. "No. I''m not going anywhere. Not with you, anyway. Remember the agreement? We''re nothing to each other now. Leave me alone!" Anne said coldly, without any hesitation. "You really want me to drag you away?" Kevin''s handsome face was joyless, and anger festered in his ck eyes. This woman was being ridiculous. She kept turning him down. Drag? Did he really say that? What right did he have to treat her like this? How could he do that? "Mr. Kevin, now you''ve gone too far. Anne told you straight up that she didn''t want to go with you. Do you like forcing yourself on others? Find a new hobby." Sam had listened to Kevin''s arrogant tone long enough. His overbearing manner grated on the doctor. Sam once again pulled Anne behind him and looked at Kevin coldly. "I''m talking to my woman. What gives you the right to interfere?" With a morose expression, Kevin still had a trace of disdain in his eyes. Anne was his woman. He could do whatever to her. And no one could stop him. "Correct me if I''m wrong, but you''re the one that cut her loose, right? So why should you care, if you''re not together anymore? Don''t forget who dumped who." With the same sneer, Sam looked at Kevin with intangible jealousy in his eyes. Kevin was a horrible man, but Anne liked him. Sam really didn''t know why. He had always been there for Anne, but she still loved Kevin. Why? Why was this happening? He was better in every way. Why couldn''t she see that? If only he could just convince her... If shepletely gave up on Kevin, Sam might still have a chance. Clenching his fists, Kevin tried his best to suppress his anger. "You want topete with me for my woman? Do you think you''re capable enough?" Kevin sneered with disdain. His voice was as cold as death, and the hate in his eyes blew over everyone like a bitter winter wind. "That''s for me to know, and you to find out. Anne doesn''t want to go with you, Mr. Kevin. I don''t think she stuttered. Do you want her to say it again?" Anne was clearly unwilling to even be around Kevin. Her firm tone bolstered Sam''s confidence. "Anne, tell him you love me!" For the first time, Kevin felt trapped. His anger had nowhere to go, so it boiled inside him. He red at Anne with a furrowed brow and gave her a direct order. Frowning, Anne bit her lip in dismay. She would never say those words to him. He had hurt her too much. She ignored hismand. "Kevin, just go away. Don''t bug me again!" She turned to leave. Watching Anne close the door, Kevin was in a murderous rage. Unbelievable! Some woman had turned him down! Sam nced at Kevin and gave him a smug smile, and then he followed Anne into the house. "Mr. Kevin, let''s go, okay?" his secretary said. "Before things get worse." The secretary had broken into a cold sweat, worried about what his boss might do next. With a brooding face, Kevin gave the secretary a hard look and got in the car. In the vi, there was a nonstop cacophony of thrown items colliding with the walls, floor, and everywhere else. The crashing sounds could be heard everywhere in the vi. The secretary stood there and did not dare make a sound. He could only silently watch his boss vent his anger. Kevin kept going, smashing and bashing everything in sight. Lamps, dishes, it didn''t matter to him. He didn''t stop until everything in the living room had been reduced to smithereens. And now that room was a disaster area. "Calm down, Mr. Kevin. This can''t be good for your health," the secretary said, concern obvious in his voice. He had worked under Kevin for many years, but he had never seen him so angry. He didn''t have a clue about how violent this man could get. "Ungrateful slut!" Kevin kicked over the table nearest him. His expression was sullen and terrible. He flew into a murderous rage every time he thought about Anne turning him down. "Mr. Kevin..." Looking at Kevin''s angry face, the secretary frowned and wanted to say something more. He thought better of it and just kept quiet. "What is it? Just spit it out!" The secretary''s attitude annoyed Kevin even more, and the impatience in his ck eyes became more and more obvious. "Let''s not y that game, Mr. Kevin. I''m afraid you''ll be mad if I tell you." The secretary looked at Kevin with hesitation. He didn''t dare say what he wanted to say, but at the same time he didn''t like to see his boss this way. "I don''t think I can get any angrier. So what do you think would do the trick?" At this moment, Kevin was wondering whether he should change secretaries. He needed people who could follow orders, and not worry about his feelings. "I think you''re taking the wrong approach with Anne. The more you push, the more she tries to escape." This content ? N?v/elDr(a)m/a.Org. Thinking of what his boss had done recently, the secretary sighed helplessly. If he were Anne, he''d probably do the same thing. "What did you say? Repeat what you just said!" Damn it! The secretary knew he had gone too far. He knew his boss cared for Anne a great deal. He wouldn''t have gone to the lengths he did, otherwise. And no matter how angry he was, he never hurt her. "Mr. Kevin, I know you want her back. But you''reing on too strong. Any woman would be scared by your approach. Strong, domineering men do well in business, not in love." The secretary sighed again. Only then did he know how hard it was to be a secretary, especially for Kevin. "Too strong? You are the one who gave those suggestions to me, like out of a movie. Now you tell me it''s the wrong way?" Kevin stared at the secretary coldly. Facing Kevin''s usation, the secretary felt like weeping but had no tears. The methods he hade up with were good, but for some reason, they werepletely useless when his boss used them. "Boss, the methods I gave you were foolproof. Maybe you screwed up somehow..." the secretary said in a low voice, afraid that Kevin would explode on him. "You mean it''s all my fault?" said Kevin, in a threatening tone. The secretary loosened his cor. "No, of course not. How could I me you?" the secretary exined in a hurry. He was smarter than that. ming Kevin, even for the things he was to me for, was a death sentence. Being a secretary is no easy job, and now it seemed that he was saying all the wrong things. "That''s another fine mess you''ve gotten me into. So what do we do now?" Kevin looked at the secretary irritably. Everything he''d done so far had turned Anne''s heart even colder. If things went on like this there would be no way to get her back. In the past, he would have simply used force. But now he didn''t have the heart to treat her like that. "You want my advice, and I''d suggest you wait a bit. Give Miss Anne some time to calm down. Maybe she''ll change her mind after a while." The secretary was really afraid if Kevin continued to act like this. His rtionship with Anne would be irreparable that way. "Give her some time to calm down? While she''s staying with another guy? Did you get kicked in the head by a donkey?" Kevin said, upset at the secretary''s words. There was another man with his woman. How could he give her any more time? He was not that generous! Was this secretary really on his side? How could hee up with such a terrible idea? She was staying with Sam, and he liked her. He could lose Anne quite easily? Did the secretary think he was an idiot? Being scolded by his boss, the secretary tried to look as innocent as he could. He was trying to help Kevin out, and all he got was grief. The life of a secretary was not an easy one. "Mr. Kevin, I''m doing this for your own good..." The secretary gave Kevin a hurt look. He was trying to help his boss, but the only thing his boss did was yell at him. His boss was getting more and more temperamental. "For my own good? I want her back. Make it happen!" Kevin said angrily. He was fuming, because now he had no one and nothing to vent his anger on. Chapter 141 Im Leaving Chapter 141 I''m Leaving "Yes, I''ll figure it out now." Kevin''s secretary sighed helplessly when he looked at his boss''s irritated face. He already expected that his boss would screw this thing up because of his temper, so he had to help him. Confusion was drawn all over Kevin''s face as he sat on the sofa. No matter what it might took him, he must make Annee back to him. Copyright by N?v/elDrama.Org. In Sam''s house, Anne and Sam were both sitting whilst looking at each other. When she noticed the bruises on his face, she couldn''t help but feel guilty. "Sam, I''m sorry for causing you this," Anne said in a very sincere tone. If it wasn''t for protecting her, Sam wouldn''t have been beaten up. After all, she was the main reason as to why he was involved in such kind of trouble. "Don''t apologize to me. We two don''t have to be so polite to each other. You know how important you are in my heart. How can I just watch Kevin take you away?" The guilt in Anne''s alluring eyes made Sam feel sad. He had promised that he wouldn''t let her be hurt again, and he was a man of his words. Anne was captured by the gentle tone of Sam. The wound on his face made her feel worse. She never felt this guilty in her whole life. "Sam, you really don''t have to be so good to me. If it weren''t for me, you wouldn''t have been injured. By doing so, I feel that I owe you a lot. You know that I can''t give you what you want¡­" Anne lowered her head slightly, hurting to admit the truth. There was a trace of anxiety in her eyes. Sam''s kindness had just made her feel heavy in her heart, because she knew to herself that she couldn''t reciprocate his love. She couldn''t give him what he wanted, yet he had always epted his care. In her mind, she thought that she was not deserving of all his care and affection. "You don''t owe me anything. I chose to love you, and every single thing that I do for youes from my heart. So, you don''t have to feel guilty." Sam was afraid of what Anne would say next, so he interrupted her at once. He already knew what was on her mind, but he didn''t want to hear it out loud. He just wanted to protect her. That was it. He couldn''t hope for more, and he was happy to be with her at least as her friend. Sam made Anne hold back what she was going to say. She wanted to tell him a lot of things, to rify everything with him, but she didn''t have the heart to say something that would hurt him again. "I''ll go take the first aid kit to treat your wound." Anne didn''t want to continue the topic any longer, so she turned around and walked into the room. Sam felt anxious as he stared at her back. He was really afraid to be refused by her over and over again. As he averted his eyes, loneliness was written all over his face. He knew that Anne would never love him back the way he wanted her to feel, but he couldn''t take his heart back. Soon, Anne came out with the first aid kit and sat in front of Sam. She took out a cotton ball and carefully wiped the blood from the corner of his mouth. Sam frowned slightly and stared at the angelic face of Anne. He suddenly felt his heart beating so fast. The atmosphere in the room was a bit ambiguous. Both of their expressions could hardly be read. Anne was gently cleaning the wound of Sam. Her eyes were so focused and serious, but with a trace of heartache. Sam had never been so close to Anne just like now. She never cared for him like this. He couldn''t help but feel amused as he stared at her face. She was indeed perfect, but tantalizing. Out of nowhere, Sam thought that being punched was somehow worth it. If it could make her care about him more, he would rather be hurt seriously. "Does it hurt?" Anne felt sorry for Sam when she looked at the bruises on the corner of his mouth. She kept ming herself for causing him those wounds and bruises. Sam was too allured as he fixated his eyes on her face, so he did not hear her speaking at all. Before he could even answer, Anne already furrowed her eyebrows in confusion. When their eyes met, she felt a strange emotion in his eyes, and her mood instantly shifted. She averted her eyes and stood up quickly. She realized that she had been so close to him while treating his wound and hadpletely forgotten his feelings for her. Sam came to his senses and noticed the embarrassed expression on her face. He remembered how inappropriate he had been just now. "Anne, I''m sorry. I just¡­" It was a little hard for Sam to exin for himself, because he couldn''t find a proper reason. If Anne turned awkward to him because of his gaffe, he would be very disappointed. "It was nothing. The medicine has been applied. I''ll make you something light to eat." Anne walked quickly to her room. The attitude of Sam made her a little flustered and want to dodge. She couldn''t let him do so much to her. In the end, she would still be unable to give him what he wanted, so it would be best if she made everything clear now. "Okay¡­" At first, Sam wanted to stop her, but on a second thought, he knew that she might have been ufortable to see him now. He had no choice but to let her leave. Anne felt uneasy while Sam was staring at her earlier. She walked into the kitchen quickly and wondered if she should leave here. If she stayed with him for a longer time, his feelings would just deepen and they would be more awkward towards each other. As Sam looked at her busy cooking in the kitchen, he felt he couldn''t give up on her. The idea of giving up just made him feel worse about himself. He couldn''t let his feelings for her go. Soon, a variety of light dishes was put on the table. After fixing the bandage on his wound, he proceeded towards the dining area. It could be noticed how the dishes were cooked from the heart; it was so simple, yet mouth-watering. A strange emotion rose in his heart. He looked at Anne with tenderness in his eyes. "There''s not much food in the kitchen. You can eat some first. Your mouth is slightly wounded, so the dishes are all light." When Anne noticed that Sam was staring at the dishes on the table for a long time, she thought that he didn''t like the food, so she exined immediately. She did it lightly because she was worried that if she made the food spicy, it would sting his wound. "Thank you." Sam smiled gently at Anne, but because of the wounds on his face, he became a little conscious and felt embarrassed. "You should eat first. I''m going back to my room." Anne couldn''t breathe because of too much uneasiness. She turned quickly and walked towards her room after saying those words to him. "You haven''t had breakfast yet. Let''s have it together," Sam insisted. He knew that Anne was deliberately avoiding him, and because of that, he felt a little disappointed. He didn''t want to maintain such situation, so he tried to stop her. "No, I''m not hungry. Eat first and I''ll clean it upter," Anne lied to Sam. In fact, she was really a little hungry at that time, but because of too much embarrassment, she tried to hold it back and refused his offer. She walked into the bedroom without looking back and closed the door. She sighed helplessly. Now, she didn''t know how to deal with Sam anymore. Sam felt alone as he sat at the table without Anne. He was used to eating with her, but now the awkwardness between them had started to grow. He did not enjoy the breakfast. He found it tasteless because he ate alone. After he had breakfast, he took a look at Anne''s room and went upstairs. Anne opened the door when she heard him go upstairs. She felt a little sad when she saw the food on the table. The dishes were almost not eaten. After cleaning up the table, Anne walked out of the house. She was bombarded with thoughts just now. If she didn''t want to ruin her good rtionship with Sam, she must no longer stay here. If she did so, Sam would probably just let his feelings for her go. In this way, she didn''t have to be embarrassed all the time, and Kevin wouldn''t be against her anymore. Anne finally found a suitable house, after being out for a whole day. Without any second thought, she went back at Sam''s house to pack her things up. She couldn''t stand staying with Sam even just a minute. Besides, her decision was also for Sam''s good. If she stayed there, she would just torment his heart piece by piece. She couldn''t be so selfish. It was already dark when she returned to his house. Sam didn''t saw her the whole day, so he quickly ran to her with worry in his eyes. "Anne, where have you been for such a long time? Why can''t I get through to you?" There was anxiety in his tone. Anne felt a little pain in her heart again when she saw how concerned and worried Sam was. Nevertheless, she had already made up her mind. After hesitating for a long time, she finally spoke up. "Sam, I went out to look for a house today, and I found a suitable one for me. I''m moving in tonight." Anne looked at him calmly. Sam was surprised at the moment. Soon after, he came back to his senses. "Anne, why do you suddenly want to move out of here? Did I do anything wrong? Why are you moving out?" Sam could no longer imagine how painful it was for him. The more anxious he was, the more Anne wanted to leave. Anne took a step back and kept a distance between them. The way she looked at him clearly showed what she truly felt at that time. "Sam, thank you for taking care of me for such a long time. Thank you for being with me all the time, but I can''t rely on you for the rest of my life. I''ve made up my mind. I''m leaving." "Anne, did I do something wrong?" If so, please tell me. I''m willing to make it right and change myself. It will be dangerous for you to live alone in this country." Sam tried his best to persuade her to stay. He didn''t want her to move out. Even if he knew that his feelings would just turn moreplicated if she stayed with him a little longer, he didn''t want her to leave. He couldn''t afford not to have her by his side. Chapter 142 Moving Out Chapter 142 Moving Out "Sam, I have made up my mind. You don''t have to persuade me anymore. I know you mean well, but we are just friends, nothing too special. If we both live under the same roof forever, we will be misunderstood." Anne didn''t dare to look at Sam''s face. His eyes were too serious. His stare gave an inexplicable amount of pressure. She knew that this was for the best. It was beneficial for the two of them if she moved out. The persevering attitude of Sam towards her was getting more and more obvious by the minute. She didn''t want to hear his sentiments. If she kept staying there, it would only make thingsplicated. If it continued like this, their friendship would be as good as ash. "Anne? Do I put pressure on you? You can pretend that you never heard my confession. I know your scruples. I promise I will only treat you as a friend from now on. My thoughts would be clear of any improper intents." Sam could feel that Anne was deliberately being reserved from him. He knew very well that her feelings for him were just as ordinary as bread and butter, but he couldn''t get a hold of his heart''s desire. He just wanted to be there for her and keep her safe. "Sam, you''re overthinking. I just think it''s inappropriate for us to live together for this long. That''s the reason I decided to move out," Anne exined in a hurry. Although what Sam said was exactly what she thought in mind, she didn''t want their rtionship to change because of it. "Anne, this is a big country¡­" Looking at the grave look on her face, Sam grew anxious. He knew that she was as stubborn as a rock. Once she made a decision, she wasmitted and it was final. "Well, isn''t it useless to persuade me anymore? I''ve already found a house and I''m about to move there in a moment. Trust me on this one. If you''re unsure, you can alwayse over at my ce at any time. You''ll be my very first guest." She gave Sam a faint smile and interrupted his thoughts. She didn''t want to hear what he had to say. Persuading her would be like moving a mountain. Sam sighed helplessly. He was very disappointed knowing that Anne didn''t want to stay with him anymore. At the height of the event, he also felt heartbroken. "Can I at least drive you there? I''m worried if you go about on your own." Sam did everything he could, but he would go the extra mile to get one final moment with Anne. He didn''t want to miss the chance. "Okay, I''ll go upstairs to pack my bags." Anne didn''t refuse Sam''s offer this time. After saying that, she stood up and went to her room. Looking at her slender back, Sam was enticed to hold her in his arms, but he knew that he had no right. Half an hourter, Anne finally came down with herpact suitcase. She never nned to stay in America for long, so she didn''t bring much of her belongings with her. Noticing that it was strenuous for her to lift her stubby luggage, Sam was quick to assist her and said, "Here, let me do it." "Thank you." After taking a casual nce at Sam, she thanked him for his courtesy. "Anne, are you really sure about this?" Although Sam knew that she wouldn''t be bothered by his hopeless concern, he still didn''t want to give up. "Sam, as I told you countless times, it''s final. You don''t have to persuade me anymore." Anne was afraid that Sam would ask her again, so she interrupted before he even could finish his sentence. "Okay, I''ll take you there." With a sigh of dismay, Sam finally chose topromise. He knew he couldn''t keep her. He surrendered to Anne''s wish to move out. He took her to the address of the new house head-on. When they arrived, they found themselves side by side at the porch. Sam wanted to take a look inside, but Anne refused. "Sam, it''s gettingte. You should go home." Standing in front of the door, Sam red at Anne and said calmly, "Anne, your suitcase is hefty. Let me help you get it in." Knowing that Anne wanted to keep a safe distance from him, Sam insisted on his gantry. He wouldn''t be able to often see her as he used to, so he took hisst chance of being with her. "I think I can take it from here, but thanks. I''ll do it myself." It was getting dark and Anne didn''t want to share a moment longer alone with Sam. She was afraid that the slightest change would make their friendshipplicated. "Anne, you don''t have to be too reserved. We''re best friends, remember? Do we really have to be this distant from now on?" Sam nced at Anne seriously. A trace of loss shed though his disheartened eyes. Sam had thought that he could maintain the current rtionship between the two of them, but Anne seemed to deliberately hide from him, which made him blue. "Sam, you beat a dead horse. It''s just a suitcase. I can handle it myself. What you''ve done is more than enough. I don''t want to bother you anymore." Being stared at by Sam, Anne couldn''t help but feel uneasy. She lowered her head and spoke in embarrassment. Truth be told, she never wanted their friendship to be estranged, but the more Sam cared about her, the more difficult the situation felt. "Anne, I really don''t want our rtionship to be so strange. I know you are under pressure. Just forget the silly things I said, okay? Let''s get things back to the way it used to be." Now more than ever, Sam regretted confessing. He shouldn''t have expressed his fondness to Anne. If only he had kept his feelings to himself, locked it in the bottom of his heart, their rtionship wouldn''t have suffered alienation. "Sam, it''s getting dark. You should go now, and get some rest. I''ll invite you over once I have the time." Anne had enough of this seemingly repetitive conversation. After bidding farewell, she grabbed her suitcase and entered her new home. Watching Anne disappear as the door closed, Sam felt empty, as if a part of him was taken away. Would they be so isted from each other from this day on? Was it his fault to fall in love with her? Hopeless, Sam turned around and drove away lonely. Anne didn''t feel a sense of relief until she knew that his car vanished from her sight. Somehow, when she saw Sam, she always felt his presence very awkward. When Sam came home, he was alone. Everything seemed so lonely and dested. He had been so This content ? N?v/elDr(a)m/a.Org. used to her presence since the two of them had been together through night and day for such a long time. Now, he was left with his solitude. He felt ill-sorted. He opened a bottle of red wine and intoxicated himself with an unprecedented empty face. He drank once ss after another. His blonde moment of thinking about Anne being his woman became more and more intense. As he was unaware of his alcohol intake, his vision began to blur into ck. Finally, he fell asleep. The next day, he was awakened by a thumping sound of kicking at the door. Sam groaned and kneaded his aching temples, and stood up to open the front door. It was Kevin who stood outside and kept banging it. Geez! He had been waiting there for so long and he expected Anne to open the door, but she still hadn''t. Finally, the door creaked open, revealing the sobering face of Sam. Perhaps because he had a hangover from all that drinkingst night, he looked like a mess. "Kevin? What are you doing here this early in the morning?" As he saw that it was Kevin, Sam''s face turned adamant. He knew that he was there to bother Anne. Thinking that this man in front of him was his nemesis to Anne''s heart, he was filled with envy. "Anne,e out!" Kevin scowled and looked back at Sam. His obsidian eyes were filled with grit and anger. ''This damn woman really wants to y hide-and-seek with me? Does she think that she can avoid me as long as she want?'' he thought. "You don''t have to worry about her. She is not here. You can leave now." After giving Kevin a mocking face, Sam turned around and stepped inside. He didn''t want to say a word to him because the sight of Kevin would only remind that this man was the center of Anne''s interest. "Where is she now?" When Kevin heard that Anne was not around, his eyebrows met. A trace of surprise shed through his irked eyes, but it disappeared in an instant. "I have no idea!" Sam stopped and shut the door after squabbling these words. When the secretary saw that her boss was rejected, he couldn''t help but feel nervous. It was the first time that her boss had been snubbed. The secretary came to Kevin and reminded in a low voice, "Mr. Kevin, we should get going. It seems that Miss Anne is not here." "Since you''re so sure that she''s not here, why are you still standing there? Hurry up and find her! Do you expect me to investigate it myself?" Kevin suddenly turned and redirected his anger towards his secretary. "Of course, I''ll find her pronto!" The secretary was intimidated by the powerful aura of his boss, so he dared not to ck off at all. After saying that, he swiftly ordered his subordinates to check Anne''s possible whereabouts. An hourter, Kevin pulled over Anne''s newfound home. His eyes took a tour around the somewhat secluded environment without any expression on his face. This woman was clever to choose such a ce. The ce was low-key and hard to find. But it wasn''t long until Kevin found her. He utched the door handle and stepped out of the car. Seeing the shabby house, he couldn''t help but feel sorry. Standing at the porch, Kevin didn''t bother ringing the doorbell. He instantly shouted upfront, "Anne, Thinking that the house was antique and had poor sound instion, he believed that she would hear him at once. As expected, Anne trembled upon hearing the sudden familiar voice of Kevin. She looked at the door in disbelief. Was she hallucinating just now? Why did she abruptly hear Kevin''s speech? She must be crazy. She had only settled in for a night. Even if Kevin knew that she had moved out, he wouldn''t find this ce out so soon. Trusting her logic, Anne couldn''t help but shake her head. She threw away the illusion that had urred in her mind just now and continued to prepare her warm breakfast. Chapter 143 Becoming Angrier Chapter 143 Bing Angrier "Anne, I swear, if you don''t open this door on the count of three, I will have no choice but to kick it open!" Kevin yelled and waited by the door for a long time but he got no response from Anne. As he looked at the door, his heart was filled with anger. What did that woman want him to do, really kick the door just to open it? The more Kevin thought about it, the angrier he became. Meanwhile, it was not until she heard Kevin''s voice that Anne realized that what she heard was not just an illusion, because Kevin was actually outside her door. She panicked right that minute. She started wondering why he came there so soon. She just moved into her new cest night. How did he even find her so soon? "Three, two, one!" After the three counts, Anne still didn''t open the door. But just as Kevin raised his right foot and was ready to kick open the door, Anne finally opened it. She was surprised to see that Kevin''s foot was raised. There was a sh of fear in her eyes and for a moment she thought the man would kick her. The moment Anne appeared in front of him, Kevin withdrew his foot right away and looked at her with an unhappy face. ''Damn! Why did it take so long for her to open the door?'' "Kevin, how did you even find me here? And besides, what on earth are you doing here?" There was a hint of coldness in the expression on her face and her tone when she asked those two questions in a row. Why did this man seem to be hunting her down? No matter where she went, the man could always find her. Was there really nowhere else she could go that he wouldn''t find her? "Did you really think it was that hard for me to find where you now live? Anne, even if you go to the ends of the earth, I will find you!" Kevin said coldly with displeasure in his tone. He asked himself if Anne even moved to a new ce so she could avoid him. He started thinking maybe Anne didn''t wanna see him. "Kevin, what else do you want from me? Why can''t you just let me go?" Anne sighed. "What do I need to do to make you disappear from my world?" She looked at Kevin with indifference. She couldn''t stand him anymore. Kevin had been so bothersome for a long time now to her. "If youe back to me, I will let you be. Otherwise, I will just keep following you wherever you go. You better not take what I say lightly as I will really do it, whether you like or not," Kevin said while staring Anne in the eyes. He just wanted her to get back with him, even if it meant that he had to threaten her. ring at Kevin angrily, Anne began to doubt whether he had been going insane or not. Why did he seem to want to keep pestering her? Did he not force her to leave him that one time? Why did he want to win her back all of a sudden? "Never, Kevin! I will never be yours again! Just ept that fact and move on!" Anne said and sighed exasperatedly. Why should she listen to him? Why should she do what he wanted her to? She was also a person who could make decisions for herself and those decisions didn''t have to depend on anyone, not even Kevin. What did Kevin even think she was, a doll that could be discarded at will? "I dare you to say what you just said again!" Kevin roared. He thought to himself, "Damn it! This woman just said she would never be my woman again!" "It doesn''t matter how many times I repeat it. Ten or a hundred times will make no difference. My answer will always be the same, Kevin! Just leave! I hate you!!!" Anne shouted with her whole heart. At that moment, the only thing she had for Kevin in her heart was hatred. If it weren''t for him, she would not have been abject as she was then. She could not even see her own child. When Kevin heard the word ''hate'' from Anne, his heart trembled fiercely and an unprecedented panic surged in his heart. He really felt the contempt that Anne had for him in her heart. He suddenly felt a strong urge so he strode to her without thinking twice and kissed her before she could even react. All along, Kevin had a strong possessive desire for this woman. All he wanted was just for her to stay with him and never leave his side. Anne''s eyes widened in shock. She couldn''t move or figure out what was going on. Her mind went nk the moment Kevin kissed her without a warning. Content rights belong to N?velDrama.Org. The way he behaved was beyond what she expected. Once she came to her senses, she had already been kissed by Kevin. She was infuriated and pushed Kevin away with all her strength. This man actually kissed her without permission! "Kevin, what the hell do you think you''re doing?!" she shouted, her eyes filled with rage. "What did I think I was doing? I was kissing you. Were you not aware? Didn''t you feel it?" Kevin answered with a yful grin on his face. He seemed to feel much better after kissing Anne without her consent. Could this man even be more shameless? Did he know how annoying he was to Anne? "I seriously don''t want to see you anymore!!! Please, just leave!" Anne uttered coldly and as she was closing the door, Kevin pushed it so she couldn''t. With a smug smile on his face, Kevin said as he pushed the door open, "It''s not for you to decide if I leave or not!" Looking at Kevin''s figure entering her house, Anne didn''t think she could feel even more furious. What did this man think of her new ce? A hotel that he coulde and stay in whenever he wanted? "Kevin, this is my home. You have to leave immediately! Don''t you know that you are already trespassing?" Anne walked to Kevin''s back and gave him that reminder. What she wanted most then was to just get rid of him. She didn''t want anything to do with him anymore. "Trespassing?! Well, do you want to call the police toe arrest me or something? Do you honestly think anyone can stop me, Anne?" Kevin asked sarcastically. He couldn''t help but feel amused by Anne''s words. Was she out of her mind? How could she threaten him that way? Unable to say another word, Anne could only stare at the man in front of her. He was right. She had no ability to do anything against him even if she wanted to. But it was so frustrating to her because the more she thought about it, the more she just hated herself for not being able to do anything about it. "Kevin, I beg you. Please let me be and stop disturbing my life. Please¡­" Anne sighed helplessly. She slightly lowered her eyes as if pleading. She really wanted to be done with him already. She just wanted to live her life peacefully. Couldn''t that be possible? What kind of situation did he get her into that he would be satisfied? "Am I just a disturbance to you? Do you know who you are to me? You are the only woman in my heart. I just want you toe back to me. How could you say that I am disturbing your life?" Kevin talked back. His eyes narrowed slightly, revealing a trace of coldness. His heart was started to get filled with anger. ''How wrong she is to think that I am just disturbing her life!'' he thought to himself. Anne knew that Kevin was stubborn by nature. However, he could possibly be persuaded by reason but could not be cowed by force. After thinking her next move through, she decided to approach him more calmly. "But the two of us have nothing to do with each other anymore, right? We have long put an end to our rtionship, Kevin. And besides, you have another woman by your side now. Why won''t you just stop pestering me and leave me alone?" Didn''t he have the beautiful Cherry in his life already? Why didn''t he just stay home? Why did he have toe all the way to America to look for her? If he said that he fell in love with her, she wouldn''t believe it. "Another woman?! Pestering you? Kevin said while raising his bushy brows and shaking his head. "Anne, is this really the way you think of me now?" There was a flicker of resentment in his long and narrow eyes. He started getting shrouded with coldness. "Did I lie? You already have Cherry in your life. Why do you still have toe all the way here to bother me? I have always been that vicious woman in that heart of yours, haven''t I?" Anne said and raised her eyebrows as if waiting for a response from him. She then continued, "Didn''t you say that you would never marry a woman as vicious as I am?" Anne felt as though her heart sank inside her chest, remembering the hurtful words Kevin had told her before. Kevin''s face was gloomy. He red at Anne with a hint of bitterness in his eyes. Was she really going to rake up the past with him? "I will deal with my rtionship with Cherry and clear things up with her soon. Also, Anne, no vicious woman will think she is actually vicious," Kevin said. He knew fully what kind of person Anne was. Although she was a little cold, she wasn''t really that vicious. He began doubt whether Anne had done those things before. But what did he mean when he said he would deal with his rtionship with Cherry? Did he suddenly decide that he would break up with her? Anne''s heart skipped a beat. She started feeling some kind of panic in her heart, and her hesitation was evident in her eyes. She was moved by what Kevin just said. "I know myself and I know what kind of person I am. Now, if you will excuse me, I am going to have breakfast. For the hundredth time, please leave," Anne said, trying to sound calmer than how she was feeling. Her rtionship with Kevin was already over, after all. She didn''t want to start another period of pain. "Uhm, to be quite frank, I haven''t eaten anything yet. Let''s just eat together." Of course, Kevin had gone through a lot to find Anne. He couldn''t just leave instantly. He was still hoping that she would just throw herself in his longing arms. "Sorry, you can''t eat here. I only prepared breakfast enough for myself." Anne frowned a little. Since when did Kevin be this shameless? Was he really nning on staying there when she had asked her so many times to leave her alone? "Ah, well. Don''t mind me. Go on and have your breakfast. I will ask my secretary to prepare my food. I will eat with you." It was obvious that Anne was driving Kevin away, but he didn''t seem upset. He looked quite considerate instead. What on earth was this man going to do? He just wouldn''t leave. Was he really going to stick around? He was the president of the Fu Group. How did he even have the time to keep haunting her all the time? Chapter 144 Being Stuck Chapter 144 Being Stuck "Mr. Kevin, what do I have to do for you to get out of here? This is my house and I don''t want to see you here!" Anne cautioned and looked daggers at the man who sat across her. He got more shameless and she couldn''t bear it anymore. However, the man remained still. "I''ll stay here until youe with me," Kevin insisted with an unruly smile on his lips as his eyes burned with determination. All he wanted was for this woman to finally return to him and be his woman once again. "No way!" Anne refused without hesitation. She believed that the man was just trying to joke with her. She had already rejected him and tried to make everything clear. It was not her fault that the man wasn''t able to "Since you don''t want to leave with me, maybe it''s time for me to move in and live with you." Kevin satfortably and pulled Anne''s breakfast towards him before he began to eat. The woman got furious at his rude behavior. What exactly did he wanted to do? "Mr. Kevin, that''s my breakfast! Give it back to me!" she warned. She prepared a breakfast that took her a long time to cook but the man dared to take it and he ate it shamelessly. Kevin ignored her and continued to gulp his food down. "I''m hungry, too." He nced at Anne with a childish look and continued to eat. He ate sumptuously because the taste of the food he''d been missing all along was right in front of him. It didn''t change at all. Content rights belong to N?velDrama.Org. "If you''re hungry, then cook for yourself. Didn''t you ask your secretary to bring you your breakfast? Now that you''ve eaten mine, what am I supposed to eat?" Anne red at him. She was hungry and frustrated at the man''s behavior. She could do nothing at his antics and that only made her more upset. "Just wait for my secretary to arrive and you can have my breakfast. If you prepare a single dish for breakfast in the future, I''ll be the one to eat it and you can have mine that my secretary will prepare," he proposed. He already knew that the woman would do anything and make him feel unweed. He already knew that, after all, they had been together once for a long time. Several thoughts ran through her mind. A lot of them confused her but mainly she wanted to know by what logic he thought that he could eat her breakfast while she had to eat the breakfast sent by his secretary? Why bother taking so much trouble? "But why would I do that?" she asked as she creased her forehead. All she wanted right now was peace of mind that she could only get if the man left her alone. For a moment, she considered looking for a new house. She wasn''t stupid, though. She knew what Kevin was capable of and no matter where she went, he would always end up finding her. So she just gave up the idea with a sigh. "If you don''t want to eat take-out food, then go ahead and cook for two." A smirk shed across his lips apanied by his cunning eyes. The woman''s mind was so simple that he could read it through easily. Soon enough, she realized that she had been set up. She could only frown because she just didn''t know how to win over this man. She red at him and cursed him in her mind. There was nothing that could be done. Kevin smiled triumphantly because he won. He knew from the beginning that the woman would have a hard time to break off the rtionship with him. "I already told you, Anne. You''re the only woman in my life. You can''t run away from me!" he dered. Determination surged within his heart and he knew that this time, he would not give up. He was a man who would do everything he could to get what he wanted. She threw him an icy look and rolled her eyes before she strode towards her room. Kevin smiled at the helpless and angry look on her face. He must think of ways that could make the womane back to him willingly. Anne sulked in her room apanied by a hungry stomach. She considered going outside to cook but whenever she thought that Kevin was outside, she would quickly dismiss the idea. She would rather stay starving than see him. She didn''t know when the man would leave or if he really had nned to stay with her for a long time. She didn''t know which one to believe. Time had passed and any sound outside her room had died down. When she thought that Kevin got bored and left, she stood up abruptly. She opened the door and poked her head out then scanned her surroundings. However, before she could see everything clearly, the low and sexy voice of Kevin resonated in the premises. "What are you looking at? Are you always sneaky even in your own home?" Kevin stood not far from her with an amused look on his face. He found the woman''s behavior cute, much cuter than her long face. Startled, Anne looked at the source of the voice. His handsome face appeared in her line of sight. He leanedzily against the wall with a teasing look in his eyes. When she realized that the man had found her out, she dropped her sneaky posture and stood up straight. "Why are you still here? What should I do to make you leave? Mr. Kevin, this is my home!" she bellowed at him. How could this man unashamedly stay in her house uninvited for so long? "You''re my woman and it is only right that your home is also mine. Isn''t it normal for me to be here?" he asked and acted innocently that made the woman huff in frustration. "When did I be your woman? Don''t you have a good memory? We are nothing but strangers! More precisely, familiar strangers!" she yelled exasperatedly. Their rtionship had long ended so why was he doing this? Hepletely ignored her reminders every single time. She didn''t know if there was something wrong with him or if he had amnesia. Whatever it was, she wanted him out of her life. "Only familiar strangers? Do you think that''s all we are?" His aura darkened and his eyes turned cold. ''This woman really knows how to tick me off! Damn it!'' "Isn''t it true?" She looked at him bravely. It wasn''t only anger anymore that she felt inside but also hatred towards him. The man had hurt her enough and she realized that she should nevere back to him again. "I don''t know. But have you forgotten that I slept with you two days ago? Did I not work hard enough that you had forgotten about it so soon?" They had done the most intimate thing that a man and woman could do. He was furious because Anne ''How could she consider and call me a stranger?'' he thought. Blood rushed to her face after she realized what Kevin had meant. She didn''t know if it was because of anger or because she was shy. "We are already adults. Even if we slept together, that doesn''t mean we have something to do with each other. I don''t get your logic. If I slept with other men, does that mean I am their woman?" she said sarcastically with disdain for his unjustified possessiveness towards her. His face darkened once again as he clenched his fist. ''How could she think of sleeping with other men? Who would dare to touch his woman? Damn it!'' he cursed inwardly. "I dare you to repeat those words! If any man dares to sleep with you, I will kill him!" His eyes burned with a cruel and evil light. There was a hint of desire to kill across his orbs. Kevin was sure that he could kill anyone that would touch his woman. He wouldn''t even think twice. Anne''s heart trembled with fear and panic when she saw that he was being serious with his words. "Stop being unreasonable, Kevin! Even if I sleep with another man, it should have nothing to do with you!" This man was too domineering. She realized with this man being like this, she might not be able to find another man and she would end living alone for the rest of her life. She tried to grasp his logic. She just couldn''t understand the turns of his mind. It was unreasonable of him to control her life. After all, their rtionship was over. Thest thing that she wanted was to have anything to do with this man. "Have nothing to do with me? Do you really think that just because you said that means I would really do nothing?" Anger was contained within his eyes and he felt the need to beat this woman up. However, he was reluctant to do so as he loved her. He was so furious that he didn''t know what to say while Anne decided to just shut her mouth and went inside her room instead. She was about to close the door but he quickly stopped her. "Are you going to lock yourself in your room and starve to death?" The woman had not eaten breakfast and he was worried that she would copse in hunger. ''Is she trying to test how long she couldst?'' he thought. "I''m already full at the sight of you," she answered. It was true. She was full of anger. Whenever she saw this man, anger exceeded her limit. She wasn''t even aware of how and when she started to have a bad temper. "Oh? Is that so? Do you want to save food for me in the future? Although you might not need it because as you can see, I am very capable of supporting your life," he bragged. ''Did she really want to starve?'' Even if she was so angry, she shouldn''t do such things. Chapter 145 Teach You a Lesson Chapter 145 Teach You a Lesson "If you disappear in front of me now, I will definitely have a good appetite." Anne was starving so much that she could definitely finish two bowls of rice if he would vanish right in front of her. "I get it. You don''t want to see me. Am I that ugly that it makes you don''t want to see me?" After what was said and done, Kevin realized that Anne still wanted him out of her sight. Did she loath him so much that she didn''t want to see him? Ugly? She was dumbfounded that the man could describe himself with such a word. ''If he was ugly, there would be no handsome man in the world.'' "I hate you. That has nothing to do with your appearance. I hate you from the bottom of my heart and it will never change for the rest of my life." It was the first time that she had voiced out how she loathed him. She knew how high his ego was, and those harsh words could have made him furious that he might stop pestering her again. "You hate me from the bottom of your heart? Anne, do you want me to teach you a lesson?" His eyes narrowed at her. ''This damn woman! How could she say she hates me from the bottom of her heart? When do I make a woman hate me so much?'' "Mr. Kevin, if you really want to teach me a lesson, I will hate you more!" Her eyes were cold and it shadowed the intensity of his gaze. Didn''t the man have anything to do except threatening her from time to time? Kevin clenched his fists as he contained his anger. ''Is this damn woman threatening me by seizing my weakness? She knows that what I worry most is her hating me more and more. But she still threatens me with that.'' "Come out to eat. I don''t want to bury your body in two days!" He ordered Anne with a cold voice still containing his anger. No matter how much she hated him, the most important thing for her was to eat. What if she really starved to death? ''Bury my body? How could this man speak so wickedly?'' Anne thought. "As long as you leave, I wille out for the meal," she said in a cold tone and disregarded his cocky attitude. She continued to stand for what she wanted. "It''s not up to you!" Kevin had begun to lose his patience and irritably pulled Anne out of the room. He had no choice but to use his brute force to teach the woman a lesson. He knew that the friendlier he was, the opposite she would be. She was shocked at what he did. She was pulled out of the room before she could even react. "Kevin, what the hell are you doing?" She resisted, trying to get rid of his grip without minding how she would look. He didn''t care where he was. It was too much. It was her home! "What am I doing? Can''t you see? Anne, do you want me to exin it to you?" he said, frowning at the sight of his hand loosened up by Anne. His eyes suddenly filled with coldness. ''This damn woman is always so ungrateful.'' "What should I do to make you leave me? I beg you. Can you stop showing up in front of me?" She softened her tone. She knew it was senseless to go against him. "Don''t show up in front of you. Are you even telling me that you don''t want to see even the child? Anne, do you mean that?" Text ? 2024 N?velDrama.Org. ''Damn it! Does she forget that we have had a child?'' Her heart quivered when he spoke about their child. The strong feeling of a mother missing her child overpowered her heart. That was what she wanted, but this man had always blocked her. "You don''t n to let me see the baby, do you? Kevin, do you think it''s still useful to threaten me with my child now?" She had already done everything he asked but he was ying her. He had used the child to seduce her thest time and she was not stupid enough to believe him again. "Threatening you? Do you think I will threaten you with our child? The baby is also yours. You have the right to see him. But if you always treat me like this, I won''t let you see the baby." He thought that if she would be nice to him, he might let her see the baby. "Then how do you expect me to treat you so you can let me see the baby? Kevin, if you''re just ying tricks on me now, I won''t forgive you for the rest of my life." She admitted that she was tempted. She wouldn''t want to miss any chance to see her child. "I don''t have the time to y tricks on you!" ''This woman thinks I am just ying tricks on her. How can I be that hollow? Does she think that I don''t have the integrity at all?'' "Then what do you want me to do?" That moment, she knew that she hadpromised. But her mind was set that she would do anything just to see her child as soon as possible. "At least you have to change your attitude towards me first. No man likes to face a cold woman. Do you understand?" ''Couldn''t this woman be nicer to me? Why does she have to be so impassive towards me?'' She knew what Kevin meant. Angry as she was, she had to keep a cool head. "I see, Mr. Kevin. I''ll be careful in the future." For her to see the child, she had to set aside her feelings. She had decided that she would hold it in as long as he wouldn''t cross the line. "That''s right. You can talk to me in this way from now on. If you keep saying that you want to drive me away, you will never see your child ever again." Kevin smiled triumphantly when the tone of the women softened. He liked her obedience. She tried her best to restrain the urge to curse him. She stood still and lowered her eyes so that he couldn''t see her expression. "It''s noon now. Do you think it''s time for lunch? Anne, go and cook for me." ''This little woman hadn''t had her breakfast yet. She must be hungry by now.'' Truthfully, Kevin wasn''t hungry. He was just worried about her, but he didn''t want to show that he cared, so he spoke in a dominating tone. "Okay, Mr. Kevin. I''m going now!" Anne answered in a calm tone, but she gritted her teeth in annoyance. For her to see her child, she must suppress her emotion. She began to cook in her small kitchen. If the man would torture her like that every day, she might have a hard time. His personality was exceptional and she might offend him if she was not careful enough. She knew that her good times were over. A faint smile shed on his face while he was busy examining the woman in the small kitchen. It felt good that she cooked for him. An hour after, she served four dishes and one soup on the table. Anne looked at Kevin, who was sitting in her living room, reading a newspaper. A trace of anger shed in her eyes. The man really took her ce like his own. "The meal is ready. You can eat it now." She shook off the thought and spoke in an indifferent tone. He stopped reading upon hearing Anne''s voice and marched towards her. A smile shed in the corners of his mouth at her obedience. His heart felt warm as he sat on the chair and looked at the dishes. He started to eat using chopsticks. An unfamiliar feeling rose. It was new to him even though she had cooked for him before. Anne didn''t want to see him so she held back her hunger and spoke. "Mr. Kevin, take your time. I''m going back to my room. Call me if you need anything." She turned her back and started to walk towards her room. "Sit down and eat with me. Do you want me to eat alone?" Kevin frowned. He wasn''t happy that she wanted to leave. ''Couldn''t this little woman change her temper? She is obviously starving to death, but she has to endure it. Does she want to torture herself?'' "No, thanks, Mr. Kevin. You can enjoy it yourself." The thought was engraved in her mind. She''d rather starve herself than stay with him for one more second. "Anne, don''t you take my words seriously? Don''t you want to see the baby?" ''This damn woman is still hiding from me. Didn''t she hear a word of what I said just now? I want my own woman, not a maid. If I just need a maid, there is a more obedient woman than her. Why would I need her?'' "Kevin, can you stop threatening me with my baby all the time? You know I care about my baby the most, but you always use the baby as a chip." She looked at him angrily. What else could he do besides threatening her with her child? "Do you think I''m threatening you? Anne, are you out of your mind? Can''t you see that I care about you? You haven''t had breakfast or lunch. Are you going to starve yourself to death?" ''Damn it! Does she know that I am only worried about her? How could she talk to me in such a tone?'' Anne was stunned at his sudden confession. Her heart skipped a beat. Did the man just say that he cared for her? Did he really care about her? "Do I need to thank you for your concern, Mr. Kevin?" She couldn''t ignore that it moved her. Her heart throbbed as she looked at him indifferently. She didn''t expect anything from him anymore. Kevin looked at her, annoyed at her indifference. Chapter 146 The Child Is At Home Chapter 146 The Child Is At Home "No need to thank me. If you really want to thank me, just sit down and finish the meal," Kevin said in an irresistible tone, giving a hint to Anne to sit next to him. As she looked at the dishes on the table, Anne''s belly started rumbling. In fact, she was already ravenous, but she still wanted to pretend she was strong. "Ha-ha! I can tell you''re hungry. Sit down and dig in. Why be difficult?" Heughed, as much as in triumph as anything. He also felt bad for her, and wanted her to eat her fill. Anne frowned. She really didn''t want him here. She certainly didn''t want to share a meal with him. But she was hungry, and wasn''t about to starve to death for this guy! "Don''t you want to see your baby? Probably a good idea to eat, then. You don''t want to starve before you see him." ''Damn it! Does she have to be defiant to the end? I''ve been so humble, but she''s still defying me.'' As she heard the word "baby," a glimmer of hope shed through Anne''s beautiful eyes. Then she gave Kevin a cold look and sat across from him. Kevin smiled to see her do that. So at least some of his soft persuasion was working. When Anne had eaten her fill, she looked up at Kevin. "Kevin, when can I see my kid? Or were you just bullshitting me?" she asked icily. "Are you so eager to see him?" There was no change in Kevin''s mood. His expression was still indifferent, but aplicated light could be seen in his eyes. "Of course. But you knew that, didn''t you? The only thing I want now is to see my son. Let me see him, and I''ll do anything you want." He didn''t shut her down like he usually did. A spark of hope still burned in Anne''s heart. She looked at him anxiously. "Anything I want. What a wonderful philosophy. And if I asked you to be my woman? You could see your kid as much as you want." Kevin locked her with a burning gaze, looking forward to her answer. Kevin''s terms made Anne frown. She was hesitant. She really didn''t want to go back to him. But it seemed to be the only way he''d let her see her child. Maybe she shouldpromise so she could get what she wanted? "I¡ª" Just as she opened her mouth to agree to his terms, he interrupted her, "I''ll give you time to think about it. You can see him tomorrow." Kevin couldn''t bear to see her disappointed. So he decided to honor her request. Anne looked at Kevin in surprise. She became excited, animated even. "This isn''t another trick, is it? You''ll let me see him? Tomorrow?" Anne couldn''t control herself, and she wore her heart on her sleeve. "I''ll let you see him, on one condition." Seeing her all fired up, Kevin didn''t regret his decision. But since she was so happy, how could he not take advantage of it? "I knew there had to be a catch. There always is. What is it?" When she heard Kevin''s words, her face fell. She knew it couldn''t be that easy. But Anne had made up her mind. As long as she could see her child, she would agree to whatever the man asked. "Kiss me. That''s it. Kiss me, and I''ll let you see the baby. What do you think? You won''t lose anything." Kevin raised his dashing eyebrows and smiled evilly. When his eyes traveled to her pink lips, a hint of expectation hit his heart. "What?" Anne opened her eyes wide in shock. She didn''t think she was hearing things. This man actually asked her to kiss him. "What part of ''kiss me'' didn''t you get? I want a kiss!" Seeing her surprised look, Kevin frowned in dissatisfaction and reiterated what he said. "Your condition is that I kiss you?" Anne still couldn''t believe her ears. This man made a simple request. As long as she kissed him, he would let her see her child? "Not happy with that? I can pile more conditions on top of that, if you like." ''What was she thinking? That it was too easy? It was a simple enough request, wasn''t it?'' Thinking of this, Kevin couldn''t help smiling. When he thought of what would happen next, he couldn''t help but smile in anticipation. She had always been cold. He really couldn''t wait for her to kiss him. He wouldn''t have to start it this time. "No, we''re good. There''s no need to add more!" Seeing that Kevin was going to add more conditions, Anne panicked and refused in a hurry. How far would it go? Would he demand to sleep with her? Seeing the anxious look on Anne''s face, Kevin''s eyes closed in displeasure. ''She doesn''t like me much!'' "Hurry up, before I change my mind." ''This woman is still dawdling. Is she waiting for me to kiss her?'' Noticing the anxious look on Kevin''s face, Anne quickly approached him and pecked him on the cheek. If it would let her see her kid, then that was what she had to do. After a light kiss, Anne left quickly. Kevin looked at Anne with dissatisfaction. There was a glint of irritation in his ck eyes. ''That''s all I get? Really?'' "You call that a kiss? I mean, seriously?" Kevin''s face darkened with dissatisfaction. "Wasn''t that okay? You asked for a kiss, and I gave it to you. You can''t go back on your word!" Sensing the displeasure of the man in front of her, Anne looked at him vigntly, fearing that he might change his mind. "That wasn''t a kiss. Do you need me to teach you?" Kevin said this as he suppressed his anger and got closer to Anne. Finally, he locked lips with her. This content ? N?v/elDr(a)m/a.Org. Anne''s beautiful eyes went wide in shock and disbelief. It felt like a long time before Kevin let go of her, strong desire in his ck eyes. Caught up in the moment, Anne forgot herself, forgot that Kevin had just taken advantage of her. "Now that... That''s a kiss." This woman kissed him lightly and casually. She wasn''t getting off that easily. Anne came to her senses and looked at him angrily. This man was obviously taking advantage of her. "Kevin, you..." She stared at him angrily, but couldn''t say a word. She could only re at the guy. "What? Not enough for you? Do you want some more?" Deliberately misreading Anne''s reaction, Kevin raised his dashing eyebrows and looked at her, smiling. Finally, another facial expression attracted him. Angry, bashful. He loved it. He wondered what more he could get out of her. "Fine. You got your kiss. Can I see the baby tomorrow?" She didn''t want to argue with him anymore. The most important thing for her now was to see her child. "The child is not in America. I''ll take you back home tomorrow." Kevin looked at Anne with affection. "What? The boy''s not here?" Hearing the news her child was not in America, she looked at him in shock. Sam said he was here. That was why she was in America in the first ce. But Kevin''s news hit her like a p. What the hell was going on? Where was her son? "The child is at home." Kevin assessed the situation. He knew why she came to America, but there were some things he didn''t want her to know. "Then I''ll go pack." She started to piece everything together. Sam wasn''t in a hurry to find her kid. Even though he said the boy was in America. Sam must have known her child wasn''t there. After figuring it out, Anne felt a little ufortable. Although she knew why Sam did it, she couldn''t help but get angry when she worked so hard trying to track her son down. She had been searching for so long. She stood up, walked into the bedroom and began to pack up her clothes. Since her child was no longer stateside, there was no need for her to stay here. He saw that look of disappointment on Anne''s face. It was working. She didn''t trust Sam as much anymore. Anne tried to close her eyes and rest, but sleep eluded her. She was too excited. She was going to get to see her son tomorrow. She hadn''t seen her baby for months. Now that she finally had the chance to see him, how could she not be totally stoked? In the morning, there were two big dark circles under Anne''s eyes, and she looked more than a little tired. But she was anxious. She would get to see her boy¡ªfinally. She was shaken out of her thoughts by a knock at the door. It was Kevin. "You ready? I have a ne waiting." "Yes, I''m ready. We can leave now." Anne was practically breathless with hope. "If you''re ready, we can leave now. I imagine you wouldn''t object to seeing him as soon as possible?" Kevin took a look at Anne and saw the big dark circles around her eyes. He felt bad for her. She was kind of a mess. Chapter 147 Back To China Chapter 147 Back To China Anne followed Kevin with excitement. She couldn''t calm herself down at the thought of seeing her child. Although she did not sleep all night, she did not feel tired at all. Instead, she felt a bit nervous. It would be the first time for her to see her child since he was born. On the ne, Kevin nced at the eager look on Anne''s face and asked aloofly, "Didn''t you sleepst night?" "Well, maybe I was too thrilled to fall asleep." Now that she was about to see the baby, she appeared to be ecstatic at the moment. Her tone of speaking to Kevin was not as cold as before. "You will see the baby soon." Her excitement made Kevin feel guilty for forbidding her to see her child long ago. He even thought that if he had let her see the child earlier, she wouldn''t have hated him so much now. "Thank you," all of a sudden, Anne turned to look at him and said in a serious tone. She knew that this man had made a huge concession this time. If this happened in the past, he would never choose topromise. Kevin was slightly in a daze. This woman was thanking him. As far as he remembered, she hated him. His heart was palpitating as he fixed his ck eyes on Anne''s face with a hint ofplexity. "You don''t have to thank me. I will give you more time to get along with our child in the future." He looked ahead with a strange countenance. What was wrong with him? Was he happy because this little woman''s attitude towards him gradually changed? When did he be so easy to be pleased? Anne nced at him in surprise. What did he mean? Was he telling her that she could finally be with her child? For a moment, her hatred for him disappeared. It was the first time that this man had considered her sentiment. "Take a rest." Noticing that Anne''s eyes were fixed on him, Kevin became self-conscious. He felt a little awkward. It was not until she heard his voice that Anne realized her gaffe and quickly looked away. She had been staring at him for a long time. Embarrassed, Anne closed her eyes. She did not want to look at him anymore. Sometimes his kind gestures could still stir up ripples in her heart. She did not want her feeling to be swayed by his behavior. Perhaps it was because she was too tired that Anne fell asleep right away. When she woke up, she felt like it had been a long time. She slightly opened her eyes and felt that the ne hadnded. Anne turned at Kevin, whose face was very close to hers. When his handsome face emerged in front of her face, her heart raced uncontrobly. What was this man doing? Why was he so close to her? "Kevin, what are you doing?" Anne immediately withdrew her body and looked at him vigntly. His scent was around her nose, and her heart began to race again. "What do you think I''m doing?" Her initial reaction was to keep a distance between them, which made Kevin very vexed. Was she deliberately avoiding him? Or did she think their rtionship was estranged? "Have wended? Let''s get off as soon as possible." Anne did not want to irritate him, so she quickly changed the topic. If he got provoked, he might not let Copyright by N?v/elDrama.Org. her see her child. As she thought of this, a ttering smile appeared on her face, which was so bright and genuine. Kevin did not know how long since hest saw this woman smile like that. His heart trembled fiercely. This little woman was indeed beautiful when she smiled. Gazing at the smile on her face, Kevin got lost in his thoughts for a while. He loved to see her smile as it brought out her purity and gentleness. Seeing that Kevin kept his eyes on her, Anne felt even more abashed. She did not know what was going on inside of this man''s head, so she walked away in a hurry. When Kevin came to his senses, he gave a disgruntled look at the panic-stricken woman who had left. A trace of dissatisfaction shed through his dark eyes as he walked down. The familiar city and the environment made Anne feel a bit strange. She was still in a stupor when Kevin approached her ear and said firmly, "Anne, let us start from where we ended. You will soon fall in love with again." This little woman still med him in her heart, but he was confident and capable of making her fall in love with him again. Hearing that, Anne curled her lips. At this moment, she could only think of him as a mad person. He had hurt her deeply, and now he was saying that the two of them should start fresh? Was he kidding? Some scars stayed for a lifetime, but a man as arrogant as he was would not realize. "Take me to my child now. I want to see him now." Anne did not want to discuss such a topic with him anymore. "Get in the car." Knowing that she was deliberately avoiding the topic, Kevin was displeased, but he did not get angry. Half an hourter, they finally arrived at Kevin''s vi. The ce where she had lived was also a ce where her heart had been broken. Standing at the door, Anne walked heavily. She did not want to set foot in this ce anymore. Kevin had torn her into pieces in this very vi. From there, her life had changed. Entering the ce, he noticed that Anne was not following behind him. Kevin stopped and frowned when he saw her standing still. "Why are you still standing there? Hurry up and follow me!" Anne became a little odd as soon as she returned home. Did something happen? Or did she feel ufortable? When she came to her senses, she tried her best to look casual and walked towards him. Kevin grabbed her hand and led her into the vi. The two walked together. Feeling the coldness from his hand, Anne was stunned. She wanted to break free instinctively, but Kevin''s grip was too tight. She could not escape his grasp, so she chose to give up eventually. Learning the news of Kevin''s return, Cherry rushed out excitedly. But when she saw the two holding each other''s hands, aversion shed in her gorgeous eyes straight away. But Cherry was good at hiding her true feelings. She immediately suppressed her emotions and smiled. "Kevin, you''re finally back. You''ve been in America for so long. I was so worried about you," Cherry held his arm and said coquettishly and aggrievedly. As Cherry clutched on him, Kevin knitted his brows unhappily, and broke free from her arms. Since he had decided to be with Anne, he did not want to sustain his rtionship with Cherry. When Cherry discerned Kevin''s estrangement, her expression changed slightly. She could feel that they were growing further apart. "Anne, you''re back. That''s great. I haven''t heard from you for such a long time. I was worried about you." Cherry turned to look at Anne with a cold detestation in her eyes, but soon she put on a smile again. Her smile appeared sincere, yet it made Anne feel a bit scornful. ''Cherry''s acting skill is getting better and better. She despises me so much but pretends to be intimate with me. Won''t it get tiring being so pretentious?'' "Worried? I think you were worried that I woulde back." A disdainful sneer appeared on Anne''s face. There was coldness in her tone. She was not good at acting, nor did she want to act with Cherry. The smile on Cherry''s face froze. She gave a hateful look at Anne as her heart was filled with rage. She was only containing her anger because of Kevin''s presence. "Anne, what are you talking about? You are my cousin. I was worried about you when you went abroad alone. Now, I''m so d that you are finally back," Cherry said hypocritically, but her expression was indifferent. "Cherry, you don''t have to talk to me hypocritically. I will feel sick if you do so." Anne frowned and looked at Cherry frigidly. Her words were a little mean. She knew how impolite it was to talk to a person in such a tone, but she could not control her emotions in front of her. This woman had set her up many times, so she was not in the mood to act with Cherry in front of Kevin. After all, she did not care what he would think of her now. "Anne, how can you talk to me like that? I really care about you," Cherry said in a low voice and looked at Kevin with her big innocent eyes, seeming delicate and pitiful. In the past, when she looked at him in this way, Kevin would feel very sorry for her. No matter what happened, he would always me it on Anne. But it did not work this time, because Kevin never looked at her since the beginning. "Let''s go. I''ll take you to see the baby." Kevin''s big hand was still holding Anne firmly. He had never let go of her. He was not as furious as before when the war between the two women broke out. Moreover, he did not want to be angry with Anne anymore. He even thought that what Cherry had said was a little feigned. Chapter 148 Seeing Her Child Chapter 148 Seeing Her Child Anne looked at Kevin wide-eyed. His behavior seemingly caught her off guard. She thought this man would speak for Cherry as before, but what he did today was unusual. With Kevin''s fingers interlocked with hers, Anne did not resist. When she saw the hatred in Cherry''s eyes, a hint of provocation shed through her charming eyes. Although she knew that being with Kevin would be by no stretch of the imagination a possibility, Anne didn''t want to concede in front of this woman. The two of them passed by each other in a seeming standoff. Anne saw clearly the ill will in her eyes. Cherry mentioned before that she was worried about her, but all she was truly worried about was her They went to the nursery on the second floor. As soon as Anne stood by the door in the hallway, she heard the baby''s cry. Her heart skipped a beat like a hup. At that moment, she didn''t know how to describe her emotions. The only thing that was standing in between her and her son was the powerless door in front of her. Her hands trembled in anxiety. Would her child''s angelic face greet her as soon as this door utched? Was she dreaming? Anne found herself quivering in front of the door. She didn''t have enough courage to open it for a while because everything felt like a dream, that as soon as she pushed the door, she would wake up from her sleep. Kevin had no idea what was going on in her mind. She never saw this little woman hesitate this much; he couldn''t help but feel bad for her. Didn''t she pray for this day toe? Why was she dubious about seeing her child? "Anne, don''t you want to see you baby? Do you regret being here?" Kevin raised the question in a somewhat gloomy tone as he looked at the tangled expression on Anne''s face. "No, I didn''t. I''m just afraid that this is all but a dream. If I open that door, then my consciousness would take over my body and I''d wake up." Anne spoke with mixed emotions. She was excited but fearful. The confusion reflecting in her eyes was obvious. When Kevin heard what she said, his heart shook like a leaf and the feeling of heart ache crept into his heart. Had he gone too far to make this woman mistake reality for a fantasy? Not having enough patience, Kevin opened the door by himself. The baby''s cry resonated louder which made Anne more anxious. She strode over slowly, taking her time, before reaching out to the baby clutched in the maid''s arms. She gently tucked the boy in her warm embrace, and it felt surreal. It was him. It was her son. She really saw her child and now she was holding him in her arms. She examined the baby''s features. She thought that he looked very much like his father, a mini-Kevin. She knew that when he grew up, he would be just as handsome as his dad. This little baby in her arms was so small. His face was about as big as a palm, but he was particrly beautiful. His big eyes were pure and full of life. She was so fond of him that she could not take her hands off him. It was her son, such a lovely boy. She had dreamed of her child countless times, but his face was always a blur. Now, she finally saw his image crystal clear. Perhaps the child had felt a motherly embrace and gradually stopped crying. He looked at Anne with his little eyes and shed a captivating smile. For the first few minutes, the baby was wailing and seemed tense. But as their eyes converge, Anne raised a smile from ear to ear and her joyful tears came falling. s, they finally met. Kevin''s heart clenched upon seeing Anne''s happy tears in this blissful moment. He felt terrible. He really regretted treating her like that. "Why are you crying? Aren''t you happy to see the baby?" Cupping her face, Kevin wiped the tears on Anne''s cheeks with a gloomy face. Why did this woman be so emotional? She could have been ecstatic when she saw the child, but she chose to cry. Kevin''s movement seemed rude, but there was gentleness in his strength. He was afraid that he would scrape her. The tears of this woman made him inexplicably irritable, yet remorseful. "Of course, I''m happy to see the baby." Text ? 2024 N?velDrama.Org. Raising her head to look at Kevin, Anne spoke is a trembling voice. Apparently, she was still at the height of the moment. Kevin''s face took a peculiar turn and said in a low voice, "I will let you see your child every day for as long as you want. I wouldn''t stand in your way from being with him." He didn''t want to see the painful expression on her face. "Really? I can see my baby every day?" Anne asked uncertainly, shocked by his words. She thought that he was kind enough to allow her to see the child, so she settled for a visit and didn''t ask for too much. But upon hearing his words, she was moved. "Yes." With a simple nod, Kevin looked away. This woman''s eyes were full of gratitude, and Kevin did not like that. He didn''t need this woman to look at him with such appreciation. "Kevin, thank you so much!" Her eyes lingered on him as she sincerely thanked him. It waspletely beyond her expectation that this man granted such a thing. "Don''t say ''thank you'' to me. I don''t like it!" Bummer! They already had a child together, and now she was so polite to him as if he was some stranger. Had they be so isted from each other? Anne was bbergasted. She had no idea why Kevin spoke with sudden dissatisfaction. But that was not important. All her senses were now focused on her child. Cherry was standing there by the door. When she saw that Kevin cared and felt sorry for Anne, her hatred poured out of her heart. She was certain that Anne came back with the purpose of taking Kevin away from her. No, she would not allow this woman to win Kevin over. He only belonged to her. With the thought bugging her, Cherry pushed the door open and walked straight right in. When she saw the tenderness in Kevin''s eyes as he looked at Anne, her eyes lit with spite like a burner. "Anne, don''t you agree that he looks exactly like his father? You have no idea how I adored him seeing him the first time." Cherry walked from Anne''s left shoulder to the other to have a better view of the child with a loving smile on her face and malice deep in her eyes. Bearing the thought of this child being a bridge for Kevin and Anne, she craved to strangle the boy. Every time she saw the baby, Cherry would be filled with wrath. If it were not for the fact that the child was so important for the Fu Family, she would have just ceased the boy of his existence. Hearing Cherry''s remark, Anne frowned slightly with a dash of impatience in her eyes. She knew that this woman was not to be trusted. She was so viscous. How could she count on her to like her child? She even doubted if Cherry meant good intentions. "I haven''t seen any woman who would love the child of his man from another woman. If you like him, you are really a saint." Anne looked at Cherry with intense mockery. There was disdain and contempt in her tone. She knew very well what kind of person Cherry was. It was impossible for her to like their child. Of course, Cherry sensed the obvious sarcasm in Anne''s tone. Her face irked slightly, and the cruelty in her eyes shed as she raised an eyebrow. "Anne, I think you might have misunderstood me. When you were absent in the child''s need, I treated him as my own. If you don''t believe me, why don''t you ask Kevin? The boy is Kevin''s son, I''m sure he won''t lie about it, right?" There was a trace of ridicule on Cherry''s face, and a faint grudge in her fierce eyes. It was obvious that she said this deliberately in front of Kevin. As Anne saw that Cherry shifted the topic to Kevin, her heart sank. Based on his stand, he would most likely speak for Cherry. Turning her eyes to the face of the child, Anne was anxious and didn''t want to hear what Kevin had to say. "Well, Cherry, you can go ahead of us now. She just saw her child for the first time. Let her be. Allow her to spend more time with him." Cherry''s abrupt appearance disturbed the good time when Kevin could be alone with Anne. He was dissatisfied with her behavior. He didn''t want to let someone ruin the serene atmosphere since he finally had the chance to stay with Anne for a while. In Cherry''s surprise, Kevin didn''t fall for her maniption. Instead, she was asked to leave. Her face became pale. She could not believe that Kevin sided with Anne. With bitterness in her eyes, she stormed off in embarrassment. It was all because of that bitch, Anne. If it weren''t for her, Kevin would never treat her so cold. "Kevin..." Cherry looked at Kevin with grief and called his name softly. Her pitiful act would have made people feel very sorry for her. "Like I said, you go out first." Kevin red with displeasure. When he said this, he didn''t even bother looking at her. Now in his eyes, except for Anne, no woman deserved his patience. Anne was amazed at what Kevin said. When did this man be so indifferent to Cherry? She was always like his precious treasure. He was not like this before. Cherry could not believe Kevin''s actions; her heart took another blow from his man''s negligence. She opened her mouth, but she was so upset that she decided not to speak a word. Finally, she left unresisting. With Cherry expelled from the room, the atmosphere was once again filled with serenity. Anne took another look at the baby in her motherly embrace. It was all she cared about. She didn''t even want to talk to Cherry. She wanted to cherish this paramount moment as a mother. It was pointless now to argue with a woman like Cherry. Looking at the radiant smile on Anne''s face, Kevin couldn''t help but think that it seemed like a good idea to have a family of three like this in the future. Chapter 149 Break Up Chapter 149 Break Up Anne had always wished for the moment to hold her baby in her arms, so when she had it now, she found it hard to be separated from him. At night, she took her child to sleep in the guest room. Her heart was filled with joy as she looked at the angelic face of her own child. She really hoped that she could watch him like this as he grew up. But could she really watch him grow each day and be with him every stage of his life? At the same hour in the evening, Kevin came to Cherry''s room and knocked the door gently. Cherry was surprised to see Kevin at her door, so she quickly threw herself in his arms. "Kevin, you finally came to me. I thought you didn''t want to talk to me anymore." Tears of joy welled up in Cherry''s eyes. She always knew that Kevin would never abandon her. He loved her so much that she would never believe that he would do such kind of thing. However, to her surprise, Kevin frowned irritably and pushed her out of his arms without hesitation. "Cherry, I want to talk to you about something. Go to your room," Kevin said in an indifferent tone while looking at her coldly. Cherry somehow had a bad feeling when she saw his gloomy face. "Okay. Let''s talk about it after wee in," she said with a hint of anxiety in her tone. She stepped back and let him in. The good mood that Cherry had earlier when she saw Kevin at her door was reced with confusion and uneasiness. When Kevin came in, he turned around and looked at her. After a moment of silence, he finally spoke up. "Cherry, now that Anne hase back, you should know what I''m thinking. I don''t think it''s appropriate for you to stay here any longer." He was domineering and confident with what he just said. He had already made up his mind to banish Cherry from his house. Cherry''s eyes widened, and suddenly her eyes were filled with worry. "Kevin, what do you mean? Do you want to drive me away?" She spoke with so much agitation. "I will buy you another house and give you some money so that you won''t have any worries about your life," Kevin said without looking at her aggrieved eyes. There was no expression that could be seen on his face. He knew that it was unfair to Cherry, but he couldn''t have another woman in his heart, so he had to give her up. "Kevin, why¡­ How could you do this to me? Do you know how broken my heart was to hear you say that?" Cherry was flustered with what she heard. She couldn''t believe how things turned this way. She had worked so hard to attain all the things she had now. How could her efforts go to waste? Her life couldn''t just end up like this. She invested her whole life for Kevin! She still wanted to marry him, but how could he change his mind now? What made his heart so hard and kick her out of his house as easy as this? "If there''s anything more that you want or you need. I can satisfy you by granting all of it. I won''t treat you shabbily," Kevin said with a slight frown on his face. There was a trace of guilt in his tone. He knew that she had done a lot for him, but he wouldn''t force himself to be with a woman he didn''t love anymore. "Anything that I want, or need? I definitely don''t need anything but you. I just want to stay with you and apany you. Please don''t do this to me, okay?" Cherry looked pathetic and pleaded Kevin while holding his hands tightly. She couldn''t afford to lose everything she built up. She couldn''t help but cry her heart out when she realized that all her efforts were in vain. Kevin felt a little annoyed when he saw her pleading face. He didn''t care about her anymore nor feel sorry for what he had caused her. "Cherry, I have made myself clear just now. I don''t want to repeat my word." It was like the end of the world for Cherry. She was so devastated about losing Kevin. The thought that she feared the most had alreadye to reality. Now, the only woman he had care for was Anne. Kevin knew that Anne had always been jealous of his rtionship with Cherry. So, he wouldn''t let her feel that way anymore. He had to banish Cherry from the house as soon as she lived here. Anyway, he would have nothing to do with her anymore. He spoke with a darkened face. He pulled his arm from Cherry''s grip and was about to leave. Cherry didn''t know what to do. How would she be able to let him go as easy as he did to her? She ran towards him and wrapped her arms around his waist from behind tightly. "Cherry, let me go!" Kevin frowned and red at her impatiently. He couldn''t stand his woman anymore. His eyes were filled with disgust towards her. "No, I don''t want to let you go. Don''t leave me, okay? As long as you keep me, I''ll do anything you want me to do." Cherry burst in tears while trying to gain his sympathy. She knew that he had already made up his mind to break up with her, but she had a little hope in her heart that there was still a bit of love that was left in his heart for her. But Kevin didn''t like to be pestered. Hatred shed in his eyes when he looked at Cherry. He was holding his temper as much as he could for the sake of her mother who had saved him. But this woman in front of him was provoking him to his limits. "Let me go! Don''t let me say it for the third time!" It seemed that he had already lost his patience. There was nothing left to feel for her but hatred. "Kevin, please don''t do this to me. We were just fine. Why do you have to do this to me now?" Cherry begged him and held him tighter as tears fell down her face. She waspletely aware that the moment she left his house, there wouldn''t be any chance for her to Kevin was overly infuriated. He had been holding his patience for a very long time. This woman seemed to have not understand what he was capable of when he was angered. He didn''t want to talk to her anymore, so he forcefully broke free from her grip. "I will never change my decision. I will ask my secretary to pick you up tomorrow morning. The house is ready. You don''t need to worry about it." After all, Cherry''s mother saved his life. He couldn''t be more ruthless to her. Although he knew that there was no affection that was left for her, he felt a little guilty for hurting her like this. He left afterwards. "Kevin¡­" Cherry looked pitiful. She couldn''t do anything to change his mind anymore, no matter what she did and no matter how hypocrite she became. He had stille to a point of disgusting her and disregarding all her efforts. For the first time, she didn''t care about how she looked when she burst into tears. Now that Kevin abandoned her, what should she do? She had worked so hard and done everything she could to be with Kevin. But now she got nothing. She couldn''t ept it. She med Anne for all of this. If she hadn''te back, Kevin wouldn''t have to let her go and treat her like she was nothing. It was all her fault! She was filled with hatred towards Anne. Kevin had changed a lot since she came back. Maybe, she was also the one who told him to do so. On the day after, Anne held her child in her arms in the living room. Although she had already held him in her arms for so long yesterday, she couldn''t have enough of him. She was so fascinated of raising her child. She smiled sweetly while staring at her child sleeping soundly. This content ? N?v/elDr(a)m/a.Org. When Cherry walked to the stairway, she saw the delightful moment that Anne was having with her child. Her eyes quickly darkened. Anne made her life miserable. She destroyed her future with Kevin. She strode towards Anne with so much hatred in her eyes. "You bitch, what did you say to Kevin?" She was very sure that it was Anne who convinced Kevin to banish her. Anne turned around at Cherry''s loud questioning in the early morning. She frowned slightly and held her child carefully. She threw a cold stare towards Cherry. "Cherry, what''s wrong with you in the early morning? The baby is asleep. Please keep your voice down!" The baby in her arms had just fallen asleep. She was worried that Cherry might woke him up. "What''s wrong with me? You bitch, it''s all because of you. You must have said something to Kevin to make him banish me like this! I know that you''ve done something!" Cherry didn''t know how to control her anger anymore. She now didn''t care how she looked this way. She wouldn''t let go of Anne who had caused her to be so miserable. "You mean Kevin wants you to leave here?" Anne gave her a skeptical look. She had never thought that Kevin would be capable of that. She had always known Cherry as the most important person in his life. The wind had blew differently as it seemed. This was totally out of her expectation. Kevin cared so much for Cherry. He couldn''t abandon her just like that. "Are you still pretending? What did you say to Kevin?" Cherry got more furious. She thought that Anne was obviously pretending. Anne had to face this dimwitted woman again. She couldn''t help but feel irritated. "I don''t understand what you are talking about. Kevin''s decision had nothing to do with me. He is the only one who can answer your questions!" Although she was shocked by what Kevin had done to Cherry, she didn''t show any emotion on her face. As usual, she didn''t want to easily show her weakness in front of this woman. "Anne, just wait and see. I won''t let you go. I will take back what''s mine and put you back to the ce where you belong!" Cherry''s eyes were full of discontentment. They were burning with anger. She would always hate Anne no matter what. After she threatened her coldly, she strode away. Anne was left puzzled. As she stared at the back of Cherry, her face turned cold. She felt furious in her heart. Chapter 150 Quarrel Chapter 150 Quarrel Coldness and anger shed through Anne''s eyes. It seemed that Cherry couldn''t hold back her emotions anymore. She even dared to frankly speak her mind when Kevin was around. Was it because she had been seen through that she felt no need to continue pretending anymore? Anne smirked as she thought of it. She was looking forward to how Kevin would react if he knew Cherry''s true colors. Kevin was in the study room when he heard someone quarreling downstairs. He came to see who it was, but when he came, Cherry had already left. He saw Anne sitting alone in the living room, soothing the child. He approached her and stared at her face tenderly. "What happened just now? Why did I hear Cherry''s voice?" he said in an unusually soft tone. Anne was dismayed when she noticed how Kevin spoke Cherry''s name in a soft tone, but she still remained her straight face. "Are you worried that I will do something to hurt your sweetheart again?" she said in a cold tone, but the bitterness in her voice was evident. She lowered her head and continued soothing her baby. He immediately frowned when he heard what she said. Irritation shed through his ck eyes when he thought, did she still care about Cherry''s existence in their house? "I had talked to Cherryst night. She will move out today. From now on, our rtionship is over. You don''t need to worry about it anymore. Don''t mind it. You are my only woman now," He patiently exined while he looked at her cold face. He didn''t want to throw all the efforts he had made for the woman toe back to him. Thest he would do was to get her angry and made her leave again. After she heard his exnation, she tried hard to ignore him even though her heart was pounding fast. "I''ve never said that I''m your woman now. Mr. Kevin, you are overthinking things. We two have nothing to do with each other. The reason why I came back with you was just to see my baby." The harm he had caused her was already too much. Their rtionship was initially broken, so there was no reason for him to fall in love with her even if he left Cherry. He thought that his words could make her heart flutter even slightly, but it seemed that he had no ce in the woman''s heart anymore. Kevin had never been so patient to a woman before. He had tried so many times to reach out to her, but her reaction towards him was still so cold. "Anne, that''s all you want to say to me? Nothing else? I just said that my rtionship with Cherry has ended. Don''t you feel anything?" Kevin was dissatisfied with her attitude. Why did her attitude towards him never change even though he had tried to do everything he could to please her? "Should I feel something? Mr. Kevin, I think you know why I came back with you. From the beginning to the end, the rtionship between us hasn''t changed. I just want to spend more time with my child. As for your rtionship with Cherry, I''m not interested at all. You don''t have to exin it to me." She stopped him coldly. Anne didn''t want to hear anything about them. She didn''t want to keep her hopes up and get disappointed again. "Anne!" His eyes darkened. Her words were like a big stone in his heart, making him feel very frustrated. He was about to lose his temper, but he suppressed his anger when he saw Anne''s face. He was cautious about getting angry with this woman. "Mr. Kevin, what can I do for you? If not, I''ll take my child upstairs." Anne didn''t want to talk to Kevin anymore, so she walked upstairs carrying the baby in her arms. The woman''s attitude made him even furious. He had been too gentle to her, but she still gave him such a perspective. No woman had dared to ignore Kevin before like she did. ''How dare she!'' He stopped her by blocking her way and stared at her eyes with anger. He wondered what the little woman wanted. What should he do to make her treat him like before? "Anne, what do you want me to do? Isn''t it enough for me to do this?" His cold eyes were burning with anger. Anne really pissed him off. No woman had dared to refuse him like this before. "You have done this yourself. I haven''t asked you to do it for me. You can go to Cherry and tell her that you regret it. I know she wille back to you swiftly." Anne raised her head and told every bit of the word, emphasizing it as she stared at his eyes. What did he mean with his words? Did he think that she was annoying? Howe he was so annoyed and impatient at her when he said he wanted her to go back at him? It seemed that everything he said, including the one that he liked her, was fake. She knew his feelings were just temporary. ''Anne, wake up. How could a man like him like you?'' she thought. "Anne, dare you repeat what you just said to me again!" ''Damn it! What does she mean by saying that? Doesn''t she care if I have another woman around me now?'' His thoughts bothered him. Didn''t she mind Cherry''s existence before? When he had finally resolved the problem, what did she mean by saying those words to him? Without backing down with his words, she matched his gaze and answered in an indifferent tone, "I made myself clear just now. Didn''t you hear me clearly? Do you need me to repeat it?" She hid all her emotions and didn''t let him see through. He clenched his fists and tried to suppress his anger. How could Anne say something like that after all that he had done for her? "Anne, do you know what I''m thinking about now? I''ve done so much for you. Don''t you feel anything? How could you say something like that to me now!" His eyes were filled with anger. He wanted to beat Anne up, but she was too precious for him now. How could he bear to hurt her? Anne left. She was done hearing his exnation. She was afraid that she couldn''t help but fall for him if she continued to listen to him. Many things had happened, but she knew that she still loved him in her heart. Sadly, they couldn''t go back to the past. "Mr. Kevin, no matter what you are thinking now, it has nothing to do with me. I only care about my child. I don''t want anything else." The only thing that she cherished that moment was her child, to stay with him and watch him grow. Nothing else, not even a rtionship. "You came back with me just for your baby? Isn''t there any other reason?" His expression changed as he stared at her coldly. What did she mean? Why did she try to get on his This content ? N?v/elDr(a)m/a.Org. nerves? He had adjusted for her, but she wasn''t moved at all! "Yes, just for the child!" She remained firm when she answered Kevin, but her heart trembled. She had already made up her mind, and she would not change easily. When he saw how determined she was, his expression suddenly turned cold. ''How could this damn little woman say these words to me so firmly?'' Kevin was stoned in his ce. He wanted to get angry, but he couldn''t. He was clueless when he started to get afraid of unleashing his anger towards her. As she saw how he didn''t respond, Anne nced at him for a moment and left. His face darkened as he watched her receding figure. It was an unmistakable gesture that she distanced herself from him. For the first time, he felt heartbroken. Was it true that no matter what he did, the woman wouldn''t change her mind? Kevin felt sad when he thought of what he should do if the woman really didn''t love him anymore. Anne came to the room carrying the baby in her arms. She felt problematic as she was thinking about Kevin''s words, with her eyes fixed on the baby. She must admit that what Kevin said did cause a stir in her heart. Despite his arrogance, he had done so much for her. How could she not feel anything at all? In fact, she had never forgotten him in her heart. As he stood alone in the middle of the living room, Kevin''s face turned frustrated as he thought, ''Damn it! She just left me here, and she really doesn''t want to be my woman anymore.'' He couldn''t believe that a woman could be so heartless. Cherry suddenly came out and happened to see Kevin standing alone. She hesitated for a while but still decided to approach him. "Kevin, what''s wrong? You don''t look well." She looked at his face worriedly. His thoughts were shattered when he heard a woman''s voice. He turned his gaze at it, but he was disappointed to see Cherry instead of Anne. "Nothing. Why are you here? Why haven''t you left yet?" Chapter 151 Changing His Mind Chapter 151 Changing His Mind Kevin frowned and looked at Cherry impatiently. He was getting tired of being pestered by her. Cherry looked at him with so much pain in her eyes. She couldn''t stand his indifference towards her. "Kevin, do you really want me to leave so badly? Didn''t we have a serious affection for each other? Why does it seem like you never really loved me?" Cherry spoke in a quavering voice. The colder he was, the more flustered she became. This man was so cruel to her now. How could he be like that? Her words only made him more irritated. First with Anne, now with this perturbing woman. Anne had made him angry earlier when she told him that she just came back for the baby and she didn''t care for him at all. "Cherry, am I not making myself clear enough for you to understand? Do I have to say it one more time?" The more she pleaded, the more Kevin was annoyed. He didn''t want to take one more look at her. In his eyes, there was no one but Anne. He was about to leave after saying such things. "Kevin, I have done so much for you, but in the end, this is how you will treat me? What am I to you? My mother even risked her life for you, but you still ended up ditching me like this." Cherry knew that he was already in love with Anne and he became more determined to get her back. It was the reason why he wanted to break up with her now, but she still knew him the most. He was not a heartless person and that was enough to use her mother just so he wouldn''t let her go. As expected, a hint of hesitation shed in Kevin''s eyes when he heard about her mother. Although he was irritated by her, he still owed her mother a lot for saving his life. "I always remember your mother''s kindness, so I have always kept you by my side to take care of you. I know it''s unfair to you, but I really can''t ept anyone else now. I really can''t love you anymore." This time, he spoke softer and with enough patience. He would always consider the fact that he was saved by her mother no matter what, but he had to be true to her in order not toplicate things in the future. Cherry was overjoyed when she saw the hesitation in his eyes. She had a little hope that he would still let her stay by his side. "Kevin, I just want you to let me stay with you. I don''t care about anything else, so don''t drive me away, okay?" Her eyes were filled with tears. Obviously, she was in a state of devastation. Any man who would see her would feel sorry for her. Kevin didn''t want to talk to her anymore. He walked past her, but he stopped when he heard what she said next. "Kevin, I know that you only care about Anne now, but have you ever thought if she loves you or not? Don''t you feel herck of interest from the way she treated you just now? She doesn''t care about you at all!" Cherry knew how arrogant Kevin was. There had always been a lot of women around him, desperate to get into his bed. She knew that he would be infuriated when he realized what she meant. She had to seize the chance to add fuel to the fire. As expected, Kevin felt exasperated. He didn''t like what Anne told him earlier. Now that Cherry exacerbated what he felt, he didn''t know how he would still be able to control his rage. He could get any woman as long as he wanted, but this Anne, she actually rejected him. When Cherry noticed that his mood shifted, she felt satisfied knowing that her words affected him a lot. She even continued to infuriate him. "Kevin, are you really going to keep a woman who doesn''t love you by your side?" Cherry looked at his face keenly. Although she was happy that her words had had an impact to him, she felt a bit afraid that he might vent his anger on her if she was not careful enough. Kevin clenched his fists and gritted his teeth. His anger was supposed to have been suppressed already, but this woman seemed to provoke him to his limits. "Kevin¡­" "Enough!" he quickly retorted. He did not need anyone to remind him of how he should deal with Anne. Cherry was startled by his roar and looked at him with fear. She said those words for his good. Didn''t he feel it at all? "Kevin, I have said those words for your own good. Don''t you even appreciate me for doing this for you?" Cherry was obviously aggrieved when she said those words to him. She was never disregarded by him like this. He seemed to be apletely different person to her now. "From now on, I don''t want to hear such words from you. Cherry, you should know that my patience is limited. If you don''t want me to kick you out by force right now, you''d better behave yourself." Although Kevin was in a rage right now, he waspletely aware of her ulterior motive. He knew that she was trying to sow dissension between him and Anne. He would never let himself be pushed around by anyone. Cherry''s face turned pale when he warned her. Did he know her true intention? "I''m sorry, Kevin. I didn''t mean to say that. I just feel sorry for you¡­" She tried to exin for herself, but she could never manipte his mind again. This content ? N?v/elDr(a)m/a.Org. "You can stay here for the meantime. But I don''t want anything bad to happen to our family while you are here. Do you understand? At first, he wanted Cherry to leave today, but when Anne told him that she only cared for her child, he was furious. So he changed his mind. He decided to let Cherry stay for the moment to test whether Anne really didn''t mind or not. "Kevin, are you not going to drive me away?" Cherry suddenly felt encouraged. She looked at him in surprise and smiled with relief. Since he didn''t insist on banishing her, did it mean that she still had a ce in his heart? Did he still feel a bit of love for her? "You can leave at any time. I''ve asked my secretary to buy another house for you, so you can move there any time you want." Kevin somehow regretted his decision when he saw Cherry''s joyful expression. However, he already told her to stay, and there was no room for regret. "Okay, I won''t ask anything. I will behave myself and won''t make any difficulties for you, Kevin. Thank you for letting me stay here." Even though Cherry knew that it was mainly because of Anne as to why Kevin had suddenly changed his mind, she was still very happy. As long as there was a chance to stay, she would be able to make a way to make Kevin fall in love with her again and banish Annepletely. Kevin was her man. She would never let anyone take him away. He sighed in relief when she obeyed what he said, and strode away. Although he didn''t want to see her face any longer, he refrained himself at the thought of Anne''s indifference towards him. Cherry turned her gaze to Anne''s room. A trace of viciousness shed through her eyes. She would never let Anne take his man. Sooner orter, she would banish this woman from the vi and be thedy of this house. Anne was taking care of her child in the bedroom. It was the greatest happiness she had ever felt in her whole life. As for the matter of love, she didn''t want to consider it at all. She just wanted to stay as it was now. She was looking keenly at her baby''s features. She could see both Kevin''s and her features in him. Now, she couldn''t help but began to imagine what the baby would look like when he grew up. A knock was heard from the door and she carefully stood up to open it. She frowned slightly. She didn''t want to be disturbed when she was with her child. She thought that it must be Kevin who knocked at the door, but when she saw Cherry''s contorted face, her face suddenly turned cold. "Cherry, what are you doing in my room?" Anne looked at Cherry with a straight face and said coldly. This woman was bing more and more hostile towards her, so there was no need for Anne to be polite. "I''m here to tell you that I won''t leave here. Kevin just told me that he didn''t want to leave me. Don''t think that your tricks can drive me away. I''m the only one in his heart, so you''d better give up!" Cherry still believed that it was Anne who made Kevin drive her away. She would always put all the me on Anne. Anne raised her brows when she saw Cherry''s smug face. Although she felt a little sad to hear what Cherry said to her, she still red at her and said coldly, "I''m not interested in your rtionship with Kevin, and I don''t want to meddle in it either. You don''t have to tell me about it. You''d better go to him by now," Anne said frankly and was about to close the door. Cherry was a bit startled by her words. It was so straightforward that she was not able to retort. Now she had the chance to turn the table, she would not let Anne go easily. She pushed the door to stop her from closing it and looked at her with viciousness flickering in her eyes. Chapter 152 Maleficent Chapter 152 Maleficent "Anne, do you think that you can just drag your feet in this house the moment you came back? I tell you, in this vi, I am the real hostess!" Cherry said in a sharp and mean tone, while looking at Anne indifferently. Her eyes were full of hostility. She believed that Kevin''s change of attitude towards her was all because of Anne. If it weren''t for Anne, she would have been married to Kevin. For her, this tragedy was to be med upon Anne. She ruined everything. With a scowl in her face, Anne looked at Cherry in the heat of the moment. Her mean voice echoed in her ears, making her very agitated. She didn''t want to argue with Cherry, but this vicious woman was pushing her to her limit. Her intentions were clear from the beginning; she just wanted to stay with her child and had no interest in "Are you done babbling your nonsense? If you have nothing to say anymore, just leave. I have a baby to take care of!" After saying these words furiously, Anne intended to close the door to end this conversation. That woman was just mad, so just let her be. The most important agenda her was her child. If she could see the baby every day, she had no business running against someone else. Anne had convinced herself that she would not argue with Cherry even though her bitchy attitude ruined her good mood and made her irritated. There really was no need to do so, because she had nothing to do with Kevin. "Do you have any idea what''s going on? Don''t you know who you are speaking to right now? I manage this house! You only came back for the child so you could use it to get closer to Kevin. I tell you; I won''t let you seed!" Even though it was contrary to what Anne said, Cherry was sure that she had a scheme to eventually have Kevin. This woman was trying to contest her for his man. "Maybe you only have such belief because you feel that way. You have dirty thoughts. Is this how you see other people? Aspetitors? Cherry, if you are drowning in your disgusting presumptions, please keep them to yourself!" Anne blurted out her anger and used keen words, having had her fill of this bullying. She didn''t want to make amotion, but it didn''t mean that she would be at the mercy of others. She didn''t want topete with Cherry for anything. She just wanted to be a mother, but Cherry was maleficent. She would never allow herself to be trampled by others like before. It was the first time that Anne had spoken to Cherry in such a tone. At the same time, it was also a first for Cherry to be nagged by someone. How could she bear the feeling? "Don''t be socent. Since I can make you leave this ce for the first time, I can also make you disappear for the second time!" Anne was rendered speechless by Cherry''s threatening words. The expression on Cherry''s face became distorted. This was the first time she had felt that Anne had the upper hand. "That depends on your capabilities. You better make me, and my son leave here and disappear from you sight forever!" If Anne could take her baby away from this hell of a ce, she would be very happy. If Kevin grew tired of her and let her take the child, she would do so without hesitation. Unable to get the better of Anne, Cherry red up, her eyes full of malice. Anne was no good for her. She had changed a lot since she came back. It wouldn''t be so easy anymore for Cherry to expel her from the vi. "I will force you out of here. I will not give you a chance to stay with Kevin. He belongs to me. He''s mine!" After uttering these words in a roaring tone, Cherry mmed the door and left. She would not let her go Copyright by N?v/elDrama.Org. so easily. The house was filled by the resonating thud of the door until it faded into silence. Anne sighed with a hot head; her scowling eyebrows revealed her impatience. Cherry was showing more and more aggressiveness. Perhaps things would only get far moreplicated than it was already. When hearing the baby''s whining, Anne suddenly came to her senses. Looking at the innocent child cry, she felt distressed. She walked briskly to the baby and picked him up. Seeing the baby''s tears, she was saddened. "Now, now, be a good boy. Don''t cry, baby. Mommy is here¡­" Anne paced back and forth in the room, embracing her baby in a luby. Looking at the child, she felt sorry. He must have felt frightened from all the quarrel with Cherry. Thinking of this possibility, she couldn''t help but feel guilty. If she had kept herposure, the boy wouldn''t have been scared. It was not easy to coax the child back to sleep. Anne breathed a long sigh of relief. She didn''t know how painful it would be if her child kept crying. In the study, Kevin couldn''t help but feel upset when he heard the baby''s wailing. In addition, he too had just quarreled with Anne, so he was not in the mood to work now. He strode into the room where Anne was. He pushed the door open and came in like a bulldozer without knocking. Hearing the door swing wide open, Anne thought it was Cherry. Her dwindling anger burst out in mes. ''What does she want this time?'' she thought. "Get out!" Anne suddenly turned around and shouted at the person at the door before she could realize who it was. Kevin, who had juste in, was stunned at Anne''s exmation. When he absorbed what just happened, his radiant face darkened. ''Damn it! How bold of her to tell me to get out? Is she out of her mind? No one dares to say the words ''get out'' to me. This woman really plucked up the courage,'' he pondered. "What did you just tell me?" With obscurity on his knockout face, Kevin stood still and spoke ndly, his ck eyes ring. He couldn''t believe that this woman actually told him to get out Realizing that it was Kevin''s voice, Anne was petrified for a moment. She looked at the door swiftly. When she confirmed that it was indeed Kevin who was nted at the door like a tree at dusk, she felt dibobted. She was wrong in thinking that it was Cherry. Did Kevin hear what she just said? "Kevin¡­ Why are you here? Is there something wrong?" Anne immediately avoided Kevin''s eyes. At this moment, she was flustered. This man heard what she just said, and based on his aura, he was not happy with it. "I asked you to repeat what you just said!" ''Is this stupid woman trying to change the topic? She had the audacity to tell me to get out. Is it because I spoiled her too much that she thinks she can dictate me?'' he contemted. Looking at his indignant stare, Anne was nervous as a jackrabbit upon hearing the howl of the wolf. She knew she had provoked him with her unpleasant words intended for Cherry. "I¡­ I didn''t mean what I said. I thought you were someone else. Don''t get me wrong," Anne exined anxiously. But the more she exined herself, the more she panicked. Seeing Kevin was about to erupt his burnt-up words, Anne couldn''t help but be disturbed. "You didn''t say that to me? Then who were you talking to? Is there someone else in your room except me?" Kevin clenched his jaw and gave an investigating stare. Obviously, he did not believe what Anne just said. He just had an exchange with her a few moments ago, and she must have held a grudge against him. "It''s¡­ Nothing. Just take it as it is. You heard me right. I said something wrong..." Anne wanted to mention Cherry and their feud, but when she thought of the rtionship between the two, she had to swallow back her words. Cherry was holding a significant ce in his heart. If she uttered her name, Kevin might think that she was speaking ill of her on purpose. Noticing that she broke off in mid-sentence, Kevin felt disconste. He felt that she had something that she didn''t want to tell him which made him feel like there was an ocean between them. "I just heard the baby crying. What happened? Why did the baby suddenly whine so fiercely?" Kevin didn''t want to argue with her anymore. He saw the sobbing child and felt sorry for him. Hearing his words, Anne nced at her baby seemingly troubled. She felt worse that Kevin. "I think he must be hungry." The baby had been crying for quite a while now which made Anne''s heart pound. "I''ll have the maid prepare something to eat then." Aftering to a resolve, Kevin turned around and was about to leave. "Don''t you think your son is too young to eat?" Before Kevin was able to make for the door, Anne reminded him in a hurry. The child was only an infant. How could he eat anything? "Then what should we do?" Hearing what she said, Kevin furrowed his brows and his eyes gave a hint of concern. Anne was speechless and felt sorry for his naivety. This man had no idea what his child exactly needed. Did this mean that he never cared about his son? It had been months since the baby was born. How could he not know that the baby was too young that he couldn''t eat, that it was milk he needed? As a father, he was derelict of his responsibilities. "Forget it. I know how to feed the baby. You can go ahead with your work now." Her face became disappointed, her tone estranged. After saying this, she turned away from him. She had thought that Kevin would take care of the child attentively. After all, it was the only thing that kept them tied to each other, but now it seemed like that was not the case. The baby continued to wail, and Anne couldn''t help herself but feel guilty. He was separated from his mother from the moment he was born, and his father knew nothing about him, let alone love him. Kevin frowned and looked at Anne in confusion as if he had noticed the change in her mood. ''What''s wrong with her? She was fine just now. Why did she switch to a troubled face so quickly? Was she still angry about what happened today?'' he wondered. Chapter 153 Kick Him Out Chapter 153 Kick Him Out There was a frown on Kevin''s face as he stared at Anne and the baby. Anger filled Anne as she couldn''t help but feel so frustrated. If Kevin treated the child better, she wouldn''t have been angry even if they didn''t love each other. Now from the way the baby looked at him, it was as if he was looking at a "Why are you still here?" Her body tensed as she sneered at him through her teeth. It took all her strength not to push and kick him out right this instant. Looking at the petite woman''s hostility, Kevin was naturally starting to get angry once more. However, his strong feelings for Anne resurfaced in his heart, and all the fury he had subsided. ''Damn it!'' Slowly, he withdrew his hand. A secondter, his sense of pride rose in him and he retorted matter-of-factly, "You are so ungrateful." Every time Anne challenged him like this, he felt utterly helpless. In fact, all the patience that he had in him was all because of her doing. Still, he wondered when this woman would finally warm up to him. With a grunt, he strode over to his bedroom, mming the door behind him with a loud bang. In the other room, Cherry heard themotion and decided to see what was happening. As she slowly opened the door, she pretended to rub her eyes, pretending as if she had been awakened by the noise. "What are you doing here?" Kevin asked coldly. Even though he had his back to her, he was still as intimidating as ever. "I thought I heard something just now, so I came to check it out. Are you okay?" Walking over, she ced her soft hands into his. There was so much resentment in Kevin''s heart right now that it was almost unbearable for him to hear her voice ringing in his ears. The moment she held his hand, he shook her off forcibly. It was enough to make Cherry stagger back a little. It was beyond her anticipation that he would do something like that to her. At once, she pretended to be sad as she looked at him with her tearful eyes. "Kevin... I just care about you. How can you do this to me?" Her small mouth was turned down into a pitiful pout as tears streamed down her face. Unfortunately, Kevin was not the type of person who had any affinity towards women he didn''t like. Right now, Cherry was no longer the person he loved. No matter what she did or how sad she looked, there wasn''t an ounce of pity in his heart for her. "Get out of my room. Leave me alone," he hissed at her,pletely ignoring her tears. The only thing in his mind was Anne, how she was so stubborn, beautiful, and definitely one of a kind. But none of her images in his mind was gentle. ''Damn it! Can''t she be gentle for once in her life?!'' Sitting down at the edge of the bed, Kevin ran his fingers through his hair in frustration. This made Cherry think that he was mad at her. With a small sigh, she forced a faint smile. "Kevin, can''t we just go back to the way things were? We were so happy before Anne came back. Is it worth it for a woman who doesn''t even love you?" Cherry asked, unwilling to give up. Unfortunately, these words only made him angrier. He tried his best not to lose his temper. After all, he owed so much to Cherry''s mother. "Don''t make me say it again. Get out." "Kevin--" "Fuck off!" His voice boomed loudly in the room. Knowing better than to push his limits, Cherry gritted her teeth and stormed out. As soon as she closed the door, her tearful face was reced with a cold look. ''This is all that woman''s fault! I won''t let her get away with this. She''s the reason why I''m like this in the first ce. I''ll never let that bitch go!'' Meanwhile, in Anne''s room, everything was so much more serene and peaceful. Themp on the bedside table warmly lit up the faces of the mother and child. Some time that night, however, the baby suddenly began to cry. Immediately, Anne woke up and walked over to him. He wailed and frowned, as if he was feeling incredible pain. Even tears were starting to stream down his delicate face. Carefully, she took him in her arms. "Shh, don''t cry... Baby, don''t cry. Are you hungry? Let me feed you, okay?" Any mother would feel sorry for their crying child. Her heart ached and her face turned pale as Content rights belong to N?velDrama.Org. she wondered how she could make him feel better. "What''s wrong with the baby?" All of a sudden, Kevin''s voice came through. Turning around, there she saw himing through the door. Anne was stunned. It was already two o''clock in the morning, and yet he came in as soon as the baby cried. "I don''t know." As she saw the baby crying like this, she thought there was no room to quarrel anymore. Carefully, she pressed her cheek against the baby''s soft face to check if he had a fever. "I''m going to call Sam," Kevin said. Even though he didn''t really like Sam, his priority was making Anne feel better. There was an anxious look on her face that made him feel so helpless. So, without any hesitation, he turned around and went outside to make a phone call. Despite this, he knew that Anne would be able to handle this situation well. In his eyes, stubborn as she might be, she was also a strong woman. Before long, Sam arrived at Kevin''s house. "What''s wrong with Anne?" It had been a few month since Sam came back here. Knowing that Anne was staying here, he thought that Kevin had called him because something had happened to her. "It''s the baby. He''s been crying nonstop. Go and have a look," said Kevin. With a nod, Sam moved to enter the room when Kevin suddenly put his hand on his shoulder. "Look, I won''t pursue the matter that you helped Anne lie to me before. But if anything like that happens again, don''t me me if I no longer treat you as a friend." A scornful look shed in Sam''s eyes, but it disappeared quickly enough for Kevin not to notice. There had been some tension between the two ever since Anne came back. "Kevin, she''s not only your wife, you know... She''s the mother of your child, and also my good friend. I don''t think you care about her enough. Even I sometimes think that you have gone too far from the way you treated her. I don''t think there is anything wrong if I treat her well. That''s just how men should treat women. That''s my opinion, at least." From the way Sam saw it, Anne was the way she was because of the rough childhood she went through. A person usually had their walls up because they had gotten deeply hurt in the past. With this in mind, he thought that a cold and hard woman was more pitiful than a tearful and delicate one. ''Woman?'' Kevin scoffed in his mind. ''Does Anne even think that she''s a woman herself? If that''s true, why doesn''t she act like a woman at all? She''s done nothing but go against me. Hell, she''s even more cruel and merciless than my hypocritical business partners!'' However, Kevin said nothing more, and just gave a stern look at Sam. After all, Sam was right. Anne was the mother of his child and the woman he loved. Without caring about what Kevin was going to do, Sam pushed the door open and walked in. The first thing he heard was the wailing baby. On the bed, he saw Anne trying tofort the child. The soft light shining on her face made her look so helpless. This scene deeply touched Sam''s heart. Even Kevin was moved, as it was rare for him to see her so vulnerable. "Don''t worry, Anne. Let me have a look." Gently, Sam took the child from Anne and touched his head. "The baby has a slight fever. But don''t worry. It''s amon thing for children." Taking out a stethoscope from his bag, he listened to the baby''s heartbeat. "I just checked a while ago and it didn''t feel that hot," Anne said worriedly. "It''s indeed difficult to feel a slight fever in a child," Sam replied with a reassuring smile. "When babies have a fever, their temperature difference isn''t that big aspared to an older child or an adult. Besides, a baby''s resistance is really usually weaker." "Is it serious?" Although Anne believed his words, she still couldn''t help but worry. The baby had been crying nonstop, and his voice was starting to get hoarse. "I don''t think it''s anything we should be too worried about. Take some antipyretics for the child first, and then I''ll give him a general examination," he instructed. In truth, he knew that there was no need to do an examination. The child''s fever was not at all rming. But, for the sake of Anne''s peace, he decided to do an examination nevertheless. "Okay." Not long after the baby took the medicine, he had fallen asleep. Slowly, his breathing became more even and steady. As Sam carefully examined him, Anne quietly asked questions on how to take better care of the baby. The two of them looked so nice to look at. By the door, Kevin watched them closely, feeling the utmost jealousy in his heart. Although he was upset at how they looked so harmonious, he could not afford to lose his temper now. After all, he was the one who had called Sam toe over. Still, he couldn''t help but wonder why she was being nice to someone who wasn''t him. ''If she had just been a good, obliging woman, things wouldn''t have been like this!'' he thought, his heart filled with malice. What made it all the more frustrating was that no matter how much Anne pushed him away, he was still deeply attracted to her. It was as if there was no way he could extricate himself from her. "Why is Sam here, Kevin?" All of a sudden, Cherry''s voice came from behind him. As long as she could find a reason, she would go stay with him as much as possible. "The baby has a fever. I''ve asked Sam to go check on him." It wasn''t his n to talk again to Cherry. But seeing that the two other people in the bedroom were talking so happily, he figured that he would be less embarrassed if he had someone to talk to as well. "Oh my God! The baby''s sick?" Cherry eximed. Undoubtedly, she was good at feigning emotions as she pretended to feel sorry for the baby. This made Kevin feel a little less adverse towards her. But then, a serious look appeared on Cherry''s face. "Come here," she said in a low voice as she tugged on his arm. "I have something important to tell you." Although his instinct was to shake her off, he figured that talking to her was better than spending another second seeing Anne and Sam getting together so well. However, even though Anne was asking Sam questions and looking over at the baby, she was still paying attention to what Kevin was doing outside. She had seen how Cherry held Kevin''s hand, and couldn''t help but sneer. "Anne?" Sam asked when she suddenly went quiet. "Yes? Uhhh, right. So are you sure there''s really no other problems with the baby''s health?" Snapping out of it, she returned her attention back to the baby. "There''s no way to say for sure, but as of now, you have nothing to worry about yet." As much as Sam wanted Anne not to worry, it was practice for doctors not to guarantee their patients that everything was going to be okay. People''s bodies change, after all, and there might beplications that a doctor might not be able to see at first nce. "All right." "Please untie the baby''s clothes for me." Although he knew that a thorough, general checkup could only be done with advanced hospital equipment, there were still some problems that could be discerned with a trained eye. It wouldn''t be a problem even if a formal checkup was done a few days With a nod, Anne went over to the thermostat first to raise the room''s temperature. She wasn''t about to take chances and allow the baby to catch a cold. Afterward, she gently removed the baby''s clothes, not wanting to wake him up from his sleep. "Did... did the baby always have a birthmark like that?" Anne asked. There was a bruise-colored mark on the edge of the child''s butt. Because of the cold weather, she had always changed the baby''s clothes in a hurry, and this was the first time she had seen this mark on her child''s skin. Chapter 154 Child Abuse Chapter 154 Child Abuse When Anne turned the child over, she found arge area of marks on his buttock. Sam looked at the marks carefully and frowned. "No. Since I knew it was your baby, I made sure to look at him extra carefully. I''m sure that there was nothing there before." Hearing this, Anne frowned more tightly. "So what are these marks on his body?" ''Could someone have intentionally done this?'' she thought worriedly. "Babies'' skins are delicate, especially when they are just born. Sometimes if we don''t hold the baby carefully and in the right way, marks would indeed appear. But..." Sam''s words trailed off as he saw the look on Anne''s face. "Just tell me, please. I need to know for the sake of my own child." She had not been able to be with her baby when he was born. Now, she needed to find some answers on how he had been treated during her absence. "Such arge area of marks as this is difficult to rule out as an ident," Sam admitted with a somber look on his face. As Anne heard this, hatred surged up in her heart. Who else could it have been other than Cherry? Although she knew that Cherry was an awful woman, she had no idea that she was capable of hurting such a young child! "And look, you can see a faint blue mark on his neck. It seems as if it''s been there for a while now since it''s now fading away, but you can still see it if you look carefully," he added as he gently raised the child''s neck. Taking a deep breath, Anne sped her hands tightly. She wanted to strangle Cherry so badly now, and wanted to make her suffer tenfold for what she had done to her baby. "What am I supposed to do? I''m willing to do anything for the child. I can''t get kicked out now that my child is here. I know I have to endure it, but this is just too much!" For the sake of her son, she agreed to live with a man she didn''t love. Even so, she had her limits. If someone was intentionally hurting her baby, there was no way she could allow this. "Don''t worry. I''ll help you." Patting her shoulder, Sam tried his best tofort her. Meanwhile, in Kevin''s bedroom. The enchanting chandelier overhead emitted a cold light. Even though Cherry loved Kevin deeply, a shiver ran up her body every time she entered his bedroom. "What do you need to tell me?" At this time, Kevin untied his pajamas and put on his home-wear. For the first time in a while, he didn''t mind that Cherry was there. In fact, he was intending to have her around him right now in the hopes to make Anne jealous. Cherry''s eyes were glued on him. His perfect figure and handsome face made her heart beat quickly in her chest. Such an excellent man once belonged to her, but everything had changed ever since Anne came back. Now, she knew not to make mistakes. This time, she was intent on getting rid of Anne for good. "Kevin, before Anne came back, the baby has always been healthy. In fact, he liked to sleep for hours on end! He was so quiet and lovely. But when Anne arrived, the baby started crying. Now, he even has a fever! I don''t know, but from the way I see it, I think Anne has been hurting the baby. You know how vicious that woman can be. We need to protect you child and let Anne go." Not once did Cherry stutter as she shared to him her lies. The worried look on her face was all too convincing. For a while, Kevin was quiet, deep in thought. In his heart, he didn''t believe her words. After all, he saw with his own eyes how much Anne loved the child to the bone. On top of that, he knew how much she didn''t want to stay here, and yet she still did just so that she could be with her baby. "That''s her own son, Cherry. No matter how vicious she is, she won''t hurt her own child," Kevin said Copyright by N?v/elDrama.Org. tly. "I''ve lived with her before, you know," she retorted as she gritted her teeth. "I know that woman very well. She''s nothing but cruel and conniving! She even broke her own bone to frame me! Aren''t you worried having such a dangerous woman living with us under the same roof?" Cherry''s words seemed to have worked to shake his faith in Anne as he became hesitant. "Just stop talking, Cherry," he said. "Why? You don''t want to hear it because you know there''s truth to what I''m saying, right? Maybe she even actually wanted to get your attention by making the baby cry. It may look like she''s resisting you and pushing you away. But in reality, she''s just trying to make you feel sorry for her!" Her overly excited voice made Kevin frown. It was obvious to anyone that Anne hated him to the core. He felt that Cherry was wrong, but he didn''t know where and how to overturn it. "Go back to your bedroom. I don''t want to hear any more of this," he said with a resigned sigh. However, she knew that she had seeded in persuading him, even just a tiny bit. There was no way she was going to give up now. After thinking for a while, she walked up to him slowly. "I think we should go check on the child. I''m really worried about him." Not being able to resist this reason, he went back to Anne''s bedroom with Cherry. The child on the bed was tightly wrapped in a nket. His fair face looked particrly innocent and lovely in the contrast of the sky blue bed sheet and quilt, like a small cloud floating peacefully. As Kevin stared at the child quietly, he still couldn''t stop thinking about Anne. On the other hand, Anne noticed that Kevin was wearing a night robe earlier. Now, his clothes were different. Cherry had taken him away and there was a happier look on his face. It was easy to imagine what the two could have possibly done when they left. The more she thought about it, the sadder Anne felt. The baby was still sick, and his father was still flirting with another woman. She quickly set aside her despair and shot Kevin a cold look. "Anne. Even if you hate me and want me to leave the Fu Family, why did you have to hurt the baby? You just came back for a few days and the child ended up getting sick! You should be better towards your son. I''m just worried because he''s also Kevin''s son. ''The audacity of this woman!'' Anne thought as sheughed to herself. She knew what a shameless woman Cherry could be. But she would not tolerate this kind of behavior, especially since it involved her child''s safety and well-being. "Oh, is that so? I''d actually like you ask you something, Cherry. How did the marks on the baby''s neck get there? There''s also a big bruise on his buttocks. Do you mind exining yourself?" Anne asked coldly. All of a sudden, Cherry''s face changed. Fear shed across her face, but she regained herposure before anyone could raise any suspicion. "What are you talking about? You''re the one who''s been own child? For all we know, you beat the poor, defenseless baby just so that you can frame me!" "You--!" These using words made Anne overflow with anger. Fortunately, before she could make a move, Sam grabbed onto her shoulder. "That''s enough. You talk too much!" Kevin''s voice suddenly interrupted with a viciousness that made Cherry tremble in fear. Softly, Cherry called out his name pleadingly. Raising his hand, he stopped her from speaking another word. Rubbing his temples, he stared long and hard at Sam. Maybe it was because Sam had such a nice, close rtionship with Anne, especially when he was checking over the baby. With this in mind, even though he was the one who had asked him toe over, Kevin couldn''t help but feel that Sam was meddling in his family affairs. "Cherry has a point, Anne. Everything was fine with the baby until you came along. I honestly didn''t think that you could be such a cruel woman. Because of this, I have decided that Cherry will take care of the baby from now on." Kevin''s words were like sharp knives stabbing into Anne''s heart. It was beyond her expectation that he would think so lowly of her, that she could hurt her own child for her own selfish goals. Her chest clenched tightly with pain. After a second, she suddenly shed a cold and bitter smile. The sight of the look on her face made Kevin regret what he had said, thinking that maybe he was wrong after all. However, he was unwilling to take back his words. ''Of course this bastard would think that. I''m always the bad woman in his eyes, aren''t I?'' At this point, she didn''t care what Kevin thought of her. She had grown use to it. But this time, this was her own flesh and blood they were talking about. "I don''t care what you think of me or what you think I''ve done in the past. But this child is mine. There''s no way I''ll let Cherry touch my baby again!" "Anne, please have a little more heart. The baby will be safer with me. I know you just want to drive me out, but Kevin really does have a point," Cherry said beseechingly. Then she buried her small head into Kevin''s arms. "You know how good I am to the baby. Please don''t kick me out. I will get along with Anne as long as you like." Maybe it was because Anne had always been cold towards him, or perhaps Cherry was just so good at ying out her little role. Whatever the reason, Kevin was undoubtedly convinced with Cherry''s words. "I''ve made up my mind, Anne. Try and reflect on your actions. We''ll talk about the babyter." "Have youpletely lost your mind?" Anne''s eyes turned red with tears. Tensing up again, she leaned forward to try and give these two a piece of her mind. However, Sam stopped her once again before she was able to do anything rash. "Miss Cherry, you can take care of the baby. But don''t stop me from checking on his condition just because Anne is a friend of mine, okay?" Sam said gently. At this time, Cherry mustered an awkward smile, "What are you talking about? If it''s the baby''s health we''re talking about, of course I won''t object. All I want is for the baby to recover. Wouldn''t you agree, Kevin?" At that moment, Kevin walked over and carefully lifted up the baby. Slowly, he handed the small child over to Cherry. On the other hand, Anne was filled with too much resentment to speak. Seeing Kevin hand over her baby to another woman made her feel so weak. As soon as the two of them left, she heaved a heavy sigh. "They took him away. They took him from me again. I need my baby with me," she said to Sam in a trembling voice. "Of course. Just wait, okay? He''ll be with you again a few days from now. I''ll make sure of it." "Okay." This night was destined to be another sleepless night for Anne. The warm, morning sunshine poured into the room, shining over her slender body. Her head leaned against the headboard as she stared out nkly into nothingness. All of a sudden, there was a soft knock on the door. Before she could react, the door opened, and in came Cherry''s figure. "I was worried that you miss the baby, so I thought maybe you''d like to see him. Look, how well this little one is sleeping." Closely behind her followed Kevin. Since he was with her, there was a sweet smile on her lips. Seeing this made a sharp pain shoot up at Anne''s heart. "Well, Kevin. You should go to work now. Everything''s okay. Baby and I will be waiting for you toe back," Cherry smiled gently. With a nod, Kevin turned around and left without a word. As soon as the door closed, the smile on her facepletely disappeared in an instant. "Look, I will let you leave the Fu Familypletely." "Don''t think I''ve forgotten how you med me for the bruises on my son. But still, Kevin didn''t ask me to leave here." "Humph! This is just the beginning. And yes, I did hurt this annoying little thing before. You should be thankful I didn''t just kill him altogether. But this time, I''ll make sure that I take care of this brat so that you can never see him again!" Chapter 155 Return To See Anne Chapter 155 Return To See Anne Cherry was like a victor. Even though Anne was angry, she did not want to quarrel with her for the sake of her child. "Cherry, no matter what happens, I''m still the mother of the baby. You can''t change it. Besides, Kevin will discover how you treat the baby one day. I wonder what he would do to you when he learns that you hurt his baby." Anne''s word directly pierced Cherry''s pride. Indeed, the child was Anne''s, and she would never bear a child of Kevin in her life. "So what if he finds out? That will be long after. Before you are driven away, I will take good care of this child." As soon as she finished speaking, she left with the baby. Anne could not help looking at the baby in Cherry''s arms. Sam called and told her to put up with it. She nodded because she believed that he would find a way to help her. In the outdoor lounge of the Fu Family, there was a bowl of bird''s nest porridge on a porcin bowl ced on a jade table. The nanny was sitting on the sofa with the baby in her arms. Cherry picked up the bowl and ate slowly. "Miss Cherry, it''s time to give the baby medicine, isn''t it?" the nanny asked. Cherry looked at the clock and said softly, "Yes. You may go and bring the baby''s medicine. I''ll hold him first." "Let me do it. I''m his mother." A crisp and obstinate voice came through, which made Cherry frown. "But Kevin has put the baby under my care. I advise you to ept his wish. If you do something wrong again and get kicked out, I''m afraid you will never see the baby again." She sat with her legs crossed. Her longs legs and fair skin made her seem noble. But as she looked at Anne, her eyes were full of ridicule. She was best at taking advantage of people''s weaknesses. She spected that Anne would be mad and get into trouble because of the child. That was why she intentionally said that to annoy Anne. But this time, to her surprise, Anne did not refute. Instead, she stared at the child quietly with deep eyes that Cherry felt hard to read. This made her fretful. At the same moment, the nanny had just brought the medicine. "Miss Cherry, here''s the medicine." With a small spoon in her hand, Cherry stuffed the medicine, which had been grounded into a fine powder into the baby''s mouth, and caused the baby to cry. "Miss Cherry, it''s not like that. The medicine needs to be mixed with water, or else he will choke, and it would be bitter. The poor baby will cry continuously this way." "Got it," Cherry said impatiently. The door suddenly opened, and light came in. Anne was a little stunned. Who could it be this time? She turned around and found it was Kevin. She just stared at him coldly. Cherry also saw him. She immediately handed the child to the nanny and stood up with joy. "Kevin, aren''t you at work? Why are you back so early?" "I came back to see the baby. Is he feeling better?" Kevin looked at the expression on the baby''s face. As a man, he did not understand the baby thing at all. The truth was, he was at ease knowing the nanny was taking care of the child. He only wanted to return to see Anne. He thought that Anne would get angry, but she seemed to be odd that he could not figure her out at all. "I don''t think you came back just for him. The baby is always at home, but I never see youe home during work. Is there anything wrong?" Cherry asked cautiously. "My mother already knew that my baby was sick. She might visit at any time," replied Kevin. "Well, well, since your mother loves the baby so much, she muste very early this time. Do you want to let Anne leave first? Because it appears that your mother does not like her." Cherry pretended to be kind, but she was actually asking Kevin to drive her out. "No way. After all, Anne is the mother of the child. Don''t mention it again," he warned with a serious look. "Yes, Cherry. Don''t worry about me," Anne snorted. She went back to her bedroom. Kevin turned and followed her in. "Kev¡ª" Before Cherry even finish her sentence, Kevin closed the door. She clenched her clothes, and her eyes were full of trepidation. The curtains in the bedroom were closed, making it very dark even in the daytime. The atmosphere gave people a sense of mncholy. Anne entered the room and saw Kevin came in too, so she said frigidly, "Get out. This is my room." She hated to see Kevin as she no longer wanted to have anything to do with him. "This is my home," he dered. He hated the way she kept a distance from him. On the contrary, he missed the time in the past when she was nice to him even if she feigned it. Without saying a word, Anne turned on theputer and began to work on her design. After she gave birth to the baby, she knew that she could not live in the shadow of the Fu Family or the Ye n anymore, so she began to study new designs even before her body fully recovered. Considering Anne had done more than others, she had mastered it well. She remembered her mother''s words that no matter when, she must live on her own and not be looked down upon by others. "What are you doing?" Kevin was curious. In the past, he was the center of Anne''s life. But ever since a crack surfaced between them, she had put all her energy on work. Now, she had learned so many things. "Does it have anything to do with you?" Anne said, facing the screen. Where did this woman acquire such strength? Couldn''t she be a little gentle and demure beside him? Kevin felt a sense of frustration. He thought that Anne was much more adamant than he was when he was with her. The woman in front of him was in the state of working. He felt a bit awkward and left the room eventually. Just as he left, Anne mmed theputer and stared at the dark room, lost in thought. Meanwhile, Kevin leaned against a chair on the vi''s rooftop. There was a delicate goblet filled with precious red wine sitting on a white marble table. He took a sip from time to time, but the documents on the table were still untouched. "Kevin, why are you here?" Kevin furrowed his brows after he heard Cherry''s anxious voice. How did this woman keep appearing everywhere? Couldn''t she just let him be for a while? "Who told you toe here? Get out!" Kevin was furious to be disturbed in his own ce. The house was often in chaos because of the two women. It was a headache. If he had known it earlier, he would not let himself be merciful to let Cherry stay. "Kevin, this is chicken soup. I specially made it for you. Would you like to drink it while it is hot?" Cherry pretended not to hear what Kevin said. She thought that he would change his mind since she was so considerate and sensible. "I''ll say it again. You should go and take good care of the child, or you can leave the Fu Family straight away." Kevin''s ruthless words made Cherry feel hurt. It turned out that she no longer had a ce in Kevin''s heart. Tears suddenly fell down from her eyes. She said softly, "I know. I have taken good care of the child. Don''t worry. Can youe to apany me when you are not annoyed anymore? A lot of things had happened recently. I''m scared and in a bad mood." "Let''s talk about itter," Kevin responded heartlessly. After she left the rooftop, her face became ferocious before she stopped crying. ''Anne, you should have nevere back. Everything changed since your return.'' Before, she thought Anne had a ce here because of her child. But now, it appeared that it was not the case. At noon, the automatic cradle was shaking regrly with a colorful ball hanging from it in the living room. The baby''s eyes swayed back and forth with the ball, blinking from time to time. Finally, he got tired and closed his eyes to sleep. At the same time, Cherry was also a little sleepy. It was indeed a tiring duty to take care of the child patiently. If only she did not want to stay in the Fu Family, she would not care about the child''s well- being. "Cherry, what is wrong with you?" A slightly harsh voice came. Cherry suddenly opened her eyes and saw a woman standing in front of her. Content rights belong to N?velDrama.Org. She was wearing a floral white coat and a handmade silk cheongsam. Her hair was pulled up, and her eyebrows shot to her hair line. It was evident that she had well maintained herself despite a few wrinkles on her face. The woman was Selma, Kevin''s mother. "Auntie, why are you here?" Cherry stood up and said politely. Immediately after, the cradle moved, and the baby''s cry came, loud and piercing Selma''s heart. Selma held the child in her arms and said, "Oh my God! Why are you crying? It makes me sad." She knew about Kevin''s condition and it was not easy to have this baby, therefore she deeply loved him. "Waah¡­" the baby kept crying. Selma knitted her brows and thought that Cherry did not take excellent care of the baby. "I don''t know what''s wrong with him. He was fine this morning. He only began to cry as soon as you came." Cherry spoke in a panic due to her dread of Selma''s supremacy. Her statement irritated Selma. "So, the baby cried because I came? Are you saying that I''m cruel to the baby or that I''ll hurt him?" Although Selma thought it was Kevin''s business to choose which woman he liked, what Cherry said was too much. "No, it''s not like that. I''m happy that you coulde." Having said that, Cherry gritted her teeth with hatred. Sure enough, "The apple does not fall far from the tree," as the saying went. The child liked to oppose her, just like Anne. But she could not lose her temper right now, so she had to go along with a smile and pray that the baby would not cry. Unfortunately, the baby kept crying. About half an hourter, Anne could not stand it anymore. "Let me do it." Anne''s aura was cold as Kevin''s while she stood in front of them. Selma was startled, and then suspected. "How can I rest assured that you¡­" in Selma''s mind, Anne had always been a bad person. Anne did not bother to defend herself. Her heart was overwhelmed with the wail of her child. Chapter 156 I Dont Believe You Chapter 156 I Don''t Believe You "No matter how bad I am in your heart, he''s my child. If it was not for him, I would surely note back. So rest assured that I don''t want anything else. I just want my child to be healthy," Anne said. Selma raised her brows and thought for a moment. Finally, she began to spoke in a scornful tone. "I don''t believe you. Aren''t you here for the sake of our family wealth in the first ce? But you are right. He''s indeed your child. Well, show me if you''re really capable of soothing the kid." Anne didn''t care how Selma appeared aggressive in front of her. She could no longer change the way they thought of her, so why bother to convince them that she really had good intentions? "Then, please give me the baby, okay?" she said in an unfaltering tone. She appeared determined in front of them, and she would stay like that until she got her child. However, her eyes were filled with pity when she saw her baby. Selma reluctantly put the baby into her arms. Anne felt that her heart melted the moment the baby''s soft body met hers. "Baby, don''t cry. Mommy is here, good boy." To Selma''s surprise, the baby had gradually stopped crying when Anne held him in her arms. "Humph!" Selma was still not convinced, but she could not take the child from Anne''s arms now, so she had to go to her room. She honestly didn''t want to acquiesce in Anne''s request to take care of her child because she never trusted her. On the other side, Cherry got furious with the thought that her credit might be taken away. She sneered and said, "Anne, give the child to me. I think you have forgotten that Kevin had entrusted the baby to my care." Anne used to object directly and argue with Cherry, but this time, she managed to calm herself and talked to her, "What''s the rush? Kevin''s mother had just allowed me to take care of my child. I know that you just want to show yourself in front of Kevin. Don''t worry, when hees back, you can take care of our baby again, okay?" Even though she had already calmed herself, her words sounded insulting to Cherry. However, as usual, Cherry didn''t show how annoyed she was and just said, "Okay, if that''s what you said." She didn''t care anymore about what Anne was nning to do. She would always win over her anyway. After Anne lulled the baby to sleep, a smile appeared on her face. She couldn''t resist the charm of her child. His warmth made her morefortable despite how unkind the people who surrounded them were. After putting him on the bed, she called Sam and asked him to check on her baby. The mirror in the bathroom was covered with mist. Anne looked at it and wiped the mist away. She put onfortable clothes and walked out of the bathroom. Her hair was still wet. It made her look even hotter. Her features were indeed so good that no matter what hair style she had, it would always suit her. "Sam, when did youe?" She saw Sam, as soon as she came out of the bathroom. She felt a little embarrassed and lowered her head slightly. I''m going to change my clothes, wait for me for a few minutes." After saying that, she immediately ran to the bedroom. She felt the heat as her face turned red. Sam was a bit startled when he saw her. It was rare for him to see her this way. He smiled gently. Only the one who really loved her and cared about her could see how good she was. As for Kevin, maybe he would never realize it for the rest of his life. When Anne came out, she had already changed into casual clothes, and her hair was not as wet when she came out of the bathroom. "I''m sorry for keeping you wait. I don''t know when you would arrive," Anne said in an apologetic tone. "It doesn''t matter. I came a little ahead of time, and Emily asked me to send a gift to the baby. Have a look." Sam spoke in a calm tone and took out a small delicate box. It had been a long time since Anne heard about Emily. She felt a little sad with the thought, but she held the feeling back. She didn''t like to make others think that she was vulnerable even it was Sam, who was a good friend of her. "Do you have any news about Emily? How is she? Is she doing well?" Anne couldn''t wait to ask. Among all the people, she considered Emily as the sincerest friend she ever had and also the one she felt the most sorry for. When Sam noticed the uneasiness on her face, he smiled lightly and said, "You don''t know that Emily has a good time there. Fortunately, she had gone to another ce and didn''t have to follow you to work around the clock. She was not that busy there, so she had time to knit that cute baby doll." "Emily is so considerate¡­" Anne felt so much warmth in her heart. She was a bit moved and didn''t know what to say. She was happy with the thought that Emily had still been so thoughtful towards her and her child despite being away. She felt even guiltier that she didn''t take good care of her when she was around. Sam always knew that Anne was not used to showing her soft side. He smiled gently and said, "You wouldn''t think so if you knew what she said. She said that since you have learned designing jewelries, she wanted you to design her wedding rings." "Of course! If you two get married, I will be very happy. By the way, when are you going to get engaged?" asked Anne with excitement. When Sam thought of the person he liked, he couldn''t help but smile sweetly. He was indeed full of bliss now that he already found the right person for him. Anne also smiled when she saw the look on his face. She was truly happy for her friends. "By the way, Sam, the baby has been crying for a long time today. Was he ufortable?" She felt worried about her child every time he cried. But she had promised Sam that she would not try to take the baby back from Cherry. "Don''t worry, I''ll go and check on him." Sam remained calm despite seeing the anxiety in Anne''s eyes. He could understand how she felt, so he had to assure her that everything would be all right. In a sky blue bedroom that was designed for Anne''s child, the baby was lying on the small bed. He was crying out loud maybe because her mother was not by his side. He was also a little thin. At this moment, the baby must have felt her mother approaching. He suddenly stopped crying and a fleeting smile appeared on his face. Anne was a bit stunned when she saw it, but she was confused if it was really a smile. Sam felt that she was a bit surprised and spoke up. "This is the baby''s smile when he feels the presence of his mother. The rtionship between the mother and the baby is very subtle, as if it is because of the blood rtionship and the tacit understanding between them from the time he was in his mother''s belly. So, whenever the mother gets close to him, he will act just like what you saw. Just now, he was expressing his intimacy with you." Anne felt her heart fluttered when she heard his exnation. She gently touched the pinkish cheek of her baby. "Well, the baby had just recovered from fever. Will there be other problems? I''m worried that if the baby hasn''t been taken good care of, it will affect his growth." She was always a loving mother when she was with her child. "If he will be taken care of enough in order not to catch a cold and keep up with nutrition, the baby will be fine after taking the medicine for another day. He will eventually grow a little fatter and healthy." Anne was filled with hope when she heard what Sam had said. She imagined her baby growing fat and healthy. A smile lingered on her lips for a long time as she thought about it. In an office of the ANpany, the vintage dark wooden desk gave the room a ssy aura. Next to it was a ck sofa. The whole office was set in gray. It was all designed aesthetically ording to Kevin''s taste. At this time, Kevin leaned against the sofa. He could no longer focus on work. It was half past five, and he was supposed to get off work. The sky was a bit darker than usual, but it was undeniably darker in his room. His assistant Daniel put the sorted documents on the table and said, "Mr. Kevin, I''ve finished my work. Is there anything else?" "Nothing, you can go now." Kevin continued to browse the documents without raising his head to the employee. "Okay. Mr. Kevin, you should go back early too." Except for Kevin, there were only a few staff members who had to work overtime and several cleaners in this bigpany. Almost half an hour had passed. He patted his forehead and locked the file in the drawer. He was about to go back. He always had a headache every time his mother came to his house. As expected, he got inexplicably upset. He didn''t want to go back at first, but when he thought that Anne might have a hard time with his mother around, he had to go back. He quickly went to his car and drove at a high speed all the way home. However, as soon as the car Content rights belong to N?velDrama.Org. arrived at the gate, he saw a familiar car that was parking beside the gate of the vi. It was a ck Ferrari. He recognized that it was Sam''s car at a nce. He furrowed his brows. What made him more irritated was when he saw Sam roll down the window of his car and said something to Anne. He saw her smiling at him. Damn it, she never smiled like that to him, why would she do so to Sam? Kevin hit the steering wheel and red at the distance. The servant opened the door and he sped up to get past Sam''s car. The servant took a few steps back and almost stumbled in so much fear. Anne saw what he did and said coldly, "What a crazy man." After sending Sam off, she returned to the vi. When she saw that Kevin was still wearing a gloomy face, she also felt irritated knowing that he didn''t even greet her friend. "Kevin, what''s wrong with you?" Kevin was still furious and couldn''t manage to deal with her calmly. He just ignored her and went straight to the bathroom. "Inexplicable!" Anne said in an irritated tone. The bathroom was filled with a woman''s scent. It was the same as Anne''s fragrance. The mist in there had already dissipated, but there was still a few droplets of water in the mirror. There seemed to be fingerprints of Anne when she looked at the mirror earlier. When Kevin saw this, he was even more infuriated. He was worried that Anne couldn''t handle the situation here, so he came back immediately only to see her talking and smiling with Sam from ear to ear. It was something he never saw when he was in front of her. He was pissed off when he thought of her indifference towards him. Kevin clenched his fists and his eyes turned fiery. There was a knock on the door, and Cherry spoke. "Kevin, you are back!" Do you need your clothes?" When she knew that Kevin was already home, she quickly prepared his pajamas and waited outside happily. Chapter 157 The Crying Baby Chapter 157 The Crying Baby A frown appeared on Kevin''s face as soon as he heard Cherry''s sickly sweet voice. For the past few days, she had beenpletely exhausting what little patience he had. "Kevin, are you there?" she asked, thinking that the servant had told her the wrong information. But still, she didn''t want to give up easily. "Shut up! Can''t you just leave me alone for a while?" His voice was loud and intimidating, showing not a sliver of mercy towards her. With her lower lip trembling, she tightly held on to the pajamas. Her face paled as she felt how much Kevin thought of her as a burden. All the while, Selma had seen and heard everything that happened. "What are you doing here?" Selma asked in an indifferent tone. Suddenly, Cherry came to her senses. Seeing Selma''s condescending face, she wanted to snap at her angrily. However, this was Kevin''s mother after all. Taking a deep breath, she shed a gentle smile. "I heard from the servant that Kevin was back, auntie. I just specially prepared his pajamas so he could change and be morefortable." It took all of her energy not to burst out into anger. "Someone will take care of everything for Kevin," Selma snorted. Then she looked up and down at Cherry. "I heard he let you take care of the baby. I don''t see you doing your duties as a mother, and yet here you are bothering Kevin. Do you really think it''s that easy to be a part of the Fu Family? That you can just be sweet to my son and you''ll be weed with open arms?" Content rights belong to N?velDrama.Org. The fury in Cherry''s heart rose even more. "How can you say something like that, auntie?" she asked through clenched teeth. At this point, she was having some trouble maintaining the smile on her face. "Haven''t I done enough for Kevin? Well, even if it isn''t enough, that doesn''t mean I would stop working hard. Please just trust me, okay?" Even though she was about to lose her temper, she knew that she couldn''t fight against this woman head-on. Her goal was to marry Kevin and get the ''happily ever after'' she wanted. When that happened, it was best if she had a good rtionship with his mother. "Humph! None of the Ye n''s daughters is trustworthy! One is cruel and merciless, and the other is sly and conniving. Don''t think that I don''t know. Even if Kevin likes you, he will still have to seek my approval if anyone wants to be his wife." Although she didn''t really hate Cherry before, she had to be on guard because of Anne. The baby had been crying whenever Cherry was the one who was taking care of him, which made it hard to believe that Cherry was actually doing her part as a substitute mother. What was more, the Fus believed that there was nothing more important than a baby born into their family. "I understand. But you need to have some faith in me, auntie. I really do like Kevin with all my heart." Knowing that the longer she stayed, the more Selma would resent her, she decided to make her leave after slightly bowing her head. "I need to go now. It''s time for the baby to eat. Call me if you need anything." After saying that, she immediately walked into the baby room. In the warm room, a woven hung protectively over the crib. Anne was the one who set it up when she saw the baby crying all the time. There was also cute baby mobile with small bells hanging overhead. It spun around gently whenever the wind blew in from the windows, causing the bells to produce a soft, beautiful ringing sound. The baby stared up in wonder whenever the bells rang. Anne arranged this for the baby, so the baby could feel his mother''s care and it was also a way to help the baby develop his senses. "Ah --" The baby''s soft crooning pierced Cherry''s ears. Walking over to the crib, she looked down at the squirming child, her eyes filled with hatred. "I lost the love of my life ever since you came into this world. Why couldn''t it just be me? Why?" Resentment for her mother coursed through her veins. If only her blood was as suitable as Anne''s, it wouldn''t be this difficult to get what she wanted. "Ah --" the baby replied her with the most innocent babbling. As she heard this voice, Cherry''s hatred was aroused. Almost unthinkingly, she reached out to the baby, her hand ready to sp over his neck. At this exact moment, the nanny came into the room. Fear shed in the nanny''s eyes as she had clearly seen what Cherry was trying to do. Sensing that someone else was in the room, Cherry gently caressed the child''s soft cheek. "Baby, are you awake?" "Ah -" The child stretched out his hand and looked up the woven. His eyes were so big and bright, like a crystal clear mountainke. "Oh there you are," Cherry said gently as she turned to the nanny. "Have you brought the medicine and milk?" The nanny sighed a breath of relief. "I''ve brought them all here, miss. Let me feed him," the nanny said warily. Back then, Cherry wasn''t so keen to tend to the baby. Whenever the baby cried, she always said that she couldn''t handle it and let the nanny do all the work. "No, thanks. I can do it." Carefully lifting up the child, Cherry took him in her arms and got the feeding bottle. Even though she confidently offered to look after the baby, the nanny wasn''t sure that she would able to handle it. Not wanting to leave the poor thing alone, the nanny quietly watched in the sidelines. Holding back her temper, Cherry fed the baby bit by bit. Seeing that the baby was about to finish drinking the entire bottle, the nanny quickly stepped in and stopped her, "Miss, you can''t feed him anymore. He is too young. If you feed him too much, he might get sick and vomit." Remaining calm, Cherry stopped immediately and then proceeded to pat the baby''s back gently. "All that''s left is his medicine, miss." The nanny poured the medicine into a small spoon and handed it over to Cherry. At once, the baby opened his mouth and swallowed the spoon''s contents obediently. As he smacked his lips, he frowned and scrunched up his little face, probably feeling aggrieved at the bitter taste of the medicine. "There. All done. I''ll be going now, miss," the nanny said as she left the room. As soon as the nanny left, the baby started to cry and il around, grabbing tightly at Cherry''s cor. The nanny had just walked into the living room when she bumped into Selma. "Mrs. Selma," she greeted with her head down. Selma frowned as she had heard the baby crying loudly. "What''s going on? Aren''t you going to check why the baby is crying?" "I''ve been there just now to feed him and give his medicine. He wasn''t crying when I came out." Although the nanny''s voice was low, Selma heard every word clearly. Not bothering to change out of her high heels, Selma went straight into the baby''s room. At this time, the baby sounded as if he was screaming his lungs out. It was so heartbreaking to hear, especially for Selma. "My baby, what''s wrong?" Selma red at Cherry as she took him from her arms. However, the baby didn''t stop crying. He cried with all his strength and waved his little hands. From all his iling, his belt came loose, exposing the bruise on his small body, right under his neck. Fury surged up in Selma. "Cherry, what''s wrong with you?! Where did this marke from?!" Selma''s angry voice frightened Cherry. When the baby started crying, she felt so annoyed. It was as if she was his own servant. Cherry couldn''t help but pinch his delicate skin. She didn''t expect that she would get busted so early. "Well, I don''t know. Just now, Anne came here and left without saying anything. I didn''t expect her to do such a vicious thing to the baby, especially since it''s her own child! But why would she do this?" Cherry''s voice trembled nervously. Luckily for her, it sounded as if she was getting emotional over the baby''s condition, which was why Selma thought that what she was saying must be true. "That woman! She was probably trying to grab the baby! How can she even take advantage of Kevin''s mercy like this in order to stay in our Fu Family?" At that moment, Selma made up her mind to drive Anne out of the house for good. Then she looked at Cherry again. Although she didn''t like Cherry, she couldn''t help but think that Cherry was more peaceful and kinder than Anne was. Noticing that Selma was starting to warm up to her, Cherry held back her joy and took back the baby gently. "Oh, poor thing. Why won''t he stop crying?" Even though Selma was suspicious, she was still sure that Anne was the one who had hurt the baby. The baby cried for over an hour until he finally got tired and fell asleep. At this time, Cherry was exhausted as well. She didn''t expect that it would be so demanding and time consuming to take care of the baby. Once Selma left, Cherry put on a sweet and vicious smile. "Little thing, thank you so much for defeating your mother for me. I will be kind to you when your mother leaves," she said in a sing-song voice. After cing the baby back in the crib, she walked out of the room and closed the door gently. The sun brightly shone high up in the sky. It was especially hot today, and made it easy for people to lose their temper. After handing in the design draft, Anne came back home. There, she saw Selma sitting on the sofa. The coffee on the table was now cold. "Where have you been?" As soon as Selma saw Anne, she stood up angrily and pointed at her usingly. "Where I go is none of your business." There was not a time when Selma had been kind to Anne. Even when she was pregnant, she had never been a good, nurturing mother-inw. Because of this, Anne didn''t care whether or not she spoke rudely towards her. "How dare you talk to me like that? Get out!" Selma said coldly. With a sneer, Anne raised her eyebrows at her. "Who do you think you are to ask me to get out?" This time, Anne wasn''t nning on getting driven away as easily as before. She was willing to fight anyone who came between her and her child. "How dare you talk to me like that? In case you''ve forgotten, I am Kevin''s mother. I just have to tell him to make you leave and then you''ll be left with no other choice!" Everyone had always been respectful towards Selma, which was why Anne''s words made her infuriated. Meanwhile, Cherry had an unfathomable smile. The fiercer Selma and Anne fought, the more beneficial it would be for her. "Auntie, don''t be angry. Anne is always like this. Sometimes it''s easy for her to offend people. Don''t worry, I''m sure she''ll be more careful in the future. Right, Anne?" Once again, Cherry pretended to be sweet and innocent. But Selma was already in a fit of anger. "There will be no future. Anne, I want you out of the house today!" As Anne saw that the two people she didn''t like right in front of her, a sarcastic smile rose up Anne''s lips. "I heard that you''re no longer a shareholder at thepany and that this house is already in Kevin''s name. My son is his sessor. What right do you have to make me leave? I''m here to see my son, so what does it have to do with you? You have gone way too far," Anne coldly responded to Selma''s unreasonable provocation with an indifferent look on her face. With her face turning pale, Selma''s eyelids fluttered as she inadvertently copsed onto the sofa. She was lost for words to retort. Chapter 158 Dealing With Two Horrible Women Chapter 158 Dealing With Two Horrible Women "How can you talk to auntie like that?" Cherry quickly ran up to the sofa and held on to Selma''s arm. Anne did not want to waste her breath anymore--not for these two, horrible women. All the fear she had for them before had gone. She had to be brave if she wanted to protect her child. With a scoff, she went back into her room, leaving Selma trembling with anger. "What a vicious woman! There''s no way I can ept someone like her into my family! I''ll find a mother for the baby, and I''m sure Kevin won''t object," Selma sneered angrily. It was nine o''clock in the evening when Kevin finally came back from work. The vi was quiet, with only a few lonely street lights lighting up the deste, wide road. With a sigh, he turned off the engine and silently sat inside the car. His hands held onto the steering wheel as he closed his eyes. He distanced himself from Anne deliberately. The way she had been treating him had been hurting his self-esteem. As much as he tried to close the distance between them, she had done nothing but push him away ruthlessly. "Mr. Kevin, why don''t youe in?" The servant saw Kevin''s car park outside and decided to check on him. "I''ll go inside soon," Kevin said indifferently. Sighing heavily, he stepped out of the car and walked into the vi. To his surprise, it was very empty and quiet. Anne and Cherry were nowhere in sight--even Selma wasn''t there. The only one who was there was the nanny cleaning up the living room. As soon as she saw Kevin enter, she stopped her work and bowed her head. "Mr. Kevin, Mrs. Selma wants to talk to you." The nanny pointed at the study. Without a word, Kevin walked straight in. As soon as he opened the door, he saw the angry look on Selma''s face. "Mom, what''s wrong? Why''d you ask me toe talk to you here in the study?" Kevin said unhappily. "Is there a problem with that? Remember that you''ve done a lot of ridiculous things yourself. I haven''t taken those things against you for your own sake. Now that I want to talk to you in private, you''re trying to take it against me?" There was a sadness in Selma''s tone. She and Kevin hadn''t really been on the same sidetely. "I didn''t mean that. Just tell me what you need to say. If it''s nothing serious, I''ll go to bed now if you don''t mind," he said tiredly. "Okay, then I''ll get straight to the point." sping her hands, Selma walked over to Kevin. Even though she was over two feet away from him, he couldn''t help but take a subconscious step back. During his childhood, he was not that close at all with his mother, and this reflected on how he treated her in present day. It was something that Selma had been used to, and so she didn''t mind at all. "I want Anne out of the house." Her tone was the one she used whenever she told her son to do something. It had always worked in the past without fail. However, Kevin simply shook his head. "No, mom. That''s none of your business." The way he disagreed with her was like a p right across her face. Even so, she was determined to make Anne leave. "I am your mother. You have no right to say no to me!" she shouted as she pointed a finger at him. "If you want Cherry to leave, I''ll be fine with it." "You were so good to Cherry before," Selma said, surprised at his indifference towards her. "Have you forgotten how her mother saved your life? Anne suddenlyes barging in and suddenly you don''t treat Cherry as well as before." With this reasoning, Kevin couldn''t help but feel disappointed. His mother thought that everything could be easily bebeled with a price and exchanged like some item. "Mom, don''t you remember that Anne also saved me?" After saying these words, Kevin walked to the door and made his leave. As soon as his hand was on the knob, Selma''s sharp voice called out at him. "So what? Have you forgotten that Anne has already obtained ten percent of the shares of the Fu Family''s business? Is this not enough? Don''t forget what kind of person that woman is." However, Kevin did not bother to turn around. "It''s none of your business," he then said coldly. With that, he opened the door and walked out. Taking a deep sigh, Selma sat back on the chair dejectedly, all of her energy drained from her body. Meanwhile, Cherry was in her bedroom, sitting in front of herrge vanity mirror. Her room was very elegant. Even though she was currently living in someone else''s home, she always maintained a Inside her wardrobe hung rows and rows of handmade, designer clothes. ced below those were all of her high-heeled shoes, all from very expensive brands. She adoringly looked at herself in the mirror. She would always keep her beautiful and youthful appearance for as long as possible. For her, her beauty was a power she could wield like a weapon. Just when she was about to remove her makeup and apply moisturizer on her face, there was a slight knock on her door. "Who is it? It''s alreadyte," Cherry said angrily. Despite being disturbed, she stood up with a grunt and went to open the door. She was still in the Fu Family''s house, after all. Upon opening the door, she saw the nanny who was in charge of taking care of the baby. "Miss, the baby is crying. It seems that you forgot to give him his medicine today." Knowing that Cherry was angry, the nanny was rather timid and sheepish. "Can''t you handle such a small problem yourself? I''m tired already." As she patted her face, her red nails glistened under the soft light. When she had fought with Anne today, she realized that Anne was different than before. The Anne now was a lot more invulnerable and fearless. Since Kevin had been paying so much attention to Anne, Cherry felt that her problems were now piling up in front of her. Even Selma, who used to dote on her, scolded her. When she was still living with the Ye n, she had never been treated like this. "The baby has already been fed, miss. But it takes two people to give him the medicine. We need to take good care of the baby. Plus, Mrs. Selma is in such a bad mood today. It would not be good if she suddenly wakes up from the baby''s crying." Of course, upsetting Selma was thest thing Cherry wanted to happen. With a grunt, she stepped out of her room. "Okay, let''s go." Reluctantly as she was, she still went over to the baby''s room. ''On the other hand, at least Selma''s already asleep,'' Cherry thought. ''No one will be monitoring me while I''m with that little devil.'' In the baby''s room, the soft light shone on the baby. The smile on the baby''s face was so sweet and innocent. However, Cherry couldn''t help but feel disgusted the more she looked at it. "Come here, baby. Time for your medicine," Cherry said lightly. Under the care of the two people, the baby quickly drank up the medicine. At first, Cherry wanted to go back to her room at once, but when she saw the cute look of the baby, she became angrier. ''All my misfortune has been caused by this little brat!'' "You can leave now. I''ll lull the baby to sleep." After the nanny went out, she closed the door. When the two were alone, the baby began to cry again. His soft voice could not get Cherry''s sympathy. In fact, it made her more and more irritable. Cruelty filled her eyes as she stared down at the crying child. "Cry, cry, cry all day long. You always bully me at such a young age. Do you think you can push me around like that? Let me tell you, I can''t deal with your mother now, but I can assure you that I will definitely get rid of her soon. Go ahead and cry! See what good that will do to you!" Without mercy, she kept pulling the baby by his arms and legs, asionally pinching his thin skin. Because of the sharp pain, the baby cried more and more loudly. It got to a point that the baby was wailing at the top of his lungs. The noise made Cherry a bit worried. However, the nanny did say that Selma was already asleep. She reassured herself that middle-aged people like Selma wouldn''t hear this much noise. What was more, the baby room was soundproofed. "Little thing. If it was not because you are still useful to me, I would have killed you by now." Just as she had done before, Cherry put her hand on the baby''s neck. It was something she wanted to do for quite some time now. After suppressing all her emotions, she was finally able to let out her anger on the defenseless child. She had already calcted how long she could do this before she ended up killing the baby. As the baby choked and gagged, the smile on her face grew wider. This was Anne''s baby. The more he suffered, the happier she became. The sweet smile was frightening, especially since the baby face was already turning pale blue. It was as if she was a viper mercilessly wrapping around its prey. However, at this moment, the door suddenly opened. "Stop! You bitch! What are you doing?" Upon opening the door, Selma immediately saw how Cherry was strangling the baby with one hand and pinching him with the other hand. Selma couldn''t believe her eyes. She wanted to hit Cherry there and then, strangle her as much as she had strangled the pitiful child. "Baby, oh no! Shhh... you''re safe now," Selma crooned as she grabbed the child from Cherry arms. Hearing themotion outside, Anne immediately went out to have a look. Content rights belong to N?velDrama.Org. When she arrived at the door, Anne saw the panic on Cherry''s face. Cherry smiled awkwardly, "Auntie, why are you up? I thought you already went to bed." Selma sneered, "Thank god I didn''t yet! If I had, no one would have known how badly you''ve mistreated my grandson! You are a really good actress, Cherry. I trusted you! Get out of here now!" She screamed her head off at Cherry. By now, Anne figured out what had happened. Although it was a victory for her that Cherry had finally been exposed, it still didn''t take away from the fact that the baby had been hurt. "Please give him to me," Anne said. "Please. Let me take care of my son. And Cherry, I''ll settle ounts with youter." Even though Selma didn''t like Anne that much yet, she at least believed her more. It was now as clear as day that Cherry had been framing Anne all this time. By now, Cherry was at a state of panic. "Auntie, please listen to me," she said, slowly regaining her But everything happened so suddenly. As much as she tried to rake her mind for an excuse, she couldn''t think of a way to save herself. Before she knew it, a crisp p hit across her face. Immediately, five red nail marks appeared on her face. In just a few seconds, her entire cheek swelled up. "I can''t believe you''re still trying to defend yourself! I''ll have you know that I''m never going to let Kevin near such a scheming, cruel and merciless woman like you! Get out! Now!" The veins at the side of Selma''s head pulsed with anger. Even though Cherry was not yet willing to ept defeat, she knew better than to confront Selma head on. All the shouting made Kevine out of his bedroom as well. "What happened?" he asked indifferently. When he saw the distressed expression on Anne''s face, his heart suddenly went soft. "What''s wrong? What happened with the baby?" It was easy to tell that something was wrong with the baby from his tear-stained face, and he had never seen Anne so distressed. "Now that you are here, you can make your decision. If this woman is still here, I will take the child away and take care of him myself!" Selma said coldly. Chapter 159 Exposed Chapter 159 Exposed Cherry''s true face was exposed. The moment she saw Kevin, she knew the he was the only one who could decide whether she should stay or leave. She started feeling a lot of pain upon gazing ate Kevin''s expressionless face. "Kevin, you know very well that I am not that kind of person. I just got in way over my head. I imagined how I''d always be reminded of my father''s death if Anne stays here. I know I shouldn''t behave like this and I will definitely try to change in the future." Cherry''s plead didn''t earn her the forgiveness of neither Kevin nor Selma. No matter who got involved with Kevin romantically, even if that someone was richer than the Fu Family, in Selma''s heart, no woman would ever be more important than her grandson. "Kevin, please forgive me. I will be good to the baby in the future. Tears started streaming down Cherry''s face. Her delicate makeup was all ruined, she looked like a hot mess. Kevin ignored her crying. He had no love for her at all. He kept her by his side because her mother Wendy saved his life. He never expected Wendy''s daughter to be so good at hiding things. "I refuse to forgive you. You can leave the house now and don''t evere back here again!" Kevin shouted as he took out a card from his pocket. "Here, have ten million dors aspensation for the way your mother saved my life. If you will still choose to stay here, don''t you dare go around ming me for using you of abusing children!" After having said that, Kevin wrapped his right arm around Anne''s shoulder and led her outside. On the other hand, although Selma didn''t like Anne, Kevin had already asked Cherry to leave and she didn''t want the scene to be even more terrible than it was so she just gave Cherry a cold, hard look and left without another word. Cherry was left alone with the bank card left on the ground inside the warm baby room. She was still trembling, partly because she was angry and partly because of how Kevin treated her so ruthlessly. Not long after that, several men came bustling open the door and dragged her outside. Cherry had never been treated like this before. She shouted loudly, "What do you think you''re doing?! Do you not know who I am?" But the servants who once treated her with respect just continued to drag her outside and one of them wearing a red shirt said, "We''re just following our young master''s orders. I''m sorry." Cherry was pulled out of the gate and they locked her out. It was starting to get dark outside. She realized that although the vi was brightly lit all over, there was no ce for her. It was all because of Anne. If it weren''t for her, Cherry would have had her happily-ever-after with Kevin like she wanted. "I swear, I am not giving up just yet, Anne. And Kevin, I have done so much for you. I don''t even have parents. And now you say you don''t love me anymore. Just you wait. You will see, I won''t give up." Cherry uttered to with conviction even without anyone hearing her. Her face looked ferocious, which was particrly horrible in the night. She walked a few hundred meters, stopped a taxi, and disappeared in the night. No one knew where she had gone. Meanwhile, everyone else was able to sleep well knowing that Cherry wasn''t in the house anymore. When dawn came, the vi started to get rowdy. The daylightmp was on, and the eight-treasure lotus leaf porridge prepared on the table was steaming, with its aroma filling up the room. Selma sat at the table with a long face. Kevin sat just on the opposite side, nced at her, but didn''t say anything. The two of them were always like this. Whenever there was nothing to do, they would usually have nothing to talk about or say. After a few moments, Selma decided to break the silence and said, "Kevin, can you do us all a favor and be more careful in finding a woman in the future? Just don''t bring anyone home anytime. In my opinion, you''d better get rid of Anne as soon as possible. You know, something bad might happen in the future." Selma hated every woman that came into Kevin''s life. "We just dealt with Cherry. She''s out of here now. Anne can stay. Besides, the child needs to be taken care of, and although you might not feel like she is a good person in that heart of yours, none of us can This content ? N?v/elDr(a)m/a.Org. deny how good she is to the child," Kevin said in a calm tone while heid the napkin on the table. Selma knew that Kevin wouldn''t listen to her, since he rejected her when she asked him to drive Anne away yesterday. She decided to let it be for fear that her rtionship with her son would be tenser once she pushed him too much. "Never mind. It''s all up to you then. Just don''t let anything bad happen again. I''m gonna leave now." Realizing that she couldn''t persuade Kevin, Selma lost her appetite and left, bringing her bag with her. Kevin was just about to leave after having breakfast but he stopped and went to Anne''s room. He took out his keys from his pocket since he didn''t want to disturb Anne nor wake her up. The moment he opened the door, he saw Anne''s angelic face. Anne stretched out her arms to hug the baby, looking so protective of him. Although she looked soundly asleep, Kevin felt that if he were to make any sound, he would wake her up. Under the light, he could see the restlessness on her beautiful face. There was also a faint smell of medicine inside the room. Seeing the gaunt look on her face, Kevin figured that she might have been busy and sleepless from taking care of the baby. No one knew what Kevin was thinking. He left after staring at her for a while and closed the door gently with a solemn expression on his face. "Mr. Kevin, do we need to wake Miss Anne up for breakfast?" the nanny asked. The Fu Family had pretty strict rules, which was why he had developed a habit of waking up early since he was a child. He had never changed that. Even Cherry had to follow the rules or Kevin would be mad. "No, no. Let her sleep a while longer. After I leave, please ask Sam toe over and check if the baby is okay," Kevin ordered the nanny. Then he strode to the garage to ride his car to leave the vi. The color sky blue was easy to calm people down. This room used to be covered in grey ck. The first thing Anne saw when she opened her eyes was her baby smiling. The little angel who had suffered so much yesterday was still smiling the morning after. Anne felt a bittersweet feeling inside her chest seeing her baby. She gently touched the baby''s face with her mouth. "Ah-" The baby woke up, opened his watery eyes, and stared at Anne. Strangely enough, this baby didn''t like crying that much, unlike other babies. If no one was by his side, one wouldn''t even figure right away that he had woken up. "My baby, are you awake? Did you get hurt yesterday?" Anne asked her baby slowly. Although she knew that the child was too young to answer, she still thought it would be a good idea to talk to the baby. She suddenly remembered that when she was a child, when her mother was still alive, they had always been the bullied ones in the Ye n. Every time they got bullied, she would cry. Her mother always reminded her to be strong. In fact, she didn''t understand what being strong meant back then, but nheless, she had kept that word in her heart for a long time now. Later on, she felt that that word had yed a huge part in her life. She was, however, disappointed oftentimes then because she didn''t know why she had to keep holding on until the baby was born. It was not until then that she realized that if she continued being strong, she could also be happy, because then she''d also be able to protect the baby she was bearing. "Let''s go out for a walk, okay?" Although the baby had been born to a special family, Anne still tried to give the best for the baby herself. As soon as Anne went out of her room, she found Sam reading medical books quietly while he was sat on the sofa. That day, he was wearing loose casual clothes, a beige shirt, a camel overcoat, and light blue casual trousers. His getup made him look kind of like a boy next door. However, Anne was taken aback a little upon seeing Sam and immediately asked in a hoarse voice, "Sam, why are you here?" She raised her eyebrows. "I am here to check up on the baby. I heard that he was injured. Also, Cherry has left already the Fu Family, right?" Anne got even more surprised because Sam knew everything that was going on. "You seem to know everything that''s happening. Cherry has left indeed." A satisfied smile appeared on Sam''s face and all of a sudden, something had urred to Anne''s mind. She asked Sam, "Do you actually have anything to do with Cherry''s leaving?" Anne remembered that Cherry had mentioned she would do everything to make her leave. So she thought that Cherry would try her best to be good to the baby to impress the people of the Fu Family. She didn''t expect that she would hurt the baby instead. "If I speak up, don''t me me. Okay?" Sam said hesitantly. The reason he didn''t tell Anne before was because he thought that if he did, Anne would be too worried about her child and ruin their ns. But he thought that he could now fill her in on it. "Well¡­ You are my friend, after all. And I believe that whatever decision you had made was just for my own good. I can understand you," Anne sincerely said. "The truth of the matter is, I used the baby to make Cherry anxious so that her true colors would be exposed. Cherry really had no love for the child, so I reced the medicine with a different kind, which was harmless to the body but one that could not make the baby sleep. After an hour, the difort will dissipate. Cherry tried to feed the baby in a poor manner so people would see it and think that she couldn''t take good care of the baby." Sam carefully examined Anne''s reaction as he spoke in fears that what he would say may cause her to feel unhappy or even me him. After all, he did use the child. "And when the baby starts crying, Cherry will sneak out and hit him, right?" Anne asked. She felt sorry for her baby but she knew that if Cherry didn''t leave, it would be really bad for him. If it was her who had been identally kicked out, the baby would certainly be suffering more in the future. "Yeah, I know. I still did it then regardless of how you might feel. That is why I want to apologize to you, Anne," Sam said and looked at the baby''s quiet face. He smiled a little but he couldn''t help feeling sorry for the baby. "No, Sam. I don''t me you. If it weren''t for you, we would have been tortured by Cherry. Thank you for thinking ahead for me," Anne said while holding Sam''s shoulder. "I''m d that''s how you viewed what I did," Sam replied, with a hint of surprise and relief in his tone. However, instead of saying anything else, Anne looked at Sam and gave him aforting smile. She finally felt at ease, holding her baby. She didn''t need to worry anymore about who might take the baby away from her. "But the baby is indeed injured from what happened yesterday. There are bruises on his body. I''ve applied baby ointment on him but I''m still pretty worried," Anne said while still looking at her baby with a frown. "Don''t worry. I''m here. Leave it to me." Sam took the baby from Anne and took him to the room. He did a general check-up on the baby. He examined him thoroughly until he was confident to say that there was nothing wrong. "The baby is fine, but he has suffered a lot. You should apply this new ointment on his bruises everyday so they will heal faster." Chapter 160 Make A Scene Chapter 160 Make A Scene "Okay, I''ll do as you say," Anne said calmly after she heard the entire story. "That''s everything, so I guess I''ll be on my way. You take good care of the baby. If there''s anything wrong, you have my number. Just give me a call." After bidding his farewell, Sam left immediately. With his figure disappearing in the distance, Anne held the baby in her motherly embrace, but her face bared a hint of sadness. The AN Group was a reputable business giant, the epitome of a well-established enterprise, powered by a well-trained staff. The thousands of white-cor workers were all busy working in their offices. Very few of the employees dared to ck. If there was a sudden inspection in the headquarters, the overseeing executives would becent to see that. The weather was heavenly outside thepany''s premises. The dazzling ray of sunshine grazed upon the faces of the corporate society as if halos hovered their heads. "Let me in! Don''t you know who I am? I''m the future wife of thispany''s president." The woman''s plead resonated in the gateway, making everyone in the office intrigued. They thought that the heightened dispute would be settled, but they didn''t expect it to get worse. "I warn you, if you will not let me in, I''ll see to it that you will lose your job." With her eyebrows adjoined, she scanned the two guards who restrained her from entering the gate, and was determined to make her way past them. "With all due respect, working hours are not to be disturbed." At this time around, the curious personnel inside the building raised their heads like peeping meerkats. It was the first time that someone had made amotion, so everyone was inquisitive of who it was. The fact that Kevin''s ex-wife was Anne was a nted thought in every senior official''s memory like a seed. Where did this crazy womane from? "What are you looking at?" It was Daniel, Kevin''s right hand. He came downstairs and scolded fumingly when he saw that everyone was distracted from work. "Daniel, there is a woman outside who insists oning in. Is it true that she is the future spouse of the boss?" someone asked Daniel. This time, Daniel also felt strange. Although Kevin was the chief executive officer, he knew nothing about his private life. "When did this happen?" he asked. "About ten minutes ago," someone replied. Daniel knew Kevin''s personality. He would be very distraught to see someone make such a scene in front of hispany, but he didn''t dare to make a verdict since this woman imed to be his superior''s fiancee. "You''re not paid to gossip here people! Hurry up and get back to work," Daniel instructed them loudly. He then proceeded to the elevator, pressed the button to the 47th floor, and waited anxiously. It was quiet outside the CEO''s office. There was no one in that floor besides Kevin because he didn''t like any unwanted noise. More so, the entry of his office was firmly close. When Daniel stepped out of the elevator, he approached the door and knocked. Kevin''s indifferent voice replied, "Come in." The moment Daniel entered the room, Kevin''s face turned aloof. Apparently, he was unhappy with his sudden presence because it was not the time for the two to exchange documents. "Mr. Kevin," knowing Kevin''s short temper, Daniel said awkwardly. "What''s the matter?" Kevin was unbothered and continued his note taking. His austere and arrogant voice made Daniel high strung. "Something''s going on downstairs, Mr. Kevin. There is a woman outside who ims to be you fiancee. She said she wanted to see you," said Daniel. It was Cherry again! Kevin was so furious that he threw his pen on the table. This woman had turned the entire house upside down yesterday, and now she had the audacity to cause turmoil in thepany. "Let her be. If someone dares to break thepany policy, shoo them away! That''s none of my business." As expected, Kevin''s words were apathetic. "Okay, Mr. Kevin." Danielplied in an instant and went straight down the hall. The hall was decorated in a simple style, yet everyone came here would have an impression that it was elegant and ssy. Different from her usual mboyant fashion, Cherry wore a ck handmade dress paired with velvety red high-heeled shoes. Her hair was disheveled and part of her lipstick was smeared due to the ongoing conflict between her and the guards. A touch of arrogance red in Cherry''s eyes when she saw Daniel approaching. She thought Daniel would let her in. "Here''s the part where I say, ''I told you so.'' Herees someone. I''m sure Kevin ordered for you to get out of my way! I''m his favorite woman." Cherry spoke with pride. She didn''t care how other people would interpret her. She must see Kevin, or she had nowhere to go. "Excuse me, Miss? Mr. Kevin said he had no fiancee. If you really want to talk to him, you should make an appointment," said Daniel gantly. But his tone made Cherry go ballistic. "What did you say? Make an appointment? Bastard, I have to go in today! I have a close rtionship with Kevin. Why should I be restricted by your stupidpany rules?" Cherry was so angry that she pulled her hand like a sling and pped Daniel in the cheek. But Daniel was a person not to be trampled by some vicious woman. He was quick to react and caught Cherry''s hand and held her wrist firmly. "Miss, you attempted to swing at me with your heavy hand and you''re here making havoc outside our premises. If you pursue this trouble, I wouldn''t mind calling the police." After saying that, Daniel suddenly let go of Cherry''s hand. He then continued, "Everyone, go back to work! If you can''t finish your quota, you have to work overtime." The crowd surrounding the gateway immediately dispersed, leaving only the securities on duty, and a humiliated Cherry. Cherry gritted her teeth hard. She went there in high hopes of seeing Kevin, but she was left astonished by his ignorance. He refused to have a word with her and denied everything she proudly imed to injure her dignity. But deep down her stony heart, Cherry knew it wasn''t Kevin''s fault. She mistreated his child, so it was not a surprise that he mirrored her actions. He would be fine for a while. But Cherry was confident. No matter what happened, Kevin would eventually find her way back to her. She examined the bustling perimeter and went to a coffee shop opposing thepany facade. Meanwhile, Kevin had just finished drinking his coffee. The coffee cup perched like an instation. Although it was empty, the strong fragrant aroma of the ck java still filled the air. He was peeved by Cherry''s scandalous behavior, so he put down the documents he was working on and decided to call it a day. "Mr. Kevin, are you going to get off work early today?" Daniel asked as he came in with a pile of paper and saw Kevin pick up his car keys. "You can just ce those on the table. Look after thepany for me and do everything you can to finish today''s work before going home." Kevin had a serious tone. In his core, he thought it was unnecessary to work overtime because he believed that everything could be under control in fulfillment of efficiency. "Will do, Mr. Kevin. Are you going to deal with the controversy earlier?" Daniel asked. He pondered Kevin was somehow involved with the viscous woman at the gate. Kevin was agitated, but when he heard the secretary''s inquest, his temper felt boiling. "Just do your job. My private life is none of your business, and take away the nts on the table." Without saying anything more, he strode away, leaving Daniel a cold back to watch. "But you said the nts would purify the air¡­" Daniel was puzzled. In the parking lot, Kevin sat in his car and started the engine. He saw Cherry sitting by the window in the nearby cafe. He grinned sarcastically. He had guessed that Cherry would just sit there waiting for him, so he stepped on the gas and quickly left. Cherry too had seen Kevin in his car. She wanted to confront him but before she was able to put down her coffee and run outside, it was already toote. She quickly hailed a taxi andmanded the driver, "Follow that car in front of you." At four forty in the afternoon, rush hour was still an hour away, yet there were so many people roaming the streets already. The cars kepting from all directions, blocking the taxi from time to time. "Could you please hurry up? Don''t you know how to drive? He''s getting away!" Cherry raised her voice as soon as she saw the disappearing Rolls-Royce in her sight. She stamped her point heels, poking the seat cushion hard. By this time, the driver lost his patience. "That''s a hundred-thousand-dor car, and mine is just a simple cab. If you are so eager to catch up with him, then you better get on your feet and start running, youngdy. Get out!" The taxi driver also had a short temper. He didn''t like people who had a domineering attitude like Cherry, so he reached for the knob in the back seat and told her to get off. "Excuse me? How dare you speak to me like that? You''ll regret that, mister!" said Cherry fiercely. "We drivers have dignity. We don''t tolerate unreasonable obligation." No matter how much Cherry ranted, the driver closed the door and left her. Cherry found herself dancing with cars as she went for the sidewalk. She was hopping mad, but she had nowhere to go. She had to find a hotel nearby before she could think things through. In the Fu Family''s residence. Kevin arrived at the gate shortly. He noticed how serene the ce was. He saw a flock of white doves flying across the sky, and the whistling wind was wonderful to the ears. The birds were raised by the owner of a nearby vi, three hundred meters away. Their snow-like color was beautiful against the soft sunshine and the blue sky. A rare smile of tranquility appeared on Kevin''s face, an expression far from his usual tact and alienation. The moment he absorbed the calm moment, the gate was opened for him to drive in. After he pulled out the car keys, he suddenly felt rxed. Behind the see-through curtain, he could see Anne coaxing the child carefully. Perhaps she was telling a joke, but the child didn''t smile. While her lips uttered words, she suddenlyughed out loud. There was no one to bother her at home anymore. The mistress was gone which indeed would make her happy. When Kevin entered the vi, he noticed Anne was sensible. She immediately stopped smiling and made a defensive stance while carrying the child. "Kevin, you''re home early," she said calmly. His good mood was gone. When Anne raised his guard upon seeing him, he was disturbed. "Yeah," Kevin answered with a solitary word before heading straight to his bedroom. Anne felt offended deep down. It seemed that Kevin never cared about the child. If he had no ns, why did he insist on having one before? "Baby, let''s go back to the bedroom and y, okay?" Patting the baby on the shoulder, Anne said to the nanny, "Send the meal to the bedroomter." She then proceeded to their bedroom and never came out. When it was time for supper, Kevin came out of his room and expected that she would see Anne sitting Copyright by N?v/elDrama.Org. at the dining table, but he was wrong. Chapter 161 Blaming Kevin Chapter 161 ming Kevin Much to Kevin''s disappointment, no one was there when he went down to the dining room. "Your meal is ready, Mr. Kevin. Is there anything else I can get you?" "Where is Anne?" Displeased, he threw his chopsticks on the table. The servant trembled in fear. "Miss. Anne said that she would have food in her bedroom, so..." "Send my food to her bedroom too." With a grunt, Kevin went upstairs and walked into Anne''s bedroom without even knocking on the door. As the door swung open, Anne was just about to swallow a spoonful of porridge. When she saw Kevin''s angry face, she coughed and nearly choked on her food. "What are you doing here in my room?" she asked as she patted her mouth with a napkin. "Why? Am I not allowed here?" The servant entered and ced his food on the table where Anne was, and then quickly left with her head down. It puzzled and angered him that her first reaction towards him was always hostile and unweing. He had already sent Cherry away. What else did this woman want? Sometimes, his fury was so intense that he wanted to go and hit her, just to see if she was capable of having any other reaction towards him. It was hard for him not to think that this woman''s heart was made out of stone. "I told you already that I agreed to live here just so that I can be with the baby. You know how difficult it is for me to be under the same roof as you are. Please don''t just barge into my room like that." Slowly and carefully, Anne tried to exin herself once again. Hearing such ruthless words made Kevin even more infuriated. His hands balled into fists at his sides. ''Ungrateful woman!'' he thought. Although he wanted to shout these words at her, he bit his tongue. He knew that the harder he was on her, the more she resisted him. "Don''t think that I''m doing this for you," he replied. "I''m just doing this for the baby. Don''t you think it''s nice that he has aplete family? Actually, I was hoping you''d let me see him. The baby is not yours alone, after all." Putting his hand in his pockets, he shrugged indifferently and looked carefully at Anne''s reaction. Much to his dismay, she rolled her eyes at him. "Ha-ha. So now you''re suddenly the child''s father? Tell me, how was the baby doing before I came here? Cherry mistreated him horribly without you even knowing about it! On top of that, the baby was very underweight!" Even though the worst part was over since Cherry had been kicked out of the house, so many bad things had happened to the child. These things might have been avoided if only Kevin had paid more attention. Because of this, Anne couldn''t help but hate him even more. "I..." Lowering his head, Kevin was left speechless. In truth, he actually really loved the baby. When he found out that Anne had gone abroad, he had an overwhelming sense of loss. He was so sad that he was not able to take care of himself nor the baby. During those times, he really thought that Cherry would take good care of the child. If he told her that he was too sad to take care of the baby, Anne would be sure that he had gone out of his mind. And if he told her that he had expected Cherry to be nice to his baby, he was not sure if he would be driven out by Anne. "What? Don''t have anything to say? Then please go out." Pointing at the door, she red at him icily. Defeated and embarrassed, Kevin turned around to leave. Just before he was about to step out the door, the baby suddenly cried. The baby''s sweet voice immediately made Anne''s expression soften. "Oh, baby. I''m sorry. Did mommy wake you?" At this moment, Kevin suddenly came up with an idea. "See? The baby gets upset whenever we fight. So, whether you like it or not, you and I will have our meals together for the baby''s sake." In his heart, he was deeply thankful that the baby started crying as if on cue. ''Ugh! Is this guy for real?'' If anything, his statement only made her angrier. The first thing she wanted to do was to push him out and lock the door. All he was doing was disturbing the time between a mother and her son. However, she couldn''t help but agree that the baby did need a harmonious family environment. "Fine. When we''re done eating, get out and don''te back here again uninvited." After saying that, she turned her attention back to the food in front of her and quietly continued eating her meal. Kevin''s heart flooded with happiness. Finally, after so many attempts, she had agreed to spend some time with him. Walking up to the table, he sat down in front of her and started eating as well. The two of them ate slowly, not bothering to say a single word to each other. Meanwhile, the baby had his eyes wide open in curiosity. He looked at Anne, and then looked back at Kevin. Eventually, the corners of his small mouth curled up as if he was smiling. Anne noticed this, and thought that maybe the baby really was smiling because Kevin was there as well. As a result, she felt a little less adverse towards Kevin. Despite this, she still didn''t say a single word to him. A little whileter, Kevin''s phone suddenly rang, and the calm atmosphere was shattered. ncing at his phone, he saw that it was Cherry calling. ''Damn it!'' Without a second thought, he turned off his phone and slid it back into his pocket. "You should answer her call," Anne said expressionlessly. "You''ve bothered me enough. Get out." Since they had nearly finished their meal, she figured that there was no longer a reason for him to stay there any longer. Irritated, Kevin cursed Cherry again in his heart. ''That damned woman''s timing couldn''t have been more perfect!'' Standing up, he gave a cold, hard look at Anne. "You know, sometimes I wish you''d get off my back. I''m just doing what I think is best for the child. If you think that I''m doing this because I want to be with you, then you''re wrong." "Well, I feel the same way actually," she sneered. "It would be best if we only interact with each other when we''re in front of our son." With a scoff, Kevin opened the door and walked out. "Ah¡ª" The baby''s voice rang softly in the air. Walking over to the child, she gently stroked his cheek with her fingers. ''I shouldn''t care about Kevin anymore,'' she thought to herself sternly. ''I shouldn''t let him hurt me like this so easily. No, absolutely not.'' A cold smile appeared on the corner of her mouth. A soft breeze blew through the windows, making the room fresher and calmer. Taking a deep breath in, Anne sighed, pushing aside all her thoughts about Kevin. The next day, Kevin was about to drive out to work. For the first time in a long time, he felt that the world around him was a little less glum. As the sun shone on his face, he could see and feel the beauty of life. In his head, he kept reying that small moment he had with Anne as they ate dinner. As he sat down in the car, he couldn''t help but smile to himself. "Mr. Kevin, it''s time to leave now," the nanny called out to him. At that time, the happy bubble he was in shattered. Even though he liked Anne, he still couldn''t deny the fact that she had possibly killed his uncle. Because of this, he soon regretted thinking so positively. His face darkened as he was conflicted about his rtionship with Anne. Just like that, his mood had turnedpletely. "Kevin! Finally, I''m able to see you!" A pitiful and sweet voice came through. Even though he didn''t check who it was, he knew who that voice belonged to. ''Why can''t this woman leave me alone?!'' he thought as he leaned back on the car seat and closed his eyes. "What are you doing here?" He had already given Cherry money. As long as she was smart, it would be enough for her to live on for an entire lifetime. Still, it seemed as if she was not bound to give up. "Kevin, I know I was wrong. I''m here to apologize. I know you like me. I love you so much. Can you forgive me? I will take good care of you and the child. Please let mee back. Please!" Tears streamed down her face. Before, she was able to persuade him with those same exact tears. However, after everything that happened, he felt nothing but repulsion towards her. "I don''t know why you still think you cane back. There''s no way I can ever ept a woman like you, Cherry." Grinding his teeth, he opened his eyes and stared ahead, his gaze as sharp as daggers. If she dared to stand in front of his car, he wouldn''t hesitate to run her over. Fortunately for her, she saw the look on his face. Immediately, she moved aside, unsure of whether or not he was actually capable of hurting her right now. "Please. I really love you with all my heart, Kevin. You ept Anne even though you don''t really love her! Why can''t you give me another chance?" From the driver''s side, Cherry desperately tried to pull down the window that was slightly open. Her words only repelled Kevin. She seemed to be so sure of herself that Kevin didn''t love Anne. In fact, he saw Anne as a priceless treasure buried deep in his core. Even though she was difficult to love most of the time, she was different from any other woman he had ever encountered. "Get out of my way. Don''t make me say it again," Kevin said coldly. "Kevin¡ª" However, there was nothing she could say to get his pity. Without warning, he rolled up the car window, which inevitably hurt Cherry''s hands. All her crying made Annee out of her room to see what was going on. She came out of the vi just in time to see what had happened to Cherry. "Haven''t you made a fool out of yourself for too long? I think it''s best if you leave now," Anne said with a smug smile as she crossed her arms over her chest. Even though she didn''t totally approve of how Kevin treated her, she had to admit that she was happy to see this woman end up like this. "Stay out of it! If anyone''s a fool here, it''s you! You''re just a pathetic divorced woman. And that son of yours? Good luck exining to him why he''s from a single parent family! He''s nothing but a little bastard." With a scoff, Cherry raised her chin and turned her head away from Anne in disgust. She felt proud that at least she was still an unmarried woman unlike Anne. At this moment, as Cherry basked in her pride, Anne quickly walked up to her and pped her across the face. The shock she felt was even greater than the immense pain burning on her cheek. Her cousin, who she had always bullied and pushed around, pped her. "How dare you hit me?! Who do you think you are?!" Raising her hand, Cherry was about to hit her back. However, Anne quickly caught her tightly by the wrist. It was only then did Cherry fully realize that this woman in front of her was no longer the weakling she knew before. "You can hurt me. You can insult me. You can even tell lies about me. I don''t care. But don''t think for Copyright by N?v/elDrama.Org. one second that I will let you insult my son like that." As soon as Anne finished speaking, she gave another p on Cherry''s face. There was so much force in her blow that it nearly made Cherry ckout. Dropping to the ground, Cherry held her hand against her face, stunned with what had just happened. "Don''t test my patience," Anne sneered. With a scoff, she turned around and went back inside. It took a long time before Cherry came back to her senses. Kevin had drove off long before she was able to get back up on her feet. Humiliated, she clenched her hands in rage, her fingernails digging deep into her skin. "Just wait and see, Anne. I still have a lot in store for you." YS Hotel. Situated right at the heart of the city, YS Hotel was one of the most prestigious ces in the country. Everything about it exuded luxury, and its world-ss service was definitely something the rich and powerful were keen on. It was precisely because of this reason Kevin had purchased a long-term lease on one of the hotel''s private meeting rooms. He knew well how popr this ce was with the big bosses. At this time, Kevin was talking business with a jewelry merchant, Garret Wan. As they were talking, there were times that Garret Wan wanted to say something but ended up keeping it to himself. This made Kevin feel a bit of contempt towards him. Still, he wore a friendly smile on his face. "It''s so boring to be talking about business, Mr. Garret. What do you say we have a few drinks with some lovelypany?" Kevin offered. After dealing with so many people, he had a good idea what had been on Garret Wan''s mind. "Well, Mr. Kevin... A business savvy man such as yourself knows how to have fun! I wouldn''t say no to a good bottle of wine or brandy," Garret Wan answered eagerly as he rubbed his hands together. It was all too obvious that he was excited, especially since he would have a beauty to apany him There were also a handful of hostesses Kevin had arranged precisely for times like this. All of these hostesses were indeed very beautiful, and ready to entertain him and his guests at any given time. A few minutester, the double doors opened. Garret Wan''s eyes widened as he saw all of the gorgeous womene in, each holding a cold bottle of wine. Chapter 162 Drugged Chapter 162 Drugged In just a snap, Garret was surrounded by beautiful women. An amused smile washed over his face as he touched their delicate skin from time to time. Kevin crossed his legs and looked at him with a yful smile. "You are so lucky Mr. Kevin, for being surrounded by such attractivedies." Garret expressed a desire that almost burned through his eyes. "If you like them that much, they could be all yours," Kevin offered. "That''s so kind of you." Upon approval, his hands moved and caressed their bodies in all directions. "Please take good care of Mr. Garret here. Don''t neglect my special guest," he instructed thedies and looked at the businessman. "Please excuse me for a while, I need to use the bathroom," he added and exited the room. He had excused himself because he felt sick inside the private room. He hated to deal with businessmen who were too lustful but in order for his business to grow, he had to take advantage of their weakness. He walked straight towards the quiet bar counter. A girl timidly stood there and looked around as if she feared the ce. She reminded him of Anne who was able to stand out among the women he met. At the thought, his heart sank once again. He sighed before he sat on the barstool and said, "A ss of cocktail." The attendant arrived with a drink in his hand and gave the man a courteous smile. "Here''s your drink, sir." The mixture fruity alcohol approached his nostrils when the drink was handed to him. He was about to drink it when an intruder interrupted him. "Hello! Would you like to have a drink with me?" A tall and sexy woman put her soft hand on his shoulders. Kevin frowned at the unweed gesture. "Take your hand off unless you want it gone tonight," he warned. The woman raised her brows at the rejection she received and whispered, "Looks like he doesn''t like women. Is he gay?" The woman left without further ado. When he felt no presence beside him, he picked up his drink and drank it slowly. After he had finished his cocktail, he went inside a different private room and read some documents. The room looked simple and much smaller than the one that Garret was in, but he didn''t like to stay there as he was disgusted by it. Many of his business partner''s affairs took ce in that very room. Strangely, Kevin felt weak suddenly. He put the documents down and used his limbs to support himself. He felt sleepy and sweat kept on running down his body. Slowly, he reached for the remote and lowered the temperature but he continued to sweat profusely. After a while, the door suddenly burst open and a woman came in. He took a look and found out that it was Cherry. "What are you doing here?" he asked. "Kevin, I missed you so much," she said affectionately. His vision got blurry and the woman''s face became unreadable. She rushed towards the man and hugged him. The sudden physical contact made him feel strange. When he came to his senses, he pushed Cherry slightly and asked in a warning tone, "What did you do?" He realized that the reason why his body felt hot was because of an aphrodisiac. He was always very cautious being in such ce. He wondered how Cherry managed to drug him. "Hey, I know you love me too. You are so much bothered by that bad woman, and that''s why you don''t have time to spend with me, right?" Cherry cooed. She reached for the drugged man''s tie and loosened it, unaware that her actions today had touched his principle. "Fuck off!" He pushed her away but the woman purposely pounced on him once again. A faint, seductive smile appeared on her face. This was the most powerful medicine she had found. She believed that no matter how rightful Kevin thought he was, he wouldn''t be able to control himself under a drug and with a woman like that. After all, men always lost their mind when they were with an incredibly beautiful woman in their bed. Clearly, she had underestimated him. Soon enough, Kevin looked at her and spoke in a slightly sober state. Women who tried to seduce him had done this before and he was already used to it that he could sober up even if he didn''t sumb to the drug. "Since you look so horny, I will fulfill your wish." He rang the bell and two men in ck tights arrived soon after. They already knew what happened the moment they stepped inside. "Mr. Kevin, what can we do for you?" Kevin sensed the fear of the woman beside him but he only sneered deep inside. People in YS Hotel had tried this method and they always ended up being sent to the rtivelyrge room. "She is Mr. Garett''s new ymate. Send her there." The men quickly held the woman tightly upon hismand. "Kevin, don''t do this. I don''t want to go! I don''t want to go!" she begged loudly but he ignored her plea as her voice went farther. His heart sank but he kept it on the check. He had to teach her a lesson this time. They arrived at a ce where light was dim, giving off romantic aura. But once the door was opened, a stench of alcohol and sex quickly reached her. "I want to go back." She struggled but she was quickly restrained by one of the men. "No one can go against the order of Mr. Kevin." the man in ck said coldly. The woman''s heart sank in despair and fear. She didn''t expect that Kevin would not think twice to give her to others. "No, please. I don''t want this, I want to go back," she begged in fear. It was only at that moment when she realized how Kevin''s mind worked. He was a terrible man and the only way to avoid his wrath was to be obedient. "Who is this?" Garret frowned at the intruders. "Our boss said that this is his new gift for you. Pleasee here first. I have a few words to say to you." The three men walked a few meters away and whispered something to each other. When they came back, the two men in ck pushed Cherry towards Garret and walked away. She looked at the hungry eyes that stared at her and fear wed her heart. "You don''t have to be afraid, miss. Since you''re already here, why don''t you head inside and have a drink with me?" His voice was polite yet his eyes spoke otherwise. "Who wants to drink with you? You are disgusting!" she replied coldly. His eyes darkened. He sneered and said, "It''s not up to you. Come in," hemanded and pulled her inside, then he closed the door. The temperature of the room Kevin was in was set at a minimum but the heat on his body continued. His porcin face was flushed and his eyes looked dreary. He decided to leave the premises and went home because it would be dangerous to stay there longer. It was ten o''clock at night when he arrived and he knew that Anne had already fallen asleep. When he thought of her, he knew he couldn''t hold himself back anymore. He stared at her bedroom door but decided to leave for the bathroom instead. Inside the bedroom, Anne stared at the ceiling. Although the room was dark, she kept her eyes open. Her sleep was interrupted when the doorbell rang. She knew it was Kevin who hade back. She couldn''t help but worry about him. Since she knew that he would enter her room to visit her baby, she kept her eyes open. She waited for him until she fell asleep because he never came. It was early in the morning when a scream resonated in the house. "Mr. Kevin!" The nanny who came to clean sounded anxious. Anne opened her eyes upon the sound but she smiled bitterly afterward. It was a habit of hers. Whenever Kevin was involved, she would worry for him. It was a habit that she wanted to change. The sunlight entered the gap of the curtains at the window and illuminated the room. She looked at her baby who slept soundly. She ced her hand on the baby''s face. His skin looked so healthypared to hers. "Miss Anne, are you up?" The nanny knocked on the door. "What''s the matter?" The woman straightened her clothes and opened the door. "Mr. Kevin has fainted." Her heart sank upon the news but she quickly regained herposure. "Go and have a look," she said quietly. Keviny in the bathroom tub. His face was pale and he was sweating. "What happened?" asked Anne. "I don''t know. When I came to clean the room, I noticed that the door was locked. I called if someone was inside but no one answered. I used the spare key to open the door and that''s when I found Mr. Kevin unconscious," the nanny exined. Anne looked at Kevin who looked like he was in pain. She touched his forehead and noticed that his temperature was high. "Ask Sam toe here. Help him to bed and change his clothes." She looked at the man who had his expensive suit wet. ''Did he spent the entire night in the bathtub?'' she wondered. "Okay," the nanny answered. When Sam arrived, he saw that Anne was staying beside Kevin. She wiped his forehead with a cold towel and tried to lower his temperature. All the while, she told herself that it was a duty for her to take care of him because he was the father of her child, and she wouldn''t care for the man at all if it wasn''t because of her baby. With those thoughts in her mind, she feltfortable. "What happened to him?" the newly arrived man asked as he put down his medical kit. His eyes widened when he saw how Kevin was. "Oh my God!" he eximed, "He hadn''t been sick like this for so many years. What happened?" he added in worry. It was difficult for him to calm down with how sick the man looked. "I have no idea. It was already like this when I woke up," she answered. After he measured his temperature, Sam opened Kevin''s eyes and used his penlight to examine his pupils. "What a mess! His temperature wasn''t because of fever!" He rolled his eyes upon the realization. "Then what happened?" she asked anxiously. Copyright by N?v/elDrama.Org. "It looks like he was drugged yesterday," he answered. "I see you''re still worried for him," he teased. Kevin was a cautious man and was seldom fooled. It was the first time he had been in such a sorry state. "Drugged''? she asked in confusion. "Aphrodisiac. It is amon drug in the business world. He probably bathed in the cold water the entire night yesterday." Sam smiled. It was a refreshing sight to see a perfectionist like Kevin make a fool out of himself. "I see. Then go examine him more." Anne gave way for him. After he was done, he prescribed a medicine to be taken for three days on an intravenous drip. "This medicine is rtively strong. He was in the cold water all night to stop his impulses. Don''t let his mood fluctuate too much or else, there will be side effects." Chapter 163 Reached An Agreement Chapter 163 Reached An Agreement After hearing Sam''s instructions, Anne thought it was just a routine examination. Meanwhile, it was always hard to read Kevin''s mind. So it was rare for anyone to be able to get to him. On the contrary, it was always him who made others mad. "I understand. I''ll be careful." It took two hours for Kevin to finish the drip. When he woke up, he felt a bit strange. He saw Anne leaning against the door, so he asked, "What time is it?" "It''s eleven o'' clock," she answered casually. Considering that Kevin was a patient, she did not feel like quarreling with him. He tried to get up, but he had no strength to do so. Anne frowned and asked, "What do you want to do?" "Go to work," Kevin muttered the three words briefly after he sat up. When Anne heard his answer, she shook her head. "Look at yourself. You are in no shape to work. What is it that you want, more money or your health?" "There is an important document in thepany that must be approved today. I need to submit it to my partner for review tomorrow." After saying that, Kevin stood up, but he felt a wave of heat in his body which weakened him. "Forget it. I''ll call your assistant for you and have it sent here. Just rest." Although Anne did not want to care for him, she made up her mind after thinking it through.Content rights belong to N?velDrama.Org. Kevin was stunned by her gesture. It was unusual for her to show concern for him. In fact, he did not even need to rest. For him, this was just a minor illness and inconvenience. However, their tight rtionship right now came to his mind. He had always wanted get along with her well. Although he knew that Anne was no ordinary woman, he could not help but care about her thoughts and feelings. "Alright then." After answering, he did not know what else to say. The silence between the two was awkward. The least thing Anne wanted was an embarrassing situation. Besides, she was just taking care of Kevin out of kindness. She was not expecting their rtionship to improve. Anne broke the ice and spoke in a familiar cold voice, "I''m going out for a while. I''m just going to make a phone call." She walked out hurriedly that she did not notice that she left the door ajar. Kevin took off his cold facade, and the corners of his mouth formed a weak smile. In YS Hotel, no matter what time it was, a blurred bright light illuminated the ce. It was always filled with the smell of sweet and spicy wine, expensive perfume, and women''s scent. Everyone here looked normal. However, there was more than that. Those who came here were not clean and pure. All of a sudden, the door of room B702 was pushed open, but nobody paid attention to it. Cherry came out and her pair of cold eyes were different fromst night. "My little baby, since we have reached an agreement, you must help me. What do you think?" Because of Cherry''s toughness, Garret suffered a lot. But this time was different because he had finally conquered her. "Of course. Don''t worry about it, Mr. Garret. As long as you help me, I will try my best to repay you." Cherry looked at Garret and a yful smiled appeared on her face. Her slender hand caressed his face casually, and he smiled in anticipation. There might be many beautiful women in YS Hotel, but in Garret''s eyes, Cherry was the best. Nobody else in YS Hotel could match Cherry''s temperament as she was educated and from a well-off family. Despite that she had a fiery temper and was hard to please, Garret liked her. "Well, I''ll wait for your good news," said Garret with a smile. If it were not because of Cherry''s value, he wouldn''t mind letting her be his mistress. But he had to hold back the urge now. In the business world, Garret and Cherry were friends, but in the real world, they were enemies. It just happened that his advertisingpany needed to coborate with the jewelry merchant under Kevin. If Kevin were to be involved in a scandal, Garret would definitely be happy. As a gentleman, Kevin had never been caught, and destroying his image would be beneficial to Garret''spany. This was the first time that Kevin''s assistant had to the Fu Family''s residence. The house was simple and solemn, but the assistant did not like theyout. Like thepany office, the ce exuded a sad and gloomy feeling. Looking around, the nts and grass in the garden were trimmed in a way that it emphasized symmetry. It was very beautiful to look at, but to people like him, it made him feel deste. "Here you are." Anne walked in the garden to bask in the sun while holding her baby when she saw a mane in. "May I ask who you are?" Daniel, Kevin''s assistant, did not know that the woman in front of him was Kevin''s divorced wife. Who would have lived with their divorced husband anyway? "I am Anne Luo. Kevin is in his room right now. When you enter, take a right turn and you will see his door right away. You can give him the document yourself," instructed Anne. "I see. Thank you." When Daniel entered the room, he saw Kevin turn on hisputer on the bed and browse the recent clothingunch event. "Mr. Kevin, this is the document that you asked for." The assistant handed the document to Kevin and sighed. "Mr. Kevin, you are always serious and strict in thepany. I didn''t expect you to be so nice to your housemaid." Kevin frowned at his assistant''s remark. He must have mistaken Anne for a housemaid. "She''s my wife," he said nkly. "Oh!" Daniel''s mouth fell open in shock. Did his boss not file a divorce? Was the divorce because he had an illegitimate child? Seeing the expression on Kevin''s face, Daniel felt nervous and he stopped himself from asking questions. "Mr. Kevin, I''ll leave now." After getting Kevin''s permission to leave, Daniel left in a hurry, fearing that Kevin would get mad at what he had said. When he walked to the garden, he happened to meet Anne again. She immediately noticed him and asked kindly, "Have you sent it to him?" Anne was kind to people, even to those she did not know. Her attitude was theplete opposite of that to Kevin. "Ah! I''m so sorry, Mrs. Anne. I didn''t recognize you earlier. I''m really sorry." Daniel left immediately out of embarrassment. Anne definitely understood what had happened. She went straight to Kevin''s room and asked angrily, "What did say to him and why did he call me ''Mrs. Anne''?" What worried her most was that Kevin was telling his people that she had something to do with him. "I don''t know. Perhaps you were the one who told him so." After speaking, he closed hisputer, leaned against his pillow, and closed his eyes. Anne was furious so she stormed out. She felt that Kevin was bing more and more ridiculous so she had to get away from him. "Mr. Kevin, this phone call is for you." The real nanny handed the phone to Kevin. He looked at the caller ID to see who had called, but the caller was unknown. At first, he thought that it was his partner so he answered it. However, he was wrong. When he answered, he heard Cherry''s voice at the other end of the line. His mood immediately went downpletely. "Cherry, wasn''t the lesson yesterday enough?" he asked her coldly. The person on the other line seemed to be short of breath. "Kevin, you are so cruel. I just want toe back to you. I didn''t expect you to treat me like this!" Her crying did not even get a bit of sympathy from him. Instead, it made him feel more disgusted with her. "You''ve already crossed a line, Cherry. You''re so tricky. Do you really think you are qualified toe back?" "Where can I go? I don''t have father, and my mother died saving you. Do you really want to see me live alone miserably?" Cherry''s voice was unusually soft and delicate, making Kevin shiver. "Fine. Go to No. 89, Riverside road first. I have a house there. I will send someone to give you the key. I have arranged your amodation and money for you. Don''t bother me again, or else I will take back everything I give you." With that, Kevin hung up the phone. Although Anne hated Kevin''s presence, she decided to take care of him. He was a patient and the father of her child after all. On the other hand, Kevin always had a bad temper. He always treated Anne coldly, and even told her that he had no feelings for her. "I told you that I don''t want to take this medicine. Will you just take good care of me? Also, didn''t I ask you to bring me some tea when it''s time to take my meds?" Kevin frowned and spoke to her impolitely. "Suit yourself." Anne put the bowl on the table coldly, and walked out at once. Kevin immediately regretted his words. He was about to ask her toe back, but Anne spoke first. "Let the nanny take care of you. I''ll take care of the baby." The baby''s room was filled with all sorts of toys and dolls which she herself handcrafted and arranged. She took care of her child well, and the baby''s growth was great. The baby gained so much weight, and it was not easy for him to wake up. Seeing that the baby was healthy, she smiled lovingly. She gently patted the baby''s buttocks while she hummed a luby. The baby fell asleep shortly after, but Anne was still not in the mood to see Kevin. She picked her phone up and browsed thetest jewelry design. However, the moment she opened the webpage, she sensed that something terrible was happening. Today''s news on the jewelry fashion website was all about the AN Group. Anne frowned when she saw Kevin''s name on the page. As it turned out, Kevin was trending not because he was thetest trendsetter, but because he was a bad guy who had provoked the daughter from a rich family and abandoned her. After reading the article, she found out that the victim was Cherry. A photo of her crying awkwardly was pinned at the bottom of the article. It was carefully staged and particrly eye-catching. She scrolled down thement section. Many people cursed Kevin, and some even called her a mistress, who destroyed other people''s rtionships on purpose. She turned off her phone and marched towards Kevin''s room, not caring if she would disturb him. "Kevin, what is this all about?" She knew that this matter was not insignificant. In fact, the matter at hand was so serious that it would definitely have a negative impact on thepany. Moreover, this issue would involve many people so it would be extra hard for them to ignore this. "Let me see." Kevin was shocked at first when he saw Anne enter his room. With a puzzled look, he took her phone and read the news. After reading it, instead of getting furious, heughed. He had always been used to this kind of thing. This issue could not take him down. However, when he saw Anne''s name being dragged down, his expression changed. "Don''t worry, I will deal with this." He immediately stood up and went to his study. In his eyes, rumors and negative news had no impact on him. But if Anne was being dragged into it as well, it was apletely different story. Whoever dared to hurt his woman would definitely pay a price! Chapter 164 Malicious Hype Chapter 164 Malicious Hype The AN Group had caught the attention of reporters from all over the country. Today, they flocked to the "Everyone, please calm down. We were informed about the circting rumors that are detrimental to ourpany''s reputation, but they are merely rumors. The AN Group with its CEO, Kevin Fu, will do further investigation and we will make sure that those responsible would be held ountable," Daniel faced the press and exined patiently until Kevin came. Question after question, the crowd decreased until finally everyone left. Daniel wiped the sweat on his forehead and gave a sign of rxation after doing a lot of intense talking. When Kevin''s car appeared in the background, he finally felt relieved. s, he managed to deal with the reporters before his boss came. He was not frightened by the overwhelming sea of reporters, but what made him terrified was the thought of Kevin getting angry. "Mr. Kevin, it''s good to see you." Daniel smiled again when he faced Kevin. "Tell the emergency services team to find out the ins and outs of this matter and look into Cherry''s whereabouts." Kevin then went straight into the office after giving the order. In his workce, he considered all things thoroughly and dialed quickly. "Also, go and find out if this Content rights belong to N?velDrama.Org. has something to do with Garret." Thest time he saw Cherry, she was with Garret. It was hard to guarantee that Garret wouldn''t plot anything behind his back. Although Kevin knew Anne''s personality, he was still worried sick that Anne would start to overthink. When he called her, he was anxious of and was still figuring what to say because he seemed to have neverforted Anne before. "Hello, Kevin. What''s up?" Anne''s voice was calm and not too surprised at Kevin''s sudden phone call. Hearing that Anne wasposed, Kevin was still tongue-tied. A few secondter, he spoke up. "I''ll handle this mess very well. Don''t worry." Obviously, Anne didn''t expect him to let goforting words to her, but, on the second thought, it shouldn''t be a surprise because it was his reputation and legacy at stake. "Thank you. I''ll be going now. The baby needs to be fed." Anne hung up the phone as Kevin''s ears were filled with the constant beeping of the phone. In less than two hours, the emergency services team had already figured out who sent the article. To their surprise, it was a newly establishedpany within the district and hadn''t made a name for themselves yet. When Daniel passed the information to Kevin, he was perplexedly. "Bold of this small firm to find fault with ourpany and try to stain our reputation. Mr. Kevin, why don''t we knock them out their micro business directly?" Daniel was exasperated. He thought it was a despicable move for a smallpany to nder a corporate giant in order to gain fame. "That would be unnecessary. Don''t act rashly now. Thispany may be the scapegoat of another resolve thismotion." Kevin spoke superciliously. Seeing that Kevin had a n ahead of everyone, Daniel breathed a sigh of relief. He said, "Well, let''s talk about it once we are finished gathering information about Garret and Cherry." About half an hourter, the information waspletely passed on to Kevin with the help of AN Group''s efficient and skillful personnel. "Mr. Kevin, this is thetest information we got on Garret and Cherry. You should give it a look." As soon as Daniel finished speaking, Kevin''s phone rang. He could have just ignored it, but it showed that the call wasing from Anne. Without hesitation, he took the call to find that the baby had a fever all of a sudden. "I''ll just take these reports. I''m going home. Keep investigating the two''s movement." Kevin left thepany in a sh. He was worried about Anne. She wouldn''t even bother calling him if something big came up, but this time she did, and it was because of the baby. Half an hourter, Kevin arrived home. As he neared the door, he heard the slight whimpering of the baby. He walked briskly to reach the door. As soon as he entered, the baby''s cry exploded in his face. Anne was there anxiously carrying the baby and walking back and forth in the room. With worry written all over her face, she had lost herposure. She waspletely powerless, a mother who stood there and watched as her child wailed. "Kevin! Finally, you''re here." Anne felt a sense of relief the moment she saw Kevin. A sudden rush of reassurance flooded her heart. "What''s wrong with the baby? Why hasn''t he been sent to the hospital yet? Where''s Sam?" Kevin probed and wonder why Sam didn''t came. "Sam just flew abroad. He probably turned off his phone once he came aboard, so I have no choice but to call you. If I had the key to the garage, I would have left you unbothered and driven to the hospital myself." Anne reasoned as she tried to calm her nerves. "Okay, but we have to go now." Kevin took the baby from Anne''s embrace and tucked him in his. The butler immediately opened the door and assisted Anne to the car. Kevin gave back the baby to Anne as he started the car''s engine. Kevin''s house was distant to Sam''s hospital. It took them about fifty minutes of anxious driving before they arrived. At this time, the baby had fallen asleep, tired from all the crying, but Anne was far fromcent. She changed the antipyretic patch of the baby and felt the burning temperature of the baby''s forehead. After they arrived, they were led to the consultation room of the hospital. There a pediatrician asked, "What''s wrong with the baby?" "He suddenly had a fever, but there were no symptoms. No cold or whatsoever. I don''t know what happened." Anne was clueless about why the baby was sick, so she too was at a loss. "Come on, let me have a look." After the doctor examined the baby, he instructed the nurse beside him, "Take him to the infusion room and keep track of the situation all the time." With a dreadful look on her face, Anne followed them. Kevin asked the doctor, "What''s wrong with the child? How did he catch a fever out of nowhere?" "These are not within the scope of a simple inspection to answer, but it is normal for children to experience fever at this age. Although your case looks peculiar, I rmend that he stay here for at least a week so we can monitor him." In the ward D609, there was a bed with white sheets. The curtains were sky blue, and the room was filled with the scent of disinfectant. "Is he getting any better?" asked Kevin as he stood behind Anne. "The temperature lowered, but the fever is still not gone." she answered worriedly. "Is there something going on in thepany? You''ve been very busy recently. I can stay here for a while to take care of the baby. You can go if you have to. I can just hail a cab to get home." Anne wanted to tell Kevin not to worry too much, but she might have said it in a harsh way. Kevin didn''t respond. He put a key on the bed. "What''s this?" asked Anne. "The key to the garage. Are you sure you''re all good to drive? Take the car and drive as you wish." Kevin wanted to say that she could still call him whenever she felt like not driving. But what came out of his mouth was something different from what he really meant to say. Then he saw that her expression changed. "Of course I can drive. It took me a month to pass, but I got my driving license four years ago. I can handle myself," Anne said reassuringly. She was confident with her abilities. "That''s good. You were right by the way. I should go back to thepany, I have something to deal with. If something happens, call me." He never really wanted to leave, but he had other responsibilities. He had to deal with thepany''s affairs as soon as possible. "Go ahead," answered Anne. In the YS Hotel, there were a few guests since it was Saturday and mostpanies were on a holiday. The usual bustling lodge was quieter than usual since businessmen seldom came here to discuss businesses on weekends. The lighting didn''t change. Everything was kind of a blur but looked a little frigid. Garret went to the reception and booked a private room. Cherry soon arrived and had a seat in the room. Because of the luxurious interior, even if the ambiance was not as dynamic as usual, it gave people a sense of flirtation. When Cherry saw Garret, he was sitting on the sofa with an ecstatic face. "How do you think about the oue, Mr. Garret? Do you love what you''re seeing?" Cherry smirked faintly. If he didn''t know her character, Garret would have been deceived by her charming innocent face. "With your help, we will definitely get what we want!" Garret was all smiles. As the boss of the third ranked advertisingpany, he had a reason to hate Kevin. Since bijouterie became the trend in the industry, jewelrypanies and advertisingpanies had always been closely working with each other. Kevin had close ties with the top two advertising corporationcked established connections. Although partnerships and rivalries weremon phenomenon in the business industry, it would be personally beneficial for Garret if he could either destroy the Fu Family, or injure Kevin''s jewelry "It is all attributed to your clever trick. Without your n, I never could have done it." Cherry grinned and sat down opposite Garret''s seat. "Ha! Poor Kevin. Why does he have to run the jewelry business? It''s his bad luck to be caught by me, and he doesn''t cherish such a fine beauty," Garret teased ambiguously because he still didn''t want to give up on Cherry. "But what if hees after us? What do you think he will do?" Thinking of Kevin''s wide variety of means, Cherry was fearful of the possibilities. Garretughed out loud and said, "You don''t have to be afraid. Even if Kevin is powerful and he can go track my scent like foolish dog, it would be all for nothing. The news has been on every front page of every paper in town. The damage has been dealt. The situation is irreversible." Cherry knew very well about this point. In the business world, the hype made everyone do anything. This time, the ''love only one'' shining series of ringsunched by the AN Group were very popr. There was a mysterious story about this series. The protagonist was guessed to be Kevin. This time, the sale of thepany would certainly be affected. If Kevin wanted to save his reputation, he would definitely agree to her request and tell everyone that Anne was a mistress who got involved in their rtionship, and Cherry would be Kevin''s one and only lover. Just thinking about her sweet happy ending, Cherry grinned from ear to ear. "Cherry, you are so happy but fortunately, Kevin is calling you." said Garret. When she came to her senses, Cherry looked at her phone. Sure enough, there was an iing call, more so it was Kevin. "You''re right, Garret. But don''t worry, if I cane back to Kevin, I will definitely thank you in the future." Cherry stood up and gracefully walked outside to answer the phone. As she disappeared from his sight, Garret''s expression suddenly became viinous. Chapter 165 Reckless Chapter 165 Reckless Garret despised Cherry. She might have had a smart look, but she was pretty reckless. Why would she think that Kevin would still ept her after what she had done? This was his way of bargaining things with her. He knew that Kevin would not want her back, and the rumors she started would never die down. Kevin and Cherry met at a sophisticated-looking coffee shop. It had these huge French windows and the furniture was well-made. The calm atmosphere added elegance to the establishment. The man sat expressionlessly across the woman who had the opposite of what he felt. She was giddy because it was the first time in a while that Kevin had initiated to meet her. "Are you here to take me home?" she asked expectantly as she held his hand. He frowned and pulled his hand away from her grasp. "Please, behave yourself," he said coldly. Her smile faltered and her finger started to twist the tablecloth underneath. "What do you mean by that?" she asked The look on Cherry''s face showed that she was surprised and was offended by his actions. "Do you think I wouldn''t find out that you nned everything out with Garret?" Kevin said in serious manner. "Honestly, I didn''t expect you to be this stupid. Still, I''ll show you mercy just for the sake of your mother who saved me. Stop it or else, you can''t me me for the things I''ll do in the future," added Kevin, confronting Cherry. The woman snickered at him. "What''s so good about Anne? Why could she manage to change your mind in a snap? What did she do that made you drive me out of your life that easily?" Tears fell from her eyes. She didn''t mind her surroundings and started to look all pitiful as she wallowed. Kevin rolled his eyes because he was well aware that this was Cherry''s way to appeal to his emotion. He could bear that before, but now that he found out about her true nature, he could only feel disgust. "You were kicked out not because of Anne but because of your wrongdoings. You even abused a child! Haven''t you realized that it''s your fault along?" he asked in disbelief. "Why do I experience these things? The only mistake I did was that I was too soft for Anne. I know why you decided to meet me but I won''t help you unless you make it into the public that you want to marry me!" she said without hesitation. She had been waiting for too long and she refused to wait any longer. The atmosphere was enveloped with awkwardness as the man kept mum at her rumbling. "I think you should give me an answer, Kevin," Cherry summoned up her courage and asked. "Aren''t you asking for too much? You must be thinking that I am not capable of doing anything to you," he sneered angrily. "You have to wake up, Kevin! Anne doesn''t love you. She''s after your money. What you''re doing will be useless!" she yelled sarcastically, desperate to persuade Kevin. When she saw how he clenched his fist, she knew that she seeded in infuriating him. But she felt bad in heart. What she said hit the nail on the head. Her chest heaved violently. She thought that she had won their argument. Even if Kevin wouldn''t reciprocate her feelings, she believed that no one could do better than her. However, she didn''t expect that Anne got in between and won his heart. How could she not hate her? Without saying anything, he stood up and left the cafe. "Just wait and see, Kevin. You''re the one who forced me to do this," she whispered as the man trailed his way out. In the dead of night, a few people stayed at the VIP ward in the hospital. What happened outside could be clearly observed. The opened curtain of the room made the light outside shine in. The emitted cold light looked even bleaker. It was a lonely night, to be exact. Inside the hospital room, the baby continued to sleep. It seemed like he felt his mother''spany and he slept peacefully. He smacked his lips from time to time like he was snickering or savoring the smell of the milk powder that was given to him. His mother stayed with him all this time, unwilling to leave him even for a second. The moment she couldn''t hold on any longer, her eyes fluttered close and she drifted off to sleep. When Kevin arrived at the hospital, he saw her sleep so peacefully after the tiring day. His heart softened at the scene. Without further ado, he opened the documents that Daniel had sent him silently. The information was all about Garret. He finally realized why the man set him up. The smallpany that spread the rumor was established by him. Thepany only had dozens of employees and had no achievement. They did nothing but nder theirpetitors. "Got any news?" Kevin was startled at the sudden voice but he kept hisposure. Even without looking at it, Anne knew that he was reading about the recent news. "It''s none of your business. I''ll handle this properly," said Kevin coldly. Even though his response was cold, she showed an understanding smile. "Cherry must be one of the maniptors behind it, right?" He didn''t reply but she knew that her guess was right. She felt a little sad because even under such a situation, he still had to hide it for Cherry. All because he thought that she was not bad enough. Well, at least not as bad as Anne was in his heart. Her heart was cold and so was her breath. "Yes, how did you know?" He always knew that Anne was smart but not this sharp that she would be able to guess it right away. "Well, Of course, I would know. She''s only good at acting like it but she is never a good person. The reason why she nned all of this is because she wants toe back to you. She asked you to tell me that you don''t like me and at the same time, she wanted you to tell everyone that she is the one you really love, and I am the third party who ruined your love for each other. Am I right?" She smiled sadly at him. She didn''t expect him to be this responsible. For her, as long as he was the father of the child and he was willing to recognize him, that would be fine. She was also surprised at how she could still care for the man. After all, she had loved him before. Still, she refused to show her weak side. All for her pride, she stood there like a hard and indestructible rock; like the stars that were far and cold. Kevin waspletely irritated by her words. He didn''t know that her mind worked like this. "Anne¡­" he whispered as his self-esteem seemed to go down its lowest point. "What? Are you embarrassed about it? I neither care about what others think of me nor expect you to take care of me. We have nothing to do with each other. All you need to do is take care of the child." Anne refused to give in. For the sake of her child, she would never betray her principles. "You''re being unreasonable!" he shouted angrily. Out of anger, he pushed her aside and walked out. He trailed the darkness and deste night that weed him. The morning arrived and the rush hour caused a traffic jam along the road. Thetest news about the jewelryunched by the AN Group was broadcasted on the big mall screens. Another breaking news came. Cherry appeared in the center of the big screen and intended to look haggard on it. She appeared without any make-up on with dark circles under her eyes that made her look older. In just a snap, everyone sympathized with her and used Kevin of being ruthless and cold while they called out Anne for being shameless. When he saw the big screen, a smirk appeared on his face. He sat there proudly as if he had something under his sleeves. "Good day everyone! We are the special reporters of LD magazine. We have some juicy news right under our wings." The screen switched to Eve, the most famous fashion expert in the world. He was the idol of manymentators because of his fairness and sharpness when it came to fashion. When he appeared, everyone became excited. "Hey, it''s Eve! Let''s listen to whatever hisments on Kevin." Soon enough, people gathered and their sole focus was on Eve. To everyone''s disappointment, he didn''t talk about Anne or Kevin. Instead, he talked about the matters regarding Garret and Cherry. "Hello everyone! I have something to tell you regarding this rumor. This kind of news was never my cup of tea. However, someone did get too far. I''ve found out that the news where Kevin and Cherry appeared was made by Garret''spany. The reason why she was driven out of the Fu Family was because she mistreated Kevin''s child. Furthermore, I found out that Cherry had an affair with Garret. This is a piece of relevant information." After that, Eve showed a few photos of intimate contact between Cherry and Garret at the YS Hotel. "From the looks of it, they did have an inappropriate rtionship. Is it true that Cherry had a bad character and she was punished for it but then decided to collude with Garret to frame Kevin? If that''s the case, then isn''t she a terrible woman?" Everyone started to talk about it. In the GD Building, Garret and Cherry watched the news. They didn''t know that they had been targeted for a long time. The news showed the whereabouts of their meetings and all their inappropriate actions. It just came in time and turned the tables. It seemed that the one who operated all this was clever than them. In just a snap, everyone who showed their sympathy towards her was gone. All their emotions and efforts were in vain. "How did he find out?" Cherry asked in disbelief. Copyright by N?v/elDrama.Org. Disappointment overwhelmed her disheveled form. Her yellowishplexion apanied by unkempt hair made her look like a woman in her forties. "How would I know? You''re the one who met with Kevin in private! What did you tell him?!" He immediately refused to take responsibility. "How could you be so shameless and use me like that? We schemed against Kevin together. Why would I leak our secret?" she shouted in disgust towards his denial. "Why wouldn''t you? You couldn''t ept the fact that you were kicked out, so you begged me to help you and allured me with your beauty. Now our secret is exposed and I finally see your true colors." Upon saying that, he smirked shamelessly seeing how surprised she was hearing him. Chapter 166 Disgraced Chapter 166 Disgraced Upon hearing this, Cherry understood what he meant right away. "Garret, how dare you do this to me? Do you believe that I will tell everyone what kind of a person you are?" Cherry started feeling like she was so unlucky. Kevin had just abandoned her and the next thing she knew, she met this greedy bastard, Garret. "Garret, are you still even a human being? Yesterday, you told me you would marry me any time, for as long as I''d be willing to marry you." Cherry''s face was distorted, regardless of her messy image. "And what about it? Don''t be so stupid, Cherry. Haven''t you heard that in the business world, women are treated just like clothes? It''s just that you are a little bit outstanding in appearance. Women like you Copyright by N?v/elDrama.Org. can be found anywhere in the world." Garret''s shameless face disgusted Cherry and made her regret setting herself against Kevin. "Just wait, Garret. I won''t let you go," Cherry said. She was ready. Herst resort would be to make amends with Kevin and live in the house arranged by him for her at the time. She would make ns for the future. She then left angrily and a yful smile appeared on Garret''s face. "Do you still want to y tricks on me? Do you still have the ability to do that?" His voice was light but there was ruthlessness in his tone. Meanwhile, in the HJ residential quarters, there were not many people in this newly-establishedmunity. There were only just a few vis in this area. However, their rates had increased drastically. It was under the RY Real Estate Company which belonged to the AN Group. Cherry''s taxi had stopped there. She knew Kevin would be present there today because it was the project''s date ofpletion. A luxury car appeared in front of Cherry and she immediately saw Kevin''s arrogant figure. "Kevin!" yelled Cherry. But Kevin did not get out of the car immediately. He knew that Cherry had given up the moment he saw her. When he saw that Cherry wasn''t looking confident enough, he slowly came out and asked her, "What is the matter with you?" "Kevin, I know you must hate me very much, but I just got threatened by someone. It''s Garret. He threatened me to cooperate with him. Also, how could I ever betray you? I love you so much, Kevin," Cherry said. Kevin smiled coldly when he saw Cherry lower her head. "Then why are you back now?" He pretended to be surprised. The hint of gentleness on his tone made Cherry think that he still thought she was a good person in his heart. "Ah, the reason is that I really can''t cooperate with Garret. At first, I thought that he just wanted to help me get back with you. I didn''t expect that he just fooled me because he wanted to destroy your Cherry wasn''t very skilled at lying but her expression turned out to be very natural. She didn''t feel guilty for what she had done. "Oh, I see. Well, from now on, you may go back to your house and stay there. I will deal with the rest." Seeing that Kevin was still considerate, Cherry actually felt a little happy. She thought that letting him know about Garret''s scheme made him realize her importance. "Okay, Kevin. Don''t worry. From this day forward, I will just listen to whatever you say." After just having suffered a great loss, Cherry knew that the best way she could make Kevin allow her to stay was to never go against his idea. Cherry rode a car, and as Kevin watched her being driven away, the smile on his face grew bigger. Daniel was with him. He trembled because no one knew what was on his mind. Perhaps, the brighter his smile was, the angrier he was in his heart. Anyone who was familiar with Kevin knew that he didn''t have such a forgiving heart. "Let''s go and check out the new houses." Then Kevin stepped forward. They saw a retro European style building under the blue sky with dark-colored nts trimmed at the door just a hundred meters away from where they stood. If a prospective client that pursued a romantic atmosphere came here, the ce would definitely be to their liking. "Daniel, just keep one vi here and don''t sell it. Make it under Anne''s name," Kevin ordered Daniel in a calm tone. It seemed that what he was talking about wasn''t a house worth a hundred million but roses for his wife. "Okay, Mr. Kevin. That is duly noted. Where shall we head to next?" Daniel asked. "You can head back to thepany by yourself. I''ll have to go to the hospital." After saying that, Kevin got inside his car and drove away before Daniel could react. "Oh, my God! What''s wrong with my boss? He has been so preupied with his personal affairs these days even while he''s at work." Daniel had no idea whom his boss was going to visit in the hospital but he felt that it must have been a very important person to him. This was a private hospital but its revenue mainly came from selling medical equipment, instead of treating people. It wasn''t meant to admit that many patients because they had also invested in another hospital downtown. Therefore, there were usually very few people here and the patients epted were either rtives or very good friends of Sam. When he came back, he heard that Anne was there with her child to have the kid''s disease treated. He didn''t take of his suit and went straight to the ward. It was seven in the morning. The hospital room was painted in a color that could reflect light, which made the entire room brighter. "You woke up so early," Sam said as he set breakfast on the table. Anne was surprised at first to see that Sam hade back. She answered him with worry evident in her tone, "Yes, I''m always worried and anxious about the baby so I can''t sleep for too long." Sam noticed the dark circles under her eyes and it made him sad and worried about her. He couldn''t find the words to tell her because he knew that she would still worry about her baby no matter how much he would try tofort her. "Also, the baby hasn''t even been named yet. Kevin is sozy. Doesn''t he even want to name his own baby?" Thinking about this made Anne really angry. Their baby had been born for a couple of months already but he still hadn''t been named. She started thinking that maybe Kevin didn''t really care for their child. "In fact, after you left, Kevin was in a bad mood, and he didn''t pay that much attention to the baby. However, I heard that he came here to visit you recently. He isn''tpletely ruthless to the baby and you." Sam found it hard to see through Kevin, despite the fact that they were friends. Sometimes, he would think that Kevin really didn''t care about the two of them and sometimes it didn''t seem so. "Forget it. It''s not your obligation tofort me. As a matter fact, I don''t expect anything from him anymore, anyway. But if he goes too far, I will definitely stop him. For now, he doesn''t seem to act particrly bad to the child, though," Anne said, while she was lost in thought. "Well, as for the baby''s name, if Kevin doesn''t give him one, just do it yourself. Your baby is adorable. He deserves a good name," Sam said in aforting tone. What he said warmed Anne''s heart. "Alright, I shall think about it. In her heart, giving her child a name was a very important decision that would affect his son for a lifetime. She got reminiscent of the time when her mother told her why she named her Anne. She hoped that Anne would live a peaceful life. But now she started feeling like she had let her own mother down. "Anne, it seems to me that you are in a bad mood. Why don''t you go out for a little walk. Today''s a good day. Maybe you can even take the baby out. A little sun''s gonna be good for him, too." Anne looked out the window without an expression on her face, but there was joy in her eyes. She answered, "Okay, but I am not sure if the baby will get a suntan." "Don''t worry. Put a coat on him and a hat on his head when you go out," Sam instructed Anne. In Sam''s eyes, Anne was different than before. She was not as cold and hard as she used to be. She looked gentler. "Okay." There were long chairs and swings made of artificial flowers vines out in the hospital gardens. "Go up," Sam said, pointing at the swing. "I don''t think that''s a good idea," Anne said hesitantly. She had always thought that the swing was something for the children. She had never ridden a swing since she was a child. This would be her first time and to her, the idea felt wrong and odd. "Will you just let the baby sit on it all alone?" Seeing the embarrassment on Anne''s face, Sam chuckled a little. He was so used to seeing Anne''s tough and strong front that when he saw her gritting her teeth and looking so embarrassed, it felt weird and funny to him. "Of course, I won''t do that," Anne replied at once. "That''s right. You sit on it with the baby in your arms. I''ll gently shake you. Observe if it will make the babyugh," said Sam. This time, Anne was tempted. She suddenly smiled shyly and sat on the swing seat with her baby securely wrapped around her arms. "I''m ready." The swing swayed gently. Because the baby was still too young and small. It wasn''t suitable for him to be shaken that much so Anne set her feet on the ground, fearing that it would frighten her baby. "Sure enough. He did smile." Anne reached out her hand and touched the baby''s pink nose with a lovely smile painted on her face. Kevin, who was looking for Anne not that far away, saw this wonderful scene. He swore it was the first time he had ever seen Anne so beautiful. But when he saw that Sam was there, he felt a little unhappy. It bothered him that another man also saw such a beautiful side of this woman. "Why are you here?" Kevin asked while walking over to where they were at the garden. All of a sudden, the mood changed and the smile on Anne''s face had disappeared. "As you can see, we took out the baby to bask in the sun." Damn it! Kevin frowned. He had meant to praise Anne for her beauty but that was what happened instead. "Well, I meant to ask what made you decide toe here all of a sudden. Also, it seems indeed pleasing for women to casually y on the swing instead of being so mature, nowadays," Kevin rubbed his nose and said. Was he praising her? Looking up at Kevin for a long time, she found that he didn''t intend any sarcasm. She then became a little restless and was at a loss for words for a long time. Chapter 167 A Lovely Woman Chapter 167 A Lovely Woman It pleased Kevin that Anne was left speechless like this. This was the first time she had such a look on her face because of something he said. His eyes werepletely transfixed on her face. The expression she had was so rare and so cute that it was something he wanted to cherish for as long as possible. Most of the time, she was just cold towards him. He wanted to make sure that he never forget how lovely she looked right now. However, his moment of joy was about toe to an end. "Do we really need to get involved with each other? You know I don''t care whether or not you think I have a pleasing attitude," Anne said as she shook her head. Since her aloofness towards him had returned, Kevin couldn''t help but frown. Usually, they never got along like this, which was why she became guarded once more and started pushing him away like she normally did. Feeling the tension between them, Sam raised his eyebrows. "Ah, I suddenly remembered that I need to go see a patient of mine for an examination. I''ll be on my way now!" With a smile, he patted Kevin on the shoulder. The cold words Anne said made Kevin feel embarrassed and hurt. On top of that, he couldn''t help but think that the smile on Sam''s face was a form of mockery. If Anne wasn''t there, he wouldn''t have hesitated to beat Sam up right there and then. Noticing his friend''s dark look, Sam beamed even wider and walked away. Meanwhile, tension and awkwardness between Anne and Kevin grew even more. In her mind, she knew that Kevin must be in a bad mood by now. Despite that, she didn''t really care that much about what he thought. As long as he kept treating her terribly, there was no way she was going to stop being so distant towards him. "Is the baby getting better?" After a few moments of silence, Kevin finally spoke up and broke the ice. Normally, he would''ve still been in a bad mood until now. However, seeing the look Anne had earlier made it easier for him to stay a bit more positive. He somewhat thought that she was not as hateful as she was before after she gave birth to the baby. He used to think that she was a vicious woman who had done many bad things. "Yes. The fever''s gone, thankfully. We can go home today. Don''t worry," she replied. "Okay. I''ll go to talk to Sam and go through the formalities. I have a car waiting for you to take you and the baby home." His tone with her was incredibly patient, which made her slightly raise her brow in Content rights belong to N?velDrama.Org. suspicion. Warily, he took a step closer to her. However, Anne still couldn''t help but feel threatened, and subconsciously took a step back. Although this irritated him, he took a deep breath and tried to maintain his cool. "I just want to hold the baby. I don''t even like you," he defended as he rolled his eyes. Even though Anne still wasn''t all toofortable around him, she carefully put the baby in his arms. As he cradled the soft baby against his chest, warmth flooded his heart. It dawned on him that this child was really his. Not once in his life had he felt such a connection towards a child. For years, he thought that he needed to have children only because they could take over his family business one day. However, as he held the baby in his arms, he suddenly knew what being a father really felt and meant. Taking a closer look, he saw how much the baby had inherited Anne''s eyes. They had the same stubborn but beautiful look in them. Aside from that, it looked like the baby was an exact carbon copy of Kevin. Whenever a parent held their child in their arms for the first time, a special form of love and connection was formed. It was inevitable. "You''re holding the baby wrong. You might hurt him," Anne reminded gently. "Oh. I... I''m not sure how to do this." Carefully, Kevin fumbled around, trying to find the perfect way to carry the child. "Your hand should hold his neck and head." Since he was such a smart business man, she didn''t think that he wouldn''t know something as basic as holding a baby. So, for the sake of the baby''s safety, she patiently tried to exin and teach him. "You put your one hand here and put the other hand there... You got it?" Slowly, she moved his hands until the baby rested nicely in his arms. At that time, she had forgotten about the rift between her and Kevin. It was as if their rtionship was finally normal and civil. At the next second, memories of their past rtionship flooded her memory. Back then, she tried her best to get closer to Kevin, only to get rejected time and time again. Now, things were starting to change. Even though she was still a bit reserved towards him, she was still a bit happy that there was some progress. At the very least, it was good for her to see that he sincerely loved his child. "We should start heading back now. Pack up your things. We''ll leave in twenty minutes," Kevin stated in a low voice, his eyes still on the baby. When everything was taken care of, they made their way out of the hospital. There at the parking lot, a sleek, ck car waited for them. It exuded luxury, a vehicle that only rich and powerful people like Kevin could afford. "Get in." Like a gentleman, Kevin courteously opened the door for Anne before he went to sit at the driver''s seat. As he drove out into the highway, he made sure to stay well below the speed limit. It wasn''t like him to drive this slowly. At this moment, Anne started feeling a bit uneasy with silence between them. "So, have you solved the problems of thepany?" she asked casually. "Of course. Butpany profits fell by two percentage points in the couple of days when the rumor circted," Kevin replied, his eyes glued on the road. Although two percentage points might have sounded small, it was still a considerable amount of money. "What do you n on doing now? Is there any way to make up for the loss?" She was well aware that if a jewelrypany''s reputation went sour, it would be difficult to mend. These losses understandably had the ability to raise some major concerns. "I took some measurester, and the profits doubled. Everything''s been sorted out, thanks so Garret and Cherry. If it weren''t for them, it might have been impossible for our jewelry to be so popr." There was a smile on his face as he exined all the technicalities with her. "How did you find out that it was Cherry and Garret who partnered up against you?" Anne asked carefully. This issue had been all over the front news. However, after she got into a big fight with Kevin that day, she didn''t really bother herself with it. "I actually already knew about it from the very beginning," he replied with a shrug. With her eyes widening, it seemed impossible to believe that he really knew everything that was going on, especially when it was about hispany. ''Huh, I might actually have misunderstood this guy,'' she quietly thought to herself. "I''m sorry," she said with a frown. "I got a little ahead of myself that day. I should have spoken to you more calmly." "Sorry? That''s all?" With a sneer, he cast a quick nce at Anne. "What else do you want me to say? It''s not like I brought any substantial losses to you," she retorted back. "That''s not the point. People who misjudge me and don''t trust my actions must pay the price." Unconsciously, he stepped on the gas a bit harder, his hands tightening on the wheel. "Can you be more objective? Look, I know it''s my fault this time. But don''t forget that you''ve always thought that I was such a bad person. From what I remember, you also even vowed that you would never want to be around me!" Anne quickly countered, leaving Kevin speechless. That day really made him sad. He was sure that he liked Anne but... What did she take him for anyway? A yboy? How could he fall in love with Cherry in such a short time? They spent the rest of the drive home in agonizing silence. It took longer than usual, but eventually they pulled up at the vi''s driveway. As soon as Anne stepped out of the car, she breathed a sigh of relief. It took so much of her energy to be around Kevin. With the baby sleeping in her arms, she went straight inside the house. Since the baby had just recovered, she wanted to take him up into her bedroom right at once. The child needed to get as much rest as he could, and there was no way she was going to let him out of her sight. After putting the baby inside his crib, she drew the curtains. The dazzling sunshine was instantly cut off, making the room dim and cozy. Starting to feel the fatigue kick in, she theny down on the bed to catch up on some sleep. Just when she was about to doze off, the door creaked open. With her eyelids fluttering open, she saw Kevin standing by the door. "Why are you still here? Shouldn''t you be at work by now?" she asked in a low and quiet voice. "I don''t want to go to work today. I want to stay at home with you," Kevin said matter-of-factly. Hearing this, she couldn''t help but feel a bit worried. ''It''s not like him to skip work for no reason.'' At this moment, his eyes swept the room. Seeing this woman sleeping next to his child made it even more impossible for him to leave the house. When he went up to check on their room a few days ago, his sadness overwhelmed him. He knew that Anne and the baby were just at the hospital, but seeing the empty room made him feel so hollow inside. Not having her by his side was almost unbearable, for there was nothing he loved more than that woman. "Are you sure you don''t want to go to work? There are still a lot of problems you need to handle. If you don''t take care of it soon, things might get even worse," Anne pressed further with concern. "You don''t want me to stay here?" Kevin countered. "If you really want to stay, that''s fine with me. But you shouldn''t be too worried. The baby''s doing fine now." "Then I''ll stay." For a moment, the two of them didn''t say anything. Although he didn''t want to walk out of the room, he didn''t know what he was supposed to say next. He cared so much for Anne, and was always scared that he might suddenly say something wrong again. "I''ve taken care of Cherry, by the way. She won''t bother us anymore," he finally said, lowering his eyes. However, from Anne''s perspective, it appeared to her that he was still reluctant to let Cherry go. "It doesn''t matter. As long as I get to be with the baby, I don''t care what you do," she replied, her voice almost a whisper. There was a hint of sadness in her eyes but there was little she could do. If Kevin really didn''t like her, no matter how hard she tried, her love would not be reciprocated. There was one old saying, "If this is yours, no one can steal from you. If this does not belong to you, you cannot get it by force." And she understood it now. All the pain she had felt had made her feel more indifferent towards men. The only love she held on to right now was her love for her son. "Are you sure about that?" With his brows furrowed, he tried to see the expression on her face. However, it was much too dim inside the room. "Yes," she answered. "As long as you don''t bring her back here, you can do whatever you want." Without another word, Kevin turned around and quickly left the room. Somehow, his actions didn''t make sense to Anne. "What did I say wrong now?" she asked doubtfully in a meek voice. But no one was there now to answer her. Feeling tired, sheid back on the bed and quickly fell asleep. In the study, the curtains gently blew in the wind, letting in a bit of sunshine inside the darkened room from time to time. Kevin sat in his plush office chair as he rubbed his weary eyes with his hands. It was bothering him that after all this time, Anne had still not warmed up to him. ''Damn it! I care so much about her. Can''t she see that?!'' He had never felt this way before towards a woman. Getting rejected by her repeatedly was like a punch in the gut. This feeling of helplessness was something that was new to him, and it made him feel so awful. "Mr. Kevin, are you inside?" the servant''s voice timidly called from outside the room. Usually, the study was cleaned at this time of the day. The servant wasn''t so sure if Kevin was still there or not, but she didn''t want to risk barging in on him. What was more, she saw that his car was still parked outside. Even the servant couldn''t help but think that it was very odd of him not to go to work. With a grunt, he mmed his fist on desk. "Go away! Do not disturb me!" he shouted through the door. Leaning back on the chair, he closed his tired eyes and tried his best to get all of his emotions back in ce. Chapter 168 It Was So Awkward Chapter 168 It Was So Awkward "Okay." The servant sensed that Kevin was in a sulking mood, so she left and didn''t try to bother him anymore. Kevin leaned against his seat and kneaded his temples, but there were still a lot of things discouraging him. A few hourster, there was a heavy knock on the door. The sharp thumping noise made him frown. "Didn''t I tell you not to disturb me?" His deep and resonant voice was fused by his heightened anger until he heard the voice outside. "Kevin, it''s time for the meal. Will youe join us?" Hearing the aloof voice of Anne, Kevin immediately calmed down and cheered up. He sat up straight as if he was shot at the back by an arrow and replied, "I''ll be out in a minute." Anne didn''t say anything more upon hearing his response and left instantly. A faint gleam suddenly brightened the corners of Kevin''s lips, but at the same time, he also felt depressed. The more Anne became unweing, the more eager he wanted to knock on her heart, to be close to her. If Anne was a little nicer to him, his mood would definitely light up the house. When he arrived at the dining room, Anne had already sat down. Cutleries were already set in ce in front of her, and the baby in the stroller beside her was ced in between her and Kevin''s seat. The baby reached out his hand to grab the little ball in front of him, but he couldn''t get a hold of it. Kevin was ecstatic to have a meal with Anne, but since the baby was there, he just ate without saying a word. However, when he thought of what Anne had just said, he suddenly felt that he was absentminded at times. This woman went too far when she said that she wouldn''t mind where he went, even if he went out to be with Cherry. "I''m full." Kevin abruptly sumbed to his heated thoughts. He put down his bowl and left without saying another word. "It was so awkward." Even Anne who was used to Kevin''s bizarre temper, couldn''t help but say that. She then continued to eat and said to the baby, "I guess it''s you and me, Baby. Let''s enjoy the meal together." Without Kevin by her side, she felt more relieved. Inside Cherry''s room, clothes were scattered all over the ce from dresses to lingerie. The strong and fragrant smell of her perfume was diffused in the room and her cosmetics were left open to dry. It was obvious that Cherry hadn''t tidied up yet. It was the third day since she moved to the new house. She thought she could make it up to Kevin by being obedient, but he didn''t even call her. Content rights belong to N?velDrama.Org. She could still browse about the negative news about her on the inte. "Garret, you are so cruel and merciless." She didn''t dare to go out in the open, not with her face circting the media for the wrong reasons. She even ordered takeout for her meal. She used to be avishdy, so she was not used to the life she was stuck in, but she couldn''t just sit and do nothing about it. In a moment of desperation, she dialed Kevin. "Kevin, why haven''t you dealt with Garret yet? He caused harm to the both of us!" Cherry spoke in a high volume. Kevin answered the call and said passionlessly, "It''s none of your business. Don''t go out these days, or someone will take pictures of you." "But how do I cope with this life?" Cherry said with grievance. "I''m sure you can handle yourself." After saying that, Kevin ended the call, and then Cherry heard the beeping sound of the phone. A few days ago, Cherry was depressed because of what happened between her and Garret. She didn''t even have the time to think about Anne at all. Now she thought carefully, this was all Anne''s fault. She was the reason she ended up like this. "Anne, you took everything away from me! Everything!" She clenched her fists and gritted her teeth. If Anne was there with her, she would have ripped her into pieces like paper. All the people that stood in her way of her being with Kevin deserved to die an excruciating death. She grabbed her bed sheet tightly in her trembling hand. Her face was gushing red, and as she turned from sweet to ferocious, she was no longer her old self. At the board meeting of AN Group ofpany, all twenty members sat anxiously with their boss. Kevin sat in the most important seat, with his handsome face painted with a deadpan expression, his eyes full of uncontroble disdain. The water in front of him was still untouched. Everyone listened attentively when he spoke, and when he was quiet no one dared to move. "Do it right away ording to this n. We will surely take down Garret," said Kevin calmly. By this time, everyone finally understood Kevin''s intentions. Someone said, "If we hit Garret, will he strike back? Of course. Garret is not a nobody. He has influence in the whole business industry." Upon hearing these words, all the board members were worried. Kevin sneered and continued, "So what? I will make him fallpletely, so that he won''t even have the capability to fight back." Kevin''s impassive and determined tone made everyone present shudder. When the meeting came into a conclusion, Daniel asked Kevin, "Mr. Kevin, why did you want to strike Garret now when he had already dealt a huge blow to thepany." "He and Cherry conspired a trap for thepany. After I exposed it, I found out that he used Cherry as a failsafe to absorb the unwanted attention from the press. I didn''t do anything before because he was using Cherry. I don''t want to spend more energy dealing with her. So I thought it would be best if I could find a way to hit Garret directly." After saying that, Kevin left Daniel with a supercilious aura as he walked away. "Brilliant, but that''s too cruel." Daniel shook his head in awe. However, what Daniel didn''t know was that the reason why Kevin didn''t take the initiative to deal with Cherry was because his life was once saved by Cherry''s mother. If Cherry hadn''t done so many vicious things, he would have protected her for the rest of her life. Although he didn''t love her, this man would do everything to keep his promise. In the office, soft light and soothing jazz in the room made Kevin''s exhaustion slowly fade away. Thinking of his appointment with Sam today, Kevin checked his wristwatch and read that it was three o''clock in the afternoon. He had thirty minutes to spare for some peace and quiet. But out of the blue, there was a knock on the door. "Come in." Kevin decided to deal with this one as soon as possible, so he could go out to meet Sam. But he didn''t expect that it was Sam who entered the room. "Why are you here already?" Kevin asked. "I came to see you. Are you disappointed?" Sam teased with a smile and sat down. Kevin said inscrutably, "You came early. You must have something to tell me." "You know I do." A mysterious grin shed on Sam''s face which caught Kevin off guard. "What sort of news did you bring with you?" Kevin asked. Although a lot of misunderstandings went in the way between the two, it was undeniable that they had been good friends since the old days. With or without the contention with Anne, they were pals. "A mind blowing one. Have a look," Sam yfully said before casually throwing a file bag on the table. It was thin and didn''t seem to contain anything. "What''s this all about?" Kevin narrowed his eyes and just looked at it. "Open it. You want to know why Anne has been against Cherry all this time before marrying you, right? I believe you won''t be ming her anymore after you see what''s inside," Sam said daringly. He had no intention of helping Anne, nor did he try his best to look for answers. When he visited his friend in another hospital, the person in charge of the file identally dropped it. After noticing some familiar names, he read it and secretly brought it back with him. Although it was immoral, or worse, illegal, it would have been a good thing if he were to expose the ugly truth. Kevin opened the file, only to find a piece of paper. It was a DNA test result. The name written on it was Cherry''s and another stranger''s name. ''Devin Lei?'' Kevin read in his mind. He had never heard of such a name, but it showed that their rtionship to each other was father and daughter. "What''s the meaning of this?" Kevin was puzzled. "Wasn''t Cherry Earl''s daughter? "It''s very simple. Cherry''s mother was fooling around with another man unknowingly, then gave birth to Cherry. But Earl was certainly unaware that the child was not his. He loved Cherry very much. He gave her everything she wanted. So, I guess that was the reason why Anne didn''t get along well with Cherry," Sam analyzed. However, Kevin was not to believe it so easily. "How can you be so sure this is the reason why Anne is against Cherry all along? Did she know the truth?" he asked. "Anne is ponderous, but she is also keen. She grew up with an uncle and an aunt. If she didn''t have a close rtionship with his aunt, it''s most probable that they weren''t rted. But she took care of her uncle for three years after her aunt died, until his uncle passed away." Kevin was lost in Sam''s exnation. But if that was the case, why didn''t Anne tell everyone the truth? Maybe she had her untold reasons as well. "I''ll send someone to look into this Devin Lei and see who he is." No matter how shocking the truth was, Kevin felt downhearted. Wendy was the one who save his life. He didn''t want to think ill of her now. "Well, how''s Anne and the baby doing?" asked Sam. "You seem to care about my family a lot." Kevin''s voice was passionless, but Sam knew that it was a sign of his poor frame of mind. "Kevin, you don''t care about Anne, but I do. Is there something wrong?" Sensing Kevin''s strange temper, Sam couldn''t help but defend Anne. "Who says I don''t care about her? Most people just can''t seem to feel that I do." Kevin rubbed his fingertips against his forehead in discouragement. However, Sam suddenly smiled and said, "Do you think that is the kind of caring she wants? You always pour cold water on people when their happiness goes aze. You add insult to injury when they are miserable to make your presence felt. No wonder why Anne doesn''t like to be with you." Hearing this, Kevin stood up. He pursed his lips and grabbed the cor of Sam, pushing him against the wall. Sam thought Kevin would beat him right there and then and they would have a falling-out, but he too was guilty. He might have gone too far with his words. "You mean the way I get along with her is the reason she doesn''t like me?" Kevin just had a sudden realization that he was not good at chasing women, he was totally naive about it. "Haven''t you studied abroad for a few years? I was thinking you might have learned a few advanced tricks of making friends, but I guess I''m wrong. You are far more conservative than you father." Sam frowned, but felt that it was fair. If God gave this man a high IQ, then he must have bnced it out to others by giving the man a low EQ. But Kevin interrupted his thoughts and said arrogantly, "But what can I do? I don''t chase women, it''s always them who chase after me." Sam was too angry to rebut, but what Kevin said was true. He was as smart, capable, and good- looking as he thought, no less than those shy super stars nor models. Chapter 169 Her Foul Secret Chapter 169 Her Foul Secret It was six o''clock in thete afternoon when Kevin went out to look for Cherry. It was already dark, as if rain was about to pour at any time. When the car stopped at themunity where Cherry lived, Kevin quickly informed her. A few minutes She hugged him tightly and said, "Kevin, you''re finally here! I thought you wouldn''te." Her tone sounded a bit aggrieved, but Kevin just mercilessly pushed her hand away. "Let''s go somewhere." Despite the cheerfulness that she had shown Kevin, he spoke in a cold manner and quickly got into the car. Cherry smiled lightly and also got in. She could assure that Kevin still cared about her, but what about Anne? Well, she perceived her as a joke in the Ye n and someone Kevin would never love. "Kevin, where are we going?" It was a rare opportunity for her to have an intimate moment with Kevin recently, so she took the advantage and seduced him in the car. She slightly pushed her sexy body towards him. However, Kevin seemed to dislike what she was doing. He felt disgusted towards her. He knew that it was her own kind of way to attract him with her well-defined body, which was not interesting at all. "Behave yourself if you don''t want to get out of the car!" After learning her true identity, he already had a bad impression of the Ye n. "Okay, I''ll do whatever you say." Cherry still looked at him with a smile on her face, but when she recognized the ce that they were passing by, her face suddenly turned pale, and the smile on her face fleeted. "Kevin, why are we here?" The ce was where Kevin had a car ident. Cherry began to tremble with fear. This was also the ce where her mother died. She pushed her mother under the car. She was so scared, so she hid herself immediately. When she showed up, unfortunately, her mother didn''t make it to the hospital because of her, and the scene had been cordoned off. Her mother died on the spot and she cried so hard in front Kevin. She made him believe that her mother saved him and chose to sacrifice her life for him. She did it to have his heart on purpose, so that no matter what happened, he would always remember that he owed his life to her mother and he was obliged to care for her for the rest of his life. It was a secret she kept deep in her heart. She was really scared when she revisited the ce. Her nerves were constantly on edge. After that devastating ident, she always had nightmares. Others thought that it was because she had seen her mother''s death with her own eyes, but they were all definitely wrong with what they thought of her. She frequently had nightmares because her mother kept appearing in it, asking her why she killed her. "What? You look like you''ve seen a ghost. What''s the matter?" Kevin asked and furrowed his eyebrows. His expression made her even more scared. "N-no, I''m not afraid. I just feel a little sad when I remembered what happened on this road." She was afraid that he might know something that was why he took her on this road. However, she came to think of it, what if he really knew something about the past? What would she do? The more she thought about it, the more flustered her face was. What she was thinking was definitely out of Kevin''s mind. He was thinking that she was afraid that her biological father would be exposed. This was the way to the residence of her biological father. Kevin had just known the entire information about him an hour ago. He took Cherry with him not to directly expose her, but to observe her reactions first. "Let''s go back, Kevin. I''m afraid," Cherry said anxiously. She thought that if she pretended to be pitiful, Kevin would sympathize with her. But that did not happen. He thought that she had been keeping a lot of things to herself, so he had to make a painstaking investigation to figure out what she had done. "What are you afraid of? Am I gonna hurt you?" Kevin smiled teasingly and spoke in a cold manner. "No, I''m not afraid of anything when I am with you." Cherry tried to revoke what she said earlier and spoke calmly. She was just trying to please him, but she was really terrified. When the car had passed by the same exact road where the ident happened, she gradually calmed down. She looked carefully ahead with the fear of turning back. However, it was not the end of facing her fears. Just a short momentter, the car entered a quiet alley. It was her biological father''s residence. "Kevin, what are you doing?" Her heart was almost in her mouth. She looked straight into his eyes with panic. "Nothing. I''m here to visit an old friend. Do you know him, Devin?" Kevin knew how every word he said scared the hell out of Cherry. He smiled evilly and looked into her eyes full of fear. "Devin? Who told you that? Did Anne tell you that? Devin is not my father. Don''t listen to her nonsense." In Cherry''s heart, the only person who knew this secret was Anne, so she had no one to me but her. "Really?" said Kevin in a doubtful tone. Cherry nodded immediately and said tearfully, "Yes. I don''t know where Anne heard the news. She knows that you and I are closer, so she deliberately told you such things to hurt me." She always thought that Kevin would never figure out her hypocrisy, that she was always good at lying. However, in his mind, she was the kind of woman who didn''t know her position, and he thought of her as the stupidest woman for being like that. It was not like he was more intimidated with her. It was all a joke for her to think that way. He had already understood why Anne despised her so much. It was because of her foul attitude, full of lies, a hypocrite woman indeed! As for what he was told that Anne was the one who caused the death of her uncle, maybe it was the malice of nder. He was hoping that Anne wasn''t involved in any schemes. He loved her but he chose to resist her because of how she appeared vicious in front of everyone for what she had done. These contradicting emotions were entangled in his heart, leaving his mind no peace at all. It was also the reason as to why he didn''t dare to deepen his love for Anne before. In spite of knowing that Anne might be a bad person, he still wanted to protect her. "But, Anne didn''t tell me anything. I just knew Devin at a gambling party. Do you know him?" Kevin asked and raised his eyebrows. Cherry''s face darkened immediately. She suddenly ran out of words. "No, how could I know him?" She said uneasily when she noticed the sarcasm in his smile. The atmosphere in the car became gloomier. Kevin felt nothing but hatred towards the woman beside him. She was a disgusting liar. "Then why did you say that Anne told me that Devin was your father?" Kevin asked coldly. His voice sounded so oppressive that she didn''t dare to speak. After a long time, she calmed down and continued to frame Anne up. "Because at that time, Anne said that she would have a way to tell everyone that I am not the daughter of the Ye n. If you don''t believe me, you can ask Devin and see if he colluded with Anne to frame me. If so, you must sue them both for that." On a second thought, she came up with a solution. She didn''t care about her biological father anymore. In fact, she would even like it if Kevin would help her get rid of her own father. In that case, no one would threaten her anymore. "So you think that someone is setting you up?" Kevin squinted at her. His face was calm and there was no hint of anger. "Of course someone framed me. Kevin, don''t listen to others'' words." Suddenly, Kevin''s voice became sharp. "Are you still lying at this time? Look at this." He threw the document that Sam gave him. Cherry didn''t know what the document was about. When she opened it, her eyes widened. "Kevin, are you testing me on purpose?" Cherry gnashed her teeth. She couldn''t believe that the person she had always wanted to have was capable of exposing her like this. "So what, Cherry? I have always thought that you were just like your mother. I didn''t expect that you are such a scheming and vicious woman. How dare you lie to everyone?" Kevin said, now with a hint of anger. However, Cherry didn''t take this seriously. She evenughed so loud. "I''m vicious. Yes, I am totally vicious. When I knew that Devin was my father, I almost turned crazy. I''m the daughter of the Ye n. How could I be a daughter of such a shameless man? I have always hated my mother for giving birth to me." Content rights belong to N?velDrama.Org. All of a sudden, Kevin pped her face so hard in the middle of her nonsense speaking. "That''s enough. Now that you''re here, you can go and have a talk with your drunkard father." With that, he parked the car in front of Devin''s house and pulled her out. "Who are you? Cherry, why are you here?" When Devin heard the noise outside, He angrily opened the door. He became more upset when he saw Cherry. "Where is the money I want?" He saw a graceful young man standing next to Cherry. He knew that the man beside Cherry was rich and powerful. "I don''t have any money. It''s not the right time to ask for money. I''m no longer the daughter of the Ye n and I don''t have a job. All of my family''s property has been squandered by you. What else do you want?" Cherry replied coldly. Devin red at Cherry and said, "You are so beautiful. I''m sure that you can always find men and ask them for money." Devin never recognized her as his daughter. The only thing that kept him in touch with her was the fact that she had a lot of money. Kevin didn''t want to interfere with their mess, so he turned around and was about to leave. But Cherry held his hand and said, "Kevin, I know I was wrong, but you can''t leave me here alone. I''m sure you wouldn''t want to see me die in this ce, right? I admit that I was a liar, but I don''t want to end up here. You promised my mother that you would take care of me, so please, don''t leave me, okay?" At this point in time, Kevin seemed to be frozen at ce. He didn''t say a word, as if he was thinking about something. Cherry, on the other side, was extremely nervous. She was anxious that he would leave her there. If that happened, she would be like living in hell. "Get in the car. I''ll help you for the sake of your mother for thest time," Kevin said. But then, Devin shouted at the top of his lungs, "Who are you? How dare you take my daughter away? Stay here, or I''ll sue you for taking her away." Kevin sneered and confidently said, "Just go and sue me. I''d like to see who dares to say that she is really your daughter." Chapter 170 Taking Cherry Home Chapter 170 Taking Cherry Home "Kevin, thank you. If it weren''t for you, I wouldn''t know what to do." This time, Cherry was actually being sincere. She often acted weak and frail to win over Kevin''s attention especially when Anne was around. However, this time around, she genuinely appreciated Kevin. Without him, she wouldn''t know what would happen to her. "Now you can go back by yourself," Kevin said inly. In response, Cherry shook her head and refused, "No, I don''t want to. Kevin, he already knows where I live. Considering what I said to him today, he definitely won''t let me go!" She shivered in fear at the mere thought of Devin. It was true that she hated her mother with a burning passion. That was also what drove her to push her mother which caused her death. It was her mother who had been unfaithful to her father. When she gave birth to Cherry, she did it in secret. She should have been the daughter of the Ye n. Why did her mother have to tell her the truth and let her live in the shame of being constantly threatened by Devin? "That''s none of my business." Kevin didn''t even attempt to hide his disappointment at Cherry. Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. In particr, he hated Cherry for setting him and Anne up that led to a misunderstanding between the two of them. It was ironic that the one whom he hated the most turned out to be the most innocent. "Kevin, what if something happens to me? Are you just going to stand back and watch?" Cherry said softly, sobbing. Resigned, Kevin took Cherry home. All the lights in the entire Fu Family''s Vi were turned on. Themps stretched all the way to hundreds of meters outside the gate as if they intended to greet the people who wereing homete. Upon Cherry and Kevin''s arrival at the vi, the first person they saw was Anne sitting on the sofa. It seemed as if she was drawing something. Anne looked up only to find Kevin with Cherry. To make things worse, Cherry raised her eyebrows and smiled tauntingly at Anne. Naturally, Anne was pissed off. She had told Kevin that he was free to go wherever he wanted with Cherry. However, he couldn''t bring her home. ''Is he just so eager to see her? It just has been only a few days.'' Scowling, Anne packed up her things in an attempt to leave. Kevin grabbed her by the hand and quickly said, "Anne, please listen to me." She had a sour look on her face. "What do you have to tell me? Like you said, this is your home. You can bring home whoever you want and make anyone leave. What is there to exin?" "That''s not it," Kevin said helplessly. At that moment, Cherry chimed in, "Yes, Anne. My father wanted to hurt me today. Kevin was just nice enough to save me so he took me back." Anne turned and left as soon as Cherry finished speaking. Regret filled Kevin as he red at Cherry. Then he turned to the housemaid and ordered, "Find her a room on the second floor." With that, he went to chase after Anne. Anne became even more infuriated knowing that Kevin was following her. She intended to close the door, mming it to his face. However, he reached out to block the door but was unable to as his hand was injured. When she caught sight of this, she blinked her eyes in concern. "Anne, listen to me. I didn''t bring her back to annoy you this time." It wasn''t until then that he realized how much she truly abhorred Cherry. "Sure, you weren''t trying to piss me off." A cold smile appeared on her faceced with skepticism. Just as he heaved a sigh of relief, she then said, "You''re just trying to drive me away." "I already know that Cherry isn''t your uncle''s child," Kevin said loudly. Only then did shee to her senses. Despite not knowing what was going on, she still couldn''t help but feel upset. She''d always hoped that Cherry would be exposed¡ªthat she wasn''t actually a daughter of the Ye n so that Anne''s uncle could finally rest in peace. Now it was rather useless for everyone to find out since her uncle was dead already. "Anne? Why didn''t you tell me earlier?" Kevin asked worriedly, putting his arm around her shoulder. This was the first time that she had heard him talk to her in such a tone. "Would you have believed if I told you then? You always thought I was after the money and that I was unkind to Cherry because she was a threat to our rtionship. Would it have made a difference if I told you?" she said, smiling bitterly¡ªa smile that tugged at Kevin''s heartstrings. Normally, she would be upset but she was done feeling bad for herself. She was much stronger now. No one knew how much she had struggled and suffered. Carefully studying her expression, he realized he had been wrong. "From now on, I''ll make sure that you never have to suffer anymore," he said solemnly. Unfortunately, it was already toote. He''d already disappointed her beyond repair. "I don''t care if you still have feelings for Cherry or not. I don''t care if you think you owe me or not. Just stay away from me. I hate you." "What if I want to make it up to you?" Kevin pressed. "It''s toote now, Kevin. If you still want your son to be a part of this family, don''t force me or I''ll take him away with me." This was Anne''sst trump card. In reality, he had a million ways to stop her¡ªhe just chose not to. He knew she was much tougher now and he had to be careful around her. If he forced her, he might only drive her farther away. "Well, I''ll try my best but I have to tell you that I don''t really like Cherry. Recently, I''ve been investigating into everything that had happened that year. I want to get to the bottom of this. How many secrets has Cherry hidden from me? I know you hate the Ye n and Cherry. Would you mind helping me?" Kevin asked. This time, Anne didn''t object. She too wanted to know what else Cherry had done besides the things she already knew about. "Okay." Night passed and soon, the morning sun broke out in the dawn. Anne sat in the garden, seemingly in a daze. Worried that she would catch a cold, Kevin draped a nket over her. Since she didn''t want to fight with him anymore, she merely epted his kind gesture without putting up a fight. Meanwhile, Cherry stood by the window of her room on the second floor, watching this entire scene unfold. Fury surged through her veins as she watched Kevin carefully drape a nket over Anne. He used to reserve his tenderness for her and now Anne had taken that away. Anne was actually rted to the Ye n but only Cherry carried the name as the daughter of the Ye n. In contrary, Cherry was the one who wasn''t actually a member of the Ye n. This was precisely the reason why Cherry targeted Anne. "Why? Are you not happy?" Kevin asked thoughtfully, studying the expression on her face. It was true that he cared about Anne deeply. He had just been in denial for so long in fear that he would fall for her further. "No, Kevin. If you can leave me alone, I''ll be happier," Anne spat. She knew that he was indifferent to her before because of all the evidence against her. Everyone thought she was a bad person. But if he really cared about her, shouldn''t he be believing her over what other people said? "I know you''re probably ming me. I''ll ask my mother and grandpa toe over one of these days and I''ll tell them that you didn''t do anything wrong. I''m sure they''ll ept you. Then you can stay in the Fu Family permanently." More than anything, he wanted to marry Anne again and make her the happiest bride in the world. An ironic smile yed at the corners of Anne''s mouth. "Don''t you think you''re being a hypocrite? I couldn''t care less about staying in the Fu Family or not. I don''t love you so I don''t care." Her words felt like sharp knives stabbing into Kevin''s heart, crushing his pride. While this hurt, he chose not to me her. He understood how much he must have hurt her in the past. "It doesn''t matter whether or not you care. But I don''t like owing anyone anything. As long as you''re still in the Fu Family, I''ll do my best to make it up to you," Kevin said coolly. Anne''s cold heart suddenly softened. She didn''t care aboutpensation. Some wounds just ran too deep to heal even if there waspensation. He had always held a special ce in her heart but he had just hurt her too much that she felt as if her heart was long dead. This wasn''t how she wanted things to be. All it took was for Kevin to show her love and affection and her heart would spring back to life. ''Anne, it seems you forget about all the pain and suffering you experienced just because you''ve recovered,'' she cursed herself inwardly. Selma arrived before noon. She had with her bags of toys, clothes, and milk for the baby. If anything, she didn''t look like the mother of the CEO of the AN Group but just a regr old grandmother who loved her grandson. "Auntie," Cherry greeted, seemingly embarrassed. She wanted to avoid Selma especially that Selma had already kicked her outst time. However, Cherry didn''t want to be impolite lest Selma get even angrier with her. With a straight face, Selma asked Kevin, "What is she doing here? She might hurt my grandson." As much as she didn''t like Anne, she loved her grandson too much. As a result, she hated Cherry eve more. "Mom, I''ll exin it to youter tonight," Kevin said inly. That night, everything about Cherry and all the evil things she had done was going to be divulged. He was going to find out everything that Cherry had done and expose her for who she truly was. Consequently, he would be able to portray Anne in a better light. "I don''t care. I just want you to stop messing around with Cherry. You should be treating my grandson well. You haven''t even given him a name. How could you call yourself a father?" Chapter 171 The Truth Of The Car Accident Chapter 171 The Truth Of The Car ident Kevin didn''t know what to say when he heard Selma''s question. He spoke with a slight irritation in his tone. "Mom, I didn''t ask you toe here to quarrel. What if you scare the baby?" Selma realized what he meant. She nodded and said, "Well, you know what kind of person Cherry is. She mistreated the child. It''s not easy for our family to have the baby." She just shook her head in dismay and walked to the baby''s room. Cherry was embarrassed to witness the scene in front of her. She regretted what she had done. Selma seemed to have lost all the good impressions she had on her. Her slender hands were crossed and her expression was pitiful. Anne just walked over coldly and Anne didn''t want to see nor hear from Kevin today, so she also walked past him and disregarded his presence. Kevin felt frustrated when he saw the coldness in her face. He had no choice but to wait for Sam to bring the materials to him. It was about three o'' clock in the afternoon. Kevin seemed to have lost his status at home and almost no one paid attention to him. Cherry was there who always wanted to talk to him, but she was afraid to "Kevin, are you isted?" Sam saw that Kevin was sitting alone at the sofa and reading some documents, as soon as he arrived. When Selma came over, she treated Kevin like a mere decoration in the house. His arrival saved the presence of Kevin from beingpletely disregarded. "Did you find anything?" He was worried the most about Anne. He didn''t want her to be unhappy but things always went against his wishes. "Of course. You wouldn''t believe what I found. You didn''t really know the true colors of Cherry. You even have no idea on how many bad things she has done!" Sam said with a hint of disgust towards Cherry. He gritted his teeth and clenched his fists in anger. He took out a thick pile of documents and a USB sh disk and put them on the table. "Cherry definitely set all of these ording to n. You see, from framing Anne, to bribing others to embarrass her, we can say that she is really a scheming and vicious woman!" Kevin frowned. He got furious when he looked over the documents that Sam gave him. He felt pity towards Anne. And at the same time he was so pissed off with the fact that she always remained silent and let others treat her like a doormat. "But what we got is far from enough. Cherry is shameless and I''m very sure that she will never admit that she''s wrong," Kevin said and sighed heavily. Cherry was good at bewitching people with words. She was a total hypocrite who always wanted to fool people and manipte them to whatever extent. Finally, Kevin had a deep understanding of the tricks she always had. "It doesn''t matter. More importantly, just y the video in the USB sh disk," Sam said with full courage to take Cherry down. Just as Kevin was about to y it, he stopped him and said, "Wait a minute." He couldn''t help but feel irritated, but he felt the need to obey him. He was sure that this was the time when he felt himself the most obedient. "What else?" Kevin asked in a discontented tone. He never expected that Sam was so annoying. He was just as overcautious and indecisive as a woman. "It''s such an important scene. Let everyone see it, and discuss what decision toe up with right after," Sam said with a gloomy face. He thought that somehow, smart people could also tend to be stupid sometimes. Kevin nodded. The maid already knew what he meant and immediately called the attention of everyone. A few minutester, everyone came at the living room. Selma raised her eyebrows and spoke with dissatisfaction. "Kevin, what the hell are you doing?" "You will knowter." Kevin just smiled lightly and spoke in a cold manner. Sam yed the video. It had clearly shown the ce where Kevin had a car ident. When Anne and Cherry recognized the ce, their faces suddenly turned pale. Cherry was the most nervous one in the room. She was at the verge of copsing, as if she was about to die. This was the most dangerous and risky moment of her life. Anne believed that the question she always had in her mind would finally be given answers. Until now, she still couldn''t understand why Kevin disappeared that day just after she called a doctor. On the second day, it was said that Wendy had saved him. But, it was aplicated puzzle to solve the question, what happened after she left to call the doctor? It was the first time that Kevin had recalled what happened in the ident through the video. He saw that Anne was the first one to appear in it. She seemed to be frightened when she saw Kevin, but she quickly pulled him aside to check on his vital signs despite having her hand injured. She fumbled in her pocket, but didn''t find her cell phone to call the emergency hotline. She had no choice but to go to other ces to call for help. Anne didn''t feel strange when she saw the first part of the video, but what happened next was totally out of her expectation. Not long after the previous scene, Cherry and her mother appeared. They seemed to be in an argument. Atst, Cherry knocked the documents out of Wendy''s hands. Just then, a car came quickly and she saw a person lying unconsciously from a distance. However, the ce was too remote and only a few people were passing by. Cherry pushed Wendy to the middle of the road with a wicked smile on her face. There was a fast approaching car behind her which didn''t managed to stop and hit her badly. The impact of the car made hernd two meters away from Kevin. "Well, it turned out that your mother didn''t die for saving me, but because of you!" Kevin was overly infuriated with what he saw. Cherry had no words to say. Her hands were trembling and her eyes were full of anxiety. Now that Anne had already understood everything, she couldn''t imagine how disgusting the woman beside her was, that she even killed her own mother. Nevertheless, she continued watching the video. After that gut-wrenching scene, Cherry seemed to be a little scared so she hid herself. A short moment "I¡­" Cherry ran out of a solution to cover herself up. She was unable to defend herself, because everyone in the room had clearly saw the truth. What happened to her mother that day was a nightmare that woulde to trouble her every once in a while. Although she sometimes regretted what she had done, she felt that she just did it for a greater purpose, especially when she gained Kevin''s love and affection. It was worth it after all. She told herself that she shouldn''t feel guilty. Besides, it was her mother who taught her to fight for whatever she wanted, no matter what it took. "Cherry, you are unbelievable! How could you hurt your mother like that? You are undeniably vicious!" Selma was startled by the scene when Cherry pushed her mother to death. She was a bit scared of this woman. She couldn''t imagine the consequences if this woman had hurt her or her son. She was full of fear for this hypocrite woman who pretended to be gentle and soft all the time. "So what?" Cherry smiled sweetly. She pulled off the USB sh disk and broke it. "Now, the evidence is gone. None of you can use of me of anything," she said in an insidious tone. "Cherry, don''t think of us as fools. The reason why I got the nerve to watch this with you is that I already fixed things ording to n, and I have backed up all the evidence to let you rot in jail." Sam smiled mockingly. The confident look on his face made Cherry lose the only hope she had in her heart. "As you can see, it was Anne who saved Kevin and Cherry was the one who killed her mother. She made us all believe that her mother saved Kevin. What a terrible woman, isn''t she?" He deliberately said every word loudly to make everyone see that Anne was the one who should get credit for saving Copyright by N?v/elDrama.Org. Kevin. At this time, everyone realized that Cherry was the most dangerous person they had to deal with every single day. How could they admire such person and hate the truly angelic one which was Anne. Cherry seemed not so contented with what she had done to her mother and even tried to hurt Anne''s child as well. Selma looked at Cherry with so much disappointment. She never knew that she happened to admire a snake for a long time. "Cherry, you''re really good at camouge. Fortunately, everything was revealed before we even ept you in the Fu Family. From now on, I don''t want to see your face in our house, or I will rip you into pieces whenever I see you!" Cherry now had nothing to say to defend herself. She just med herself for not hiding so well and leaving traces for them to find out the truth. "I won''t show up in front of you in the future. Please, just let me go. I don''t want to be with you anymore, Kevin, even though being with you was the main reason as to why I did it all." She was even a little proud when she said these things in front of everyone, as if she didn''t realize her mistake at all. "Cherry, you are too naive if you think that you can get away just like that," Sam sneered at her. "Cherry did such a cruel thing because she is heartless. If we let her go this time, it''s possible that she might just hurt other people too. She deserves to be imprisoned. She actually deserves worse than that," he added. Everyone in the room agreed with him. These things made Kevin sigh in relief. It was Anne who saved her. He felt a little guilty with the thought. "Yes, you better put her in jail. I can''t stand to see that shameless, deplorable woman in my house any longer." Selma spoke with hatred. "Okay." Kevin had made up his mind, but Cherry tried to plead once more. "Kevin, I''ll change. I''ll definitely change. Please don''t put me in jail, okay?" Cherry knelt on the ground and begged him, but no one dared to sympathize. A momentter, the police came. They took the strong evidences with them and arrested Cherry. After that, everyone in the room was relieved. "It''s so scary, isn''t it? How could the Ye n''s daughter be that murderous?" Selma said with a hint of fear in her eyes. Selma still held a grudge against the Ye n''s daughter. Suddenly, Anne spoke up. "She is not the true Ye n''s daughter. She was just the child of Wendy with another man. The true Yes wouldn''t do such a shameless thing." It was all clear to Selma now. The one who really had bad intentions since then was Cherry. She used to hate Anne, but now that she had proved that she was a good person, the hatred in her heart subsided. "Well, it seems that you haven''t done anything bad. I am now allowing you to stay with Kevin. After all, you two have a child. It''s good for the baby to have aplete family," Selma said considerately and then left. Anne never expected that Selma would ept her in their family. It was never in her mind at all. Although the misunderstandings between her and Kevin were already settled, she still felt a little pain in her heart. However, she tried her best to hold back her temper. "Thank you, Sam. If it weren''t for you, no one would have known Cherry''s true colors," Anne said. She appreciated everything that Sam had done for her. He was truly a good friend. "It was nothing. Remember to invite me to a meal. I''ll go back first." Sam simply smiled at her and looked at Kevin. Afterwards, he already left the house. Anne and Kevin were the only ones that were left in the vi. "I didn''t expect that it was you who saved me." Kevin was about to hug her, but she took a step back andpletely refused. "Kevin, don''t change the way you are to me too much. I can''t ept it. I know you want to thank me, but you can just do it in your heart. Don''t touch me. I will feel awkward," she said in an indifferent tone and went back to her room to have a rest. Chapter 172 His Enthusiasm Chapter 172 His Enthusiasm Although Kevin was mncholic, he was merry deep down in his heart. It took a lot of ups and downs for him to understand how worthwhile Anne was. Today, even though Anne refused him, he was determined because he wanted to win the woman he loved. If all else failed, hisst resort would be to overindulge her until she agreed. As the night fell into darkness, Kevin couldn''t help but smile, because he couldn''t get a hold of his enthusiasm when he envisioned the peaceful and happy life with Anne in the future. However, the person that went running in his mind had already fallen asleep. The next morning, the clock ticked eight. Anne was awakened by the ring sunshine. The sun had risen very high outside, illuminating the room with silhouettes and making it as warm as a cup of coffee. She looked at her watch and felt a sense of peculiarity. The baby didn''t cry today, and the nanny didn''t knock at the door. She put on her slippers and went out. In the living room, she saw Kevin holding the baby and feeding him with a milk bottle. His gentle expression looked like a loving father at first sight. As she saw this, a sudden smile appeared on her face. Did Kevin really change? But that didn''t matter to her. She only cared about the baby''s contentment and welfare in the future. "Come and have breakfast," Kevin invited. It was not until then that Anne noticed the prepared breakfast on the table, which were toasted slices of bread, hot milk, and rice porridge warming up in the electric rice cooker. But they all looked unappetizing. "Did you cook these?" pointing at the bread, Anne asked. "Yes, how did you know?" Kevin was delighted. Did Anne pay attention to him all the time and that was why she could distinguish what he cooked? However, Kevin''s happiness onlysted until Anne spoke. "That''s because what you have done looks awful." She was right. The nanny couldn''t have made such an unappetizing breakfast. Kevin''s face suddenly became red as he felt embarrassed. The nanny beside him tittered and said, "When I was cooking today, Mr. Kevin said that he wanted to cook by himself. It was very thoughtful of him to take the initiative to cook, so I let him be." With some realization, it suddenly urred to Anne that when Kevin cooked for her for the first time, she was exhrated by the romantic experience. She thought that Kevin had feelings for her, butter she found it was not the case at all. "I¡¯m sure looks can be deceiving." Anne nodded and picked one up. She took a bite and frowned. Sure enough, it tasted as bad as she thought. It was clear that cooking wasn¡¯t Kevin¡¯s forte. He even burnt the toast like a nk of wood. "Why are you here anyway? Aren¡¯t you needed at work?" Anne asked curiously. However, Kevin was calm and said, "It''s getting cold recently, so I postponed the work for half an hour. There''s no need to be in a hurry." Anne looked at the clock and said, "It¡¯s already eight twenty. You still have forty minutes left, but I think you should go as soon as possible." "Actually, it''s no big deal if I skip the day," Kevin hinted in a gentle voice. However, Anne had already taken the baby to the nursery, where the sound of her luby and the baby¡¯s adorable cooing could be heard from time to time. After finishing his words, Kevin smiled faintly and then went to work. In the AN Group building. Everyone was buried in their work when they suddenly heard a car pull over just now. From behind a row of green nts, Daniel raised his head to see who it was. He felt that someone was going to be unlucky, but it was Kevin he saw. "He just arrived?" Daniel was stunned and said incredulously. But it was true. He had nevere sote. "What are you looking at? Aren¡¯t you all busy with something?" Kevin''s beaming face suddenly turned cold, and everyone shivered. "Work hard, or your sry will take the blow from your cking off." After saying that, Daniel followed Kevin upstairs. When Kevin arrived at his office, he went straight to his chair, sat down, and opened the document ced on his table. He examined the room''s interior, feeling that the surroundings were boringly empty and deste. Except for the grey curtains, there was a ck table, his seat, and the stillness in the air. Kevin furrowed his brows. "Where are the sulent nts here?" Kevin asked. "I moved them out," Daniel answered. Kevin''s face darkened. "Who told you to move them out? Put them back here." His imperative tone made Daniel panic. "Okay, I will do it right away." Daniel walked out quickly. When he went out, he was so distressed that he wanted to ram his head into the brick wall. He curled his lips and seemed to be about to cry. "Have I offended the president recently?" he whispered. Considering his loyalty and dedication, he shouldn¡¯t worry a dime. He had always been obedient to his boss. How could he offend Kevin? Although he felt wronged, Daniel still moved severalrge sulent nts back into Kevin''s office. The door of the office was temporarily open. When he saw the faint smile on Kevin''s face, he was very confused. Did the president encounter something happy? Did he win the lottery? At the thought of this, Daniel pped himself hard in the head. The president was ridiculously rich himself. Why would he need to win a lottery? "Mr. Kevin, here are the sulent nts you requested." Daniel put the nts into the office with a careful smile on his face. "Okay, just leave them there." Kevin continued to read the document, but his tone was softer. This made Daniel intrigued, but he knew that Kevin was moody, so he was not surprised. "Mr. Kevin, I''ve finished my tasks. If there''s nothing else, I''ll go ahead." As he spoke, Daniel was about to run away, but Kevin snapped his fingers and closed the document. "Wait a minute. Book two tickets for me," said Kevin. "Right away. Are you going to negotiate with SUN Company in Europe? Isn''t it too early to book now? The meeting is scheduled to happen in two weeks," Daniel said. Kevin smiled. "No, I am going to Maldives." Daniel''s eyes widened and his mouth was wide open. It took him a moment toe back to his senses. He said in awe, "Okay, of course, I''ll book the tickets right away." In the QS Group building. The style of the meeting room was simple, but it gave people a sense of ease. Anne sat by the window, supporting her chin with her hand. It was a beautiful sight to behold and it seemed as if she was integrated with the scenery outside the clear ss. "Hello, Miss Anne." The man reached out his hand to Anne with a smile. "Are you Mr. Trey?" Anne asked politely. The man didn''t say anything. He just raised his eyebrows and looked very gentle. It could be seen that he was very kind. "This is my new design. Please have a look." With a confident smile on her face, Anne unfolded her design paper. "The design here uses break auger. It is not outstanding, but it gives people a subtle sense of luxury. And the reason why the design of this piece is in such a shape is not just for aesthetic, but also because it makes the ring appear light and not bulky, suitable for the modern youth who are trying to keep it simple." Anne spoke out her thoughts and gained Trey Mu''s approval. "Miss Anne, can I ask you a personal question?" Trey Mu smiled gently and asked courteously. Lowering her eyes, Anne didn''t know what part about her design unsatisfied Trey Mu, but she still said, "You can ask as long as you want." "It''s known to all that you are the former wife of Kevin, the CEO of AN Group. Now even if you are not a couple, you have a deep rtionship with each other. So, I want to know why you want to sell your design to ourpany." This made Trey Mu very curious. Sure enough, everyone asked the same questions in their heads. Anne just gave a charming smile and said, "Mr. Trey, the rumor is facious. I did marry the president of AN Group, but we divorced after some time. Now, the only reason we are still in touch with each other is that Kevin and I have a child." Hearing that, Trey Mu frowned. "Since you are the mother of the child, the present of the AN Group should treat you well with an abundance of support. Why do you still want to work outside to design?" This was the question Trey Mu was most curious. With a calm smile, Anne said, "That''s different. Although I do have a rtionship with Kevin, I can''t depend on him. What''s prouder than relying on my own ability to live in this world?" When Anne spoke, she didn''t feel ufortable at all. Instead, she looked calm andposed, which surprised Trey Mu. "Miss Anne, I appreciate you very much. Your design is also very satisfactory to me. This design will be temporarily adopted by us, but if there is anything that needs to be improved in the future, please cooperate with us." Trey Mu smiled from the bottom of his heart. "Yes, it''s for sure. Thank you, Mr. Trey," said Anne. "You don''t need to thank me. You are recognized by me on your own prowess. Miss Anne, nice to meet you," said Trey Mu. The two of them had amon view on this, so their conversation went very well. After the meeting, the smile at the corners of Anne''s mouth was dazzling. Her efforts had finally gained something. Even without Kevin in the future, she could manage to support the baby by herself. It was already three o''clock in the afternoon when Anne came back home. It was a nice warm, sunny day. The temperature was not scorching. Anne got out of the taxi and walked briskly on the path to the door, but the gleam on her face did not decrease. She pushed the door open and walked in. She saw the babysitter pushing the stroller and lowering the gauze in front of the baby''s stroller to block the sunshine, and the baby was giggling in the stroller. Anne was in a better mood. "Is my baby behaving well today?" asked Anne. Seeing her baby growing up day by day, she was very proud as a mother. Who wouldn''t be pleased to see their child be healthy? "The baby is very obedient today. He has eaten a little more than before. It seems that he is getting taller." The nanny also loved this cute child. "Well, take good care of him. I have something to do. I''ll take care of him for you when you are going to prepare supper," Anne touched the rosy cheek of the baby and said with a smile. "Okay," the nanny said. After getting the nanny''s reply, Anne went straight to her bedroom and continued to modify her ring design. Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. She refashioned the design deliberately and forgot to keep track of the time. It was indeed very difficult to decide alterations to a design. After she finished it, she felt worn out and sore all over her body. When she looked at the watch, she realized it was half past six. "Oh, no! The nanny must have been waiting for a long time." Anne immediately put on her slippers and walked out. She went downstairs and couldn''t seem to reckon their whereabouts. She looked everywhere, but it had been quite a while and they were nowhere to be found. Chapter 173 Maldives Chapter 173 Maldives Anne already checked on every room to look for her baby. She went to her child''s room, the balcony, the living room, and even to Kevin''s room, but she still couldn''t find him. When she heard the sound of running water in the kitchen, she thought that the nanny was there. "Maybe the nanny saw that I didn''te out, so she took the baby to the kitchen," she murmured to herself and let out a sigh of relief. However, when she arrived at the kitchen, she didn''t see the baby. The only one who was in the kitchen was the nanny. "Where is the baby?" Anne asked with a hint of anxiety in her tone. At this time, she had caught the nanny''s attention. When the nanny saw her, she was a little surprised. "The baby was taken away by Mr. Kevin. Didn''t he tell you?" The nanny was flustered when she knew that Anne didn''t know where her baby was. She thought that Kevin had already told her about taking the baby with him so she felt just fine with it. "No. Wait a minute. I''ll call him." Anne felt the urge to confront Kevin through a phone call to ask why he took the baby away. "You don''t have to call me. I''m back." Just when she was about to dial his number, a familiar voice was heard in the kitchen. She immediately turned around when she recognized that it was Kevin who just came. However, to her surprise, there was no baby in his arms. "Kevin, where have you taken the baby? Why didn''t you tell me about it?" she frowned and asked in a reproachful tone. "His grandmother just misses him, so I took him away with me. I will let him stay there for a few days and fetch him after." Kevin smiled lightly trying to calm Anne down. But, his words only made her more worried. "Then, you should have discussed it with me. As the mother of the baby, don''t I have the right to know where my baby is going?" She vented all her anger on Kevin. He was a bit stunned to hear her like this. She sounded so much worried that she couldn''t help but feel irritated. "I''m sorry, but the baby will be fine. My mom likes him so much." Kevin patted her shoulder and However, Anne seemed not in the mood to appreciate hisfort. She turned her body away from him and he missed her shoulder when he was about to pat on it again. "Okay, I''m going to bed," she said shortly and averted her eyes coldly. She just wanted to go back and have a rest. All of a sudden, the nanny spoke. "But the dinner is almost ready." "No, thanks. I''m not hungry. I''ll be fine after a rest." After saying that, Anne quickly went back to her room. "Don''t mind her." Kevin turned his eyes to the nanny and spoke indifferently. The nanny thought that he was angry with how Anne treated him earlier, but in fact, he was not. He had a n up his sleeve and he knew that she would feel sick if she flew by air. He noticed it when he traveled with her by nest time. He took out a small bottle of perfume from his pocket. It was purple with many patterns carved on the delicate ss lid. He bought it for her. At first, he hesitated to open the door of her room. After a moment, he went straight in without knocking at the door. Anne shouted in surprise, "Kevin, can you knock the door before youe in?" She was obviously upset, especially now that she was disturbed when she was about to fall asleep. It made her feel worse. If this happened before, Kevin would surely get angry towards her. He didn''t like his efforts to be wasted. He thought that she was too stubborn for him to love. But it was different now, he was patient and he loved her even more every time he saw her pissed-off-look. She was like a kitten that showed its teeth and waved its ws, but he preferred her like this. He admired her truthfulness in being herself. "It seems that you can''t sleep well," Kevin said calmly. He really hadpletely changed his attitude towards her. But she was so irritated and just rolled her eyes at him. Of course she couldn''t sleep well. How could she have a good sleep after being disturbed by him just now? She seldom slept well when he was around. She was secretly cursing him in her heart. Suddenly, she saw him take out a small bottle from his pocket and sprayed it into her room. She smelled a pleasant fragrance in the room, which made her calm down a little. "What''s this?" Anne asked curiously. "It''s a perfume that helps you have a good sleep," Kevin said and smiled gently. Anne couldn''t believe that there was such kind of perfume that put one''s mind at ease. Suspicion was traced all over her face. Kevin just smiled and put the perfume on the headboard. "You must try it, but don''t sleep like a log." He smirked at her, which made her startled. After that, he went out and she quickly closed the door. She went back on her bed and was about to sleep with the quilt in her arms. The fragrance of the perfume was truly pleasant. Anne felt much more rxed and fell asleep unconsciously. She was sleeping until about ten o''clock at night. When she woke up, her eyes widened. She was surrounded by neat and clean seats, and French windows. The beautiful starry night could be clearly seen outside. What surprised her more was when she found herself in Kevin''s arms. She tried to escape his arms but he didn''t let her go. "Why did you bring me here?" She raised her eyebrows and gave him an unfriendly look. "As you can see, we will go abroad," Kevin answered briefly. But his words only made her frown. What on earth was happening with him? Why did he suddenly take her without permission? And how could he hold her just like that? "Why are we going abroad? Kevin, it''s not right for you to take me out like this. I want to go back." Kevin held her tighter as she struggled to break free. He seemed to be unusual this past few days. He grinned at her and said, "I did ask for your opinion before we came here." Anne blinked her eyes and spoke. "Nonsense. Why didn''t I know anything when you asked for my opinion?" "I said it directly to your ear that if you didn''t want to travel, you could wake up. But you haven''t," Kevin said and smiled teasingly. In fact, he was not making sense at all. If he told her that it was a trip, she wouldn''t definitelye with him. So he took her out carefully. "You sprayed the perfume on purpose, didn''t you?" He was really a crazy man. Anne felt infuriated and her cheeks bulged up. She wanted to push him down and kick him so hard, but his eyes seemed to be fixated on her while she was acting so cute in his sight. "That''s a gift for you. Did you like it?" Kevin stroked her hair slowly. He felt really triumphant when his n turned out sessful. God knew how hard it was for him to subdue a stubborn woman like her. "No," Anne said frankly. But she regretted what she just said. What made her refuse in such a blunt manner? She was like a teenager who was ying hard to get in front of him. "I don''t want to travel. Kevin, I want to go back." This time, she spoke calmly and lowered her eyes. "But I have to go. What should I do?" Kevin pinched her nose. Anne didn''t want to be treated like this. She was no longer a teenager. How could a strong woman like her hide in others'' arms like a little girl? "Then put me down. I''ll go back myself," said Anne in a loud voice and looked at him sharply. Kevin put her on the ground, but she felt her feet cold. It turned out that Kevin didn''t bring shoes for her when he took her out. "Kevin, are you serious about taking me out with no shoes on my feet? How cruel you are!" Anne just thought that it was just a part if his stupid show. She stared at him with her fiery eyes, as if she was about to unleash the anger inside her. "I forgot to bring them with me. I''m sorry. I said I would carry you. Why do you insist toe down?" He picked her up again and was about to get on the ne. Anne spoke stoically. "Even if I don''t wear shoes, I have to go back. Put me down quickly." No matter how many times she insisted to go back, there was no way for her to do so. The two of them had arrived at the boarding gate. Kevin already had teased her enough. He enjoyed staring at her murderous look, because he found it cute. He suddenly leaned on her and pressed his lips on to hers. Anne''s eyes widened. How could he do this? When their lips touched, it was as if she got an electric shock, and her body was activated all throughout. When they arrived at the cabin, she heard everyone''sughter. It seemed that Kevin must have attracted their attention. She was too embarrassed to say another word, so she just nestled moment. "The ne takes off now. Have a nice trip." After the broadcast, Anne felt the ne take off. She just stared at the beautiful sky in the night. Her eyes dazzled when she looked at how the stars and the moon brightened up the night. She deliberately avoided looking at Kevin, because she was afraid that he would see the amusement in her. In fact, when he had kissed her earlier, she felt so good. Her mind seemed to have always contradicted with her heart. No matter how many times he had hurt her, she still couldn''t help but like him. It was actually difficult for her to control. Due to the mess she had been into, she looked somehow untidy. Kevin, on the other side, felt relieved, because atst there was really no turning back for Anne. It was already in the middle of the night. Some of the passengers had fallen asleep. Anne shifted her eyes from the window and caught Kevin looking at her. "Where are we going?" she asked with a hint of uneasiness in his tone. "Maldives," Kevin turned his head to him and said unnaturally. In fact, he was usually busy with work and he had never been to Maldives. He just heard that it was a perfect ce to visit and most girls wanted to go there, so he thought that Anne wouldn''t hate it at least. Anne felt restless when she knew the ce where they were going. She didn''t expect that Kevin would take her there. It was actually true that every girl wanted to go there. She also dreamt of it when she was a child. Well, it was ultimately a beautiful ce to visit, and to find oneself. How she had hoped that she could go there with her Mr. Right then! But now, she didn''t want to go there at all. She felt that it carried the hope of her youth. She felt nothing but sadness in their entire trip. She was pleased with the fact that Kevin was really good to her now. It softened her heart a bit receiving the kindness he had shown, regardless whether he did it to make up to her or merely for the sake of the kid. Anne had mastered to adapt to other people''s indifference towards her. Now that she had another person by her side, she felt a little afraid that she might be used to his presence and forget how strong she had been in dealing with vicious people. She didn''t want to be so dependent on others. ''Anne, you''re so ridiculous!'' she said to herself and shook his head slightly. She couldn''t look into Kevin''s eyes, so she just pretended to be sleepy, butter on, she really fell Content rights belong to N?velDrama.Org. asleep. Kevin stared at her angelic face. His eyes swept across the dark sky. He realized how much he loved her. He was lost in thought as the affection in his eyes deepened. Chapter 174 In The Hotel Chapter 174 In The Hotel It was early in the morning when the ne arrived in Maldives. Kevin had been watching over the sleeping Anne for almost nine hours. He ignored the faint, dark circles that were formed under his eyes because he couldn''t get enough of looking at her throughout the night. "Here''s your luggage, sir. We have arrived at our destination. Please wake up your wife," the stewardess reminded courteously. The man waved his hand and said, "It''s alright. Just put that here first." The suitcase was only filled with her necessities that he could afford to buy again. She slept so soundly beside him so he took his time and admired her sleeping figure. "Noted, sir. You are really good to your wife. Have a good trip!" The woman continued to sleep even after they had arrived at the hotel. Content rights belong to N?velDrama.Org. Kevin carried her to their room and carefully covered her with a nket. Once he put her down, he looked past the window. The night-view of Maldives was breath-taking, and the city lights gave their room a romantic atmosphere. It was too bad that the woman was still asleep. After a while, she kicked the nket subconsciously and exposed her fair skin in the process. It seemed like she felt warm under the thin covering. Kevin smiled at her antics and kissed her forehead gently. Without her usual temper and stubbornness, she was very lovely. It was already seven o''clock in the morning when she woke up. Her mind went haywire when she saw Kevin under the quilt in a bathrobe. Her dress was also in a mess. She woke him up and asked, "Kevin, what did you do to me?" She hid her body under his confused gaze. He creased his forehead at how she greeted his morning. She looked adorable as she hid under the nket. Her cheeks were tinted red out of anger after her rest was interrupted. The strap of her dress fell off her shoulder, revealing her fair skin. She didn''t look like a mother who had just given birth at all. She was just a young girl. The man swallowed inaudibly at the sight of her. "How can you be so sure that I did something to you?" he asked. He approached her with a sly smile on his face as the woman slowly backed away from him. "You didn''t?" She gave him a skeptical look. As he saw her frustrated face, his smile grew wider. "It turns out that you like me so much that you''ve been expecting me to do something to you. Shall I fulfill your wish?" He asked suggestively. Anne frowned and backed away further. "No." She squeaked when she reached the edge of the bed. She almost fell but Kevin was agile enough and managed to catch her in time. She opened her eyes when her back didn''te in contact with the floor and found his face undeniably close to hers. There was a spark between them, the kind of spark that even strangers of the opposite sex wouldn''t be able to ignore. What was more, they already had a child together, and Kevin wasn''t that annoying now. She closed her eyes tightly but she made up her mind that she would kick him if he decided to do something to her. She opened her eyes when she felt him release her to the bed gently. She frowned at the man who sat on the chair opposite their bed. "I won''t do anything to you right now because you have to go out and enjoy our little escapade," he said affectionately. "But if you really want to, I''ll satisfy you when wee back." His cocky expression made her annoyed so she rolled her eyes at him. "Where are my clothes?" she asked after she nced at the wrinkled dress she had on. "Here!" He threw her a suitcase. "Choose what you want to wear." She opened the suitcase and found all kinds of attires she never had. There were beach dresses, retro slippers, and even undergarments. She was almost sure that these were not her clothes because they were all branded. ''Did he buy all of these for me?'' "These are not my clothes," she said. She frowned at the expensive garments in the suitcase. Her rtionship with Kevin wasplicated and thest thing she wanted was for her to owe him too much. "You don''t like them?" He frowned. "I''ll just buy you different ones." He didn''t know what kind of clothes women preferred. All he did was take out the most expensive garments from exclusive stores. His woman deserved the best after all. "No, no. Just return these, Kevin." She didn''t want to pay for all these expensive clothes Even though she was also a daughter of the Ye n nominally, her life was not luxurious. "Why should I return them? Just throw them away then we can buy you new ones," he answered. "That''s not what I mean." She sighed at his way of wasting money. "I like them all," she resigned. Her face showed no emotion but deep inside, she wanted to beat him to death. She nced at the suitcase once again and chose a white, long beach dress with a simple design and a pair of sandals. She stood up to change but it seemed like this hotel was meant to please young couple. If not, why would everything look transparent? She frowned and covered her eyes out of embarrassment. "Kevin, can you go out for a bit?" she asked. "Why do I have to go out?" She gritted her teeth at his attempt to act innocent. She red at him and went to the bathroom. She heaved a relieved sigh when the ss in the bathroom was notpletely transparent. Without further ado, she began to undress. Kevin nced at her faint silhouette from time to time. Although she had a petite body, her proportion was perfect. He looked at her silently and motionlessly, afraid to make any sound that would disturb her. He stared at her in astonishment when she came out of the bathroom. He was surprised because he was so used to seeing her wear mature clothes. She usually wore dark-colored ones since she preferred to be intimidating. It was the first time that he had seen her in a light-colored dress. He thought that she actually looked prettier in light-colored clothes, since they matched her skin well. The ankle-length dress hugged her body perfectly and showed her curves softly. Her bare feet on the wooden floor looked so small that the toes came out as cute. Kevin was amazed at how beautiful she was. "Before we go, I think you should change your clothes first." She frowned at his suit. It would look out- of-ce and he would die under the scorching heat of Maldives. "Do I have to change?" he asked innocently. He didn''t know anything about the ce. He chose this ce because he found out that women loved it here. She opened his luggage and finally found only three pieces of men''s clothing. "You can wear this." She chose a shirt and waved it in front of him. Kevin frowned at the shirt on her hand. "I won''t wear that," he refused adamantly. How could he wear such a shirt with a cartoon design? A smile appeared on Anne''s face as she imagined him in this type of shirt. She looked around again and found a in shirt with a casual trouser. "You can change into this if you don''t like that one." She pointed at the cartoon-printed shirt. It was rare for her to talk to him kindly but he quickly ruined that with his banter. "Do you want me to change inside so that you can ogle at me as you please?" His arrogant voice resonated in the room. Anne frowned at his cockiness. "What''s so good about you? Besides, you can''t see anything through the ss." "Too bad because I saw you clearly when you changed your clothes. You have a nice figure, by the way," he teased. She clenched her fists but he quickly wrapped his hands around them. "Are you embarrassed? You don''t have to be because I''ve seen your body too many times," he said mischievously and quickly ran into the bathroom to change his clothes. Flustered, she found it hard to deal with an affectionate Kevin. She preferred the cold one who hated her. Still, she couldn''t help but smile whenever she thought of him. She was pulled out of her trance when the doorbell rang. She opened the door and saw a beautiful woman outside. "This is specially designed for couples in the hotel." She handed out a gift and Anne quickly took it. She wasn''t aware that there was such a freebie in the hotel. When Kevin came out, she handed it to him. "This is yours," she said. Since he was the one who booked the hotel, everything belonged to him. His expression turned strange after he unwrapped the present. "Do you really want it so bad?" Confused at his question, she walked toward him and saw three boxes of condoms. "Don''t misunderstand, Kevin. I didn''t buy those. The hotel gave them to us." Heughed at her defensiveness. He wanted Anne to warm up to him and that was why he brought her here. He was willing to do anything because he liked her a lot. "Let''s go." He put down the things on the table and pulled her out of the room. The weather outside was good. The sky was blue and the scenery was beautiful. The embarrassing things that happened in the hotel room quickly dissipated from their mind as they trailed on their way. Anne realized that she should just enjoy the ce even if she was forced toe here. Chapter 175 A Great Pair Chapter 175 A Great Pair Anne and Kevin walked side by side. The man was handsome and the woman was beautiful and elegant. Both of them made a great pair which instantly attracted many people''s attention. Kevin came over and held Anne''s hand as she walked in front of him. When she realized what had happened, she forgot that she rejected Kevin. But he did not say anything. He looked into the distance as if he did not care. Anne frowned and did not utter a word either. She just let him hold her hand, but this time it was not as natural as before she noticed he was doing that. Their warm hands touched, making her very nervous. Her palm kept sweating. Fortunately, a cool sea breeze blew over, eliminating the heat from her body. "The ground here is very low," said Anne, furrowing her brows. Most areas were only one meter above the sea level. There was a perception of privacy and istion when she was on this ind, but she feared that this kind of beauty would be devoured. "Well, global warming causes the sea level to rise recently. In less than a century, this ce will be drowned in the water. All the beauty and civilization here will be hidden deep." Kevin looked at the terrain and instantly estimated the situation of Maldives. Anne felt a little regretful that such a lovely ce would vanish. "I''m heartbroken that such a magnificent natural scenery would disappear." She felt sad. "Of course, but you can try to enjoy its beauty while it still exists," Kevin said with a smile. She used to yearn for this ce since it was the dream of most girls. Now, she liked this ce spot even more because she cherished it in her heart. The two of them strolled together across the stunning beach. The sea from afar intersected with the sky. It seemed like the sky was guarding the sea. Anne looked back and saw colorful shells in different sizes on the shore. "These shells are so beautiful." Although most of the time, she was cold, steady, and apathetic, ever since she came to Maldives, her feminine side seemed to return. Kevin liked the change in Anne''s behavior very much. Wearing casual clothes, he looked more like a Copyright by N?v/elDrama.Org. bright boy. "Well, you can pick some up and keep them as a souvenir," he said. Anne knitted her brows, "I don''t like to keep them as a souvenir, because the best image of it is already in my heart." Knowing that she would give the exact answer, Kevin was not surprised, but said, "I heard that making a bracelet or a wind-bell out of shells will be more pleasing to the children." "Really?" Sure enough, when it came to the baby, Anne''s attention would always be captivated. She looked like a child that was eager to have a try. "I''m not sure, but you''ll know when you give it a try," replied Kevin. Then, she wandered through the beach to find shells for her dear baby. The sea wind blew gently, swinging her white dress. The corner of her garment fluttered as she smiled faintly. Her slightly yellow hair danced in the wind. She was like a person in a picture scroll. Kevin was mesmerized by the scene in front of him. He took his phone out and captured the most beautiful look of Anne. "Kevin, do you think this one looks good?" she asked. "It looks good," he replied. "What about this one?" "Not bad." "Why do you keep on saying each one I show you is good?" Anne was a little pissed. She used Kevin of not caring. However, he smiled dotingly and said, "Because the ones you choose are all lovely." Sadly, Anne rolled his eyes at him as a response. Although she knew his statement was nonsense, her frozen heart seemed to warm up slowly as if by the high temperature there in Maldives. The two of them strolled from morning to noon. The sun slowly became scorching. Even though she held an umbre in her hand, Anne still felt the sand under her feet burn. "Let''s go back." She could not take the heat anymore. She backed under the open umbre and felt much better without the sunlight touching her skin. "Wait a minute." Kevin turned down Anne''s suggestion. Instead, he looked around. It made her puzzled. "What are you looking at?" Kevin did not answer and ran directly to another umbre. He could see that some people were having barbecues under it. He gestured with his hands and soon came over with a bag and tinfoil. "Are you hungry?" asked Kevin. At the same time, Anne''s stomach began to growl. She had not eaten anything sincest night, so she was surely hungry. "A little." Anne pretended not to care about it. Then he took a deep look at her and unfolded the package. There were raw bacon, lettuce, and cream in it, but the cream had liquefied due to the high temperature. Seeing this, Anne could not calm down. Was Kevin going to cook on the beach? But they did not have a fire or a grill. How was he going to do that? Under the sun, he ttened the tinfoil and divided it into several parts, wrapping the bacon, lettuce, and cream respectively. He fastened the tinfoil and put the food on the beach. Then hey alongside with Anne on a simple chair. "Were you cooking just now?" asked Anne. She had never thought that food could be cooked like that. "Yes, when I was studying abroad, I went to a tropical country with my friends. That''s how they cook." Kevin smiled slightly, as if he had gotten used to seeing her surprised look. "Then what other methods do you know about cooking?" All of a sudden, Anne felt that Kevin had a lot of secrets that she could discover from time to time. She was dismayed that she could not resist the feeling of being close to him. "I don''t know. My friends were the ones who cook, but I found it delicious. You can have a tasteter." The two kept talking, and time seemed to pass rapidly. Half an hour had passed with a twinkling of an eye. Hence, Kevin went to get the tinfoil. He held the food wrapped in the tinfoil carefully, which made Anneugh. It was difficult for her not to notice Kevin''s clumsy look, but when he threw a tinfoil bag to her, she could not smile anymore. It was really hot! "Oh my God! How did you bring it here?" said Anne in a loud voice. She flipped his hand subconsciously and saw that his hand was red. "Doesn''t it hurt?" Anne felt guilty. "It''s okay. These are just minor injuries. Have a try." There were five tinfoil bags in total, and after they unwrapped it, the food was enough for three people to eat. Kevin left three bags and distributed the other two to the people under the umbre to thank them for their help. As she looked at his figure on the beach, the smile on her lips slowly extended. Despite the burning heat of the sun, he still appeared to be fresh in Anne''s eyes, as if the sun took care not to shine on him too much. When he handed the food out, he waved at her right away. The people who had tasted the food gave Anne a thumbs up. Five minutester, Kevin came back and asked her to taste it. There were cream and bacon on the lettuce. The freshness of the green leaves was mixed with the thick bacon vored cream, which was savory. "It''s delicious." Anne could not help but praise. Kevin, on the other hand, had been watching her eat. He could not help but smile when he saw that she was enjoying the food that he had prepared. After both of them finished their meal, the temperature reached the highest on the beach in the day. The people sitting opposite to them saw what Kevin did and began to follow suit to roast food on the beach, which Anne found hrious. When they had everything at home, the meal he cooked tasted terrible. It was astonishing that he could produce such appetizing food by himself when they had nothing at hand. A period of thirty minutester, the heat began to fade away, and the scorching wind became cool again. Anne did not feel uneasy as before and more people wereing to the beach. At the same moment, she simply took off her shoes and stepped on the sand. There were asionally small gravel in the sand, but very few. It did not bother her even if it prickled her sole. After a whole day''s sunshine, Anne''s skin turned red. As she stood by the sea and looked at the gentle waves, she felt a cool sensation on her arm. "What''s this?" When she turned around, she found that Kevin was applying something on her. The frigidness immediately eased the difort caused by the exposure to the sun. "It''s a treatment for the sunburn. Don''t move, or else the recovery will slow down," he warned. At this point, Kevin''s soft handsome face was very close to hers. The sun at the distance slowly slid to the sea, as if they had stepped on it. Everything around them was beautiful. Some soft part in Anne''s heart was touched. She suddenly smiled meekly and sweetly, which stunned Kevin. Now, the person he loved was by his side. He could not help but get close to her, just wanting to kiss her gorgeous lips. They could only see each other in their eyes. With the cool sea wind, the rosy clouds in the sky, and the deep blue sea, the emotions hidden in their hearts stirred. However, Kevin failed in his attempt to kiss her. As there were more people approaching, it became noisy for a moment. Kevin was interrupted by a shriek. Then, he saw a big stranded on the beach. Two people pushed the fish into the water. While Anne was lost in thought when she saw them, he frowned in displeasure. "It turns out that the most beautiful thing in Maldives was not just the scenery." Anne stared at them. In fact, she rarely had the chance to go out for fun. As soon as she got rid of the Ye n, she came to the Fu Family. After that, she was busy fighting for the custody of the baby. Today was the happiest day of her life. Even though the man beside her couldn''t give her a full sense of security, she was in a good mood now that she was brought to a ce she had never been to before. Chapter 176 Changing Her Chapter 176 Changing Her It was getting dark, but Kevin had no intentions to go back to the hotel. How could he go to sleep and shut his eyes at a beautiful night such as this? Anne had been in high spirits all day long. He believed that he could melt Anne''s heart and change her stubbornness. If a woman refused to yield in front of a man, then one thing is for sure: She felt that the man was not good enough to be with her. "Let''s go back," said Anne with a smile. "Don''t be in a hurry. You will have plenty of time to sleep when we get back." Kevin tickled Anne''s nose lovingly. His doting manner distracted Anne. "Then where are we going? We spent the day all over here." Anne frowned and wondered what he was up to. "Come with me. I¡¯ll show you something." He held her hand and walked to the other side of the beach. Turning a corner on the beach, Anne was in awe to see a ray of bioluminescent light glowing as the current sshed in the deep sea on its way to the shore. It was so beautiful and bizarre. "Is this the famous bioluminescent beach?" Anne asked excitedly. She had only heard of it when she was very young, but she wasn''t so sure if it truly existed. But from where she stood, she finally saw it with her own eyes. "Do you like it?" Kevin lowered his head and asked with a gentle smile, staring at the woman he loved. "I love it. It''s like a dream. It¡¯s so beautiful." As she stared at the glowing beach, the smile on Anne''s face widened and wouldn''t disappear for a while. "Now that we are here, let''s take a close look," said Kevin.Copyright by N?v/elDrama.Org. He towed Anne over to the water like pulling a child, but Anne was a little reluctant to go. "Is that even allowed?" asked Anne. It turned out that she was afraid of ruining this beautiful moment. "Don''t worry. It''s not forbidden. It''s not the most beautiful time to be here, so there are a few people here, but more people willeter in tours. Also, some people don¡¯t even know this ce exists." It''s true, in Maldives, there was a lot of scenery everywhere. People had filled their eyes enough for a day, so they might note here. "Very well," Anne replied calmly. The two sat side by side in the middle of the magical beach. From afar, they looked like a couple from the heavens, nestled with each other, dreamy and beautiful. The bioluminescent light was like a huge light band scattered across the ocean as bright as the Milky Way. "Anne. I just hope you can be happy every day. You don''t have to be as weary as before," said Kevin as he held her shoulder in the dark as the night peaked. But he saw that Anne immediately returned to her indifferent attitude like a switch. She seemingly felt that it was not appropriate. "I''m sorry. You don''t have to say that again. I''m who I am and I won''t change at all." After saying that, she ran straight into the fluorescent shore. Her feet were wet because of the damped fine sand. Her footprints glowed like a runway, and she looked isted in the incandescent light. Kevin admired her from a distance and after a while, he let out a deep sigh. He followed Anne and walked side by side with her. If Anne marched too fast, he would imitate her pace and never let her wander alone. The truth was that she was conflicted about this trip. If Kevin treated her like this before she was disappointed in anything about him, she would not put on guard against him at all. But she had experienced too much. If something good happened in front of her, she would take it as a sign of the worsting. She couldn''t ept Kevin in her heart because she believed that everything would turn out bad. "Don''t follow me. Let me walk by myself." It seemed that Anne was used to her solitude wherein no one cared about nor understood her. When the warmth came, she subconsciously wanted to push it away. Kevin said, "If you think you can''t ept me being a husband to you, why won¡¯t you at least treat me as a father of your child?" Anne kept silent. She knew that he had changed a lot because of her, but love was not enough. It could not represent a person''s character. If a person hurt her, she would forgive but not forget. She would refuse to get close to him and make herself vulnerable again. This was what her heart told her to do and she could do nothing to change it. "All right," she said. "You don¡¯t have to stress about it, you know. Let¡¯s just enjoy this beautiful moment under the stars. Check this out." Kevin turned her body to face their footsteps. The shoreline of fluorescent beach glimmered the name of Anne. It was exceptionally dazzling to see under the starry night. It seemed that Kevin''s eyes were twinkled with tenderness, which melted the devotion of his entire life into the name, Anne Luo. "Thank you," said Anne in a low voice. A mesmerizing scene like that would be treasured in her heart forever. "You''re wee. I''m here to take care of you on behalf of my baby," Kevin said casually in order to make Anne feel at ease. But he knew in fact that Anne still liked him. He didn''t realize it before, but now he understood. He held Anne''s hand and slowly tucked her in a warm embrace. "I know you still hate me. If it weren''t for the baby, maybe we wouldn''t have the chance to meet again. But please, don''t push me away. I love you very much, not for the baby, but because of who you are. I admit that I was deceived by others before and thought you were a bad person, but now, you are the one I love most." It was such a beautiful night, with the interster of stars, the cold night wind, and a luminescent beach. It was the right ce and the right time for expressing his love for her. Kevin''s sudden confession of love was beyond Anne''s expectation. She was still in a trance when Kevin held her tightly and gave her a sweet gentle kiss. It was an out-of-this-world moment. It seemed that Anne had really forgotten what had happened before. She only knew that the man in front of her had once made her fall in love, and she could not resist him now. From shock to response, she pushed him away, but Kevin was still pleased. At least, she yielded to him. "Hello, everyone. This is the famous bioluminescent beach. This phenomenon is caused by bioluminescent organisms...." After a while, a loud megaphone interrupted the silence and many people came to the beach. They were led by the tour guide to watch the bioluminescent beach. Kevin and Anne smiled at each other as they were about to leave. The light in the hotel was on. When they entered, she felt the dim lights look extraordinarily affectionate tonight. She wondered if it was because she was in a good mood that caused her to feel so. Either way, Anne was so shy that she kept blushing. In the hotel room, Anne wanted to take a shower before going to bed, but she saw the blurry ss wall of the bathroom and hesitated. "Is there any other bathroom here?" asked Anne. She thought that even if there was a public bathroom, it would do. But Kevin shook his head in denial. "Maldives is always a ce for young couples toe. There is no such ce that you want in this hotel." Atst, regardless of whether Kevin would be angry or not, she asked in a low voice, "Can we get another room?" Kevin was stunned. He didn''t want to disappoint her. If she left, he would feel ufortable, so he said, "Okay, let''s ask together. I''ll take you to the new room if there''s any." Anne nodded. The two of them walked out together. After they reached the reception of the hotel, they found that the receptionist was dozing off because it was already eleven o''clock in the evening. "Hello, I want a new room," said Kevin. The drowsy but amodating receptionist was alerted. She shook her head and said, "I''m afraid by this time, all the hotel rooms are upied. I''m sorry." The receptionist did sound serious. The look on Anne''s face suddenly became disappointed. She walked back and nned to sleep directly without taking a shower. She was irritated because she sweated a lot today and her body was sticky. Noticing the annoyance on Anne''s sulking expression, Kevin said, "Go ahead and take a shower. I promise I won''t look at you." He knew what her concern was. She worried that something intimate would happen if the two of them stayed in the same room. "All right," Anne said suspiciously. After getting her toiletries, she went into the bathroom with a bath towel. Kevin shifted his attention to read thetest news of AN Group. The sound of the running water filled the silent room, and Kevin''s Adam''s apple tightened. He was really itched to turn to look at her direction, but in the end, he chose to clench his hands and resist the temptation. When Anne stepped out of the bathroom, the room was filled with her fragrance. "I''m done. You can go to take a shower now," said Anne. But still Kevin didn''t move an inch. She thought he was so caught up reading something that he didn''t hear her. "Kevin, go to take a shower." She tapped him on the shoulder. At this time, Kevin turned his head and saw that Anne was wearing a robe. Her hair was still dripping when she came out, and water drops slid down from her hair and dampened the cor of her robe. The nightgown was designed to fit people''s body, outlining Anne''s hourss figure. The light was dim. In Kevin''s eyes, in that moment, Anne had a kind of bewitching beauty. His kiss fell in her lips unexpectedly. Worried about where this kiss could end up with, Anne bit his lip and pushed him away. "Go to take a shower." The tension in the air made the two felt like the room seemed to have cooled a little. "Sorry, I can''t help it," said Kevin. Anne didn''t say anything, because she was also processing the moment. Why did she feel a little excited and indulgent when Kevin kissed her? Shouldn''t she take the initiative to stay away from him? Her heart should be as calm as water, and she shouldn''t fall in love with him no matter what he did. But now, she was clearly intrigued. She knew clearly how difficult it would be for the two of them to be together, but she still could not restrain the intense feelings in her heart just now, and she hated herself for being tender. "Just take a shower." After saying that, Anne divided the big bed into two andy on the left. Covered with a thin quilt, she was ready to sleep. When Kevin came out of the bathroom, Anne had already fallen asleep. Her quiet appearance was very pleasing. The toughness she had unted throughout the day suddenly disappeared like the moon at dawn. She looked like a lone kitten, waiting for the right person who could really melt her loneliness with warm embrace. Chapter 177 Story Chapter 177 Story Kevin wanted to hold Anne tightly in his arms so he reached out his hand. He had always dreamed of doing that but when he thought that she would resist, he restrained himself. He didn''t want to hurt her anymore. Instead, hey down beside him and settled on just staring at her. Seeing her beautiful face, he felt so happy. He smiled when Anne moved towards him and sought for warmth under the coldness of the room. He really wanted the moment tost forever. He was about to touch her but his hand was under her body. He didn''t dare to move. After midnight, the hotel was very quiet and the silence made everything audible. Anne opened her eyes and the first thing she saw was Kevin''s face. She blushed at the proximity of his face to hers. Realizing how close he was, she got angry immediately. "What are you doing here?" She clenched her jaw. She already made it clear to him but he was still shameless and took advantage of her She ignored the messy hair that covered her eyes and grabbed his cor. She was unaware that it was loose, and his robe started toe undone, revealing his toned chest. Both were surprised at the turn of events. A strange sexual tension arose between them. "See? It was you who crossed the boundaries," he reminded her. She felt like lightning struck her with the surge of embarrassment. She frowned when she realized that it was, indeed, her that pushed him. However, she didn''t do that intentionally. "Sorry, it was a mistake," she apologized unwillingly. "If that''s the case, then get up. We''re leaving," hemanded. "Okay!" she eximed. Although Maldives was a beautiful ce, it was ufortable to be here with a man who she hated before. She found it hard to get used to a ''Kevin'' that tried to be considerate. "Good, France is our next stop." As if he figured out what ran in her mind, he quickly burst her bubble. "Do I have to go with you? Can I just go back ahead of you?" she asked hesitantly. Was he nning to travel the world with her? "No, you cant. We''re supposed to go there together," he insisted. "I see," Anne answered awkwardly. She knew that it was impossible to beat him in an argument. At least not in a foreignnd. He had a lot of tricks to deal with her if she rejected him. Kevin used his time efficiently and wasted none of it. On the afternoon of the next day, they arrived in France. It was autumn and the empress trees bloomed in all their glory. Their leaves helped to block the dazzling sunlight. Anne inhaled the fresh air as they walked with their suitcases. It was such an elegant ce that even if there was no one around, they could still feel its nobleness. She regretted not changing her clothes when she felt the chilly air against her skin. It was hot in the Maldives so she decided to wear thinner ones. If she had known better, she would have worn a thicker garment. She rubbed her arm subtly but halted when she felt something cover her. "Here," Kevin said as he put a coat on her. "So that you won''t catch a cold." She looked at Kevin and found he wore a coat too. It was a casual coat. It was an unusual sight for her because she was used to him wearing a suit and tie. She wondered if it was because he felt very rxed in Maldives that he changed his style. The two walked along the street. She looked around and was fascinated by the ancient building in every corner of the street. Paris was the most beautiful city in France so she couldn''t help but be in awe. Kevin stopped on his track and walked inside a simple-looking restaurant. For a restaurant, it was too quiet that it made her restless. The attendants only smiled at them as if they didn''t want to disturb the few people who were eating. "Are you hungry?" she asked in a low voice, afraid to disturb others. The man shook his head and went inside. They headed towards a ce where vines where nted. Anne saw a gracefuldy who sat near the autumn flowers. She had long, chestnut hair and brown eyes. She looked beautiful and gentle. They sat a few seats away from the elegant woman. Kevin ordered a cup of ck tea and nced at the woman from time to time. ''Perhaps, he came here for the woman and not for leisure purposes,'' she thought. She wasn''t familiar with her but she was sure that she was not a business partner. If she was, she would have known. Several hourster, the woman looked up at Kevin unhappily. He stood up upon the eye-contact and approached her with a smile. "Are you a businessman?" the woman asked. "Yes," he answered. "If you want to talk about business, I suggest that you leave now," The woman ignored his presence. "I heard that you like stories Ms. Sophia. In fact, I have a good one here," he proposed. Anne creased her forehead in confusion. Did hee all the way to France for storytelling? "I love stories but I don''t know how it would benefit you." Sophia dismissed his suggestion. She was a famous French writer. Every book she had written were adapted into movies that were box- office hits. Even though Anne realized that the elegant woman was a writer, she was unable to understand what Kevin''s purpose was. AN Group wasn''t into the film and television industry. Maybe he was asking Sophia to write a script for him, but that was still too far-fetched. Although Sophia knew how to speak theirnguage fluently, she didn''t know much about their culture. It he really wanted someone to write a script for him, why not find a local writer? "I know that you are not an ordinary writer Miss Sophia. I''m aware that you won''t favor me if my story turns out to be boring but if it interests you, can you listen to my offer afterward?" he bargained. He knew all too well that winning her favor wasn''t easy. After all, a lot of businessmen were turned down by her. "Okay, let me hear what you have first." He looked at Anne first before he began his story. "There was a family who bore the surname Ye. A mother with her child came to her brother''s home because of something¡­" Anne realized that it was her story as soon as he finished the first sentence. Sophia listened carefully when the beginning intrigued her. "She had a cousin who had a terrible character. Her aunt and cousin would always hurt her and her mother. Because of that, the little girl developed a cold and hard personality." Kevin stared at Anne quietly and held her hand slowly. The warmth of his handforted her heart. She no longer felt awkward as he told the story. "It sounds like a good story. Go on. So, what did her cousin do in order to get the guy they were both interested in?" Sophia urged him to continue after he had paused his story. "Are you interested in the story? It would take us a day or two for me to finish the story," he said in a business-like tone. He had predicted how to spark her interest even before he came here. It was a good thing that it turned out in the way he wanted to. "Your story is indeed interesting. Tell me your conditions," she offered. "Our terms are simple. The movies adapted from your books are all bit hits all over the world. This only means that culture has no boundaries. What really moves the people is not thenguage but the deep emotions carried by it. Thus, we want you to write a short story for our newly released jewelry," he said Content rights belong to N?velDrama.Org. straightforwardly. Anne finally figured out that he came to find her so that she could publicize their new jewelry. Honestly, his idea was very unique. Otherpanies preferred to use hot stars and models but he wanted to be different. Even if AN Group was the biggest jewelry design corporation in the country, it would be difficult to show the beauty of the ring by using models. It wasn''t a wedding dress that could persuade customers by looking at its designs. It needed something heart-touching. Indeed, a story would attract more attention. "That is rather a simple request," Sophiamented. She looked at the couple weirdly. She didn''t expect him to ask for a short story in exchange for his wonderful story. Truthfully, she thought that he would ask her to work in hispany. "It''s not that simple," he debunked her. "I need you to write ording to your feelings after seeing our product. It needs to be convincing enough to lead the fashion trend," he added. "I see. Your request is indeed a little difficult," she agreed. Anne had expected her to decline his terms but Sophia replied otherwise. "Alright! Since I love your story, I''ll help you. However, I won''t work for you until you finish your story," she bantered. "No worries. I''ll send the manuscript to your home tomorrow. Can you tell me your address?" Kevin asked courteously. Chapter 178 The Lights Went Off Chapter 178 The Lights Went Off "Well, don''t make me wait too long. I just don''t understand why you are so good at telling stories, considering that you are just the president of a group and not involved in publishing books. It''s almost as if you have personally experienced them." Sophia was confused. She was afraid that what Kevin had told her was just a made-up story meant to arouse her interest. "This is the story between me and my wife, so I am familiar with it. It''s a trump card. Are you still worried that I can''t tell a story that you are satisfied with?" Kevin looked at Sophia with a serious expression. The woman nced at the two people again and nodded. "I hope your story will have a happy ending." Then, she left, leaving only a note with her address. "Kevin, why didn''t you tell me that you were here for business?" After thest trip to Maldives, Anne was no longer as indifferent to Kevin as she used to be. Instead, she asked him questions whenever she had doubts. He smiled. "I did bring you here for fun. We''re just doing some business in between." His expression was calm, as if he was not excited at all. "Oh, I see. Let''s go and find some interesting ces to visit." She then grabbed Kevin''s hand and strode forward. After walking dozens of meters, Anne realized that she had been used to holding Kevin''s hand. She wanted to let go, but Kevin tightened his hold. There was nothing she could do but allow Kevin to hold her hand. In fact, the two of them knew that since the business was settled, they didn''t have much time to enjoy themselves, but they weren''t the type of people who would indulge themselves in fun anyway. After wandering the streets of Paris for a while, they had a casual meal in a restaurant and found a hotel to rest. That hotel was not as exciting as the one in Maldives. It looked more like a French man, reserved, implicit and romantic. The scenery was simple and unadorned, and so was the hotel. It looked like it was built a long time before. "We want a room," Kevin said. But Anne immediately realized that she didn''t want to experience the embarrassment she felt in Maldives anymore. "Two, please," she added. The French man behind the counter was a little surprised. "Are you sure you want two?" No wonder he would ask. Kevin already knew that Anne was embarrassed because of what had happened in Maldives, so he had booked a suite, where there would be two rooms and one living room. "There are many rooms here. So it''s not convenient for us to get in touch with each other if we will take two," Kevin whispered in Anne''s ear. His voice was soft and his lips almost brushed her ear when he spoke. A wave of numbness rushed through her body, and her earlobes turned red. However, with people around, she didn''t dare to say anything to Kevin. She just red at him. "Okay, we''ll only take one room," Kevin said. The receptionist produced an invoice and handed him the room card. A valet then apanied them to the third floor. The moment he opened the door for them, Anne was attracted by the ssical Parisian style of the suite. Even the decoration was vintage, and it gave her the feeling of living in a different epoch. "Do you like it?" Kevin asked. Anne looked around and found that there were indeed two rooms and a big living room. In the middle of the living room, there was arge bronze European style chandelier, emitting soft light. "Yes, I like it very much. Kevin, go ahead with your work. I''m going to bed." After taking a look at her room, Anne felt particrly rxed. She went straight into the room ready to take a shower and get Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. some rest. Kevin smiled. Seeing Anne''s contentment made him happy. He turned on theputer he had brought with him and started to work on the stories for Miss Sophia. Although Anne was taking a shower, he could barely hear any noise because the room was soundproof. His slender fingers kept tapping on the keyboard, always fast, and sometimes stopped, indicating that he was thinking. But half an hourter, the lights suddenly went off. Then, Anne screamed in the bathroom. Kevin immediately put down hisputer and entered her room. "Anne, are you okay?" he asked anxiously. "Don''te over. I''m fine. I just slipped." Anne was a little annoyed and wondered why the power went out. She had just taken a shower and was about to put on her pajamas when the lights went off. She couldn''t feel where her pajamas were, so she had to take a step forward. But the bubbles of the shower gel on the ground hadn''t been washed away, so she slipped at once. She stood up against the wall, but still couldn''t find her clothes. What was more, her foot seemed to hurt. She didn''t say anything and gritted her teeth, fearing that Kevin woulde directly to her if he heard her cry out in pain, which would be worse. "Are you looking for this?" Kevin had good eyesight and soon adapted to the darkness. The faint moonlight seeped in through the window, so he could see that Anne was groping for something. But that thing was only one foot away from her. He wanted to pretend not to see anything, but Anne was still fumbling, so in the end he picked up her pajamas and handed them to her. Feeling the fabric on her hands, Anne grabbed the clothes, but didn''t know how to put them on. Her eyesight was not good in the dark. It had never been. Her foot hurt too. She fumbled for a while but still didn''t get dressed. "It''s dark and it''s not easy to get dressed. Let''s go out first, okay?" Kevin suggested. "Okay." Her voice was trembling, and she tried her best to endure the pain in her foot. Walking straight to her, Kevin picked her up. She was wobbling but didn''t dare to move. Following the extremely dim moonlight, Kevin went all the way to Anne''s room. Her soft skin was rubbing against his body. He frowned and felt his mind explode. He put Anne on the bed and looked down at her. Seeing her at a loss, he felt sorry for her and gently kissed her lips. It seemed that the darkness had dissipated all her worries. She responded enthusiastically until the pain made her cry out. Kevin immediately stopped. "Your foot is injured," he said in a low voice, his face crumpled in a frown. He felt a little glum. He thought that his rtionship with Anne had finally made some progress, but the good moment was still ruined. However, he didn''t feel ufortable. After all, the health of the woman he liked was the most important. "I''m going out to buy some medicine. Be careful here," he added. "No." Anne pulled him, preventing him from leaving. "What''s wrong?" Blinking in the darkness, Anne said, "I''ll go with you." But Kevin''s objection arrived promptly. "No, your foot is injured. You can''t move freely." Anne was a very patient and resilient woman. If it weren''t for the pain, she wouldn''t have cried out. "But I want to go out," still, she insisted. In fact, she was just a little scared. After getting along with Kevin those days, she got used to being with him. She even let him see shorings that she usually concealed well, such as her fear of the dark. After pondering for a while, he nodded. "Okay, my phone is here. I''ll go out first. Put on some clothes and call me when you''re ready." He gave her his phone and walked out. After he left, Anne turned on the shlight and got dressed. As soon she saw Kevin with his back to her, a sweet smile inadvertently appeared at the corners of her mouth, as if she was relieved because of his presence. "I''m ready. Let''s go out." Putting on a pair of slippers, Anne was about to leave, when Kevin picked her up. "Don''t do it, or others will talk nonsense." After all, they were in a foreign country. She just felt a little ufortable and ashamed to be held like that. But then she heard Kevin chuckle. "It doesn''t matter. My woman''s foot is injured. If I let her walk by herself, others will talk nonsense." "Male chauvinism," Anne grumbled with a frown, but atst she grabbed hold of Kevin''s neck tightly. "Yes, I am a male chauvinist. So, you just need to be a happy little woman in front of me," he said dotingly. The two walked out, only to find that there were candles in front of the counter. Most of the rooms were not lit, so it was even darker there. "Why is the power off here?" Kevin asked unhappily. It was a sin to hurt his woman. The receptionist pointed at the sign under the dim candlelight. "Advocating economy. The power is cut off at eight o''clock every Wednesday night for an hour." "I see." Anne didn''t know whether to cry or tough. It was nobody''s fault that they didn''t see the note because the sign was obvious. "Let''s ask him where the hospital is," she proposed. Kevin didn''t want to make things difficult for the receptionist. He asked him in fluent French. The receptionist pointed at a clinic not far away. There was no electricity supply in the whole street except there. Kevin took Anne to the clinic. Fortunately, the lights were off and the street was dark, so Anne didn''t feel embarrassed. After applying the medicine, he took her back to the hotel. She felt that her legs were useless. She was carried back and forth. "Kevin, please don''t carry me. Let me down so I can walk." "No, my woman can''t walk with her injured foot." After saying that, he kissed her on the forehead, which made her blush. Finally, she buried her face in his arms and kept silent. The two of them went back to their room. After more than ten minutes, the light was on again. Anne''s eyes felt a little ufortable because they had been in darkness for a long time. Seeing her struggle to keep her eyes open, Kevin reached out his hand to block the light for her and didn''t take it away until she adapted to it. Chapter 179 Embracing Each Other Chapter 179 Embracing Each Other "I''m fine," Anne said with a half-hearted smile. It was rare for Kevin to look and sound so thoughtful, which made her wonder if everything that happened was real. In one swift movement, he picked her up in his arms and headed upstairs to her bedroom. "Put me down! I''m fine. I can walk by myself," she insisted. "Don''t worry. I''ve got you. Besides, we''re indoors. What are you so worried about?" Kevin said confidently. His overbearingness made her a bit displeased. However, she couldn''t deny that the way he was caring for her made her feel nice. It was as they were finally able to be together harmoniously like two normal people. "I..." she stammered, wanting to protest further. But the words were just caught in her throat. Just like that, she was helplessly whisked away. Kevin effortless opened the bedroom door while she was still in his arms. Then, he gentlyid her down on the bed. "I''m going to bed. Good night." After saying that, Anne buried herself under the soft nket and closed her eyes. Unexpectedly, Kevin had grown some affinity towards her aloofness. In fact, he was starting to think that it was kind of lovely and cute. Bending down, he brushed the hair on her face and kissed her lightly on her forehead. Right after, he turned around and left, closing the door behind him. As soon as the door closed with a click, Anne opened her eyes. There was a faint smile on her lips that she didn''t even notice was there. Meanwhile, Kevin returned to his own room. Instead of going straight to bed, he turned on hisputer and continued to write the draft. ncing at the time, he saw that it was almost ten o''clock. This draft needed to be ready for Ms. Sophia by tomorrow. Without any more dy, he went straight to work. The story he wrote was about everything that happened between him and Anne. There were a lot horrible things that happened, filled with bizarre twists and turns. Although it seemed unbelievable, this was what really happened in their lives. Atst, Kevin was done writing. It was already four o''clock in the morning. A sense of fulfillment washed over him. Breathing a sigh of relief, he stood up and went to lie down on his bed, not bothering to change his clothes or get under the covers. Later that morning, Anne woke up rather early. This was usually the case when she had a nice, deep sleep. Even though it was only six o''clock in the morning, it was already very bright in Paris. Outside, the sun had only begun to rise. The sky was a lovely wash of pinks and oranges, almost as if it was made out of sweet cotton candy. With a stretch and a yawn, Anne got out of bed and went to get a ss of water. Inevitably, she passed by Kevin''s bedroom. The door had been left open, and she saw him sprawled onto the bed, quietly snoring. Usually, he woke up first before she did. Since he always had a lot of things to do, he always had a fixed time for sleeping. But now, it seemed like he had tired himself too muchst night. Tiptoeing, Anne walked in and gently put a nket on him. She carefully looked at him to check if he would wake up. To her surprise, she saw the dark circles under his eyes. Seeing that hisputer was still on, she realized that he must have been up all night finishing the draft he was going to give to Sophia. At this moment, Kevin woke up and grunted groggily. "Why are you up so early?" he said with a tired groan. He thought that it was still early. "Well, unlike you, I went to bed early yesterday," she said, a yful smile on her lips. "You should get some more rest." Seeing how tired he was, she couldn''t help but feel a bit sorry for him. Reaching out, he lightly stroked her hair. The smile on his face was so peaceful, as if he was currently living his best possible life. "By the way, are you done with the draft you nned on giving Sophia? I can sent it to her for you," Anne offered. Since it was the two of them together, she figured that they should at least be helping each other out. But Kevin immediately sat up and looked at her sternly. "No, it''s your first time to Paris. You''re not familiar with this ce. If you want to go out, I''ll go with you. Don''t think about going out there on your own." It was easy to take advantage of tourists, especially if they were women. There was no way he was willing to risk Anne''s safety just so that she could do him a favor. It would be a lot more worrisome if she suddenly got lost or taken by some stranger. "Okay, but you still need to catch up on some sleep. What time is your meeting with Ms. Sophia?" "Two o''clockter this afternoon. Don''t worry. Her address is actually pretty close from our hotel. How about we go out for some breakfast first then I''ll just go rest a bit when wee back? Just help wake me up by noon, okay?" Kevin said. "Yeah, sure. Actually, maybe I can go out and buy the food myself. It shouldn''t be hard to find some ce to buy food nearby. What do you want to eat? I''ll bring it for you." Just when she was about to go out of his room to get ready, he quickly called out to her, "Wait. We should just go out. I''ve been around this ce a number of times. There are a lot of food that I think you''d like. We don''t have much time to stay here anyway, so this might be the only chance you can have a taste of what Paris cuisine has to offer." Rubbing the sleep off his eyes, he went out of bed and put on his shoes. "After this deal with Ms. Sophia, we''ll have to leave soon," he added. "There''s also some business in Denmark that needs to be attended to." The bright and sunny day Anne saw from her window had suddenly turned a bit gloomy. However, with so much beauty in the streets of Paris, it was impossible not to feel rxed no matter what the weather was. As she and Kevin walked side by side, they passed by a local pastry shop. Through the ss walls, passersby could see all of the freshly baked goods. Tarts topped with fresh raspberries, chocte covered croissants, cinnamon rolls that came straight out of the oven, and many more delicious treats. "The cream puffs here are very delicious, different from that at home. You should try it," Kevin said as he noticed Anne''s eyes glisten with interest. There was a long, elegant flower carved on the cream puff. It smelled even better than it looked, but the taste of the soft pastry and smooth filling was the real star of the show. They also ordered two different slices of cake before heading out into the streets once more. After stopping by two more local stores, they then went back to the hotel. This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. The moment they entered the room, the air was filled with the delicious smell of all the food they had just bought. It was as if they had personally brought the French charm into these four walls. "Go and eat. I''ll just go lie down for a while," Kevin said as he touched the top of her head, bending down to kiss her softly on the lips. "Just don''t forget to wake me up at twelve o''clock." "Why don''t you grab a small bite before going to bed?" Anne said worriedly. She could only imagine how hard he had been working hard yesterday. "No, it''s okay. I''m not hungry." As he plopped down back on the bed and closed his eyes, she smiled at him sweetly. Recently, whenever she saw him, she felt as light as a feather in her heart. After everything that had happened between them, she never thought that they would get along so well. Everything seemed to be falling into ce. There was no need for her to keep looking over her shoulder, nor was there any need to keep exining herself or protecting her own right and interests with Kevin. Later that day, they arrived at Sophia''s house on time. It went without question that Sophia was a highly-respected writer. Her novels had the ability to fill the reader''s soul, always filled with beautiful anecdotes about life and nature. That was why she could always set a trend. From the looks of her home, it was easy to see how her writing was reflected in her lifestyle. There were so many beautiful flowers that she had nted and grown herself. It was like an enchanted wondend that came straight out of a fairy tale. "Oh, you''re here!" Sophia greeted once she opened the door. She invited them into the living room. There, she looked at them appraisingly. A good story was always supposed to have a good protagonist, after all. "Well, this is my story," Kevin said as he handed the USB sh drive to her. With her trained eye, she quickly skimmed through the pages, leafing through it until she was satisfied. "This is really good," Sophia said as she nodded. "The story of your love is soplicated yet moving. Ah, I really do hope that you two will be happily together. As for you, Mr. Kevin, I can see what a business minded man you are. However, you don''t have that attitude most crude businessmen have. I think we''re all done here! I''ll give you a satisfactory advertising copy for your jewelry." The author''s words were filled with nothing but praise. Anne and Kevin looked at each other with a smile, both of them feeling very excited. After chatting for a couple of minutes, they made their leave soon enough, much to Sophia''s disappointment. "Bye, my friend," she said as she closed the door behind them. As they walked down the street, they passed by a street performer with an acoustic guitar. He was singing a slow and charming song in French. Kevin twirled Anne around, herughing ringing pleasantly in his ears. Then, he pulled her close to him, catching her in a tight embrace. Maybe there was just something about this city. It was, after all, known to be one of the most romantic ces in the world. As they embraced each other, slowly dancing to the music, their hearts filled with so much love. It was a moment both of them wished would never end. But they only had a short time to cherish this moment. Nevertheless, it was definitely a time they would surely remember. Their short five-day trip had been so much more profound to them than the past year. Before they knew it, they were on a ne heading back home. By the time they arrived, it was already evening. The colorful lights actually made Anne feel safe and happy. Before, she didn''t really feel like she had a home to return to here. Now, she knew that ''home'' was the person right by her side. "How about we pick up the baby first?" Kevin suggest. They had been away for many days that he was also starting to miss the baby as well. "Okay." With a small smile, Anne nodded. In truth, she didn''t like the idea of going back to the Fu Family''s old house. Even up until now, she didn''t know how she was supposed to deal with Kevin''s mother, Selma. Before, she didn''t care what his mother would say about her and Kevin. But now, as her rtionship with Kevin started to change, it would be a lot moreplicated to face Selma. "Don''t worry," Kevin said, seeing the anxiety in her eyes. "You don''t have to say anything when you see my mother. My grandfather''s home as well, I think. Even though he''s very strict, he''s a fair man. You might not like him at first, but I think you can warm up to him eventually." Anne nodded, feeling a bit embarrassed that he was able to see right through her. The old house of the Fu Family was actually not that old. It was built about only ten years ago, and the only reason why it was called that was because Kevin spent his childhood there. It was a ce that had so many old and painful memories for him, memories that were impossible to forget about. Anne and Kevin entered the house and waited at the living room. A servant went upstairs to call Selma and Carl. "Mr. Kevin is back," she announced. A little whileter, they came downstairs. The first thing Anne saw was the baby, sleeping soundly in Carl''s arms. Closely behind them was Selma. "You finally came back?" Although Carl''s voice was strict and gruff, there was a glint ofpassion in his eyes as he looked at his grandson. "Grandpa," greeted Kevin. He reached out his arms, intending to take the baby from Carl. However, his grandfather moved the baby away from him and rolled his eyes. "I feel like I don''t even have a grandson anymore because you don''te here that often. Now you''re trying to take my great grandson so that both of you can leave? Where are your manners, boy?" Carl scolded. Of course, he was just teasing, and Selma let out a smallugh. "Dad, I''m sure Kevin would want to stay one night here to spend some time with you. Right, Kevin?" Selma said lightly. In truth, she knew that Kevin wouldn''t stay here if she was the one who requested it. Their rtionship as mother and son still wasn''t that good yet. However, she thought that maybe Kevin would be more willing stay if he was going to do it for Carl. "Alright. Just one night. You can go ahead and prepare a room," Kevin said as he held Anne''s hand. Seeing this, Carl frowned, the look in his eyes darkening as he scrutinized the young couples'' hands interlocked with one another. Chapter 180 Reborn Chapter 180 Reborn Somehow, Kevin felt that he would be med, though he didn''t know why. A short momentter, what he had thought came into reality as expected. Carl frowned and said coldly, "You already have a child, but why did you still choose to get divorced?" Selma was a bit stunned by his words. "Dad, it''s their own business. Don''t worry. They''ll handle it themselves," Selma said trying to hide that she was nervous of the way he spoke. Although she knew that Anne was not a bad person and all the misunderstandings were caused by Cherry who framed Anne up, she still disliked her because she was too stubborn. However, Kevin was still obsessed with Anne despite her attitude. As soon as Selma finished her words, she heard Carl snort coldly, "You know it''s their own business. Then why can''t you just let them deal with it by themselves? In this way, you could only make things more difficult. Since you like to meddle in it so much, you can just help them live the rest of their lives." At first, Anne was a little wary of Kevin''s family, but when she heard how Carl spoke, she admired this strict and stereotyped old man. "I will listen to you from now on," Selma said in a low voice trying to settle the situation. "Ah--" When the baby saw Anne, he stretched out his hand for her to hold him. He was at the verge of crying. The baby was so cute that he almost melted Anne''s heart. When Carl saw how the baby craved for his Copyright by N?v/elDrama.Org. mother''s care, he let out a sigh and said, "It''s not easy to have a great grandson. But I can see that he doesn''t like me." When Kevin heard the childish voice of Carl, he was also surprised. Anne just smiled slightly and took the baby from Carl''s arms and said, "Grandpa, the baby still likes you very much. If he doesn''t like someone, he will cry all the time." At this time, Carl furrowed his eyebrows and looked at Selma subconsciously, because the baby always cried in her arms. Selma said no word. She suddenly felt a little embarrassed. "Selma, be gentle in the future. Don¡¯t frighten the child, or he will not be close to you," Carl said. "Grandpa, we just came back. We will go to have some rest." After saying that, Kevin held Anne''s hand and went straight to his room. Carl sighed heavily and said, "When the kids grow up, they don''t tend to be close to the elderly anymore." There was a hint of loneliness in his eyes. The room where Kevin brought Anne used to be his room when he was a kid. It was very big. There are many toys such as submachine guns, car models, remote-control aircraft, and game consoles. They were well preserved with his childhood memories. However, a corner of a well-made game console was missing, and several buttons on it fell off. This was the first time that she had been so close to the things from his childhood. When she saw his broken toy, she asked him curiously, "Kevin, why is this game console broken?" But after he heard this question, his face darkened and he looked a little sad. It was as if he remembered something about the toy which she referred to. "Sam gave this to me." Kevin spoke in a low voice. There was a hint of angst in his deep eyes. They were all wealthy families here, so Kevin made good friends with the kids from other wealthy families when he was young. Still and all, he saw Sam as the best one to y with. At that time, he liked to y very much, but his mother didn''t allow him to y with the toys in his room because he was the future heir of the Fu Family. There were no room for him to enjoy his childhood. At a very young age, he was taught how to run their family business smoothly. "Then why did you break this toy if Sam was your good friend?" Anne furrowed her eyebrows in confusion and asked curiously. "It was my mother who thought that I would lose my will when I always yed it. In order to remind me of the great responsibility that awaits in my future, she broke it." There was pain in his eyes as he spoke in an aggrieved tone. Atst, not caring whether Anne still had any doubts, he suddenly cut it off, and said, "Let''s get some sleep." Anne could tell that he was not really sleepy. He just wanted to change the topic, because he thought that it would just lead him to a very emotional state which he didn''t like to show in front of her. She immediately opened up a new topic and began to spoke. "The baby is getting healthier recently. Let''s nickname him Charles, okay?" When she first came back, the baby was very thin and weak, so she wished for him to grow up well- nourished and strong. "Good name." Kevin smiled gently and touched Charles'' face. The baby seemed to like his name and quickly showed a lovely smile. "Well, let''s go to bed. We are going back tomorrow. If we don''t sleep well, Grandpa will surely insist for us to stay." Recently, Carl had be very friendly, so there were high chances that he would ask them to stay. On the next day, just when the sun had risen, Kevin and Anne got up from bed. They nned to leave before Carl got up, so that they could avoid him. But to their surprise, Carl had already woken up and was taking a walk in the garden. When they met him on the narrow road, his expression suddenly changed. "Why are you leaving in such a hurry? What do you want to do?" he asked with a cold face. He suddenly felt sad when he saw that they already wanted to leave. "There is an emergency in thepany, so I have to go first," Kevin replied calmly. But Carl said, "In that case, it''s only you who needs to leave urgently. Why are you taking my great grandson away?" He had always been so great in his early years, mostly in the business industry, but he never expected that his life would be this lonely and miserable when he got old. "Anne wants to take the baby back to spend some time with him for a few days." Kevin knew that he could not make any reason viable to him, so he was left with no choice but to tell him the truth directly. "Well, I think you just want to take my great grandson away," Carl said in a somber tone. "Yes, Grandpa, if you want to see Charles again, you can call us," Kevin said patiently. "Is his name Charles? The name is not good." Carl shook his head and red at Kevin, considering that he had wasted so many years in learning, yet he couldn''t give his own child a good name. "Grandpa, this is the nickname of the baby. I know you are bored at home, so you can think about it and give a good name to Charles," Anne said and smiled at him. Carl smiled when she gave her such idea and his attention was suddenly diverted. "Yes, the child''s name is a big deal. You can go and take him first. Juste back when I figure out a good name for him," he said as his face brightened up. The two of them took advantage of the chance to leave. They were afraid that if they stayed a little longer, Carl would feel so lonely again and would not let them leave at all. When they got into the car, they both let out a sigh of relief. "Didn''t you say that your grandfather was very strict? Why do I think that he ispletely the opposite of it? He is also good to Charles. It seems that he loves Charles more than he loves you." On a second thought, Kevin also felt strange. "I don''t know. When I was a child, Grandpa was really very strict to me." "Is this the so-called phenomenon that grandparents tend to have close rtionships with their grandchildren?" Suddenly, these words came to Anne''s mind. She couldn''t help but wonder the reason behind the gradual change in a person''s attitude as he grew older. "How do you know that?" Kevin raised his eyebrows and asked her. "When my grandmother was alive, she was indeed very strict to my mother, and she would never be gentle even to my uncle. But she was very kind to children like us, so my mother said that everyone would show more love to the younger generations when they were old." Now Kevin finally understood why Carl didn''t ask him about thepany''s affairs when he went back. It turned out that he had to thank his dear son for capturing his grandfather''s heart. "Here we are. You must go back first. I''m going to work," Kevin said and waved at Anne. When she returned home and looked at everything she was familiar with, she realized that they had been gone for a quite long time. Just a week ago, they couldn''t even get along. She didn''t expect that everything would change in just a few days. She had always dreamt of a peaceful life. Now that she was slowly achieving it, she still couldn''t believe until she felt that it was actually real. "Miss Anne, you''re back." The nanny was d to see her home. "Yes. Oh, by the way, our baby''s nickname is Charles. Does it sound good?" Hearing that, the nanny nodded her head. It was indeed a good name. "Of course. Every parent likes their children to be healthy and strong. I can see that you love your baby so much and you are also a good person." The nanny was praising her when the phone suddenly rang. Anne answered it and found that it was from Trey. She handed her child to the nanny and took the phone. She immediately went to the ce mentioned by Trey. When she arrived, she saw Trey sitting in front of the French window on the third floor. He was looking down at the people below. His expression was cold and distant, as if he couldn''t blend into the world at all. "Hello, Mr. Trey," she greeted him and sat opposite to him. This time, he chose a small table. He had been staring at her from the time she entered the shop. "Hello," Trey simply answered. "Do you have anything to ask me to do?" Anne asked and furrowed her eyebrows. "Yes, we have made a real product for your design. We just want you to give your own work a name. In fact, we shouldn''t have troubled you for such a trivial matter, but we think that it would be better if the name is given by you, so the real meaning of it would be seen through its name." "I see," Anne said shortly. "I would like to name it ''Reborn''. Everyone will encounter all kinds of hardships in life, but we can''t always stay in the pain of the past. Only when we get rid of the shadow in our hearts can we be reborn." Anne reflected on her own life experiences. It was indeed the past that made her strong, but it was the future she chose to look forward to, and so she never lost hope. She felt a hint of pain in her heart when she remembered the remarkable moments of her past, but now she was a well-refined woman, confident with what made her like she was now. This confidence came from her own efforts and the motivation that her baby gave her. On the other hand, it was probably because of Kevin''s love for her. Anne felt happy that she finally got what she wanted, although she had suffered many setbacks. It seemed that a part of her life was already filled up at this point in time. The sound of apuding had awakened her back to her senses. "You are indeed a good designer. Although I haven''t seen your previous works, everyone who have seen your designs say that your works gave them a feeling of transformation, so this is probably the idea behind your works." Trey was suspicious in thest time that they had met, but now, he totally appreciated her. "Thank you." Anne smiled from ear to ear and epted his praise. "So, are you interested in attending the new productunch event of ourpany?" Trey invited. Chapter 181 Shining Chapter 181 Shining "I''m sorry but I won''t take part in this," Anne refused even though she knew that Trey wanted her to be a professional designer in hispany. "Why? Is it because of Kevin?" he asked. He wanted to know why she was not willing to cooperate with him. "Yes, I don''t think I''m suitable to work in yourpany with my identity." Aside from that, she was very close to Kevin now. "Do you like him?" He frowned. At his using tone, she became defensive and her voice came out as sharp. "That is a personal question. I refuse to answer that, I''m sorry." "I didn''t mean to offend you. I guess I became too excited. I just think that a designer like you deserves to endorse your product on-stage, and not simply work on designs behind the scene." His voice was "I''m sorry." She clutched her handbag and stood up. "Are you going to work in Kevin''spany in the future?" he inquired further. "I don''t know," she answered and left after she bowed politely. He looked at her retreating figure and sighed. "Why didn''t you use the high-sry card on her? Ourpany may not be as famous as the AN Group, but she won''t be able to find another corporation that could give her that good offer," his assistantmented. A faint smile appeared on Trey''s lips. "People like her can''t be persuaded by money." After a couple of days, M group released a new series of products at the market in A City. Its hit product was called ''Rebirth''. The exhibition stands had been set up in the well-known jewelry stores in the area. The sun that shone brightly was regarded as good luck. The ces that couldn''t be reached by the sunlight were filled with daylightmps. The lights on the disy stand illuminated the jewelry. It was a broken-heart-shaped ring with a diamond on the broken tinum. It wasn''t a huge diamond, but it was of the best quality in the world. "Hello everyone! I would like to present to you ourtest work, ''Rebirth''!" Trey, the founder of M Group, announced. One of the reporters stepped in. "Good day, Mr. Trey! That is different work from your previous ones. May we know whose piece that is?" asked the reporter. "This was made by my friend who did not want to appear on the stage. I would like to apologize because I can''t answer your question," he answered and smiled politely. "If you refuse to tell us whose work that is, does it mean that you haven''t got the designer''s authorization or the designer has giarized the work of others?" The founder did not falter at the bomb that was thrown at him. "I don''t think that she would. My friend always emphasizes the importance of inspiration and creation. She designs for liking, not for fame or fortune. That''s why I chose her work as the main piece," he calmly answered. Since the designer was not announced, the reporters were intrigued by her mysterious identity. They threw questions towards the CEO one after another. "Yourpany''s work is exquisite this time. Are you confident in the sales it could reach? What do you think of itpared with AN Group?" Upon the quite intrusive question, everyone fell silent. "I admit that AN Group is a big international brand, however, I''m confident with our unique designs this time. I think these will sell well." He beamed confidently. Honestly, he was also looking forward to whether the design from Kevin''s ex-wife could beat his In the AN Group, Kevin sat on his swivel chair and frowned at the recent sales report. He stretched his left leg and put it over the other. The ssed table reflected his displeasure. "What''s going on? Why did the sale go down by a percentage?" He cocked his brows at his employee. Daniel swallowed and tried to calm himself. "Recently, M Group released a series of jewelry. They sold well that their sales have increased by thirteen percent, Mr. Kevin!" The CEO closed the file and looked at him. "Why do you think their products sold so well this time?" "I think it''s because we have a lot of products which involve real estate, clothing line, perfume, jewelry, and cosmetics. Truthfully, I think we have too many products to cope up with." He tried to keep his voice steady and conceal his nervousness. "Those are not what I wanted to hear. What I want to know is why our sales dropped while theirs have increased! Tell me, what is their main work this time?" the CEO bellowed. The AN Group was far well-known than the M Group because they were focused on a variety of products. Aside from that, they had acquired good feedback all over the world. On the other hand, since the M Group was only engaged in jewelry, the AN Group always walked on thin ice and took things seriously. "Their main work this time was called ''Rebirth''. Reportedly, it was a work from Trey''s friend who didn''t want to be known." Daniel was trembling as he answered. "Go and check the background of this designer. I believe that it''s not difficult for you. If you fail to find anything out, you''re out!" He pointed at the door. Kevin had nned to use this jewelry to create a momentum for their next work with the exclusive story of Sophia. He wasn''t expecting that he would fail this time. "Okay, I''ll do it right away, Mr. Kevin!" The CEO leaned against his chair after Daniel left. He closed his eyes and rubbed his temple to soothe his exhaustion. The atmosphere in the Fu Family''s Vi was the opposite of Kevin''s gloomy office. The bright afternoon sun was reflected in the swimming pool. It was a good ce to bask in the sun. Charles was out in the leisure area with his mother. The gauze of his stroller was down to prevent the sunlight from reaching his eyes. His tiny limbs swayed from time to time and he would giggle sometimes. "You''re in a good mood today." With a warm smile, Anne took him out of his stroller. "Shall we watch TV?" she asked. Although she knew that her baby couldn''t understand anything, she still talked to him. She took out her phone that rang. Her eyes almost fell out of their sockets when she saw that there was a total of three million transferred to her ount. That was a figure that she never had in her card before. "What''s going on?" She had a hunch of who it was, so she dialed Trey''s number. She figured that it was because the products using her design sold well in the market. Although it was known to all that the M Group was one of the highest-payingpany in the country, she only designed one piece for them. It shouldn''t be this much. "Are you serious? I think you made a mistake." She was a bit skeptical. "No, this is the worth of your design. I''m very happy to work with you, Miss Anne and I don''t know if I will have this chance again in the future," the man on the other line insisted. Because of this work, Trey realized that Anne was, indeed, a talented designer. "Let''s talk about thister. I would like to congratte you on your sales achievement, Mr. Trey." After the exchange of courtesy, she hung up her phone and immediately opened a web page to see the ''My design turned out to be good. I hope it didn''t affect the AN Group.'' She frowned. All she wanted was to try her luck, but she never expected her design to be this popr. "Miss Anne, Mr. Kevin informed me that he wouldn''t dine here today. What do you want to eat for tonight''s dinner?" the nanny asked. "I''ll eat whatever you prepare. I''ll take my baby upstairs and rest for a while. Thank you." She went upstairs and headed to her room. It was getting dark outside. The city lights beamed different hues of colors that would make people feel blue. The employees of AN Group had left one after another. Kevin stayed on his chair and refused to leave. He didn''t know what went wrong with his work that he was defeated by the M Group so easily. "Mr. Kevin, it''s already an hour after work. Aren''t you going back yet?" his assistant asked. "I''ll leaveter. You''re dismissed." Kevin could feel his stress building up. He knew that being a CEO was not easy, but he never thought that one day, he would be beaten by a "Are my designers not good enough?" he wondered. The silence was the only response to his question. It was alreadyte when Kevin went home. The streetlights were on and so were the lights in the vi. Anne''s room was also lit as if she was waiting for him toe home. "Hey, you''re back." She looked at Kevin who looked a little disappointed. "I am," he mumbled. "You look unhappy. Is it about thepany''s recent report in jewelry?" she asked. "How did you know?" He was excited because it showed that she paid attention to the news of his His heart was overwhelmed with warmth, but it quickly dissipated. "I saw it on the news today. I have something to tell you regarding that," she trailed off carefully as she looked at Kevin who stood by the door with guilt in her eyes. "I''m fine. Just feel free to say anything you want." He smiled gently at her and decided not to bring his Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. work problems home. His gentleness and consideration made her guiltier because today, she knew what really happened at AN Group. "I had something to do with the main design of M Group," she whispered, looking straight into his eyes. Chapter 182 I Thought Youd Blame Me Chapter 182 I Thought You''d me Me "What does it have to do with you?" Thinking that Anne was only joking around, Kevin shed an amused smile. "I designed the main work of the M Group this time," she said matter-of-factly. All of a sudden, the smile from his face hadpletely disappeared. ''This... she can''t be serious, can she?'' Seeing that he was about to get angry at her, Anne bit on her lower lip. "That was my first design draft," she exined. "When I submitted it to M Group, our rtionship was still in a bad ce. Besides, I didn''t have much confident in my work." There was still a gloomy look on Kevin''s face. Even though the M Group wasn''t as well-known as the AN Group, it was still a reputablepany, which was why it didn''t make sense to him how she could go running to M Group when she imed that she had little confidence in her work. "Well, I''ll have my assistant stop finding out the designer." Kevin stated with an exasperated sigh. Daniel spent the whole afternoon looking up all of the designers at the M Group but still didn''t find any clue. Kevin never expected that the one that they wanted to find was actually around him. "I''m sorry, Kevin," Anne said apologetically. "I know I''ve hurt you with what I''ve done. It was all just a misunderstanding. You know I didn''t mean to cause any damages to yourpany." Smiling lightly, he walked towards her. However, since she still wasn''t so sure how to read the expression on his face, she couldn''t help but slowly step back away from him. Rolling his eyes, he quickly closed the distance between them and held her arm. "What are you so afraid of?" "I..." For a while, she hesitated. But when she looked carefully, there was a hint of yfulness in his eyes. "Aren''t you angry?" she asked warily. "What use is there to get angry now?" With a shrug, he shed a helpless but gentle grin at her. She furrowed her delicate brows in confusion. It still didn''t make sense to Anne why he wasn''t mad at her. Seeing this, Kevin let out a small chuckle. "Since you were the one who designed this, I''m not really that worried anymore. I know that you weren''t intending to harm the business. Plus, this is a good reminder that our ability in design needs to improve." "Don''t say that. Maybe it was just beginner''s luck. It was my first design, after all." In truth, it was just a quick sketch she made out of a whim. When she was drafting it, she thought that it would be great if she would be able to sell it at least. It never crossed her mind that it would be such a big sess. "I know that this is the first time you''ve designed something and you still aren''t that sure of yourself, but don''t you think that this might be a good sign for you? You can do whatever you want, Anne. Don''t worry about me or thepany. I can see what a talented designer you are, and I''m here to help you in whatever way I can. If AN Group is not enough to get your career going, I can get you in touch with a Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. betterpany." Kevin paused, lightly rubbing his chin as he looked at her thoughtfully. "Or better yet, we can create your very own personal brand," he added. The solemnness in his voice finally made her feel relieved. "I really thought you''d me me for the decline inpany''s performance," Anne muttered sheepishly. Now, she felt bad that she was so mean and defensive earlier. "Do you really think I''m that unreasonable?" he asked in a low voice. Before she could reply, he bent down and gently kissed her lips. The next day, everyone in the AN Group was jittery. Autumn had just arrived, which brought upon a fresh, cool breeze that was rather pleasant to most. However, even though the weather was great and the sun was brightly shining in the sky, everyone at the AN Group was as restless as ever. They knew that Kevin was angry yesterday because of how thepany got severely outperformed by the M Group. Everyone wanted to make sure that they were on Kevin''s good side, or, at the very least, got out of his way. "Hello, Mr. Kevin." Daniel greeted with a smile as Kevin got out of the car. "Get back to work and focus on the design you''re making. Don''t worry about that incident with M Group," Kevin said calmly, seeing through Daniel''s unnaturally positive attitude. "Mr. Kevin?" Daniel asked worriedly, his eyes filled with surprise and confusion. "What? Is there something wrong?" Kevin asked, not bothering to look back at his assistant. Walking up to his desk, he sat down and opened today''s newspaper to read the financial news. "No, no, No. Everything''s fine, Mr. Kevin. I''ll go make sure everyone''s doing their job." After saying that, Daniel walked out of the door and breathed a long, deep sigh of relief. ''That''s so weird. Yesterday, he looked like he was ready tosh out at anyone he caught sight of. Now he''s actually looking... okay.'' Even though it didn''t make sense, Daniel thought that it was normal. After all, Kevin was known for being unpredictable most of the time. No one was really able to guess what went through in his head. At least it looked like he was in a good mood, which meant that everyone in thepany could take a breather. As Kevin leafed through the newspaper, he suddenly remembered that Anne would being over With a small smile, he put the newspaper down and made a quick call using thendline phone on his desk. All it took was one button for him to instantly get in touch with any department at thepany. "Make me a summary of all thetest trends during Paris fashion week. And all the other popr trend in other countries while you''re at it," he said over the phone. "Also, if a woman named Anne Luoes over to see me, send her in at once. Be polite to her," Kevin quickly added before ending the call. After that, the news about this ''Anne Luo'' spread all over the People began to gossip at once. There were some who already knew that Anne was Kevin''s ex-wife. Everyone began to specte that they might have been reconciled. It didn''t take long before everyone at thepany looked forward to her arrival. At around ten o''clock in the morning, the woman they had been waiting for arrived. The clothes Anne wore were very simple and modest. She had on her a little, ck dress that went above her knees, paired with ck, leather Doc Marten boots. Since it was getting a bit chilly outside, she also put on a tan-colored long coat that hung loosely on her body. Although the colors she was wearing were muted, it was still easy for everyone at thepany to recognize her at a single nce. There was just something with the way she carried herself. Her aura made it clear that she was a very capable and strong woman. Meanwhile, Anne couldn''t help but think that it had been a long time since she came here to work. ''I miss Emily,'' she suddenly thought. ''I''m not even sure where she is now.'' Brushing off these thoughts, she went over to the front desk. "My name is Anne Lou," she said in a business-like tone. "I''m here to meet with the CEO." The receptionist nodded happily and made a quick call. Not a whileter, Daniel came out to greet her with a smile before taking her directly to Kevin''s office. "Why are your employees so enthusiastic all of a sudden?" As soon as Daniel closed the door behind him, she shot a curious look at Kevin. From the way she remembered, most of the employees here always looked serious. At times, they even looked rather sad and depressed. "Maybe it''s because they knew you wereing here," Kevin replied. It was no secret to him that his employees loved it when they had something to gossip about. Although it was something that annoyed him a bit, he figured that there was really nothing he could do about it. "Looks like you''re in a good mood, too. I never imagined you tolerating your employees gossiping like that," Anne praised, her tone light and yful. "People have their own hobbies and interests. Of course, it''s still vital that everyone gets their job done. Human nature is just something we can''t stifle, and, unfortunately, gossip is one of human''s nature." Pausing, he lowered his gaze. "I''m sorry," he added as he looked back up at her. "I''m sorry for what happened with Emily." "So now you believe me when I said that I didn''t hurt Ruth?" she asked carefully. "Of course not. You were there, but I know that Cherry was as well. Even though there''s not enough evidence to prove it, I know that you wouldn''t hurt other people like that." After he had gotten to know Cherry more, he now knew that the incident with Ruth must have been one of her many tricks. Even though Anne nodded indifferently, she couldn''t help but feel touched with his word. Before, even though they were intimate with each other, there was no trust in their rtionship. After getting separated, they finally found out the value of having faith in one another. "Thank you for that. Well, moving on... Do you have the information I requested?" Anne asked. "I''ve already asked someone to take care of it. Maybe they haven''t finished sorting it out yet. Why don''t you take a seat while we talk for a while? Standing up, Kevin went over to make some coffee. As she looked at him, she noticed how his slender physique had a refined temperament to it. Maybe she just wasn''t paying attention before, but it was the first time she had seen him this way. Or perhaps it was because their rtionship wasn''t that good before. Back then, they only saw the worst side of each other. "Okay." Quietly, Anne sat down on the plush, leather sofa. A little whileter, Kevin joined her and handed her a cup of coffee. "Do you have any ns to study abroad?" Kevin suddenly asked as he sat down next to her. "Why do you ask?" She smile awkwardly, her hand that held the coffee suddenly freezing in ce. "Your talent is promising, especially since you''re only self-taught. If you study some more, I''m sure you''ll be able to grow more as a designer," he exined bluntly. However, Anne raised her brows and smiled. "Do you think that it''s my dream to be a designer?" "Is it not?" This was not the answer he was expecting. He thought that she would just either say yes or no, but he was definitely sure of himself that she would want to pursue a career in design. "Of course not. I don''t have some sort of ''big dream''. Now that I think about it, it was because I was forced to grow up at such an early age. I was worried for my mother, which was why I knew I had to take it upon myself to be more mature and sensible. I had to start earning money so that she wouldn''t have to work so hard. Before I knew it, I became such a workaholic. The only reason I taught myself how to design was because of our child. I wanted to have him in my life so badly that I had no choice but to try and stand up for myself." For a while, Kevin was silent. Although he was shocked by her words, he carefully took them in. "Well, do you think design is something you''d want to do now? Is it something that interests you?" "I don''t know. The only thing that interests me now is having a normal and stable life. Trey told me that he would give me two percent of the profits my design generates. That''s enough for me since I''ll be able to support the baby. It''s also better this way that both of the baby''s parents are here to raise him attentively," Anne said honestly. As he heard that, his eyes lit up, thinking that maybe she was indicating something. "Have you ever thought of marrying me again, Anne? We''ll be able to give our child a real, happy family." "I''m sorry," she muttered, stunned at how he had mentioned this all of a sudden. This thought was actually something that had never crossed her mind since she gave birth to the baby. "Give me a few days to think about it first, okay?" she added reassuringly. At that moment, the door suddenly opened. It was Daniel, and in his arms was a thick stack of magazines, design cases and folders filled with research. When he saw Anne sitting so closely with Kevin on the couch, he immediately felt flustered. He knew that he shouldn''t have entered so rashly. It was just that his hands were so full that he couldn''t find a way to knock on the door. "Mr. Kevin, here''s all the information you wanted," Daniel said coolly, knowing that there was nothing he could do at this point. "Okay. Now, leave." There was a slight coldness in Kevin''s voice that Daniel knew all too well. After he quickly made his leave, Anne grabbed one of the magazines and began reading. As she had her eyes glued on the pages, Kevin was carefully looking at her. "Have you ever considereding back to work at the AN Group?" he asked after a while. Anne paused, and cast a sidelong nce at him. "It''s something I haven''t considered yet," she said, smiling. Slumping back on the sofa, Kevin couldn''t deny that he was a bit sad to hear this. But then, she turned to look at him, beaming from ear to ear. "But now that you''ve made me think about it, I guess I''lle back," she stated. "After all, I''m one of the shareholders in thispany. It makes sense, don''t you think?" Chapter 183 A Perfect Woman Chapter 183 A Perfect Woman It was the first time that Kevin had heard Anne say such words and he felt very excited, but he calmed down and spoke seriously. "Whether you are a shareholder or not, you can make your own decision." Suddenly, Anne smiled,pletely showing her white teeth. The aloof woman seemed to have be more approachable and gentle. Only those who appreciated her beauty would know that underneath her thorny appearance, there was a burning heart. Kevin sighed. "Even if I want toe back now, I can''t. Our child is still too young. Although the nanny is taking care of him, it will be better for me to stay at his side," Anne said with full concern for the baby. She loved him very much and didn''t want to leave him to Selma. "Okay, I respect you. But is it worth it for you to sacrifice so much for the child?" If he hadn''t known her well before, he would have been surprised. But now he knew the child was always her top priority, so he wasn''t shocked at all. "Even if I take care of the baby, it won''t hinder me from achieving my value. Since my ability has been proved in M Group, I think I am qualified to be a designer of AN Group. But my requirements are the same as M Group''s. Don''t announce my name for the time being. If people have to ask, just tell them that I''m W, okay?" "Okay, I can promise you," Kevin said sincerely while staring at Anne. When he saw her stand up, he also did the same and asked, "Are you going back? I''ll drive you home." "No, it''s working time now. Don''t give me a special treatment. I drove your new car here." Anne took out the key from her pocket and grinned cheerfully at Kevin. He couldn''t help butugh. She already surprised him a lot of times. However, if a woman had to drive a man''s car to show off, did it mean that he needed to give his woman a new gift? Anne already left, but he was still smiling from ear to ear. In the Fu Family''s Vi, the vibrant atmosphere was clearly felt. It was because of the existence of the hostess. The huge swimming pool was extravagantly built. There was Anne who was wearing a swimsuit that wrapped on her curvy body. Her flexible body did all kinds of swimming postures in the water, but her smile did not disappear from beginning to end. "Miss Anne, have a rest and have some fruit." The nanny stood beside the pool and offered her the fruit tray. "It''s almost done. Has the flower arrangement teacher arrived?" Anne asked calmly. "She''ll be here in ten minutes," the nanny quickly replied. In fact, she was a bit surprised that Anne had started to live her life to the fullest in the Fu Family. Starting from Yoga, swimming, flower arrangement, designing, to taking care of the child, nothing was missed. Anne even looked more blooming and energetic than she was. "Okay. Is the baby awake?" Anne came out of the swimming pool and grabbed the towel beside her. She wiped the water off her body. She was totally a different person from the time she came back. At that time, she showed nothing but coldness and arrogance. Now, she was a confident woman whenever she went. She was making herself the envy of all the women. "Miss Anne, Mr. Kevin seemed to have changed a lot. He''s been so kind to you now. Why don''t you remarry him?" the nanny asked unnaturally. "I haven''t thought about it yet. I just think it''s good to remain the current state. Although I''m not married to Kevin, our rtionship is much better than before." She was still not sure whether their rtionship would change after marriage. She was a little anxious with the thought, but she was totally fine with what they had now. "All right." The nanny took back the fruit tray, and Anne put on her clothes, ready to go to the baby''s room to see Charles. In the baby''s room, Charles waved his tiny hands, as if he was always energetic. He was jolly every time Anne was around. "Baby, I''m here with you. Did you have a good time?" Anne rubbed his belly gently. He suddenly smiled showing that he liked his mother''s touch. He grabbed her hair with his small hand and hardly let go of it. Anne was amazed that he had such strength despite that he was only three months old. Suddenly, something urred to her. She picked up the baby and put him on the bed with his face down. She took a toy to attract his attention. As expected, she saw that Charles raised his head, and stretched his hand trying to get it. "Miss Anne, the flower arrangement teacher is here. I can take care of the baby," the nanny said and offered to look out for her child. At that time, Anne was immersed in the joy that her baby was always jolly and energetic. He even learned to look up when he was lying prone. "Okay, Charles can lie prone and raise his head now. You can let him exercise, but don''t make him too tired. Let him have a restter." After that, Anne went to the living room and saw the flower arrangement teacher. "Hello," Anne greeted the teacher with a smile. "Hello, Miss Anne. You are the most confident person I''ve ever known to learn flower arrangement," Becky said cheerfully as she was pleased to meet Anne. "Really?" Anne felt a little embarrassed to be praised at first sight. Nevertheless, she smiled back at This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. her. "Of course, the most important thing in flower arrangement is confidence, being calm and not in a hurry. In fact, the basic skills are very easy to learn, but some people don''t know how to rx themselves which hindered them from learning this art," Becky said trying to make things clear about flower arrangement. Anne understood what the teacher said, and she learned quickly when Becky taught her. The study ended in just two hours. Since Anne had a full day, she seemed to be in a good mood. She was truly a fast learner, easy to adapt to things and learn them well. It was six o'' clock in thete afternoon and Kevin just got home. When the nanny saw him, she smiled and told him, "Mr. Kevin, since Miss Anne came back, you seemed to alwayse back on time." Kevin just smiled. His eyes were fixated on Anne. She stood in front of huge vases, in which there were all kinds of bright and beautiful flowers. But to him, her beauty was the greatest of all. "You''re back?" Anne spoke and went closer to him. She was so excited to tell him about their baby''s progress. "Our baby can raise his head when he lies prone today." Kevin was still staring at her. He thought of her as the best mother he had ever known. He smiled brightly with the thought. "Well, you must be tired." He put his arms around her shoulder. "I''m not tired at all. Charles is very obedient. When I was studying the flower arrangement, swimming and designing, he didn''t give the nanny a hard time. He didn''t cry or make trouble. When I went to see him, he was very dependent on me and always giggled." Anne was very proud of her child. Her eyes were full of excitement to see her child grow. "Well, it seemed that I don''t have much time with Charles. From now on, I will try my best to refuse my work ande back to apany you every weekend," Kevin said gently. He was willing to make time for his family. What a thoughtful man indeed! Seeing that Kevin was so eager to spend more time with her and their baby, Anne said, "Work is the most important. If there is something particrly important, don''t refuse it." Kevin smiled and thought that she was very enterprising. "Of course I know. I just want to fulfill my responsibilities as the father of our child, okay?" Kevin said thoughtfully. Anne breathed a sigh of relief. She was worried that he would refuse work because of her. Now that she knew it was for the child''s sake, she felt much better. Her eyes shuttled through the vases and saw a variety of flowers being put in various shapes. Suddenly, a new design came into her mind. "Kevin, I''m thinking if I can put the elements of each season''s flowers into the design and slowlyunch the new style, so that everyone will know what the products in the next season of the AN Group will be like. It is also for the people to be more attracted and curious about what the design will be at a specific time. I think that it is a good idea to attract customers." Anne spoke with enough confidence. Her voice trailed off. Kevin, on the other side, didn''t express his opinion and thought about it at first. "Your idea is very interesting. But I''m afraid that the sales will only be good in the short term if we merely use the flowers as the main theme. It is hard to say how the sales will go for the long term, but we can give it a try." Kevin spoke after a short moment of analyzing the advantages and disadvantages of the idea. "But what if there is a risk?" Anne bit her lips and didn''t want to put the AN Group at risk. After all, the AN Group had just encountered a small trouble because of her. "It doesn''t matter. Anypany''s n will encounter trouble in every period, and I don¡¯t think your idea will fail. I believe that you will definitely have a better performance this time based on what you have designed before," Kevin said while stroking her hair. The two of them smiled at each other intimately. In the cafe. A soothing music was yed and made the people feel rxed. Anne looked at Trey while sitting demurely. "Mr. Trey, you can withdraw the term. It''s totally a coincidence that my previous design could be outstanding. I know that you gave me two percent of the profit from the sales because you wanted me to stay in M Group. But I can''t allow something like that to happen anymore," she said and lowered her head. Trey didn''t say anything. He just stared at her for a long time. The scrutiny in his eyes made her feel ufortable. "You asked me a question before if I had any feelings for Kevin. I will tell you that he is the father of my child, and also a person I can''t give up. I was not able to figure it out before, but now I understand. It''s not that I deliberately lied to you, but to be honest, I really didn''t know that before." Anne stood up and took out a paper of agreement from her bag. She put it on the table and turned away. It was not until then that he realized that there was only an agreement left. He picked up the paper of agreement and put it in the pocket of his suit. The only words he managed to let out were, "What a pity." He wanted Anne to say, not only for the business''s sake; it was also his personal wish. Besides, it was no doubt that she was really a talented designer. On the other side, Trey still hoped that he could still be friends with her. However, some people were only destined to meet by chance, but sadly couldn''t go well together. There was a hint of regret in his eyes. Chapter 184 A Miserable Life In Prison Chapter 184 A Miserable Life In Prison It was early in the morning as a drizzle fell from the sky, bringing along the asional cold gust of wind. It didn''t matter how warm the weather was, as the rain had now transformed it into a cold day. On the south side of the city, the prison was alive with its usual routine. The ce was no stranger to the usual quarrels. "I want to go home! I want to get out of here! Do you know who I am?" Despite being handcuffed, Cherry thrashed about, her iling arms hitting the officers nearby. "Be obedient. You are assaulting a police officer. If you don''t behave yourself, your penalty will be increased!" "I just want to go. Wait and see, I will get out somehow," Cherry was shouting at the top of her lungs. It had been a month since she was locked up in the prison, but she still hadn''t adapted to the life here. The thought of being defeated by Anne infuriated her. "I am suffering here because of you. I bet you are proud of yourself." Cherry clenched her fists, her anger spilling out. However, her conversation with herself made everyone in prison think she was crazy. She was dragged to her cell and the door was locked shut. She copsed onto the floor, watching the rain trickling down from the small window. She felt like her life was over. "No. 58,e out! Someone¡¯s here to see you." She was abruptly woken up three hourster with a loud voice. Her eyebrows were knotted together in confusion. She didn''t have any rtives, and all her friends had abandoned her now that she had lost everything. No one had dared toe to visit her until now. So who could it be? Cherry stepped out. Her expression was cold when her eyes met her guest. The man was none other than Devin. "What are you doing here? Get out!" Cherry instinctively shouted. The ss between them held her back from rushing out and beating him. The officer apanying her held her down, shouting, "Be quiet!" As she sat down in front of him, her eyes were full of hatred. "What are you doing here?" Cherry questioned again, her voice icy. Devin waited for them to be alone. Then he said, "I am here to see you, of course. After all, you are my only daughter." She felt disgusted at his sudden affection. "You are here for a reason, aren¡¯t you? I bet you have run out of money." Devin pursed his lips as he replied awkwardly, "Don''t be so judgmental, okay? I am willing to help you if you pay me. I will tell you everything that is going on outside so that you aren''t lonely here anymore." "I don''t need that. Since you can¡¯t save me, it¡¯s better if you leave now." Cherry¡¯s words were harsh, but her mood made her unpredictable. "Don''t be so heartless, okay? I''m the only one who came to see you, right? You should know that it''s difficult to do things without money now. If I am going to save you, I still need the money and a lot of it." Devin pretended to be eager to save her. Despite her annoyance, Cherry hesitated. Although she didn''t want to trust Devin, she had no one left. "Well. In the house that Kevin asked me to live in, there is a million in cash behind the bedside cupboard. Take the money, but you have to keep an eye on the AN Group and Anne''s every movement and report to me. Then you follow mymands, okay?" Cherry spoke seriously. With a frown, Devin replied, "Why aren''t you giving me more money, since you asked me to do so many things for you?" Cherry wasn''t surprised by his reaction. "I can give you so much more, but only if you follow my "Don''t be so rude. Of course, I will listen to you. But you have to promise me that if I help you, you can''t treat me unfairly, or I will never help you again." Devin tried his best to hide his excitement. "Don''t worry. After all, you are my father." Cherry gave a cunning smile. Inside the Fu Family''s Vi. The rain was hitting the ss window, creating a soft rhythm inside the quiet home. Anne had set up an easel in front of the big vases, as she outlined the flowers. She was painting each stroke carefully but was still left dissatisfied. Suddenly, the dull silence was broken by Charles¡¯s loud cries. Hearing that, Anne immediately ced her paintbrush down before she rushed towards the baby room. "Charles, stop crying." Carrying him in her arms, Anne patted his small back. She thought that he had cried because no one had talked to him for a long time, but she didn''t expect him to cry even harder after she picked him up. When she touched his forehead, she found that he had a fever. Seeing the heavy rain outside, she thought of asking Sam toe here, but she couldn''t get through. "Miss Anne, we can''t wait. We have to take the child to the hospital as soon as possible," the nanny stated loudly. "I know. You hold the baby, I''ll go to get the car," Anne ordered, her forehead creasing with worry. The car sped down the road, as Anne became increasingly anxious about Charles¡¯s fever getting worse. The surrounding cars retreated to the sides. Despite driving this fast for the first time, she was very cautious the whole way. "Here we are." An hour had passed until they finally arrived at the hospital. Charles¡¯s voice had be hoarse from the constant crying. "What''s wrong with him?" Sam quickly asked, as soon as they arrived. He had been waiting for them for over half an hour. He was preparing for an emergency operation when Anne had called him. After seeing his call log, he dialed back, but no one answered. He suspected that Charles had be sick. "I don''t know. He is burning up. I think he has a fever." Anne¡¯s voice sounded anxious. She was holding Charles with one hand and an umbre with the other, while the nanny carried their bags. "Give me the baby and go inside, before you catch a cold." They rushed inside the hospital together. The ward prepared for Charles was extremely neat, as he was ced on the white bed sheets. Anne''s breathing hitched, watching Sam give her son an injection. "Sorry to make you anxious." Noticing the sweat beading on her forehead, Sam softly wiped it off. "It¡¯s okay. I hope the fever goes down quickly." Anne forced a smile. "Charles has been having fevers for no reason. I think we should have a check-up again in a few days," Sam said seriously. Hearing this, Anne nodded immediately. "You¡¯re right. Charles''s health is most important. When should Ie again?" Anne was always this nervous when it came to Charles. Sam softly squeezed her shoulder, saying, "Don¡¯t worry right now. We¡¯ll examine once he recovers." "Okay, it''s up to you." She was still anxious. "Anne. How is he?" Kevin had hurried to the hospital, as soon as he became aware of the situation. Seeing Anne so worried, like she was about to cry, made him panic. "The baby is fine for the time being. It''s just that Anne is freaking out. You should stay with her." Sam voluntarily left, as soon as Kevin stepped in. "Anne, are you okay? I''mte. I''m sorry." Kevin kissed her forehead,forting her. "Kevin, our child keeps having a fever. I feel so scared that something might be wrong." She felt this sense of impending doom, making her stomach twist. Copyright by N?v/elDrama.Org. "Don''t worry. We have Sam, he will keep our baby healthy." Kevin embraced her, warming her cold body with his. "Okay." Although Anne agreed, she couldn''t calm down. Fortunately, after two long hours, Charles¡¯s fever had dropped down. A small smile had returned to her face, as she yed with her baby inside the ward. Watching them giggle, Kevin couldn''t help but beam. "This is for you." Kevin took out a key from his pocket, handing it over to Anne. "What''s this?" As she turned the key in her hand, she recognized it belonged to a car. "I bought a car for you. It will be convenient once he starts school, and it''s also suitable for women," Kevin dered. After he had heard from the nanny that Anne had raced the car to the hospital, he felt scared for her wellbeing. "No, I can''t ept this. We have nothing to do with each other now. I will feel ufortable if I ept your car." Anne was a woman with principles. Even if she wanted to buy a car, she would do so by herself. "You can take it as a gift from me, and don''t think about having to repay me." Kevin had a sour look on his face. He had never once been refused one of his gifts. "I can''t ept it, Kevin. Don''t put me in a difficult position." Anne loathed the idea of having to depend on Kevin after their divorce. "Think of it as a gift for you to pick up the baby. If you don¡¯t need to pick him up, you can return the car to me. Okay?" Kevin was biting down his frustration. He liked Anne, and although he felt mad that Anne refused him, he was willing to change for her. "All right." Anne finally took the car key, making Kevin breathe a sigh of relief. The two of them were still concerned with how Charles had a fever for no apparent reason, so they decided to spend the night in the ward. In the middle of the night, Charles''s croaky wails began once more. Anne jerked awake by the loud noise. Habitually, she checked Charles¡¯s forehead and found it hot. Sam had also been worried and hadn''t left the hospital. After he found out that Charles was having another fever, he ordered the nurse with a heavy heart, "Draw his blood and have a check." He wondered why the baby¡¯s body temperature was frequently rising. Maybe it was because his body was sick. The atmosphere inside the ward hadpletely shifted. The three adults surrounded Charles, grim expressions stered on their faces. About half an hourter, when the examination report came out, the result was shocking. It was